An exposition of the prophesie of Hosea begun in divers lectures vpon the first three chapters, at Michaels Cornhill, London / by Jer. Burroughes. Burroughs, Jeremiah, 1599-1646. 1652 Approx. 1921 KB of XML-encoded text transcribed from 281 1-bit group-IV TIFF page images. Text Creation Partnership, Ann Arbor, MI ; Oxford (UK) : 2007-01 (EEBO-TCP Phase 1). A30572 Wing B6069 ESTC R25957 09304170 ocm 09304170 42662 This keyboarded and encoded edition of the work described above is co-owned by the institutions providing financial support to the Early English Books Online Text Creation Partnership. This Phase I text is available for reuse, according to the terms of Creative Commons 0 1.0 Universal . The text can be copied, modified, distributed and performed, even for commercial purposes, all without asking permission. Early English books online. (EEBO-TCP ; phase 1, no. A30572) Transcribed from: (Early English Books Online ; image set 42662) Images scanned from microfilm: (Early English books, 1641-1700 ; 1304:2) An exposition of the prophesie of Hosea begun in divers lectures vpon the first three chapters, at Michaels Cornhill, London / by Jer. Burroughes. Burroughs, Jeremiah, 1599-1646. The second edition newly corrected. [2], 540 p. Printed for R. Dawlman, London : 1652. Reproduction of original in the Union Theological Seminary Library, New York. Created by converting TCP files to TEI P5 using tcp2tei.xsl, TEI @ Oxford. Re-processed by University of Nebraska-Lincoln and Northwestern, with changes to facilitate morpho-syntactic tagging. Gap elements of known extent have been transformed into placeholder characters or elements to simplify the filling in of gaps by user contributors. EEBO-TCP is a partnership between the Universities of Michigan and Oxford and the publisher ProQuest to create accurately transcribed and encoded texts based on the image sets published by ProQuest via their Early English Books Online (EEBO) database (http://eebo.chadwyck.com). The general aim of EEBO-TCP is to encode one copy (usually the first edition) of every monographic English-language title published between 1473 and 1700 available in EEBO. EEBO-TCP aimed to produce large quantities of textual data within the usual project restraints of time and funding, and therefore chose to create diplomatic transcriptions (as opposed to critical editions) with light-touch, mainly structural encoding based on the Text Encoding Initiative (http://www.tei-c.org). The EEBO-TCP project was divided into two phases. The 25,363 texts created during Phase 1 of the project have been released into the public domain as of 1 January 2015. Anyone can now take and use these texts for their own purposes, but we respectfully request that due credit and attribution is given to their original source. Users should be aware of the process of creating the TCP texts, and therefore of any assumptions that can be made about the data. Text selection was based on the New Cambridge Bibliography of English Literature (NCBEL). If an author (or for an anonymous work, the title) appears in NCBEL, then their works are eligible for inclusion. Selection was intended to range over a wide variety of subject areas, to reflect the true nature of the print record of the period. In general, first editions of a works in English were prioritized, although there are a number of works in other languages, notably Latin and Welsh, included and sometimes a second or later edition of a work was chosen if there was a compelling reason to do so. Image sets were sent to external keying companies for transcription and basic encoding. Quality assurance was then carried out by editorial teams in Oxford and Michigan. 5% (or 5 pages, whichever is the greater) of each text was proofread for accuracy and those which did not meet QA standards were returned to the keyers to be redone. After proofreading, the encoding was enhanced and/or corrected and characters marked as illegible were corrected where possible up to a limit of 100 instances per text. Any remaining illegibles were encoded as s. Understanding these processes should make clear that, while the overall quality of TCP data is very good, some errors will remain and some readable characters will be marked as illegible. Users should bear in mind that in all likelihood such instances will never have been looked at by a TCP editor. The texts were encoded and linked to page images in accordance with level 4 of the TEI in Libraries guidelines. Copies of the texts have been issued variously as SGML (TCP schema; ASCII text with mnemonic sdata character entities); displayable XML (TCP schema; characters represented either as UTF-8 Unicode or text strings within braces); or lossless XML (TEI P5, characters represented either as UTF-8 Unicode or TEI g elements). Keying and markup guidelines are available at the Text Creation Partnership web site . eng Bible. -- O.T. -- Hosea -- Commentaries. 2006-04 TCP Assigned for keying and markup 2006-04 Aptara Keyed and coded from ProQuest page images 2006-07 John Latta Sampled and proofread 2006-07 John Latta Text and markup reviewed and edited 2006-09 pfs Batch review (QC) and XML conversion AN EXPOSITION Of the Prophesie of HOSEA . Begun IN DIVERS LECTVRES Vpon the first three Chapters , At MICHAELS Cornhill , LONDON , By JER . BURROUGHES . The Second Edition Newly corrected . Inter omnia dona , donum verbi Dei est amplissimum : Si hoc auferas , soleme mundo sustulisti : Quid erit mundus , sublato verbo , quaminfernus ? Luther . LONDON , Printed for R. Dalwman , in the Year , 1652. TO THE READER . YOu have these Lectures as they were taken from me in preaching , Iperused the notes , but I could not bring the style to that succinctnesse that I desired , except I should have wrote all over again , which I had no time to doe : my perusall was but cursory , therefore many things have slipt me : You have them as I preached them , without any considerable alteration . I had thought to have been far briefer : that which caused me to goe somewhat beyond an expository way , was the meeting with so many things almost in every Lecture so neerly concerning the present times : in the remaining part of the Prophesie , if God give life to goe through it , I shall keep my selfe more close to an expository way : what here you have , take it as you finde it : what good you meet with , receive it in . This will be the encouragement of Thy friend in Christ , J. B. Aug. 10. 1643. Imprimatur , Ioseph Caryll , AN EXPOSITION OF The Prophesie of Hosea . The First LECTVRE . Chap. 1. Vers . 1 , 2. &c. 1. The word of the Lord that came unto Hosea the son of Beeri , in the dayes of Vzziah , Iotham , Ahaz , and Hezekiah , Kings of Iudah , and in the days of Ieroboam son of Ioash King of Israel . 2. The beginning of the word of the Lord by Hosea : and the Lord said to Hosea , &c. The Preface To The Work. THis day beginneth a Scripture Exposition Exercise , which hath lost much of the honour of it , by the disuse of it : The best Apology for it is to set presently upon it . It is ancient in the Church of God , old enough to speak for itself . Nehem . 8. 8. we read , that Ezra , Ieshua , Bani , and the rest read in the book of the Law , and gave the sense , and caused the people to understand the reading . You love brevity ; in this Exercise you shall have it , in all that shall be delivered unto you . I have pitched upon the Books of the small Prophets , to open them unto you , of whom Ierome hath this expression : a You cannot tell which to wonder at most , either the brevt●y of speech , or the greatness and abundance of sense . And this Prophet Hosea in speciall is excellent this way , of whom the same Author speaking , calls him b exceeding concise , & speaking by sentences . Being the Propheticall books is the work that falls to me , why I chose rather to begin with Hosea then Isaiah , I shall afterward give you an account . If God continue this Exerciseand life , we may goe through them all , both small and great . In these Prophets we have most admirable divine Truths revealed to us , and pity it is , that the minde of God contained in them should be so little known , even unto his children , that such treasures of heavenly truths that are there should lie hid from so many so long a time as they have done . We might preface this our work ( because this is the first dayes entrance into it ) vvith labouring to raise and sweeten your hearts with the consideration of the excellency of the Scriptures in generall . Luther hath an high expression about them ; he calls them c the highest genus that containes in it all good whatsoever . Take away the Scripture , and you even take away the Sun from the world . What is the world without the Scriptures , but hell it self ? We have had indeed the word of God to be as the Sun in the world , but oh hovv many mists have been before this Sun ! We have seldome the Sun shine clearly to us . It is pity , seeing there is such a glorious Sun risen , that there should be such a misty day . Now this is the work we are called unto , to dispell the mists and fogs from before this Sun , that it may shine more brightly before your eyes , and into your hearts . Chrysost . in his 29. Sermon upon Genesis d exhorting his Auditors to get the Scriptures into their houses , and to a diligent exercise of himselfe in them , tells them that by them the soul is raised and elevated , and brightned , as with the beame of the Sun of righteousnesse , and delivered from the snares of unclean thoughts . The Scripture is that wherin the great God of heaven hath sent his mind to the children of men , wherein he hath made known the counsel of his wil , & opened even his very heart unto Man-kind . It is the Epistle that God hath sent into the world . And did wee but heare of such a Book that were dictated imediatly by God himself , to the end to shew the children of men what the eternall counsels of his will were for the ordering of them to their eternall estate , and to open his thoughts and intentions concerning their everlasting condition what it shall be : Did wee I say but heare that there were such a book in the farthest part of the Indies , would we not rejoyce that the world was blest with such a mercie ? what strong and vehement desires should we have to enjoy but one sight of it before we dye ! Wee would be willing to venture upon any hazard , to passe through any difficulty , to be at any charges , that we might have but a sight of such a booke as this . My brethren , you need not say , Who shall goe to the farthest part of the Indies to setch this book ? Who shall descend into the depth , or goe to the uttermost part of the earth to help us to a sight of this booke of Scripture ? For behold , the word is nigh unto you , it is in your houses , and we hope in your hearts , and in this exercise is to be in our mouths , not only to tell you what it saith , but open unto you the mind of God in it . The exercising our selves in this book is sweet indeed ; Luther professes himselfe out of love with his own books , and wished them burnt , lest men spending time in them , should be hindered from reading the Scriptures ; which saies he are the only fountain of all wisdome : and I tremble saies he at the former age , that was so much busied in reading of Aristotle and Averroes . Wee read in that 8. of Nehem. vers . 5 , 6. when Ezra opened the book of the Law to expound it to the people , he blessed the Lord the great God , and all the people answered , Amen , Amen . And now blessed be the Lord , the great and gracious God , for stirring your hearts up to such a work as this is , and blessed be his name for those liberties we have thus freely to exercise our selves in this service ; O praised be the name of the great God for this dayes entrance into so good a work as this is . Yea they did not only blesse God , but the Text saith , They lifted up their hands , and they bowed their heads , and worshipped the Lord with their faces to the ground . Why ? because the book of the Law was read to them and expounded . How comes it to passe that their hearts were so taken with it now to hear the book of the Law expounded to them ? Surely it was because they were newly returned out of their Captivity ; and now they came into their owne Land , and heard the Law of God opened to them , they blessed his great Name , & bowed their faces to the ground , worshipping him . This day ( my brethren ) witnesseth to us our great deliverance and returne from our bondage . It was not long since that wee could have either Ordinances , or Truths , or Religious exercises , but onely according to the humors of vile men : But now through Gods mercy a great deliverance is granted to us ( as this day witnesseth ) that wee may come and have free liberty to exercise our selves in the Law of our God : O doe you blesse the Lord , and bow your faces to the ground , worshipping of him . In the 12. vers . of that Chap. we read , that after they had heard the Law read and expounded to them , they went their way to eate and to drink , and to send portions , and to make great mirth : Why ? Because ( saith the Text ) they had understood the words that were declared unto them . I hope if God shall please to give in assistance unto this work , many of you shall goe away hereafter from this Assembly rejoycing , because you will come to know more of Gods mind revealed in his word then formerly : And this will be the comfort of your meat and drink , and of your trading , and the very spirits of all the joyes of your lives . As the sweetnesse of the fruit comes from the graft , rather then from the stock , so your comforts , and the blessings of grace in you , must come from the word ingrafted in your soules , rather then from any thing you have in your selves . In the first vers . the Text saith , that all the people gathered themselves together as one man , into the street that was before the water-gate , to desire Ezra to bring the book of the law , and to read it , and to open it unto them . Behold it is thus this day in this place ; here are a great company met together , perhaps some to know what the businesse will be , some for novelty , and some for other ends ; howsoever , come unto us you are , and we hope many for this end , that you might have the booke of the Law read & opened unto you . Now we expect that from you , which is said of them , ver . 3. And the ears of all the people were attenti●e unto the book of the law , when it was read & opened to them . And truly that attention that you now begin withal , doth promise unto us that we shall have an attentive auditory . But that is not all ; let us have further a reverential demeanor and carriage in the hearing of the Law , as it becomes those that have to deale with God in it . The Text saith , vers . 5. that when Ezra opened the book of the Law , all the people stood up . We doe not expect the same gesture from you , but by way of Analogie we expect a reverentiall demea nour in the carriage of he whole worke , as knowing we are to sanctifie Gods Name in it . And as those people after the first dayes exercise were so encouraged , that they came again the second day , ( for so the Text saith , vers . 13. On the second day were gathered together the cheife of the fathers of all the people , the Priests and the Levi●es , unto Ezra , to understand the words of the Law ) so ( I hope ) God will so carry on this worke , that you shall find encouragement too , to come again and again , that you may know more of the mind of God ; and that this work shall not be only profitable to the younger and weaker sort , but to the Fathers , to the Priests and Levites too . Let it be with you as it was with them , according as you have any truth made known unto you , submit to it , yeeld to it , obey it presently , and then you shall know more of Gods mind : He that will doe my will , shall know my doctrine to be of God : Thus did they , for vers . 14. when they found it vvritten in the book of the Law , that the children of Israel should dwell in booths in the feast of the seventh moneth , ( This was one passage of the Law that was expounded , how they should keep the feast of Tabernacles , and what booths they should make ) the people went forth presently unto the mount , and fetched Olive branches , and Palm branches , and branches of thick trees , and made themselves booths , every one upon the roofe of his house . In this Prophesie of Hosea you shall find many sutable truths to the times wherein we live , the Lord grant you obedient hearts to what shall be delivered . I must not retard the work , nor your expectations any longer with large prefacing to it , only somewhat have been said about the rules for interpretation of Scripture ; I will say no more of that but this , to interpretation of Scripture , a Scripture frame of heart is necessary , a heart holy & heavenly , sutable to the holinesse & heavenlinesse that is in the word : as it was said of Tullies eloquence , that nothing but the eloquence of Tully could set out the excellency of it : So it may be said of the Scriptures spiritualness , nothing but a heart filled with Scripture spiritualness can set forth the excellencies of it : and because the authority of Scripture is dreadfull , wee desire the prayers of you all to God for us , that his feare might fall upon our hearts that seeing we are menfull of errour , and full of evill , yet howsoever wee may not bring any Scripture to the maintenance of any erroneous conceit of our own heads , nor any evill of our own hearts : This wee know to be a dreadfull evill . It was a fearfull evill for Lucifer to say , I will goe and ascend up , & be like the Highest , it is as great an evill for any to seek to make the Highest to become like Lucifer ; for so do they that make the Scripture come down to justifie any erroneous opinion , or any way of evill they goe about to make the blessed God and the holy Ghost to be the fathers of lies . It is counted a great evill in a Common-wealth to put the Kings stamp upon false coine ; and to put the stamp of the Spirit of God upon an error , upon a conceit of a mans owne , is certainly a great evill before the Lord : and it was for this that God did make the Priests vile and contemptible before the people , because they were pa●tiall in the Law , Mal. 2. 9. And for you ( my brethren ) our prayer shall be , that the feare of God may fall upon you likewise , that you may come to these Exercises with Scripture-frames of heart . What frame of heart is a Scripture-frame ? The holy Ghost tells you , Isa . 66. 1. God looks at him that trembleth at his word : come with hearts trembling at the word of God ; come not to be Iudges of the Law , but doers of it . You may judge of your profiting in grace by the delight you finde in Scripture , as Quintilian was wont to say of profiting in eloquence , a man may know that , saies hee , by the delight hee findes in reading Cicero ; much more may this be said of the Scriptures , it is a true signe of profiting in Religion , to whom the Scriptures are sweeter then the honey , and the honey-combe . And now I shall onely tell you what the work is we have to doe , and then we shall fall upon it , and that is to open Scripture unto you , not onely difficulties , but to shew unto you what divine truths are contained in them what may come fresh , and spring up from the fountain it selfe , to present them unto you with adding some quickness . This is our worke not to enlarge any thing with long Explication , Probation , or Application . There are these five things to be enquired concerning this our Prophet , whose Prophesie I have now pitched upon to open . 1 Who he was . 2 To whom he was sent . 3 What his errant was . 4 His Commission . 5 The time of his prophesie All these you have either in the first verse , ( where most of them are ) or you shall find them in the Chapter . For the first then , who this Prophet was . I will tell you no more of him then what you have in the first verse , Hosea the son of Beeri . His name signifieth a Saviour , one that brings salvation . It is the same root that Ioshua had his name from ; and many saving and savory truths wee shall finde this Prophet bringing to us . He was the sonne of Beeri . This Beeri we doe not find who hee was in Scripture , only in that he is here named as the father of the Prophet in the entrance into this Prophesie , Surely it is honor is gratia to the Prophet , and from it we may note thus much . That so should parents live and walke , as it may be an honour to their children to be called by their names , that their children may neither be afraid nor ashamed to be named by them . The Iews have a tradition that is generally received among them , that whensoever a Prophets Father is named , that Father was likewise a Prophet as well as the Son. If that were so , then surely it is no dishonor for any man to be the Son of a Prophet . Let those that are the children of godly , gracious Ministers , be no dishonour to their Parents , their Parents are an honour unto them : But we find it by experience , that many of their children are farr from being honours to their godly parents . How many ancient godly Ministers , who heretofore hated superstitious vanities , whose sonns of late have been the greatest zealots for such things . It puts me in mind of what the Scripture notes concerning Iehoiakim the sonne of Iosiah , the difference betweene his father and him . Iosiah when he heard the Law read , his heart melted , and he humbled himselfe before the Lord. But now Iehoiakim his sonne , when hee came to heare the Law of God read , he tooke a pen-knife , and cut the roll in which it was written , in peices , and threw it into the fire that was on the hearth , untill all the roll was consumed . A great deale of difference there was between the Son and the Father , and thus it is between the sons of many ancient godly Ministers and them : their Fathers indeed might be an honour unto them , but they are dishonour to their Fathers . The sonne of Beeri . This word Beeri hath its signification from a Wel that hath springing water in it , freely and cleerly running : So Ministers should be the children of Beeri , That that they have should be springing water , and not the mud and dirt , and filth of their own conceits mingled with the word . This only by way of allusion . To whom was this Prophet Hosea sent . He was sent especially to the Ten Tribes . I suppose you all know the division that there was of the people of Israel in Rehoboams time , tenn of the Tribes went from the house of David , only Iudah and Benjamine remained with it . Now these tenne Tribes renting themselves from the house of David , did rent themselves likewise from the true worship of God , & there grew up horrible wickednesses , and all manner of abominations amongst them . To these ten Tribes God sent this Prophet . He sent Isaiah & Micah to Iudah , Amos and Hosea he sent to Israel , all these were contemporary . If you would know what state Israel was in , in Hoseas time , read but 2 K. 15. 19. & you shall find what their condition was , Ieroboam did that which was e●ill but he fight of the Lord , he departed not from all the sins of Ieroboam the sonne of Nebat which made Israel to sinne . But notwithstanding Israel was thus notoriously wicked , and given up to all Idolatry , yet the Lord sendeth his Prophets , Hosea and Amos , to Prophesie to them even at this time . O the goodnesse of the Lord to follow an apostatizing people , an apostatizing soule ! It was mercy yet while God was speaking ; but woe to that people , to that soul to whom the Lord shall give in charge to his Prophets , prophesie no more to them . But what was Hosea his errand to Israel ? His errand was to convince them clearly o● this their abominable Idolatry , and those other abominable wickednesses that they lived in , and severely to denounce threatnings , yea most fearfull destruction . ( This was not done before by the other Prophets , as wee shall afterward make it appeare , but it was Hosea his errand to threaten an utter desolation to Israel more than ever was before ) and yet withall to promise mercy to a remnant to draw them to repentance , and to Prophesie of the great things that God intended to doe for his Church and children in the latter dayes . What was his Commission ? The words tells us plainly , The word of the Lord came to Hosea . It was the word of Iehovah . It is a great argument to obedience to know it is the word of the Lord that is spoken . When men set reason against reason , and judgment against judgment , and opinion against opinion , it prevails not : but vvhen they see the authority of God in the Word , then the heart and conscience yeeldeth . Therefore hovvever you may look upon the instruments that bring it , or open it to you , as your equalls or inferiours , yet knovv there is an authority in the Word that is above you al : It is the word of the Lord. And this word of the Lord , it came to Hosea . Mark the phrase , Hosea did not goe for the word of the Lord , but the word of the Lord came to him : he sought it not , but it came to him , factum fuit verbum , so are the words , the word of the Lord came , or was made into him , was put into him . Such a kind of phrase you have in the new Testament , Iohn 10. 35. If hee called them Gods unto whom the word of God came ; that is , to whom the commission came , to put them in the place wherein they were . So the word of the Lord came to Hosea . The knowledg of a call to a work , will help a man through the difficulties of the work . One of the notablest Texts of Scripture to encourage a man to that work to which he sees he is clearly called , is that which is spoken of Christ himselfe , Isa . 42. 6. I the Lord have called thee in righteousnesse : what follows then ? I will hold thy hand , and will keep thee , and give thee for a covenant to the people , for a light to the Gentiles . If wee know Gods call to a work ( as for the present this of ours is exceeding clear unto us ) though the worke will be difficult and liable to much censure , Yet the Lord will hold our hands , and will be with us , and with our minds , and our tongues , and our hearts , and will keep us in this work , and make us instruments to give some light unto you . But the principall businesse is to enquire of the time when Hosea prophesied . You have it in the Text , In the dayes of Vzziah , Iotham , Ahaz , and Hezekiah Kings , of Iudah , and in the dayes of Ieroboam the son of Ioash King of Israel . It is computed by Chronologers , that Hosea lived about 814. years before Christ : In his time was the City of Rome built . It was the beginning of the Olympiads . Eusebius tells us that there was no Grecian History ( and if no Greek learning , then not any that was of any authority ) extant before this time of Hosea . He prophesied in these Kings reigns , Vzziah , Iotham , &c. You shall find that we shall have much of Gods mind revealed in this , more then at first view we can comprehend . We shall find by this that Hosea prophesied a very long time , it is very probable fourscore years , but it is certaine he was in the work of his Ministry above seventy yeares , and I make that clear thus , He prophesied in the dayes of Ierobam ( who though he be here named last , yet he was the first of these Kings , and we shall shew you the reason by and by , why he was named last ) that then took up some of his time : But suppose you reckon from the end of Ieroboams reign , yet from that to the beginning of Hezekiah , here were 70. years , and yet the Text saith he prophesied both in Ieroboams time , and in Hezekiahs time too : after the death of Ieroboam , Vzziah lived 38. years ( he reigned 52. in all ) He began his reign in the 27. of Ieroboam , 2 King. 15. 1. Now Ieroboam lived after that 14. years , for he reigned 41. in all , take 14. out of 52. and there remains 38. and after him Iotham reigned 16. years ; and then Ahaz . succeeded him , and reigned sixteene yeares more : so that between these two Kings , Ieroboam and Hezekiah , there was 70. yeers , in which Hosea prophesied , besides the 41. yeers of Ieroboam , and 29. yeers of Hezekiah , in both whose reigns too you see he lived , and therefore it is probable it was 80. yeares at least that Hosea continued in the work of his prophesie . See what of Gods minde we have that will spring fresh from this . Hosea continued so long , and yet you see there is not much of his prophesie extant , only 14 short Chapters . It pleaseth God sometimes that some mens labours shall abide more full to posterity than others , though the labours of those others more large , and as excellent as theirs : this is according to the diversity of Gods administrations . Let the Ministers of God learn to be faithfull in their worke , and let God alone for to make them eminent by having their labours extant . 2. It appears from hence that Hosea must needs begin to prophesie very young . If hee were a Prophet 80. years , certainly hee was but young when he began first to prophesie , and yet he was set upon as great an employment as any of the Prophets were ( as we shall see hereafter . ) It pleaseth God sometimes to stir up the hearts of young ones to doe him great service , he sends such sometimes about great works and employments , so he did Samuel , and Ieremiah , and Timothy , therefore let no man despise their youth . 3. Hosea prophesying thus long , it appeares hee lived to be old in his work . When God hath any work for men to doe , he doth lengthen out their days . So he did the days of John the Disciple , he lived near upon an hundred years , if not more , for the time of the writing of his Gospel ( as it is noted ) was in the 99. yeare of Christ , 66. after the Ascension . Let not us be too solicitously carefull about our lives , to maintain our healths and strengths , let us be carefull to doe our worke ; for according as the Lord hath work for us to doe , so he will continue to us our health and strength , and life : when you come to dye , you may dye comfortably , having this thought in you ; well , the work that the Lord sent me to doe , is done , and why should I seeke to live longer in the world ? God hath others enough to do his work . It was a sweet expression of Iacob , Gen. 48. 21. Behold I dye ( saith he ) but God shall be with you , and bring you againe unto the land of your fathers . So may the Prophets of God say that have been faithfull in their work : Behold I dye , but the Lord shall be with you , my work is finished , but God hath others that are young , to goe on in his work , that is the third Observation . 4. You may soe by Hoseas continuance in so many Kings reigns , that hee went through variety of conditions ; sometimes he lived under wicked Kings , sometimes under moderate Kings , sometimes hee had encouragement from godly and gracious Kings , although they were of Iudah . Not only the people of God , but specially Gods Ministers must expect variety of conditions in the world , they must not promise to themselves always the same state . Yet further . Hosea prophesied in all these Kings reigns . Here appears the constancy of his spirit , notwithstanding the many difficulties hee met withall in his work : for he prophesying in Jeroboams , Iotham , and Ahaz his time who were wicked Princes , surely he must meet with many discouragements ; And though he continued 80. years , yet he saw but little successe of his labour , for the truth is , the people were never converted to God by his Ministry . Nay it is apparent that they grew worse and worse , for it is said of that Ieroboams time in which Hosea began his Prophesie , only that hee did evill in the sight of the Lord , and continued in the wayes of Ieroboam the son of Nebat , 2 King. 15. 15. But after wee read most horrible things that Israel was guilty of , 2 King. 17. 17. It is said , they caused their sonnes and their daughters to passe through the fire , and used divinations , and inchantments , and sold themselves to doe evill in the sight of the Lord , to provoke him to anger , besides many dreadfull things , you may read in that Chapter , Israel was grown guilty of . This vvas in King Hoshea his time , which was many years after Hosea began to prophesie , towards the end of his Prophesie . God may continue a Prophet a long time amongst a people , and yet they may never bee converted . It is a distemper in Ministers hearts to think to give over their work because they see not desired successe . I remember Latimer in one of his Sermons , speaking of a Minister , who gave this answer , why he left off Preaching , because he saw he did no good , this says Latimer is a naughty , a very naughty answer . That we have here may be a great stay to these who have lived many years in the work of the Ministry , and yet have done little or no good . Hosea was fourscore yeers a Prophet to Israel , and yet did not convert them . Yet notwithstanding all these discouragements , he continued constant , and that with abundance of freshnesse and livelinesse when he comes to the end of his prophecying . It is an honour to the Ministers of God , that meet with many difficulties in their way , and with many discouragements , yet to continue fresh and lively to the very end ; not to be fresh and lively only at first , as many yong Ministers are when they begin first . O how fresh are they , how full of zeal and activity are they then ? but after they have been a while in their work , or when they have gained what they aimed at , then they grow cold , and that former vigour , freshnesse , and zeale , which appeared to be in them , comes to be a great deale flatter . Like souldiers , that at the first were forward , and active in service , but afterward come to live upon their pay , and can doe no service at all ; or rather as vessels of wine , that when they are first tapped are very smart , and quick , and nimble , but at last grow exceeding flat : as we commend that vessel of wine that draws quick to the very last of all : so it is an excellent thing indeed for a Minister of God to continue fresh , and quick , and lively , to the last end . It is true , nature and naturall abilities may decay , but a spirituall freshnesse may appear , when naturall abilities are decayed . To see an old Prophet of God , that hath gone through many difficulties , and sufferings , and yet to continue fresh & lively in the work of the Ministry , and to have spirituall excellencies sparkle in him then , this is a most honourable sight , and calls for abundance of reverence . Lastly , Hosea prophecyed so long that he came to see the fulfilling of his Prophesie , for he continued prophesying till Hezekiahs time , and in the sixth year of Hezekiahs reign came the destruction of Israel . Hosea had threatned an utter taking of them away , but all this while it was not done till then , and then it is most likely he saw the fulfilling of his Prophesie . It pleaseth God many times to let his Prophets see the fulfilling of their threatnings upon the people against whom they have denounced them . Perhaps they goe away , and scorn , and contemn the Prophets , and their words are but winde with them , but God many times lets his Ministers live to see their words fulfilled upon them . For particular persons , when they are cast upon their beds of sicknesse or death , it is then ordinary for them to say , Oh the word of the Lord is true that I heard at such a time , it is now come upon me . So God dealt with the people in Jeremies time , they laughed and contemned him , but Jeremy lives to see the fulfilling of those threatnings at last . And if they live not to see the fulfilling of their words , yet presently after their death they are fulfilled , as it was at Hippo , where Austin threatned judgements against them , they were not executed in his time , but presently after he was taken away , they came . Yea but he did not only prophesie in these Kings dayes , but in the dayes of Jeroboam King of Israel . Here are three Questions : 1. What is the reason that Jeroboam , who in truth was the first of these Kings , that he is named last ? 2. Why only one King of Israel is named , and three Kings of Judah ? for besides him in the time of Hosea's prophesie there were 6. other Kings of Israel , Zechariah , Shallum , Menahem , Pekahiah , Peka , Hoshea . 3. Why Jeroboam is named at all ? One answer will be sufficient for the two first Questions , why Jeroboam is named last , and why there is but one King of Israel named . The answer is this , God took no great delight in the Kings of Israel , for they had forsaken the true worship of God. Though there was much corruption in Judah , yet because they kept to the true worship of God , God took more delight in Judah then in srael . Therefore hee nameth Jeroboam in the last place , though he was first , and only him . But why was Jeroboam named at all ? This is of great use . You shall finde that it was for this end , that you might understand what estate the people of Israel were in at this time of Hosea's Prophesie . Much you shall see is to be learned from hence . The state of the people of Israel in the time of Jeroboams reign was very prosperous , though their wickednesse was very great . For if you look into 2 K. 14. you shall find there , that a little before this they had been in very great distresse , and under sore afflictions : Now in Jeroboams time they were in the greatest prosperity that ever they had been in : for this Jeroboam was not the first Jeroboam the son of Nebat , that caused Israel to sin , and was a means of the rent of these Ten Tribes from the house of David , that was 140. years and more before this ; but this Jeroboam , in whose time God sent Hosea to prophesie this greatwrath against the house of Israel , was the sonne of Joash . Now in all this time this Kingdome was never in a more prosperous condition then in the dayes of this Jeroboam . Two things are to be observed concerning the condition of this people at this time . First , That they were a little before this in great adversity , and then after they grew upto great prosperity . For if you read that 14. Chap. of 2 Kings , you shall find that they were under sore affliction , for the Text saith , vers . 26. There was not any shut up , nor any left , nor any helper for Israel . It is a comparison taken from Shepheards , that use to shut up their flocks when they would keep them safe from danger ; but now here was such a generall desolation and wofull affliction upon Israel , that there was none shut up , nor no helper left . But then comes this Jeroboam , and it is said , ver . 25. That he restored the coast of Israel from the entring of Hamath unto the Sea of the plain . And ver . 28. He recovered Damascus and Hamath , which belonged to Judah , for Israel . This Hamath that he speaks of was of great use , it was the in-let of the Assyrians , and for Jeroboam to conquer that place , land to recover Damascus , and to add that to the Crown of Israel , which belonged to Judah , it shews that after their bitter affliction , God granted a great mercy by Jeroboams means , and that now Israel flourished greatly , and grew exceeding prosperous . There is much of Gods mind held out to us in this : As , in that the people of Israel had been under sore affliction , and delivered , yet God sent Hosea to them , to shew them their horrible wickednesse , and to threaten destruction . Hence see the perversenesse of the children of men , that after great deliverances granted them from bitter and sore afflictions , yet they will continue still in their wickednesse and rebellion . The Lord grant this may not be true concerning us . God hath delivered us in great measure from those sore and bitter afflictions , and heavy oppressions , under which wee lately vvere , and many gracious liberties are restored to us ; Now have we not need of an Hosea to be sent unto us to rebuke us , and to threaten judgment for the evill of our wayes ? This is a sad thing . Further , God may let a sinner continue a long time in the way of his sin , and when he hath flourished many years , and thinks surely the bitternesse of death is past , then God may come and threaten judgment . Jeroboam reigned 4● . years , and it cannot be but that Hosea prophesying so long after Jeroboams death , came in the latter end of Jeroboams time . Jeroboam might think , what doth he come to contest with me , and to tell me of my sin and wickednesse , and to threaten judgment ? have not I continued these 40 , years King , and have prospered ? and surely God hath been with me . Well , a sinner may hold out long , and yet afterward judgment may come . Thirdly , A people in a flourishing condition , when they prosper most , and overcome their Enemies , and have all according to their hearts desire , even that may be the time for God to come out in his wrath against them . So it was here , therefore we must not judg our Enemies to be happy , nor feare them because of their flourishing estate for the present , neither let us be secure our selves because of the mercies wee enjoy . God doth not alwayes so , but sometimes he is pleased thus to deale with sinners , to stay till they be at the height of their prosperity , and then to come upon them , as here he did . Sometimes God is more sudden , it is like Zechariah the son of this Jeroboam thought he might venture as well as his Father , his Father prospered in such wayes 41 years , and why may not I ? No , God came upon him in six moneths , 2 King. 15. 8. Fifthly , Hosea when he came to prophesie against Israel , he saw them in their prosperity , and yet continueth to threaten judgment against them . It was a further argument of the Spirit of God that taught him , and of a speciall insight he had into the mind of God , that he should thus prophesie destruction to them when they were in the height of their prosperity . It is true , if Hosea had come afterward in Zachariah his dayes , when the Kingdome was declining ; or if Hosea had pophesied in Shallums time , and others after him , then he might have seene by the working of second causes , that the kingdome was going downe indeed . No , but he comes in Jeroboams time , when there was no appearance of second causes at all of their destruction , and then prophesieth destruction unto them . It is a sign of speciall insight the soule hath in the wayes of God , that can see misery under the greatest prosperity . The Prophet did not think Israel in a better condition , because of their outward prosperity . A signe his prophesie was from God. Yet further , this being in the reign of Jeroboam , when they were in great prosperity , surely their hearts were exceedingly hardned against the Prophet ; and it cannot be imagined , but that they entertayned his prophesie with scorn and contempt : for it is an usuall thing , when men are in the height of their pride , and in their ruffe , then like the wild asses colt , to scorn and contemn all that comes against them . It is nothing for a Minister of God to deale plainly with people in the time of adversity , when they are down the wind , but when men are in the ruffe of their pride , and in all their jollity , to deale faithfully with them then , this is something , and thus the Prophet Hosea did . That their great prosperity did raise up & harden their hearts with pride against the Prophet , it appears plainly , if you will but read Amos 7. 10. ( for we must finde Gods minde by comparing one place with another ) there you shall find what the fruit of Jeroboams prosperity was , for Amos and Hosea were contemporary . When Amos was prophesying , Amaziah the Priest of Bethel sent to Jeroboam King of Israel , saying , Amos hath conspired against thee , the land is not able to beare his words . This was said of Amos , it is like that Hosea did not meet with better measure then this . Amaziah the Priest of Bethel did this . If there be any enemies against the faithfull Ministers in a place , they are the Priests of Bethel , idolatrous and superstitious Ministers . And what course doe they take ? They send to the King , to the Governours , O they have conspired against the King , they are seditious persons , factious men , that keep a stirre in the kingdome , and break the peace of the Church , the Land cannot bear their words . Such a message as this you see did Amaziah send concerning Amos ; he turns off all from himself to the King , and all the punishment that must be inflicted upon Amos , must be in the name of the King. And mark the 12. ver . of that Chap. Also Amaziah said unto Amos , O thou seer , goe , flee away into the land of Judea , and prophesie there . We are not holy enough for you forsooth , we are Idolaters , we doe not worship God aright , we are no true Church , get you to Judah among your brethren , and prophesie not any more here at Bethel , why ? Because it is the Kings Chappell , & it is the Kings Court. It seems then in those times , that the Kings Chappell , the Kings Court could not beare with a faithfull Prophet . And what was the ground of it , but because at this time Jeroboam prospered in his way , and the kingdome was in such a flourishing condition as it never was before ? Here then was the tryall of the faithfulnesse of Hosea's spirit , yet to goe on in the work of his Prophesie . Yet further . In that Hosea did prophesie in the time of Jeroboam , by that it will apppear that he was the first Prophet that ever brought these hard tidings to them , of the utter destruction of Israel , It will appeare by that which is said , 2 King. 14. 27. that before this time God had not so threatned Israel ; for the Text saith : The Lord said not before this time that he would blot out the name of Israel from under heaven , but hee saved them by the hand of Jeroboam the sonne of Joash . Mark , there is given the reason why the Lord saved them by the hand of Jeroboam , because he had not yet said he would blot out the name of Israel from under heaven , that is , the Lord never before sent any of his Prophets thus plainly and fully to declare his intention to them for the utter blotting out th name of Israel , upon their going on in their sins . So that it is clear , that Hosea was the first that was sent about this message . And certainly it was so much the harder , he being the first of all . For they might have said , why do you come with these new things , and in so great severity , who did ever so before you ? It was a hard task : For we know if a Minister come with any thing that seems to be new , if he presents any truth to you that hath but a shew of Novelty , that you heard not before , though it be never so good aud comfortable , he shall find little encouragement . Nay if hee doe but come in a new way , as this very exercise , because it is like to goe on in a way that yet hath been disused , it will meet with many discouragements . What then will the threatnings of hard things , of judgments , and destruction do when they come with novelty ? Surely Hosea had a hard taske of this , and yet he went on faithfully with it . Thus much for the time wherein Hosea prophesied . Now to make a little entrance into the prophesie . The beginning of the word of the Lord by Hosea . Some from these words doe gather that Hosea was the first Prophet that ever was , Though it is true , we cannot gather it directly from hence , yet it is apparent , that notwithstanding Isaiah be set first , yet Hosea was before him ; for if you look into the 1 Isa . you shall find that his beginning was in the dayes of Vzziah . Now Hosea was in the dayes of Jeroboam , and Jeroboam was before Vzziah . And this may be one reason why though I intend the whole propheticall books , yet I rather pitch upon Hosea first , because indeed he was the first Prophet : it is cleare you see from the Scripture , though we cannot gather it from these words in this second verse . But yet thus much we may gather from these words , The beginning of the word of the Lord by Hosea , that this was the beginning of his prophesie . And what was this beginning ? what did God set him about first ? Mark presently the next words , he must take him a wife of whoredomes , and children of whoredomos , and so declare to the people of Israel that they had committed great whoredome departing from the Lord. The most grievous charge , and most severe and terrible expression of Gods wrath against that people that you meet with in all the book of God. This is the work Hosea must doe , and Hosea was very young when first he went about it . Now as I told you before , God sometimes calls young ones to great services ; but to call a young man to this service , to goe to this people with such a message , now in the midst of all their pride and flourish to contest with them thus , & to tel them that they are children of whoredomes , and no longer the people of God , for what ? for a young man to do this ? Why , they might have said , if this came from the mouth of some old ancient Prophet , reverent for his years , and experience , it had been somewhat ; but to come from a green head , for an upstart to upb●aid us with such vile things . Thus men grown old , and sodden in their sins , are ready to reason . But let us know ( my brethren ) if God send any message unto us , though by young ones , he expects your entertainment of it . When God would destroy Elies house , he sends the message by young Samuel ; but Eli did not reason thus , what this young boy come to speak thus malapartly to me ! No , he stoops to it , Good is the word of the Lord , saith he . Againe , Hosea must tell them that they are children of whoredomes , and not the people of God. What for a Minister when he comes first among a people , to begin so harshly , and severely , and ruggedly , is it not better to comply with the people , to come with gentle and ●aire means , to seek to win them with love ? if you begin with harsh truths , surely you will make them fly off presently . Thus many do reason . Now I beseech you take heed to your own hearts in reasoning thus , Many have done so , and have sought to comply with people so long till they have complyed away all their faithfulnesse , and conscience , and vigour that before they had : When they come to great men , rich men , men in place and emmency , they will comply with such ; but let them have any of Gods people in their Parish that are of a mean rank , and poor , they comply little enough with them , but are harsh and bitter to them , and regard not the tendernesse of their consciences at all . It is true . If Ministers have the testimony of their own consciences that they would take no other way but what shall be for the greatest profit of their people , maintaining such a disposition as to be willing to undergoe any sufferings that God shall call them unto : they may say first when they come to a house , Peace be to this house , especially when they come to a place that hath not had the means before . But if it be to a people that goe directly against the light of their consciences , a superstitious people that cannot but be convinced , and have had many evidences that it is against the mind of God , and yet only for their owne base ends will goe on and not amend ; in such a case as this wee may come with harshnesse at the very first . So Paul gives a charge to Titus in dealing with the Cretians who were evill beasts and slow bellies , that he should rebuke them sharpely , ( so wee translate it ) the word in the Originall is , cuttingly . The beginning of the word of the Lord by Hosea . The particle which is translated [ by ] signifyeth [ in ] as well as by , it is not El , but Beth , and so it is read by some , The word of the Lord came in Hosea . This expression notes the inward and intimate converse that the Lord had with the spirit of Hosea in the work of the Ministry . The Lord spake first in Hosea , and then he speaks out unto the people . Some such expression we have concerning Paul , Gal. 1. 16. That Christ may be revealed in me , not onely to me , but in me . The more inwardly God speaks , and converseth with the hearts of his Ministers , the more inwardly and efficaciously they are able to speak to the people . This is the deep preaching , when it is from the heart . And so Augustine sayes of Hosea , because that which he spake was so deep it wrought more strongly . Hoseas Prophesie must needs be deep , for God spake in him before he spake out to the people . We say , that which commeth from the heart will go to the heart : Surely that which commeth from the voyce of God in the heart , will goe beyond the ears to the hearts of people . And blessed are the people that have such Ministers that shal speak nothing to them , but what hath first been spoken by God in them . Againe in this second verse he comes twice with the same expression , The beginning of the word of the Lord by Hosea , and againe , The Lord said to Hosea ; and yet in the beginning of the first verse , The word of the Lord came to Hosea . Why all this , three times ? All this upon good reason ; for Hosea was to come with a terrible message to the people , and to reprehend them with much sharpnesse , to tell them that they were the children of whoredomes , and that they had departed from the Lord , and he would have no more mercy upon them , but would utterly take them away . He had need therefore have an expresse command for what he did , and to have much evidence of the Spirit , that what he said was from God , and not any thing of his owne spirit . When a Minister of God shall come and reprehend a people severely for their sins , and threaten Gods judgement , let him then if ever look to it , that he hath a good ground for what he saith , that what he shall deliver may be nothing but the word of God in him , the sheer word of God , without any mixture of his owne . It is an ordinary thing in Ministers in reprehending of sinne , and denouncing of threatnings , to mingle much of their own spirit and wrath : But if at any time Ministers should take heed of mixing their own wrath , then especially when they are to denounce Gods wrath , then they should bring nothing but the word of the Lord ; for it being a hard message , the spirits of men will rise up against it , if they once see the spirit of the Minister in it , they will be ready to say as the devill in the possessed man , Iesus I know , & Paul I know , but who are you ? So they , the word of the Lord I know , but what are you ? here is your own passion , your own humour , &c. O let not any think to oppose sin with sin , the wrath of man doth not accomplish the righteousnesse of God. You that are Ministers , would you have a sentence ? I wil give you one ; and I have done : When you are called to reveale Gods wrath , conceals your owne . The Second Lecture . Hosea 1. the middle of the second verse , and so on . Go , take unto thee a wife of whoredomes and children of whoredomes : for the land hath committed great whoredome , departing from the Lord. 3. So he went and tooke Gomer the daughter of Diblaim , which conceived and bare him a son . 4. And the Lord said unto him , Call his name Iezreel ; for yet a little while , and I will avenge the blood of Iezreel upon the house of Iehu , & will cease the Kingdome of the house of Israel . 5. And it shall come to passe in that day that I will break the bow of Israel in the valley of Iesreel . THE Preface to the work , and to the whole prophesie you heard the last time . The scope of the prophesie is the very same that the scope of this Chapter is , to declare , first , The evill condition that Israel , the ten Tribes were in , in regard of their sins , and punishment that was to be executed for their sins . Secondly , Gracious promises of mercy , to a remnant , to Iudah in the 7. ver . and to Judah & Israel both , from the 10. ver . to the end of the Chapter . First , God beginneth with conviction , to shew them their sin , and the dreadfulnesse of it . Conviction should goe before correction . You must not presently fly in the faces of those that are under you when they crosse you : first instruct them , and then correct them , do as God did here , God would first convince them of the greatnesse of their sinnes , not by verball , but by reall expressions . Those things that come but to the eare , they doe more slowly stirre and work upon the heart , but things that are presented before the eye are more operative ; and therefore Hosea must not tell them onely that they had committed whoredome , but must tell them in this way , he must goe and take a wife of whoredomes , and beget children of whoredomes . In the very threshold , in the entrance of the prophesie you see we meete with a difficulty , a great difficulty . First , a command from God , from the holy God , unto a Prophet , a holy Prophet , to goe and take a wife of whoredomes ; not an ordinary whore , but a most prostitute whore , for so the word signifieth , * of whoredomes , as in the Scripture phrase , a man of bloods , is a man that hath shed much blood ; and a man of sorrowes , is a man that hath been exercised with many sorrows ; and so a wife of whoredomes is one that hath committed notorious whoredomes , vile whoredomes . Yet such a wife must the Prophet take to himselfe , and his children must be children of whoredomes too . How can this be ? S. Austin , who had been a Manichee , having to deale much with Macichees , met with this object on , from one Faustas a Manichee , against the Old Testament , for they denyed it : saith Faustas , that Old Testament of yours , Moses and the Prophets , is that of God ? doe you not finde there a command to take a wife of whoredomes , and can this be from God ? Austin answereth it thus . Though shee had been a prostitute whore before , yet she might be reclaymed , and so shee might be called a wife of whoredomes , from that whoredome that heretofore she was guilty of , and now reclaymed . And so he thinketh that it was a reality indeed , that Hosea did take to himselfe a wife of whoredomes , and think to salve it up thus . Theodoret is somewhat angry with those that thinke it was not really done , but done only in away of vision . I find many of our later men that are of the same minde , that thinke there was a reality in it , that God did command Hosea to take to himselfe a wife of whoredoms , and that he did take such a wise , one that was a notorious harlot , so Arius Montanus , Piscator , Pareus , Tarnovius , and others , they go that way , and they thinke to salve it only thus , that it is a command of God , and therefore though it had not been lawfull for Hosea to have done it , yet God commanding it , he might do it : As they instance in other cases that seeme to be somewhat of the like nature , as the children of Israels robbing the Egyptians , Abrahams killing his sonne , and the like . If this should be so , ( as many Interpreters going that way might make one to thinke it not a thing impossible ) wee might learne thus much from it . First , that Gods command takes away all matter of offence . It would be a notorious offensive thing for a Prophet , a Minister of God to marry one that is wicked , a wicked whore ; yet so farre as the offence is , Gods command is enough to take it away . For the subject of offence is not duty , but indifferency : any thing that is a duty to be done , we must goe on in it , though it be never so offensive to others , that is no rule at all to hinder us if it be a duty : but if it be a thing of indifferency , then wee must stop . Gods command takes away all plea of offence ; I say not that mans command doth so , for men , even Magistrates themselves are bound not to offend their brethren , as well as others . But then it may be said they should command nothing at all , for some or other would be offended , and shall not they command , because some weak ones may be offended ? It is true , that which they may take upon their consciences to be their duty , that they are bound to command , and they should sin against God if they did not command it , and require obedience to it ; they must doe it though never so many be offended . But in matters that they themselves acknowledge to be neither here nor there , either for Gods service or for the good of a Common-wealth , herein the rule bindeth them as well as others in regard of offences , to forbear . 2. Supposing this to be a reall thing , we see that the Prophet must suffer much in his credit before men , only to be serviceable to God for a further expression of his mind . All our credits , all our names , and all we are , or have , must lie down at Gods feet to be serviceable to him in the least thing ; if but in a way of expression of his mind , much more then in bearing witness to his truth . 3. This being so , wee see the way of God in putting the Prophet in the very first service upon a very difficult work : It could not but be a thing exceeding tedious and irksome to his spirit to marry such a one , yet God put him upon it . It is the usuall way of God , when he calleth any to great services , at the beginning , to put them to such difficult works , to try them thereby , that if they goe through them , then they may be confided in , that they will goe through more afterward . But we shall rather take this in a way of vision , as others do ; not that indeed Hosea did really marry such a wife , but this did appeare to him in a vision , as if such a thing were really done , onely to declare what the condition of the people of Israel was at this time in respect of God : As if God should say , Hosea , this people of Israel is to mee no other then as if thou shouldest have a wife that were the most notorious whore in the world , and all their children are to me as if thy children were the children of whoredome and fornication . And this I conceive to be more directly the minde of God , and I will not give you my meere conception of it neither , but reasons for it why it must be so . First , because we find in Scripture that which is historically related , yet was done by way of vision . And it is an usuall way of Scripture to express that which is done in a way of vision , as if it were a history , as if it were really done . I will shew you two examples for this , one of Ieremy when he was at Jerusalem , yet the Scripture speaks as if he had been at Babylon : and the other of Ezekiel , when he was at Babylon , it speakes as if hee had been at Jerusalem . It is as fully related as this is here , and both must therefore needs be understood as in a way of vision . First for Ieremy , you have it Chap. 30. ver . 4. God requireth there that he should goe to Euphrates and hide his girdle there in the hole of a rocke . But this river was a river in Babylon , and Ieremy was not in Babylon at this time , nor in all the time of the siege , nor in the time of the captivity , neither could he goe to Babylon , for the City was now besieged , and when he did but assay but to go a little way to Anathoth his own Towne , he was presently taken hold upon as if he had been a Traytor to his Country . Therefore this which is here declared as a history , as if he had really done it , was but only done in a vision . And so Ezekiel the other way , hee was at Babylon ( for he was that Prophet that prophesied to the people that were carryed captive to Babylon , God sent a Prophet to them to help them there in their captivity ) yet in the 8. Chapter of his Prophecie , Ezekiel seemeth to be brought to Ieremiah , and he is bidden there to dig a hole in the wall to see the wicked abominations that the ancients of Israel did there . Now Ezekiel was not there , he was at Babylon all this while , but it is declared as if the thing had beene done really . So we are to understand Isaiah his going naked 20. dayes , and Ezekiels lying three hundred and ninety dayes on the one side , and 43. on the other , Ezek. 4. 2. That it was a vision and not really done , the reason is , it was Gods command , Lev. 21. 7. That the Priest must not marry with a whore ; & of all mens wives God is most careful of the wives of those that are in the work of the Ministry , that are Church Officers , therefore 1 Tim. 3. 11. when but a Deacon is described what he should be , there is his wife described too , that she should be grave , no slanderer , sober and faithful in all things . You never read that when God appointed what a Magistrate should be , what his office should be in a Common-wealth , that hee takes such care to set downe what his wife should be : But when he appointeth the lowest officer in a Church , a Deacon , he appointeth what his wife should be too . Therefore the wives of Ministers should goe away with a lesson from hence , and know that God hath a more speciall eye to them , then to the wives of all the men in the world besides . God is tender of the credite of the officers of his Church , and so should man be ; for their discredit is a hinderance to their work . Yea further , we read Amos 7. 16. that it was threatned as a curse to Amaziah the Priest of Bethel , that his wife should be a harlot , for resisting the Prophet : shall then the wife of Hosea be a whore ? For Amos & Hosea prophesied both at the same time . And the Scripture saith ( you know the place , 1 Cor. 11. ) that the woman is to be the glory of the man. What a glory should Hosea have had in such a match as this ? The woman is the glory of the man , How ? ( for so I desire not only to open the Scripture that I read here , but as I go along and quote Scripture , so far as may be for your edification , and suteable to our argument to open there too . ) In two respects she is so . 1. because it is a glory to a man that he hath such an image , for shee is from the man , and as the man being the image of God , sheweth the glory of God , because he is the image of God , and from him ; so the woman being from the man , and as it were his image , shee is the glory of the man. 2. Because man hath such an excellent creature brought under subjection to him : so the woman is the glory of the man. Man is not only made glorious by God , in that God hath put all other creatures under him , but especially in this , that God hath put such an excellent creature under him as the woman is , so the woman is the glory of the man. This could not be here in such a match as this . 3. It could not be that it was a reall thing , but a vision from the prophesie it selfe , for then Hosea must have stayed almost a whole yeare before hee could have gone on in his prophesie : For first he must take to him a wife of whoredomes , and beget a child of whoredomes , then he must have stayed till the child had been born , before he could have come to the people and say , My child is borne , and his name is Iezreel , and it is upon this ground that I have named him thus , and then hee must have stayed almost a yeare more before he could have Locuhamah , and then after that he must stay almost another yeare longer before Loammi could be born . And lastly , that which is noted by Polanus , the expression that wee have here is , that God spake in Hosea , speaking and appearing to him by an inward vision as it were in an extasie , saith Polanus ; therefore we must take it so that this wife of whoredomes that Hosea was to marry , was in a way of vision , it was to signifie that Israel was to God as a wife of whoredoms , and as children of whoredomes should have been to the Prophet if he had been marryed to her . From all these there is this result , that the people of Israel were gone a whoring from God. Idolatry it is as the sin of whoredome , and I cannot open this Scripture except I shew you wherein idolatry is like the sin of whoredome : The idolatry of the Church , not the idolatry of Heathens is whoredome . One that committeth adultery doth give her selfe to another : The Heathens because they were never marryed to God , their idolatry is not adultery ; but the people of GDO being marryed to the Lord , their idolatry is adultery . Adultery first , because it breaks the marriage bond , there is nothing breaks the marriage bond between God and his people but the sin of idolatry , as not between man and wife . Though a wife may be guilty of many faylings , and be a grievous trouble and burthen to her Husband , yet these doe not breake the marriage knot except she defile the marriage bed : So though a people may be guilty of notorious and vile sins , yet if they keep the worshp of God pure , they are not guilty of whoredome , but still God is marryed to them . 2. Whoredome is a loath some thing , though delightsome to men , yet loathsome to God : Idolatry is so , therefore the Scripture calleth the Idols that men set up by a name that signifieth the very excrement that comes from creatures , Ezek. 22. 3. Idolaters think their way of idol-worship to be very delightsome . but that which they call delectable , God calleth detestable , so you shall find it if you compare these two Scriptures , Isa . 44. 9. they call their Idols delectable things ; but in Ezek. 5. 11. God calleth them detestable things . Idolatry is a detestable loathsome thing . 3. There is nothing wherein a man is so irreconcileable as in the point of the marriage bed , the defiling of that by adultery causes an irreconcileable breach . Jealousie is the rage of a man , and he will take no ransome . There is nothing wherein God is so reconcileable to a people , as in the point of false worship . 4. Adultery is a besotting sinne . Whoredome and new wine take away the heart , saith the Prophet : and in that 44. Isa . 19. there , saith God , he hath no understanding to consider and say , What , have I not taken one part and roasted flesh with it , and with another part have baked bread upon the coales , and warmed my selfe with another part , and shall I make the residue thereof an abomination , and fall downe to the stock of a tree ? Hee hath no understanding to consider this . Idolatry is a besotting sin as well as adultery . And therefore we need not marvail though-men of great parts and abilities continue in their superstitious way of worship , for nothing besotteth mens hearts so much as that doth . Againe 5. Whoredome is a most dangerous sinne . Wee have a most dreadfull place for that , Prov. 22. 14. The mouth of a strange woman is as a deep pit ; heth at is abhorred of the Lord shall fall therein . Oh most dreadfull place to an Adulterer ! if there be any Adulterer in this place this day , when thou goest home turn to that Scripture , and let it be as a dart to to thy heart , the mouth of a strange woman is as a deep pit ; he that is abhorred of the Lord shall fall therein ; A signe of a man abhorred of God , and so is Idolatry , for in 2 Thes . 2. 11 , 12. God gave them over to believe a lye that they might be damned . Those that follow the Idolatries of Antichrist are given over by God to beleive a lye , That lye of Popery is altogether one lye . Hence it is that the Popish party invent so many such strange lyes , all to uphold that great lye . What is this ? that they might be damned . It is a dreadfull dangerous sin the sinne of Idolatry , though they think they please God in and by such wayes of worship , yet they are given over by God that they may be damned . If this prove to be a place that concerns those that follow Antichrist , & if Rome proves to be so as by that place is described , it is a dreadfull place to all Papists . Again , Whores use to deck themselves up in pompous attyre , in dainty , glorious rayment . So idolaters use to deck up their Idols in bravery , and lavish gold ( as the Scripture speaks ) upon their Idols ; whereas the Kings daughter is all glorious within , and the simplicity of the Gospel will not permit such things . And lastly , as whores , though they goe a whoring from their Husbands , yet still they retain ( before the divorce ) the name of wives , and their children ( though bastards ) retaine the name of children , and beare the fathers name : So Idolaters , they will retain the name of the Church , the Church , and those that they beget , must still be called the only sons of the Church . But how are his children said to be children of whoredomes ? for suppose his wife were a wife of whoredomes , yet being marryed to her , wherefore should the children be called children of whoredomes ? To that is answered first , some think upon this ground , because the children when they are grown up would ●ollow the way of the Mother , as it is an usuall thing for children to doe . Therefore you need to take heed how you enter into the state of marriage for your childrens sake , for they will follow the way of the Mother . Or rather this , because though they were begotten after marriage , yet they will ye under suspition as those that are illegitimate ; the children of one that hath been a whore are always suspected , and so in repute they are the children of whoredome and fornication : so saith God , these people are to me as if their children were accounted the children of fornication . For the whole land hath gone a whoring from the Lord. In going a whoring they goe a whoring : Or as Arius Montanus reads it , In going a whoring they will goe a whoring . They not only Have , but Will , they are set upon it , they are stout-hearted in the way of Idolatry , and it is the land that hath done it , the people of the land . But why the land ? It is a secret check to them , and upbraiding them for their unthankfulnesse , that when God gave them so good a land , the land of Canaan , that flowed with milk and honey , the land of promise , that was given to them for that end to nourish up the true worship of God , yet they made this land of God , this land of promise to be a land to nourish up most vile Idolaters . Gone a whoring from the Lord. From Jehovah . The more worthy the Husband is , the more vile and odious the adultery of the Wife . What , to goe a whoring from God , the blessed God , in whom is all beauty and excellency , and turn to blind Idols ? What , change the glory of the invisible God , into the similitude of an Oxe that eateth grasse ? with what indignation doth God speak it ? Oh you that go a whoring after your sinfull lusts , this one day will lye most dreadfully upon your consciences , that it was from the Lord that you departed , from that infinite glorious eternall Deity , the fountain of all good , to cleaye to whoring after base , sinfull , and unclean lusts . Who is this whore ? and what are the children that are begotten to Hosea by her ? So he went , saith the Text , He obeyeth , We must obey God in things that seem to be never so much against our reason and sense . He tooke Gomer the daughter of Diblaim . The word Gomer , here , commeth from a word that signifieth perficere , and defi●ere , perfection & defection : and so it may be applyed both ways . Some apply it to perfection , that is , a harlot that was perfect and compleat both in her beauty , and in her fornication and wickednesse . The word likewise signifieth rottennesse , corruption , and consumption : so indeed are all things in the world ; as soon as they grow to any perfection , they begin to decline quickly to corruption . All things but spirituall do so , they indeed grow still higher and higher . This Gomer we will take rather in the second acceptation of it , as it signifieth rottennesse and consumption . Who was this Gomer ? She was the daughter of Diblaim . The signification of that is ( according to so me ) one that dwelleth in the desart , in reference to that famous desart Diblath , of which we read Ezek. 6. 14. noting the way of Idolaters , that they were wont to goe into woods and desarts , and there to sacrifice to their Idols . But rather , according to most , Diblaim signifieth bunches of dryed figs that were the delicacies of those times , so Oecolampadius , from which hee hath this note , That rottennesse and corruption proceedeth from voluptuous pleasures , from delicacies , and the like . Though the pleasures of the flesh be very contentfull to you , yet destruction is the fruit of them ; destruction is the daughter of sensuall pleasures and delights , of all your delicacies , so saith the Scripture , Rom. 8. 13. If you live after the flesh you shall dye . Phil. 3. ult . whose God is their belly , whose end is destruction . But to apply it to Israel . Israel was as Gomer the daughter of Diblaim , that is , the people of Israel were now neare to destruction , and were the daughters of sensuall delights , they gave over themselves to sensuall delights and pleasures . It is the usuall way of Idolaters , those that forsake the true worship of God to give up themselves to the pleasures of the flesh . Sensuality and Idolatry doe usually goe together . When the people of Israel sacrificed to the calves , what did they ? They eate and dranke , and rose up to play , that was all their worke , and good enough for the worshipping of such a god , a calfe . You know the more we began to decline in the worship of God , we began to be so much the more sensuall , there must be Proclamation to people to take their sports and delights upon the Lords day ; And indeed it is that which doth usually accompany defection in the way of Gods worship . False worship doth not lay such bonds upon mens consciences for the mortifying the lusts of the flesh , as the worship of God doth . Therefore those men that love most to take liberty to the flesh , they are those that are soonest enticed to ways of superstitious worship . Jerem. 24. 9. there Jeremy setteth out the state of those naughty Jewes that were in Captivity by that similitude of a basket of rotten figs , sutable to this , and the more confirming this interpretation , that Israel was as Gomer the daughter of Diblaim , that is , rottennesse , the daughter of sensuality . Thus for the Mother . But now the son that is begotten of this mother , it is Iezreel . Call his name Iezreel . The Prophet must give a name to his son . It is that which belongeth to Parents to give names to their children . Godfathers and Godmothers ( as they call them ) are of no use for this , or for any thing else that I know ; and in such holy things as Sacraments are , we must take heed of bringing in any unusefull , any idle things . But here we are to enquire , First , the signification of this name , Secondly , the reason why the son of Hosea must be callied by this name , Iezreel . You shall find a great deale in this before we have done with it . For the first , Iezreel signifies the scattered of the Lord. For the second , there are five reasons may be given why the sonne of this Prophet must have this name put upon him , Iezreel . First , that hereby God might shew that he did intend to avenge that blood that was shed in Iezreel . Secondly , to shew that Israel had lost the honour of his name , and was no more Israel , but Jezreel . There seemeth to be much neernesse between the name Israel , and Jezreel , but there is a great deale of difference in the signification , for Israel is one that prevaileth with God , the strength of the Lord , Jezreel is one that is scattered by the Lord. Israel hath lost the honour of his name . Many out-live the honour of their names and reputations . These tenne Tribes are no more worthy to be called by the name of Israel , their famous Progenitor , but now Jezreel , the scattered of the Lord. Thirdly , Jezreel , to shew the way that God intended to bring judgement upon these ten Tribes . And what was it ? The way should be by scattering , God would scatter them . It is a speciall way of Gods bringing judgement upon a Kingdome , by scattering of them . We read , that when Micaiah saw the destruction of Ahab and his people , he had this vision , I saw ( saith he , 1 King. 22. 17. ) all Israel scattered one from another as sheep that have no shepheard . There is a two-fold scattering ; A scattering among our selves in wayes of division , and a scattering by the Enemy one from another to flie for our lives . The one part of this judgement ( the Lord be mercifull to us ) is upon us already , and in this sense we may be called Jezreel . Oh how is our Kingdome divided ! how is it scatted ? The Lord keepe us from the other scattering , that wee be not scattered one from another , by being forced to flye for our lives before the Enemy . It is just with God that if wee scatter our felves sinfully by way of division , that God should scatter us in his wrath to our destruction , by giving us up to our Enemies . If we love scattering , if we delight in division , we may soon have scattering enough , there may soon be divisions far enough one from another . 4. Call his name Jezreel , to note that the Lord would scatter them even in that very place where they did most glory , as they did in the valley and city of Jezreel , they did much glory in that place ( as you shall hear afterward ) But God would scatter them even in that place in which they did so much boast . And lastly , Jezreel , because the Lord would hereby shew that he would turne these conceits and apprehensions that they might have of themselves , quite the contrary way . As thus , Jezreel , it signifieth indeed scattered of the Lord , but it signifieth also the seed of the Lord , or sowen of the Lord : and so the Jewes were ready to take the name Jezreel , and would be content to own it , because it signified the seed of God ; And hence it commeth to signifie scattered too , because that seed is to be scattered when it is sown : And hence it was that they might glory so much in that name . Oh! they were the seed of the Lord , in an abiding condition , as being sowen by the hand of God himselfe : No , saith God , you are mistaken , I doe not call you Jezreel upon any such tearms , because you are sowen of mee , but quite the other way , because you shall be scattered , and come to be destroyed by me . It is the usuall way of God to turne those things which men take as arguments for their comfort to their confusion . Haman who made such an interpretation of the action of Esters inviting him to the banquet alone with the King , the truth is the right interpretation of it had been that it was to his destruction : and so here , whereas they might make such an interpretation of Iezreel , as that they were the seed , the sowen of the Lord , the true interpretation is , that they are the scattered of the Lord. All these five reasons you have either in the nearenesse of the name Israel with Iezreel , or otherwise in the words that follow after . For yet a little while I will avenge the blood of Iezreel upon the house of Iehu , and cause to cease the Kingdome of the house of Israel . Here now wee come to that which is the maine in this Scripture ; And these foure questions are of great use , and will tend much to edification . 1. What is this blood of Iezreel that God will avenge ? 2. Why God will avenge the blood of Iezreel upon the house of Iehu ? 3. Why is it called the house of Iehu , and Iehu alone without the addition of the name King , as it is usuall in others , as Hezekiah King of Iudah , and such a one King of Israel , but here only the house of Iehu . 4. What is this little while God speaks of ? yet a little while . The words are read I suppose ordinarily , and past over as if there were little in them , but you shall finde that there is much of the minde of God held out to us in them . For the first then , What was the blood of Jezreel that here God threatneth 〈◊〉 ? You may read the History of it in 2 King. Chap. 9 , 10 , 11. ( for the way of opening the Prophets is to compare them with the Scriptures that went before ) read those Chapters and you shall find what this blood was . It was the bloud of the house of Ahab , the bloud of Iezabel , the bloud of the 70. sons of Ahab , whose heads the Elders of Iesreel sent to Iehu in baskets . This was the bloud that was shed here in this place , which God saith he will aveuge . God will certainly avenge bloud , and if God will avenge the bloud of Ahab , he will surely avenge the bloud of Abel ; if the bloud of Iesabel then surely the bloud of Sarah ; if the bloud of Idolaters , then the bloud of his Saints . Oh what vengeance then doth hang over that Antichrist , for all the bloud of the Saints that hath been spilt by him ! the scarlet whore hath dyed her selfe with this bloud , yea and vengeance will come for that bloud that hath been shed of our brethrens in Ireland upon any whosoever have been instrumentals in it great or small : Certainely the righteous God will not suffer that wicked and horrid work to goe unavenged , even here upon the earth . Let us wait a while , and we may live to see that time wh●rein 〈◊〉 shall not only be said by the voice of faith , but by the voyce of sense itselfe , Verily there is a God that judgeth the earth . But why will God avenge the blood of Iesreel upon the house of Iehu ? Indeed this to an outward view at first is one of the strangest things wee have in all the book of God. If you compare this place here in Hosea with other Scriptures , you shall find that it is a strange thing that ever it should be said that the Lord would avenge the blood of Iesreel upon the house of Iehu . For in 2 King. 9. 7. you shall finde that Iehu was anointed by the Lord on purpose for that action , to shedd that bloud , and he had a command from God , he was bidden to goe and shed it , and the holy oyle was poured upon him , for that end that he might shed that bloud ; yet now this bloud must be avenged , and avenged upon the house of Iehu . Yea Chap. 10. v. 30. you shall find that God saith , because he had done such a thing , & shed the bloud of the house of Ahab in Jesreel , that he would reward him for it , and that his children to the fourth generation should sit upon the throne of Israel , and governe that Kingdome . Now that which Jehu was anointed to doe , that which he was commanded to doe , that for which God afterward rewarded him for doing ; now God saith he will avenge it , and avenge it upon his house . What should be the reason of this ? There are three reasons why God would avenge this bloud upon the house of Jehu . First , Because though Jehu did it , yet he rather looked at himselfe and his owne ends than at God in it , his ayme was to get the Kingdome to himselfe , but he never aymed at God in the work , therefore God saith hee will avenge it upon his house . 2. Because though he did that which God set him about ; yet he did it but by halves . Indeed he destroyed Ahabs house , but he should have destroyed Ahabs Idolatry too , but he did not doe that , and therefore now God commeth upon him . Yea 3. Though he were made Ahabs executioner for his Idolatry , yet he proved Ahabs Successor in his Idolatry . He was Gods rod in punishing Ahab , but he yet continued in the sinnes that Ahab did commit therefore now God saith , hee will avenge the blood of Jezreel upon the house of Jehu . From hence we have most excellent observations , that doe spring naturally as a fountaine bubleth up fresh and springing water . I will but only shew them to you , and so passe them over . First , That a man may doe that which God commandeth , and yet not obey God. He may doe that which God would have done , and yet not please God. He may doe what God requireth , and yet serve himselfe therein , and not God. Secondly , A carnall heart is contented to goe so farre in Gods commands as will serve his owne turne , but there hee stoppeth . So farre as might serve the bringing up of Iehu to the Crowne of Israel , to the setting of him on the Throne , so farre hee goeth in the way of Gods command , but no further . Such a heart is like to the hand of a rusty dyall : Suppose a rusty dyall hath the hand stand ( as now ) at tenne of the clock , come and looke upon it now , and it seemeth to goe right , but it is not from any inward right frame of the clocke it doth so , but by accident ; for stay till after tenne , and come againe at eleven or twelve and it standeth still as before at tenne . So let God command any thing that may hit with a mans owne ends , with his owne way , and be sutable to him , and a man seems to be very obedient to God ; but let God goe on further , and require something else , something that will not serve his turn , that will not agree with his owne ends , and here God may seek for a servant , as for him he will goe no further . Thirdly , God knoweth how to make use of mens parts and abilities , and yet to punish for their wickednesse notwithstanding . Jehu was a man of an excellent , brave , valiant , and quicke spirit , full of activity and courage , and God would make use of this for the destruction of the house of Ahab , yet Jehu must not scape . Many men that have excellent parts of learning and state policy , which God may make use of for the pulling downe his proud adversaries , yet God may punish them afterward notwithstanding , Many that have but weake parts , and can doe but little , shall be accepted of God : and others that have strong parts and can doe much , shall be punished by God. Wee read Revel . 12. 16. The earth helped the woman , yet Chap. 16. 1. The vialls of Gods wrath were poured forth upon the earth ; men may be usefull for the publique , and yet not freed from the 〈◊〉 of God. Fourthly , The Lord knowes how to make use of the sins of wicked men for his owne ends , to further his owne counsels , yet no excuse to them , but his curse will come upon them at last for those sinnes , God knoweth how to make use of the proud heart and ambitious spirit of Jehu for that end to fulfill his purpose against the house of Ahab , and yet afterward when God hath done with him , hee commeth against Jehu with a Judgement . There are many whose lusts being strong , yet God over-ruleth them for himselfe , and overpowreth them for the furtherance of his own ends . Many a Scholler who through the meere pride of his heart will study hard and preach very often and well , God makes use of that for the good of others , and yet the Minister may be damned himselfe , A fifth Observation , God may sometimes reward a worke here in this world , yet may curse a man for the worke afterward . Many there are that doe some outward service for God , and perhaps rejoyce in it , and thinke that God must needs accept of them : what they ? they have been excellent men in the Common-wealth , they have stood for Ministers , they have been forward in a good cause . Well , thou hast done these ; hath not God rewarded thee ? hast thou not health of body , and strength ? looke upon thy estate , art not thou blessed there ? looke upon thy table , thy wife and children , art not thou blessed there ? Thou hast thy peny for what thou hast done . But yet after thou hast had thy pay here in this world for what thou hast done , God may curse thee hereafter even for the sinfulnes of thy heart in that work which for the matter of it was good . God may reward thee for the matter of thy work , but curse thee for the manner of it . 6. It is a most dangerous thing for men to subject the workes of God to their own base ends , specially the publique works of God , when a man is called to publique services , if he subject that to his owne base ends , God will be sure to be even with him for that . The more excellent any worke is , the more dangerous it is to subject it to a lust . It is an evill thing to make use of meate , and drink , and cloath , to be serviceable to our lusts ; but to make use of the great works of God , suppose he calls us to publique services , to make these stoop and be serviceable to your base lusts , must needs be grievous indeed . It is a thing accounted burthen enough for the basest servant that is , to be serviceable to some base lust of his Master ; but if the Mr. should make his wife serviceable to his filthy uncleanenesse , oh what a vilany were that ! So I say , the greater the thing is any man makes serviceable to his lust , the more vile and the more dangerous is the sinne . Hearken to this you that are professors o● Religion . The drunkard he makes beer serviceable to his lust , and hee shall bee damned for that : but you make the worship of God , Prayer , and hearing , and fasting , &c. serviceable to your lust , oh what shall become of you ▪ A base wretch that sitteth tipling in an Alehouse you account vile , but it is but a poore creature that hee subjects to his base lust ; but a Minister or a Magistrate subjects things of a higher nature to their lusts , oh this is exceeding vile . We had need ( my brethren ) all pray earnestly for those whom God employeth in publique works , that they may not only have strength to assist them , and successe in them , but that they may have hearts to give God all the glory of them ; for though they may doe never so worthily for God in the Church or in the Common-wealth , yet if they be not carefull to give God all the glory , God will curse them at last notwithstanding . Further , Jehu doth somewhat which God commanded him , but not all . We learn from hence , that when but halfe the work is done , God curseth the whole for our neglect of the other halfe . I remember Master Calvin upon this place , likeneth Jehu unto King Henry the 8. Henry the 8. saith he , cast off some degree of Popery so farre as would serve his owne turne , but there were the five Articles in force still , for which many suffered at that time , and so he was like Jehu in that . God will be served with the whole heart , for all our good is in God , & therefore all our hearts must make out after God. God must have per●ect obedience in the desire and endeavour , or else he will have none . Certainly that which must make any man acceptable , it is not so much that there is somewhat done , but is there that which God calleth for done ? or is it done in regard of the endeavour ? for that indeed will be acceptable : though we cannot doe all at once , but it we bring somewhat to God as a part , and acknowledge the debt as the whole , and so are working for the other , it will be accepted . As suppose a man owes you an hundred pound , and bringeth you but fifty pound in part of payment , yet if he acknowledg the rest , and promise the payment of it . , if you know hee will be faithfull in the payment of the other he will accept of it : But if a man bring you fourscore pound in liewe of all , you will not accept it . So it is here , Hypocrites they say they cannot be perfect in his world , and so think to put off God with a little ; it is true , if thou hadst an upright heart , and didst bring God but part , and labourst after the whole , hee would accept of it : But if thou bringest him ten times more then a sincere heart can bring him , it will not be acceptable , no not ninety nine pounds will be accepted if brought in stead of the whole . God must have a man according to his own heart , such an one as David ; you know what was said of David , I have found a man after mine own heart that shall fulfill all my wills , for so the words are in the Originall , not all my will , but all my wills , in the plurall number . Again , Jehu did but half , and the worst half too , and therfore God commeth upon him . For the great care of Jehu was only to reform things in the State and Kingdom , and theerfore that indeed he did throughly , he altered the way of government from the house of Ahab , and set up another government . But for the matter of the worship of God , hee cared not what became of that , still the calves continued in Dan and Bethel , hee tooke no care that the people of Israel should goe up to Jerusalem , the place that God had appointed to worship him in a right way . This is that for which God thus cursed him and his house . It is a very evill thing in Reformers who have power in their hands , to be more carefull of the State then of the Church ; to be more carefull of affairs in civill policy , than of affairs in Religion , who are affraid to meddle with Religion , for feare of hinderances in their civill policy , to be so timerous in fearing disturbances in civill policy , that they will sacrifice Religion for it , and let that goe which way it will : This is an evill thing , and a bitter . Or if they doe reform in the Church , yet to reforme only that which is notoriously evil and vile ; so far Jehu went , he destroyed the Priests of Baal , but not the Priests of Dan and Bethel : the Idols of Baal were destroyed , but the Idols of Dan and Bethel were kept still . It is the speech of the Philosopher in his Politiques , when he giveth a rule of policie . First , the care of Divine things must be , and that is the best policy . Politicians must trust God in the way of policy , & take care of Divine things first . Yea , and goe to a through Reformation too ; for Jehu did something in Religion , but left other things therefore God cursed him . Men must take heed of betraying , of sacrificing the cause of God for the maintenance of State Policy ; let them be never so excellent in their way , yet if they doe thus , God will blast them . Yet further , Jehu saw the danger of that wicked and abominable sin of Idolatry in others , but he could not see it in himselfe . What peace ( said hee to Ioram ) so long as the whoredomes of thy mother Iezebel continue ? What peace ? Then what peace Iehu , so long as the whoredomes of Israel continue afterwards ? This is ordinary ( my brethren ) for men to see a great deale of evill and danger in the sins of others , but when they should come to themselves , to be blind there ; to inveigh against the sinnes of other men , when they seem to be far off from them , or that they cannot make use of them ; but when they can make use of them , then to embrace them . Thus it was with Saul , he was exceeding severe against Witch-craft , all the Witches in Israel must be put to death : but when Saul had use of a Witch for his lust , he himselfe goeth to the Witch of Endor . In the tenth place , Jehu thought by retaining the calves in Dan and Bethel , to preserve the Kingdome to his posterity , and this proved the ruine of his posterity . Those wayes of sinfull policie by which many think to raise their houses or themselves , are the meanes of the ruine of them . Hee that walks uprightly , walks surely . Lastly , Iehu doth thus , and God punisheth Iehu because hee continued in the same sin that Ahab was punished for . This is of excellent use , specially to Magistiates ; and indeed it is a dreadfull place to Magistrates , if considered of . Let them who are used to punish the sins of others , take heed what they doe , lest they be found guilty themselves ; for if they bee found guilty , God will plague them , as if they did the greatest act of injustice that can be : As for instance , Suppose a Magistrate should take away the life of a man lawfully for that which God would have him take it away : yet if this Magistrate should be guilty of the same sin , or that which amounteth to the same sin , God will avenge himselfe upon this Magistrate , as upon a Murtherer , as here , God revengeth himselfe upon the house of Iehu as for murther , yet Iehu was a Magistrate , and this was commanded Iehu by God himselfe . So suppose a Magistrate fine a man for any evill , and that justly , yet if he be guilty of the same himselfe , God will deal with this Magistrate as if he robbed by the high way side , and took away a mans money by violence . It is apparent out of the Text. Certainely my brethren , therefore great wrath and vengeance hangeth over the head of wicked Magistrates . All this you learn from what is here said , that God will avenge the blood of Jezreel upon the house of Jehu , upon the inquiring into the reason of it . And he will doe this upon the house of Iehu , ( that is the third Question . ) What is the house of Iehu ? That is his Posterity , his Family that was to succeed . And indeed it was to the fourth generation till God came against him , ( as we shall heare by and by ) God followeth wicked men to the 3. and 4. generation . The posterity of the ungodly , specially Idolaters , shall suffer for their Fathers sin . It is very observable what you have in the second Commandement , that God in no other doth threaten the sinne of the fathers upon the children , but in the second Commandement . What is thereason of this ? ( That Commandement forbiddeth Images ) Because your superstitious worshippers of all men are strengthened by the tradition of their Fathers . Oh our Fathers did thus and thus , and shall we be wiser then our Fore-fathers ? We have now a company of up-start men , and they will be wiser then their Ancestors . Because superstitious worshippers harden themselves so much in that way upon their Fathers , therefore it is , that in that very Commandement against making and worshipping of Images , God threatneth to visite the sinne of the fathers upon the children , and in no other . What , the house of Iehu , after Iehu was dead ? how can this be ? Yes , as a Prince that hath to doe with two Traitors , both of them have deserved death , but the Prince is enclined to shew mercy ; and against the one there commeth this Accusation , This mans Father was a Traytor , and his grand-father , and his great grand-father were Traytors : Nay then let him dye , saith the Prince . But now the other that is guilty of as much as this man was , yet it is told the King , Sir , This mans Fathers hath done a great deale of excellent fervice for the Common-wealth , there were never any of his house but were loya●l . This man now is spared though hee deserveth death , and guilty with the other of the same treason ; and the King is just in this . And so the first man may be said to dye for his Fathers sinne , that is , he should not have been executed if his Fore-fathers had not been in the fault . Take heed what you doe in the course of your lives , ( if you regard not your selves , yet for your childrens sake ) that you may not leave a curse behind you upon the off-spring of your loins , and fruit of your wombs ; look upon them , pity them . Though you your selves may escape in this world , yet you may leave the inheritance of your sinnes unto your children . Pity your children , that they may not have cause to curse the time that they were borne of such parents , and wish that they had rather been of the off-spring of Dragons , and a generation of Vipers , then to be born of such parents that have left them a curse for an inheritance . It had been better you had left them never a peny , then to leave them to inherite the curse of your wickednesse . Vpon the house of Jehu . The house of Jehu fareth the worse for Jehu . Those that desire to raise and continue the honour of their houses , let them take heed of wayes of wickednesse ; for wickednesse will bring down any Family whatsoever . But why is it The house of Jehu , without any addition of Jehu the King as in others it is usual ? Hereby God would give a check to Jehu , and bid him look back upon the meannesse of his birth , for Jehu was not of the Kingly race : yet how unthankfull was he who was raised from the dung-hill , thus unworthily to depart from the Lord. You whom God hath raised up on high to great honours and estates , look back to the meannesse of your beginning , that God hath raised you from , and labour to give him an answerable return of obedience . Those that will not give God the glory of their honours and estates , it is just their honors and estates should be taken from them . But what is this , Yet a little while ? This is to be understood in reference to Jehu , or in reference to the house of Israel . Yet a little while , and I will avenge the blood of Jezreel upon the house of Jehu , and will cease the Kingdome of the house of Israel . It was a long while before God came upon the house ol Jehu , and yet now he saith , yet but a little while , I will stay but a little longer ere I avenge the blood of Iezreel upon the house of Iehu . It was now the third generation since Iehu committed those sins , nay , it will appeare that it was above an hundred years from the sinnes of Iehu to Gods avenging the blood of Iezreel upon his house : for Iehu raigned 28. years , his sonne Iehoahaz 17. years , and Iehoash his sonne 16. years , and Ieroboam his son 41. yeares , and then in the days of Zachariah the son of this Ieroboam , God came to avenge this blood , which was above a hundred years . Oh the patience of the Lord towards sinners ! But though he stayed long , yet he saith , yet a little while . Here is an excellent observation from hence . That God sometimes commeth upon sinners for their old sins , for sins committed a long time agon : Sins a long time agone committed , are perhaps forgotten by you , yet they are remaining , filed up , and recorded in heaven , above a hundred years after the commission . It is like these sinns of Iehu were forgotten , yet God commeth now at last to avenge the sins of Iehu upon his house . So he did for the sins of Manasses , and for the sins of Iosephs brethren , it was 22. years before they came to have their consciences troubled , and then say they , We are verily guilty concerning our brother , therefore is this distresse come upon us , and now ( saith Reuben ) behold also his blood is required . Looke to your selves you that are young , take heed of youthfull sinnes , Youthful sins may prove to be ages terrors . Perhaps you think it was a grat while agone that you ( when you were a young man ) were in fuch a Taverne , or in such a journey , and committed such and such sins : Have you repented for them ? Have you made your peace with God for them ? Though you were then young , and did not fear the wrath of God to come upon you ; yet now you are old , the wrath of God may come upon you for sinnes committed in your Apprentiship . A sinner of a hundred years old shall be accursed . Yet a little while . In reference to the house of Israel : Yet a little while and I will cease the Kingdome of the house of Israel : This Nation had continued a pompous successfull Nation ( thoughidolatrous ) for about 260. years before the wrath of God came upon it that was here threatned . God may come a long time after the flourishing of a Nation upon it in wayes of judgement . Which may make us look back to the sins committed in Henry the 8 , his time , and in Queen Maries time . Let us not plead for our fore-fathers for the maintenance of superstitious worship , but let us look to the sins of our fore-fathers , and bewaile them before the Lord , for God may come upon a Nation for former sins after it hath flourished a long time . But at length it will prove but a little while . What , was it but a little while from the beginning of this Prophesie till the ceasing of the Kingdome of the house of Israel . Yes ( my brethren ) it was many yeares . and it is very observable that from the beginning of this Prophesie ) which was in the end of the raign of Jeroboam ) to the rulfilling of what was here threatned , to the ceasing of the Kingdome of the house of Israel , it was 76. years . For ( as I reckoned the last day , to shew the time of Hoseas Prophesie ) from the end of Jeroboam here spoken of , ver . 1. unto the time of Hezekiah was 70. yeares , and in the 6. yeare of Hezekiah Israel was destroyed by the King of Assyria , and yet God saith here by Hosea ( which was in the time of Jeroboam , for then was the beginning of Hoseas Prophesie , as ver . 1. ) Yet a little while . Seventy six years is but a little while in Gods account . Sinners thinke either in wayes of judgement or mercy , a little while to be a great while . If God do but defer mercy seven yeares , it is a great while in our account . We think our Parliament hath sate a long time ; How long ? almost two yeares . A great while ! Wee think every day a great while , for that wee would faint have but 76. years , yea a hundred , a thousand years are but as one day unto God. So for judgement : a sinner if hee hath committed a sinne seven years agoe , he thinketh it is a great while , and he hath not heard of it , thereforre surely it is forgotten . But what if it be seventy years agoe ? you that are sinners of seventy yeares old , all is but a little while in regard of God. Againe , Yet a little while . The apprehension of a judgement just at hand is that which will stir the heart , and worke upon it most . Yet a little while , and God will cause the kingdome to cease , therefore if ever you repent , repent now , for it is but a little while ere God will cause the kingdome to cease . The apprehension of a sinner to be upon the brink of judgment , when a poore soule shall see him selfe ready to lanch into the infinit ocean of eternall destruction , to lie under the scalding drops of the wrath of the Almighty ; this works upon the heart indeed . It is the way of the flesh and the divell to put far from us the evill day , to make us believe the day of death is a great way off . But it is the way of God to present things present and reall ; and in this consisteth the efficacy and power of faith to make things that are to come as if present . Wee say in nature , there must be a contiguity and neernesse between things that must work . So wee must apprehend a neernesse between the evill that is to come upon us and our selves , that so it may work upon our hearts . An excellent place you have to this purpose in 1 King. 14. 14. where the Lord threatneth to stir up a King over Israel who should cut off the house of Ieroboam that day ; but what ? ( saith he , he presently calleth back his word ) even now : you may think the day a great way off , but it is even now : and therefore now come in , return , and repent . Oh sinners consider that your danger is now , not only in that day of Christ , but what ? even now , it may be at hand . Lastly , Yet a little while . Jeroboam had continued above forty yeeres in his sin , but now Zachariah his son , upon whom this threatning was fulfilled , continued but six moneths , perhaps he thought to escape as long as his father . No , God suffereth some sinners to continue long , others he cutteth off presently : though the father continue old in his sins , if the son presume to follow his steps , he may be cut off presently . And I will cause to cease the Kingdome of Israel . Kingdomes , great Kingdomes and Monarchies are subject to change , What is become of all the glorious Monarchies in the world ? how hath the Lord tossed them up and downe as a man would tosse a ball ? Idolatry is enough to destroy the greatest Monarchy , the greatest Kingdome in the world . But here is some instruction in the elegancy of the word . It is in the Originall , I will cause to cease . It is a Metaphor ( according to some ) taken from instruments that a man makes use of for a while , and when hee hath done with them , either hangs them up against a wall and regards them no more , or else bringeth them to the fire to be burned . So saith God , yet a little while , and I will cause to cease , &c. As if he should say , Indeed there was a time wherein I had some use of this way , of the rent between Judah and Israel , and of this Kingdome , but I have done with that use , there is an end of it now , the use is over I intended , & now I will cause to cease the Kingdome , I will take them away , they shall be to mee as an instrument not to be used any more , or for the Fire . When the Lord hath any use of a people , or of any particular men to do him service , he will preserve them though they be wicked , and when he hath done with them , he either layes them aside , or else brings them to the fire . A Husband-man so long as he hath use of thornes to stop a gap with them , he lets them alone , but when there shall be no further use of them , he then bring them to the fire . so God here , I will cause to cease the Kingdome of the house of Israel . But how and where will God cause to cease the Kingdome of Israel ? Vers . 5. I will break the bow of Israel in the valley of Jezreel . By breaking the bow , is here meant the blasting and bringing to nothing all the strength of their warlike power , all their Armes and Ammunition , for the bow was a great warlike instrument in these dayes , therefore in Psal . 46. 9. He makes wars to cease , he breaks the bow , and cutteth the spear in sunder , &c. But here , by breaking the bow , there is something more , it is not onely mentioned because the bow is a warlike instrument , but there is some particular reason why the bow is instanced here , and that is this , because whereas Jehu did many memorable things in his warlike affairs , yet none more then that he did by his bow . Mark that place , 2 King. 9. 24. And Iehu drew a bow with his full strength , and smote Jeroboam between his arms , and the arrow went out at his heart , &c. So that the victory that Jehu got ever the two Kings of Israel and Iudah , was by the Bow especially . What observe we from hence ? That wherein wicked men have been most prosperous and succesful , even in this God will curse them , and let out his wrath upon them . Againe , Breake the bow , blast all the power of their Ammunition . Carnal hearts trust much in their warlike weapons , but they are nothing when God commeth to break a peoples strength . God hath the power of all Ammunition , the Lord is called The Lord of Hosts , ( and he delighteth much in this title ) First , because God hath not only the power over Ammunition and all Warlike weapons , so as they cannot be used but by him : But secondly , because when they are used , they can have no successe at all but by him ; and so the Lord is the Lord of Hosts in a peculiar sense : Hee is the great Generall of all Armies , more then all other Generalls , for the successe of all dependeth upon him . My brethren , why then need the Church of God feare the strength of weapons , the Bow , the Cannon , or all the Ammunition of the enemies of the Church , seeing our Lord is the Lord of Hosts ? no weapon can be used or have successe but by this Lord of Hosts . He can break the bow , though of steele , when pleaseth , and can give his people strength to doe so too . For this you have an admirable promise , Esa . 54. 17. Behold ( saith God ) I have created the smith that bloweth the coals in the fire , and bringeth forth an instrument for his worke , and I have created the water to destroy . No weapon that is formed against thee shall prosper . What need the Church fear then ? God breaks the bow when he pleaseth : For as God hath a providence over all the things in the world , so there is a specialty of providence of God to order Battels , to give the victory , not to the strong , or to the multitude , but sometimes to the weak and few , even as hee pleaseth . And therefore hee is the Lord of Hosts , because though his providence is generall over all creatures , yet there is a specialty of providence of God in warlike affairs . But what was this valley of Jezreel ? It is worthy our time to enquire after this valley of Jezreel , wherein God will break the bow of Israel . There were two places called Jezreel , the one belonging to Iudah , Iosh . 15. the other belonging to Israel , Iosh . 17. 16. & Chap. 19. 18. Iezreel was a fruitfull valley , ten miles long , and by it there was a famous City built , which was in Ahabs time the principall seate , the Metropolis of the Kingdom , and there was a glorious tower in it , & from thence they might see over Galilee and over Iordan . Now there were two great Cities that belonged to the tenn Tribes , Samarea and Iezreel , as we in England have two principall Cities , London and Yorke . But this Iezreel was the most fortified , in which they put a great deale of confidence , yet God saith here , He will break the bow of Israel in the valley of Iezreel . That is , there by that City in that place , that they accounted the great strength of their Kingdom , there he would break the bow of Israel . Fortified Cities cannot help when God cometh out against a people . If we can fortifie our Cities against sin , we may soone fortifie them against an Enemie . If sinne once get in , the enemie will quickly follow . Nah. 3. 12. All thy strong holds shall be like fig-trees with the first ripe figs ; if they be shaken , they shall fall into the mouth of the eater . You shall with the least wind like the first ripe figs sall off , all your strong holds shall doe so . Yea , ver . 13. Thy people in the midst of thee are women , the gates of thy land shall be set wide open to thine enemies , the fire shall devourthy bars . You see what the valley of Iezreel is , & the meaning of it . But why will God breake the bow of Israel in the valley of Jezreel ? There are these two reasons for it . 1. Because God would deale with this people of Israel , as Judges deale with Malefactors ; they will hang them up there where the fact was committed , as wee see some hanged up in Chains neer to the City , at or about the place where their villany was done . So in Jezreel was shed the blood of Jezebel , and the blood of the 70. sons of Ahab , and the blood of Jehoram , and there will God break the bow . Hence it is that guilty consciences are many times afraid to goe neere to the places where they have committed wickedness , because their consciences will fly in their faces , for feare God should come upon them in the place where the fact was done . But further , He will break the bow of Israel in the valley of Jezreel , that is , in that fortified place in which they did so much glory ( this is specially observable . ) Even in that place wherein a kingdom shall most glory , & seem to trust most in , God many times doth come and break the kingdom in that very place , and makes that the breaking of the kingdome most . Nah. 3. 8. Art thou better then populous No , that was scituate among the rivers , that had the waters round about it , whose rampant was the sea , & her wall was from the sea ? Mark , a people just like England in this case : what we overcome by the Enemie ? we that have the Seas for our Wall , and such a multitude of people amongst us ? These have been & are the two pleas that England hath for her selfe , because our people are many , and we have the seas for a wall : But art thou better then populous No ? yet was she carryed away , she went into captivity , &c. vers . 10. Thus the Prophet pleadeth with them . But further , These trusted in Jezreel , they seemed to scorn the Prophet What , the kingdome of Israel cease , what thinke you of Jezreel , such a strong place as that ? just as we should say , what , an Enemy come to us what say you to London , a brave City , a strong City ? what say you to the Ammunition , to the Militia , to the strength that is there ? Are they not able to resist all that can come against it ? Have we cause to feare danger ? It is true , the kingdom hath cause to bless God for London , and London hath not yet been the valley of Jezreel , but an Israel , the strength of the Lord , & hath prevailed with God , as an instrument : & therefore we blesse God for that we have had . But yet let us not trust in that we have , for even in London , in the valley of Jezreel the bow may be broken , and God knows how to bring things about so as to make the Ammunition of London to be broken in pieces , and turned against themselves : Oh therefore do not trust here . Only let it be your care you of this City of London that you prove not the valley of Jezreel , and then we shall do well enough , our bow shall not be broken . What attempts have there been to have made London by this time the valley of Jezreel , that is a scattered vally , to have brought divisions in this City , that it might be a scattered people ; & wo to the kingdom if this had bin effected , better these men had never bin born then that they should have had success in that horrid enterprise . Oh London now the blessing of God is over you ! the meanes of grace abundantly among you . The eys of the kingdom are upon you ; take heed you be bee not the valley of Iezreel , your divisions will cause great thoughts of heart ; continue you untyed one to another , and then you are as one Israel of God , the instrument of God for our strength . Pardon me this litle digression , though it be a little from an expository exercise . Thus we have done with the Mother , and with the first sonne . The Third Lecture . Hosea . 1. 6. 7. And she conceived again and bare a daughter , Iune 6. 1641 and God said unto him call her name Loruhamah : for I will no more have mercy upon the house of Israel , but I will utterly take them away . But I will have mercy upon the house of Judah , and will save them by the Lord their God , & will not save them by bow , nor by sword , nor by ba●tell , by horses , nor by horsemen . COncerning Hosea's first son , the last day . Shee conceived again . This conception sets out also the estate of Israel in regard of her sin and misery : Sin it is fruitful , and what bringeth it forth ? Parents bring forth a likeness to themselves , and so doth sin ; and what is that ? Nothing but ruine & misery . This second child it is a daughter , it noteth the weaknes of the state of the ten Tribes at this time , they were grown to be effeminate in regard of their lust , and the basenes of their spirits , and in regard of their strength also they were like the female sex . There are 3. estates of the people signified by the 3. children of Hosea ; the first was their scattered estate , and that was signified by Jezreel , the first son ; of which the last day : And the story of that you had in 2 K. 15. ver . 9. to the 19. where you may read their wofull sedition ; for Zach●riah reigned but 6. months , & then Shallum sle● him , & reigned in his stead , and he reigned but one month , for Menah●● came & smote Shallum & slew him , & reigned in his stead : So here was nothing but murthers and seditions amongst them . A scattered people . The 2. state of the people of Israel was their weake condition that they were brought unto , signified by this daughter ; and the history of that you have from v. 16. of that Ch. onwards , where when Pul the K. of Assyria came against Israel , Menahem presently yeelded to him what hee would have , giveth him IOCO . talents of silver to go from him , & so layeth a taxation upon the people for it . Here they were brought to a very low & weak condition . And afterwards this K. of Assyria cometh again , and carryeth part of them into captivity . The 3. child was Loammi , and the history of the state of the people signified by that you have in 2 K. 17. 6. where they were fully caryed away , & wholy rejected for ever : And because they were a little before that time grown up to some strength more then formerly , therefore this last was a son . We are now to speak of the second . She conceived again and bare a daughter . From that interpretation I have given of it , to note the weaknesse and effeminacy of the state of the people at this time , a little before their ruine ; The observation from thence is this , When the manliness , courage , and vigour of the spirits of people are taken away , then they are under a fearfull judgment , and neare to ru●ne . Even when their men shall be as women , as Nah. 3. 13. when there shall be such basenesse of spirit in people , that for the enjoyments of their present ease and quiet they yeeld to any thing . So it was with these , and in thar their effeminatenesse was shewed . When the King of Assyria came to them , they yeeelded to any termes he would appoint , to give him any thing he would demand ; and when the taxes were laid upon the people , they enquired not whether they were just or no , but meerly for their peace & safety they yeeld . We must take heed of bringing our selves into trouble , we were better pay this then venture the loss of all , we must not displease those that are above us , we know not what hard things may follow ; it is our wisedome , though things are hard , and we complain the taxations are heavy , yet to suffer something , they had rather have a little though with basenesse , then venture any thing for further peace and liberty for themselves and their posterity . 2. The eff●mina●enesse of their sp●rits were shewne in this , that they were willing to bow downe their necks to submit to the government of most vile murtherers , without any enquiry after them , or taking any course or way at all to finde out their murthers and wickednesse . Zecharia was slain by Shallum , then commeth Menahem and hee killed Shallum , after Menahem , raigned Pekahiah , and against him conspired Pekah the sonne of Remaliah , and smote him in Samaria , and with him killed 50. men , and reigned in his roome , then cometh Hoshea the sonn of Elah , and he made a conspiracy against Pekah , and slew him , and reigned in his stead . Here were murtherers upon murtherers , and yet the people all this while bow down their necks , and looke not after these things : They have gotten power in their hands , and we must take heed of looking so high , to enquire after things that are above us , and it is ill displeasing of them , we were better a great deale be quiet and hold our peace , & say nothing , than to enquire after such high matters as those are ; and so they let all goe , and bowed their necks to the yoke , and by no meanes such horrible guil of murthers must be questioned , because the murtherers had got power in their hands . Their cowardly timerous spirits were much like the temper of Issachar , we read of Gen. 49. 15. Isachar is a strong asse couching down between two burthens , he saw that rest was good , and the land that it was pleasant , and he bowed his shoulders to bear , & became a servant unto tribu●e . And when mens spirits are effeminate in regard of the civill state , they quickly grow so in regard of their consciences and religion too . Purity of religion in the Church cannot stand long with slavery admitted in the State. We read Rev. 4. 7. of 4. Ages of the Church set out by four living-creatures : the 3. living-creature the Text saith , had the face of a man , and that was to note the state of the Church in the time of reformation , they began then to be of manly spirits , & to cast off that yoke of bondage that was before upon them , to enquire after what liberty God had granted to them . Not then like those we read of , Isa . 51. 23. that would bow down to such as would say to their soules , Bow downe that we may goe over them . This ( my brethren ) hath been the condition of many of us ; there hath bin that effeminateness of spirit in us , that we have bowed down our necks , yea , our souls to those that would go over us ; yea , ( as it is there in 51. Isa . ) they made themselves the very street to them that went over them , their very consciences were trampled upon by the foot of pride , and all for the enjoyment of a little outward accomodation in their estates , in their shops , and in their trading , Oh they must not venture these , rather yeeld to any thing in the world . And truly we were afraid not long since that God was calling us by the name of this daughter Loruhamah , in regard of our effeminateness of spirit , that the Lord was departing from our nation . But blessed be God that now here hath begun to be a rising of spirit among us , especially among our worthies in Parliament , and their warmth , vigour , & life , hath put warmth , vigour , spirit , and life , into the whole Kingdome . Now our Kingdom will never bow downe and submit their Consciences , nor Estates , nor liberties to that bondage and oppression that heretofore hath been . No , they had rather die honorably then live basely . But why do I make such a disjunction ? dy honorably , or live basely ? Had we spirits we might free our selves and posterity from living basely , and we need not dye at all ; for the malignant party hath neither spirit to act , nor power to prevail , if we keep up our spirits and be strong in the Lord we are safe enough , yet we shall not have our name Loruhamah , but Ruhamah , the Lord will have mercy upon us . 1 King. 14. 15. God threatens to smite Israel , that they shall be as a reed shaken with the wind : and then mark what followeth , and then he would root them out of this good land which hee gave to their Fathers . If this judgement be upon England that our spirits be shaken as a reed with the winde , that wee bow and yeeld to any thing in a base way , the next may justly follow that the Lord may root us out of this good Land. As it was with Israel before their destruction , they grew effeminate , so it was with Judah too before theirs , Isa . 3. 3. when God intended judgment against them , you may observe there that He took away the mighty man & the man of war , the prudent and the ancient , the Captain & the honourable man & the Counseller . men of truly noble spirits were taken away , their Nobles became to be vile and sordid , & to yeeld to any humors and lusts , then they were neer the ruine ; and ver . 12. the Text saith women rule over them ; for women that have many spirits to rule is no judgment at all ; but for women of revengeful spirits to rule over a nation is a most fearful judgment . But so much of the first , that it is a daughter that is here born to Hosea . What is this daughters name ? Call her name Loruhamah ? Non dilecta , so some , Non misericordiam consecuta , so others , both come to one , either not beloved , or one that hath not obtained mercy , for Gods mercy proceedeth from his love . I will no more have mercy . I will add no more mercy ; Nothing that God had shewed abundance of mercy to Israel before ; but now he saith , I will not adde any more , I will shew no further mercy to them . But I will utterly take them away . Tollendo tollam ; so turned by some , In taking them away I will take them away ; Levaho levando , so others , I will lift them up , that I may cast them down so much the more dreadfully . The old Latin hath it thus , Obliviscendo obliviscor , forgetting I will forget . And this was upon a mistake of the Hebrew word , because there is little difference in the Hebrew , between the word that signifieth to to forget , and that which signifieth to take away . The 70. setting my selfe against them , I will set my selfe against them . Well the name of the child must bear this upon it , that God will have no more mercy upon them . Hence then first . Sometimes the very children of families , and in a kingdom do bear this impression upon them , that God will have no mercy upon this family , upon this kingdome . One may ( my brethren ) read such an impression upon the children of many great families in this Kingdome , when wee looke upon that horrible wickedness of the young ones that are coming up , how different from their former religious Ancestors ; we may see with trembling hearts ) such an impression of wrath , as if God had said , I have done with this family , I intend no further mercy to this family . As sometimes when we see in a family gracious children , gracious young gentlemen , noble men , we may see the impression of Gods mercy to that family , Ruhaniah , I intend mercy to it . It was not long since that we might , and we thought indeed wee did see such an impression upon the young ones of this kingdome , the young ones in the City , the yong ones in the chief families in the Country ; that we vvere afraid that Lornhamah to England was written upon them , for oh the rudenes and wickednes of the young ones ! But blessed be God that we see it otherwise now ; now in regard of that graciousnesse , that forwardnesse of so many young ones amongst us , we may see written upon them , Ruhamah to England , mercy to England , God hath taken away his Lo , and writeth only Ruhamah , mercy to you , this great change God hath made . For the great ground of the hope we have for mercy to England , is the impression of God upon the young ones : When God hath tender plants growing up in his Orchard , certainly he will not break down the hedg or dig it up . Secondly , Call her name Loruhamah , for I will no more have mercy upon the house of Israel . There is a time when God will not have mercy upon a kingdome or upon a particular people . Gather your seves together , oh nation not worthy to be beloved , before the decree come forth . There is a time for the decree to come forth against a kingdome , when God will not be intreated ; a time when though Noah , Job , and Daniel should stand before him , yet he will not be intreated , though they cry , cry ●arly , cry aloud , cry with teares , cry with fasting , yet God will not be intreated . Gods mercy is precious , and he will not let it run out to waste , he will not be prodigal of it , a time wherein God will say , Now I have done , I have done with this people , mercy hath had her turn . It is true , except we had that immediate revelation that the Prophets had , we cannot now determine of the particular time ; yet by examining Gods way toward his people in former times , the truth is , that those that laboured most to search Gods minde in his word , they were even afraid that this decree had been gone out upon us in England . It is true , God hath seemed for the present to tell us that hee hath a prerogative , and he will have mercy upon whom he will have mercy : But yet neither are those altogether to be blamed , that even in their own hearts determined ( as it were ) that mercy was gone ; except they did wholly limit God , and left nothing of prerogative at all to him , but because it was Gods ordinary way ; and except God had wrought with us in a way of prerogative otherwise than ever he did with any nation before , they did then conclude that the decree was gone forth ; and so it might be true , and what God may do with us yet we do not know . But this we can say , if the decree be not gone forth , if there be mercy for us , God hath shewed his prerogative , that he will now goe on in such a way otherwise than formerly he hath done in the world ; and if God will do so , who can say against it ? A time there is likewise for God to say against particular persons , he wil not have mercy upon them , a time when God will say , those men that were bidden shall not tast of my Supper ; he that will be filthy , let him be filthy still , my spirit shall no longer strive with them . God hath no need ( my brethren ) that we should receive or entertain his mercy , we had need that God should grant it . God many times is quick in the offer of his mercy . Goc and preach the Gospel , he that believeth shall be saved , he that believeth not shall be damned . A quick worke God makes many times in the effects of mercy . Yet 3. I will not have mercy : This is pronounced as the most dreadfull judgment . What , not have mercy upon them ? then indeed is a State or a Kingdom in a dreadful condition , when God shall say of them that he will not hve mercy . Wo to you ( saith the Lord ) when I depart from you , wo then to you when my mercy is for ever gon , then all judgments & miseries must needs flow in upon a nation , or a particular soul ; when the Sea-bank is broken up , then the waves will all flow in . Isa . 56. 9. All you beasts of the field come to devour , yea , all you beasts in the forrest , why what is the matter ? His watchmen are blind , &c. I argue thus from thence , if the prudence of the watch-men being taken away which should stop misery , then all evils come flowing in upon a Nation . What then if the mercy of God that should stop misery be taken away ? whither should the poore creature goe if mercy be gone ? to what creature should it look for help ? if it cryes to any creature , the creature saith , I can afford no comfort , because God affordeth no mercy : what shall uphold the heart then when it hath no hope at all ? It must needs sink . I will not add mercy ( saith God ) shewing , that what good they had received before it was from his mercy , though they would take no notice of it ; well , saith God , you shall have no more , you have taken no notice that it was my mercy that helped you before , but when my mercy is gone , then you will know it , but then I will not add more . Men best know what the worth of mercy is , when mercy is taken away from them , when God addeth no more . Again , I will not adde mercy . God doth not use to take away his mercy fully from a people or from a soul : but when mercy hath been shewed and abused , after much mercy hath been received , and that being abused , then God saith hee will not adde more . You have a parallel place to this , Iudg. 10. 16. I will deliver you no more , saith God , I have delivered you many times , my mercy hath been abused , I will deliver you no more . It is just with God when mercy is abused , that wee should never know farther what mercy meaneth . Mercy as it is a precious thing , so it is a tender thing , and a dangerous thing to abuse it . There is nothing that more quickly works the ruine of a people or of a soule , then abused mercy . But further , I will utterly take them away . Before it was only that they should be scattered , the name of the first child before was but Iezreel , that they should be the scattered of the Lord ; but the 2. is Loruhamah , that they shall have no more mercy from the Lord. Gods 2. strokes usually are more dreadfull then the first : God beginneth first with the house of Correction before he bringeth to the gallows . There is branding first before hanging : there are warning pieces before murthering peeces . God makes way for his wrath by lesser afflictions , before hee cometh with destroying judgments . I remember Mr. Knox in his History of Scotland hath this story of one Sir Iames Hamilton , that having been murthered by the Ks. means there , he appeared to him in a vision with a naked sword drawn , and strikes off both his arms , with these words , Take this before thou receive a finall payment for all thy impieties , and within 24. hours 2. of the Ks. sons dyed . God cometh to nations & particular persons with a sword , cutteth off arms before he takes their lives , he commeth by degrees upon them . As the Lord when he cometh in a way of abundance of mercy , lesser mercies make way for greater mercies . When Manna was rained down , the dew ever came before it : So , lesser judgments to the wicked are forerunners of , and makers way for greater judgments ; first they are parboild before they come to be rosted in the fire . Further , I will not adde mercy to the house of Israel . He doth not say , I will not adde mercy to this or that particular man of Israel , but to the house of Israel . A Multitude of sinners , with God is no argument for their escape of judgment . It is a rule indeed with man , Multitudo peccantium , tollit peccatum , Multitude of offenders take away their offences ; Men know not how to execute the offenders when they are in Multitudes , here and there some of the ring-leaders may be taken for example sake . But it is no rule with God , though it be the whole house of Israel , God hath no mercy for the whole house of all the people of Israel . Let no man presume to sin against the Lord , because there are Multitudes that do offend , & think that he shal escape with the Multitude . No , all the nations of the world with the Lord are but as the drop of a bucket , & as the small dust of the ballance , nothing , even lesse then nothing . And yet further , No mercy upon the house of Israel : Though it be the house of Israel , yet no mercy upon her . If it were the house of Pharaoh it were not so much , but what , no mercy to the house of Israel ? The neareness of any to God exempts them not from the wrath of God. God hateth sin , and hateth sin most when it is nearest him : You have I knowne of all the families of the earth , therfore wil I punish you for your iniquities , saith the Lord. As we hate a Toad in our bosoms more then when it is at a further distance ; so God hateth sin in those that are nearest to him more than in those that are further off ; for God will be sanctified in all those that draw neer unto him . But wherefore is all this that God wil have no more mercy upon the house of Israel ? what hath the house of Israel done , that God should be so angry with it ? It is worth our searching and enquiring after , why the Lord will at this time have no mercy upon the house of Israel . It concerns our selves neerly . The first and main reason is , because of their continuance in their false way of worship , notwithstanding all the means that God had used to bring them off ; not only by his Prophets , sending them again and again to shew them the evill of their false worship in those 2. Calves in Dan and Bethel , but by most remarkable works of his providence against them . As for example . The work of God against Jeroboam , when hee was but stretching out his hand against the Prophet that came to denounce judgement against that Altar upon which he was offering Sacrifice , his hand that he put forth against him dryed up , so that he could not pull it in again to him , and upon the prayer of the Prophet it was restored & became as was before . Again , the remarkable work of God in anointing Iehu to destroy the house of Ahab and his seed for their Idolatry . Yet notwithstanding these Prophets , and these works of God , with many other , they still persisted in their way of Idolatry . And this caused the Lord now not to have mercy upon the house of Israel . Let us take heed of this , God hath used , and still doth use means to bring us off fully from all wayes of false worship , not only by sending his Ministers from time to time to declaim against such things , but by wonderful and remarkable works of his providence towards England , especially at this day . Never had any Nation , never had England heretofore more remarkable works of God to draw them off from all wayes of false worship , to bring them to worship God in the right way according to his will. Now let us tremble at this sentence ; I will not add mercy , I will have no more mercy . God hath added mercy to us again and againe from time to time . And now me thinks in this work of Gods mercy , that he is about concerning us , he speaks to us as he did to the people , Come and put off thy ornaments , that I may know what to do with thee . Come now and humble your selves that I may know what to do ; As if God should say , Come & give in your last answer . Certainly in that way that God is now in with us , he calleth England to give its last answer , as if he should say , Now I am sheing mercy once more , take heed of rejecting it , lest you have a Loruhamah upon you , I will adde no more mercy , consider not onely what wee have done , but what we do , how we have abused mercy , and how wee doe now abuse present mercy ; how opposite the spirits of most are against the work of reformation now in hand , who even say to the Lord Christ depart from us , we desire not the knowledg of thy ways . When the people of Israel were offered Canaan , and God bade them go in and possesse it , they were then neer unto it ; but when they then refused Canaan , God sware in in his wrath that they should not enter into his rest . If ever a people were offered Canaan , were offered the Ordinances of God in his owne way , certainly wee are at this time , Let us tremble lest God ( if wee reject this mercy ) should swear in his wrath , I will have no more mercy upon you , and so we prove to be a Loruhamah indeed . But a second reason why this people could have no mercy , might be , because of their forsaking God even in the civill State. For you are to know that this people of Israel had not only left God in their Church , State , and defiled themselves with false worship , but they had in their civill government wickedly departed from that that God had appointed over them : They had departed from the house of David , and rent themselves from it . It is true , this was of Gods permission , but yet it was the wickednes of their hearts , & no excuse at all for them . Hence Chap. 8. 4. God chargeth them that they had set up Kings , but not by him . From whence this may bee observable . That it is a most dangerous thing for a people to forsake that government to rebell against that civill government that God doth set over them . When the people in 1 Sam. 8. 7. had required a King , and would not be ruled by Judges any more , saith the Lord to Samuel , They have not rejected you , but rejected me , that I should not reigne over them : A most dreadfull place , And I confesse freely to you , this one Text of Scripture was the first Scripture that took impression upon my thoughts and heart about fearing to goe on in a way of Church-government that God had not appointed . For thus my thoughts reasoned ; What is God so provoked against a people that will reject but a Civill government , a government that hee hath appointed , that specially concernes but the outward man ? Then if it proves that God hath appointed any government in a Church , that is Divine Institution , that concerns the good of the soule , and is immediately to work upon that , surely God will be much more provoked there for rejecting it . And going yet further upon search , finding that though we have not a civill government appointed by God as the Jewes had , yet for the Church state , wee have one appointed even by God himself . And reason there must be for it : for whatsoever hath a speciall efficacy upon the heart , must have a spirituall rule for the warrant and direction . Indeed prudence and reason is enough for the ordering of things that concern the outward man , except God will come in with his owne institution . But when it cometh to the ordering of the heart , and there is a spirituall efficacy expected ( as in all Church ordinances there must be ) and that authority by which they are executed giveth a great influence into them , now nothing can goe beyond its principle , therefore it must have a divine institution to give it its efficacy . It may here be demanded , whether hat not God appointed over us a particular civill government as he did over the Jews ? That our government and all lawfull government of other Nations is appointed by God , we must conclude is a certain truth . But not so appointed by God as the government of the Jewes was . And the reason is this , because the Church and Common-wealth of the Jewes was involved in one , and therefore the Apostle speaking of the Church , hee saith they were Aliens , and strangers from the Common-wealth of Israel ; It was meant of the Church state . There was such a kind of Paedagogy under the Law , that the Church and State were involved in one , for Christ would be the head of the Church and Common-wealth too , and appoint them lawes ; And so their government was imediately from heaven . Now for us . That we should have a government according to the rules of wisdome and justice ; that indeed is appointed by God. God would have us have a government ; But he leaveth the ordering of that government to generall rules of prudence and justice . So that now it is lawfull for any Kingdome or Country to agree together , and according to the rules of wisdom and justice , to appoint what government they wil , as vvhether it shall be a Monarchy , or an Aristocracy , or a Democracy , and to limit this according to Covenant of agreement , as whether that the fundamentall povver shall be vvholly put out , or any part reserved , hovv farre this or that Man , or society of Men shall have the Managing of it , and the like ; then so farre as it is agreed upon , vvee are bound in conscience to obey either actively or passively , but no further are vvee bound to obey any Man though he be in authority , yet vvee are not bound to obey him , either actively or passively , conscience is not tyed . Though those men be in authority , yet it is no resisting of authority at all , not to do what they would have . Yea though the thing be lawfull they would have , yet if it be not according to the law of the kingdom , to the first agreement , I may be bound by the rules of prudence to save my selfe ; but it is not authority that binds me to obey out of conscience : For we must of necessity distinguish between men in authority , and the authority of those men . Wherefore so long as wee seeke but to keepe authority in the right channell , that it flows not over the banks , we cannot be charged for resisting the government God hath set over us , though we do not obey the wills of those who are set over us , and therefore there is no cause that we should fear , that God should say to England upon this ground , Loruhamah , hee will have no mercy . To proceed . But I will have mercy upon the house of Judah . The people of Israel they might say , Hosea thou art a Preacher indeed , what preach nothing but judgment , nothing but wrath , to be utterly taken away ? Is there no mercy at all ? Is not God a mercifull God ? Yes saith the Prophet , though you be taken away , God knoweth how to glorifie his mercy ; he hath others that he can make to be objects of his mercy though you be destroyed . From whence first you see that though God utterly reject some , yet in the mean time he hath others to shew mercy unto . Therefore it is no plea for any sinner to say thus , well , I have sinned indeed , but God is mercifull . What if God be mercifull ? so he may be , though thou be damned and perish everlastingly . Yea , whole kingdoms & nations may perish , yet God may be mercifull , God hath stil infinite ways to glorifie his mercy . Many people in desperate moods , lay violent hands upon themselves , & certainly there is a kind of spirit of revenge in it , as if they thought there would be some trouble about it , and so God should lose some honour . But if you will have your will in this , or in any thing else , though you be dead and rotten , and your souls perhaps in chains of darkness , God will have wayes to be glorious in his mercy , whatsoever come of you . But 2. I will have mercy upon the house of Judah . God will alwayes have a Church , he will never destroy his Church at once , the Lord loveth publique worship in the world : Though he will utterly take away the house of Israel , yet he will have mercy upon the house of Judah . Again , Israel might say , what will not God be mercifull to us ? why I pray you what doth Judah get by her worshipping of God in that which you say is the only right way ? Judah indeed keepeth her selfe to Ierusalem , keepeth her selfe to worship in the Temple , but what doth she get by it ? for ought we see Iudah is in as hard an estate , and in as low a condition as we ( nay as we shall see afterward , Iudah was in a lower condition than Israel , ) and certainly such kind of expressions as these they would be ready to have against the Prophet . Well , saith God , let Iudah be what she will , I will have mercy upon her . Though carnal hearts , when they look upon the low condition of the true worshippers of God , think that there is no difference between those that are in a good way , and themselves that are in the ways of sin , yet God will make a difference ; I will have mercy upon Iudah , but not upon Israel . Many carnal men please themselves with this ; I see others that are strict , that pray in their families , that run to Sermons , and wil not do thus and thus , as others do , yet they are as poor , in as mean a condition as any others , what do they get by their forwardness in religion ? Are not we in as good a condition as they ? Well friend , though thy carnal heart think there is no difference between him that serveth God , & him that serveth him not , God hath a time to manifest a difference ; There shall a time come ( saith God , Mal. 3. 18. ) that you shall returne and discerne between the righteous , and the wicked , between him that feareth God and him that feareth him not . I will not have mercy upon Israel , but I will have mercy upon Iudah . Fourthly , Judah had at this time many grosse and fearful evils amongst them , yea scarcely delivered from Sodomy ; it will aske a great deale of time to shew you the state of Judah in regard of the horrible wickednesse that was in it , yet God saith , I will have mercy upon the house of Iudah . What is the reason of this ? Because though Iudah had many grosse evils , yet Iudah kept to the right way of worshipping God , kept to Ierusalem , to the Temple ; so farre they kept the worship of God pure . Hence we see , God will favour a people exceeding much , though there be many weaknesses , yea many wickednesses among them , if they keep the worship of God pure . It is true , there are many spirits that are most bitter against those that seek to worship God in the right way , if they can but get them tripping in any small thing , they follow it against them with all their might , with all the bitternesse that they can possibly . This is not like unto God , God will favour those that worship him in a right way , though for other respects hee may have many advantages against them . But this ( you will say ) seemes to contradict what you said before , for you said , the nearer any are to God , the more he hates their sinnes , and the sins of those that make a shew of worshipping God in a pure manner , are worse than the sins of others . It is true , But as their relation to God in the nearnesse of his worship , is an aggravation of their sins , so their relation to God is a foundation of their hope of mercy from God. How is this ? It makes their sin indeed worse , so as to provoke God to punish them sooner , and perhaps bitterer , yet their relation to God keepeth this ground of faith , that God is their God still , and will have mercy upon them at last . But the wicked though God spare them longer than his own people , yet when he cometh against them he rejecteth them utterly , so he did Israel : Iudah indeed was punished , but yet Iudah had mercy at last , but ( saith God ) I will have no more mercy upon the house of Israel , but will utterly take them away . Fiftly , Israel had prevailed a little before against Iudah ; for if you read in 2 King. 14. 12. you shall finde that Iudah was put to the worst before Israel , the Text saith , They fled every man to their Tents , and Iehoash the King of Israel took amaziah King of Iudah , and came to Ierusalem , and brake down the walls of Ierusalem , from the gates of Ephraim to the corner gate , four hundered cubits : And he took al the gold and silver , and all the vessels that were in the house of the Lord , and in the treasures of the Kings house , and hostages , and returned to Samariah . And this was but a little before this time , Israel had thus prevailed against Iudah , and brought Iudah under , yet now saith God , I will have mercy upon Iudah but not upon Israel . What should we note from hence ? God sometimes sheweth mercy to poor afflicted ones , and yet rejecteth those that are greater & enjoy more prosperity in the world . Many that are poor people , poor souls that are in a low afflicted condition , God looks upno them and sheweth mercy unto them , when brave ones that carry it out , and thrive and live gallantly in the world , are many times rejected of God. Mark what God saith , Zeph , 3. 12. I will leave in the middest of thee an afflicted and poor people , and they shall trust in the name of the Lord. God lookes not at the brave and gallant ones of the world , but at the poor and afflicted ones , and they shal trust in the name of the Lord. We must not then judge at the happiness of men according to their successe in the world : For you may now be delivered , and others kept under affliction , yet afterwards you may be rejected , and the others received unto mercy . Further , Hosea was the Prophet of Israel , he was sent to the ten Tribes , yet Hosea tells them , whose Prophet especially he was , and God would have no more mercy upon them . And he speaks to Judah ( he was not sent to them ) and he tells them that God would have mercy upon them . Here we may learn how impartial the Ministers of God ought to be in their work , they must not goe according to their particular private engagements , though they are engaged more to such a people in divers regards , yet if they be wicked , they must deale faithfully , and plainly , and denounce the judgements of God : And if others , though strangers to them , be godly , they are to give to them that comfort that belongs unto them . My brethren , partiality in those in publick places , especially of the Ministery , is a great evil . It was for this that God said he had made the Priest and the Levite contemptible and base before all the people : Why ? because they were partial in the Law , Malac. 2. 9. 7. It is a great aggravation of the misery of some , that God sheweth mercy to others . For it is here set down as a part of the threatning against Israel , I wil have no more mercy upon Israel , but I wil shew mercy to Judah . To aggravate the misery of Israel , God manifesteth his mercy to Judah . Mark how God in Esay . 65. 13. makes it a part of his threatning against the wicked , that he will shew mercy to his servants : Behold , my servants shall eate , but you shall be hungry ; my servants shall drink , but ye shall be thirstie : Behold , my servants shall rejoyce , but ye shall be ashamed ; Behold , my servants shall sing for joy of heart , but yee shal crie for sorrow of heart , & howle for vexation of spirit . These [ Buts ] are cutting ones to the heart of the wicked . And observe it , here is the word [ Behold ] three times used , in setting out the difference that God will make between his servants and the wicked , and how God will aggravate the misery of the wicked by shewing mercy to people , because it is a thing much to be considered . A like place you have , Mat. 8. 11. Many shal come from the East & West , and shal sit down with Abraham , Isaac , and Jacob , but the children of the Kingdom shal be cast out into utter darkness there shal be weeping and gnashing of teeth . Mark , they shall gnash their teeth when they shal see how they are rejected and others received , gnash their teeth for envie and vexation of spirit , for it is a great aggravation of mens misery . And is it not fulfilled this day ? How do many bite their nailes and gnash their very teeth to see the mercy that God sheweth to his people in giving them liberty and encouragement in his service , while he casteth shame & contempt upon their faces , & bringeth them forth to answer for their wickedness , and to suffer condigne punishment . Wicked mens spirits vex at this , it is that which they cannot possibly beare , it is that which galleth and fretteth the very gaul of their heart to see the mercie of God to his people now in these dayes ; to see such an opportunity as this , to meet together with this liberty to exercise our selves in the word , when they are caged up . This they gnash and grind their teeth at . It is observeable , that which you have in Acts 22. 21. Paul was speaking there a great while to the Jews , & they heard him quietly till he came to that word Depart , for I wil send thee far hence unto the Gentiles ; the Text saith , they gave him audience unto this word and then they lift up their voices , & said , Away with such a fellow from the earth , for it is not fit that he should live . What to disgrace us thus , and to think that the Gentiles should come to have more mercie then we ! Away with such a fellow from the earth . We have such an expression likewise in Luke 4. 26. Our Saviour Christ told the Jews of the Widow of Sarepta , that Elias the Prophet was sent onely to her , and that Naaman the Syrian of all the Lepers in Israel was cleansed ; They of the Synagogue when they heard these things , the Text saith , They were filled with wrath , and rose up and thrust him out of the Citie , and led him to the edge of the hill whereon their Citie was built , that they might cast him down head-long . They were so vexed at Christs Sermon there , that they could have broke his neck as soon as hee had done preaching . It was at this word , There were many Widows in Israel in the time of Elias , but unto none of them was Elias sent save unto the Widow of Sarepta ; & many lepens were in Israel in the daies of Elisha , and none of them were clensed , saving Naaman the Syrian . The meaning is this , Christ intimated thus much , that though there were many of the people of Israel , yet the Lord would have mercy but upon a few of them ; yea that God would choose rather other people to shew mercy to , then themselves ; at this they were inraged . And certainly this wil be the aggravation of the misery of the damned in hell : When a damned soul in hell shall there come to know the mercy of God to others : It may be wicked parents shal see their children that came out of their loyns . or out of their wombes , at the right hand of Iesus Christ in glory , and themselves cast down into eternal torment ; this will be a stinging aggravation of misery , no mercy unto thee , but mercy unto thy gracious child , the child that thou snibbedst and rebukedst for being forward , he is now at the right hand of Christ & thou cast into everlasting misery . So it may be a poor servant , a poor boy in a family , may stand at the right hand of Iesus Christ hereafter and ascend with him in glory ; and his rich Master that was , that murmured at him , & would not suffer him to have the least time for to do God service in , but checked him in every thing , and cast it upon his conscience , oh this is your preciseness : perhaps he sees himself cast down into eternal misery , when that poor servant of his , that poor apprentise shall go up to eternal glory But yet further , God saith , I will have mercy upon the house of Judah . Here is another note very observable , & much concerning our present condition too . God promiseth to Judah mercy , after Israels rejection ; yet if we search the Scriptures we shal find that after this promise both before the rejection of Israel was executed , and after the execution thereof ; I say , we shal finde that even Judah was under very sore afflictions , and a sad condition she was put into after this promise was made . As if you will turn but to that Scripture ( for we must look to one Scripture and compare it with another . 2 Chron , 28. 6. you shall see there the Text saith , that Pekah the Son of Remaliah slew in Iudah an hundred and twenty thousand in one day : We never heard of such a battel , such a slaughter , wee wonder when we hear of five or ten thousand slain in the field , here we have 120000. slaine , and this was after this promise that this slaughter was made : yea & further , [ ver . 8. ] There were besides carried captives 200000. women , sons , and daughters . yea further , [ ver . 17 ] The Edomites came and had smitten some of Iudah , and carried away captives . And [ ver . 18. ] The Philistims had invaded the Citties of the Low-country , and of the south of Iudah , and they dwelt there : And ver . 19. ] it is said , the Lord brought Iudah low , And [ ver . 20. ] it is said that Tilgath-Pilneser King of Assyria , whom Ahas had sent to help him , he came & distressed them , but strengthened them not . Here was Pekah the son of Remaliah slayes 120000 , and carries away captive 200000. then there comes the Philistims and they invaded the countrey , and then the Edomites they carried away Captives , and God bringeth them low , and then comes Tilgath-Pilneser , and he instead of helping , distressed them . What a case were they in now ? yet this was after this promise , for this promise was made to Judah in the beginning of Hosea's Prophesie , for it is ver . 2. The beginning of the word of the Lord by Hosea , and it was before the rejection of Israel , for it was in the reigne of Ahas that Judah was brought into this low condition , which was about 22. yeers before the execution of the sentence against Israel , for that was fulfilled in the sixth yeere of the reigne of Hezekiah , which ( if you take it from the beginning of the reigne of Ahaz , who reigned 16. yeers ) make 22. yeers . Now this promise to Iudah ( as I told you in the beginning ) was made in the dayes of Vzziah King of Iudah , and of Jeroboham King of Israel , which was at least 76. yeeres before the rejection of Israel ; and yet after the making of this promise , Judah you see cometh to be in this so sad a condition . Yea and wee shall finde besides , that presently after Israels rejection , though God had said he would reject Israel , and be mercifull to Judah , so that a man would think now that Iudah should come into a better condition than ever , yet see how Iudah was dealt with . And for that marke the 2. king . 18. 13. the Text saith that in the thirteenth yeer of Hezekiah , Senacherib king Assyria came up against Judah , and this was after the casting off of the ten Tribes , for that was in the sixth yeer of Hezekiah , as ver . 10. and seven yeers after came Senacherib against Iudah , thinking to prevaile against them as they had done before against Israel ; and then Hezekiah was faine to give him all the silver that was found in the house of the Lord , and in the treasures of the Kings house ; Yea the Text saith , ver . 16. that Hezekiah was faine to cut off all the gold from the doores of the Temple of the Lord , & from the pillars , and to give it to the King of Assyria . Now the Lord keepe our Kingdom , our Parliament from giving the gold of the Temple doores in any way of compliance with any malignant party ; that have any evil eye at the beauty of our Sion . Yea after Senacherib had gotten this , not content with it , he sendeth Rabshekah from Lachish , with a great host against Ierusalem . You may see , the adversaries of the Church are never satisfied , yeeld to them , gratifie them , in what you will , this is the first temptation : what will you be so strict , and rugged , and yeeld to them in nothing ? but if they prevaile with you , to begin to yeeld , they will never have done , they will still encroach upon you , Hezekiah yeelded to Senacherib , even to take away the gold of the Temple doores , yea a little while after he cometh againe with a great host , so that Hezekiah said , it was a day of trouble and rebuke , Chap. 19. Nothing will quiet them but the ruine of the Church , they must needs have that , Downe with it , downe with it , even to the ground , nothing else will satisfie them . To this low estate and sad condition was Iudah brought not long after Israel was taken away , and yet God promiseth mercy to Iudah for all this . VVhat shall we learne from this ? This profitable lesson for our present condition , God may intend much mercy , yea God may be in a way of mercy to a people , yet may bring that people into very great straits & difficulties . The promises of Gods mercies are alwayes to be understood with condition of the crosse . If we thinke that upon the promise of mercy we shall be delivered from all trouble & affliction , we lay more upon the promise , then the promise will or can beare . It is a great evil that proceedeth from much weaknes of spirit and distemper of heart , for people , though God hath done great things for them , yet if there come any rub in the way , and difficulty , any trouble , Oh now we are gone , now vve are all lost , now God hath left us , we hoped that there would have come mercy , we looked for light , and behold darkness , now the heart sinketh , and all is presently given for gone . Know my brethren this is an evil and an unbeleeving heart , an evil and an unthankful heart . God hath indeed done great things for us , yet how ready are wee though God be in such a way , a glorious way of mercy , if we hear of any difficulty , of any little rub , any combining of the adversaries together ? we must expect nothing now but blood , and bid farwel , and adue to all our peace ; we thought to have had happy dayes , but now the Lord is coming out against us , and all that is done must be undone againe . Why , why are you so full of unbeleefe ? Surely this is unworthy of Christians , that professe an interest in God , & unworthy of all the good that God hath done for us . Peter though before he had walked upon the seas through the power of Christ , yet when the waves came , now Master save me , or else I perish . Hath not God made us walk upon the waves of the sea all this while ? wrought as great a Miracle for us in England as he did for Peter ? Yet when a wave doth but rise a little higher then before , we are so distressed in our spirits that we can scarcely cry , Oh Master save us ; but we look one upon another and discourage one another hearts , and in stead of crying unto God , wee cry out one to another in a discouraging way , and so pine away in our iniquities : Certainly God is exceedingly angry at such a demeanour as this , and yet this is ordinary , both in regard of nations , and particular persons . Of nations : It was so high with Judah ( for I desire to keep as close as I can to the work I am about ) though God had made this promise to Judah here , yet if we look into the 7. Isa . ( Isaiah was contemporary with Hosea & it was not much after the making of this promise ) wee shall see how they were troubled with fear ; saith the Text , When it was told the house of David , saying , Syria is confederate with Ephraim , the heart of the King of Judah , and the heart of his people were moved as the trees of the wood were moved with the winde , they were afraid and shook as the very leaves of the tree shake , both the king of Judah and all the people , Well , but God speaks to the Prophet , in the 8. Chap , ver . 11. ( and it was at this time when they were so troubled because of the enemies coming against them ) God I say in that Chapter speaks to the Prophet , & ( saith the text ) he speakes with a strong hand , saying , say not ye , a Confederacy , a confederacy : Oh the King of Israel & the king of Syria are confederate together , what shal we do ? we are undone , we are lost for ever ; say not ye , A confederacy , neither fear ye this fear , nor be afraid , but sanctifie the Lord of hosts himself , and let him be your fear . Thus God would have his Saints do , not when you hear of confederate enemies , or any ill tidings abroad ; Oh the papists are linked together , & A confederacy , a confederacy : do not say a confederacy , fear not their fear , but sanctifie the Lord of hosts himself , & let him be your fear , and let him be your dread , & he shal be for a sanctuary to you : and mark the resolution of the Prophet afterward , ver . 17. I will wait upon the Lord that hideth his face from the house of Jacob , and I will looke for him . Oh that this were the disposition of our hearts ! Take that note away wi●h you , amongst many , though you cannot remember all , when you hear so many rumors of fears and troubles , as if all were gone , and there were now no more hope , Let this be your answer ; I will wait upon the Lord that hideth his facè from the house of Jacob , for God is in a way of mercy , and mercy certainly we shall have , let us look for it . And for particular persons , how ordinary is it though God be in a wonderful gracious way of mercy towards them , yet if they do but feel their corruptions stirring never so little , all is gone presently . I was indeed in a good way , but God is gone , Christ is gone , and Mercie is gone , & all is gone , surely God intendeth no thoughts of good to me . Oh be not unbeleeving , but beleeving ; For this is the way of God , though he promiseth great mercie , yet in the meane time he may bring into great afflictions . I will not have mercy upon Israel , but I will have mercy upon Judah , and will save them . For a people to be saved when others neare them are destroyed , this is a great setting out of Gods goodnes to them : as to stand upon the shore safely , & see others suffer shipwrack before us , is a great augmentation of Gods mercy towards us . When the people of Israel could stand upon the banks , and see the Egyptians tumbling in the Red-sea , and their dead bodies cast upon the shoare , then , saith the Text , sang Moses and the children of Israel unto the Lord. And this kinde of mercie the Lord hath granted to us in England , for while our neighbouring nations have been in a combustion , and many of them spoiled , we have sate under our own vines , & under our own fig-trees , and our greatest afflictions have been only the hearing of what our brethren have suffered & yet do suffer : Whereas all about us is as the fiery furnace , and we walk in the middest of it like the three children , & our garments not touched , nor the smell of the fire passed on them : when as we see all Countreys as Gideons fleece , bewetted with the tempest of Gods wrath , yea with their own blood , behold we are dry , aud the sun-shine of Gods mercie is upon us , the blackness of the misery of our brethren is the brightnesse of our mercie . I will save them . It is the Lord that will save them . This is an upbraiding of Israel . Oh Israel you think to be saved by your owne policy , you have got a fetch beyond God , you are afraid that the people should go up to Jerusalem to worship , therefore you have set up the two Calves to save your selves . But Judah shall be saved , and saved after another way ; Iudah need not go to such carnall setches and policies to save themselves , for the Lord shall save them . Though carnal hearts thinke , and endeavour to save themselves onely by their own policie and carnall waies , yet let Gods people know , that they have a stronger means to save them then all the policie in the world . So long as the wisdom , the power , the mercy , the faithfulnesse of God is for them , they need no other string to their bow but that . I will save them by the Lord. VVhat is the meaning of this ? This by Interpreters is carried concerning Christ : That God the Father promiseth to save by Christ . As Dan. 9. 17. we have such an expression in prayer , Now O Lord hear the prayer of thy servant for the Lords sake ; that is , for Christs sake : So here , God wil save by the Lord ; that is , by Christ . A sweet lesson we have from thence : viz. That the administration of Gods grace to his people is given into the hands of JESUS CHRIST . It is Christ that doth save the people of God , and hath saved them in all former times , in all ages . It is true , in the merits of Christ all are saved ; that every one will grant , as Zach. 9. 11. By the blood of thy Covenant I have sent forth thy prisoners out of the pit . All the prisoners of Gods people ever since the world began , that have been sent out of the pit , it hath been by the blood of the covenant , by the merits of Christ : and not onely so , but Christ in the administration of all hath been the chiefe , he hath been the Angel of Gods presence , that hath stood up for his people in all their necessities , he hath been the great Captain & deliverer , the Saviour of them all . Let Christ then have the honour of a Soveraigne to us in regard of our salvation in outward deliverances . Let us look up to him then for salvation in all our straits . And if Christ was the Saviour of his people in all ages , and still will be , then surely those ages and places where Christ is most known and honoured may expect the greatest salvation . And this is for our comfort , far above all the ages that ever was since the world began , Christ is most known and honoured in this age , and of all places in the world , here in England and amongst our countrey men ; and if Christ will be a Saviour of those places where he is known and honoured , surely England may expect a salvation : England hath had it , and as England is peculiar in the way of the knowledg of Christ , so England shall be peculiar in a way of Gods grace to her . I will save them by the Lord their God. Not your God oh Israel , but their God. Thus he upbraydeth the people of Israel that they had forsaken their God ; that Iudah had kept their God , but Israel had not . It is a great upbrayding of a people when it can be said of them that they have forsaken the Lord. It is a wofull thing not to have God to be our God at all , that conscience can charge this upon a man that Daniel did upon Belshazzar , That God in whose hand thy breath his , & whose are all thy ways , hast thou not glorified ; but that conscience can charge this , That God that thou hast chosen , that thou hast entred into covenant withall , Oh thou apostatized soule , thou apostatized Nation , thou hast forsaken him , he is not thy God. This is a sore and heavy charge indeed . Again , The Lord their God. It seemes he is the God of Judah , though Judah had many evils , but not the God of Israel . Those then that do not worship God in a right way , God will not acknowledge himself to be worshipped by them at all . The people in the wildernesse proclaimed a fast to Jehovah , and yet the Apostle 1 Cor. 10. 7. calleth them Idolaters , and it is said they sacrificed to Idols , because they worshipped God by the Calfe , and not in Gods way . Though we may think we worship God , yet if wee doe not worship him in his own way , he doth not own himself to be worshipped by us at all . Again , The Lord their God. This could not but sting Israel , that Judah should be thought to have more interest in God then Israel had . It is a stinging thing to carnal hearts , and much bitternesse of spirit it must needes be entertained withall , that any one should but think of challenging any peculiarity of interest in God. Thus they scorned at Christ , Oh he trusted in God , he thinketh he hath more interest in God then others , now let his God come and save him . I remember in the book of Martyrs we read that the Papists were much vexed against the protestants , because they used to say , our God and our Lord , they were knowne by this speech , and the Papists were inraged against them for this , because they seemed to claime more interest in God then others . And indeed what is the cause of the quarrel in the World against Gods people , but because they thinke they claime more peculiarity and interest in God than others ? and this is the reason that soule-searching preaching cannot be endured , because it makes a difference between the one and the other , and shewes that some have an interest in God more than others . Hence it is that in no places in the world mens spirits so fret against preaching as in England , why ? because there is not such soul-examining , such soule-distinguishing preaching in the World as in England . Yea that is the reason of the bitternesse of one professor against another , because one is a Protestant at large , and the other manifesteth more power of godlinesse , is more strict in his course ; and seemes to claime a greater share in God than the former . Profession in England is a more distinguishing profession than in other places . I will save them by the Lord their God. God is the God of Judah still , therefore God will save them . So long as God is our God we need not fear our adversaries . Yee have heard of that Palladium of the Heathens in Troy , they imagined that so long as that Idol was kept safe , they were unconquerable ; all the strength in Greece was not able to prevaile against it , wherefore the Greecians sought by all means they could to get it from them . I have read of the men of Tyrus that they were afraid their god Apollo should forsake them : they therfore chained and nailed that Idol to a post that they might be sure of it , because they thought their safety was in it . Let us fasten our selves to God in an everlasting covenant , and certainly God will be fast to us , & then we are safe enough . I will save them : but how ? what shall Judah be saved by and not Israel ? Judah a poor contemptible people , how saved ? I will not save them by bow , nor by sword , nor by battel , by horses nor by horsemen . It shall not be by any outward meanes , but by the immediate hand of God. This promise that God would save them not by bow nor by sword , &c. it was performed two several times , and there is a third time for the fulfilling of it which is yet to come . It was done first when the Angel of the Lord went out and smote in one night in the Camp of the Assyrians an hundred fourscore & five thousand : 1 kings 11. 35. and God tells them , that the King of Assyria should not shoote an arrow there , nor come before the Citie with a shield : so God saved them without bow , for they had no need to use the bow then , because the Angel of the Lord destroyed them . The second time was when he saved Judah in their returne from captivity , then as it is Zach. 4. 6 , he saved them not by might nor by power , but by my spirit , saith the Lord of Hosts . Marke the phrase , as if God should say , I have strength , for I am the Lord of hosts , I can command Armies , if I would , to save you ; No , though I be the Lord of hosts , yet I will not save you by might nor by power , but by my spirit . Therefore Isa . 43. 7. their strength is said to be in sitting still , and ver . 15. in quietnesse , and confidence shall be your strength . Thus they were saved not by bow , nor by sword . Then the third time , which is yet to come , that is , in the wonderful work of God in calling the Jewes , when God shall raise up out of them , a glorious people to himselfe , and save Judah once again , and it shall not be by sword , nor by bow , but by the Lord their God ; For as it is said , Dan. 2. 34. the stone that smote the Image was cut out without hands , so there shall be a power that is not visible from whence it comes , but Jesus Christ shal come from heaven to do his great workes , As the lightning from the East to the West , so shal the comming of the sonne of man be . What learne we from hence ? First , God ties not himself to the use of outward means in procuring of good to his people . Though all outward means fail , yet there may be wayes of salvation for the Saints . Wicked mens hearts presently sinke , if outward means fail : And indeed so much as our hearts faile when outward meanes faile , it is a signe that we did before rest upon the means , and if we had had the means , we should have robbed God of his honour . We must use means , but not rely upon the means . I might shew you excellent Texts of Scripture for this , as Psal . 33. 16. There is no King saved by the multitude of an host , a mighty man is not delivered by much strength , &c. And Psal . 44. 5. 6. Through thee will we push downe our enemies , through thy name we will tread them under , that rise up against us ; for I will not trust in my bowe , neither shal my sword save me , &c. But secondly , Not by bow , nor by sword , &c. Deliverance of a people without bow , and without sword is a great mercy : For such are the wofull miseries that a people doe suffer when warre commeth , that usually the victory will scarce pay the charges of the battel : though we be sure to be saved at last , yet if we must be saved by bow , and by sword , I say the misery that we may suffer in our salvation , may be more then the salvation . It was the height of that mercy promised , Isa . 9. 5. that it should be without confused noise and garments rolled in blood . Such a mercy we have had ; and had Christ come to have raigned amongst us , though he had come with his garments rolled in blood , we should willingly have entetrayned him ; If he had come ryding upon his red horse ; But behold he comes ryding upon his white horse , in peace and mercy all this while , and the mercies we have had , have been very cheap , they have not been by bow , nor by sword . And if God should come at length by the sword , and bring perfect salvation to us by blood , which God forbid ; but if he should , we have had already more mercy without blood , than our bloods are worth ; should we now have our bloods shed , God hath paied us beforehand : who almost in this congregation , but two or three yeers agoe would have lost his blood to procure so much mercy to England , as England hath had already ? Further. Such is the love of God to his people , that he is pleased to worke for them beyond meanes . The other point was , that he can save his people without means ; This , that he will do it beyond means : For the grace , and love of God to his people , is so high , & glorious , that it is beyond that which can be conveyed by means , therefore it must be done more imediatly . Exod. 15. 6. Thy right hand , O Lord is become glorious in power , in the greatnesse of thine excellency thou hast overthrowne them that rose up against thee . First , it is the hand of God , Secondly , it is the right hand of God , Thirdly , it is the right hand of God in power , Fourthly , this is glorious in power . Fiftly , there is excellency ; and Sixthly , there is the greatnesse of Excellency . It is an high expression . Magnitudine excellentiae , or magnitudine elationis , in the greatnesse of thy lifting up , for the same word signifieth pride , that is here translated excellency ; and if God he lifted up in any thing , it is when hee shewes himself for his people . Now take all these six expressions , Gods hand , Gods right hand , his right hand in power , a right hand that is become glorious in power , his excellency , the greatnesse of his excellency , and all this for his Saints , surely this is more then can be conveyed by means , God must borne imediately and save them by himselfe . But lastly , the more imediate the hand of God appeareth in his mercy to his people , the more sweet and precious ought that mercy to be then ( this were an excellent argument to follow to the full , and so neerly concerning us ; you see the scriptures were made for other times , then for the times in which they were first revealed ) a most excellent place of Scripture you have for this Psal . 21. 13. Be thou exalted O Lord in thine own strength , so will we sing , and praise thy power . When God cometh in his own strength , and not in the strength of the creature , and by meanes , then do the Saints sing and praise the power of God. Dulcious ex ipso fonte , wee use to say , that which cometh imediately cometh exceeding sweetly : Then the Saints may boast in God , when God cometh immediately with his salvation , so you have it , Psal . 44. 7. 8. Thou hast saved us from our enemies , and hast put them to shame that hated us : What followeth ? in God will we boast all the day long , and praise thy name for ever . So that the Saints of God then praise God , nay they may lawfully give up themselves to boast , when God works imediately . When God works by means , then they must take heed of ascribing to the means , but when God cometh imediately , then they may boast . It is the blessednesse of Heaven , that Gods mercy cometh imediately : created mercies are the most perfect mercies . Suppose God had bin with them by bow , and by sword , when Senacherib came against them , could they have been saved as they were ? Gods hooke that he put in his nose , and bridle that he put in his lipps ( for so God saith he would doe with him , use him as a beast ) were better then their sword or bow . Surely , if ever any nation knew what it was to have imediate mercies come down from heaven , England doth : If ever Nation saw God exalting himselfe in his own power , England hath : we have lived ( and blessed be God we have lived ) to see the Lord exalting himselfe in his own power : Oh let us cry out with the Psalmist ( and with that I shall end ) Be thou exalted O Lord in thy own strength amongst us , so will we still , and still , and still , sing and praise thy power . The Fourth Lecture HOSEA 1. 8. &c. 8. Now when she had weaned Lo-ruhamah , shee co●ceived and bare a sonne . 9. Then said God , call his name Ly●ammi , for you are not my people , and I will not be your God. 10. Yet the number of the children of Israel shal be as the sand of the sea , which cannot be measured nor numbred , &c. THe last day was finished the signification of the name of the second childe of Hosea , Lo-ruhamah . We now come unto the weaning of it , and the begetting of the third , Lo-ammi . When shee had weaned Loruhamah . We doe not reade of the first child Jezreel that it was weaned ; but the second childe Loruhamah that was weaned , before the third child Loammi was conceived . What is the meaning of this ? There is much of Gods minde shewed unto us even in this very thing that we ordinarily let slip and passe over . The reason is , because this second childe Loruhamah was to signifie unto the people of Israel their carrying out of their own Countrey into captivity into Assyria : It was to signifie to them that they should be weaned from the comforts and delights that there were in their owne Countrey ; they should be taken away from their milke and honey that they had there ; and be carryed into Assyria , and be there fed with hard meate , even with the water of affliction and the bread of affliction . The first childe did but signifie their scattering , especially in regard of their seditions amongst themselves . But the second childe signified the carrying away all of them wholly into captivity from their own Land , Therefore the second childe is weaned , Cibis sustent abitur immundis , So. Jerome hath it , They should be carried amongst the Gentiles , and be fed with unclean meat , they should be deprived of prophesie , and of the milke of the word , and of the ordinances that they enjoyed , So Vatablus . Ordinances are as the breasts of consolation , out of which the people of God suck soul-satisfying comforts . So you have it , Esay , 66. 11. That you may suck and be satisfied with the breasts of her consolations , that you may milke out and be delighted with the aboundance of her glory . And Cant. 1. 4. We will remember thy loves more than wine : The old latine hath it , Wee will remember thy dugs above wine ; and so the words will beare . These people should be deprived of those dugs and breasts out of which they had sucked much sweetnesse before , even deprived of all comfort in God. Gods people hang upon God , and suck comfort from him , even as the infant upon the mothers brest , and sucks sweetnesse , and comfort , and nourishment from thence . This expression then of weaning the childe , implies these two things . First , That the enjoyment of the comforts of a sweet native soile , specially where there are any ordinances together with it , is a very great blessing of God ; and the being deprived of it is a great affliction , yea to some it comes as a curse . The very sucking of the ayr of a sweet native soile ( and especially such a comfortable soile as we have here in England ) is certainly a great blessing from the Lord. Those that have been deprived of it , and banished away , have been more sensible of it than any of you who alwayes have enjoyed it . Many have laine sucking at the sweetnesse of this our English ayr , and at the comforts that there have been in their accommodations , so long , till they have sucked in that which ( if Gods mercy had not prevented ) would have proved to have been poyson to them to have baned their soules . But I speak not of all , I make no question but there have beene many of Gods dear servants that have tarried in their native soile , and kept the uprightnesse of their hearts and consciences as cleare as others that went away . It is true , the comforts of a native soile are sweet , but except we may enjoy them with the breasts of these consolations ( or Ordinances of the Church ) they are notable to satisfie the soul : yea , except we may suck out such milke of these breasts as is sincere milke , and not soiled nor sowred by the inventions of men , better a great deale that we were weaned from all the sweetnesse and accommodation we have in our native soile by the mortifying of our affections to them , then that God should weane us from them , by sending of us into captivity , or by giving the adversary power over us , or by making the Land too hot for us . But that for the first . Again , in that this childe was weaned , and by the weaning was to signify their being carried away out of their own into a strange Countrey ; this expression implies thus much . That it is an evil thing for a childe to be taken from the mothers brest too soone , and sent away to be nursed by others . The expression doth fully imply this , for it is to tell us the evill condition of the people , that they should be taken from their own , and sent to another Countrey : This their affliction is set out by a childes being taken from its owne mothers brest ; it could not expresse what it intended , except it were to imitate thus much unto us , that it is an evil thing for a childe to be taken from its own mothers bres● . It is unnatural then for mothers out of daintinesse , and curiosity to deny the fruit of their wombes , the comfort of their breasts . It is true , in time of weaknesse and danger , when it may be dangerous to themselves and the childe , God permits it . But when it is meerly ( I say ) out of daintinesse , and curiosity , certainly it is an evil that is against nature it self . Hannahs care of her sonne Samuel , is recorded by this , & it is mentioned by the holy Ghost , in her commendation , that she gave him suck . 1 Sam. 1. 23 , The woman abode and gave her sonne suck untill she weaned him , saith the Text. It is said of the Ostrich , Iob. 39. 16. That she is hardned against her young ones as though they were not hers ; and this Ostrich is reckoned among the fowles that are unclean : And Lam. 4. 3. Even the sea-monsters draw out their breasts , they give suck to their young ones , yet the daughter of my people is become cruel , like the Ostridges in the wildernesse , more cruel then the very sea-monsters themselves , that draw out their breasts and give suck to their young ones . The instruction of the son belongeth to the father , the nursing of the son belongeth to the Mother . The Mothers milke is the most profitable and wholesome for any one , ( saith Plinie ) except it be in some extraordinary case . We read in 2 Tim. 3. 3. that in the latter day , when evil times should come , some should be without natural affection : that 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 , that is here spoken of , is the affection of the parents to the children , as well as of the children to the parents . But enough of this ; if not too much , to such that are so pleased with their curiosity and daintinesse ( the children of their own fancies ) that they neglect the fruit of their wombes & natures duty to the children of their bodies . But further observe here , That the Lord staies for the weaning of the child , he staies till Lo-ruhamah was weaned before Lo-ammi was conceived . And there is much to be known in this . Why doth God stay ? This is to shew the great patience of God toward his people : For God was now about to reject his people utterly , from being his people , God was about to come with the height of his wrath , to declare that they were no more his people ; and here God makes a stop , stays till Lo●ruhamah was weaned , I have read of the Jewes , that their manner was to be a long time , three yeeres sometimes , before they weaned their children . God then it seemes stayed long here , before he would have the third childe , ( that is Lo-ammi ) born , before he would come with that dreadful sentence , you are not my people , and I will not be your God. First when Jezreel was born , then they are scattered up and down , yea but they are not all carried away captive yet : Then Lo-ruhamah is born , and then they are gone , carried away captive , never to return again . But for all this , God may yet own them in their captivity ; This is not so bad as for God to say I will have no more to do with you as my people ; Lord though we be under affliction , under the power of our enemies , own us still , acknowledge us to be thine , though we be in the fiery furnace , yet let us have thee to be our God , No ( saith God ) you shall not onely be scattered , but you shall be all carried away captive , and I will not own you neither , I will cast you off , you shall not be my people , neither will I be your God. Now before this God makes a stop . Hence observe first . That God stops in his anger for a while as long as he pleaseth . God is called , Nah. 1. 2. The Lord of anger , so are the words , though translated otherwise . We may apply it at least thus , God is the Lord of his own anger , he can let it out as far as he will , he canstop it when he will , he can command it to come in when he pleaseth . It is not so with us ; our anger , our passions are Lords over us ; if we once let our anger our passions arise , we cannot get them down againe when we would , we cannot still them when we please ; if we let our affections run , we cannot call them in when we will , but are sometimes slaves to our own passions , and they lord it over us . This is that frame of spirit that we should all labour for , to be like to God , though angry , yet sin not , so as we can stop when we will , and command our anger as we please . As it is said of God , that he sayes to the proud waves , Hitherto shalt thou go & no further : Oh that we were able to say to those proud waves of our passions , Hitherto are you gone , but you shall goe no further ! Againe , mark here , God stoppeth in his anger for a while . When this dreadful judgement was come to be executed , God is even ready to say ( as he saith afterward in this Prophesie ) How shall I give thee up ? Oh Ephraim ? How shall I deliver thee , O Israel ? Teaching us thus much , That those that have been once the people of God must not be suddenly rejected from being Gods people : but when we are about any such thing , either to reject any particular man or woman ( who have made profession of Religion ) from being Gods , or to reject a Church from being Gods ; we had need make a stop , we had need pause , we had need examine the matter very well ; yea and when we have examined , and are ready to doe it , to make a stop againe , and to bethink our selves what we doe . We must not be too sudden in rejecting those that have been once the people of God. from being the people of God now : It is Gods way you see here . Many men are too hasty in this point , in rejecting both particular servants of God , and particular Churches from belonging to God , assoone as they see some few things amisse in them , especially if there be any thing grosse , presently they are no Churches at all , they are altogether Antichristian , they belong to the Beast ; and so while they strike at the Beast , they wound the Lamb. Certainly there is to be acknowledged much of Christ , not onely in particular Saints , but in regard of the Church Ordinances of many particular congregations in England : we must take heed therefore of too sudden rejection of them from belonging to God , to be his people in that way of Church fellowship . We come now to the conception of the third childe . It was a sonne , and his name was Lo-ammi . The second childe a daughter , but the third a Son : What is the meaning of this ? I told you ( the last day ) that by the second childe was noted the state of the people at that time , that it grew weaker and more effeminate : weaker in regard of their outward strength , and more effeminate in regard of their spirits : And that I made good to you out of the History of those times in the book of the Kings . Well , but now it is a son , what doe they grow stronger then before , now they are come neerer to destruction then before ? Yes , though neerer to ruine and destruction , and more heavy wrath then they were before , yet they get up a little strength before that time : Therefore the third childe is a sonne . Concerning the strength that this people had got at this time , a little before this their utter rejection , upon which their spirits were raised , you shall finde the History of it in 2 Kings 17. 4. where you have a declaration of the state of the ten Tribes then when Lo-ammi was borne ; for the Text tells us , that they began to joyne in confederacy with the King of Egypt ; and so whereas formerly they had done homage by presents to the King of Assyria , now being confederate with the King of Egypt , they refused to bring any more presents to him ; they begin now to be a jolly people , and hoped to cast off that yoke of bondage under which they were in regard of the Assyrians . God sometimes letteth men , and Nations , and Churches to rise a little out of their affliction , before their utter ruine : he gives them a little reviving , they have a little lightning before their death . Many men think themselves in a very good condition , if having been in affliction , their afflictions doe begin once to abate , and they begin to get a little up ; now they think they are safe , and they are ready to say with Agag , Surely the bitternesse of death is gone , surely the worst is past . But you may sometimes be recovered , when God intendeth you should be suddenly rejected . Many may be preserved from some judgements , because they are reserved to greater judgments . The Lord hath begun indeed to give us in England a little reviving , a little strength to enable us to rise against the oppressions of our Adversaries , those cruel oppressions . But let us not be secure , notwithstanding this ; for though we have some little reviving , if we follow not God on in the way of humiliation and reformation , this our little reviving may be but a lightning before our death . And yet further , it is very observable , when the condition of Israel was at this time when God was about to say , Lo-ammi , they are not my people ; what it was not only in regard of their strength , but what it was in regard of their sins . For you shall finde ( if you examine the History ) that the people of Israel were at this time somewhat better then they had been before : not only had gotten somwhat more strength , but they were somewhat better in regard of their sins then they had been ; Imeane they had lesse sins then they had before : yet now God is saying to them , Lo-ammi , You are not my people . And for that observe , 2 Kings 17. 2. if you reade that Chap●● , you shall finde that the very time of the utter rejection of Israel was in the dayes of Hoshea , and the Text saith , He did evil in the sight of the Lord ; the King in whose dayes they were so rejected , did evil in the sight of the Lord , but not as the Kings of Israel that were before him . He was not so bad as the former Kings of Israel , and yet in his dayes there comes utter destruction upon Israel . Yea and as the King was not so bad then as others before him ; so it may seeme the people were not so bad as in former time , for ver . 9. the Text saith , That the children of Israel did secretly those things that were not right , against the Lord their God. Indeed they were sinful , but their sinfulnes was secret , they did not sin with such an open impudent face , as it seemed , as heretofore . Yet in this Kings time , and when these people were thus , commeth their utter ruine . What may we learne from hence ? This , That sometimes when there are greater sinnes , patience stayes judgement ; and yet afterward when a people seeme to be in a better condition , not onely in regard of their outward strength , but then in regard of their sins too , yet then God cometh with his wrath upon that people . Let us not flatter our selves , although we can say that some things here amongst us are not so bad as heretofore they have beene . Suppose there be some partial reformation , this is not ground enough to secure us . We cannot reason thus , Why heretofore the Land was more sinful then now ; and the Governours were more oppressing then now , there hath been ( thanks be to God ) much reformation . This is not enough , we may be neerer the forest misery at this time ( if our reformation be not a through reformation ) then we were before . And the reason is this because God when he comes against a Nation , he doth not onely come against it for the present sins that they are actually guilty of at that time , but to reckon with them for their sins comited fore , though the judgement falls out to be inflicted just at that time . It may be a concourse of many passages of Gods providence might so fall out as might su●e with Gods ends , that the destruction of this nation should be at this time rather then before , yet the nation not more sinful then before , but to fulfill other passages of providence that God intends ; and then he comes to reckon with them for sins that were along time ago committed , & for their present sinnes altogether . As hee doth sometimes with particular persons : perhaps they have been drunkards , unclean , wicked , 20. yeers agone , God hath spared them , afterward upon some lesser sins , God may take advantage to come against them for all their other sins together . We use to say , It is not the last blow of the axe that fells the oak , perhaps the last may be a weaker blow then any of the former , but the oake was a felling down all the while before , the other blowes made way for the felling of it , and at length a little blow comes and doth it . So our former sinnes may be the things that make way for our ruine , and then at length some lesser sinnes may do it . You that have been guilty of grosse sins , take heed of small sins ; for though God hath pared you when you were guilty of great sins , do not say that he will spare you now you commit lesser sins ; but at this time of committing lesser sins , you may be called to an account for grosser . Did you never know a house stand out against many strong and blustring winds , yet afterward some little puffe of wind hath tumbled it down ? So it is with Nations and people that somtimes stand out ( through Gods patience when their sins are grosse and vile , & afterwards upon some lesser sins they are utterly undone . VVhat is the name of his son ? The name of this son is Lo-ammi , and the word signifieth ( as it is interpreted here by God himselfe ) You are not my people , and I will not be your God. The people to whom Hosea prophesied , they might have objected against him thus : What , Hosea doe you say that God will not have any more mercy upon us ? what will not God have mercy upon his own people ? Is not God our God ? What doe you threaten such-things as these are ? The Prophet answers , It is true , God hath been your God , and you have been his people , but there is an end of those dayes , God now degradeth you from those glorious priviledges that formerly you had , he willowne you no more to be his , and you shall have no further right to own him to be yours . From whence First this , A people that have been once a people dear to God , may be so rejected as never to become a people of God more : For so these did not , though afterwards wee shall bear of the promise for others in other Ages . God hath no need of men . God is able to raise up a people what wayes he pleases , even from the very stones in the street , to raise up children unto Abraham . Though Rome may boast that they have been a glorious Church ; True , there hath been heretofore a glorious Church in Rome , what then ? Those that were his people are now no more his people . VVe shall meet further with this in the next Chapter . Only in this Note , observe but this thing , The great difference betweene the estate of a Christian in communion with Christ by grace , and a Church estate . Men and women may loose their Church estate , and that for ever ; but their estate in communion with Jesus Christ by grace , they can never lose that : And this is a great difference , and affordeth abundance of comfort . True , our Church state ( I mean in regard of an instituted Church in Congregations ) it is a great priviledge , a great mercy ; but our Communion with Jesus Christ is a higher priviledge , and that priviledge gan never be lost ; we may be cut off from the one , but never cut off from the other . Secondly , yet it is a most heavy judgemen● for any to have been heretofore the people of God , now to be unpeopled , for God to be no more theirs , and for them to be no more the Lords . A heavy judgement for the Lord to say , Well , I will be no more a God to you whatsoever I am to others , no more yours in my goodnesse , in my mercy , in my power , or whatsoever I am in my selfe . The being cast off from God. First takes us off from that high honour that was before upon a people ; for so in Esay , 4. 4. Since thou wast precious in my sight , thou host beene honourable , The people of God gathered together in Church Communion , certainly are in an honourable condition ; when they are dispeopled , they are cast off from this their priviledge , from their honour . Secondly , They have not the presence of God with them as before , not the care of God towards them , nor the protection of God over them , not the delight of God in them , nor the communication of God to them . What should I speake of all these particulars ? But among other priviledges they want this , namely that great priviledge of pleading with God for mercy upon this relation , which was the usuall way of the Prophets to pleade with God , because they were the people of God. So Esay , 64. 9. Be not wroth very sore O Lord ; neither remember iniquity for ever : upon what ground ? Behold , see we beseech thee , we are all thy people . This is a good Argument Againe , Jer. 14. 9. Why doest thou stand as a man astonished amongst us , as a mighty man that cannot save ? Yet thou O Lord art in the middest of us , and we are called by thy name , leave us not . This Text is ours this day , and well may we say , O Lord why doest thou stand as a man astonished ? Oh yet if we can but take up the second part , and say , We are called by thy name , we may make more comfortable use of the former , Why doest thou stand as a man astonished ? How doth a man astonished stand ? He stands still in a place , as if he knew not which way to goe , he is in a kinde of destraction . first he goes one way , and by and by he returns again . The Lord , we know , knoweth his purpose from eternity , but the Scriptures are pleased to expresse Gods wayes towards us in the similitude . Hath not God stood amongst us as a man astonished ? God hath beene in a way of mercy , and then stood still , and then gone forward a little , and afterward gone back again ; and yet back and back still , and we have prayed and cryed , and God hath stood as a man astonished , as if he were not yet resolved which way to goe . Let us pray earnestly to God that he would not stand as a man astonished , but that the way of the Lords mercy may be made cleare before him , and cleare before us . But this I bring in to shew that the relation that people have to God , is the ground of their encouragement to pray to God , and when a people is rejected they lose this priviledge . Our relations to God are very sweet things , though ordinarily they are exceedingly abused ; yea they are glorious things . As it is said of other relations . Relations are of the least entity , but of the greatest efficacy ; so it is here , Our relations to God are of very great efficacy , whatsoever the entity be : and therefore to lose our relations to God , especially this relation of Gods being ours , and we being his , is a sore and he avy curse . Again , You are not my people , and I will not be your God. Marke here , the first is , you are not my people , before the second commeth , I will not be your God. VVe first begin with God in our apostacy , before God begins with us in his rejection ; I would not have withdrawn my self from being your God , if you had not first rejected me , and would not be my people . When God loveth , he begins first ; we love not him , but he loveth us first : But when it comes to departing , it then begins on our side , wee first depart before the Lord doth : and this is that which will be a dreadful aggravation to wicked men another day to think with themselves . This evil is come upon us , God is gone , mercy is gone , but who began this first ? where is the root and principle ? Thy perdition is of thy selfe : I begin first , and therefore all the losse of that grace and mercy which is in God , I may thanke this proud , this distempered , this base , passionate , wretched heart of mine owne for it . Again , I will not be your God. He doth not say , you shall not have the fruite of my patience to be yours , you shall not have my creatures to be yours , you shall not have those fruites of my bounty to be yours : No , but I will not be yours , I my selfe will not be yours . This is the sorest threatning that posibly can be to a gracious heart . It is a greater misery to lose God himself , then to be deprived of whatsoever commeth from God. And this indeed is one special difference between an hypocrite , and a true gracious heart ; an hypocrite is satisfied with what cometh from God , but a true gracious heart is satisfied with nothing but God himselfe : though God lets out never so many fruits of his bounty and goodnesse to him , yet he must have union with God himselfe , or else he is unsatisfied . It is a notable speech of Bernard , Lord , saith he , As the good things that come from me , please not thee without my selfe ; so the good things that come from thee please not me without thy selfe . This is the expression of a gracious heart . Let us tender up to God never so much , never such duties , with never so great strength , except we tender up to God our selves , they never please him : So let God bestow never so many favours upon us , except God give us himselfe , they should never pleaseus ; I mean please us , so as to satisfie us , so as to quiet us , if for our portion . You know what God said to Abraham , Fear not , I am thy exceeding great reward : But Lord what wilt thou give me , seeing I goe childelesse ? What is all this to me so long as I have not the promise fulfilled , that so I may come in Christ to enjoy thy selfe ? And Moses would not be contented though God told him his Angel should goe before them ; No , saith hee , Except thou goe with us thy selfe , let us not depart hence . It is the difference between the Strumpet and the loving wife , the strumpet careth not so much for the person of her lover , as for his gists , for what she hath by him : but the true lover cannot be satisfied with lovetokens , but she must have the person himselfe . So it is with a gracious heart . It is very observable that of David in Psal . 51. 9. Turne away thy angry face from my sins . It seemes Gods face was angry ; and yet presently , ver . 11. Cast me not away , a facie tua , from thy face . Gods face was an angry face , yet David would not be cast away from this face of God : Oh no , rather let God be present with a gracious heart , though he be angry ; though his anger continue , yet let me have his countenance . This is plainly gathered hence , in that God saith not , I will not give you these and these favours , but I will not be your God , that this is the sorest threatning that possibly can be to a gracious heart . 5. This is the judgement for sin , Gods not being their God. It hence appeares that sin carryes along with it in it selfe its own punishment . How is that ? Thus , By sin we refuse to have God to be our God ; by it we depart from God , we do not trust God , nor love him , nor fear him . The very nature of sin hath this in it , that it causeth a sinner to depart from God , yea to reject God from being a God unto him , and this is the punishment , I will not be your God. And this is the sorest punishment to a sinner , that he shall not for ever have God to his God. Lastly , You are not my people , and I will not be your God. Hence learn this . When any forsake God from being their God , we should do as God doth , reject them from being ours , if they will not be Gods , neither should they be ours : will not such a man have acquaintance with God , will he forsake him and his wayes , then he shall not have our acquaintance , we will forsake him . How far we may withdraw from a Church that it shall not be ours , we shal fully meet with all in the second Chap. somewhat will be said about it there : Onely now thus much , though it be true when a people forsake God , we are to forsake them , yet let them grow never so wicked , our natural and civill relations cannot be broken because of their wickednesse ; but the relations of husband and wife , father and childe , master and servant must be acknowledged : servants must be dutiful to their masters though never so wicked ; And the wife must be loving and dutiful to her husband , though he be never so wicked a man. But for any inward intimate familiarity with those , not thus joyned in such Relations , ought not to be ; if they reject God , if they will not be Gods , they should not be ours . It is said Iob. 8 , 20. That God will not take the ungodly by the hand ; It should be true of us all , wee should not take the ungodly by the hand . Thus much for the name of this third childe Lo-ammi , you are not my people , and I will not be your God. That which remaineth in the Chapter , it is a promise of mercy , both to Israel , ver . 10. and afterwards to Israel and Judah together , ver . 11. To Israel first , and that is , Yet the number of the children of Israel shall be as the sand of the Sea , which cannot be measured or numbred , &c. And so he goeth on with wonderful gracious promises of mercy to Israel in future generations , though for the present God had determined what to do with this Israel . Here then we have first a promise of mercy to Israel , in the middest of the sorest judgement that God threatneth , he comes in with promises of mercy even unto Israel . And Secondly , this mercy to be in future generations . And thirdly , to consist in the multitudes that should be gathered to Israel . These three things are observable in general . First , That there is such a gracious promise immediately after such a sore and dreadful threatning as this , as indeed it is one of the most dreadful threatnings we have in all the Book of God ; yet here in the close of the Chapter , we have as gracious a promise again as is in the whole Book of God. From whence we may observe thus much . That the Lord in Judgement remembreth Mercy . It is a sore thing when God in mercy shall remember judgement , but it is as comfortable when God in judgement remembers mercy . When God threatneth most dreadfully yet he promiseth most graciously . Wee should therefore when we most feare the threats of God , yet looke up to the promises of God , looke up to see when wrath is denounced in the most hideous and dreadfull way , whether we cannot spie a Promise , whether there be not yet a little cloud , though but as big as a mans hand , whether there be not yet a little crevis through which we may see whether God doth not break forth with a little light in a way of promise . It is a usual thing when we are in prosperity to forget all threatnings , and fo it is as usual when we are in adversity to forget all promises . When wee hear of mercy to Gods people , we are taken up and never thinke of Gods wrath ; and on the other side when we heare of his wrath on unbeleeving hearts are taken up as wel , and never think of his grace and mercy . We ought to sanctifie the name of God in both : when God is in away of justice , look up to his grace ; and when he is in a way of grace , look upon his justice , and sanctifie that name of his likewise . And for that end , I shall give you two notable Texts of Scripture ; there are many of this kinde , but two I shall give you , that are as famous as any I know in the book of God : the one that declareth to you that when God expresseth the greatest mercy , yet then hee doth expresse greatest wrath ; and the other when God expresseth greatest wrath he then expresseth greatest mercy : And I shall shew you the name of God oughto be sanctified in both . The first is in that 34. of Exod. 6. 7. The Lord there when he passed by before Moses proclaimed , The Lord , the Lord God , merciful and gracious , long suffering , and abundant in goodnesse and truth , keeping mercy for thousands , for giving iniquity , & transgression and sinne . What abundance of mercy is here exprest ? Now it followes . And that will by no meanes cleare the guilty , visiting the iniquity of the fathers upon the children , and upon the childrens children unto the third and fourth generation . Here is an expression of great wrath . And then for our sanctifying of Gods name in this , it followes , ver . 8. And when Moses heard this , he made hast and bowed his head toward the earth and worshipped before the Lord. Thus we must bow and worship before God in our sanctifying his Name in both together , both his mercy and justice . On the other side , Nahum . 1. 2. and soon , God is jealous and the L●rd revengeth , the Lord revengeth and is furious , the Lord will take vengeance on his adversaries , and he reserveth wrath for his enemies , dreadful expressions , yet ver . 8. The Lord is slow to anger ; there is a mittigation at first . Then he goeth on still in expressions of wrath , But he is great in power , and will not at all acquit the wicked : and ver . 5. The mountains quake at him , and the hills melt , and the earth is burnt at his presence , yea the world and all that dwel therein : who can stand before his indignation , and who can abide the feircenesse of his anger ? his fury is powred out like fire , and the Rocks are throwne downe by him . What more terrible expressions of wrath then these that come from God here ? Now marke . ver . 7. The Lord is good and a strong hold in the day of trouble , and he knoweth those that trust in him . What a strong expression of grace is here ? observe it my brethren , that in the middest of Gods anger , yet God is good still ; a gracious heart must acknowledge God , though he be provoked to anger , yet to be a good God still ; and it is a good signe for the soul to fall downe before God when he is in the way of his wrath ; and to say , the Lord is good . As that good old man Eli did after the denuntiation of that dreadful sentence against him and his house by Samuel , The word of the Lord is good , let him doe what seemes him best . All of you will say when God bestoweth avours upon you , The Lord is good , oh blessed be God he is a good God : but when God revealeth his greatest wrath , truely then the Lord is good . Luther saith he will acknowledge God to be a good God , though he should destroy all men in the world : much more then is he to be acknowledged in a day of trouble , when indeed he appears most graciously to his Saints . The Lord is good , and a strong hold in the day of trouble : Is God a strong hold now when such wrath is revealed ? yea , and specially now , a strong hold to his Saints in the day of trouble , and he knoweth those that trust in him ; for all his wrath is abroad in the world ; he knoweth those that trust in him . Many men when they are angry they scarce know the difference betweene their foes and their friends : Many when they go abroad if any displease them , they come home and are angry with their wives , with their servants , with their children , with their friends , with every one about them , they know not then who is a friend and who is not when they are in their passion , their wives , and children , and servants wonder what the matter is with them . Sure some body or other hath displeased my master abroad to day he is so touchie , so angry upon every little thing . My brethren , It is a dishonour to you in the eyes of your servants , and it layes low your authority in your families , for them to see you come home in such a per that you know not how to be pleased , though they have done nothing to displease you . God doth not so , though he be never so angry , yet hee knowes those that trust in him . Let Gods anger be never so publick , and general abroad in the world , if there be but a poor soul in the world that lies in a poor cottage , in a hole , that is gracious , the Lord knowes it , and takes notice of it , and that soul shal know too that God doth know it . It is true , when the wrath of God is revealed abroad in the world , & seemes as if it would swallow up all those of the Saints , whose spirits are weake and fearfull , they are then afraid of Gods wrath , that they shall be swallowed up in the common calamity : be of good comfort , God knowes those that trust in him , even when his wrath is never so dreadful and general abroad in the world . It is in this case with Gods children , as it is with a childe in the mothers Armes ; if the father violently layes hold upon his servant and beates him , and thrust , him out of doores for his demerits , there is such a terrible reflection from the fathers anger against the servant upon the childe , that the poor childe falls a crying . So it is with the children of God , when they see God in a terrible way , ●aying hold upon wicked men , to execute wrath upon them , they cry out , they are afraid lest some evil should befall them too . Oh no , be of good comfort , The Lord is good , and a strong hold in the day of trouble , and knoweth them that trust in him , when his anger is never so great and general . So it is here ; though this Israel be not my people , yet the number of the children of Israel shall be as the sand of the Sea for all that , so you shall find it in the 15. ver . of that first of Nahum , Behold ( saith the Text ) upon the mountains , the feete of him that bringeth good tidings . What at this time though Gods way be in the whirl-winde and so terrible , yet now behold the feete of him that bringeth good tydings , that publisheth peace . God abroad publisheth war , yet he hath a messenger to publish life and peace to some . Is it not so this day ? It is true , the wrath of the Lord is kindled , the wrath of the Lord burneth as an oven , and it is hot , but it is against the ungody , but peace shall be upon Israel . And let us sanctifie the name of God in this too , for so it followes in this very Chap. of Nah. ver . 15. Oh Iudah keepe thy solemne feasts , performe thy vowes , for the wicked shall no more passe through thee . And because God revealeth such rich grace in the middest of judgement , let this engage your hearts to the Lord for ever . Yea a little further ( because it is an instraction of great use in these times , and may be yet of further use in times we may live to see ( not onely when God threatneth judgements , let us sanctifie Gods name in looking up to promises : but when judgements are actually upon us . Suppose we should live to have most fearful judgments of God upon us , yet even then we must look up to promises , and exercise our faith , and have an eye to God in the way of his grace at that time , this is harder then in threatnings . You have an notable place for that in Esay , 26. 8. In the way of thy judgements , O Lord , have we waited for thee , the desire of our soule is to thy name . Oh blessed be God ( my brethren ) the Lord calleth us to wait upon him in the wayes of mercy for the present . It is true , there was a time not long since , that the Lord was in a way of judgement toward England ; and there were some of Gods people , when he was in the wayes of his judgements amongst us , yet would wait upon God and keepe his wayes ; though there were many because Gods judgements were abroad , and they saw that they were like to suffer , departed from God and declined his wayes . Much cause of bitterness of spirit , and of dread of humiliation have they that did so : But others may have comfort to their soules , that in the very wayes of Gods judgments they waited for him , & they can now with more comfort wait upon God when he is in the ways of his mercy . But if God should ever come untous in the ways of his judgments , let us learne even then to wait upon God & keep his way . And yet another Text that may seeme to be more notable than this for this purpose , and that is Iere. 33. 24. Consider est thou not what this people have spoken , saying , the two families which the Lord hath chosen , he hath even cast them off ; thus they have despised my people , that they should be no more a nation . Marke the low condition the people were in at this time : Oh , God hath cast them off , they are despised & contemptible , not worthy to be accounted a nation . This condition was very low : but though they were brought low , & in a condition contemptible , yet now God confirms his Covenant with them at this time . For observe , ver . 25. Thus saith the Lord. If my Covenant be not with day & night , and if I have not appointed the ordinances of heaven & earth , then will I cast away the seed of Iacob , ond David my servant . As if God should say , let them know that whatsoever their condition is now , yet my love , my mercy , my faithfulness is toward them as sure as my covenant with day & night , and as the ordinances of heaven and earth . An admirable Text to help not onely nations , but particular persons when they are cast under contempt by wicked & ungodly men ; yet at that time the Lord is most ready to confirm his covenant with them , to be as sure as his covenant with day & night , and heaven & earth . This bringeth honour to God when at such times we can looke up to God and exercise our faith . And indeed this is the glory , and dignity , and beauty of faith to exercise it then , when Gods judgements are actually upon us . But what promises are these ? They were not promises to any that then lived : the promise that is here made , was to be fulfilled in future Ages , yet it is brought in by the Prophet as a comfort to the people of God living then in that time . Hence this excellent note that nearly concerns us . Gracious hearts are comforted with the promises of God made to the Church , though not to be fulfilled in their dayes . If the Church may prosper and receive mercies from God , though I be dead and gone , and rotten in the grave , yet blessed be God. When Jacob was to die , saith he unto Joseph . Behold I dye , but God shall be with you and bring you again unto the land of your fathers ; he will fulfill his promises to you though I am dead . Our fore-fathers , that generation of the Saints that lived a while since , how comfortably would they have dyed if God before their death had revealed to them , that within 3. or 4. or 7. yeares so much mercy should come to England as we now have seen in these dayes ! Yea how comfortably should any of us have died ( I appeal to any gracious heart here ) suppose God should have taken thee away but this time two yeares , and he should have said thus to thee , Go and be gathered to thy fathers in peace , within these two years such and such things shall be done for England , as we now live to see ; would not we willingly have dyed ? would it not have been comfort enough against the fear of death but to have had revealed to us what should have been done in after time to our posterity ? what mercy then is it now , that it is not onely revealed to us but enjoyed by us ? That is the second Note . But thirdly , What was this promise ? This promise was that Israel should be a multitude , that the number of them shall be as the sand of the sea shore . VVe shall examine the excellency of the mercy of God in this promise by and by . Onely for the present , enquire we a little why God would expresse himselfe in this , that his grace should be manifested , in this to multiply them as the sand of the sea shore . If we compare Scripture with Scripture , we shall finde that God therefore promiseth this , because he would thereby shew , that he did remember his old promise to Abraham , for that was the promise made to Abraham that God would multiply his seed as the starres of heaven , and as the sand which is upon the sea shore ; and now God along time after commeth in with renewing this promise . Hence we are to observe this Note . That the Lord remembers his promises though made a long time since . God is ever mindful of his Covenant , as it is , Psal . 111. 5. When we have some new and fresh manifestations of Gods mercy , our hearts rejoyce in it , but the impression of it is soone gone . Many of you when you have beene seeking God , have had many manifestations of his love , and God hath entred into Covenant with you , & for a while you have been comforted , but you lose all your comfort againe within a short time : Oh remember , God is ever mindefull of his Covenant , though made 20. 40. years agoe , he remains the same still , be you the same still ; be you ever mindful of your Covenants . When men are brought into the bond of the Covenant , their consciences are awed with it , and they walke very strictly , and they clare not in the least thing goe from the Covenant at first : But after a few moneths or weekes are over their heads , they forget their engagement , their Covenant they made with God , there is not such a strong bond upon their spirits as there was before . Oh my brethren , know that this is a great and sore evil in you ; God is ever mindfull of his Covenant , so you should be . And as of his Covenant , so of his threats too , by way of proportion : God remembreth his threats that were made many years agoe ; we are affected with Gods threats for the present , but within a while , the impression is gone . But let us know , time altereth not God as it doth us . But yet we must enquire a little further , because it is often in Scripture that the children of Israel should be like the stars of the heaven and as the sand upon the Sea shore ; Why did God expresse this covenant to Abraham ? what was the matter ? Thus , First , Abraham hee left his fathers house and all his kindred at Gods command , and upon that first God made this covenant wi●h him that he would make his seed as the stars of heaven , and as the sand of the Sea. As if God should have said to Abraham ; Abraham be willing to leave your fathers house , I will make a great house of you , a great family of yours . Secondly , you shall observe that afterwards God confirmed this covenant to Abraham , and that with an oath . It is very observable , when he came first out of his countrey , and left his fathers house , God made this promise of the encreasing of his seed , but not with an oath ; but afterwards in Gen. 22 16. God renews this promise of multiplying his seed , and that by an Oath ; for saith he , By my selfe have I sworne , for because thou hast done this thing , and hast not witheld thy sonne , thine onely son , that in blessing I will blesse thee , and in multiplying I will multiply thy seed as the stars of the heavens , and as the sand which is upon the Sea shore . Marke here , It was upon Abrahams being willing to offer up his son Isaac , his onely son Isaac . Abraham was willing at Gods command to offer ● ship own son , and upon that God promiseth to multiply his seed as the stats of heaven , and as the sand of the sea . Yea he comes in with an oath , By my selfe I sweare , saith the Lord , that I will do it , because thou hast done this . We have two most excellent notes from hence . First , there is nothing lost in being willing to lose for God. Abraham was willing to lose his fathers house , the comfort of his family for God : I will make thee a glorious family as the stars of heaven , saith God. Againe , Abraham was willing to lose one son , his onely son for God. Art thou willing to lose one son for me ▪ thou shalt have ten thousand sons for this one thou losest , yea though it be lost but in thy intention . Thou shalt have thy own son , and yet have ten thousand sons besides . Oh let us not be afraid to part with any thing for God : Gods people they know how to make up in God what ever they lose for God : But God will not onely make it up in himselfe , but will make it up even in the very thing it selfe , the creature it selfe thou losest for God. Art thou willing to lose a little of thy estate ? Thou mayst with comfort expect ( so far as if thou knewest all thou thy selfe wouldst desire ) to have it made up in abundance , even in that very way . You know the promise , He that forsaketh father , or mother , or wife or children , or lands , or houses for my sake , shal have an hundred fold in this world , and in the world to come life everlasting . How hath God fulfilled this this day in many of our eyes , and too many of our experiences ! how many have you known who have beene willing to part with that they had , and to put it out ( as it were ) to the wide world ; God hath made it up not onely in himselfe , but in the very thing it selfe , and thereby taught them and all the world to be willing to venture for God , to part with any thing for him and his cause . Secondly , When we are willing to lose for God , then is the time when God will renew and confirm his Covenant with us . Then God confirmed his covenant with Abraham when he was willing to part with his sonne , to be deprived of all his seed . The way to be made sure of what we have is to be willing to part with it . You all desire to be sure of your estates , oh that we could in these times , wherein we see nothing sure make our estates sure ! this is the desire of every one . Would you make sure of your estates ? sure ! illing to imploy your estates for God & for a good cause : This is the way to have God to renew his covenant to you for an assurance of that way . Here is the best assurance office in the world . But how comes this in at this time , & to his people in Hosea his Prophesie ? Thus it comes in now , because the Lord by the Prophet would answer an objection of the people . They might have said thus , What Hosea , doe you thus threaten judgement , the destruction of Israel ? why , you promise mercy to Judah , and Judah is but a handful to us , we are the ten Tribes , & with us are the chiefe , the greatest part , almost all the seed of Abraham , and yet you threaten our destruction , it can never possibly be : What will become of Gods promise then ? Did not God promise Abraham , that his seed should be as the stars of heaven , & as the sand on the sea shore ? you seeme to goe crosse to God , God saith that he would multiply that seed , and you take a course to make men beleeve that the seed of Abraham should bee brought into a narrow compasse and be nothing . Thus doubtless they were ready to pleade against the Prophet . The Prophet answereth thus . What doe you say , what will become of Abrahams seed ? Know that God can tell how to provide for his Church and fulfill his promise made to Abraham whatsoever becomes of you , for you are mistaken in thinking you alone are the seed of Abraham ; for you shall know that Abraham hath not onely a carnal but a spiritual seed ; all those that shal come to joyne in the faith of Abraham , and subject themselves to the God of Abraham , they shall be the seed of Abraham , and so they shall be the children of Israel as well as you , and thus God will make good his word . And so the Apostle , Rom. 9. doth quote this Scripture about Gods casting off of the people of Israel threatned here by Hosea ( ver . 25. As he saith also in Hosea , I will call them my people that were not my people : This is the very Text that the Apostle there quoteth , though all the words are not quoted , and it is a very good thing to acquaint your selves with the Scripture , and to see how one Scripture lookes towards another , and specially in the new Testament to see how the old Testament is quoted . ) This I say the Apostle applyeth to the Gentiles ; and the holy Ghost ( who is the best interpreter of Scriptures ) there shewes , that it is at least in part fulfilled in so many of the Gentiles comming in , and being converted to the faith of the true Messia . There are this and many other excellent Prophesies concerning the glory of Israel , that were made good in part in the first times of the Gospel ; but that was but as the first fruites of the fulfilling of those promises & Prophesies ; the accomplishment of them is yet certainly to come , when the fulnesse of the Gentiles shall come in , and the Jews be converted ; then not onely the spiritual seed , but the very carnal seed of Abraham shall have this promise made good , and shall be multiplyed and come into the faith too . Rom. 11. 26. The Apostle speakes there of a general salvation of Israel , that was yet to come after the fulnesse of the Gentiles . So it appears plainly , that those Prophesies concerning the glory of Israel , though they were in part made good in the first times of the Gospel , yet there was a further accomplishment of them after , when there should be a fulnesse of the Gentiles come in , and then Israel should be saved too . I might spend a great deale of time in shewing how many promises concerning the excellency of the Church were made good in part in the first times of the Gospel , and yet that but as the first fruites , and to be fully made good afterwards . And certainly this promise ( as we shall afterward come to know ) it is not yet throughly fulfilled : though it was in part made good at the calling of the Gentiles , there is a further degree of it to be accomplished another day , of which hereafter . From hence ( the words being thus opened to you ) take these observations as they do immediately spring from them . First , that all beleevers , though of the Gentiles , are of the seed of Abraham , they are of Israel , and therefore have the same priviledges with Israel , the same in effect , yea ( as we shall see afterward ) better . They are all the heirs of Abraham , who in Rom. 4. is said to be the heir of the world , they have the dignity of Israel , to be the peculiar people of the Lord , to be the treasure , to be Gods portion . Whatsoever you reade of Israel , of excellent titles and appellations about Israel . they belong now to all beleevers , though they be the children of the Gentiles . A comfortable & sweet point to us of the Gentiles Secondly , God hath a time to bring in abundance of people to the profession of the faith , to bring in multitudes , even as the sand of the sea-shore . He will do it , and he hath wayes enough to accomplish it . Though there is for the present this reproach upon the way and people of God , that they are but a few , a company of poore mean kinde of people , a handful , and what are they in comparison of the rest ? This reproach ( my brethren ) will be wiped away , & we may yet expect that before the world be come to an end , that the greatest part shall come in & imbrace the faith of Christ , and come to be godly too . ful vision , in which he saw a man of Macedonia , appearing to him , and praying him to come over to Macedonia & help them ; one would have thought that when Paul had gone to preach there , all should have come flocking in , and there should have beene a glorious worke done , that hee should have brought in a great number to the faith : But when he came to Macedonia , he was faine to go into the fields by a rivers side to preach , and onely a few women came there to heare him ( there was all the Auditory he had ) and amongst them , there was but one poor woman wrought upon . God opened the heart of Lydia , Here was all the great do that was upon such a mighty call ; and yet we know how gloriously God went on with Paul. This I note to confirm you in this , that though the beginnings be very small , yet we may expect a glorious increase afterward . As it was with the Church at the beginning , so it will be here : That which Bildad said of Job , Chap. 8. 7. may well be applyed to the Church , Though the beginning of it be small , yet the latter end of it shall greatly increase . But thirdly , As God hath a time to multiply his Church , so it is a great blessing to the Church of God when it is multiplyed . It is a fruite of Gods great grace and mercy to make the Church to be a numerous people : As the multitude of Subjects is the glory of a Prince , so it is the glory of Jesus Christ , and therefore it was prophesied of him , that the Church should come in as the dew of the morning . Psal . 110. 3. Thus it began in the Primitive times in the Apostles dayes , and presently after multitudes came into the Church . I remember Jerome Writing to Cromatius , saith that there might be computed for every day in the yeere ( except in the first of January ) five thousand Martyrs : therfore the Church was grown to a numerous multitude . And Tertullian speakes in his time that they were become so numerous then , that in his Apologetiques he tells the Heathen that they had filled their Cities , and that if they would they had strength enough to make their party good against them , but they were patient and submitted themselves to their Tyranny . I know many make this of Tertullian an argument that men must lay down their necks , and suffer their throats to be cut , if those that are above them will it , and if they cannot obey actively , they must obey passively any thing that is acording to the will of such as are over them . Why ( say they ) did not the Christians so in the Primitive times ? Yes , the Christians did so , they though they were under Idolaters , and were commanded to deny Christ , which was utterly unlawful ; yet though they could not obey actively , they obeyed passively , they did subject and submit themselves to all their rage ; and though they had strength , yet they would not resist . Why should not Christians do so now ? You are exceedingly gulled with this argument many times : true , we are bound to obey authority actively or passively , and yet this argument doth not serve the turne . There is a great deale of difference between authority abused , & men that are in authority commanding ; here the difference lies not in authority abused , but in that which is no authority at all . For there is no authority that we are subject to now , but ( as I have said heretofore ) according to the Laws and constitutions of the Countrey where we live . Not to the commands & meer wils of men till it be brought to a Law are we bound in conscience to submit , no way , neither actively nor passively ; though it be a good thing that is commanded , Conscience doth not bind to it , earatione , to yeeld to it , because it is commanded , till it be brought to a Law. Now when things are brought into a Law , & be according to the agreements and covenants of the place and countrey wherein we live . And then suppose this authority be abused , & there be an ill Law made , then I confesse ( if that Law be of force ) wee must either quit our selves of the Countrey or else submit or suffer , for then the power of God is in it , though it be abused , and we are to be subject to all powers . When then it comes once to be a power , to be a Law , it is authority , though abused , and we must yeeld obedience to it either actively or passively . But we must enquire whether it be a power ; It is not because the man that is in authority commandeth it , except he command it by vertue of that authority , which is according to the nature and condition of the fundamental constitutions of the Countrey where he liveth . Now in the Primitive times they submitted themselves to suffer when they could not do the things that were commanded ( as to deny Christ ) because by the constitutions of that Countrey they had such a kinde of power given to them , a legal power to proceed against them ; so that they had a power in their way given them , and they had authority , but they abused it in that they did . And therefore the Christians were so willing rather to suffer any thing than to resist , and were ours the same case wee should do so too , if once it come to passe that mischiefe be established by a Law , though it be mischiefe , yet if we cannot obey it actively we are bound to suffer or else to quit the Countrey , one of the two , if it be urged upon us : We may seek what we can to get it alleviated , but we must either do or suffer if once it be framed into a Law , otherwise we are not bound in conscience , bound wee may be in regard of prudence , and in regard of preventing other disturbances , but conscience doth not bind to wils of men , but binds to Laws . Thus much still , for the satisfaction of Conscience in this case . But to come to what I brought this in for . The Christians were wonderfully encreased at this time . Now we know this is the point ; We are to rejoyce when the Church is increased , and to esteeme it as the great blessing of God when they are made as the sand upon the sea-shore . There is an admirable place for this in Psal . 72. where there is a large prophesie made of the Kingdome of Christ and of his Glory in this particular , ver . 8. He shal have dominion from sea to sea , and from the rivers to the end of the earth , then ver . 11. All Kings shall fall downe before him , and all Nations shall serve him : and ver . 17. His name shall endure for ever , and shall continue as long as the sunne , and men shall be blessed in him , all Nations shall call him blessed . Now marke upon this , how the Saints rejoyce and bless God , VVhat shall all Nations come in and serve Christ ? shall there come multitudes in and joyne with the Church ? Oh blessed be the Lord God , the God of Israel who onely doth wonderous things , and blessed be his glorious name for ever and ever , and let the whole earth be filled with his glory , Amen & Amen saith the Church of God then , let all the Saints send forth their eccho . Amen , yea and Amen to this , that all the earth shall be filled with the glory of Christ , this is that they are affected with , this is that they desire much , as if they should say , this is a blessed thing indeed . My brethren this is a good and consely sight in a gracious eye to see multitudes come in & to flock to Christ and to his Ordinances . It is true indeed , the spirit of Antichrist that is in many makes them that they cannot look upon his but with a malevolent eye , and their hearts do vexe , and rage , and fiet at this , as much as at any thing , they love scattering of them up and downe , but to see people come flocking to Ordinances , to see multitudes come in and joyne themselves to Christ , this they cannot endure . The same malicious spirit that was against Christ , that we reade of in the Acts of the Apostles , yea , and in the Gospel too , wee finde it still in such kinde of men . Marke that Text , Act. 13. 44 , 45. There it is said that almost the whole Cittie came together to hear the word of God , to heare a Sermon . Now the Pharises when they saw the multitude they were filled with envie : Why what hurt was there done ? They saw no hurt done , but meerely saw the multitude , and they speake against those things that were spoken by Paul contradicting and blaspeming : When they saw the multitude , they could have borne it otherwise . Marke againe the vile spirits of the Pharisees that envied at the multitude that followed Christ himselfe : not onely did they envy at the Apostles , for they might be factious and singular men in their esteem , but what say you to Christ himselfe ? John. 12. 19. The Pharisees said , behold , perceive yee how ye prevaile nothing ? behold , the world followes him . Certainly the same Pharisaical spirit hath beene a prelatical spirit in our dayes . We know it hath beene matter enough for a godly , painful , conscionable Minister to be outed of all he hath at an instant , and his mouth to be stopped , meerly upon this , though they had nothing against him , no , not for their own Laws , but because he was a popular man , and multitudes followed him . What a dangerous thing hath it beene of late times for men to be popular , that is , to bee such as multitudes shall come and flock to the word preached by them . Certainly it is an evil spirit , for the promise of God to his Church is , that there shall come multitudes and joyne with the people of God in the way of his Ordinances . Yea but it may be they do not envy at all that multitudes should follow that that is good , but it is the humour and pride of such men to have multitudes to follow after them . Take heed first of putting this off with such a plea. Consider whether it will hold at that great day . The Devil himself did never plead against Christ or any of his wayes , but with some colour or other . And surely these men they judge thus by looking into their own hearts , because they know that if multitudes should come to them , it could not be but their hearts would be lifted up , and so they judge accordingly of others . But suppose it be so ( for men are men ) that they through corruption should have any such workings of pride , yet do they say anything that is not justifyable ? do they preach any thing that is not according to Christ ? If they do not , then thou shouldest encourage that which is good , and for that which is evill leave it to the comming of Christ , except thou canst by prayer and instruction helpe it , have it I say till then . It is worse to envy at multitudes now then it was for the Jewes to envy Paul for multitudes following him , for they thought they could contradict him in what he said , and therefore for multitudes to follow such as should preach false doctrine ( as they thought Paul did ) they had some colour to contradiet it , & to envy at the multitudes following of him . But here it is nothing else in the World but meerely because multitudes come to heare the world , for though men first preach in corners privately , where they have but a few auditors , they will cry out of that , well , if they preach publikely , and multitudes come to hear them , then they cry out of that too . Nothing at all will please them , nothing can please envious & malicious spirits . If we keep our selves retyred , that hath exceptions enough , and then if we come in a publicke way , they have exceptions at that too . Here the grosse malice of Satan appeareth , because when the thing it selfe cannot be excepted against , he runs to the intention of the heart . and to mens inward aymes , and bringeth an argument of that which he knows no man can confute him in : For who can say that that is either true or false that men have inward aymes of pride , and vaine glory , and selfe-seeking in multitudes , flocking after them ? Here is the wisdome of the serpent too , because if they goe upon other objections they may be answered by all the world that there is no such thing as they pretend , but put them from those , and you may be sure to have such objections as no man can answer : Oh but ( say they ) their hearts are lifted up and they have ill aymes and ill intentions . Who can answer this objection ? no body can confute this . Nay suppose we professe before the Lord & Christ as we desire to stand before him , and answer it at that day what our aimes are , this will not serve the turne . Why then ( my brethren ) if men will choose such an argument as cannot possibly come to be answered before the coming of Christ , and so make a stumbling-block , there is no help but men must stumble and fall , and many do stumble and fall , and break their necks . How ever let wisdom be justified of her children ; Let the Saints rejoyce in this , that multitudes come in to the ministery of the word and to the Ordinances of Christ . Be careful and wise in this , and give no just occasion , and therefore give all due respect that possibly can be to those you have the most relation unto . This you see is the promise that there shall come in such multitudes to the Church . But marke then how the promise runnes ; As the sand of the sea . Rabbin Ezra makes an allusion from hence , as the sand ( saith he ) keepes the waves of the sea from breaking in , and drowning the world : so Israel , so the Saints keep the world from being drowned by the waves of Gods wrath . I doe not say that this is the intention , but surely the intention of God is mainly this , to signifie the multitudes that should come into the Church : Onely this allusion we may make use of , as being a comfortable and pretty allusion , and it is a truth that Israel is as the sand of the sea , not onely in respect of multitudes , but as the sand to keepe in the waves of Gods wrath from drowning the world : and indeed were it not for the Church of God , the waves of Gods wrath that are abroad would overflow all the world , and the world would quickly be confounded . So saith hee , When the waves of Gods anger seeme as if they would overflow all the world ; they doe but see Israel , and they returne back presently , they retire and are not able then to overflow the world as they do desire . The Fift Lecture HOSEA . I. the middle part of the 10. verse . and so on . And it shall come to passe , that in the place where it was said unto them , Yea are not my people , there it shall be said unto them , Yee are the sonnes of the living God. Then shall the children of Judah and the children of Israel be gathered together , &c. ACcording to the division of the Chapter that Luther makes in his Comment upon this Prophet , we are already in the second Chapter ; for he makes the second to begin at this tenth verse . From that to the end , we have the promise of mercy to Israel that was to come , and both to Israel and Judah together . Some part of Gods promise of mercy to Israel we finished the last day ; now wee are to proceed . And it shall còme to passe in that place , &c. In that place . ] This according to some hath reference to the very land of Canaan it selfe , that God will have a very glorious Church there , specially in Jerusalem before the end of the world come , and many Prophesies seeme to encline that way , as Zach. 12. 6. Jerusalem shall be inhabited againe , even in Jerusalem . This cannot be meant onely of their returne out of Captivity that was in Cyrus his time , for the Text saith , In that day thee feeble among them shall be as David , and the house of David shall be as the Angel of God , & God will poure upon them the spirit of grace & supplication , and they shall looke upon him whom they have pierced , and the like . It shall be in that day when Jerusalem shall be inhabited , even in Jerusalem . The return of their Captivity at first was not so glorious , there was not such a glorious spirit put upon them then ; for if you read the story of it , you shal find that even all that while they were in a contemptible condition before the nations about them . But God speaks here and in other places of a glorious returne of their captivity , & coming into their own Land. The Jewes have a tradition , ( Buxtorfius hath it in his Synagoga Iudaica ) That there is a time that all the Iews where ever they dye , shall come through Meatus terrae , and rise againe at Jerusalem ; and therefore some of them when they think they have not long time to live , they will sell all their possesions , and goe and live neere Jerusalem , at least to prevent the trouble of coming through those Meatus terra that they speake of . Thus they are deluded in their conceits . But yet more generally , In that place . Whereas the place of my people was confined into a little and narrow roome , hereafter it shall be inlarged , and even among the Gentiles that shal be made spiritual Israel , where I was not known , among the Heathen , even there shall I come to be known , and I shall have a people there , and not only people , but sons , the sons of the living God , and that so apparently , that it shall be said unto them . Yee are the sonnes of the living God. Thus Saint Peter seems to interpret this place , in the 1 Pet. 2. 10. speaking of the Gentiles whom God would have a people among them , saith the Apostle , Which in times past were not a people , but are now the people of God. Generally Interpreters doe conclude that the Apostle had reference to this very place in Hosea : And so we may build then upon this interpretation howsoever , that it is the intention of the Spirit of God , that God would call home the Gentiles to himself , & so they that were no people should become his people , his sons : It should be said in that place where before it was said that they knew him not , that now they are his sons . Yea the Heathen shal be brought in , so as they shall be convinced of the vanity of their Idolatry . We worshipped dead stocks ; our gods were dead stones & stocks that we were vassals unto ; but now we see a people that is come in to the profession of this Christian Religion , they worship the living God , their God is the true God , certainely here are the sons of the living God. This is the scope of the holy Ghost . For observation . 1. It is a comfortable thing to consider that in those places where God hath not been known & worshipped , that afterward in those places , God should be known & worshipped . That such nations , such Countreys and Towns that have lived in darkness & Idolatry , should now have the knowledge of the true God , that the true God should come to be worshipped amongst them , this is a blessed thing . England was once one of the most barbarons nations in the world , and in that place where it was said you are not my people , where there was nothing but a company of savage barbarous creatures that worshipped the Devill ; how in this place , in England is it said , even by the nations round about us , surely they are the sonnes of the living God! And so many times in dark corners in the Countrey where they never had the knowledge of Jesus Christ , but were nuzled up in Popery and in all kinde of supesticious vanity , God is pleased to send some faithful Minister to carry the light of the knowledge of Christ unto them , and efficaciously to work faith in their hearts , and now , oh what an alteration is there in that towne ! the like of a family . It may be said of many a house and family , in which nothing but blasphemy , and atheisme , and scorne of Religion , and uncleannesse , and all manner of wickednesse hath been , now it is a family filled with the servants and sonnes of the living God. As it is a grievous thing to think of a place wherein God hath been truely worshipped , that afterward the Devil should come to be served there , so it is a comfortable thing to think of other places wherein the Devil hath beene served , that God is truly worshipped there . Some stories report that the Turkes having possession of the Temple at Jerusalem , there where was the Arke , and the Cherubins , and the Seraphims , there now are Tygres , and Beares , and savage creatures ; But on the other side to consider that in places where there have been none but Tygres , and Bears and savage creatures , they should now be filled with Cherubins , and Seraphims ; this is a comfortable thing . Secondly . It shall be said they are the sonnes of the living God. It shall be said so . God hath a time to convince the world of the excellency of his Saints . They shall not onely be the sonnes of the living God , but it shall come to passe that it shall be said they are the sonnes of the living God : all about them shall see such a lustre of the glory of God shining upon them , that they shall all say , Verily whatsoever other people have said hertofore , whatsoever the thoughts of men have beene , these are not onely the servants , but the sonnes of the living God. We have an excellent prophefie of this in Zachar. 12. 5. The governours of Iudah shal say in their heart The inhabitants of Jerusalem shall be my strength in the Lord of hosts their God. Not onely the people shall be convinced of this , but the Governours of Judah , they shall say in their hearts , our strength is in the inhabitants of Jerusalem , in the Lord of Hosts their God. Howsoever they were heretofore scandalized , as seditious , and factious , and as enemies of the State , yet now the Governours of Judah shall acknowledge that their strength is in them , and in the Lord their God , that this Lord of Hosts is their God. That time will be a blessed time when the Governours of Judah shall come to be convinced of this ; when God shall so manifest the excellencies of his Saints , as that both great and smal shall confesse them to be the sonnes of the living God. It is promised to the Church of Philadelphia , Revel . 3. 9. that the Lord would make them that said they were Jews , and were not , & said they were the Church and were not , but were of the Synagogue of Satan , to come and how before their feete , and to know ( saith he ) that I have loved them . There is a time that ungodly men shall be forced to know that God doth love his people . And one thing amongst the rest that will much convince the men of the world of the excellency of the Saints , will be the beauty of Gods ordinances that shall be set up amongst them , that shall even dazel the eyes of the beholders . For this you have an excellent promise , Ezek. 37. 28. The heathen shall know that I the Lord do sanctifie Israel . How shall they know it ? when my sanctuary shall be in the middest of them for evermore , then they shall know that I the Lord do sanctifie Israel , when the beauty of my ordinances shall appeare in them , then they shall know it . And if God be not onely satisfied in doing good to his people , but hee will have the world know it , and be convinced of it ; Let the people of God then not be satisfied onely in having their hearts upon God , but let the world know that they love God too . You must do that that may make it appeare to all the world , that you are the children of the living God. Let your light so shine before men , that they seeing your good works may glorifie your Father which is in heaven . It is one thing to do a thing that may be seene , and another thing to do a thing that it may be seen . And yet Gods people may do both , not do good onely that may be seen , but ( if they keepe still the glory of God above in their eye , as the highest ayme ) they may desire and be willing too that it may be seene to the praise of God. But this I confesse requireth some strength of grace to do it , and yet to keep the heart upright . The excellency of grace doth consist not in casting off the outward comforts of the world , but to know how to enjoy them , and to over-rule them unto God : so the strength of grace doth consist , not in forbearing of such actions as are taken notice of by men , or not to dare to ayme at the publishing of those things that have excellency in them ; but the strength of grace consists in this , in having the heart enabled to do this , and yet to keepe it under too , and to keep God above in his right place . Thirdly , It shall be said they are sonnes , &c. It is a great blessing unto Gods children that they shall be accounted so before others . Not onely that they shall be so ; but that they shall be accounted so . Blessed are the peace-makers for they shall be called the children of God , This is a blessing not onely to be Gods children , but to be called Gods children . We must account it so , and therefore we must walk so as may convince all with whom we do converse that we are the children of God ; and not thinke this sufficient , well , let me approve my heart to God ; and then what need I care what all the World thinks of me . God doth promise it as a blessing to have his people called the children of God , then this must not be slighted . You shall find it often in the Gospel that Christ made a great businesse of this to make it manifest to the world that he was sent of God , he would have them to know that his Father sent him , and that hee came from him : So the people of God should count it a blessing , and walk so as they may obtaine such a blessing that the world may know that they are of God. Further. In the place where it was said unto them , Ye are not my people , there it shall be said unto them , Ye are the sonnes of the living God. Marke , It is not said thus , that in the place where it was said they are not my people , it shall be said to them they are my people . No , but further , it shall be said they are sonnes , and sonnes of the living God : this goeth beyond being his people . Hence then the observation is , That The grace of God under the Gospell , it is morefull , and large , and glorious , then the grace of God under the Law. For this is spoke of the estate of the Church under the Gospell , They were Gods people indeed under the Law , but the sonnes of the living God , this is reserved for the times under the Gospel . Sometime they under the Law are called by the name of sonnes ; but it appeareth by this Text that in comparison of that glorious son-ship that they shall have under the times of the Gospell , that they in former times were rather servants then sonnes . There is very little of our adoption in Christ revealed in the Old Testament , No , that was reserved for the Sonne of God to reveale , for him that came out of the bosome of the Father , and brought the treasures of his Fathers councel to the world , the revelation of these things were reserved to the time of his comming , both adoption and eternal life was very little made knowne in the time of the Law , therefore Saint Paul saith , that life and immortality were brought to light through the Gospel . 2 Tim. 1. 10. 2. Sonnes , Because in the time of the Gospell , the spirits of the Saints are of son-like dispositions , they are ingenuous , not mercenarie . In the time of the Law God carried on his people in offering rewards , especially in outward things : but in the time of the Gospell we have no such rewards in outwards , but the Scripture speakes of afflictions most , there is not spoken so much of afflictions in the time of the Law , but much outward prosperity there was then : but in the time of the Gospel more affliction , because the dispositions of the hearts of people should not be so mercenary as they were before , they should be an ingenuous , a willing people in the day of Christs power . 3. Sonnes , Because of the son-like affection to be much for God their Father out of a naturall 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 , that they should have more then in the times of the Law. I suppose some of you have heard of the story of Craesus his sonne , though he was dumb all his dayes , when he perceived a souldier striking his father , his affection brake the barres of his speech , and he cryed out to the Souldier to spare his rather . This is the affection of a sonne , and these affections doth God looke for from his children , especially in the time of the Gospel , that they should heare no wrong done to him , but though they could never speake in their own cause , yet their should be sure to speake in their Fathers cause . 4. Sonnes , Because they have not such a spirit of servility upon them as they had in the time of the Law. Christ is come to redeem us that we might serve the Lord in holinesse and righteousnesse before him without feare all the dayes of our life , to take away the spirit of feare : Hence the Apostle saith , We have not received the spirit of feare but of love , and of a sound minde . And Heb. 2. 15. Christ is come to redeem those who through feare of death were all their life time subject to bondage . The spirit of a sonne is not be spirit of feare , We have not received the spirit of bondage to feare again , but the spirit of adoption whereby we cry Abba Father . It is unbeseeming the children of God , especially in the time of the Gospel , to be of such servile spirits as to feare every little danger , to be distracted with fear , and presently to be amazed . Hath not God revealed himselfe to us as a Father to his children that we must not feare ? He would not have us feare himselfe , not with a servile sear as men do , and therefore surely not to fear men be they what they will be . We are sons . Again , Not only sons , for so we might find in Scripture , where the people of God under the Law , perhaps are sometimes called so , but elder sons , sons come to yeares . It is true , they were before us , and so in that respect we are not elder ; bnt sons that are come to our inheritance , that is it I mean that we are such sons ; Not children under tutorage , not under School-masters and governours , as they were in the time under the Law. You know what comparison the Scripture makes of the difference betweene the Church in the time of the Gospell , and that in the time of the Law. In the time of the Law it is true indeed they were children , but how ? they were children that were under tuttors and Governours , they were not as yet come to years , they were but as young children that were put out to school . But now as the Apostle saith , Gal. 4. 15. Chrst hath redeemed us from being under the Law , that we might receive the adoption of sonnes : marke , that we might receive it , so that now the state of the Church is like unto a child that cometh to be of age , and so is freed from his Tutors and Governors , and cometh to his inheritance , sui juris , as it were , so is the state of the Church now . Therefore the Saints now are not to be dealt withal , as if stil they were in their childish condition . Now how were the Jewes dealt withall , becausethey were in their childish condition ? Thus , they had outward externall ethings to gain them to serve God , they worshipped God much in externall things : As we deale with children , we give them apples and fine things to get them to doe what we would have them do , so God dealt with them : And as children when they begin to learne , they must have a great many gayes in their book ; so God taught the Jewes with outward ceremonies , which afterward the Scripture calls but beggarly rudiments , poor things . Children you know are pleased much with gay things , and they that would bring in Jewish ceremonies , or ceremonies of their own invention in the Church , they make account the Church is in her childish condition still , as if gay things would please them , therefore they must have pictures , and Images , and such things to please people , this makes the people of God beneath themselves as if they were yet children , and were to be pleased with such things as these . No , now in the state of the Gospel they are come to the adoption of sons . And so children you know are pleased as with fsghts , so with hearing of musick , and pipes , and such things , so men would bring such things still into the Church in the time of the Gospel . I remember Iust . Martyr in the 107. quest . ad orthodoxos , in answer to that about musicall instruments , he saith that they are fit for children and fooles , as Organs and the like , and therefore hee sayes , they were not in use in the Church . One of the most ancient Writers we have after the Apostles time gives this for a commendation of them . And indeed for the childish state of the Church those things are fit , but now when they are come to the adoption of sons , other services that are more spirituall , are more sutable and honourable , as a man that is grown to be a man , would think himselfe wronged much to be taught as a childe , to be put off with gay things ; so should the people of God under the gospell think it a great wrong that hath been done to them , when men have sought to teach them with gayes and poor things , we are not still children , but so grown up to the adoption of sons as to receive our inheritance , and therefore are to have the priviledg of such . Againe . In that place where it was said , yee are not my people , it shall be said , &c. Israel that was cast off from God , now shall be brought in more fully then ever he was before . Thence the observation is , When God is pleased to be reconciled to a people , he is as fully theirs as ever , yea sometimes more fully . He comes rather with more full grace then ever formerly he did . People before , but sons now . O what an incouragement is this to all apostatizing soules that have fallen off from God! Come in , come in , and be reconciled to God , and thou shalt not only find God as good as ever thou didst , but thou shalt find him much better and much sweeter then ever thou didst in all thy life . It is seldome we are so . When men fall out one with another , though possibly they may be reconciled , yet it is seldome that they are so fully reconciled , so fully one as they were before ; they are but as a broken vessell sodered together , that is very weake in the sodering place ; or as garments that have been rent , and are mended , soon torn and quickly ready to fall in pieces in the place where they were mended ; It is not so between God and a penitent soule . Again , sons , not onely of God , but of the living God. There is much in this , that the people of God under the gospell should be called the sons of the living God : The life of God is the glory of God : he sweareth by his life : by this he is distinguished from the heathen gods , that hee is the living God. Life is the most excellent thing in the world ; Augustine therefore saith , that the life of a very fly is more excellent then the Sun in the Firmament : and certainly it is the glory of God , that he is the living God. And as God is the living God , so he is the object of our faith , and so he is the happinesse of his people . Trust in the living God ; my soule pants and thirsts after the living God , O when shall I come and appear before God. But why is God called the living God in reference to his Church here ? 〈…〉 thing we must enquire after . This is a treasure of comfort to his people that he is called the living God in reference to his Church . God would hereby declare to them that all that is in him shall be active for the good of his Church for ever , hee will shew himselfe not only to be a God , but a living God , hee will shew all his attributes to be living attributes for the good of his people . Did God shew himselfe active for his people in former times ? much more may his Church in the time of the gospell expect the Lord to manifest himself to be active amongst them . Therefore we make use o● what we read of Gods activeness for the good of his Church in former times , to plead with God to shew himself as much active now . You shall see how the Church made use of the former activeness of God , Isa . 51. 9. Awake , Awake , put on strength , O arme of the Lord , awake as in the ancient dayes , in the generations of olde . Art not thou it that hath out Rahab and wounded the Dragon ? Art thou not it which hath dried the sea , the waters of the great deep ? &c. Thou hast been active heretofore for thy people , oh be so sti● . If they might make use of former times , much more in our times of the gospell may we make use of former times , and plead with God , O Lord hast thou not shewn thy selfe glorious in defence of thy people , in helping thy fervants in their great straits , and in destroying thine enemies ? wilt not thou be so still ? In the times of the gospel , we may expect more activenes of God then ever he manifested since the world begun . Therefore when God would set out the state of the Church of the gospel , mark how he takes that title to himselfe . Revel . 4. 9. The 4. living creatures ( mentioned in the verses before , by which is meant the state of the Church under the gospel ) they give glory , and honour , & thanks to him that sate on the throne , who liveth for ever and ever : and ver . 10. The 24. Elders fell downe before Him that sate on the Throne , and worshipped Him that liveth for ever and ever , and Chap. 5. 14. both joyne together , The 4. living creatures and the 24. Elders fell downe and worshipped him that liveth for ever and ever . And Chap. 10. 5 , 6. The Angell which stood upon the sea , and upon the earth , lifted up his hand and sware by him that liveth for ever and ever . Thus the attribute of Gods life is made use of for the state of the Church in the gospell , to shew how active God will be for them . Thence Heb. 12. 22. the Church is called The Cities of the living God. Now then if we expect that God should be a living God unto us , it becomes not us to have dead hearts in his service . If God be active for our good , let us be active for his honour . A living and a lively Christian is beautifull in the eyes of God and man. Let us labour not onely to be liviing , but to be lively for God and his cause . Abundance of service , and good , may living and lively Christians do in the places where they live , specially in these times . But oh what a few are there who are active and stirring , and are carryed on by the spirit of wisdome and zeale , for God and his cause ! Away now with out cold and dead wishes , and luskish desires , let us up , and be doing , and the Lord will be with us . The adversaries are lively , so saith the Psalmift , mine tnemies are lively , and they are strong , Psal . 38. 19. We may well make use of that expression too , our enemies they are lively and strong ; shall they be more lively and active for the Devill , and for their lusts , then we for the living God ? As God is the object of our happinesse as he is the living God , so wee are the objects of Gods delight as we are living too . God is not the God of the dead , but he is the God of the living . We should be lively and active , for we live upon the bread of life , and drink the water of life , we have lively Oracles , lively ordinances , therefore life and activity is required of us . Rom. 12. 11. Be fervent in spirit serving the Lord , be burning , boyling up in your spirits , for you are serving the Lord , the living God , be boyling up in your spirits ; dead spirits become not the services of the living God. Grace is called the Divine nature , and God ( wee know ) is a pure act , and it is called the very life of God. It is impossible then but a Christian must needs be active , seeing his grace is the very life of God in him . By being lively and active , we shall prevent abundance of temptations , that otherwise will befallus : a dead luskish spirit is lyable to a thousand temptations : as when the honey is scalding hot and boyling , the flies will not come to it ; when it is set in the window and grows cold , then the flies come to it : so when the spirits of men are boyling hot for God , Belzebub the god of flies with his temptations , comes not then upon them , but when their spirits begin to cool , and grow dull and heavy , then comes Belzebub , then comes all manner of temptation upon the soule . The breath that comes from life , we know it is warme breath , but artificiall breath that is cold ; the breath that comes from the body of a man , that 's hot , but the breath that cometh from a paire of Bellows , that is cold , because it is artificiall breath : so when men are cold in the services of God , it is to be feared that their breath in praying and other duties , it is but artificiall breath , it is not the breath of life , if it were living , it would be warm . That was the reason why God would not have an asse offered him in the Law in sacrifice , but his neck must be broken , because the asse is a dull creature , God loves not dull creatures in his service . I remember I have heard of a people that worshipped the sunne for their god , they sacrificed to the sun a flying horse ; the reason was this , because they would offer to the sun somewhat sutable to it ; they honoured the sun for the swiftness of his motion , and a horse you know is a swift creature , and therefore somewhat sutable , especially having that emble me upon him , with wings . They that would honour the sun as a god for swiftnes would not offer a snayle , but a flying horse ; so if wee do honour God for a living God , an active God , let us not offer snayles to him , dull , heavy , sluggish services , but quick and lively services . That which the Courtiers of Nebuchadnezzar flatteringly said to him , that in the name of God say I to you , Live for ever , Joh. 6. 57. saith Christ there , As the living Father hath sent me , and I live by the Father , so he that eateth me even he shall live by me . Christ was active , exceeding active in his way , in the work he was sent about ; Why ? because the living Father sent him ; so letus consider , that in all our services and employments , it is a living God that sets us about them , and we shall be active as Christ was . I am willing a little to inlarge this because of the necessity of it in regard of our present times , and give me leave to do it by telling you what this activeness is that I would put you upon in these three things . First , stay not for company in any good cause . An active spirit will not stay till he see others to accompany him , but if he must go , rather then the cause should fall he will goe alone . Mark that saying , Isa . 51. 2. I called Abraham alone and blessed him : Be not discouraged , if God give thee an active spirit and others will not appear , God calls thee alone , and he will blesset hee . Secondly , when you have company do not lag behind , but he willing to be formost rather then any cause of God should suffer by your lagging ; do not stay to have others go before you . Hence in Pro. 30. 31. amongst the comely goings of many things there , the going of the he-goat is said to be very comely , why ? because the he-goat useth to go before the flock . Those that out of love to the cause of God are willing ( if they be called to it ) to goe before the flock , they goe comely in the eyes of God. Thirdly , do not forbear the work till all difficulties about it be first over . That is a sluggish spirit that wil not set about the work till they can see how all the difficulties about the worke are or may be removed . You must up and be doing , be doing presently , fall to the worke , and then when you are working , wisely to prevent and avoid the difficulties that come in it ; As those active spirits did that we read of in Nehem. 4. 17. when they were at work , with one of their hands they wrought , and with the other hand they held a weapon ; they did not stay the building of the wall of Jerusalem till all their adversaries were quashed ; but prefently they fell to it , and with one hand they wrought in the work , and with the other held a weapon . This is an active spirit . Further , we must not be active in a sudden mood , & upon a meer flash , and so gone , but in a constant solid way ; Active , yet solid . Many indeed are stirring and active for the present , but as the flame of a wispe of straw that makes a noise , and a great stir for the present , but soone after there remains nothing but black dead ashes . But we must be considerately active ; Therefore observe , the Scripture saith ( speaking of the Saints specially in the time of the Gospel ) that they are lively stones ( you know the place of Peter ) What a stone , and yet lively ? A stone of all things is the most dead thing , and so it is used to set out a dead spirit in that story of Nabal , when Abigail came to tell him of the business of David , the Text saith , that his heart dyed within him , and became as a stone . What is this but to shew , that though we must be lively and active , 〈…〉 must be solid , firme , and substantiall in our activeness ; and again , that when we are solid , firm , and substantiall , yet we must be active . There are many that know not how to be active solidly , and therefore grow slight and vain in their activity : and many others striving to be solid and substantiall , they quicly grow dull : many through a kind of affected gravity , they would forsooth be accounted solid and wise , and so become at last dull , and heavy , and of very little use in the Church of God. Take heed of either , and labour to compose both together , that is acceptable to God , to be living stones before him . Ver. 11. Then shall the children of Judah , and the children of Israel be gathered together , &c. Here you have a promise both to Israel and Judah together . Great was the enmity between Judah and Israel heretofore . They worshipped the same God , but in divers manners . One worshipped God according to his owne institution , Judah did . And Israel worshipped the same God , but after their own ways , according to their own inventions , so as might best sute with their politique ends . There was a great deale of bitternesse and vexation between these two people , though worshipping the same God ; and God here makes it a great matter to bring these two together , that they should be gathered together in one . For that here wee have the promise : First , that there shall be an union : Secondly , that there shall be an union under one head . First , that there shall be an union . Hence then the first observation is this : The enmity of such as seem not much different in matters of Religion , and yet do differ , is sometime exceeding great and bitter . There shall be an union between Judah and Israel saith God. Here is a mercy , here is a wonderful worke of the Lord. In that God doth I say make this so great a matter , this observation doth spring forth of the Text clearly , that many times between such as professe the same Religion , and seem not to differ much , and yet do differ , their oppositions are most bitter and ineconcileable , and requires a mighty worke of God to bring them in and reconcile them . It appears it was so between Judah and Israel . I will give you but one Text for it , 2 Chr. 28. 9. The Prophet Obed tells the children of Israel , when he came to reprove them after the slaughter committed by them upon the children of Judah , saith he , Ye have slain them in a rage that reacheth up to heaven . What a rage was this this ? and yet thus the people of Israel were inraged against the people of Iudah , their opposition was very bitter , yea , more bitter were they many times one against another , then they were against the Heathen , the Philistims , and Assyrians , and Egyptians that were round about them , they were nothing so bitter against them , as they were one against another . Thus it hath been , and ( untill that blessed time come that here is spoken of in the Text ) thus it will be . You know the Calvinists and Lut he rans , though they agree together against Papists in the main fundamental things , yet ●h the bitternesse of their spirits one against another ! A Lutheran is scarce so bitter against a Papist as he is against a Calvinist . Luther himself complaineth , Not only open wicked men are our enemies , but even our frends , and those that at first received the doctrine of the Gospel from us ; even they persecute us most bitterly . And he complaineth in particular of Zuinglius ; Zuing. ( saith he ) accuseth me of my wickedness , of any cruelty , so that the Papists doe not teare me so much as these my friends . Again , speaking of Corolost adius , He is more deadly against mee , more set against me then ever any of my enemies were . Even hee that God did ufe together with Luther for great ends and purposes for the furtherance of the Gospell , yet such bitterness was between them . And hath it not been so amongst us ? Those that are Protestants and such as are nick-named Puritans , though they do agree in all the fundamentall points against popery , yet because there is some difference in matter of discipline and ceremonies , Oh what bitternesse of spirit is there ? and it is so much the more sinfull in those who say themselves that discipline and ceremonies are but in different things , they themselves are specially to be blamed for bitterneesse on their side , because the conscience of the other is bound up and cannot yeeld , yea , not only such as doe contend against popish discipline , but such as doe goe a further degree in reformation of discipline it selfe , yet because they are differing in some few particulars , oh the bitterness of spirit that is many times even among them ! These are times that call all the people of God to see what they can agree in , and in that to joyne against the common adversary , and not to tear one another by dissentions . God may justly give us over to our adversaries , if we agree not among our selves , and they may chaine us together : Perhaps a Prison may make us agree , as it was said of Ridley and Hooper ; though Ridley stood much against Hooper in point of ceremonies , and they could not agree , yet when they came to Prison they did well enough there . The Lord deliver us from that medicine of our dissentions , that wee be not made so to agree ; Yea that we be not sodered together by our own blood . Secondly , God hath a time to gather Judah and Israel both together , that is , to bring peace to his Church : God hath a time to gather all his Churches together in a way of peace , that there shall be an universall peace amongst his Churches . For thought it is true it be meant here of Judah and Israel literally , yet Israel and Judah is to set out to us all the Churches of God that shall bee afterwards among the Gentiles : and as God will fulfill this Scripture literally , so he will fulfill it in the spirituall sense , to bring Judah and Israel , that is , all the Churches of God to be under one head . Isa . 11. 13. Ephraim shall not envy Iudah , and Iudah shall not envy Ephraim . Ephraim envyed Judah , because Judah challenged to himselfe the true worship of God , and Judah on the other side envyed Ephraim , because hee was the greatest , there was vexing spirits one against another : this shall not alvvays be , saith God , but the envy of Ephraim shall depart , I will take away this envious , this vexatious spirit . Those two staves the holy Ghost speaks of in Zach. 11. 10 , 11. 14. the staffe of beauty , and the staffe of bands , they were both broken , but God hath a time to unite together again , and for that mark that excellent prophecie in Ezek. 37. 16 , 17. 22. 24. There you shall find fully set out Gods bringing Judah and Israel together , and joyning those sticks together again . Son of man ( saith the Text there ) take thee one sticke and write upon it , for Iudah and for the children of Israel his companions , & then take another sticke , & write upon it , for Ioseph the sticke of Ephraim , & for all the house of Israel his companions ; and joyne them one to another into one sticke , & they shall become one in thy hand . And then ver . 19. this is interpreted of the union of them , Behold I will take the stick of Ioseph which is in the hand of Ephraim , & will put them with the stick of Iudah , & make them one sticke , & they shal be one in mine hand : And vers . 22. I will make them one Nation in the land upon he mountains of Israel , & one King shall be King to them all : And in the 24. ver . that King is said to be David which we shall afterward shew more fully , when we shall come to shew this head that they shall be under . Now this God hath never yet fulfilled , that the ten Tribes , and Judah and Benjamine should come together , and be set in one stick , he hath never set together the staffe of bonds that was broken , and yet this must be done , and it is the great blessing of God upon his Churches , the bringing about of this union one with another . Mark that Text for this purpose , Ier. 33. God having promised having promised there in the 10. ver . that in the latter dayes he would bring Judah & Israel together , and build them up at first : then in the 14. vers . Behold the dayes come , saith the Lord , that I will perform the good thing which I have promised unto the children of Israel , & to the house of Judah . What is that good thing that God had promised to the houses of Israel and Iudah ? That good thing ( my brethren ) is the building them up together as they were at first ; that is the good thing . Behold how good & pleasant a thing it is for brethren to live together in unity : It is like the precious ointment upon the head that ran downe upon the beard , even Aarons beard , that went down to the skirts of his garments , as the dew of Hermon , & as the dew that descended upon the mountains of Zion , for there the Lord commanded the blessing , even 〈…〉 the Churches of God where there is this 〈…〉 here is God commanding blessing , that 〈…〉 powerfully ; commeth efficaciously , and blessing of life , and life for evermore . O who would not then love union and peace in the Churches ! Zach. 14. 9. The Lord shal be King over all the earth , in that day shall there be one Lord , & his name one . The Churches now , they have one Lord , they all acknowledg God & Christ to be their Lord , yea but this Lord hath not one name , though they all pretend to Christ , & that they will honour Christ , and set up Christ , yet this one Lord hath many names . But here it is prophefied that there shall be but one Lord , and his name shall be but one neither . And Zeph. 3. 9. Then will I turne to a people of a pure languag that they may all cal upon the name of the Lord & serve him with one consent . The word in the Originall is , one shoulder ; all the people of God shall have but one shoulder that they shall set to the service of God. O blessed time when they shall come so to be united as to have but one shoulder ! And the greater will this blessing be of Iudahs and Israels gathering together , if you consider these two things ( I beseech you observe them ) and I goe no further then this very Scripture I am now opening to you . First , that they shall have this perfect union together even then when Israel shall be as the sand of the sea : when there shall be such multitudes comming in and flocking to the Church , yet then they shall be united into one , and then there shall be peace in the Churches . It is not a hard matter when there are but very few of a Church , perhaps halfe a dozen or halfe a score , for them then to be of one mind , and to agree in one lovingly together , and to have no divisions nor dissentions among themselves ; but when a Church grows to be a multitude , and a great many , then there lies the difficulty . When did ever any Church though never so well constituted at first , but increase in divisions and dissentions , as they increased in number and multitude ? You see you find it very hard when you have any meeting in any society , when any business concerns a great many , you finde it I say a very hard thing so to agree together as to be of one and the same mind . An instrument , as a watch or any thing that hath many wheels , is sooner out of frame then that which hath but a wheele or two . So when a great many come together about any businesse , it is mighty hard to bring them to be united in one . There are few families that have many persons in it , but quickly dissentions and brablings grow among them : perhaps where there are two or three in a family they keep well enough together : but where there are many , where there are but seven in a family , they cannot so well agree , nor so long a time together as the seven Devills did in Mary Magdalen , they agreed better and longer then many a seven in a family : But God hath made this promise to the Church , that though it shall increase as the sand on the sea shore , and that multitudes shall come flocking to the Church , yet they shall be all gathered together into 〈◊〉 under one head , and they shall have peace , for certainly that is the●● 〈◊〉 of the holy Ghost here . Secondly , They shall agree in one , not only when they are multitude , but when they shall come to enjoy their full priviledges , and the full liberty that Christ hath purchased for them , even then there shal be a blessed agreement . For it is spoken here of those times when they shall come under one head , and Christ alone shall rule them , and not mens inventious ; Christ will grant his Church those priviledges that he hath purchased for them , & rule them according to those , and then there shall be a blessed agreement among them all . Men now think it impossible that the Church should have those liberties Christ hath purchased without dissentions , oh say they , grant them but such and such things , let them have but such liberty as they speak of , and we shall have nothing but brabling and divisions ; what shall every man be left to do what he list ? why then we shall have nothing but breaches in the Church , and heart-burning one against another . No , Christ hath never purchased so much liberty for every man to do what he list in things apparently unlawfull against the common principles of Religion , In those there may be compulsion . But that liberty that Christ hath purchased , is the lawful use of the things of indifferency , and the lawfull use of his ordinances . And though now men think that even in such things that are in themselves indifferent , if men be left at their liberty , there will be such heart-burning , & such dissentions , and no peace at all in the Church ; they are much mistaken in this , for the onely way to have true peace in the Church , is to leave things as Christ hath left them , & to force nothing upon mens consciences that Christ would not have forced , this is the way of peace ; and the special way of dissention ( we have had experience of it ) hath been and ever will be , the urging upon mens consciences those things Christ would not have urged , this is it that makes the greatest rent & division in the Church . The urging of uniformity in all indifferent things as necessary to unity is a most false principle , you wil finde it so . It is a principle that many have been led by , but it is an extream , false , and corrupt principle , and is and will be found to bee the cause of the greatest distractions . VVhen this time comes that is here prophesied of , there shall not be any such neede of any Antichristian chaine , to chaine the servants of God together , but they shall be one without any such doings . It is true , Papists and Prelaticall men , they cry out of others ; there are such divisions among them say they , none of them can agree , there is more uniformity and unity with us than there is with them , every one there among them runs up and downe and doth what he pleaseth . Marke these two Answers to that . First , They have little cause to brag of their unity if we consider all ; for in the meane time though many thousands of Christians , and hundreds of faithful , painful , and conscionable Ministers of God that did more service to God and his Church then ever they wil●●o , though they be banished out of their countrey , and put 〈…〉 ●●remities , and endure sore afflictions for 〈…〉 ●●ch of unity with them at all , though 〈…〉 things they have caused many 〈◊〉 〈…〉 . This is no breach of unity with them . But suppose by their power they could have brought all to an uniformity , in their own inventions and innovations as they desired . What then ? they have little cause to brag of that unity neither . Certainly there the remedy would have been worse then the disease , and work a greater mischief . Their bragging then of unity would have been no other but thus , as if a couple of prisoners chained to a block , and kept close all day , should see others goe abroad in the streets at a distance , and they should cry out to them , Why doe you not take example by us ? you keep at a distance one from another , doe you not see that we keepe close together from morning to night ? pray take example by us , and do not go so distant one from another . Would not such an argument be most ridiculous ? What is the reason of their union but their choine ? Certainly there is the same argument in these mens pleading for that uniformity that they force men to by such a kinde of Antichristian chaine . What breach of unity is it if in a broad street one goes a little distant from another ? and so what breach is it if in matters of indifferency one take one way and another another ? It is the corrupt and perverse spirits of men that thinke they cannot have unity , and yet have things as Christ have left them . Christ needs no such things to cause unity in his Church , the spirit of his people that shal love truth & peace is enough to cause that unity he would have . And O that this time that this gathering together were come , of all Churches to be made one , & be under one head ! for abundance of mischief is done now among the Churches , and in the world by the spirit of division and dissension . The Devil delights ( especially that devil that is the spirit of division ) to live in the region of the Church . There are some devils especially that are spirits of pride , ( as the dumb devil ) and some of dissention , and some of one kinde and some of another ; and I remember Cajetan hath a note upon that place of the Gospel , where our Saviour Christ cast the devils out of the possessed man , they besought him that he would let them enter into the swine , & that he would not send them out of that Region , because ( saith he ) they have several Regions where they most haunt , and they that are in such a Region , they are loath to be put out of it , but would faine keep their place . Whether that be so or no we will not say , but this we say , that if their be any Religion in the world that the unclean spirit of division loveth to be in , and is loath to be cast out ; it is the Region of the Church , for their he doth the greatest mischiefe . But Christ hath a time to cast this unelean spirit out of the Region of the Church , and that so , as hee never shall returne any more . This point in regard we meet with it so fitly , and is so fully agreeable to the necessity of our times , I cannot tell ( though I go a little beyond the ordinary way of exposition ) how to get off from it . This union of the Churches is that which will be the stability of it . You have an admirable place of this , Isa . 33. ●● . Thine eyes sball see Jerusalem a quiet ation habit . O that our eyes migh● 〈◊〉 blessed 〈◊〉 behold Jerusalem a quiet habitation , then we should be will 〈…〉 hold Simeon to say , Lord now lettest thou thy servant depart in peace , for mine eyes have seen thy salvation . Marke then what followes , a quiet habitation , a tabernacle that shall not be taken down , nor one of the stakes thereof shall ever be removed , neither shall any of the cords thereof be broken , but there the glory of God will be unto us a place of broad rivers and streames , wherein shal no galley with oare , neither shal gallant Ship passe thereby . The kingdoms of the world though they seem to be built upon mountaines , yet God will tosse them up and down , and they shall come to nothing : but the Church when it is made a quiet habitation ( observe it ) though it be but a tabernacle & set upon stakes , yet this tabernacle shall not be taken downe , nor one of the stakes thereof shall ever be removed , though it be tyed by lines , yet not a cord thereof shal be broken . Yea in this the glory of the Church doth consist , for so saith the Text there , when it is a quiet habitation , the glory of God shall be there , God shall dwell among them as a glorious God. No Church more honourable then the Church of Philadelphia , for that is the Church the Adversaries must come and bow before . Rev. 3. 9. and that Church carryeth Brotherly love in the very name of it , for so it signifies . Cant. 6. 9. My dove , my undefiled is but one , the onely one of her mother . What followeth ? The daughters saw her and blessed her , yea the Queens and the Concubines , and they praised her . When Christs dove and undefiled comes once to be but one , the daughters shall see her and blesse her . Esay , 11. 7. 8. &c. There you have a promise of Judah and of Ephraims joyning together . Mark what followes , Chap. 12. 1. In that day thou shalt say , O Lord , I will praise thee . ( Observe , In that day . ) And again , ver . 4. In that day shall you say , Praise the Lord , proclaime his Name , declare his doings among the people , make mention that his name is exalted , Sing unto the Lord , for he hath done excellent things ; cry out and shout thou inhabitant of Zion . Then indeed God doth excellent things , when he makes Ephraim and Judah come to be but one . Therefore saith the Apostle , 1 Cor. 12. 31. Yet shew I unto you a more excellent way , What is that way ? In the Chapter following he falls upon the commendation of Love , where you have the highest commendation of it that is in all the book of God ; that is the more excellent way . Cant. 3. 9. There the Church is compared to the Charet of Solomon : The pillars of it ( saith the Text ) were all of silver , the bortome thereof gold , the covering of it of purple , and the middest thereof being paved with love . Then indeed doth the Church ride in triumph in her Charet , when there is much love and peace in the midst of it . It is true ( my brethren ) considering the weakenesse and peevishnesse of mens spirits ( yea of good men as well as evil ) we may wonder how ever this shall come to passe ; Is it possible that this shall ever be so ? Indeed it must be a mighty work of God to do it . We must not think to effect it by strugling one with another , and to say 〈◊〉 will make them be at peace and unity , or they shall sma●● 〈…〉 pull them together by Law. This will not do it , 〈…〉 for the accomplishing of this great thing . Ier. 33. 3. Thus 〈…〉 , Call unto me and I will answer thee , and shew thee great and mighty things which thou knowest not . What are those great and mighty things that we must call to God for ? Amongst others this is one principal one , ver . 7. I will cause the captivity of Judah and the captivity of Israel to returne , and will build them as at the first , and so make them bochone . And then ver . 9. It shall be to me a name of joy , a praise & an honour before all the Nations of the earth , when they shall heare of all the good that I doe unto them . Marke , joy , praise , honour , yea a name of joy , praise , honour , followes upon this blessed union , and that before all the Nations of the earth . For the accomplishment of this . Come Lord Jesus , come quickely ! Yet let us further observe the difference between the scattering of the wicked , and the scattering of the Saints . Judah & Israel they were scattered , but , now they shall be gathered together . There is a great deale of difference between the scattering of the Saints , and the scattering of the wicked : When God scatters the Saints , he scatters them that they may be gathered ; when he scatters the wicked , hee scatters them that he may destroy them , Psal . 68. 1. Let God arise , and let his enemies be scattered : How scattered ? As smoake is driven away ; so drive them away . Smoake you know is driven away and scattered , so as it comes to nothing . Psal . 144. 6. Cast forth lightning and scatter them , shoote out thine Arrowes and destroy them . This is the scattering of the wicked : but as for the Saints , they may be scattered , but it is to spread abroad the gospell by them in the world . Acts 8. 4. The Text saith , They that were scattered abroad by reason of the persecution of Saul , went every where preaching the word : but within a while our God shall come and all his Saints with him , and hee will gather together the out-casts of Israel , with abundance of mercy : so Micah . 46. In that day saith the Lord , I will gather her that is driven out & her that I have afflicted ; and Esay , 54. 7. For a time , for a small moment have I forsaken thee , but with great mercies I will gather thee . God will gather his people with great mercyes . God hath ( my brethren ) fulfilled this in a great part , in our eyes even this day . Many of those that were driven out of their places and Countryes , those that were afflicted , and those the land could not beare , God hath gathered together these out-casts of Israel . Let every one take heed how he hinders this worke of the Lord , and how he addeth affliction to those that have been afflicted . Again further . They shall be gathered together in that day , That is , in the time of the Gospel , when that shall prevail then Judah and Israel shall be gathered together . Then , The more the Gospel prevailes , the more peace there shall be . The Gospel is not the cause of divisions then , of seditions , of factions ; No , It is a gospell of peace ; the Prince of it is a Prince of peace , the Ambassage of it is an Ambassage of peace . It is next unto blasphemy , if not blasphemy it selfe , to say that since the preaching and profession of the Gospel , we had no peace , but it causes act 〈…〉 and divisions among the people . It is true , people that are in the darke 〈…〉 and quiet together , as it is said of the Egyptians , when they were in the darke for those three dayes together , they stirred not from their stooles , there was no noise among them ; shall the light be blamed because afterward when it came , every one stirred , and went , one , one way and another , another ? so when we were in grosse darknesse , we saw nothing , we knew nothing ; Now light begins to breake forth , and here one searcheth after one truth , and another after another , and yet we cannot attaine to perfection ; shall we accuse the light for this ? Yea but we see too apparently that those that seem the strictest of all , that would worship God ( as they say ) in the purest manner in his Ordinances ; yet there are woefull divisions and distractions even amongst them . How then is the Gospel a Gospel of peace ? But a word in answer to this ; To satisfie your consciences , that the Gospel may not be blamed , for indeed where the Gospel comes , there is promised peace . Consider this one reason that may be given for it . Because so long as we are here we are partly flesh and partly spirit . Yet those that have the Gospel prevaile with their consciences , they come to be of this temper , that they cannot move any further then they can see light for , and their consciences will give them leave . But now other men they have more liberty , they indeed quarrel not one with another , why ? because they have wide , checker , lyther consciences , & having ends of their owne they will yeeld to any thing for the attaining of those ends ; so that here they have this advantage , that if they see that the contention will bring them more trouble then they conceive the thing is worth , they will condescend though it be against light of conscience . But other men upon whom the light of the Gospel hath prevailed have that bond upon conscience , that though all the world should differ from them , they must be content to lye down and suffer , they cannot yeeld , though you would give them all the world they cannot go against that light . But indeed they may search , and it may trouble them that their apprehensions of things should be different from the apprehensions of their brethren , and that they cannot yeeld to that which their brethren yeeld too . It is true , they should be humbled , and suspect their hearts , and look to themselves , and fall down before God and pray , and use all means for advice and counsell , and consider of things again and again . Well , but suppose they have done all this , and yet the Lord doth not reveale to them any further light , though it be a sad affliction to them yet they must lye down under it , for they cannot yeeld , one known truth is more then all the world , therefore unlesse others will beare with them in their infirmity , they must suffer whatsoever men will lay upon them . True indeed , the world calls this stoutness , and stifnesse , and being wedded to their own opinion . But they know it is otherwise , they can appeal to God and say , Lord thou knowest what a sad affliction it is unto me that I cannot see what my brother sees , and that I cannot yeeld to what my brother yeelds to , thou hast hid it from me : I 〈◊〉 wait upon thee till thou shalt reveal it , & in the 〈…〉 and not make disturbances in the places vvhere I come , but pray , 〈…〉 for light , and that thou wouldst incline the 〈◊〉 of my brethren unto me , 〈◊〉 they may not have hard thoughts of Do but thus , thou shalt have peace with God , and in thine own heart howsoever . But again marke , Judah and Israel they shal be gathered together . So soone as any are converted to the faith , they are of a gathering disposition . They desire to gather to the Saints presently . Every childe of God that is converted is a gatherer , as Solomon is called Ecclesiastes , so in the Greeke , but the Hebrew word is interpreted by some a soule gathered , because it is in the faeminine genger . None in the world love good fellowship so much as the Saints of God. They fly as doves to their windows , & doves you know use to fly in great flocks , thousands together . The more spirituall any one is , of the more joyning & uniting nature he is . Thousands of beames of the Sun will meet together in one better then the beams of a candle will doe . The Saints of God in the Apostles times when they were converted , it is said , they were added to the Church , they gathered presently . So in Esay . 66. ( it is an observable place ) ver . 20. the Text saith , They shall bring their brethren as an offering to the Lord out of all Nations , upon horses , and in chariots , & . in litters . How comes this ? There shall be many that dwell a great way off . they shall not make that their excuse for their not joyning to the people of God , because they are afar off , It is a great journey ; No , but there be horses to be got : But it may be some cannot ride ? Then get Charets : But some perhaps are so weake that they can neither ride on horses nor in Chariots , then they will get litters , and litters you know are to carry weake & sick persons . This shews the intention of spirit that is in the people of God to be gathered to the Church , either to be carryed on horses , or in Chariots , or in litters , one way or other they will come and joyn themselves to the people of God. For there is the presence of Christ , and the protection of Christ , and the comunication of Christ in their union and communion , and where the carcasse is , there will the Eagles resort . O they love alife to be going towards Sion , gathering one to another , as in Psal . 84. 7. They walk from strength to strength , and at last they all appear before God in Zion . From strength to strength , that is thus : From one place of the Country perhaps there comes halfe a score , or twenty , to go toward Zion , and perhaps before they come to such a town or turning , they meet with halfe a score more , & so they grow stronger ; when they are a mile or two further , perhaps they meet with another town coming , and they joyn presently & are stronger , and so they go from strength to strength comfortably together till they come before God in Zion They shall appoint themselves one Head. Although they be multitudes , & be as the sand of the sea , yet this is no great matter , unless they come under one Head , & a right Head too . It is not multitudes that is a sufficient argument of truth . A multitude coming under one Head , under Christ as one Head , they are the true Church . The Papists they give this Note of the Church , Universality , that there are so many Papists in the world . We must not regard people how 〈…〉 they are , but under what Head they are : They shall be gathered undermine Head , looke to the Head they follow ; for so S. Paul tells us that there shall be an Apostasie before the revelation of that man of sin , 2 Thes . 2. 3. And Rev. 1. 3. 3. All the world wandred after the beast : and ver . 2. The dragon gave him his power , and his seat , and great authority : and Rev. 17. 1. The whore sitteth upon many waters ; & ver . 15. these many waters are interpreted to be peoples , and multitudes , and nations , and tongues . The whore doth sit upon them , that is , doth use them vilely , and basely , sits upon the very consciences of them in a base manner , as if a whore should sit upon you and keep you under . And who doth she sit upon ? upon peoples and multitudes . It is not an argument then of a true Church though they are multitudes , though they be as the sand of the sea , though they be gathered together , for they must be gathered under one Head , under Christ . Secondly , Neither is Unity a sufficient argument of the verity of the Church . They shall be gathered together . they shall be joyned together in one way , with one consent ; yea but if it be not under one Head , it is like Simeon & Levi , brethren in iniquity . It is not enough that we be one , unless we be one in Christ ; and that is a blessed union : For a great deale of unity there shall be under Antichrist , Revel . 17. 13. These have one minde ( saith the Text ) and they shall give their strength & power to the beast . And Chap. 18. 5. Her sins reach unto heaven . Their sins cleave together , and so get up to heaven . A union of persons , and a union of sins there is amongst them . The Turks have as little dissention in their Religion as any ; they are allunited in one . But well may that garment have no seame , that hath no shape . And a notable place we have in Ps . 83. 3. 4. 5. &c. They have consulted together with one consent , they are confederate against thee . There are two or three things exceeding observable in this Scripture about the union of the wicked : First you have ten Countreys joyn together against the Church ; there is the Edomites , the Moabites . &c. And it was not by accident that they joyned , but in a deliberate way , They consulted together , and not onely consulted together , but consulted together with one consent , or heartily , for that which is translated there with one consent , the word in the Hebrew is , with heart together , their very heart was in the consultation ; but mark , it was against thy hidden ones , so ver . 3. Let them consult together , let ten of them consult together , and consult with their hearts , yet the Saints are Gods hidden ones . Esay 54. 15. They shall surely gather together , but not my me ; whosoever shall gather together against thee shal fall forthy sake . My brethren , Peace , though we should all desire it , yet so as not to have it too chargeable : Peace is then too chargeable when it costs us the losse of any truth . Take heed of any such costly Peace : There may hand joyn in hand together in wickednes , yet they shal not be unpunished , Pro. 16. 5. And Nah. 1. 10. While they are folded together as thorns , they shal be devoured as stubble fully dry . Wicked men they are as thorns to prick the people of God , yea they are thorns ●●lded together , there is a peace amongst them : yet though th●● be folded ●●gether , they shall bedevoured , they shal be 〈…〉 division that comes by truth , is beter then the union that comes by 〈…〉 a noble speech of Luther , Rather then any thing should fall of the Kingdome of Christ and his glory , let not onely peace 〈◊〉 , but let heaven and earth goe too : so wee should love peace , The Sixth Lecture HOSEA 1. the middle of the 11. verse . And appoint themselves one head , and they shall come up out of the land . FRom the tenth verse to the end , you have heard that God promiseth mercy to an Israel that he will in time raise up : although for that Israel to whom the Prophet spake , they shall go into captivity and shall not returne as Judah did . Secondly , Mercy to Israel and Judah both together , and that first , In the multitude that shall be gathered , secondly , In the excellency of the state of the Church at that time above that which was before ; before they were People , but then they shall be Sons : Thirdly , In the unity of them , Israel and Judah shall be both gathered together under one head . Some time was spent in the last exercise about unity , and the excellency of the unity of the Churches ; wherein we laboured to convince you that uniformity in judgement , and practice is not necessary for unity in the Churches , for unity of hearts . It is a false principle that runnes in the world , that all men must needs be brought to believe and doe the same thing or else there can be no peace . If we would have light let in to us , we must so prise it as to be willing that in the discussion of truths there should be some hazard of some differences in lesser things . If a man have a house closed on every side with a thick brick-wall , and he is so desirous to keepe his house safe and stronge , that he will rather all his dayes sit in the darke , then be at the trouble to have a hole digged or a few bricks broken to let in any light , wee would accuse that man of folly . It is true indeed , we must not be so desirous of light as to break so much of the wall as to indanger the house , we must keepe that safe ; but yet it is hard to let in light but there will be some bricks taken away , and there must be some trouble . A childe when he sees the work-man with his tooles breaking the wall and making a deale of rubbish , hee thinks he is pulling down the house , but a wise man knows it is but a little trouble for the present to let in light that shall be for the beauty of the house afterward . Unity in the Churches is lovely . But it must be under one head . They shal be gathered together and appoint themselves one head . Agreement in errour is farre worse then division for the sake of truth . Better to be divided from men that are erroneous , then to agree with them in the wayes of their arrour . A company gathered without the covenant of peace , without the observance of Gods law is a headlesse multitude , saies Bernard , it hath much of Babylon , but little of Jerusalem . What is this Head ? I finde both the Jewes and divers of the ●●cyents , Theodoret , Cyrill and others , that would make this head to be Zerubbabel , and onely to have reference to the returne of the people from their Babylonish captivity . But this certainly cannot be upon these two reasons , to name no more . First , Because both Israel and Judah are here to joyne together and to returne out of the land : there it was Judah and not the ten Tribes that were delivered from their captivity . Secondly , Compare this Scripture with others that are but a Comment upon it , and we shall finde that Zerubbabel cannot be meant , Ezeck . 34 , and 37. ( you may reade the Chapters at your leasure ) In those Chapters wee have expressions such as plainly appeares they are but Comments to this Text of Hosea ( for Ezekiel prophesied after Hosea did : ) and especially in the 37. Chap. we have a prophesie of the union of all the Tribes together , Judah and Israel , and ver . 24. David my servant shall be King over them , and ver . 25. My servant David shall be their Prince for ever . That one head that they shall have when they come together shall be David . And so in Chap. 34. ver . 23. I will set one shepheard over them , and he shall feed them , even my servant David : and ver . 24 , I the Lord will be their God and my servant David , not Zerubbabel , Now by David we are to understand Christ cleerly , for so in other palaces , as Esay , 55. 3. I will give unto you the sure mercies of David , they can onely be meant of the sure mercies of Christ , and so it is interpreted by S. Paul , Acts 13. 34. Therefore then we conclude certainly this is meant of Christ ; and they shall appoint Christ to be their Head. This is then the first great point that we have in this Text , a head-point of Divinity indeed , that JESUS CHRIST , is the head of the Church . And secondly , he shall be so appointed . We shall shew you what the meaning of that is when we come unto it . JESUS CHRIST It is he that is the head for the Church , and shal appear so hereafter further then now he doth . The Church is not a headlesse multitude , it is a community of Saints that hath a glorious Head. That body cannot be contemptible that hath a Head so honourable . It is he that is the brightnesse of the glory of his Father , in whom all fulnesse dwelleth , yea , the fulnesse of the Godhead bodily . It is he by whom all things consists , that is the beginning of all things , he that is the head of Angels themselves , Col. 2. 10. You are compleat in him which is the head of all principality & power . The Head of Angels , how ? First , because the Angels are joyned together with the Church , and are part of the Church triumphant , and so Christ is their Head. Secondly , Yea the Angels have influence from him . That Grace which they have from God , which is beyond naturals ; it is from Christ , for Christ is canalis gratiae , the channel of grace from God. Their establishment in their condition it is from Christ , for it is not due to them in a natural way , yea the glor● they 〈…〉 with the Church , it is above that which is due to their naturals , and 〈…〉 from Christ . 2. H●● the head of all men , 1 Cor. 11. 3. The head of every man is Christ . The head of every man , how ? What are all men in the world the body of Christ ? if he be the head , then it seemes they are all the members . No , though Christ be the head of Angels , yet Angels are not said to be members of him , yea in the same place of the Corinths , God is said to be the Head of Christ , and yet Christ is not a member of God. So that he may be the head of every man , and yet every man not a member of Christ . The head of every man in regard of that superiority that Christ hath over every man , and some kinde of influence even from Christ commeth to every man ; he inlightneth every man that comes into the world . Thirdly , Yea , hee that is the head of his people , of his Church , is the head of al things . Ephe. 1. 22. God hath given him to be head of all things to the Church . Mark it , it is a most admirable place , that Christ is the head of all things . But how ? To the Church , for the sake of the Church , as ayming at the good of the Church especially . Sure it is the honour of the Church to have such a head , that is thus the brightenesse of his Fathers glory , the head of Angels , the head of every man , the head of all things for the good of his Church . And as their honour consisteth in it , so secondly it is their strength . Christ is the head of the Church in regard of the strength that the Church hath by him . An oppressed multitude cannot help it selfe if they have no head , but if God shall please to give them strength and a head , and that in a legall way , if they have hearts they may deliver themselves from oppression , this God hath done for us ; if therefore God doth not vote us to misery and slavery , if we be not a people given up of God to ruine , we may have help . The Church is a communion of Saints oppressed here in the world , their strength is in heaven , it is in their Head , that hath received all power to exercise for them , in him is their strength , to him do they cleave , for him they blesse God even the Father , because he is their strength . Thirdly , He is their head because the Saints do hold all upon Christ , all that they have they hold in Capite , as the best tenure of all , the Tenure upon which the Saints hold all their comfort all their good in this world , it is in another way then other men hold it : other men have what they have through the bounty and patience of God ; but the Saints hold all in Capite , in their head , in Christ , in the right they have in him . Fourthly , Their head , because their safety is in him : though the Church , all the members be under water , yet all is safe when the head is above water , our head is in Heaven . It is a speech of Luthers ; He saith he was even as a Devil to them they did so accuse him , but let Christ live and raign , Christ is above , the head is above water . Fifthly , Their head in regard of his compassion to his Church and people . The meanest member here below , if wronged , Christ is sensible of it . When but the toe is trodden upon , the head cryes why doe you hurt me ? Christ the head cryes , Saul , Saul , why persecutest thou me ? And observe , the meaner and poorer the Members of Christ are here in the Church , the more is Christ sensible of their sorrowes and afflictions , and the more will he appeare for them , when he shall appear a head yet more gloriously then ever he hath done . For this that forenamed place Ezek. 34. from the 16. ver to the 26. is very notable . You shall finde there Christ is said to be one shepheard to his people and a Prince to them ; but mark what is promised , That he will binde up the broken , and bring back again that which was driven away , and strengthen that which was sick , but as for the fat of the flock and the strong he well destroy them , and feed them with judgement ; and he will judge between cattell and cattell , between the rams and the hee-goats , he will judge between the fat and the leane cattell ; he will judge those that thrust with side & with shoulder , and push at the diseased with their horns , untill they have scattered the sheep abroad . When Christ shall appeare , he will not shew such respect to the jolly spirits of those that were in the Church , to your brave , stout , jolly hearts , that would carry all before them with force ; No , he will looke to the poor of the flocke , and those that thrust with the side , and pushed with the hornes , and scattered the poor , and the leane ; they shall be judged . My brethren , have you not known times when stout-hearted and cruel-hearted men have thrust with the side , and pushed with the horne , and scattered up and down in divers Countreys thousands of the weake ones & tender conscioned Christians ? VVell , but here is a promise , that Christ our head will come , and he shall be one shepheard , and he shall shew his tender affection toward the poor afflicted of the flocke , he shall take away from the land the evill beasts , as you have it there in the 25. vers . He is the head in regard of his compassion . Sixthly , Christ is their head in regard of guidance and direction . The body is to be moved and guided by the head : so all truths , all doctrines of Religion must hold on Christ ; they hold on Christ in Capite , Colos . 2. 19. The Apostle rebuking worshipping of Angels and other false opinions , he saith , that they did not hold of the head ; All Doctrines in the Church therefore must hold of the head , and must not be obtruded upon the Church , but as they come from the head and hold there . Seventhly , And that principally , and which we must stick upon a while , which is intended here in the Text most of all . Christ is the head in regard of his rule , in regard of his government ; and therefore he that is called one head here is called a Prince in those two forenamed Chapters , Ezek 34 and 37. It would spend time needlesly to shew you in Scripture how Governours are called heads , that I suppose you are all acquainted with . This therefore is the maine thing that we are now to open unto you , how Christ is the head of the Church in regard of his rule and government . There are many things of concernment in this point . I shall desire to decline what possibly I may , all things that are controversall , especially with our brethren , & only speak of what I think for the present you are fit to beare First then , There are four 〈…〉 especially of the government of Christ in his Church , for which he is to be accounted the head . First , All Offices and Officers in the Church hold upon Christ and are from him as from the head . As ( you know ) it is in a civill body , the Offices of a civill State holds of the King ; holds upon him in a legall way , the power of the King being regular , it regulateth all power in all other Officers ; that which is done , is done ( you know ) in the name of the King. So all the Officers & Offices in the Church , are in the name of Christ , they all hold on him . First , That there can be no officer nor offices in the Church , but such as Christ himselfe hath appointed , for they must hold of him , they must be by institution . I beseech you observe the difference between Officers in a Civill State , and Officers in a Church . A Civill State because it directly reacheth but to the outward man , hath liberty to appoint what officers it please according to the rules of prudence and justice ; to appoint more or lesse according to the necessity of the Country & place . But it is not so in the Church , there we have no liberty to goe according to the rules of prudence meerly , to erect any office , because we think it may make for the good and peace of the Church ; I say , therefore to erect any new office that is not erected before in the Word , we have not that liberty , we cannot do it , we are too bold if we shall do it , for such an office will not hold of the Head. In the State none can erect new Offices ; new Courts , but the supreame power , the supreame Legislative power ; So in the Church , none can erect new Offices , but onely from the Head. In the Civill State God leaveth a great deale of liberty ; there may be change of Officers , those that are good now , perhaps they may seem not to be so fit afterwards , and those that are in one Country may not be so fit for another . But the Officers of the Church they must be all the same in all places , where they can be had , and no more but those that are appointed by Christ . Again , further , the difference between the Civill State and Church State in their Offices and Officers is this : The Civill State may limit their officers as they think fit . They may choose one into an office , but he shall goe but so far , he shall have power but in so many things , this shall be the object of his power , when he is come hither , there he shall stop , though he that was before him had more power , yet he that comes after him may not have that power , the Civill State may limit that , if they see it fit . But now in the Church State it cannot be so . And upon this ground , because they hold upon the Head. Indeed the men that beare any office in the Church , are designed unto it by the Church , but they doe not hold of the Church , they hold of Christ the Head , therefore it is not in the power of the Church to limit them being in it , but they must go to the Word , for their office once taken upon them , ( whether it be the office of Teachers or of Pastors ) they cannot then be limited by any power , but what the Word saith is the office of a Teacher or of a Pastor , that they must doe ; they cannot have the rule so propounded to them , as , You shall go but thus far , and you shall do so much of the office of a Teacher and no more , but when they are once 〈◊〉 they are in without any limitation of the power of their office : it is onely from Christ the Head. Yea further , In a civill State there may be alteration , raising the dignity of the office , and making of it lower then before ; but in the Church no such thing , the officers of the Church are alwayes the same , no raising , no depressing , why ? because they hold upon the Head. Others depend upon mans prudence , but these are institutions by Christ , and hold of the Head. 2. Christ is the Head in regard of rule , because all Ordinances hold on Christ too , and all Lawes . I will put both together , Ordinances and Laws , and Institutions do hold upon Christ the Head. It is not in the liberty of man to erect any new spirituall Ordinance in the Church , no nor to make Laws in the Church that are spiritual , that shall tend to the spirits of men , ( according as I shall open it by and by . ) No new Ordinance , no new Institution can be in the Church . In the civil State there may be thousands of new Institutions . I call that an Institution that hath an efficacy in it for the attaining of such an end by vertue of the Institution , not by vertue of any naturalnesse that is in the thing . As for example to instance in Divine Institutions . The Sacrament is an Institution , and therefore is a virtue , a spirituall efficacy to be expected from that and by that , through the strength of the Institution more then it hath in it in any naturall way . So in preaching the Word , and Ecclesiastical censures , there is more to be expected , more efficacy to worke upon the soule , for the spiritual man , by virtue of the Institution , then there is in the natural things that are done there . So for Lawes . Christ makes a law in the Church , it being an institution there is to be expected a spiritual efficacy and virtue to goe along together , with that thing that Christ commandeth , beyond what it had before it was commanded . Now then in rhis way no man in the world can make any Church institution , no , nor Law for the Church , so as to appoint any thing , to have any spirituall efficacy by vertue of that institution beyond what it hath in a natural way . We must take heed of being so bold , that when Christ hath made an institution , an ordinance , and revealed it to us , for us to think we may imitate Christ and make another Ordinance , or another institution like that , because Christ hath done so , because we finde such a thing in the Word therefore we may do so too ; No , this is too bold , this is to set our post by Gods post , for which the Lord did charge the people , Ezek. 43. 8. In Esay 33. 22. it is said , The Lord is our Judge , the Lord is our Law-giver , the Lord is our King in this thing . But yet you will say , how is that opened further ? ( for indeed it needeth opening ) that there can be no new institution , nor no new Law made in this sense , but all must hold of Christ ? For the opening of that I shall afterward come to speake more fully about the power of Governours and what their authority is , but thus much for the present . VVe are to consider that there are some things belonging to the Church ( I beseech you observe ) that are common with all other societies , 〈…〉 to them , that is natural and civill , and there 〈…〉 ●●wer of man may come in , there the 〈…〉 may order things . Those things I say that belong to the Church , that yet are not so proper , but belong to other societies too , there mans reason may come in . As for instance . First , A Church is a spiritual society and community , they must meete together , and if they do meet they must meet in some place : This is common to all societies in the world , if they will meet they must meet in a place . Yea Secondly , if they meet in a place ; this place must be determined where it shall be . This also is common to all societies . Thirdly , This likewise is common to them with all other societies , that what they do in that place must be done decently & in order , all things ought to be managed in an orderly decent way . As if there be many things to be done , one thing must be before another , one thing must not exclude another ; if they come together , they must come together as befitting men in a decent way . Therefore that rule of the Apostle , Let all things be done decently and in order , it is not properly an institution , it is nothing but the dictate of right reason , so that if we had never found such a sentence , such a maxime in Scripture , as let all things be done decently and in order , it had beene a truth that we were bound in conscience to . Again , If men will come and meet together , it is natural and common to all societies , that they should be decent in their garments and otherwise . But then you will say , When commeth it to an Institution ? I meane an Institution that is forbidden , that none must meddle withall , that is proper to Christ . Thus , when any man shall by virtue of any Law , any imposition , put more into the thing then God , or then nature hath put into it , when they shall make their institution to put any efficacy into it for the worship of God more then God hath , this we call sinfull . As for instance Suppose we should instance onely in garments . That all that meetes together in Christian Assemblies , should meet decently in decent garments , Ministers and others , the light of nature tells us , and there may be law if men will be refractory to compell them unto it , to meet so as they may meet decently in regard of their garments . But now if it come thus far , that we leave natural decency , and such or such a garment shall be made decent for Gods worship because it is appointed , whereas if it were not appointed it would not be decent at all . When I say all the decency doth not depend upon what God hath put into it , or what is natural to it , but depends meerly upon the institution of man , for take away that institution it would not be decent ; as in some kinde of garments , put case men were left to their freedome , that there were no institution , I put it to your Consciences whether it would be decent to weare them : If it would not be decent , then it seems it is the institution that puts all upon it ; and now here we must take heed . This then puts more upon that creature then nature or the God of nature hath put upon it , then in way of common prudence ( I say were it not for an institution , that seemes to go further , that seemes to intrench upon an ordinance ) would be done . Further , There is more put upon 〈◊〉 then nature hath put into it , when there shall be expected by vertue of an institution , some kinde of spiritual efficacy to worke upon the soul , then it comes to be sinfull . As thu when that creature by virtue of the institution , and appointment shall be made , and esteemed , or accounted of more effectual to stirre up my mind , or to signifie such a thing , as purity or holynesse , then another creature that hath as much in it naturally to signifie the same thing , and to stirre up my minde ; this is to imitate Gods institution , which is too much boldnesse in any man. As , when God doth appoint a thing in his Church , a Ceremony or the like , he will take some thing that hath a resemblance to put men in minde of such a holy thing , that hath some kinde of Metaphor or likenesse in it . But when God hath taken this creature and separated it from others , this creature must be expected to have more efficacy to signifie the thing to my soul , and to stiree up my soul to think of his holinesse , then any creature in the world not so appointed , though other creatures have as much in them naturally to do it . This is Gods institution . Now mans institution , that cometh neere to Gods , where there is a setting our post by his post , is when man shal take one creature from thousands of others , and all those thousands have as much in them naturally , and put into them by God , to put me in minde of holynesse , and to stirre up my heart ; now this creature shall be separated from the rest , and by virtue of an institution put upon it , there shall be expected more efficacy in this to stir up my mind , and to draw my heart nearer to God then other creatures that onely do it in a natural way , here I say is intrenching upon that which belongeth to the government of Christ . Therefore I beseech you my brethren be not mistaken in this , because I know you are ordinarily led by that speech of the Apostle , let all thinge be , done decently and in order . Understand it aright , It is true we must do so and it is a sin , not to do things decently and in order , in the worship of God : but this doth not at all countenance any institution of mans when it comes to be spiritual , to draw the heart nearer unto God , or God nearer unto the heart , by virtue of mans separation of it from common use . I might instance in other things , in places , That there should be a convenient place for Gods worship , the light of nature will tell us : but when any man shall set one place aside separated from another , and shall make the worship of God to be better , and have more efficacy to draw men nearer unto God , or God nearer unto men , then another place that hath as much natural decency and fitness in it as that place hath ; here it commeth to have the evil . By these few instances you may judge of all things , when they do come to be institutions in Gods worship , and beyond the rule of the Apostle , Let all things be done decently and in order , This is the second thing of Christs government , that all Ordinances , all Lawes in the Church must hold on him the Head. The third thing in Christs government in the Church is , that those Laws that he makes for the ordering and government of his Church , do not onely hold on him 〈…〉 such a virtue and efficacy in them comming from the head , that they do binde the consciences of men , because they come from him that is the head of the Church , they do lay bonds upon consciences , and that primarily in another way , and more efficaciously then any law of any man in the world can . Yea they lay such a bond upon conscience , that though a thing be commanded that hath no other reason for the command but meerly the will of Christ , and that we cannot see to what other good the thing doth tend , but meerly because Christ will have it , yet we are bound to obey , yea and that in secret ; Yea so farre as the rule goeth , wee are bound to do what is required by it , though wee should suffer never so much prejudice to our selves . Here is the binding power of Christ in binding conscience . But there is no law of man doth in this way bind conscience , perhaps these things , with some others that are to be delivered may at the first naming of them seeme to be somewhat tickle points : yet I know there is a necessity , and a kinde of absolute necessity to informe the consciences of men in them , especially in these times , and because they fall so full here in my way I could not out of conscience omit them : and yet still if you diligently observe , I hope we shall carry on all so as to speake modestly and yet safely and fully too . I say therefore , the lawes of men are different from the Lawes of Christ . It is a part of the head-ship of Christ to lay bonds upon the conscience . But what will you say then to that Text of Scripture ( I suppose it is in every one of your thoughts , and would be ready in every one of your mouthes if you were from the Assembly ) Rom. 13. Let every soul be subject to the higher powers ; for there is no power but of God. Whosoever resisteth the power , resisteth the ordinance of God , and they that resist , shall receive to themselves damnation . Yea ver . 5. You must be subject not out of feare of wrath , but for conscience sake . This Text seemes to imply that the lawes of men do binde the conscience ; And we finde it by experience how this is urged by many upon every thing , there is no kinde of institution of man whatsoever ( except we can apparently shew , it is contrary to the word of God ) but they thinke by virtue of this Text the consciences of men are bound ; and so they flie upon men , that they are not men of conscience , that they will not obey authority . In that they doe not submit to authority , they sin against their consciences , &c. You shall have many men that will jeere at those that are so conscionable in Gods commands that seeme to be but little things ( and in themselves are little things ) oh they dare not disobey because they are bound in conscience , they will jeere at the scrupulosity of their consciences there . But when it comes to mans commands , then they must obey in the least thing whatever it be , though in its own nature it be never so indifferent ; yet they must obey for conscience sake . I shall desire as fully and as cleerly as I am able , to satisfie Consciences in this very thing . To open therefore that Scripture unto you . First , you must observe , that every one is bound to be subject to the higher powers : ( Mark ) It is not to the Man first , but it is to the Power : Let every soule be subject to the higher power , where ever this power lyeth . It is not to the will of a man that hath power , but it is to the power of that man. Now the power , the authority is that , that man hath in a legall way . The first must be understood . Secondly , We must consider in what they must be subject : The laws of men are of three sorts . Some perhaps command that which is simply unlawfull , that we all yeeld the Scripture doth not binde us to be subject , there we must obey God rather then man. But secondly , there are other things that are commanded , that are lawfull , and they are of two sorts . Either such things as do tend by the rules of justice and prudence to the publique good , to the good of the Community of which we are members : and there we are bound to obey for Conscience sake . But still this not according to that obedience we owe to Christ our Head , this is secondarily , not primarily , because commanded by man , but because the rules of Justice and Prudence doth require this for the publique good , of which we are a community ; and then because there commeth a Law of Christ to us to walk and live according to the rules of Justice and prudence : so wee are bound for conscience in those things , but not primarily , and so they cannot be said to bind conscience , so as Christs Lawes do . There are other things that are commanded by man ( and that especially concerns our question ) and these are such things as indeed are neither here nor there for the common , for the publique good , the good of the community doth not at all depend upon them , and there is nothing in them but meerly the satisfaction of the wills of those that are in authority above us . Now here is the Question , How far those Laws bind men , and bind Conscience ? Indeed many poor Christians that are conscientious have been extreamly snared in these things . To that I answer : That though such things should be commanded to be done , yet it they be not done . ) so be it they be not omitted out of contempt , nor so as may bring scandall upon the authority that doth enjoyne them ; and those that doe omit them shall patiently and willingly submit to what punishment the Law of the Land shall require ) in such things this mans conscience shall not , nor need not bind him over to answer before God , that he hath sinned against that rule , You will say , How do you prove that ? How doth it appeare ? For that must needs be made out . I vvill make it appeare from the Text , from the nature of subjection that is required in the Text , and from Reason . First , this Text here in Rom , 13. giveth this as the ground why we are to be subject , Because ( saith the Text , ver . 4. ) he is the minister of God for thy good . So that that which is the speciall ground of our subjection , is , because they that are in place are ministers for our good . But here is then an abuse of their power , if they will command what is not indeed tending to the good of the publique , but meerly the satisfaction of their own mindes . But suppose it be an abuse , the Text saith we must be subject . 〈…〉 You must do the thing for conscience 〈…〉 be subject , we must not resist , but be subject : The words are , We must be subordinate for conscience sake , ( so it may be translated ) Here is all that is required , that I must be subordinate and not resist , that is , though there be a thing commanded by authority , though this authority should be abused , yet I may not resist , I must be subject . If then out of that reverent respect I have to authority , though I do not doe the thing , yet I doe not forbeare out of contempt : It is a thing exceedingly prejudiciall unto me , and it is not for the common good , but yet I am so carefull that authority shal not be despised that I will keep it secret . I will not refuse to do it , so as shall be ascandall upon authority . And yet further , if authority shall so far urge upon me as to inflict punishment because I do not do it , I will patiently beare it . Now when these three things are done , here is that subordination to authority that the Apostle in that Scripture requires . And the reason why this of necessity must be granted , is , because otherwise all the Christian liberty that the Scripture so much speakes of , may be utterly taken away in regard of the practice , that it is in the power of man wholly to deprive us of it . This Scripture cannot be so understood , that all that liberty we have in all things in their own nature indifferent should be so under the power of men , as that we for the practice , and for our conscience too must be tyed that we cannot have liberty , no not in secret , certainly that is that which is against the judgement of all Orthodox Divines of the Reformed Churches . But it may be said , who shall be Judge whether things be tending to the publicke good yea or no ? will you take upon you to judge your self ? To that the Answer is thus plainly , that indeed those that are appointed by Law have the power to judge legally , and authoritatively to judge so as to bind others . But every man hath liberty so far as concerns his owne act to judge at his perill . And that a two-sold perill , First at his perill , lest he judging himself should sinne against God in this , that he should judge that not good for the publique , which indeed is good ; that he should perhaps judge that to be of an indifferent nature that justice and prudence requireth of him : Here he mis-judgeth at his perill , hee sinneth against the Lord , against the rules of justice and prudence , and indangereth his own soul if he goe amisse in this . Secondly , If he mis-judge it is at his perill that comes by the Lawes of men , that he is in danger then to suffer what the Laws of men shall inflict upon him : And so submitting this way , his conscience may have some ease ; and yet no gap open at all to liberty , or any disturbance to any lawfull authority for all this . This is necessary for men to know that they may understand aright how to answer that question about Lawes binding of conscience . You heare it is the prerogative of Christ our Head , so to be our Law-giver , so as to lay bonds upon conscience in such a manner as no man can doe the like . That is the third . Fourthly , Christ is the Head of the Church ( in regard of some ) even personally , so as to come and rule in the world in a glorious manner personally , and so they thinke this may be interpreted , that Christ shall be a head ( how said to be appointed , we shall speake of when we come unto it ) that he shall come personally , and rule and governe things even in this world . As Christ in his own person did exercise his Priestly and Propheticall offices , so they thinke in his own person he shall exercise his Kingly power & office . Which opinion , because the further discussion of it , I suppose generally you are not able to beare yet , therefore in modesty I will forbeare , and though out of modesty I shal for the present forbeare , yet out of conscience I dare not altogether deny it , but so we will leave it , to see what trueth may be in this , we must expect to have light let in by degrees . In these four things then we have the rule of Christ , three determined of , the fourth only propounded , which Christ in time will shew further light unto us in . Christ is then the Head. Now from all this there followes three consequences that are very usefull . 1. Hence we learne that the seeking after the right government of Christ in his Church is not a light matter , it doth concern the Head-ship of Christ . 2. By what hath been said we shal come to be instructed to know what is properly Antichristian and what not . 3. Wee shall come to have light how far the King may be said to be head of the Church . These things you will finde needfull for conscience to be informed in , & I shal carry them on too I hope with modesty , fulness , & safety , First , I say it followes from hence that it is not a light matter to seeke after the right government of Christ in his Church , it concerns a head-ship of Christ . The head-ship of Christ in a speciall manner consisteth in that there are some other things in which it doth consist , which perhaps may be spoken of hereafter , but here in this place especially that . Indeed in the primitive times there the greatest contention was about the Doctrines of Religion , what Doctrines should hold upon Christ and what not , and the people of God did there suffer most for contending about the doctrines that held upon Christ the Head , they would not receive a Doctrine but what held on Christ , and what was obrtuded upon them , not holding upon Christ the Head they did reject . And Luther upon this place hath this speech , he tells us how much the Church in after time did suffer for this very thing , and saith , What kinde of dangers did inviron the Church , and do inviron it for acknowledging Christ to be the head , these our times doe sufficiently testifie . And further , because we preach Christ to be the whole head , therefore we are subject to Anathemas , and to all kinde of punishment . And in these latter times it is like that the great contention will be , rather about the head-ship of Christ in the point of his government then in the other , the other being so cleare unto us ; and the sufferings of the people of God will be so much the more grievous , because that this is accounted such a little thing , such a poor businesse : And further , because this doth not seem to be altogether so clearely revealed in the Scripture , as other Doctrinall points that hold upon Christ the ●ead . And Christ the rather hath so disposed of things , that this shall not be so clearly revealed , because he intended to suffer Antichrist to rise to his height : and it cannot be imagined that if the Doctrine of Christs government in his Church had beene clearly and demonstratively laid down , so as there could have beene no gain-saying of it , I say it cannot be imagined how it is possible for Antichrist to have risen to that height that he hath ; Christ because hee intended to bring about many passages of his providence , and many great workes of his that way in suffering Antichrist to arise ; therefore he hath left this point so in the word as is subject to many doubts , and may occasion many objections against it . But the nearer the time comes for Antichrist to fall , the more clearly this shall be revealed . Secondly , By this that hath beene said we may learne what to account Antichristianisme , and what not : for there are many amongst us that cry out against every thing that displeaseth them , that it is Antichristianisme , that it is Antichristianisme , and yet understand but very little what Antichristianisme is . But by this that hath beene said , you must know that Antichristianisme is not every errour : It is true in a large sense Antichrist is as much as against Christ , and so every sin , every errour is against Christ , and in Antichristianisme , if you take it so . But you are to know the Scripture speakes of the Antichrist , and of Antichristianisme in a speciall acceptation . What is that ? This my brethren is Antichristianisme , that which shall oppose Christ as a Head , and set up another head-ship ; here is the propriety of Antichrist and Antichristianisme ; as in all those foure things named before . First , VVhosoever shall obtrude any Doctrine upon the Church to be believed , by their own authority , he is guilty of Antichristianisme , not whosoever shall preach or hold an error in the Church . But when any shall presume to obtrude upon the Church , any Doctrine that holds upon humane authority , to be urged upon the authority of those that do impose it , this I say is properly Antichristianisme , for it doth oppose Christ in his head-ship . Secondly , The intrusion of such offices and officers in the Church as meerly belonging to the spirituall man , such as are properly Church offices , that do not hold upon Christ the Head , but only hold upon them , this is Antichristianisme . Thirdly , The imposing of any Ordinance , any new institutions that are , as hath been opened , upon the Church , belongeth to Antichristianisme . Fourthly , The imposing of lawes so to bind conscience as the Lawes of Christ do , here is Antichristianisme . This is Antichristianisme , and that not onely because these things are directly against the head-ship of Christ , but because these things doe set up another head too ; and so the word Antichrist may signifie as well for one to be in stead of Christ ( for so 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 , the Greeke signifieth , sometime as well , for , as against as of his fulness we receive grace for grace , it is 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 , in the Greeke , grace for grace ) so Antichrist is one that shall set up h●mselfe as head of the Church in stead of Christ , one that shall clayme unto himselfe that head-ship that is proper to Jesus Christ , and not to be communicated to any from Jesus Christ . This is Antichristianisme . Now the Apostle faith that there were many Antichrists in his time , and this mystery of ungodlinesse , of inquity did worke then ; but now it comes to grow to a height in that great Antichrist of Rome , ( for you know ) in these foure are the speciall things wherein he is the Antichrist ; Because hee obtrudes Doctrines , Articles of Faith upon the Church by his owne authority ; He makes all Offices of the Church to hold on him ; And appointeth Lawes , Ordinances and Institutions likewise to hold on him ; And claymeth the binding of Consciences , so as is proper to Jesus Christ . And all those that hold thus on Antichrist , and are thus abettors of him in these things , these are guilty of this greatsinne of Antichristianisme . That for your right information about the sin of Antichristianisme . The third consequence . You say Christ is the Head , but you know the King is called the Head of the Church , in what sense are we to understand that ? Or how may we come to understand aright that Oath that is given , of Supremacie . These things ( my brethren ) are necessary for information of Conscience , and the burthen lyes upon us to make out these things as cleare to you as we can , that you may go along with the more freedome of spirit and conscience in your way , and yet give every one their right too . You are to know that the Oath of Supremacy came into England thus : In the time of Popery , the Pope claymed unto himselfe the Head-ship of the Church : He being excluded , then came in that Oath to acknowledge the King or Queene the Head of the Church . But now you must know , first , that this title , The Head of the Church , as it hath been attributed to the King , hath been much abused , and it hath given some advantage to our adversaries , for the King is not the Head of the Church , neither as Christ is , nor as the Pope claymed it : Not as Christ : Christ is the Head to governe unlimitedly . No limits or bounds are set to the Government of Christ , but only his owne minde , his owne will. It is not so with any Prince in the world , he is not so the Head to governe . But all Governours have a two-fold limit ; They are limited by Lawes of God , they are limited by the Lawes of man too . Neither is he the Head , as the Pope challengeth unto himselfe , How is that ? you will say . In the fore-named foure things , the Pope challengeth holding of doctrines , and holding of offices , and the like , upon him . Offices do not so hold upon any Governours , upon the King or others , as the Pope challengeth to hold upon him . How doth he challenge them to hold upon him ? Thus , that all are in him virtually , and so to be derived from him to others . And indeed in a 〈◊〉 part do many of our Prelates say that 〈…〉 : that is , that all the offices hold on 〈…〉 , and ●o goe from them unto others : and hence it is they account all other Ministers but their Curats , and they must not pray but as they will , and do nothing but what they will , Why ? because they are but them substitutes , as if all offices were virtually in them , and so came from them unto others ; whereas every office in the Church , even the meanest , holds upon Christ the Head. Now it is true , in the civill State in some sense it may he said that the officers of the Common-wealth are in a kinde virtually in the King , he being the supreame , but you must not thinke that all are thus virtually in him in Church affaires , for if they were virtually in him , then he could himself dispence those things that others by virtue of their office , can but that he cannot , as to give the Sacrament and the like . But how is he the head then , or in what sense may we quiet our Consciences in acknowledging the King to be the head of the Church ? Onely thus he is said to be the head , because he is the supreame to govern in a civill way , not onely the Civill State , but even affaires that belong to the Church too . We doe not deny the power of Princes even in affaires that belong to the Church . And because he is the supreame in that civill power , to governe in a civill way by civill Laws , so as to see Christ not dishonoured , so as to keepe out Idolatry , to protect the Church , to punish enormities that are there , to defend it from enemies . In that sense he is said to be the head , but that title of supreame Governor being understood in a civil way is more proper . To make that a little out unto you ; that there is some supremacy in this , not onely in the civill State but in Church affaires : For wee must not exclude the King quite out of all Church affaires , as some would do , no we doe not ; but though we would informe your consciences aright , yet wee would not by any meanes take away any lawfull power God hath put into him . Now that he hath power even in Church affaires , there are many reasons that fully move me to be perswaded in it . The first that I shall name , I think it will least prevail ( though it be the most ordinary ) with them that make most doubt of it , therefore I will not stand upon it , only name it . We know that all along among the Jews in the time of the Old Testament , the Governours there , and Kings and Princes had power in affaires that belong to the Church as well as to the State. But this I say I doe not think to be the greatest strength in this point , especially to p●●swade them that make any scruple of it , they will us that the power there was but Tipicall and the like , and sobindeth not now . There are therefore other reasons that perswade the same thing . The first is this , because I finde that in the Prophets , where wee have a Prophesie of the state of the Church in the times of the Gospel . God doth promise that he will make Kings to be their nursing fathers , and Queens to be their nursing mothers . Now if they be to be nursing fathers of the Church , surely they must have some influence by their power into it . Secondly , That place in Rom. 13. spealtes indifferently and faith , he is the Minister for thy good . It doth not say for thi● ; good or that good , 〈◊〉 this civill good or Ecclesiastical good , but he is the Minister for thy good , for all good unto thee so farre as his power can reach . It is a hard thing you know ( if men will put us unto it ) to shew in the New Testament the power that Kings had , because there was then no King but Heathens , yet saith he , they are Ministers for thy good , and speakes to Christians . But thirdly , and that which yet may seeme to have more in it , I finde this in the New Testament that Saint Paul when he was accused by his brethren in matters of Religion , hee did appeal unto Caesar . Act. 25. 9. who was a Heathen Magistrate , his accusation was in matters of Religion , in questions about their Law , and about one JESUS that was dead , whom Paul affirmed to be alive . And yet in his answer to those things he appealeth unto Caesar , therefore there is somewhat that Caesar hath to doe in over-looking of the affaires of the Church , that concerns the wayes of Religion . But you will say , How can he be a competent Judge ? Can Caesar a Heathen be a competent Judge in matters of Religion ? Is it possible ? Or suppose that a Governour be wicked , can he be a competent Judge in matters of Religion ? I answer , the wickednesse of a Governour , though he be a Heathen , yet loseth not his power , he hath still a true and a lawfull power ; yea he hath some oversight of things that concerne Church affaires . How can that be ? Christianity gives not the authority , but enables to execute that authority , a Heathen Magistrate hath authority , it is his duty to see that Christians be not wronged , and if he doth not it is his sin , but if he becomes a Christian , he is the better able to do what he ought , but this puts not the power into him . But if a man be wicked , and understands not the things of the Church , how can he be a judge ? Thus , though the King be not a competent judge of the Principles upon which the Church goes , whether right or no , he hath not skill to do that being such a one : yet he may have ability to judge betweene man and man , whether one to the other doth wrong yea or no , and that in matters of Religion . As thus ; though he doth not think the Principles upon which they go to be right , yet he can judge whether according to those Principl● they doe right one to another , whether according to their Principles , they doe not wrong one the other . And this is a great matter to be able to judge and to punish with civill punishment when any of the Church wrongs his brother against the Principles that himselfe doth professe . As for example , though he be not a Physitian , he doth not understand the difference between the poyson and a wholesome Medicine , yet when things are brought before him , he may be a competent judge , by evidence so as to condemne a Physitian that hath poysoned a man instead of giving of him wholsome Physick . And that objection against his competency in judging in the affairs of the Church hath no more power then if it should have been objected that hee must not judge upon a Physitian , whether he hath poysoned a man or no , because he himself is not a Physitian . Thus wee have done with these three consequents that follow upon the opening of the headship of Christ in point of his government . And now we see more clearly how Christ is head & none but Christ , & what glory we are to give to Christ as the head of the Church . There is one thing more belongs to the head-ship of Christ which must not be passed by , though it be not so fully aymed at in the text as what hath already been said , and that is the influence of spiritual life , that comes unto the Church by Christ the head , as the animall spirits come from the head to the members . And this is the very reason , first , why grace in the Saints is of such a beautifull and glorious nature as it is , because it comes from Christ the head . Secondly , This is the reason of that power and efficacy that there is of grace in the Saints , because it comes from Christ the head . Thirdly , this is also the reason why grace in the Saints is of such an everlasting nature , and that beyond that of Adam . It hath more beauty then the grace Adam had , and it hath more power and efficacy then the grace Adam had , and it is of a more everlasting nature then that was , upon this ground , because the grace of the Saints holdeth upon Christ the head , & hath an influence from Christ , God-man in a speciall and peculiar way , such an influence as Adam had not . This is the excellency of grace in the Saints . And to conclude this point of the Head-ship of Christ . The rather hath God the Father thus advanced Christ to be the Head , because he was willing to stoop so low , to be as a worme under foot , for so he saith of himself , Psal . 22. 6. I am a worme , and no man. Christ was low in his own eyes , and submitted himself to such a condition , and now behold the Father hath advanced him , for so it is said , Ephes . 1. 22. God hath made him head over all things , hath made him head over principalities , and powers , and dominions , over Angels , and over all men and all things in the Church , hath advanced him to this high and glorious dignity , we see somewhat of it now , and we shall see more gloriously the head-ship of Christ hereafter . In this God the Father doth shew that as he hath dealt with his Sonne , so he is willing to deale with the Members of his Son , in a proportion . His Son that was willing to be so low and under foot , is now advanced to such a high glory that all must stoop , and yeeld , and submit unto him . Let us be willing to lye low , and though it be under foot , to be troden upon by the wicked and ungodly of the world ; though we cannot expect to be advanced to be head , yet we may expect to be advanced to glory & dignity . You know what God said to Saul , 1 Sam. 15. When thou wert little in thine own eyes then I made thee King. The lesse any of us are in our own eyes , the more are we like to be advanced by God , for God wlll observe a proportion between his dealings with Christ the head , and his dealings with all his Members . The Seventh Lecture HOSEA 1. 11. the latter part of the verse And appoint themselves one Head , and they shall come up out of the Land for great shall be the day of Jezreel . They shall [ appoint ] themselves one Head. EPhes . 1. 11. It is said , God gave Christ to be Head over all things to the Chnrch. How then it is said here that they shall [ appoint ] to themselves one Head ? It is true , God the Father hath advanced his Son , and extolled him above all things , and hath given him to be Head over all : but yet when the Church , when the Saints shall choose this Christ to be their Head , when they shall come in freely , and willingly submit themselves unto Christ , lifting him up above all , honoring his ordinances , laws , institutions , depending upon him for light ; They are said to appoint Christ to be their Head. As , though Gods eternal Decree hath made himself to be the God of his Saints , yet when the Saints do choose God to be their God , God doth account himselfe to be made their God by them : they make God to be their God in choosing of him . So though Christ by the Father be appointed to be the Head over all , yet the act of the Church in choosing Christ , and comming to him freely , and submitting unto him as to the Head , is accounted even an appointing of Christ to be Head. This is that happy work which the Saints have been doing , and which we are to doe , and they will doe to the end of the world , appointing Christ a Head. Though there be some speciall time that this Text hath reference unto ( of which by and by ) yet in all Ages of the Church , when the Saints doe choose Christ to be their Head , they are said to appoint him . Let us joyne in this blessed work , an honourable work for creatures to appoint the Lord JESUS to be Head over them . Let us say as Hushai did in another case , 2 Sam. 19. 18. Him whom the Lord , and this people , & all men of Israel choose for King , his will I be , and with him will I abide . So , He whom God the Father shall give to be Head over all things , him whom the Saints have in all times chosen for their Head , it is he that shall be our Head and our King , his will we be , and with him will we abide . Let us give Christ the preheminence above all , prizing his government , his ordinances above all the comforts we have in this world , Psa . 137 6. If I prefer not Jerusalem above my chiefe joy , The words are in the O●●nal , If I make not Jerusa●●● 〈◊〉 ●end above the head of my joy ; Whatsoever is high in our thoughts , as a head , let Christ be above it ; Christ in his ordinances must be above the head of our joy . For otherwise he is not a Head unto us . If you invite a man of quality to your table , though you provide never such chear for him , yet if you should set any people of meane quality above him , he would not regard all your courtesies . When you tender up any thing unto Christ , when you seeme to entertaine him with the greatest respect , yet if there be any thing you set above him , especially if a vile lust be set above him , he cares not for all your entertainment . We read in that Col. 2. 19. ( the place we made use of in opening the former point ) that there were some blamed for not holding of the Head ; What is that ? because they gave more honour to Angels then was due unto them . It is spoken about the worshipping of Angels , though never such glorious creatures , yet by over-prizing they come , not to hold of the Head. What , is the giving undue honour to Angels enough to take us off from Christ the Head ? Certainly then the prostrating our selves before our vile and base lusts , doth much more take us off from holding Christ to be the Head. Let us look at all the offices and ordinances of Christ , as holding upon him the Head ( as you heard before ) that so we may have a more reverent esteem of them . Let us depend upon him for influence of life , and not depend upon means . Let us manifest in our conversation the spirit and life that wee have received from such a Head as Christ is , that we may not be a dishonour to this our head . I remember Chrysostome in his Comment upon that first of the Ephesians , sayes , in this regard wee must be better then Angels , yea greater then Arch-angels , and he hath three most excellent expressions about this , that Christians should take heed of dishonouring Christ their Head. First , saith he , suppose a man had a precious Diadem upon his head , or a crown of gold , that would be some argument unto him to make him take heed of doing things unworthy of that ornament that is upon his head : and we ( saith he ) have not a Diadem , wee have not a crowne of gold upon our heads , we have Christ himself to be our Head , therefore let us doe nothing unworthy of this our head . Secondly , he hath this expression . O the honour ( saith he ) that God affordeth unto us in this ! the thought of this were enough to terrifie us from sin , more then the setting of hell it self before our eyes . And indeed so it is . The right understanding of Christ to be our Head , and we having so neer an union with him , is of power to terrifie us from sin more then the sight of hell , if it were before us . Thirdly , he goes on further . Saith he , What , is Christ your head ? doe you know next unto whom this your head doth sit in heaven ? Is he not placed at the right hand of the Father above all principalities and powers ? And shal the members of this head be trampled upon by the Devil ? God forbid . And yet so honour the head as to give the honor likewise to all that are unto him , to those that he hath placed for the administration of any ordinance of his unto us . We must not under pretence of giving Christ all the honour , dishonour those that are set over us by Christ . We have a notable expression of the Apostle Paul , 1 Cor. 1. 12. where reproving the dissentions of the Church of Corinth : There are some ( saith he ) that say we are of Paul , and others wee are of Apollo , and others said , we are of Cephas , & others we are of Christ . Why , are these all blamed ? how could those that said that they held of Christ be blarned ? It is apparent that the Apostle blames them all , as well those that said they did hold of Christ , as those that said they did hold of Paul , or Apollo , or Cephas . How is that ? Thus. Among the Corinths there were some that made divisions , some were for some officer , others for others ; we are for Paul said some , we for Apollo said others , and we for Cephas , and for our parts ( said others ) wee are for none of them all , we are neither for Paul , nor for Apollo , nor for Cephas , but we are for Christ , what are men ? what are officers ? what are Ordinances ? what are all those to us ? Christ is all in all unto us , he is our head , and we are compleat in him , and we hold upon him , we are for neither of all the other . These are blamed as well as the other . We must so hold upon Christ , as yet to give all due honour to the Ordinances , to the Institutions , to the Officers and Offices of Christ . Yet I confesse when any that are in Christs stead to dispence his ordinances unto us , if they prove to be wicked , of all people in the world they are the most contemptible , and a just judgement of God ●t is upon them . Esay , 9. 15. The ancient and honourable , he is the head , and the Prophet that teacher●● lyes , he is the taile , Mark , The Prophet there speakes against those that were in place and power , though they were naught , yet still they retained the name of ancient and honourable , but the Prophet that teacheth lyes , a contemptiblename is put upon him , he is the taile , no generation in the world more contemptible then those when once they degenerate . But you will say , though they should be vile in their lives , yet the wickednesse of them that are in office doth not hinder the virtue and efficacy of the Ordinances , it depends not upon them . True , the efficacy of no Ordinance depends upon men , and it is not either because the Minister is vile , or Communicants are vile that communicate with you that can hinder the vertue of an Ordinance . If the Church contract no guilt upon themselves by retaining such in place , and by not casting out such as doe come into communion with them . Take but that for granted that there is no guilt contracted . It is not the wickednesse then of the Minister or of the people that hinders the efficacy of any Ordinance at all . But if it prove that there be guilt contracted upon the Church through the negligence of their duty this way , then the case is the same with those of Corinth , 1 Cor. 5. 6. A little leaven leaveneth the whole lump , what is that whole lump but their Communion ? But was not Christ the Head before because now it is said , They shall appoint themselves one Head ? It is spoken of a glorious time when the Jews shall he called again , and 〈◊〉 and Judah shall joyne together . Now they shall appoint themselves one Head , Christ to be their Head. Christ was the head to the Fathers under the Law , how now is he appointed their head ? Christ indeed was a head to the fore-fathers , but now in the times of the Gospel , especially at these times that are spoken of here , at the calling of the Jewes , and that glorious time that shall be then , Christ will appeare to be a Head in another manner , to governe in another way , farre more gloriously then now he doth , and far more influence of grace & light will come from him unto his members then now . Though Christ hath alwayes been a head to his Church , yet there is a time comming when the seventh Trumpet shall be sounded ( spoken of Revel . 11. 15. ) when that voyce shall be heard that yet was never heard , The Kingdomes of the earth are the Lords , and his Christs , and he shall reigne for evermore . A time comming wherein Christ shall say unto his people ; To him that overcometh will I grant to sit with me in my Throne , even as I also overcame and am set downe with my Father in his Throne . The Throne that Christ sits upon now , is his Fathers Throne ; hee doth not call it his , and at the day of judgement the Scripture tells us that he shall give up the Kingdom unto his Father . There is a time therefore for the Throne of Christ to be here further then it hath beene , which Christ hath promised to those that doe overcome . A time comming when there shall be heard the neise , not onely of many waters , but as a mighty thunder , saying , Allelujah , for the Lord God Omnipotent reigneth . He shall be a head another way . Now if it bee true that Christ himself is appointed by the Church to be head , then the officers and Ministers of the Church should not think much to be appointed in their places by the Church too . It is true , their offices hold on Christ the head , but the designation of persons it must be from some Church worke or other . Who of the Church , should do it , we do not now list to enter into any such controversie , but that there must be more then a civill act to make any man that was not before in the place of a Pastor or teacher of a Church , now to be so , somewhat to make my conscience to yeeld and submit unto him as an officer that JESUS CHRIST hath placed over me , some Church-work certainly there must be in this : Christ himself would be appointed a head by his people , that they might submit to him the more chearfully , and give glory to him with the more freedome of spirit . And as for all such as shall thrust themselves upon a people , no marvaile though they complain of want of respect from them , or of their going away from them . They never did any thing towards the appointing them officers over them . They sholl appoint themselves a head . Not force Christ upon others by fire and sword . Heritiques are to be burnt with fire ( saith Luther ) but with what fire ? the fire of charity . They shall appoint to themselves . Let others do what they will , let others choose what head they please , yet the Saints will appoint to themselves the Lord Christ to be their head , they will blesse themselves in Christ , he shall be a head unto us , whatsoever he be unto others . Others it may be will choose unto themselves other heads , but the Saints say as they in Micah . 4. 5. All people will walke every one in th● name of his God , and we will walke in the name of our God for ever & ever Other people they will walke in their wayes , and choose to themselves such as they may have most liberty under , they perhaps thinke the government of Christ to be too strick for them , but for us we will blesse our selves in our Christ , we will never prostitute our consciences so to men , to lusts and humors as we have done , it is Christ shall be our head and we will submit unto him , it is he that is our Law-giver . Secret a mea mecum ( it is an Hebrew proverb ) my secret is with my selfe , what good we finde in Christ it is to our selves ; Let Christ be a stumbling-block and a rock of offence to others , to us he is precious , he is one of ten thousand , he is altogether lovely . They shall appoint to themselves one Head. But one ; The Church is not a Monster or divers heads , It hath but one head . There cannot be a ministeriall head of the Church , Christ is alwayes present , and hath left his laws with his people . If we consider the difference between Ecclesiasticall power and Civill power , wee shall see it cleare that there cannot be a ministeriall head of the Church ( indeed there is a contradiction in the very mention of it : a ministeriall head ? it is absurd to speake it ) It is true in the civill power , it is not against any institution of Christ that there should be one head over all the world , nor against any law : But for to have one head over the Church , yea to have any general officers over all the Churches ( to challengde a head-ship ) it cannot be . The reason is , because there can be no delegation of power that belongs to the Church . There may be a delegation of a civill power , one man may be King over many Countreys , and he may appoint substitutes under him , and delegate them that they shall officate under him . There is no such matter in the Church , there is no delegation of power from one to another . Grant but once delegation of the teaching power here you stablish Non-residency ; grant but delegation of the ruling power and you presently establish a Papacy . There is no such thing therefore . Again , the civill power is by way of coaction , a Magistrate is not alwayes bound to give a reason of his injunctions , he may by way of compulsion require obedience , But Church power is to deale with conscience ; and therefore every one that hath any power must officiat himself , and deale with the consciences of men to perswade and to instruct . These two things being granted it is impossible that there can be a head over all the Churches , yea or over many . But one ; We must joyne nothing with JESUS CHRIST , in the way of his head-ship . As Alexander said to Darius , when he sent unto him that he would be willing to divide the Kingdom ; No , saith Alexander , there is but one Sun in the firmament , and there can be but one King in a Kingdom . So saith Christ , but one head He head alone or no head at all ; nothing must be joyned with him as head ; Indeed the heathen gods 〈…〉 to divide their honours , and to . have but some , and other to have some other : and hence the Senate of Rome rejected Christ from taking in him to be a God , after they consulted about it , for said they , if Christ come to be acknowledged a God he will not share with the rest , he will have all himself , and so upon this reason they refused him , Thus do many reject Christ for a head , and for a God , because Christ will not share with others ; he must be but one . And a speciall help is here to our faith in looking up to Christ for help and protection when all meanes faile ( I beseech you observe it ) What , doth Christ require of us that wee should make him head alone and joyne nothing with him as head ? Then we may well expect from him in all our wants , a protection , and that he alone should help us ; or otherwise , the condition of a Christian were the worst condition in the world , were worse then the condition of a heathen : For the gods of a heathen would be content to have but part of the honour of the heart and life because they could help but in part . If a heathen god should require the whole soulto be lifted up above all , and he alone to be honoured and worshipped as a God , and yet when it comes to a matter of helpe and protection , he could doe nothing without some other joyned with him , a heathen might well reason the ease with him as doing him wrong , certainly Christ will never wrong his people , so as to challenge from them , that they should lift up him alone , and joyne no other with him , and yet when it comes to their help and succour that there should be need to call in others besides himselfe to their help . Therefore as Christ doth challenge it from us to make him our head alone , so we may challenge it from Christ to helpe us alone when there is no other helpe for us . Thus we have finished both the head-ship of Christ , and the Churches appointing him to be that head . Now followes the next mercy , the next blessing , and that but in a word , and then we come to the conclusion of this Chapter . They shall come up out of the land . Aterrenis affectibus , So Jerome , he makes it a comming up from their earthly senses , earthly affections . A vita miserabili , so Luther upon the place , makes it a comming up from their miserable life and condition . But rather thus , Come up out of the land , that is , out of their captivity . Judah and Israel they shall joyne together in comming to Jerusalem , and so joyne in the same kinde of worship , as they were wont to come out of all parts of the countrey to worship at Jerusalem , and there were united in one kinde of worship , so they shall now come from all parts of the world where they are scattered , and joyne in the same way of worship , yea and it is very probable in their own land . There was a time when the people of God did sing songs of praise in the wildernesse , Exod , 15. But the time shall come when they shall do it in their own land ; and this shall be a blessing of God upon them . Isa . 26. 1. In that day shall this song be sung in the land of Judah , VVe have a strong City , salvation will God appoint for walls and bulworkes . It shall be sung in the land of Judah , Ezek. 20. 40. In the mountaines of the height of Israel , saith the Lord God , there shall all the house of Israel , all of them in the land serve me , there will I accept them , and there will I require your offerings , and the first fruites of your oblations , with all your holy things . Ezekiel . 37. 21. I will take the children of Israel from among the heathen whether they begone , and will gather them on every side , and bring them into their own land . This blessing hath God granted unto many of his servants this day ; who never thought to have seen their owne land , their own good land : but God hath bin pleased to gather them up that they are come not onely into their own land , but they finde the armes and hearts of the Saints open to imbrace them , and call them to publicke imployments . It was not long since that the land could not beare them ; we hope that the time may come ere long that the Lord Christ may so rule and that in our land , that it will as hardly beare wicked and ungodly men as it hath borne the Saints , though it were hard to say that there should be so much violence used even to keep them from some sins , as hath been used here against the Saints to keep them from their God , yet time may come ere long that wicked men may be glad to flye ( though not forced unto it ) out of their owne choyce , into another land , because they cannot have the enjoyment of their lusts so freely here : As the Saints have been forced to flye out of their land that they might serve the Lord and keep their consciences cleare . But we let this passe , and come now to the close of the Chapter to the Epiphonema of it all . For great shall be the day of Jezreel . They shall appoint themselves one head , and come up out of the land , for great , Licet , so Tremelius turnes it , although the day of Jezreel be great : & indeed the Hebrew particle 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 signifieth quamvis as well as quia , It may be translated [ although ] as well as [ for ] And he translating it so , although the day of Iezreel be great , he takes it in this sense , that is , although the people of Israel shall be brought into great affliction , yet God will be so mercifull then when his time comes , as they shall be gathered together again , and appoint themselves one head , and come up out of the land . And from such an interpretation of the words there might be an excellent meditation raised , and that is this . That the greatnesse of the misery of the Church is no hinderance to the course of the freenesse and abundance of Gods mercy to it . Although the day of Iezreel , their day be never so calamitous , never so afflictive , never so grievous , yet they shall come up out of the land and appoint themselves one head . The greatnesse of the Churches misery is no hinderance unto the Churches delivery : Why ? because their deliverance dependeth upon a God who doth delight not onely to manifest some power , but the excellency , and the glory , and the choyce of his power in their deliverance . For that take this Scripture , Isa . 62. 8. Where speaking of these very times that we shall heare of afterward , of Gods being mercifull unto his people , he saith , The Lord hath sworne by his right hand : and we have not onely mention thereof Gods right hand and swearing by it , but the arme of God too ; Marke that , The arme of God and the arme of his strength : There is Gods hand , Gods arme , the arme of his strength , & God sweareth by it . Surely when God delighteth to put forth such power for the deliverance of his Church , it is no great matter whether the afflicted estate be great or small . It makes no great matter for the hinderance of the Churches delivery , no more then if you should see two bubbles of water rise up , & one hath a little thicker skin then the other . Now there is as much difference in the difficulty that the thick skin bubble makes when a mighty Cannon or peece of Ordnance shal be shot off with a mighty Bullet to resist it , from the thinner skin bubble , as the greatest and forest affliction that the people of God were ever under in this world makes a difference in the difficulty of their deliverance ( when they have to deale with an infinite God ) from the least affliction that ever the Church was in . The difference is no more . If a childe indeed should see the thicker skin bubble , he might thinke t is harder to be broke then the thinner skin , but if a Cannon should be shot off , nay if it be but a Fillip , it makes no difference . Now the afflictions of Gods people they are to this right hand of Gods power , and the arme of his strength , but as a bubble of water before a mighty Cannon . Yea if there be not help at all to deliver Gods people in time of affliction yet God can create helpe , He will create Jerusalem a rejoycing , and their people a joy . Yea suppose their condition be such as yet never was the like since the beginning of the world , yet Isa , 64. 4. Since the beginning of the world men have not heard , nor perceived by the care , ●either hath the eye seene what God hath prepared for them that waite for him . And as the greatnesse of the Churches deliverance is no hinderance of Gods power in delivering them , so it should be no hinderance to the work of our faith . Common prudence and reason will go a great way to uphold us under some affliction , but when the affliction comes to be sore , and grievous , and long ; prudence & reason then sinketh under the burthen ; but then should faith lift up it selfe , and cast an eye upon this right hand of Gods power , this arme of his strength that he hath sworne by , and exercise it self in the glorious acts of it . For certainly faith is appointed for such a time as this , when the Church is under grievous extremities . The ordinary afflictions of the Church do not call for such a work of faith , but when they come to extraordinary that requires such a power of God for their deliverance , then there is called for a worke of faith proportionable , as Alexander when he was in great danger , Now ( saith he ) there is a danger fit for the spirit of Alexander to incounter withall . So when the Church comes to be in any great danger , all the members of it should say , here is a danger , here is a trouble fit for the spirit of Christians , fit for the spirits of those that are able to exercise the most noble and glorious acts of faith . This glorious exercise of faith , I may even say we are scarce yet for the present put to it , for reason and sense sees much help , they see that the cause of God at this day hath the better of the adversary ; reason I say and prudence may see far this way . Let us not look upon every difficulty as a thing that calleth for such a mighty glorious worke of faith , whereas men by reason and prudence , and may carry themselves under such difficulties much better then most of us doe . But we do not know but the Lord may call us unto such difficulties and dangers as requires such a faith as hath such a kinde of work as I have spoken of . Let us therefore lay up this Instruction for the time to come . Again , for great shall be the day of Jezreel , If the words be read thus ( as they are in your Bibles ) and yet have reference to the calamitous time , and grievous extremities of the day of Jezreel , then there will be these two excellent meditations from thence . The first is , That Gods bowels of compassion do work toward his Church because of the greatnesse of their affliction . When their afflictions shall be very great , and the greater they are , the more do Gods bowels of compassion work toward them . We know the misery of Gods people in Exo. 3. was a marvailous quickning argument to the compassion of God ( as I may so speake ) I have seene , I have seene ( saith he ) the affliction of my people , and their sorrowes , and therefore am come down to deliver them . If the greatness of the affliction of the Church move the bowels of Gods compassion , then let not the greatnesse of affliction hinder our faith . Let not the greatnesse of trouble reason down our faith , but rather let it reason up our faith , for so indeed it should ; and so the Saints of God heretofore have done , by the greatness of the trouble we must reason up our faith as thus : It is ●●me for thee O Lord to work , for men have almost destroyed thy law ; yea the high time is come for thee to have mercy upon Zion , for thy people begin to favour the dust thereof . What , was this a good argument , Have mercy upon me , and pardon my sin for it is very great , to move God withall ? Surely then this is a good argument , Deliver us in our afflictions , for they are very great : for sin makes a great deale more distance betweene God and us then afflictions : yet if the greatness of sin shall come to be put as an argument for Gods mercy and compassion to work , much more the greatness of afflictions . Yet this is the grace of God in the second Covenant that even the sins that before made the creature the object of hatred , those sins come now to make it an object of compassion . So afflictions that before were part of the curse , they come now to be arguments for the moving of the bowels of Gods tender compassion toward his people . Another note ( if you read it so , for great is their affliction ) is this , the promise is the only support of the soul , and that which carrieth it thorow the greatest affliction . Afflictions are as leade to the net , the promise is as the corke , the promise keepes above water when the lead pulls down . But I leave these meditations , though I finde many interpreters run this way . And I rather take it as a further expression of Gods wonderfull mercy unto his Church . For great shall be the day of Jezreel , That is , God hath a great day of mercy for Jezreel . That is the meaning , they shall appoint themselves one head , they shall be gathered together and be made one , they shall come up out of the land , why ? for God hath yet to come a great day of mercy to his pepole , A gr●●● day of Jezreel . And herein therefore God makes use of the name of Jezreel in a good sense . They that carry it the other way would carry the signification of the name thus , for great is the day of scattering , of the scattered people , so Iezreel signifieth ( as you heard in the beginning of the Chapter ) But Jezreel signifieth likewise the seed of God. Before God made use of their name in the worse sense , that he would scatter them according to their name ; now he makes use of their name in the best sense , they are the seed of God , and there is great mercy from God for them . When God is reconciled unto a people , he takes all in the best sense and makes the best acception of every thing , as he doth here of the name Jezreel . We have onely these two things to consider of in this expression . 1. That the Saints of God , and the Church , they are Gods Jezreel . That is , they are the seed of God. 2. That there is for this seed of God a great day . 1. They are the seed of God. The seed of the blessed , and there is a blessing in them . They are the precious seed that God preserves in the world , & hath done ever since the beginning of the world . They are that seed that preserveth the glory of God in the world . Were it not for a few gracious , holy people in the world , where would the glory of God be ? What would become of it ? Those that are godly , however contemptible in the world , they are the precious seed that God reserves in the world for great and glorious ends . They are the seed to preserve the continuation of the Doctrine of the Gospell , and the blessed truths of God ; as Isa . 6. 13. The holy seed shall be the substance thereof . Though they shall be under great afflictions , yet there shall be a holy seed that shall be the substance thereof , and there shall be his blessing . Psal . 72. 17. His name shall endure from generation to generation : the words are read by Montanus , His name shall be childed , that is , so continued as families are continued , one generation after another , one begetteth another : and so shall the name of Christ continue in the world , and so it hath done . And though seed be but a handfull in comparison of the harvest , so the Saints of God then were , and yet are but as a handfull in comparison of the glorious harvest that shall be , yet they are very precious before God , and God will make the world hereafter know that they are the precious ones of God , Isa . 61. 9. All that see them shall acknowledge them that they are the seed which the Lord hath blessed . Seed ( you know ) a man will be carefull of that what ever becomes of his other corne . In the time of dearth the husbandman wil rather pinch his own belly , then have his seed-corne to be spent . So in times of common calamity , of common dearth , yet Gods care is over his seed ; the Saints are ( as I may say ) Gods seed-corne to preserve his name in the world , to other generations that are to come , he will not therefore have them destroyed . Seed is the most precious of the corne , which is most winnowed and made cleane , and so are the Saints , the cleane ones and the most precious ones . God perhaps doth winnow them and fanne them more than he doth others by the fannes and winnows of afflictions , why ? because they are his seed . Perhaps other corne that hath drosse in it , the husband-man will give the fowles and the cattell that , he bestoweth not much winnowing upon it , but the corne that is for seed he winnows that , he would not willingly have a dernell amongst it . It may be thou complainest thou art more winnowed , more fanned then other men , perhaps thou art more precious in Gods eyes , thou art to be reserved as seed , as the seed of the blessed . The wicked indeed they are seed too , but a corrupt seed , a seede of evill deers , Esay , 1. the grand-father was an enemy unto God , yea the great grand-father , and the father , and the children after him continue enemies to God. And God in mercy unto his Church doth many times cut downe the wicked before they do seed too much . As you that have gardens , if they have weeds in them , and you see the weeds come up and grow to seed , you think then that it is time to pull them up , you will not suffer them to seed . God lookes upon many families and sees wretched and sinfull men as a seed of evil doers , and sees they are ready to seed , and if they be not cut down suddenly there will be a wretched brood of wicked ones in such a family . This is the reason of Gods suddain cutting down of many wicked families . But to come to the point that is chiefly intended , that is , That this seed of the Lord shall have a great day . Great shall be the day of Jezreel . The men of the world they have their day in which they ruffle it out , and they have all the doings . Saint Paul seemes to speake of this in 1 Cor. 4. 3. he saith there that he did not passe for mans judgement , the word is , 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 , for mans day . Now men have the day , they have all the bravery in the world , well saith Saint Paul , I doe not passe formans day , I expect another day , besides mans day . I know not how it commeth to passe to be otherwise translated , you translate it judgement in your books , but in the Originall it is day , Man hath a day . As men have a day , so shall Gods Saints have a day too . Wee use to say many times when we see the Malignant party jocund and merry , surely they hope to have a day . My brethren be joyfull in the Lord , God hath a day for you , and a great day too , Great shall be the day of Jezreel . The beginning of Gods mercy to his people is called a day of small things , Zach. 4. 10. and that must not be despised , Let no man despise the day of small things . It was the beginning of the reformation and deliverance of the people of Judah from their captivity . But God hath a day of great things , and certainly that day shall be honorable . A day first in which the glory of God shall exceedingly appear , wherein God shal be ( as I may so speak with holy reverence ) as it were in his robes : As we know Princes upon great dayes put on their robes , so the King of glory shall have a day for his people , wherein even he himself will put on his robes , Ps . 102. 16. When the Lord shall build up Zion he shall appear in his glory . It seemeth while the Church is in affliction , while the witnesses prophesie in sack-cloath , God is as it were cloathed in sack-cloath , In all their afflictions he is afflicted , but because God hath a day , a great day to his Churches , he will reserve his robes till then , and when that day commeth he will put on his robes , for when he shall build up Zion ( saith the Text ) then the Lord shall appeare in his glory . A great day it shall be for Jezreel , for the seed of the Lord. Secondly , It shall be a great day , for this day shall be the riches of the world . Marke that place in Rom. 11. 12 , speaking of the Jews , If their fall ( saith he ) be the riches of the world , and their diminishing the riches of the Gentiles , how much more their fulness ? It was a rich mercy to the Gentiles when they were brought out of darknesse , and called into the knowledge of Jesus Christ , here was riches to the world of the Gentiles : But God hath a greater day then that , for it is spoken here of a day that is to come , that is , their fall was the riches of the Gentiles , much more their calling in again . So then there is such a day of calling home the people of God , as shall be the riches of the Gentiles , the riches of all the world . Yea Thirdly , Great shall be this day , for it shall be as a day of resurrection from death to life : so Dan. 12. 2. Many of them that sleepe in the dust shall awake , &c. It is not spoken of the great resurrection at the last day of judgement , for First , It is spoken but of some that shall arise : Secondly , The greatest glory that is here put upon the just , is but to shine as the stars in the firmament , but at the last day the Saints shall shine as the sunne in the firmament , more and above the starres . Yea , Thirdly , This that is here revealed to Daniel must be sealed up as a great secret till the appointed time come ; but for the Resurrection at the last day that is no great secret , that they knew well enough , it is not as a secret to be shut up and sealed from men till the time appointed come . But this Resurrection here spoken of , it is to be sealed up as a great secret that was not knowne in the world , nor should be much knowne till the appointed time should come . And then Lastly , It was promised to Daniel in the 13. ver . that he should stand up in his lot , as a peculiar and speciall favour that God stould bestow upon him . Now it is not such a peculiar and special favour for a Saint to stand up at the great day , at the last day , this was a favour to Daniel as an eminent Saint , that he should stand up thus in his lot . Therefore this Resurrection is the same with this great day of Jezreel , wherein there shall be such a glorious work of God in calling Israel and Judah together & the fulness of the Gentiles , that it shall be as the Resurrection from death to life ; so the Apostle calls it likewise in that Rom. 11. 15. What shall the receiving of them be but life from the dead ? 4. Great shall be the day of Iezreel , for this shall bring refreshing to all the Saints , this is the time of the refreshing , Act. 3. 19. There shall be such things then as will refresh and revive the spirits of all the Saints . Yea , 5. It shall be the day of restitution of all things . Acts 3. 21. Vntill the times of rest it 〈◊〉 of all things come , which God hath spoken by the mouth of all his Prop●● since the world began . I know it is ordinary carryed by many another way , concerning the last day ; but that it cannot be so , it appears , because that then there shall not be the restitution of all things , but the annihilation of many things . Further , this speakes of a restitution of all things , that was spoken of by the mouth of all the holy Prophets . Now the holy Prophets spake but very little concerning the day of Judgment , of another life to come , we reade but little of it in the Prophets ; and therefore the Apostle in 2 Tim. 1. 10. saith , that life and immortality was brought to light through the Gospel . Not but that it was known somewhat before , but it was very darkly known , there was very little spoken of life and immortality in the Prophets ; But this speaks of a time that all the holy Prophets spake of as an argument that was the general theame of them all . And indeed there is no argument whatsoever that is more general among the Prophets , then this great argument of this great day of Jezreel . Again , 6. A great day , for it shall be a new creation ; a new heaven and a new earth shall be made when this great day of Iezreel shall come . Esay , 66. 17. Behold I create new heavens and a new earth : And in ver . 18. if you observe it , you shall see what this new heaven and this new earth is : But be glad and rejoyce for ever in that which I create , for behold I create Ierusalem are joycing , and her people a joy . Those are the new heavens & the new earth that are to be created : and this is meant of the Church plainly , for the Text , ver . 21. speakes of building houses , and inhabiting them , and of planting vineyards , and eating the fruit of them , upon these new heavens & this new earths creation . And 2 Pet. 3. 13. Neverthelesse according to this promise , we looke for new heavens and a new earth , wherein dwelleth righteousnesse . Now where is this promise ? This is usually taken for the Kingdom of heaven hereafter . But where is this promise ? We do not finde it any where but in that place I named before , Esay , 65. Now it is apparent that promise doth speak of an estate of the Church here in this world ; and there is spoken of a new earth , as well as of a new heaven ; if it were onely spoken of new heavens , it had bin another matter , but it speaks of a new earth likewise , therefore meant of an estate in this world , a new creation of a new heaven and earth , that is , there shall be such glorious things done by God , as shall manifest a creating power , as if God did now make new heavens and a new earth . 7. Great shal be the day of Iezreel , for it shall be as another world , when this day cometh . Heb. 2. 5. 6. 7. 8. Vnto the Angels hath he not put in subjection the world to come , whereof we speak . But one in a certain place testified , ( this certain place is in Psa . 104. ) saying : What is man that thou art mindful of him , or the son of man that thou visitest him ? Thou hast made him little lower then the Angels , thou crownedst him with glory and honour , and didst set him over the works of thy hands , thou hast put all things in subjection under his feet . This is clearly interpreted of Christ , ( as vers . 9. and so on ) that all things must be subjected to hi●● man , What is man that thou shouldst regard him ? That is , that thou 〈◊〉 advance the nature of man so far as to unite it even to thy Son , and pi●● things in subjection under his feet . This the Apostle interpreteth of Christ . But saith he , wee see not yet all things put under him , that time is yet to come , for , saith he , We speak of things that concerne the world to come . Therefore ( mark my brethren ) there must be such a time wherein all things , all creatures must be put under subjection to Christ , and this is in the world to come . Not in that world to come where the Saints shall raign gloriously in heaven , it cannot be meant of that , for the heavens must depart as a scroll , and many things shall then rather be annihilated , and the Kingdome must then be given up by Christ to God the Father , so the Apostle saith , 1 Cor 15. that is , when the Saints shall reigne gloriously with Christ in heaven . But here this place speaks of a time when all creatures must come under subjection to Christ , and it is called the world to come , why ? because of the great change there shall be of things , it shall be ( as it were ) a new world . As we call this world from Noahs time a new world , and when we speak of the other world we call it the old world ; so the Scripture calls it , 2 Pet. 2. 5. God spared not the old world : And Chap. 3. 6. The world that then was being overflowed with water , perished . So this world that we live in is as the old world , and there is this day of Jezreel , in which there shall be such a glorious change , all things being put in subjection under Christ , that it shall be as it were a new world , God hath made an excellent world in which there is much beauty and glory , and yet his enemies have the rule here ; what then will that world be that God intends for his Saints ? 8. Great shall be the day of Jezreel . It shall be such a great day that all former things shall be even forgotten because of the lustre and glory of that great day . As Isa . 65. 17. The former heavens and the former earth shall not be remembred nor come into mind ; And so Jer. 3. 16. In those dayes saith the Lord , they shall say no more the Arke of the Covenant of the Lord , neither shall it come to minde , neither shal they remember it ; at that time they shal call Jerusalem the Throne of the Lord , and all the nations shal be gathered unto it , to the name of the Lord , to Jerusalem , neither shal they walk any more after the imagination of their evil hearts ( mark my brethren ) In those dayes the house of Judah shall walke together , ver . 18. It is apparent that it is spoken of this great day of Iezreel ; for now God saith he will gather Iudah and Israel together , and here he saith that they shall walke together , and that then former things shall be forgotten ; they shall call Jerusalem the Throne of the Lord ; heretofore even the Temple it self the glory of Jerusalem was but as the place of Gods feet , and the Arke of God was but Gods footstool . 1 Chron. 28. 2. It was in mine heart ( saith David ) to build a house of rest for the Arke of the Covenant of the Lord , and for the footstoole of our God ; and Isa . 60. 13. I will make Zion the place of my feet glorious . But now in this great day , Jerusalem that was but Gods foot stool , the place of his feet , shall be Gods Throue ; a great day certainly this shall be when all things shall be thus forgotten . In the last place , a great day , because it shall be a day after which there shal be no night . And that you will say will be a great day indeed , after which the Saints shall be raised to such a state of prosperity and happiness that shall never fall again , that shall never come to be darkened any more . The Churches here many times have had some little release , they have had their dayes of peace for a while , but it hath soone grown to be night , and a dismall night of darkness . But when this great day shall come it shall be a day that shall never have night , for so God promiseth here to his Jezreel , to make it to be an eternal excellency , and to make Jerusalem an everlasting joy , and Dan. 2. 44. God shall in the dayes of those Kings set up a Kingdom that shall never be destroyed , that is , the great day of Jezreel . The first thing that shall be done in this great day of Iezreel , shall be the deliverance of the Churches from wofull affliction which they shal be found to be in a little before . For so the Scripture tells us , Dan. 12. 1. that before this day there shall be a time of trouble such as never was since there was a nation even to that same time , and at that time thy people shall be delivered . I might tell you much how some of the Ancients have spoken of this , that though it be a point that seemes to be somewhat strange to us , yet it was one of the most ordinariest things that was known in the primitive times . It was then so generally acknowledged , that I remember Just in Martyr ( who was but 30. years after Saint John ) hath such an expression as this , There is no man ( saith he ) that is of the Orthodox faith in all things , but he doth acknowledge it . And Lactantius in his 7. book , cap. 15. 24. 28. and divers other chapters he spends in shewing the glory of this great day of Iezreel , but withall he shewes that a little before there shall be most grievous times that shal fall out , such times saith he , as that all right shall be confounded , the law shall perish , no body shall know what is his own , the wicked they shal have the preheminence , & the Saints they shall be persecuted , so that ( saith he ) though in this our time wickednesse is grown to such a height , that a man would think it could increase no higher , yet in comparison of the time a little before that great day , these times may be called Golden ages . These expressions he hath , So that great times of affliction will be before that great day ; and it is therefore called a great day , because God appearing so gloriously in the deliverance of his Church at that day . The Scripture speakes of wonderfull thing that God will do , and shew himself marvaylous as he did in the people of Israels comming out of Eg●●t . Who knowes but that God now sendeth abroad so much of the light of his Gospel , and is so working in the hearts of men , and giveth us such a time of reviving , and calleth home so many young ones as he doth purposely because this great day is at hand , and because before this day wee may have a day of dismall darkenesse ? and by this he will prepare people for those times , God will have a great seed that he intends to be in the world , therefore so many young people are converted and are so forward , because I say God meanes to prepare them by this light that we now have , for this seed , for this great day . And you that are young may expect to go thorow some difficulties & hardship before this great day comes , but be of good comfort , you may hope to live to see all the glory of this great day , and God gives you now time that you may lay up , and be fit seed for such a glorious day as this , that you may not when sufferings come , be found among the number of the fearfull ones , spoken of in Rev. 21. 8. that shal have their part in the lake which burneth with fire & brimstone ; Those that through base cowardliness and complyance shall yeeld to base vile superstitious vanities shall be cast out amongst dogs when that great day comes . God now gives you a day that you may see the evil of superstitious vanities , that you may have truths revealed to you with more freedom then formerly , I say who knowes but this may be to prepare you for that darknesse that may come a little before this great day of Jezreel . Secondly , a great day in subduing the adversaries of the Church . Though they shall come to have a great deale of power a little before ; yet when that great day of Iezreel shall come , they shal be cert●inly all subdued & brought under . Rev. 19. 13. Christ when he shall come in this great day he shal have his garments dipt in blood , in destroying the wicked and ungodly , and Rev , 15. the Saints when they see the wicked destroyed as the Egyptians were in the sea , the Text saith that they sung the song of Moses . What was this song of Moses , but the praysing of God for the destruction of their adversaries in the Sea ? God hath another Sea to destroy the wicked , and God hath a day for his Saints to sing over the song of Moses again , and especially for the destruction of Popery . My brethren be not troubled to see Papists make a concourse and flock together , be not troubled at it , for when this day shall come , God will so order things that his adversaries shall come and flock together , but it shall be that they may be destroyed , for God hath a great feast and a great Sacrifice , and he will sacrifice them especially . And therefore Lactantius that I spoke of before , and is one that lived 1300. yeares since , saith he ( speaking then of this day ) I have a thing to say , but I even tremble to speake it , but I must speake it , and what was it ? Romanum nomen ( saith he ) de terra tolletur ; those are his words , the Roman name shall be taken off from the earth . He in those primitive times proph●sied of the destruction of Rome . Perhaps though he did not see it so clearly , yet God might so order it , as though hee understood it not , God might intend it for these times . God will destroy the enemies of his Churches then . Yea. Ezek. 28. 24. there is a promise to the Saints that there shall beno more a pricking bryar , nor any grieving thorne of any that are round about them that despise them , & in another place God saith that he will take away the Canaanite out of the Land. Further , the third thing that shall be done in this great day , is the glorious presence of Christ among the Saints , let it be personall or what it will , wee determine not , but thus far we may confidently affirme that there shall be a more glorious presence of Jesus Christ among his people , then ever yet was since the beginning of the world . Rev. 21. 22. The Lord God Almighty , and the Lamb , shall be the Temple of it : and Chap. 22. 3. 4. The Throne of God and of the Lamb shal be in it , and his servants shall serve him , & they shall see his face , and Ezek. 48. the last words of the Chapter , The name of that place shall be Jehovah-shammah , that is , the Lord is there . Fourthly , the glory that shall be put upon the Saints at that day , shewes it to be a great day . Glory shall be put upon them , first in regard of their admirable gifts & graces they shall be heightned and inlarged , the weake shall be as David , and they that are as David shall be as the Angel of God at that day . The bowing down of their adversaries before them , The high esteeme that they shall have , even in the thoughts and judgments of many great ones of the world , they shall be called up to heaven , that is , those that are in highest place and dignity , shall call them up and honour them in that day , yea the Text saith , The Kings of the earth in that day shall came in , and bring their glory to the Church . Therefore it is apparent , that place Rev. 21. 24. cannot be understood of heaven , for it is said , the Kings of the earth shal bring their glory , they shall not bring their glory to the Church , when the Church shall be in heaven . And fiftly , a great day it shall be in regard of the wonderfull change of all creatures , glorious , fruitfull times , so I remember Lactantius speaks of that time , that the rocks them selves should issue forth honey and precious things ; but that we cannot say , yet that there shall bee a wonderfull change of all things , and all creatures brought to a further happiness ( even the sensitive creatures as well as others ) then they had before , the Scriptures are cleare euough in it . And literally we are to understand many Scriptures that tend this way concerning the fruitfulnesse of the earth , and the outward external glory that there shall be in the creatures . As upon a great marriage feast or Coronation day , all the servants of the Prince are in their best array ; so when Christ his Bridegroome shall come and meet with his wife , with his Spouse , all creatures shall be put into a new cresse , shall have further glory . And lastly , that which we have here in the Text , the multitudes of all nations and people that shall flock to the Church , that they shall be as the sand of the sea . But this I have spoken of before at large . Now put all these things together , and Great shall be the day of Jezreel . Yea , but shall these things be so ? shall they be so ? Though flesh and blood may reason against these things , yet I may apply that place , Zach. 2. 13. Be silent , O all flesh , before the Lord , for he is raised up out of his holy ha●●●tion . Flesh may say , How can these things be ? But let all flesh be silent , for God hath made known in his Word , the great things that he intends to bring to passe . And Zach. 8. 6. Thus saith the Lord of Hosts , if it be marvaylous in the eyes of the remnant of this people in these dayes , should it also be marvaylous in mine eyes ? saith the Lord of Hosts . It may be applyed to this as well as the other . These things may seeme marveilous to your eyes , especially because we have been but little acquainted with them , but they are not marveilons in the eyes of God. Yea we find it out of the Word that these things were to be kept hidden till the appointed time should come , till we draw neerer to that great day ; we are not to wonder why these things have not been opened unto us , for God tells us Dan. 12 that they were to be sealed up even to the time appointed , and Rev. 10. 11. God telleth Iohn that he must prophe sie again before the Kings of the earth , that is , before the time of the fulfilling of all things , that booke of the Revelation shall be made out as cleere as if Iohn were come to prophesie again before men . And we hope it is comming , because God beginneth to let in light that way , and the morning star seemeth to begin to arise . In Zach. 14. 6. you have mention of a day , that we may apply to the present day that we have now . And it shall come to passe ( saith the Text there ) that the light shall not be cleere nor darke , but it shall be one day which shall be known to the Lord , not day nor night , but it shall come to passe that at evening time it shall be light . Mark what shall be in that day , ver . 8. And it shall be in that day that living waters shall go out from Jerusalem ; & ver . 9 , In that day shall there be but one Lord , and his name one ; and then ver . 20. In that day shal there be upon the bels of the horses holiness to the Lord ; and ver . 21. In that day there shall be no more the Canaanite in the house of the Lord of Hosts . Certainly my brethren these Scriptures speakes of a glorious day that is a comming , but yet in the beginning of it is just like such a day as we have now for the present , wherein the light is neither cleere nor darke : It is true , not long since it was darke , now this darkenesse beginneth to be a little dispelled , but it is not cleere yet , many things for the present darken the light , and there is opposition and many dampes upon the hearts of Gods people , and things go not o●●s we desire ; but blessed be God it is not night with us , though it be not 〈◊〉 day it is not darke as it was , though it be not as cleere as we desire ; therfore this is now a day which is neither cleer nor darke , but even as it were twilight . Well but it shall be one day that is one special day , and indeed it is our day now , it is the greatest day that ever yet England had . It shall be one day which shall be knowne to the Lord , a day wherein the Lord hath great thoughts and purposes to do great things , and certainly this our day is known to the Lord , great things God is about to do for his Churches , & laying a foundation of glorious things for the good of his people . And then mark , though it be neither day nor night , yet at the evening time it shall be light . What a strange expression is here ? It shall be a duskie cloudy day all day , and then a man would thinke that at evening it should be quite dark , what to be cloudy at noone and to be darkish at three or foure of the clock in the afternoone , what then will it be in the evening ? surely then it must needes be more darke : No , though it be not cleere now , though it be a cloudy day and part of it darke , yet at the evening time it shall be light : When it shall be least expected to have light , and when we shall most feare darknesse , when wee shall be ready to conclude , O our day is gone , once indeed God did bring a day to England , a comfortable day though it was a little darke , yet there was a glorious light in comparison of what we had before , but now it is grown towards evening , the evening begins to shut upon us , we looked for light but behold darknesse . Perhaps many will be complaining , if they see things go on with any difficulty and opposition they will be ready to have their hearts sink within them , and to cry out , now our day is gone and the evening is comming , & we must look for darkness , yea and feare a dismall darknesse . Now my brethren , be of good comfort , for at evening time it shall be light ; when we think it shall be evening , when it is most unlikely to be light , then shall the light of the Lord breake forth most gloriously : For whensoever this day of Iezreel commeth , there must be such a glorious work of God as may magnify his name before the eyes of all men , and therefore at evening it shall be light . And in that day living waters shall go out from Jerusalem : We have had some drops of living waters in this our day , but there is a day a comming wherein living waters shall even flow out of Jerusalem . Now to winde up all . There is a day for the Saints , a rest for the people of God , a day wherein God will deliver them from all afflictions . I have met with one , that speaking of the Sabbath , that the Jewes might kindle no fire upon their Sabbath , because that rest was to signifie the rest of the Saints , he applyeth it thus : That was ( saith he ) a type that there is such a time of rest for the Saints , that they shall be delivered from all fiery tryals , all their afflictions shall be gone and taken away : Great shall be the day of Iezreel . The consideration of this ( me thinks ) might be a strong argument to draw in all people to the wayes , to the love of godlinesse and Religion ; to come and joyne with the Churches in appointing Christ head over them . All you wicked ones that hath forsaken the Lord hitherto , come in & joyn now , and submit unto Jesus Christ as your Head , for great shall be the day of Iezreel . There is a great day for the Church of God , a day of glory , a day of abundance of wonderfull mercy of God to the Churches . They shall have their day ; come you in and embrace Religion , that you may partake of their glory . Certainly the Saints of God shall have the better of it : shall have the day of all the world , let the world strive against them what they can . Every man desires to follow the stronger party and to cleave to that : would you cleave to the stronger part ? Cleave to the Saints of God , to the Church , for certainly it is the stronger part ; It is a going up , it is rising , and will rise more and more till it be risen unto the heighth . Though there be some opposition , yet it is such as shall make the glory of the day so much the more . Those men that 〈◊〉 shall stand to pleade for Antichrist , and to oppose the work that God is about , certainly they are men borne out of time , borne in an ill hour . Your Papists and superstitious people that heretofore stood for that way , they prospered in their way , because the day of God was not so neare , but the day of his patience in permitting Antichrist to continue , was then . But doest thou come now ? what superstitious now ? what opposing the work of God now ? when God is comming out to fight against Popery and superstition , when God is about to do such great things for his Churches as he certainly is , Thou fightest against God , and God will fight against thee , and thou shalt be throwen upon thy backe , Thou art borne in the worst time that possibly could be , worse then all the adversaries of the truth in former times . And if there be such a day , let us be willing to suffer for a while , let us be willing to mourne for the Churches a while in that way of mourning that God calls us unto , for there is a recompence comming , glory enough comming even in this world . There is a time of triumphing , let us be content with our warfare here for a while . Thirdly , Let us study these things . These things are usefull for people in these times to look into , to search into these truths of God , that so they may be the better prepared to meet Christ their Bride-groom when he cometh . Marke that place , Ezek. 40. 4. It is spoken of the glorious times of the Gospel , especially of these times I am speaking of ; where God saith to the Prophet , Behold with thine eyes , and heare with thine eares , and set thine heart upon all that I shal shew thee . And what did God shew him ? hee shewed him the measure of the Temple and all the glorious things that there should be in the Church in future times . So I say to you my brethren concerning that I have spoken of the great day of Jezreel ; behold with your eyes , look into Gods book and see what is said there ( for I have named but little ) and heare with your eares , and set your hearts upon what hath been set before you . So in Isa . 41. 20. You have a place somewhat like this , speaking of the mercies of God to his Church in latter times , saith the Text , That they may see , & know , and consider , and understand together , that the hand of the Lord hath done this , and the Holy One of Israel hath created it . Mark how one word is heaped upon another , that they may see , & know , and consider , & understand what God would do for his people . And when God came to reveale the glorious things he intended for his Churches in future times in the book of the Revelation ( which is the special book that declareth this unto us . ) Mark how the Lord beginneth ; It is said that God gave this first to Christ ; secondly Christ to the Angel , thirdly the Angel to Iohn , and then there is pronounced a blessing to him that reads and hears the words of this prophesie and understands it . What a solemne way of blessing is here ! There is not such an expression in all the book of God : where have you a blessing so solemnly proclaimed to the reading and hearing of any of the bookes of God as to that book ? Therefore though they are things that seeme to be above us , yet certainly God would have us to inquire into these things . It is the fruit of the purchase of the blood of Christ to open these seales . Rev. 5. 9. we reade that there was no man in heaven nor in earth that was able to open the book and to loose the seales thereof , only the Lambe that was slaine and that hath redeemed us unto God by his blood , he was onely worthy to open the seales . It is a fruit I say of the slaughter of Christ & of his blood , and therefore cry to him for the opening these things to thee . And though thou beest very weake in regard of parts , and thinkest with thy self , How can I understand such things as these ? know that it is Christ that through his blood comes to open these seales , and seeing it is a fruite of his blood , it is no matter whether thou art weake or strong if he come to open them to thee : as Ier. 13. 2. saith God to the Prophet . Call unto me and I will shew thee great and mighty things which thou knowest not ; so I say to you , be a praying people , call upon God and he will cause you to understand great and excellent things that you have not known . And ( my brethren ) seeing these things shall be thus , O what manner of persons ought wee to be ? how heavenly ? our hearts should rise up from the earth , seeing God intendeth to do such great things for his people . As it is Isa . 60. Arise , arise , shake off thy dust , for the light is come and the glory of the Lord is risen upon thee , So I may say to the Churches now , Arise arise shake of the dust of your earthly affections , for the light of God is now ready to arise upon you ; Now sur sum corda , now lift up your hearts above the things of the world . VVee reade in Rev. 4. of the foure living creatures that appeared unto John , the first was like a Lyon , and the second like an Oxe , and the third had a face as a Man , and the fourth was like a flying Eagle . They are ( according to the interpreta●ion that reverend Brightman gives ) to set out unto us the foure states & conditions of the Church . The Primitive times were Lyon-like for their valour : the second age like an Oxe to beare the burthens of Antichrist , the third had a face as a man , that stood for their liberties and would not be under such slavery , and they are but times : and then the fourth as an Eagle that sored aloft : In the state of the Church hereafter they shall be like an Eagle , have heavenly hearts , no such drossy , base , earthly hearts as we have now . Labour we even now to be so that we may be fit for that day . And let us all prepare for the Bride groome against his comming . How shall we prepare ? The cloathing that then shall be , shall be white linnen , which is the righteousnesse of the Saints . That great Doctrine of our justification by the righteousnesse of Christ shall be the great businesse of that day , in which the glory of the Saints shall much consist , and they shall be clothed with that , it shall be clearly understood of all men , they shall be ashamed to rest upon duties and ordinances as now they do . Let us study the Doctrine of the righteousnesse of Christ afore-hand , for that is like to be our clothing at that day , that is the white linnen of the Saints which shall be their glory . Let us prepare our Lamps and keepe them all burning and shining , the oyle not onely of ju●●●cation , but sanctification , active , stirring in our hearts , that so we may 〈◊〉 to entertaine the Bride-groom whensoever 〈◊〉 〈…〉 . And all of you labour now to instruct your children in the knowledge of God and of Christ , bring them up in the feare of the Lord that they may be seed for that day . Acquaint them with these things , for though perhaps you may be dead and gone before this great day , yet they may live to see it ; therefore catechize them , and instruct them , and drop into them those Principles that may fit them for the meeting of JESUS CHRIST their Bridegroome , To conclude all . Let us be all praying Christians . It is that which is charged upon us in Isa . 62. 6. All you that make mention of the Lord , keep not silence and give him no rest , till he establish , till he make Jerusalem apraise in the earth . God hath a day to set up Jerusalem as the praise of the whole earth , Oh be praying , praying Christians every one of you , and give God no rest till he effect this . And remember God of all his promises , search the Prophets , search the book of God , and urge God with his promises to the Church in this way . And you that are the weakest , be not discouraged in your prayers , and you may be a meanes to further and hasten this great day of Jezreel . Psal . 102. 17. The Psalmist had spoken before of Gods building up Zion , and certainly that Psalme is a Prophesie of the glorious times of the Church that shall be , marke what the Text saith , The Lord shall regard the prayer of the destitute , and shall not despise their prayer ; speaking of those that shall live in those times a little before this day of Iezreel shall be , The Lord shall regard the prayer of the destitute : the word that is translated destitute , it signifieth in the Hebrew , a poor shrub in the wildernesse , a poor shrub that the foot of every beast is ready to tread downe , and that poore shrub that perhaps is despicable in the eyes of the world , and despicable in his own eyes , yet saith the Text , the Lord shal regard the prayer of that poor shrub . Is there ever a poor shrub though never so destitute , so despicable in the eyes of the world or in thine owne eyes ? yet be thou a praying Christian , a praying soul , praying for those things , and God will regard thy prayer , he will not despise thy prayer . Perhaps thou art ready to despise thy prayers thy self , but God will not despise them , let all our hearts be lifted up , and let us all cry with the Church , Come Lord Jesus , Come quickly . O let this day come , for great shall be the day of Jezreel . HOSEA , CHAP. 2. The First Lecture . CHAP. 2. VER 1. 2. Say 〈◊〉 your brethren , Ammi , and to your sisters , Ruhamah . Pled with your mother , plead ; for she is not my Wife , neither am I her husband , &c. SOme joyne the first verse of this Chapter to the end of the former : and ( according to a sense that may be given of the words , agreeable to the scope of the latter part of the former Chapter ) it may seem more fit to be made the end of that , then the beginning of this . In the latter end of the former , God was in a way of promising mercy to his people , that those that were not his people should be his people , and those that had not received mercy should receive mercy . Now he calleth upon all whose hearts were with God , to speake to one another of this great favour of God to his people , fo● their mutuall encouragement , and for the praise of his Name . As if he should say , Well , you have been under dreadfull threats of God , your sins have called for dreadfull things ; but my grace is free , and it is rich & powerfull , therefore you that were not my people , and have deserved to be for ever cast off from being my people , you that had not obtained mercy shall obtaine mercy ; Say to your brethren , Ammi , and to your sisters , Ruhamah , that is , O you that are godly , speak one to another , and tel● one another , for the quickning of one anothers hearts ; of this great favour of God of his free grace , Oh say , Ammi , Ammi , the people of God , Ruhamah , Gods mercy : We were not his people , but now Ammi again , God hath promised to make us to be his people ; we were rejected from mercy , but mercy is come again , now Ruhamah , O the mercy of God , O that free grace of our God , that wee that have beene : so vile , so provoked the eyes of his glory , we that have so sinned against mercy it self , yet mercy should thus follow us , to make us his people , and to save us from his wrath ! It is a good thing to speake of the loving kindnesse of our God. Psal . 92. 1. It is a good thing to give thanks unto the Lord , and to be telling of the goodnesse of God in the morning , and his faithfulnesse every night . That Psalme is appointed for the Sabbath . It is a work of the Sabbath to be speaking one to another of the goodnesse of God : Especially in this case , when a people were afraid that they should have been for ever rejected , that now God should call them againe , Ammi , my people , and say now againe that he will have mercy upon them . Psal . 145. 4. 5. One generation shall praiss thy name to another , and shall declare thy mighty acts ; I will speak of the glorious honour of thy majesty , and of thy wondrous works . Mark what the wayes of God are toward his Church , when he commeth in the wayes of mercy ; they are wondrous works of God , they are the mighty acts of God , they are such wherein the honor of God appears , yea they are the honour of his Ma●esty , yea they are the glorious honour of his Majesty● There is Majesty , honour of Majesty , glorious honour of Majesty , mighty works of God , wonderfull works of God. When these appeare , these are to be declared indeed ; And for them to be able to say to one another , Ammi and Ruhamah , it was to declare the wonderfull works of God , and the glorious honour of his Majesty . Yea it followeth further in that Psalme , verse 6. Men shal speake of the might of thy terrible acts , and I will decla●e thy greatnesse . And verse 7. They shall abundantly utter the memory of thy great goodnesse . E●ucta●u●t , so Arias M●ntanus renders it , they shall not be able to keep it in , but break ●orth in the memory of thy goodnesse . Happy are those people that God g●ants such subjects of discourses unto , that they may say one to another , to their brethren and sisters , Ammi , and Ruhamah . It was not long since , that when we met with our brethren , we could not have such a subject of discourse as this is , but usually when Christians met together after their Salutations , their first question was ; Oh! what shall we do ? what shall we doe ? what course shall we take ? All the Newes almost that was in the Kingdome , and the subject of discourses ( specially among the Saints ) was this , Such a Minister silenced in such a place , such a one banished in another place , such a one imprisoned in another place , such a one High-Commissioned in another place , such signes of the wrath of God upon us , we are afraid that God is going , if he be not quite gone already , we are afraid that he will not onely reject us from being his people , but reject us from being a people upon the fac● of the earth . But blessed be God , he hath changed the subject of our d●scourses . Now Gods wayes have begun to be towards us as if he intended to make us again to be his people . Now we may when we meet together have plentifull subjects of discourses about Gods grace & mercy , to say Ammi , Ruhamah , O the Lord manifesteth goodnes to an unworthy Nation & we have hope that yet he will owne us to be his people , we have hope that yet he will shew mercy to us though never so unworthy . Who would have thought ever to have seene and heard of such things as we have seene & heard ? who would have thought ever to have seene the hearts of the adversaries so daunted , their power so curbed , their rage so quelled , the wicked in their own workes so ensnared ; their hopes so disappointed ? who would ever have thought to have seene the Saints so rejoycing , their liberties so inlarged , their hearts and expectations so raised ? This is the free grace of God : Ammi , Ruhamah , we have obtained mercy , God hath dealt with us in abundance of grace . This we must not discourse of when we meere , as matter of newes onely , but we must speake of it to the praise of God , for the sanctifying of our hearts . Our brethren in Ireland have another subject of their discourses at this day . When a brother or a sister meet this is the subject of their discourse , Oh my Father , my mother taken such a day by the Rebels and cruelly masacred , such a kinsman , such a kinswoman taken such a day and fearfully murthered , such houses were fired , such Cities and Towns were taken , and with what gaftly visages doe you think they look one upon another , when they are thus relating these sad things ? The word of God came out against England , but it hath lighted upon Ireland . O unworthy are we of these mercies we enjoy , if when we meete together our discourses be frothy and light , about vain and trivial things , when God hath given us such a subject of discourse as he hath done by such gracious , and wonderfull , and glorious wayes of his mercy towards us in this latter age . Say to your brethren Ammi , and to your sisters Ruhamah . The mercies of God are to be inculcated upon our spirits , we should not onely tell them one to another , but again and again inculcate them upon our hearts . Indeed Gods mercies at first they seeme to take impression upon our spirits , but the impression is soone vanished . Say to your brethren . This is ( according to some ) Let Judah to whom God shewed special mercy , say to Israel , to the ten Tribes that were more threatned then Judah , for Judah was not so threatned as Israel was , to be cast off from being the people of God. Let Judah rejoyce in this , that their brethren are received again to mercy . A gracious heart should rejoyce in Gods mercies towards others . Gods mercies are an infinite Ocean , there needes no envying there , no grieving for that which others have . Indeed when one man is richer then another , another is ready rather to envy him then to rejoyce : A Courier is ready to envy the favour that another hath , why ? because these are narrow things . But when we come to Gods mercy there is roome enough there , that soul that hath beene made partaker of mercy , counts it a great happinesse that any way the mercy of God may be magnified . Say to your brethren and sisters , &c. These whom God hath received unto mercy , we should receive into brotherly affection . Hath God shewed mercy to such and such , well may wee account them our brethren and sisters then . If God takes them to mercy we must be ready willingly to take them into brotherly society . But now if we take these words as the beginning of the second Chapter , then we shall see them carried in some different way . And taking of them so ( as most doe ) I shall first shew you the scope of the Chapter in the parts of it , and then shew in what sense the words may be carried , as the beginning of this Chapter . The scope of thi●●●ond Chapter is much according to that of the first , viz. 〈◊〉 shew unto 〈◊〉 their sinne and their danger , and secondly to promise Gods aboundant grace and mercy again . The first is especially from the beginning to the 14. verse , and the second , from the 14. verse to the end of the Chapter . Yet this is not an exact division . neither can we give an exact division of this no more than we could give of the other . Why ? Because things are so intermixed ; for they are the patheticall expressions of a loving , and yet a provoked husband , and therefore when he is comming to ●●●●vince his spouse who hath dealt falsely with him , and to shew her her sin and danger , whilst he is manifesting of his displeasure , the bowels of his compassion begin to yerne , and he must have some expression of love in the middest of all ; then when he hath had some expressions of love , he falls again to rebuke her and to shew her her sin again , and then his bowels yerne again , and he commeth to expressions of love again . We have found it so in the former Chapter , and shall find it so in this : For though the beginning of this Chapter to the 14. verse is specially spent in convincing of sinne and threatning of Judgement , yet in the sixth and seventh verses there is promise of mercy and favour , and expressions of love , and then in the eighth verse he goes to threatning againe , and in the 14. ver . begins to express mercy again . As God doth in this case , so should we . When we rebuke others that are under us , we should so rebuke them , as yet to manifest love to them , and when we manifest love , to doe it so as yet to take notice what is amisse and to reprove them . Many parents know not how to rebuke their children , but they do it , so as that there is nothing but bitternesse ; and they know not how to manifest their love but they do it so as that there is nothing but cockering and immoderate indulgency . God mixeth both together . Say to your brethren , &c. Take it for the beginning of the first part of this second Chapter , for the shewing of them their sinne , and rebuking them , What then must be the sense and scope of the words , Say to your brethren , Amm● , &c. Then it is carried thus . Some thing must be supplied for the making up of the full sense . As if God should have said , Oh Ammi , you whom I have reserved to be my people , you to whom I have shewed mercy , there is yet remaining a handfull of you , while you remaine to be may people , and others cast off , and you obtayning mercy , and others rejected , let it be your care to exhort , perswade , convince , use all the meanes you can to bring your brethren and sisters on to that grace of God you have received : Say to your brethren , say , it is not expressed what they should say , but by that which followeth wee may understand what the meaning of God is , when hee saith Plead with your mother , &c. that is , you that have received mercy and are my people , there is a remnant of you ; do not you think that so long as you scape and are well enough your selves , no great matter what becomes of others , oh no , but let your hearts be much toward your brethren and sisters , let your bowels yerne toward them , oh seeke if it be possible to draw them unto God that they may receive mercy too , labour to convince them , say and speake to them that they may not yet stand out against God and be obstinate ; say to your brethren Ammi , and to your sisters Ruhamah , you that are Ammi , and you that have received mercy do you speake to your brethren and sisters . And this affordeth unto us many excellent Observations . As First , That in the most corrupt times of all , God doth use to reserve a people , to deliver some from the guilt of the generall corruptions of the place where they live . For so this Ammi and Ruhamah , were a remainder , that God did deliver thorough his grace from the generall corruptions of the place where they were ; for otherwise they had not beene fit to have said to their brethren or to have spoken to their sisters in this sense . Secondly , those whom God delivers from the guilt of generall corruptions are to be acknowledged the people of God , such as have receiv●● mercy from God in a speciall manner ; It is free grace that hath made this difference between you and others ; Augustin in his second book concerning preservation , has a good note upon that Scripture , 1 King. 19. 18. I have left me seven thousand in Israel , God sayes not , there are left 7000 , or they have left themselves , but I have left ; It is the speciall work of God to preserve any for himselfe in evil times . Thirdly , the Lord takes speciall notice of such who are thus by his grace preserved in evill times . Ammi , Ruhamah , There are a people amongst these that are Ammi , my people , that have obtained mercy from me , mine eyes are upon them , my heart is toward them ; there are a number that have kept their garments undefiled even in Sardis , and I will remember this for ever for their good . Noah was a just man , prefect in his generation , Gen. 6. 9. and what then ? Chap. 7. 1. Come thou and all thy house into the Ark , for thee have I seene righteous before me in this generation . Fourthly , Such as keep themselves from the corruptions of the times wherin they live , they and onely they are fit to exhort and reprove others . Those that are not guilty themselves as others are , are fit to speak to others , to say to their brethren and to their sisters . They are fit to exhort , who performe the duties themselves that they exhort unto . We say it is a shamefull thing for one to be teaching if he be guilty himself ; he cannot with freedom of spirit , say to his brethren and sisters . Fifthly , It is the duty of those whom God hath delivered from the corruptions of the times , to seeke to draw all others to God ; to seeke to convince others of their evil wayes , and so bring them in to the truth . We ●eade Levit. 19. 17. Thou shalt not hate thy brother in thine heart , thou shalt in any wise rebuke thy neighbour , & not suffer sin to lye upon him . Surely those who have obtained mercy , have the impression of Gods mercy upon their spirits , they are farre from having hatefull hearts ; now it is hatred for any to suffer sinne to lye upon his brother , and not to doe what in him lyeth to help him . It is desperate pride for men to triumph over others in their falls , and it is wicked cruelty to suffer others to lye down when they are fallen if they can raise them . 〈◊〉 - faring men who are delivered themselves from shipvvrack , and all is 〈◊〉 with them , if they see another ship ready to sink in the sea ; and those on ship-board shoot out to have them come to helpe to save them , though they be never so farre remote , yet if it should be knowne that they decline to goe out to help them , all the sea-men would cry out shame on such , and be ready to stone them for etting a Ship sinke when they might have helped : Certainly the same case-it is with those to whom God hath shew ed mercy , if others lye in their sins they do not what they can for their help . 6. Say to your brethren and to your sisters . The neerer the relation of any is to us , the more should our compassion be towards them , in seeking to deliver them from their sins ; There is more likelihood of prevailing with your brethren and sisters . Hath God converted you , and have you a brother or a sister not converted , or any of your kindred ? goe and say to them , tell them of the danger of their evil wayes , tell them of the excellency of the wayes of God , exhort them to come in , to make tryall of the blessed wayes of God. When a brother speaks to a brother , or a sister to a sister , it is the bringing a hammer of gold to work upon gold , and of silver to work upon silver . Lastly , Say to your brethren and sisters . Exhortations unto and reprehensions of others should be with much love and meekenesse . Say to your brethren and sisters , yet look upon them as brethren and sisters , though they have not yet obtained the like mercy that you have . Saint Paul , 2 Thes . 3. 15. speaking of one that walketh inordinately , from whom we are to withdraw in respect of any private familiar society , yet saith he , admonish him as a brother . Those who reprove and admonish others with bitternesse of spirit and evill speaking , are like a foolish fowler who seekes to get the fowle , but he goes on boysterously , and makes a noise ; the way ( if he would get it ) is to goe on quietly , softly , and gently ; so the way to gaine a brother , is not by boisterousnesse and violence , but sofness , and gentleness . It is observed by some of the Jews out of that 25. Exod. ver . 3. where the matter of the Tabernacle is said to be gold , and silver , and brasse : you doe not see nor hear of iron to be required for the building of it ; No , iron , rigid , severe , hard dispositions are not fit either to be matter of the Tabernacle themselves , or to draw others to be the matter of it . Yea but if saying will not be enough to doe the deed , then there followes pleading . That is the second . Say to them , admonish them , exhort them , but what if that will not doe ? doe not leave presently , but Plead , yea and Plead with your mother too , not onely with your brethren and with your sisters , but with your mother . Plead with your mother , plead , for she is not my wife , &c. Pleade , Litigate , so some , Contendite , strive , the old Latine hath Iudicate , Iudge your mother . It may seeme to be a hard and harsh phrase at first , but we shall labour to acquaint you with the minde of God in it . Here is an exhortation even to the private members of the Church , to all , one o● other , to plead even with their mother , to plead even with the Church of which they are members , and so to plead as to deale plainly and to tell her that she is not the wife of God. Pleade with her , First , here we see Gods condescension , that he will have us pleade the ease betwixt others and himselfe , as Esay , 5. 3. Iudge between me and my Vineyard , faith God. This sheweth the equity of Gods dealing . Pleade the case , perhaps some of you might thinke . I deale hardly with your mother in so rejecting of her , in bringing such judgements upon her . No , not so , but plead you the case , plead rather with her then complaine of me for my dealing with her . Secondly , Plead with her . When exhortations and admonitions will not doe , we must strengthen our selves and falla pleading . If there be any way more powerfull then exhortation and admonition we should take that way , and not presently give over , for though it is not said here , Pleade with your brothers and sisters , yet they are included in this when he saith , Plead with your mother . Thirdly , It is a hard thing to convince Idolaters of their sin , and of the Justice of God comming against them for their sinne . Plead with your mother , plead , shee will not acknowledge it , she will stand it out , and say she hath not done so ill , shee is not worthy to be cast off , you had need pleade and plead hard with her , she will stand out else : Idolaters have so many distinctions , so many evasions , so many shifts and pretences , that it is a thousand to one ever almost to prevaile with them . When you deale with Papists about worshipping of Images they will have such distinctions of worship , perse , and worship per accidens , of honouring the creature , Propter se , & propter aliud , Proprie , improprie , and a hundred of such kinde of distinctions and evasions , till they distinguish out the truth , and scarce understand themselves what they meane by their distinctions . Hence Idolaters scorne at judgements threatned , they thinke onely a company of foolish & timorous people fear such things , they cry out , say they , that we are Idolaters , Idolaters and grievous judgements of God are comming ●●on us , a company of foolish melancholly people they feare their own 〈◊〉 . Was it not so heretofore when we were going on in the wayes of Idolatry space ? Was it not the jeere and scorne of all such spirits ? If any did seeme but to make a question about Idolatry , they would never be convinced of such a sinne , nor never feare any judgements hanging over our heads , Though God hath prevented it through his grace , and hath shewed his prero●ation in the ways of his mercy , yet certainly there was signe enough of dreadfull wrath hanging over us , and what yet may be we know not . Fourthly , Plead with your mother , pleade . It is a 〈◊〉 of forensecall word , and carrieth with it such a kinde of pleading , as must be a convincing , a powerfull pleading . God loveth to have people dealt withall in a convincing way . The Lord doth not cry out to the Prophet or to these other good people that were free from that Idolatry that the people of Israel were generally corrupted withall , he doth not say , I say , bid them go and terrifie them , and cry out of the● 〈◊〉 speake bitterly unto them ; but 〈◊〉 and plead● the cause with them , seeke to convince them , doc not goe and 〈◊〉 upon 〈◊〉 〈…〉 them . God loveth to have people dealt withall in a convincing way , Let not therefore any thinke it enough either Minister or other , that they can speak terribly to people , and cry out of the sinnes of the people , but let them labour to convince them , to deale with them as rationall creatures , and to take away their secret objections and their secret shifts , and to make their sinnes plaine before their consciences . A convincing Preacher and a convincing Christian is such a one as may be very usefull , and doe aboundance of good to the Church of God. Fifthly , Pleade with your mother . It is very fit that God should have some to pleade for him , to pleade his cause as well as the devil hath to pleade his . The devill never wants pleaders . When was there ever such an ill cause came to a Bench , or to any society in any publique way , but found some that would pleade for it ? A shame that the worst cause in the world should have pleaders for it , and many times the cause of God suffers by mens being mute that should pleade for it . God will take this very ill at their hands . It is true , God saith , hee will pleade his owne cause , and wee are bound to pray according to that of the Psalmist , that God would arise and pleade his owne cause . And indeed if God had not risen and pleaded his owne cause better then we did , his cause would have been in the dirt before this . Though it is true , God is raising up his own cause , no thanke to us ; wee have cause to lay our hands upon our mo●thes as guilty , in that we did so basely and cowardly let the cause of God suffer , and God appearing so immediately and gloriously , is the rebuking of us because we did not , wee would not before stand up to plead● his cause . Sixthly , When any have found mercy from God , the sweetnesse of that mercy so warmeth their hearts , that they cannot endure to see that blessed God be dishonoured . Pleade you Ammi , Ruhamah ; what , my people , those to whom I have shewed mercy , what though it be your mother , what though it be any deare to you , what though they be great ones , though they be a multitude , yet pleade , plead for me against them , this note is grounded upon the title that God giveth them who should plead Ammi , and Ruhamah , those that are Gods people , those that have found mercy from God. Gods mercy is so sweet , it doth so inflame them , that they must plead for God against any in the world . Seventhly , Pleade with your Mother . That is , with the Church , called a Mother , because as the Mother is as it were the roote from whence children come , divideth her selfe into branches ; so the community of a Commonwealth or a Church , any community , is called in Scripture a Mother , and the particulars they are as severall branches that growe from that roote , they are as children . Therefore you have such expressions in Scripture as the daughters of Jerusalem oftentimes , and there is no great difference between calling Jerusalem , that is , the State , Mother ; or Jerusalem , that is , the Church , Mother , for indeed the Church and State were mixed both together . From this expression we learne that it is lawfull for children to plead with their parents . Though it is true , this aimeth at a higher thing then what is between natural children and their parents , yet from the expression this is intimated and implied , That it is lawfull for children to pleade with their parents . If children see their parents in an ungodly way , they may lawfully pleade with them , and their parents are bound to hearken to their pleading Gods cause . It is a speech of Tertullians , the begetter is to be beloved , and we may adde , he is to be honoured , but our Creator is to be preferred . Children must give due respect to their parents , yet so as preferring the Lord before them ; and if the parents goe against God , even their children must plead against them . As it is a great sinne for parents to prefer their children before God , so it is a great sin for children to prefer their parents before God. Do not think I come to set children against their parents in this , be but content to heare to the end ( though I will not be long in this observation ) and you will be convinced I suppose of it , that it is fit for children to plead with their parents when they go from God. Thus we see it was with Jonathan , 1 Sam. 19. 4. there you shall finde that he pleaded with his father when he saw him so furious and in such a passionate mood as he was in , and in such a cruell way toward poor David , Let not ( saith he ) ●he King sinne against his servant : Let not the King , he gives him very respectufll words , and sheweth his due honour to his father , Let not the King sinne against his servant , and then goeth on and tells his father of the good service David had done , and that David did not deserve such ill usage from him . Thus when children shall see their Fathers or Mothers to be in a f●●ous rage or passion , it is fit enough for them , if they come in an humble and subm●ssive way , in a beseeching way , I be seech you father or mother , consider that by these distempered passions , in stead of helping your self , you sinne against God , you have known it by experience that you have often in such passion so broken out , that many sinnes have broken from you , and you have grieved for it afterwards , oh doe not againe that which your Conscience hath so often checked you for . If children should come thus in an humble and submissive way to plead with their parents , they doe no more then their duty , and their parents are bound to hearken to them in it . I confesse they should be very carefull in keeping their due respect to their parents , and not speake mallapertly , but with all reverence and submission to them , and to speak privately too , if possibly it can be , not to divulge their parents weaknesses . You know Cham was cursed for discovering his fathers nakedness , though he was drunk he did not shew his due respect at that time to his father ; but if he had sought to cover his fathers nakednesse , and after had come and pleaded the case with him , certainly he had not beene cursed , but received a blessing . Yea and there is a great deale of reason that children should pleade with heir parents , and that you should give them leave so to doe , because you know , children are the worse for your sinnes , God thr●tneth to visit the sinnes of the parents upon the children , unto the third and fourth generation there are many threatnings against children for the sinnes of their parents , therefore it concerns your children that they should plead with you , and that you should suffer them . For you say , Sirrah what have you to do with me ? What doth it concern you ? Yes , the child if he doth it in modesty and humility may say , O father it doth concern me , I may fare the worse for your sinnes , God may come upon me for them , therefore give me leave I beseech you to pleade the cause of God with you . And if you will not give your children leave in this , they may rise up as witnesses against you another day . If children in an humble and submissive way plead with their parents , and they will not hearken unto them then , a very good pleading will be for them to burst out into teares before their parents , and it is a very sutable and powerfull pleading , that when children cannot prevaile in an humble and submissive way , then to burst out into teares before them . We read in the story of King Edward the sixth , when Cranmer and Ridley came to him , and were so earnest to let him give way to his sister the Lady Mary to have Masse , he stood out and pleaded the case with them , & told them it was a sinne against God , they used many carnall arguments to perswade the King , but hee withstood them a great while ; at length when King Edward ( who was but a childe about 15 years of age ) saw hee could not prevaile with pleading against those grave men , he burst out into teares , and that so prevailed with them , that they went away and concluded that the King had more Divinity in his little finger , then they had in all their bodies , and so yeelded to him . Certainly in such pleadings the heart of a parent must needs be much hardned if hee will not breake and yeeld to his child . You that are parents , looke upon your childrens pleading with you , and consider with your selves , what doth God send one out of my loins , out of my own wombe to come and plead the cause of God with me , to draw me from the wayes of sinne , and to do good to my soul for ever , surely it is a mercy to have one out of my owne bowels to stand for the cause of God ; surely God is in it , I see this child in other things walks humbly and obediently unto me . As indeed you that are children , that plead with your parents , you need be carefull so much the rather to be obedient to them and not take upon you in an unseemly manner to check and reprove them ; and then it cannot but convince the heart of a parent . What a blessing will it be to your children if you that have received your naturall life from your parents , should be a means of the spiritual and eternal life of them . Thus much for the expression . Plead with your Mother . Now for that which is chiefly aimed at , Plead with your mother , that is , the Church and State. Hence the Note is , Those that are Godly should not onely sacrifice themselves to do good to themselves or friends in private , but they are to labour to doe good to the publique too . Not onely say to your sisters and to your brethren , but pleade with your mother . There are many narrow spirited men , who if they can discharge as they think their consciences with their families , and can plead with their servants and children , or some of their own neere acquaintance perhaps , they have done enough , though for the publique they take no care at all . Hence it is apparently implyed , that all those that are members of any Church , ought to be men of knowledge ; why ? because they are such as are called upon to plead with their Mother . It is not for an ignorant Sot to plead with a Church of God ; and yet such should be all the members of every Church , as in some cases they should plead with their mother . Lastly , which indeed is the maine Observation of all , God giveth liberty to some private members of Churches , yea it is their duty in some cases to plead with the whole Church . This we must speak unto a little more . Gods wayes and his Cause are so equal , that private Christians , though they be very weak , yet they may be able to plead it with a Church . It is true , there is a great deale of disadvantage that a poore , weak , private Christian hath , when he is to deale with a whole Church , where there are many godly and learned : but where as there is a disadvantage one way , so the advantage is as much the other way , in regard that the Cause of God is one the one side , and not on the other . The goodnesse of the Cause is as great an advantage as the abilities and number on the other side is a disadvantage . And sometimes particular members of a Church have no other way to free themselves from the guilt of the sinnes of the Church , but onely by pleading with them ; except they plead , they are many times inwrapped in the guilt , and therefore of necessity they must do it , though they be never so weak , Yea and sometimes God hath blessed the pleading of some few , and of weak ones too , with a multitude . Perhaps you may have heard of that notable Story we have in Ecclesiasticall Histories of Paphnutius , who being in the Councel of Nice where there were 318. Bishops , and the businesse was about the marriage of Ministers , and generally they cast against it , that those that were single should not marry : only Paphnutius , one man , comes and plead against them all in that case , and God so wrought it that he carried the Cause , and he , one man , convinced all these 318. Bishops . Therefore this is no discouragement for one man to stand up and plead against a great many . So Petrus Waldensis in the Story of Waldenses , though he was but one at first , yet he stood against many thousands , and God blessed that which he did for the conversion of thousands . And Luther you know he stood against all the world almost . Yea and though this one man may be but a private man , a weake man. God may blesse that which he saith sometimes more then that which more learned men shall say . I remember I have read in the Centuries this Story : A company of Bishops being met together , there was a Phylosopher that stood out against the Christian Religion , and so reasoned against them all , that be seemed to have the better of it : amongst them there was one , a very godly and holy man , but a very weak man ; he seeing the Cause of God like 〈◊〉 suffer , desired leave to speak and encounter with this Phylosopher ; all the rest being troubled at it , thinking that Gods Cause would suffer more by him , knowing he was a very weak man , but yet knowing withall that hee was a very holy man , none would oppose , but let him speak : So he beginneth with the Phylosopher , reciting many Articles of the Faith , Tell me , saith he , do you believe these things are so ? ( and spoke with Majesty and authority ) doe not so reason the case about these Articles of our Faith , but do you believe ? Presently the Phylosopher acknowledged himselfe overcome : Hitherto ( saith he ) I have heard words , and returned words , but now I feel the Divine power , and I cannot further answer ; and so yeelded to be a Christian upon the pleading of this poor weak man , yet a very holy and godly man. God hath blessed the pleading of weake ones , though it be against those that are very strong , therefore they must not be contemned . I remember Oecolampadius hath such an expression as this , saith hee , * Christ should be contemned and dishoncured , if we should not heare , were it but a child speaking with his Spirit , though all the world should be against it . And in Esay . 11. 6. there is a promise that in the times of the Gospel , the spirits of men should be so brought down , that they should not stand upon their greatnesse and learning , but the Text saith , A child should leade them ; that is , the humble temper that God would have under the Gospell . But it may be said , Will not this argue self-conceit ? What , for one man , a private man to plead with so many , with a Church ? it is a signe that such a one is very well opinionated of himself , that should think that what he apprehendeth should be sufficient to stand against the apprehension of so many learned and godly men as are in the Church . How can this be freed from arrogancy and proud conceitednesse . I answer , Not so , it may be conscience , and not self-conceit , for the rule of conscience is not the abilities , nor the holinesse , nor the multitude of others , but it is that light that God doth let in to convince according to his Word . Nay further , I suppose I may convince you that this pleading for God , may proceed from much self-deniall , and the not pleading may proceed from very vile , sinfull self-respect . How will that appeare ? Thus. For a private man when he sees the truth of God to suffer , certainly if he be an humble and an ingengous spirit , it cannot but be exceeding grievous unto him to think , that he must contest with such a multitude of able and Godly men , more able then himself , it cannot but be to him a very hard work that God putteth him upon . He would rather a hundred times , if he did look at his own quiet and ease , sit down : For , think he , if I come to speak , then by this I shall be endangered to be accounted self-conceited , I shall have the accusation of pride , I shall displease many of my friends , I shall make a great disturbance in my self , I am sure to my own peace , whatsoever I do to others , and how much bette● were it for me to sit still and be quiet . An humble spirit would reason thus ; but only ? Conscience puts him upon it ; I shall contract guilt to my self , if I be not at least a witnesse for Gods truth , therefore though I shall suffer so much in it , yet rather then the truth shall suffer , rather then conscience shall plead against me , I will plead though never so much to my disadvantage . Now if such an one carry it humbly and quietly , certainly he is rather to be accounted a self-denying man in it ; for it is a very hard taske . VVhereas on the other side , self-love is more like to think thus ; It is true , these things are right , I see they are not according to the truth of God. Conscience indeed would have me speak , but I shall trouble my self , and what will they think of me on the other side , where there are so many able and godly men ? surely I shall be thought a conceited fool , and therefore I were as good hold my peace , and sleepe in a whole skin , and be quiet . Thus because they have so much self-respect , and love their own quiet , and cannot endure to suffer any trouble , they will leave the truth to suffer , and their consciences to be pleading with in against themselves ; rather then thus to plead for the cause of God. Certainly they that are charitable should rather take things in the better part then in the evill . It is true , it is possible that men may through pride of spirit be pleading with others ( I shall speak a word of that by and by ) but yet you may perceive it in the carriage of such a one , in the generall course of his way . Now if in the generall course of the way of a man , hee doth carry himselfe humbly and submissively , that you see him yeeldable as much as ever he can in all lawfull things , and then when he commeth to plead against an evil he is not suddain , he is not rash , and he pleads not against every light evil neither , but when he comes he comes with a great deale of trouble in his spirit , and carrieth it with all quietnesse and humility , It is your rigidnesse , and that spirit which doth not beseeme a Christian , that is not the spirit of Christ in this thing , for to judge of this to be pride . For certainly under this false judge ment the cause of God hath suffered exceeding much . You will say , How can it be imagined , that one man should see more then many , more then others that are able ? To that I answer . In a community where there are many , though they should be godly , yet many of them may have their spirits biased with prejudice , vvith selfe-ends , and so not come to see the truth though they be more able . Again perhaps though they may be moreable in most things , yet in some one God may leave them . Yea , though they may be more able at other times , yet for some one time God may leave a man in a thing that he is very able in it another time . And perhaps a great many of them for the present may have so much distemper of spirit , as they may not speak according to what they think themselves . Therefore it may be usefull for some one man to be pleading with many others . I beseech you consider of this , it is very usefull . Men must not think that God doth dispence the knowledge of his truth alwayes according to natural 〈…〉 . For want of this consideration many are led into much evill . For thus they think with themselves , If a man have more abilities to understand natural things then others have , therefore he must needs have more abilities to understand spirituall things then others have . There is a mistake in this . A great learned man that hath great abilities , understands the rules of nature , yet a poor weake man may have the mind of Christ more then he hath . For the promise is to them that feare God. Psal . 25. 14. The secret of the Lord is with them that feare him . It may be another man hath more abilities , but this spirit may be more soild , may be more distempered then the poor weake mans . I thanke thee , O Father , Lord of heaven and earth , because thou hast hid these things from the wise and prudent , and hast revealed them unto babes ; even so Father , for it seemed good in thy sight . If multitudes had beene an argument against the truth , then in the Primitive times , when Christian Religion began , certainly very few should have followed JESUS CHRIST . Yea , and there is not more disadvantage and disproportion between one or two private members of a Church and the whole Church , then there was at that time disadvantage and disproportion between the whole Church then and all the world . And if we mark Saint Iohn , We know ( saith he ) that we are of God , and that the whole world lyeth in wickednesse . We know . What a singular spirit was here ? here was singularity indeed , if you talke of singularity ; you are afraid you should be counted self-conceited , and singular in differing from others . We know that we are of God , and that the whole world lyes in wickednesse . Thus we see the thing a little cleared , as this point had need be , but we have not done with it , we must not let it go so . There must be some rules given for this , or otherwise we should wrong the point in naming it . Christians may plead , private members may plead with their Mother , yet they must observe these rules . First . They must not plead with her for every light thing . For the Scripture giveth us this rule , That Love covereth a multitude of infirmi●ies ; We must not stand pleading for every infirmity with our brother , but rather passe by many and cover them , much lesse then with the Church . But if there be that which is notorious , or if I be called unto it , that I cannot have communion with them , but in my communication with them , I shall be wrapped up in the guilt except I testifie the truth . Certainly then I am bound to plead , The second rule is , it must be orderly done , that is , if possibly it may bee , you must make the Officers of the Church to be your mouth in pleading , I say if it can be . If it come to such a way of rebuking or declaring the evill to the Church , it should rather ( if it can be ) be by him whom God hath appointed to be his mouth to the Church . For you doe it in Gods name , therefore the most orderly way to do it ( if it may be done ) is by him that is Gods mouth . Thirdly , It must be so as you must manifest all due respect to that society you are of , to that Church , shewing in your carriage , that you are apprehensive and sensible even at this time of that distance that is betweene you and that whole society whereof you are a member . Fourthly , You must do it in a very peaceable way , so as to manifest that you desire peace , and not to be the least disturbance to the peace of the Church , but that the peace of it is deare & precious to you . Therefore when you have witnessed the truth and discharged your conscience in it , you must be then content to sit down quiet , for so the rule is , That the spirits of the Prophets must be subject to the Prophets , in that case : But if it should prove that the Church should continue , if the evill be notorious and great as requires departing , and the Church after all means used & all patience should continue in it , in such a case , you may desire to be dismissed from it and depart . But in as peaceable a way as possibly can be , yet continuing in due respect unto the Church for all that , though you should depart , onely leaving your witnesse behind you . The Papists cry out against us for pleading against them , and say it is an ill bird that will defile its own nest , and they tell us the curse of Cham is upon us for discovering our parents nakednesse . They are to know this , that there is more liberty for a member of a Church to plead with a Church then for a childe to pleade with his parent . Though there be liberty for a child , yet there is more liberty for the member of a Church . For a parent though he should be never so evil , yet hee doth not lose his right over his childe . Though your parents should be very wicked , yet know , that their wickednesse doth not discharge you of your duty ; that all children should take notice of But a Church may so fall off from God , as the members of it may be free from their duty to it , and therefore may have more liberty to plead then a child with his parent . That but onely in answer to them . And certainly so far have they fallen from God , as they have discharged those that plead against them . Well but if a member , a particular may plead with a Church , a whole Church , with their mother ; Certainly then , there is no one Member of a Church so high but he may be pleaded withall , even by private people in that Church . Colos . 4. 17. Say to Archippus , look to thy Ministry , It is an Exhortation to all the Church to say to Archippus and admonish him to looke to his Ministry . For though the officer of a Church be nearer to Christ the head ( of which you heard before ) then other members are , as the Arme is nearer the head then the hand ; yet if the arme shall send forth any thing to the hand that it hath not from the head ( as in a flux of putrid humours that resteth in the arme ) then it would be the strength of the hand to resist those ill humours that the arme sends forth . So if any Officer of the Church shall send forth that which he did not receive from the head , to any Member , but some putrid humour of his own , It is the virtue of that Member to resist the receiving of any such humour . Certainly it is the pride of many that thinke it scorne for any private people any way to have to do with them . It is I say a pride in men which thorough want of that right order that should be in all Churches is growen to that height , that those that take to themselves as proper the name of Clergy , they think it such a dishonor to them for any other that is not a Clergy-man ( as they speak ) to speak to them or admonish them of any thing , or to reason with them about any thing , or when they have preached , to come to them for further satisfaction in somewhat that they have delivered , or if they be negligent in their duty , to tell them of it though never so submissively & meekly , their pride makes them rise so high . And for that observe , because they do it upon that ground that they are the Clergie , which signifies Gods inheritance and Gods lot , and so contemning others as inferiour . You shall find in Scripture the people are called Clergy in distinction from the Ministers , and never the Ministers in the New Testament from the people , the word 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 is not attributed to them to my remembrance , but I am sure it is attributed to the Congregation , to the private members by way of distinction from them . That you shall see in 1 Pet. 5. 3. Be not Lords over Gods inheritance . Doe not Lord it over Gods Clergy , over Gods Lot , so the words are , Now in that he saith do not Lord it , certainly that is spoken to the Officers of the Church , and they must not Lord it over Gods inheritance , that is , over Gods Clergy , for so I say the words are . The word 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 therefore , from whence Clergy commeth , is you see attributed to the people . And we shall find in Scripture , Acts 18. 25. that Apollos an Eloquent man and mighty in the Scriptures , and a man of a fervent spirit , yet the Text saith , that Aquila and Priscilla , that were private people , tooke him unto them and expounded to him the way of God more perfectly . Where have you an Apollos now , an Eloquent man , a Scholler , a great Clergy man , but would scorne and contemne that a poore man and his wife should take him home & instruct him in the way of God more perfectly ? Yet Apollos an Eloquent man & mighty in the Scriptures tooke it well and was willing to receive further instruction from these people : And we finde Cant. 5. that in the time of reformation of the Church , the Church went to the watch-men , the watch-men beate her , shee had more reliefe from the daughters of Jerusalem then from them . But we must not leave this so neither . It is true , there may be a notorious abuse of both these , and it is exceeding hard for a people to understand their liberty without abusing of it , either against the Church or against the Officers of a Church . This power may be abused in people very much in too much pride , arrogancy , mallapertness , a spirit of contention in some , taking a delight in contradiction . There are many people I say that are of such a humor that it is their very delight to be in a way of contradiction , & they think they are no body except they have somewhat to say against their officers or against what is delivered , and upon that very ground will go quarrelling , not out of meere conscience , but that it may appear to others that for their parts they have a further reach than other men ; It is true , such things are delivered , generally they are received : yea , but men must know that they look into things further then others doe : And if they be in a community , they conceive that every one would think them no body if they stand still and say nothing , therefore that they may appeare to be some-body , they will speake , they will have somewhat to finde fault withall , though they scarce understand what they say , or whereof they affirme , and shew it they will in a virulent spirit , in a domineering way , and brave it to the faces of those that God hath set over them . Certainly this is a grosse and abominable thing giving it may be reproachfull tearmes to such : Whereas the Rule of Christ is , Rehuke not an Elder , ( 1 Tim. 5. 1. ) but intreate him as a Father , do not you think presently that because you may pleade with them , that Gods cause may not suffer by your silence ; that therefore you may rebuke them in an undecent and unseemly manner . You may indeed in an humble way goe as acknowledging the distance betwixt you and him , hee being an Officer , and so inEreat him as a Father . Doe many of you so when you go and reason the case with a Minister , whom you your selves will acknowledge to be Officers of Christ , yet it may be sometime through bitternesse of spirit you will be casting them off from being Officers of Christ before you have sufficient warrant for it : and therefore the Apostle saith in the same Chapter ver . 19. Against an Elder receive not an accusation but before two or three witnesses ; Marke , you must not receive an accusation , much lesse a condemnation , for the credit and honour of the Ministers of Christ are very deare and precious unto him , therefore take heed how through a violent and turbulent spirit you cast any dishonour upon those that Christ hath set over you . Thus I have indeavoured to discover the truth unto you , and so limited as I hope it may be for edification , and not for hurt at all to any . Pleade with your Mother . But what is this pleading ? She is not my wife , neither am I her Husband . It hath much bitternesse in it indeed if it be considered of , yet it is in as faire termes as can be set out . Shee is not my wife . He doth not bid them say to their mother she is a whore , but she is not my wife . You will say , why ? what difference is there between her not being his wife and her being a whore ? May we not call things as they are ? It is true , the thing is the same , but hence the Spirit of God teacheth us an excellent note , that those who pleade against others must not give ill termes , especially when those they plead against are superiors , you may declare your mindes fully , but in as faire , modest , comely , the least provoking termes that can be . It is a foule evill in many if they see Ministers or Churches do things they ought not , presently to give reviling speeches , nothing is in their mouths but there is one of Baals Priests , and Antichristian , they cry out of every thing they dislike as Antichristian , whereas you are to study with your selves if there be any terme more mollising then other to make use of that terme , although the fault you pleade against might beare a harsher terme if rebuked by one in authority , yet you who are but private Christians should be very carefull in the fairest , gen●●st termes that may be to erprove what you dislike . Again , ●●ee is not my wife . For that point , that a people that have been Gods people , may prove not not to be Gods people , that we have already met withal in the former Chapter . We shall not speak of it as then we did . Onely now wee have it more fully , that a Church may come to be un-churched . Here is a difficult case , that is , when a Church may come not to be a Church . It is through Gods providence more then I did make account of when I began this Prophesie of Hosea , though I had spent some time in it before , yet little thought to have met with so many things so fully presented to me as I have found , that doth so neerly concerne us and the times . I would not violently draw on any thing but what is so presented to us , as that I should be injurous to the Scripture and to you not to take notice of it : We have already met with as tickle points as can be almost , and this also is exceeding difficult . I desire in this to go as I have done , your own consciences witnessing with me as in the other , without the least spirit of contention and division , or medling with controversies , but laying the truth in the principles of it plaine before you . When may a Church come to this , that had God before to be her Husband , now not to have God to her Husband . I confesse for the Church of the Jews I cannot finde any thing to pitch upon certainly when they did cease to be a Church but onely this ; e●●er when God did send them a bill of Divorce by some extraordinary men ( as ever they had some amongst them , some Prophet ) or that they did wholly leave off from being under the pedagogie that God put them under : For I finde this that their Idolatry was not enough to cut them off from being a Church actually . It is true their Idolatry was that which did deserve it . They broke the marriage bond by their Idolatry , but God did not alwaies take the advantage of that , hee did not alwaies send them a bill of Divorce when they did commit Idolatry . These ten Tribes had beene Idolaters a long time before God had said to them they were not his wife . Therefore barely Idolatry did not cut off , no not the Jews . Neither do I think that all Idolatry ( if it be through ignorance ) cutteth of a Church now in the time of the Christians . The Lutherans certainly are guilty of Idolatry by consequence , and so other Churches may be through ignorance , and yet they not cease to bee Churches . Therefore in the time of the Jews , I say I do not finde any particular sin that did actually cut them off so long as they did keep under the pedagogie of the Law , unlesse God by some extraordinary messenger sent them a bill of Divorce , they yet remained the people of God , Isa . 15. 1. Where is your bill of Divorce , saith God ? It is true you have deserved it , but where is it ? I have not given you a bill of Divorce , therefore they were a Church . But for the time of the Gospel this I think may very safely be asserted , that so long as there is a Communion of Saints imbodied , holding forth the profession of all fundamental truths , and joyning in all Ordinances , so far as they are convinced , so long there is a Church . Any communion of Saints imbodyed , holding forth the profession of all fundamentall truths , and are willing to set up ordinances so far as they know to be Gods mind they should set them up , this multitude though it should have abundance of corruptions , though many wicked be mingled amongst them , yet they are a Church of God , though they should not set up all Ordinances , though perhaps through ignorance they are not convinced that such an Ordinance is an Ordinance , yea though they be convinced that it is an Ordinance , and yet perhaps they are not convinced that it is Gods minde they should set it up , though this should be their error , yet this communion of Saints imbodyed , remaine0th a true Church of Christ . But thus . Though it be a true Church of Christ , yet it may be such a Church , that perhaps you , nor I , nor another cannot have communion withall . You will say , How is that possible for any Church to be a true Church of Christ , and yet we may not have communion with it ? So far communion we may have as to acknowledge it to be a Church , and to have communion in some duties , but it may be a true Church of Christ , and I may acknowledge it so , & yet not have communion in all Ordinances . In what cases may that be ? First , If this Church shall so mingle any Ordinance , any work of their publique communion , as I for the present cannot joine without contradicting guilt upon me , as not seeing Gods will in it , I cannot have communion with them now in such Ordinances . Yea secondly , If a Church shall require me to yeeld in my judgement , and subscribe to such and such things that I cannot satisfie my conscience in , they put me off communion with them , it is not my fault , but they violently keep me off . That is a second case . Thirdly , When they shall not suffer me to do the duty that God requires of me , I cannot have communion with them there neither , because if I should joine with them , not doing my duty which my conscience tells me I am bound to doe , I thereby contract guilt . Nay further , A man may be of a Church , and perhaps they may not be so ill , but it may be lawfull to have communion with them in many ordinances , and yet for those that are free , and are not by any speciall call of God tyed to such a place , they are bound in consciences in some cases not to joyne with them as a member of them in a constant way . As thus . First , when I cannot enjoy all Ordinances with them , but God openeth a door to another place where I may have communion in all Ordinances , I may receive Sacraments with them upon occasion , and yet not be constantly with them as a member of that Church . It is true , if God did shut the door that I could not enjoy all Ordinances any where , then it were better to joine with a Church that hath not all , though I doe but en joy some . Secondly , when God offereth 〈◊〉 else where that I may enjoy the Ordinances with more power and pu●● , and with more freedom of spirit , and 〈…〉 ( I suppose one to 〈◊〉 and not to be tied ) then if there be nothing but outward accommodations that shall cast the ballance on the one hand , and the purity and power of the Ordinances on the other , if I shall rather chuse the one then the other , it will be apparant that I love my body better then my soule : In this case Conscience biddeth me to shew more respect to my soul then my bodie . This can be no controversie , for it is generally acknowledged by all that if one will but remove his house from one parish to another , he may go and joine with that parish . But that which I affirme is not so far as that , I doe but suppose that a Man is free and not yet actually joined , he is then if he be free to regard more the puritie and power of the Ordinances then outward accomodations . Let her therefore put away her whoredoms . The end of all pleading and exhortation , is reformation , & not contention . Plead with her ; to what end ? Let her put away her whore domes . Plead with her that she may reforme , ●oe not plead for contentions sake . There are many Men that will rebuke others , and plead with others , but what for ? meerly in a spirit of contention , meerely that they may brave it over them , that they may upbraid them , shame them , and not out of love to reforme them , they care not whether they reforme or not ; if they have vented their gall and malice they have what they would have . But how will you know that ? how can you know a Mans heart ? Thus. You shall know that Men come not to plead for reformation but for contention , first , if they rather make it appeare that they are glad of the sinnes of their brethren and doe not grieve for them . You shall have many a Man come in a sury and rage to rebuke Men they have advantage against , but not with a spirit of sorrow and mourning ; if you came to plead and rebuke them for reformation , you should have come with a mourning spirit , You should have mourned that such a one should be taken away from you , saith the Apostle to the Corinths . You should mourne at your very heatts that Church or the Member of it hath offended . Secondly , VVhen Men are partiall in their pleading , when they will rebuke others and that sharply too that are afar off , but such as are neere to them they are carelesse of . Ezek. 18. 32. Turne yee , turne yee that ye may not dye ; ( say your bookes there ) turne your selves and live . Now the word is Reverti facite , for so it is in Hiphil , Doe you make to returne , and so it may well be read . So Arias Montanus reads it , make others to returne . You must plead so as to desire reformation , not that you may get the victorie and have the better of it by your pleading , but with bowels of compassion to seeke Reformation you must not cut as an enemie to conquer , but as a Chirurgian to heale : Therefore before you goe to rebuke and to plead you must goe to prayer , that God would blesse your rebuking , and your exhortation to your brethren , and when you have done pray againe to God for a blessing upon it . And look after your reprehensions , and see what becometh of them ; and if they doe not prosper to Reformation , then mourn , and crie to God for your brethren ; and if it do prosper , then blesse God that you have converted a soule . Thus it was with the Tribes on this side Jordan , when they pleaded with the Tribes on the other side Jordan , you shall finde in the story that when they heard the answer of their brethren they blessed God when they saw that their brethren were free from sinne : so you should do , you should goe and plead with your brethren , perhaps your brethren may have the better of it and may convince you that that which you apprehend to be a sinne is not a sinne , now many men perhaps are angry & will not be convinced that it is no sinne , then I shall goe a way with the shame , what dloe I rebuke him of a sinne , and it is no sinne ? Many a man holds on in an argument what he hath begun , and is loath to yeeld that it is not a sin , whereas he should be glad to yeeld it . If a Minister plead or preach that men do any thing that he conceives is a sin , if another should come and convince him that it was no sin , it is a vile spirit in any Mnister not to blesse God that he is mistaken , why ? Because now the g●●ilt of his brother is removed in his heart . If I had not beene mistaken , t is true , my credit had beene somewhat , but I am mistaken , the sin is removed from my brother , Oh blessed be God that my brother is not guilty , though I am mistaken ; if we plead against others with such a spirit as this , God will blesse us . The Second Lecture . HOSEA The latter part of the second verse and verse 3. Let her therefore put away her whoredomes out of her sight , and her adulteries from between her breasts . Lest I strip her naked , and set her as in the day wherein shee was borne , and make her as a wildernesse , &c. PLead with your mother , and plead so as to tell her plainly that she is no more my wife , she hath her bill of Divorce , shee is now none of mine . Well it seemeth then there is no hope , no helpe , God hath left us , forsaken us , hee hath said we are no more his wife , wee have our bill of divorce and we must be gone . Not so neither , but now it followeth , Let her put away from her sight her whoredomes , and her adulteries from betweeen her hreasts . Herby insinuating at least , that her condition , yet notwithstanding the greatnesse of her sin and the fearfulnesse of the threat , is not altogether hopelesse , but he would have those that plead with her , yet to exhort her and to bid her put away her whoredomes . It is true , when a man puts away his wife for whoredom , and giveth a bill of divorce , he will never take her againe , upon no termes . Jer. 3. 1. Will a man when he putteth away his wife , returne unto her again ? As if he should say , no certainly , no man will do it ; Yet returne unto me saith the Lord , and I will receive you againe . Gods mercies are beyond mans . It is a most excellent and usefull observation that we have from hence . There is no such dreadfull threatning against any in the word of God for any of their sins ( only we except that sin against the holy Ghost ) but there is a dore of hope left for those sinners . Here seemeth to be the greatest sin , of Idolatry and forsaking of God as could be , the most dreadfull threatning , she is not my wife , shee is divorced from mee . Yet here is insinuated a hope of mercy . I will give you one Text which is as notable for this as any I know in the booke of God , that is in Judges 10. 13. 14. compared with ver . 16 , In the 13. and 14. verses , saith God , You have for saken me , & served other gods . What then ? I will deliver you no more . I am resolved against you now , I have delivered you often , but now I will deliver you no more ; Go your wayes , Cry unto the gods you have chosen , let them deliver you in the time , of your tribulation . One would thinke this people to be in an ill case , of whom God saith thus much ; For observe these foure things here . First , God chargeth them with the greatest sinne that could be , they had forsaken God and turned themselves idols . Secondly , This great sin is aggravated with the most aggravating circumstance almost that could bee , implyed here , this they had done notwithstanding God was wonderfull mercifull to them , and had often delivered them , yet they had still forsaken him & served other Gods. Thirdly , Here is one of the most peremptory resolutions against shewing mercy that we can imagine , saith God , I will deliver you no more , now I have delivered you so oft . Fourthly , Here is a most bitter Sarcasme , a biting , upbrayding , taunting speech for their serving other gods . As if he should say , what doe you come now ? Now do you cry & howle to me now you are in trouble , in your prosperity I was no God for you , you le●t me then for other gods , and now I will be no God to you , to other gods I leave you , go now and cry to those other gods , and see whether they will help you . Put these together and one would thinke this people were in a hopeless condition . Is there any help for this people yet ? Are they not a lost people ? Is not repentance too late for this people ? No , for all this , repentance is not too late for such a people as this , for mark , the Text saith in the 15. ver . And the children of Israel said unto the Lord , we have sinned , do thou unto us what seemeth good unto thee , and ver . 16. They put away their strange gods from among them , and served the Lord. They do not now lye downe sullenly in their sinnes and say , there is no help , therefore we were as good go on in our sinfull wayes , but they venture to put away their strange gods , and crye unto the Lord , and tell him that they had sinned . What then ? the Text saith , The soul of the Lord was grieved for the misery of Israel . Though he had thus pronounced against them , yet his soule was grieved for them , they were not the same they were before . It is true , I will deliver you no more , you impenitent ones , I will deliver you no more , but God did not say he would not give them repentance ; but when they had put away their strange gods , though they had grieved Gods Spirit with their sinnes , yet God was grieved for their affliction now , and though God had thus threatned them , yet his bowells now do yerne towards them , and hee comes in again with mercie ; and subdues their enemies under them , the children of Ammon were conquered , and God gives them twenty of their Cities , as Chap. 11. 33. God never threatneth any people , but the condition of mercie upon repentance , it is either expressed , or implyed . It is therefore the frowardness and the fulness of the hearts of sinners , to give over all upon the thought of the greatness of their sins , or the severity of Gods threatning against them , O no , you great sinners , that have beene guilty of many horrible sins , come in and repent , I may say to you as Secaniah did to the people in another case , of a grievous sin , Ezra . 10. 2. There is hope in Israel concerning this thing . It is the cavill of many carnal hearts against many faithfull and Zealons Ministers , that they do nothing but preach judgement , and they threaten damnation , and say people shall be damned , and go to hell , aud the like . This they speak against them , not mentioning at all the conditions upon which damnation and hell is threatned . Certainly there can scarce a Minister in the world be found that threatneth damnation or hell absolutely , but upon those termes of impenitency . I will give you one Scripture to shew you the most absurd perverse spirits of men in this kinde , how they will take a piece of the words of the Prophets and separate the threatning from the condition , on purpose that they may cavill at the word , it is in Jer. 26. 4. saith God to the Prophet there , Thou shalt say to them , Thus saith the Lord , If you will not hearken to me to walke in my Law which I have set before you , ●o hearken to the words of my servants the Prophets whom I sent unto you ; then will I make this house like Shiloh , and will make their Citie a curse to all the nations of the earth . See how fairely the words of the Prophet go , If you will not hearken to me to walke in my lawes , and the words of my Prophets whom I sent unto you , then I will do so and so . The Prophet delivers his message as faire as can be . But see now their perversnesse in the 8. ver . It came to passe that when Jeremiah had made an end of speaking all that the Lord commanded him to speake unto all the people , that the Priests and the Prophets and all the people tooke him , saying , Thou shalt surely dye . What is the matter ? Why hast thou Prophecyed in the name of the Lord , saying . This house shall be like Shiloh ? They leave out , [ if , ] whereas he said , If you will not return and heare the words of the Lord , this house shall be as Shiloh ; They come and lay hold upon him with violence , Why hast thou said this house shall be like Shiloh ? and leave out the other . This is the perverseness of the hearts of men . Well then , the conclusion of this Observation is this , that the worst pleading against any for their sinnes , it is not to sinke the hearts in despaire , but to turne their hearts towards God that they may receive mercy ; Let her put away her whoredomes . Secondly , Let her put away her whoredomes . After such a kinde of pleading that included a most dreadfull threatning in it , She is not my wife , yet God exhorteth . Hence the Observation is this . While God is pleased to speak to a people and call upon them , and exhort them to turne unto him , the condition of that people is not desperate . Exhortations from God do argue that the condition of a people may be hopefull . So long as the King is but speaking to a Traytor , especially giving of him good counsel , there may be hope : If he turne his backe upon him , and will speake no more , then he looks upon himself as a gone man. Many people are troubled that God doth so continue exhorting by his Ministers and others , and they cannot be at quiet . If thou hast such a quiet as God should leave exhorting and drawing thee from thy sinnes , woe to thee , thou art a lost creature . Make much of exhortations and threatnings . Come we now to the Exhortation it selfe , Let her put away her whoredomes out of her sight , and her adulteries from betweene her breasts . It is in the plurall number , her whoredomes , and her adulteries . They were many , shee must put them away all . If a wife that hath been naught shall be contented to forsake divers of her lovers and retain but one there is no reconciliation , all her adulteries must be put away . But the words are not onely in the plurall number , but those that understand the Originall , well know , that there is somewhat in the words to extend the signification beyond the plurall number , and that is the duplication of the radicall letter , in the first word the second radicall letter which is [ 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 ] is double , & in the second word the third radicall Letter [ 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 ] that is double . It is the note of Tarnovius upon the place , saith he , the doubling of these radicall Letters shew the exceeding multitude of those whordomes and adulteries that Israel was guilty of at this time . And indeed when once there is giving way to superstitious vanities there is growing to notorious whordomes and adulteries without measure , without number , ubi sistendum . We never know where to stop , if once our worship be corrupted . Let her put away out of her sight . The eye is the receiver of much uncleanness into the heart , and by it the uncleanuess of the heart is much exprest . The Scripture speakes of eies full of adulterie , Let her put her adulteries out of her sight , let them be abominable now in her eies , those things that before were delectable , let them now bee detestable . Let them cast away their Idols as a filthy menstruous cloath , and with indignation say , get yee hence . Or from before her face , so it is in the Hebrew , noting her impudency in her idolatry , that it appeared in her very face . Though men at first may be a little wary , yet at length they grow to manifest outwardly their Idolatry in their very face . But what we shall meet with afterward . And because Israel did not according to the exhortation of those that pleaded with her , put thus her whordomes out of her sight , God did put Israel out of his sight , for so we have it , 2 King. 17. 22. 23. The children of Israel walked in all the sinnes of Jeroboam which he did , they departed not from them . Promises could not draw them , threatnings could not derer them . Vntill the Lord removed Israel out of his sight . They might have prevented this ; if they had put their whoredomes out of their sight , God would never have put them out of his sight . And from betweene her breasts . Whores use to discover their filthyness much in their breasts , either in the nakedness of their breasts , or in those ornaments they hung about their breasts , as they were wont to do in those Countreys , for the int●sing of their lovers . Her breasts . Hypocrates sayes there are veins that goe from the belly to the breasts , and that is the reason he gives of the temptation to lust that is in the breasts . The whoredomes of the breasts in the nakednesse of them hath been condemned , not onely in the Churches of God , but amongst the heathen . Terrulian in his book de habitu muliebri hath this expression : Women adorne themselves immoderately with gold , and silver , and precious apparell , this is , saith hee , crimen ambitionis , the sin of ambition ; but for them to seek to adorne themselves solicitously carefull about their haire , and their skin , and those parts that draw the eyes , this is crimen prostitutionis , it is the sinnne of a prostituted whore so to doe . Yea besides , Tertullian in another book of his , De velandis verginibus , brings the Heathen , rebuking Christian women in those times : The very women of Arabia , saith he , shall judge you , for they do not onely cover their faces , but even their heads , rather then they will have their nakedness appeare , they will let the light but into one eye . Now if the Heathen did so , if they would not have their nakedness in any thing appeare , much more should Christians cover those parts that are incitements to lusts . That which is the Bedlams madness , and the Beggars misery , namely , Nakedness , that is the whores pride , and the strumpets glory . Let her put away her whordoms out of her sight , and her adulteries from between her breasts . That which is intended especially here , is , that they should not be content meerly with change of their hearts , to say , Well , we will acknowledge the Lord to be the true God , and our hearts shall wholly trust in him , but for these externall things what great matter is there in them ? Oh no , they must abstaine from all appearance of evill ; from the badges of Idolatry , there must not be so much as the garbe and dresse of a whore upon them , they must take away their adulteries from betweene their breasts . The breasts of the Church are the Ordinances that are there , for out of them do the Saints suck sweetness and spirituall nourishment . So they are called in Isa . 66. 11. That you may suck and be satisfied with the breasts of consolation . Now certainly it is an evill thing for any thing that is whorish to be upon the breasts , to be in the Ordinances of the Church , to thinke to adorne them withall as whores do their breasts . No , the breasts are so neare the heart that it is pitty any thing should be upon them but Christ himselfe ; it is most fit that he should lye there . Cant. 1. 13. A bundle of myrrhe is my wel-beloved unto me , he shall lye all night between my breasts , Myrrhe we know is a bitter thing , but though Christ were as a bundle of myrrhe , and brought many afflictions that adde bitternesse to the flesh , yet the Church would have Christ to lye between her breasts and she would rejoyce in Christ , Christ was sweet to the Church though with afflictions , As a bundle of myrrhe is my wel-beloved . So many faithfull Ministers of God have been contented , yea joyfull to keep Christ between their breasts , and in the Ordinances , though as a bundle of myrrhe , though hee hath brought some afflictions to them , yet rather then they would endure any expression of that which is whorish upon the breasts of the Church , upon the Ordinances , the Word and Sacraments , Christ Jesus a bundle of myrrhe between their breasts hath been delightfull to them . I finde another reading of the words in the Septuagint Translation . Whereas we reade it , Let her take away her whoredoms from her sight , I finde that they reade it as a speech of God , I will take away her whoredoms from my face . And Ciryl reading the words according to the 70. hee hath an excellent note from thence . God ( saith he ) threatneth that he will take away her whoredomes from his face ; as when a member of a body is so putrified that it cannot be cured by salves and medicynes , it is cut off , and so the disease commeth to be cured : so God laboureth to cure the people of Israel by admonitions , by exhortations , by threatnings , by promises of mercy , and when all would not do , then he threatneth to cure them by another way , that is , by cutting them off by the Assyrians ; I will send an enemy against them and he shall take them out of their owne land , and carry them into a strange land , & then they shal be farre enough from their calves , far enough from Dan and Bethel , so I will take their whoredomes from before my face . Thus many times doth God take away the sinnes of a people or of a particular person from before his face . As for instance , Thou drunkard , thou unclean person , thou hast had exhortations , threatnings , many mercifull expressions from God toward thee from thy sinnes , to take away thy sinnes from thee ; that will not do ; God commeth with some noysome vile disease upon thy body that thou shalt not be able to act thy sinne any more , and God takes away the act of thy sinne at least that way in such a violent manner by his judgements : and so sometimes men and women that have estates , and will be proud , and vaine , and make their estates the fuel of their lusts , when the Word cannot take away their sinnes and the expression of their wickednesse , God by some violent judgement takes away their estates , that they shall not be able to commit those sinnes that they did before though they would never so faine . This is a dreadfull taking away of sin . Yea when God shall come so to take away the sinne of men and women as to take away their souls together with taking away their sinne : for so it is threatned , Job . 27. 8. What is the hope of the hypocrite when God taketh away his soul ? Thou that wouldest not suffer the word to take away thy sin , thou must expect that God wil take it away another way , even by taking away thy soule . Ezek. 21. 29. It may be said of some sinners as there God threatneth , The time is come ( saith the Text ) when their iniquity shal have an end . God will suffer them to live no longer to sin against him : he will take away their sinnes , but so as to take away their soules , they shall not sinne any more against God in this world . Lest I strip her naked , and set her as in the day wherein she was borne . There is much in these words , and because they are so exceeding sutable unto us ( God still bringing points to hand sutable to our times ) so long as this is , you must give me liberty to insist a while upon them , and not runne over them so fast as otherwise I would doe . I must not slightly passe over those truths that are so cleerly presented , and so neerly concerning us . Lest I strip her naked , &c , It seems by this that Israel had once been in a very low condition when she was borne , a very pittifull estate . But God had put many ornaments upon her , and now he threatneth to bring her again into the same condition , and to strip her naked . In the day wherein she was borne . This I finde Interpreters to referre to divers conditions of Israel , but most refer it to the time of their deliverance out of Egypt : that is called here by God , the day wherein she was borne . We must inquire first what was the condition of Israel in the day wherein she was borne . Secondly , what ornaments God had put upon her afterwards ; and then we shall come to see the strength of the threat , that God would strip her naked , and set her as in the day wherein she was borne . For the first two we shall not need to goe farre , we have them fully and most elegantly set out unto us in Ezek. 16. That Chapter may be a Comment upon this , what Israel was in the day wherein she was borne , and what ornaments God had put upon her . In the third verse , Thus saith the Lord God unto Jerusalem , Thy birth and thy nativity is of the land of Canaan , thy father was an Amorite , and thy mother an Hittite , ver . 4. And as for thy nativity in the day thou wast borne , thy ●avill was not cut , &c , We must a little open the expression there , or else wee cannot open this Text in Hosea . Thy father was an Amorite , and thy mother an Hittite , When thou wert borne thou wert in this condition . What , their father an Amorite , and their mother an Hittite , Abraham was their father , and Sarah their mother ; why here an Amorite , and an Hittite ? Secondly , Because there were other nations besides Amorites & Hittites , the●● were the Jebusites & the Perizites ; why rather an Amorite & Hittite then a Jebusite and Perizite ? These two questions must be answered . First , Abraham was their father , yet because they were in such a disposition , so like to the Amorites and Hittites , so vile and so wicked , now they deserve not to have the honour of Abrahams being their father , but to be called the children of the Amorite and the Hittite . As John Baptist calleth the Pharisees the viperous , the serpentine brood , so those that are like the devil are called the Children of the Devil . Secondly , Why the Amorite and Hittite rather then others ? For the first , the Amorite ; because the Amorite was the chiefest of those nations in Canaan that were driven out . All the five were called by the name of Amorite : The sinnes of the Amorites are not yet full . Secondly the Hittite , because they seemed to be the vilest of the five , and for that , there is a Text of Scripture that seemeth to infer so much . Gen. 27. 46. I am weary of my life ( saith Rebekah ) because of the daughters of Heth. She onely mentioneth the daughters of Heth , and those that were now called Hittites were of the daughters of Heth : And saith she , What good will my life doe , if Jacob take a wife of the daughters of Heth ? Why , there were other daughters besides them , but those were the vilest , therefore she onely mentioneth them . Yea , but what was Israel at this time when they were delivered out of Egypt ( for that is the time wherein shee was borne that is spoken of here ) were they in so ill a condition , as that their father was an Amorite and their mother an Hittite at that time ? There are two most usefull Observations that flow from hence , before we proceed any further in the explication of the words . Israel though they had been 400. years in Egypt under grievous afflictions , yet they continued exceeding abominable and wicked . The fire of their affliction did seeme to harden their hearts , as much as the fire of the furnace did harden the bricks : Their hearts were clay , foule , dirty hearts , and were hardned by their afflictions . And secondly , when God came to deliver Israel out of Egypt , God found them to be in a very wicked condition then ; then their Father was an Amorite , and their mother an Hittite , then they were thus vile when God came to deliver them , in the day wherein they were borne , ( for their deliverance is their birth . ) Oh the freenesse of Gods grace ! God often told them that his grace was free , and so indeed it was if hee found them thus as he did , for so you shall finde if you read the story of the people of Israel , that when God sent Moses unto them , they were a very wicked and stubborn people , even at that very time when God came with his deliverance . Let us then raise up our hearts and looke up to the free grace of God even toward us . We are vile , we are wicked , mercies , christisements have hardned us ; and yet all this hindreth not the free grace of God for the deliverance of a people . God hath begun in a way of deliverance to us ; and when did he begin it ? Certainly England was never since it was borne , since it was delivered out of spiritual Egypt , out of the bondage of Popery , it was never in a worse condition then when God came in with his mercies of late to us : Then if ever it might be said of us that our father was an Amorite , and our mother an Hittite , we were then in the very high way towards Egypt again when God came with his free grace to deliver us . As hee dealt with his own people , so he hath dealt with us , magnified be the free grace of God towards us an unworthy people . Further , Thy Navill was not cut . That is the expression how he was in the day wherein he was borne . First , Thy Navill was not cut , The loathsomenesse of their condition is set out by that . Naturallists observe that the nourishment that the childe hath from the mother , it is by the navill : as afterward the childe sucks of the breasts and so is battned , but all the while it is in the wombe , it is nourished by a string , in the navill that draws nourishment from the mother . Now Israel even when God did deliver them from Egypt , had not their navill cut , that is , they did even still seeme , nay , not only seeme but still they did draw their nourishment from Egypt ; they did batten themselves & suck out the Egyptian manners , and customes , and superstitions ; and in their growth up they did seeme rather to have their nourishment from Egypt then from God , so God himselfe chargeth them , Ezek. 23. 8. Neither left she her whoredomes brought from Egypt , saith the Text , her navill was not cut , shee drew , she sucked still the Egyptian manners , customes , and superstitions . It is not thus in part with us ? Let me a little speake of this by way of allusion at least . Is our navill cut to this very day ? It is true , God hath delivered us from Popery , from Egypt , as he did Israel , but still do not we continue sucking , drawing nourishment from our old superstitious wayes of Popery ? we seeme to live still upon them , and to have our hearts delighting in them . Oh how just were it with God to come in a violent way and cut our navill , even by the sword ! it is mercy he commeth not thus to cut it , and so to take from us all those secret hankerings that wee have after the old Egyptian customes . Yet again , seeing it is such a full allusion , wee may apply it to those that seeme to have a new birth to be borne again , those that seeme now to make very faire profession of Religion , and to forsake many evill wayes that formerly they have delighted in : but yet their navill is not cut neither ; they do secretly suck sweetnesse and battning from their former lusts ; the curse of the serpent is upon them , upon their bellies they doe goe and dust they do eate , their bellies do even cleave to the dust . Neither wast thou washed in water . This also sets forth the wofull condition of Israel when he was borne , he was not washed . The infant when it commeth first into the world , cometh from blood and filth in which it was wrapped , that ( as Plutarch saith ) it is rath●r 〈◊〉 a childe killed , then a child born : so bloody and polluted it is , that were it not that there were a natural affection stirring in parents , they would even loath the fruit of their wombes . It is true , parents may see that with their bodily eyes , but there is more polution in their soules ; they are wrapped up in original sin and filth , more then their bodyes are wrapped up in blood and filth in the wombe . Therefore infants are washed , but thou wast not washed , thou wast let goe in thy filth . I have read of the Lacedemonians , that when their children were borne , they used to throw them into the river , to consolidate their members and parts of their bodies , as they say , to make them strong , that was the custome of that barbarous people . Thou wast cast out in the open field . What is the meaning of this ? We cannot understand it fully without examining what the custome of the people was in those times . We finde in Histories that the custome of divers of the Heathen was , when their children were borne , to observe by their countenance , by the making of their members , whether they were like to be usefull to the Commouwealth or not ; and if not like they threw them away , and if they were like to be usefull they nourished them up . They nourished up no other children but those that they judged by their countenance or making , would do good to the Common-wealth : We finde it in divers Histories . Strabo tells us that the Indians and Brachmanes had certaine Judges appointed for that very end ; their Office was , that when any childe was borne , to judge by the countenance and parts of the body of the childe , whether it were like to do any good in the Common-wealth , & so either to save it or cast it out . So likewise AElian in his Various Histories telleth us of the Thebanes , that there was an express Law made among them in these words , That none of them should cast out their children , noting thereby that it was wont to be the custome a●●ngst them . So Clemens Romanus telleth us that indeed the Jews , as a thing peculiar to them , amongst them the children are not cast out . So that the holy Ghost alludeth to the way of the Gentiles and barbarous people , and telleth Israel that they were as a childe cast out , such a one as the countenance and feature promised no good , Thou wert cast out in the open field , because they never hoped to have any good of thee , and indeed ( as if God should say ) if I had regarded what I saw in you , I might have past this judgement upon you too , there was little hope of good from you . But what though the child be cast out in the field , yet there may come some by , accidentally ( as Pharaohs daughter did ) that may pitty the child , and have compassion on it . No ( saith God ) thou wast not onely cast out , but worse then so , thou wast cast out , and so cast out as no eye pityed thee . You have sometimes bastards & poor childred laid at your doors , and left there , some in baskets & otherways , yet when you open them & see a child , and a childe weeping , there is some pity in you , and you will take care some way or other that it may be fed & brought up . But saith God to Israel , You were cast out in the open field , & no eye pityed you , that is , all the heathen were against you , and others in the land rose up against you , the Egyptians they came out to destroy you , you had the sea before you , and them behind you , none had pitty upon you . This was the condition wherein you were borne . Now see what ornaments God had put upon them . They were in a sorry condition you see when they were borne . But marke , that fore-named place of Ezek. ver . 8. I took the ( saith God ) and entred into covenant with thee , and then becamest mine . That is the way of a peoples becomming Gods , his entring into covenant with them . The Lord hath begun to enter into Covenant with us , and we with him in former Protestations , and if any farther Covenant binding us more strictly to God be tendred to us , know that God in this deals with us as he did with his own people . We are as children cast out in the open field , and no eye pityeth us ; but many plot against us , and seeke our ruine . If God will be pleased now to enter into Covenant with us , and give all the people of the Land hearts to come close to the Covenant , to renew their Covenant with him , and that to more purpose then in former Covenants , the Lord yet will own us . The Covenant of God was the foundation of all the mercy the people of Israel had from God , and we are to look upon it as the foundation of our mercy ; and therefore as in the presence of God willingly and cheerfully to renew it with him . After Gods taking this people to himselfe as his own , it followes . ver . 11 , 12. I decked thee also with ornaments , & I put bracelets upon thine hands , and a chaine on thy necke ; And I put a jewell on thy fore-head , and ear-rings in thine ears , & a beautiful crown upon thine head . Thus wast thou decked with gold and silver , and thy rayment of fine linnen , and silk & broidred worke , and thy renown went forth among the heathen for thy beauty . Thus God did with the people of Israel , he had added to what they had when they were born . Miserable they were when they were borne ; but the mercies of God toward them are thus set out , And nowhee cometh to threaten that he will strip them naked and set them as in the day wherein they were born . Yet further for the opening of this , we must know that it was the custome among the Jews , when any married , what they brought to their husbands , and their dowry was written down in a table : and if afterward he should divorce his wife , except there could be proved some grosse and vile thing against the woman , though she should go away , yet she was to go away with her Table , with her dowry and what she brought , she must not goe away naked . But if there could be proved some notorious villany that shee had committed , then she was sent away Sine Tabulis , naked without those tables wherein her dowry and other things were written , and destitute of all things , as being unworthy of them , because she had played the harlot . Thus God threatneth this people . She is not my wife , but unlesse she put away her whore doms from before her face , and her adultery from between her breasts , I will strip her naked as in the day wherein she was borne . She shal be se●●●ay without any tables , naked and wholly destitute . And thus you have th●●●pening of the words . The Observations follow . The first is , The beginnings of great excellencies are sometimes very low and meane . This plainly riseth up from the opposition of her condition when she was borne , and what she had gotten from God afterward , I will strip thee naked and set thee as in the day wherein thou wert borne . Therefore it is cleare she was born in a very mean condition , & gotten up to a very excel lent condition , though now they be high & glorious , yet once they were very low & mean. God many times raises up golden pillars upon leaden Bases , & the most glorious works of God have had the lowest beginnings . This beautifull frame of heaven & earth was raised out of a Chaos of confusion & darkness . This is true , personally , or nationally , and that in regard of outward conditions or spirituall . How poor , and low , and meane , have many of your beginnings beene even in the world ? who could ever have thought that such low beginnings could have beene raised unto such high things as some of you have beene raised unto in the world ? It was not long since when you came hither to this City ( which may be said to be the day wherein you were borne for your civill estate , though not your naturall ) you were low enough , meane enough , you had but little to begin withall ; you came hither with your staffe , and now behold two bands . It is sometimes so likewise in regard of the spirituall estate . You may remember not long since , Oh what darkness and confusion was there in your mindes and hearts ; what poore , low , meane thoughts had you of God and the things of his Kingdome , what unsavory spirits , when at first God was pleased to worke upon you ? Oh what a poor condition were you in then ? though you had some light put into you , yet you were as a childe new borne wrapped up in filth and blood , many noysome distempers and boisterous lusts there were in your hearts , as it is usuall with new converts , like a fire newly kindled where there is a great deale of smother and smoke that afterwards weareth away . But now behold the shining of Gods face upon your soules , Oh the abilities that God hath given you to know his minde and doe his will ! Oh the blessed communion that you have with God , & the sparkling of that divine nature ! the glory and beauty of the divine nature is put upon you . So for Nations , we will not goe further then our owne . How low and meane were we at first ? we were a most rude , barbarous , and savage people , almost as lived upon the earth . Brittons had their name frome hence , in the old Brittaine language , Birth signifies blew coloured , because those that lived here , instead of brave cloathes , as you have , they with woade besmeared their bodies with blew , they were from thence called Brittains ; for [ tania ] was added as it is usuall in other Languages for the signification of such a Region or Countrey , as Mauritania , Lusitania , Aquitania , &c. so that Brittania is as much as to say , The Region of the blew coloured people , so called because they were thus painted : The best food that they were w●nt to eate ( Historians tell us ) was barkes of trees and rootes . Hollinshed in his Chronickle sayes there were old men that he knew who told of times in England , that if the good man in the house had a matterres or flock-bed , or a sack of chaffe to rest his head on , he thought himselfe as well lodged as the Lord of the Towne , for ordinarily they lay upon straw pellets covered with canvace , and a round log under their heads instead of a bolster , they said pillows were fit onely for women in child-bed , and in a good Farmers house it was rare to finde foure pieces of pewter , and it was accounted a great matter that a Farmer could shew five shillings or a noble in silver together . And Camden in his Britania tells of Ailesbury a Towne in Buckinghamshire , that there was in it a Mannour of the Kings , and the condition of holding certain lands there , was , that the possessor or holder of them should find straw for litter of the Kings bed when he came there , And Latimer in a Sermon before King Edward tells of his father whom he sayes kept good hospitality for his poor neighbours , and found a horse for the Kings service , brought him up at learning , and married his sisters with five pound or twenty nobles a piece for their portions . This was the poore and meane condition of these times . And Jerome contra Iovinianum , and Diodorus Siculus tells us concerning the people in Ireland , our neighbours , that the best delicates they used to eate in former times , were the flesh of young children , and paps of women ; and the ships they used to have were sallowes wreathed together , and bowes twisted , and covered with the hides of beasts , and the wives they had were common to all their brethren and parents . As for their Religion , they offered to the dev●ll mans flesh , they worshipped Apollo , and Jupiter , and Diana . And Gildas one of the ancientest Historians that relates the conditions of these Brittish people , hee sayes the Idols they had were such horrible , devillish , monstrous things , that they did even overcome the Egyptian Idols in number ; and no people had so many Idol-gods , and so monstrous as the Egyptians , and yet these went beyond them . So saith he . Afterward , no people in the world more rent & torn with Civill wars then England hath been . And in the times when Popery was here profeit and establisht , Oh the bondage we were under then ! outward and spiritual bondage . Our bodyes , our soules , our estates , our consciences were in miserable thraldome . It is the most sordid , miserable slavery that it is possible for a rationall creature to be under , not onely to be bound to practice , but to be bound to beleeve for truth the dictates and determinations of men , yea and that upon paine of eternall damnation , to beleeve what they say , as the Articles of Faith upon which Salvation or Damnation depends , for Conscience to be under them , so as I must not question or scruple any thing ; if any man that is a rationall creature should think there is any such distance between man and man , he debaseth himself beneath a man , and advanceth the other above a man. Better it is to be in slavery to another to scrape kennels , then to be in this slavery . And to have the Scriptures kept from us , the Epistle that God hath sent from heaven to us , that which enlightens the world , revealing the great counsels of God concerning eternal life ; this is worse bond● then to be ch●●●ed up in dark holes all the dayes of our lives , to have no Ordinances but according to the lusts and humours of vile men , how great a slavery is this ? The manifestation of the least suspition of the falsnes of the vilest errors , dislike of the basest practices , was enough to confiscate estate , to imprison , yea to take away life . Was not this a low condition , a base slavery that England was in ? could any beare it but such as were slaves to their own lusts ? But now what ornaments hath God put upon us ! No Nation under heaven more renowned then wee have beene , our renown hath gone thorough the earth , England , O Angliquasi Angeli , and Albion , from our happinesse , we see now ( by our selves ) that glorious excellencies have many times low beginnings . A second observation hence is , when we have any excellency , and beauty upon us , it is Gods mercy that is all our beauty . I will strip you naked and set you as in the day wherein you were born . If you have any excellency it is my mercy . Gods mercie is a peoples beauty and glory , We have nothing belonging to us but shame and confusion , but misery , if we have any ornaments , it is mercy , free mercy : therefore in the 14. ver . of that 16. Ezek. Thou wert perfect in beauty , How ? through my comlinesse which I had put upon thee , saith the Lord. Let God take away but his mercy , we are quickly left naked , and poor , and miserable ; like the ragged walls in the Court when the King goeth away , and all the rich hangings are taken down , what a difference is there in their look from what was formerly ? the beauty of the walls were the hangings when the King was there . So if wee have any thing that makes us beautifull , they are the hangings that God hath put upon us ; his mercies are those hangings of gold , and silver , and needle-work , and when they are gone , we are poor , and ragged , and miserable . Thirdly , Lest I strip her naked , &c. God had said before that she was not his wife , she was guilty of whoredoms , yet it seemes shee was not yet stripped naked ; she was left with Gods ornaments upon her , notwithstanding her whoredoms . Hence the third Observation is , Though sinners deserve great evils , to be stripped of all comforts , yet God in patience and clemencie continueth them a long time . They may be under fearfull threatnings , and yet retaine many comforts ; yea the truth is , it is possible for a people to be cast off from God , & yet to continue for a while in outward prosperity . The tree that is cut up by the roots , yet may have the leaves green for a while . Saul who was rejected of God , 1 Sam , 13. 14 , yet after that ( if you reade the Story you shall finde it ) that God suffered Saul to prosper exceedingly in overcomming the Phylistims & the Amalekites Fourthly , The mercies that God bestoweth upon a Nation , the ornaments that God putteth upon a people that are but common favours , not spirituall graces , they are such as a people may be stripped of . Great mercies that a people have , they may wholly loose . Here is the difference between true spirituall graces , whereby JESUS CHRIST doth adorne his spouse , when Christ , not onely takes in an outward way a people to himselfe , but marries them to himself in a spirituall way , he decketh the soule with such ornaments , bestoweth suchmercies upon them , as shall never be taken away . Such a soul hath no cause to feare that ever it can be stripped as in the day wherein it was born , you need not feare that you shall ever lose the jewels given you at that marriage day . It is true , common graces and gifts you may be stript of and made naked ; as it is usuall in many professors that have not truth at heart , yet have excellent gifts , as of prayer and the like , but afterward they prove naught , God takes away their gifts from them , they have not that gift of prayer they were wont to have , though they have excellent words , yet a man may perceive a shuffling in them , and such an unsavoriness mixed with their gifts , that it breeds loathing in others to joyne with them . As when the King goeth away from his Pallace , the hangings are taken down ; so when God departeth from a soul ( as from such he may ) then their hangings , those excellent gifts are taken from them . But those gifts that are spirituall they are never stripped of them . We read in Ezek. 46. 17. when a King gave gifts to his servants , they were to returne to him againe at the yeere of Jubilee , but when he gave them to his sonnes , they were to be their inheritance . There are many that are outwardly in the Church Gods servants , they have many gifts , but God will take them away and strip them naked of those gifts : but then there are his children , they shall have their gifts as an inheritance for ever . It is true , God may stay a while , as when the King is gone from Court , if there be any thought of his returne again the hangings do continue , but if the message come , the King will not be here this twelve moneths , or a long time , or it may be never any more , then the hangings are taken down ; so though these gifts of the Hypocrite may stay a while , yet they will vanish at last . The fifth Observation . — Continuance in sinne , and especially the sin of spirituall whoredome , is that which will strip a Nation from all their excellencies , from all their orments and beauty ; the continuance in that sin especially ; for so the words imply , Let her pnt away her adulteries from between her breasts , lest I strip her naked . &c. If she continue thus , certainly naked she shall be . This alwayes brings nakednesse meritoriously , but if continued in , effectually , it makes them naked . Exod. 32. 25. You may see there what made the people naked at that time , the Text saith , that Aaron had made the people naked , that is , Aaron by consenting to the people to make the Calfe had made the people naked : naked , that is destitute now of Gods gracious protection , deprived of those favours from God that formerly they had . And as the Priest had made them naked , so you may finde it in 2 Chron. 28. 19. that the King made them naked too . The Lord brought Judah lowe , because of Ahaz King of Israel , for he made Judah naked and transgressed sore against the Lord. He made Judah naked , that is by countenancing Idolatry , by syding with those that were Idolaters , even he made Judah naked at that time . Here we may see who they are that are like to strip us , if ever God should come to strip us . We have many amongst us that see false burthens of all the miseries and troubles that come upon the nation ; they cry out presently of the Puritans , and of others that they say are factious and seditious spirits , and turbulent , and all must be laid upon them . Certainly whosoever hath eyes in his head may easily see who makes us thus naked as we are , and if we be made more naked , who will be the cause of all ? Those that stand against the way of Reformation , those that will keep their whoredoms in their sight , and their adulteries between their breasts , those that will not be willing that the Church shall be purged from that filth and whorish attire that it hath ; these are they that make us naked . We read in Lamen . 2. 14. Thy Prophets have seene vaine and foolish things for thee , and they have not discovered thine iniquity to turne away thy captivity ; but have seen for thee the false burthens , and causes of banishment . Mark it , the Prophets have seene vaine a●d foolish things , they have not discovered thine iniquity , they have not dealt 〈◊〉 inly with thy people , neither have they told them the reason of their captivity , but they have seene for them false burthens and causes of banishment , The Prophets say it is a company of these precise and strict ones , that will not be obedient to authority , and will not doe what is commanded in such and such things , and ( when there were wayes of corruption in Gods worship ) they would not submit to such and such orders . The Prophets lay the blame upon them , but they see false burthens , saith the Text , and false canses of banishment . We have many such Prophets amongst us who see false burthens and causes of banishment , and they cry out of those that certainly are the causes of our peace and of the good of the kingdom . Tertullian tells us that in the Primitive times , if they had but any ill weather , or any trouble at all , they would cry out of the Christians as the cause of it , and presently the voice was , Adleons , let the Christians be dragged to the Lyons , and devoured by the Lyons ; it hath beene so amongst us . But may we not answer as Elijah answered Ahab , when Ahah told him that he was the man that troubled Israel , I have not troubled Israel , but it is thou and thy fathers house . May we not well say to them as Jehu to Iehoram when hee asked him whether there was peace , What peace so long as the whoredomes of thy mother Iezebel and her witchcrafts are so many ? Those have been popish , certainly they have endangered us of being stripped of all . Who were the causers of the first disturbances amongst us , even of all the persecution here of Gods Saints , and of all the discontent among the people ? Who were they that perswaded the bringing in of an Arbitrary vvay of government ? Who were the cause of laying such things upon the people that they could not beare ? Who were the causers of the troubles in Scotland , & sending of bookes thither full of superstitious vanities ? was it not the Prelaticall faction ? Who are those that hinderthe Reformation at this day ? Certainly , if it were as apparent that they that are called Puritans had been the cause of such charge to the Kingdom & disturbances to the State as the Prelatical faction hath been ; it had been impossible for them to go in the streets but they would have been stoned to death . I speake not this as though we should do the like , but I speake it to shew what the virulencie of their spirits would have beene to them if it had beene apparent that they had beene such charge to the Kingdome , and such disturbers of the State. The truth is , vve may charge our Papists , and charge others that are of that way ) and we know who are next to them ) we may well charge them as the cause of stripping of us naked as we have been . It is cleere enough , those that put not away their whoredoms from them , but continue still superstitious and Idolaters , they are they that endauger a people to be stripped naked . A sixth Observation that presents it selfe fully and cleerely without any the least straining , is , That it is time for people then to pleade , when there is danger of desolation . Plead with your mother , plead , why so ? why should we not be quiet ? Lest I strip her naked and set her as in the day wherein she was borne . What , you are in such a condition as you are in danger to be stripped naked and to be left desolate as a wildernesse ( as it followeth in the Text ) Is it not time then to plead ? Oh pleade with God , and pleade with those that are in authority , and plead one with another , and pleade with all , stirre up your selves and do what you can ; let there be no sluggish spirit , no neutralizing spirit . It is not time for any to be newters now . It is time now for all to come and plead , not so much time now to dispute of things , but now time for every one to stand , and appear , & plead , not only verbally , but otherwise as God calls them to it . Luke 3. 9. When John saith , The axe is laid to the roote of the tree , what then ? then every one commeth and saith what shall we doe ? you ( saith he to some ) that have two coates impart to him that hath none : and to the souldiers when they say what shall we doe ? doe you no violence to any man , and be content with your wages . Mark , when the Axe is laid to the roote of the tree , every one comes in then and saith what shall we doe ? You that are women and inferiour , doe you pray , and cry , and further your husbands in all good , be not you backward , do not you dravv them away when they would be liberall and forward , and adventure themselves , thorough your nicenesse and daintiness . And you that are men of estates , if you aske what you should doe ? It is apparent , He that hath two coates let him impart to him that hath none , bee willing to part with much of your estates in such a cause as this . And so souldiers , if you aske vvhat you should doe , behave your selves so as you may convince others , offer no violence , but according to an orderly way , and be content with your wages , perhaps it may not come in so fully afterwards , yet let it appear that it is the cause that strengtheneth you rather then your wages . Thus every one should be of an inquiring spirit when the Axe is laid to the roote of the tree . When we are in danger to be stripped of all , it is not time then to stand about curiosities and niceties . Seventhly , Lest I strip her naked , &c. I have sent my Prophets already before , and they have offered mercie and denounced threatnings : Well , I will now come another way , I will strip her naked , &c. The observation is , That those that will not be convinced by the word , God hath other means to convince them , he hath other wayes then the word ; if the word will not convince them , pleading will not doe it it seems , and convincing arguments will not do it , well then , stripping naked shall doe it : As the expression is usuall in Scripture , Then you shall know that I am the Lord , when I do thus and thus . As you use to doe with those that are of a sleepy disposition , if you call up a servant that is sluggish & sleepy , he answereth Anon , and then falls down and sleeps again , you call him again , and he answers & then sleeps again , at length you come up and pull the cloaths of him & leave him naked , and that will awake him . So God , he calls upon them to leave their whoredoms and Idolatries , and to repent , he threatneth , and he offers mercie , and they seeme a little to awake , but to it again . Well , saith God , I will come another way , and strip you naked , and that will doe i● . Eighthly . Lest I strip her naked , and set her as in the day wherein shee was borne . Lest I doe it . Whatsoever the means be of stripping a Nation naked , it is God that doth it . It is God that gives , and it is God that takes away . But let that passe . 9. It is a grievous Judgement for one that is advanced from a low degree to an high to be brought thither again . Lest I strip her naked and set her as in the day wherein she was borne . Thus Job aggravateth his misery . You have it in the 29. and 30. Chapters of Job , The candle of God shineth upon my head , I washed my steps in butter , and the rock powred me out Rivers of oyle , my glory was fre●h in me , and my bow was renewed in my hand , &c. But now ( saith he ) they that are younger then I have me in derision , whose fathers I would have disdained to have set with the dogs of my flocke . &c. Thus he aggravateth his judgement because he was brought into a low condition having once beene in a high one . The like aggravation of misery have we Lameat . 4. 2. The precious sonnes of Zion , comparable to fine gold , how are they esteemed as earthen pitchers ? and vers . 5. They that did feede delic ately are desolate in the streetes , they that were brought up in scarlet embrace dunghils , Thus the Scripture is cleare in it , and your experience is enough to confirme it . For a man that hath beene a bondslave in the Gallies , and after he should be ransomed by the liberality of his friends here in England , if hee should be taken and brought back again to the gallies , oh how tedious and grievous would it be ! but if he had lived long here , and flourished and gotten preferment and lived bravely , and had grown a great Merchant , & then after this to be brought againe to the gallies , how sad a thing would this be ! it would be very terrible to him . If some of you that have beene beggars heretofore , if God by some way or other should bring you to the same poverty you were in before , oh how tedious would it be ! you would rather venture the losse of your soules and God and all , then be brought into such a condition , and we see it that many men that have beene raised from a low estate to an high , are so afraid of returning to a low estate again , that they will venture soule , and conscience , and God and all , rather then they will endanger themselves in the least degree in their estates . Hence it is very observable that the chiefe curse that God threatneth the people of Israel with , is that they should returne to Egypt again , that the Lord would bring them back to the condition wherein once they were . You shall finde that whole Chapter , Deut. 28. is spent in denouncing most dreadfull curses upon the people ; now for the conclusion of all , as the chiefe curse of all the rest , saith the Text , there ver . 68. The Lord shal bring thee into Egypt again , with shippes , and there you shall be sold unto your enemies for bond-men and bond-women , and no man shall buy you . Were it not a sad thing for us who have been acquainted with the glorious light of the Gospel , and with the blessed priviledges that come in thereby , for us to be brought into Popish bondage and thraldome again ? As Ezra . 9. 8. we may use his words , Now for a little space grace hath been shewed from the Lord our God , to leave us a remnant to escape , & to give us a nayle in his holy place , that our God may lighten our eyes , and give us a little reviving in our bondage ; And shall we ( as in ver . 14. ) again breake thy commandements , and joyne in affinity with those abominations ? As for our selves who have had now of late a little tast of the sweetnesse of our outward priviledges and our liberties , for us to be brought into the bondage that wee not long since were in , it would be a very sad thing . Who could endure to be under that bondage that he was in three or foure years agon , under every Parator , Promoter , Pursevant , Commissary , Chancelour , and tyrannical Prelate as formetly ? we could not have met together and enjoyed the liberty of such exercises as these ; no , you could not have met in your families to pray , but one or other would have been upon you and indangered your estates . The bondage was intollerable , we may well complaine it was a yoke that neither we nor our fathers could beare . The last Observation , and the way to prevent all is , When God hath delivered a people out of misery , and bestowed upon them great mercies , it is their duty often to thinke of the poor condition which once they were in , & to use all the means they can that they may not be brought thither again . God loveth this , that we should remember and seriously take to heart , what once we were , so it is here , Lest I strip her naked and set her as in the day wherein she was borne ; as if he should say , I would have you consider what condition you were in when you were borne , what a low condition it was , and consider of the danger you are in to be brought thither again , and to looke about you , and to seeke to prevent it if you have the hearts of men in you . This we shall finde in Deut. 26. 1. 2. When thou art come into the land which the Lord giveth thee for an inheritance and possessest it , thou shalt take of the first of all the fruite of the earth , and thou shalt put it in a basket , and shalt goe unto the place which the Lord thy God shall chuse ; and ver . 5. Thou shalt speake and say before the Lord thy God , A Syrian ready to perish was my father , and he went down into Egypt , and became there a nation , and the Egyptians evil intreated us , and afflicted us and layed upon us hard bondage . And Isa . 51. 1. Looke to the rocke whence you are hewen , and to the hole of the pit whence you are digged . It is very usefull for us to consider of our former low condition . It was a speech Master Deering in a Sermon that he preached before Queen Elizabeth , hee hath this bold expression to her , If there were a time that you thought your self Tanquam ovis , as a sheepe ready to be slaine , take heed that the words of the Prophet be not now true that you be not Tanquam indo mita Iuvencula , as an untamed heifer . You may note the difference between the spirits of men in former times in their plainness and boldness ; and if there were an excesse that way , how far the other way are our Court Sermons now ? Qeen Elizabeth was once in a very low condition indeed , and she thought her selfe to be as a sheepe appointed for the slaughter . It is usuall for men raised up from a low condition to forget God and themselves , and to grow proud & scornfull . Nothing is more sharpe then a low thing when it getteth up high ; so there is none that have more proud and scornfull spirits then those that are raised from the dunghil and gotten up high , they know not then where they are ; As the Proverb is , Set a beggar on horse backe , and he knowes not how nor whether to ride . Thus it was with Saul , the vvay to humble Saul was for him to consider what he once was , and that is the way to humble us all who are subject to be proud of our prosperity that God hath raised us unto . When thou wast little in thine own sight , then thou wert made the head of the tribes of Israel . There was a time that he was little in his own eyes , and I beseech you observe the difference between the spirit of Saul when he was in a low condition , and his spirit vvhen he vvas raised . When Saul was in a low condition his spirit vvas low , therefore 1 Sam. 10. 27. you shall finde that though there vvere some children of Eelial that would not have Saul to reigne over them ; What ? ( say they ) how shall this man save us ? and they despised him and brought him no presents . But Saul ( the Text saith ) held his peace . And Chap. 11. 12. When Saul had gottensome credit and honour by his victories , some of the people said , where are they that said , shall Saul reine over us ? Bring the men that we may put them to death . No , saith Saul , There shall not a man be put to death this day . O how meeke was Saul ! what a quiet spirit had he before he got up high ! But afterward when he got up and had many victories , then vvhat a furious and outragious spirit had Saul ! You know the story of the four-score and five Priests that must be slaine in the City of Nob , and the whole Citie , men , women , and children , sucklings , Oxes , Asses , and sheep must be put to the sword , Why ? because one of them did but give a little refreshing unto David . What a strange spirit is here in Saul , different to that he had when he was low . Is it not so with many of you ? when God hath brought you low , you seeme to be humble , and meek , and quiet then , and then you are content with every thing , and prize every little mercie . Oh the tenth , the hundreth part of that will not serve your turne now , you vvould have been glad of then , and blessed God if you had had it ; But now you know not your selves , your hearts are raised up as : your estates are . VVell it is good for you to looke to the condition that once you were in , vvhen you were low ; As vve reade of Agath●cles , that King , that was a Potters sonne , and after advanced to a kingdom , he vvould alwayes be served at his table in earthen vessels , to put him in mind of that condition he was in before : certainly if in any place in England it be seasonable to speake of this , it is here in London , where many that have been Potters children , and in a low degree , have been raised up high , and have gotten great estates . Let them remember in what condition once they were , that they may be humbled , and so may prevent that danger of being brought thither again . Many put others in mind of it in a taunting vvay , I know vvhat you were not long agoe , I know vvhat your father vvas , &c. But doe you put your own soules in mind of this in an humbling way ? This is the vvay to continue mercies . But now apply vve it a little to our selves for the generall and then vve shal conclude all . Let us vvork this upon our hearts . Look vve back to vvhat we vvere lately , and let us check our hearts for any discontent in our present estate . Not long since vvould not many of us have beene willing to have laid dovvn our lives to have purchased that mercy we have had this yeer or two ? God hath granted to us our former mercies , & raised us from our low condition of free cost hitherto . God hath been afore . hand with us ; and what if those mercies that are to come will be at some vvhat a dearer rate then those vvee have had already ? Those mercies vve have had already have been very precious and sweet ; but surely they that are to come are more precious and sweet , and therefore vve may be content though they cost us deare . Yet hovv vile are the spirits of men in forgetting the condition the sad condition they lately were in , forgetting the Taxes and Monopolies , and uncertainty of enjoying an thing that was your own ; and now if there be but a little charge comming , you presently fall a murmuring and repining , Oh these are heavy burthens , the Parliament burthens the kingdome and the Couutrey , and as good have ship-money and other taxes as these burthens . Oh unworthy , unworthy are you to live to see the goodnesse of the Lord in these dayes : unworthy to have thine eyes open to see what God hath done , and thus to murmur . Thou shouldest magnifie Gods mercies , and not murmur at his proceedings . VVe have a notable parallel to this Numb . 16. in the story of Corah , Dathan and Abiram , those murmurers , when they were but in a little strait , they come to Moses , and say , ver . 13. Why hast thou brought us up out of a land that floweth with milks and honey ? What land was that , that Moses brought them up out of , that they said flowed with milke and honey ? It was the land of Egypt , the land of their bondage● indeed they were promised a land of Canaan that should flowe with milke and honey , and they put that upon the land of Egypt ; though they had been in bondage and slavery in Egypt and were now going to Canaan , yet when they did but indure some trouble in the vvay , and had but some opposition , and were put to some straits , then Egypt was the Land that flowed vvith milke and honey , and who would come out of Egypt ? So though God be bringing us to Canaan , to a blessed Land that floweth with milke and honey , yet because there are some straits in the way , some difficulties , some oppositions , that may cost us somewhat ; now how doe men cry out we vvere better before , you talke of Reformation and such and such things , but for our parts would vve might have but vvhat we had before , and be as quiet as vve were then , why will you bring us out of a Land that floweth with milke and honey ? Oh base murmuring and discontented spirits that forget what once they vvere , and rather prize the bondage they were in before , then are thankfull for Gods present mercies . For us not to look back to Gods former mercies , it goeth to the very heart of God. God hath an expression that it frets him to the very heart : You have it in Ezek. 16. 43. Because thou hast not remembred the dayes of thy youth , but hast fret●ed me in all these things . It is a thing that frets God at his heart to see a people so unworthy of mercie , when God commeth in such wayes of mercie to them as he doth . My brethren , God hath done great things for us whatsoever others say and thinke : Let them murmure , and repine , and say what they will , let us say God hath done great things for us : Let us lay to heart the condition we lately vvere in , that so we may be stirred up now to seeke after God , that wee may never be brought into that condition any more , if they would have it again , much good may it do them , but for us let it be our care to seeke God , and to use all lawfull meanes to prevent our bringing back to it again . For even the very straits we now are in are an aggravation of our former misery and present mercie , it should not therefore make our former misery or present mercie seeme lesse , but greater . How is that you will say ? Thus , If now wee have so much helpe and power to hinder a malignant party that seeke our ruine , yet they have so much strength and resolution , what would have become of us if this had been before , when we had no way nor no meanes to help us ? If men complaine now , what vvould they have done then ? Therefore whereas we make use of our straits , to make us thinke that our former misery was lesse , and we are now in a sadder condition then before , rather let us make it an aggravation of Gods mercie towards us , and if wee be in such straits now when God hath raised up such meanes beyond all our thought to resist the flowing in of misery upon us , Lord whether were wee a going ? what would have become of us if the streame which hath been so long a swelling had broke in upon us when there was no meanes to have resisted it ? VVe may well see now that if their intentions and resolutions be so strong for mischiefe as will not be hindered , notwithstanding the present strength God hath granted us to oppose them , surely they had most vile intentions , and dreadfull things were determined against us , which would have brought us low indeed , and have made us the most miserable people upon the earth , if God had not come in so mira culously for our help as he hath done at this day . Therefore as we read of Jeremiah , Chap. 37. 18. Let my supplication , saith he to the King , I pray thee be accept able before thee , that thou cause me not to returne to the house of Jonathan the Scribe , lest I dye there . So let us present our supplications to the King of heaven , that wee may not be sent back to that condition we were once in , that God may not strip us and leave us naked . Wee have many blessings , Lord do not strip us , doe not strip us of all the ornaments thou hast put upon us . And would you not have God strip you of your ornaments ? be you willing to strip your selves of your ornaments . Ezod . 33. 5. God calleth upon the people there . Put off your Ornaments from you that I may know what to doe unto you . This is true and seasonable at this time in the literall sense , you are called now to strip you of your Ornaments . Strip from your fingers your gold-rings now when there is neede of them , perhaps one gold-ring that you have upon your finger would serve to maintain a souldier a month or five weeks or more , and yet you may have the benefit of it againe afterward . Strip your Cup-boards from that pompous shew of plate that was wont to be upon them . It is much if you should not be willing to have your fingers stripped naked when we are in danger to have the State stript naked of all our comforts and ornaments : Is it such a great matter to have your cup-board naked of plate now ? what if a white cloath were upon it , and all that glistering shew taken away , were that such a great matter now when God is about to strip us naked , and set us as in the day wherein wee were borue ? certainly all of you that shall keep your plate now for the pompous decking and adorning of your cup-boards you cannot but be ashamed of it in these times , surely you must rather keep it up in your trunkes and hutches , it cannot but be both a sin and a shame to see such glistering pomp and glory in such times as these are . Strip your selves of your ornaments that God strip you not ; and not only outwardly , but strip your selves of your ornaments by your humiliation , for that is the meaning of that place in Exodus ; Oh come and humble your selves , and come now with naked hearts before the Lord , open your hearts before God , bring them naked and sincere before him , lest he strip you and the Kingdom naked ! Crie unto God for mercie , O Lord thou knowest what a vile heart I have had , a base time-serving heart , yet Lord I desire to take away all those clokes now , and to rend and bring this heart naked before thee , though it be a filthy heart , yet open it , Lord thou knowest those vile things , those innovasions , those superstitions , those horrible wickednesses that were in danger to be let into the Church and Comman-wealth , yet they were things that could goe down very well with me , I could make shifts to swallow them , and I had distinctions to colour them , but Lord it was my base heart that I could not trust thee , but now here I open it naked before thoe . O Lord for these Ordinances of thine in the purity and power of them that others spake so much of , they have bin things unsavory to me , I had no skill in such things , Thou knowest I had a neutrelizing spirit , I looked which way the wind blew ; how just were it for thee to give me upto be of a desperate malignant spirit ! Now Lord I come as a naked wretched creature before thee , in the shame and guilt of my sin , and here I acknowledge thou maiest justly strip me naked of all the comforts of my estate , and leave me in the most miserable condition that ever poor creature was left in ; And now my heart is open before thee , doe but shew me what I shall doe , and if thou doest reserve any of my estate and comforts which I have forfeited , in testimony of my humiliation for my former sinnes I bring it before thee , and am willing to give it up for the publique good , and to prevent that evill and mischiefe that I am sure my sinnes call for , for my sins cry for wrath against the Land , that thou shouldst strip it naked ; and if all had beene such base spirits as I have beene , what would have become of the Land by this time ? In testimonie therefore of my humiliation for my sins , here I bring in this of my estate , though indeed if I had not been guilty of such sins , yet out of common prudence , and respect to my own security , I might bring some part in , but here is so much the more of my estate , because my conscience tells me of my former guilt . And Lord for the time to come I am resolved to doe the uttermost I can for Thee and thy Cause . And those Worthies that carry their lives in their hands for me , God forbid that I should have the least hand in betraying them , in withdrawing my hand and assistance from them . Lord here I give up my self to thee , and my estate , I surrender it to thee in an everlasting Covenant . This is to come with a naked heart indeed before the Lord. Were it not better that we should be willing to strip our selves naked , then that God should doe it by violenee , that God should send Souldiers into our houses to strip us naked , as they have dealt with our brethren in Ireland ? they took not away their estates onely , but all their clothes , and sent them in droves as naked as ever they were borne . VVee know wee have deserved the like . If you will not strip your selves of your super ●●uities , God may justly by them strip you naked as ever you were born ; and not onely bring you into the same condition you were in , but into a far worse , for so he threatneth in that 28. Deut. You shall not onely be carryed backe againe into Egypt , but there you shall be sold for bond●men , and no man shall buy you ; they should be in a worse condition the when they were first in Egypt . So if there be any of you that are willing to sell your consciences in hope of preferment ; Oh the other side may get power and prevaile , and so out of hope to be , preferred , to sell your consciences , you may be disappointed , not only be brought into as ill but into a far worse condition ; & perhaps though you would have sold your selves , yet no bodie will buy you ; if the Papists corne to have the power of your bodies and estates , you may misse of that preferment that you thinke of . So saith Ezra , Chap. 9. 14. after he had spoken of Gods mercie in giving them liberty , and remitting their captivitie , Shall we ( saith he ) yet continue in sin , & break the commandements of the Lord , would he not be angry with us till we were utterly destroyed ? And certainly if God do not awaken the hearts of people now , if God do not give the people throughout the Kingdom a heart to stick to the Cause of the Truth , and to those whom they have intrusted with their estates , liberties and lives in every good way , it were the heaviest judgement of God that ever was upon a Nation since the beginning of the earth , it would never be paralleld , that ever a people should have such an opportunity put into their hands to help themselves , aud to vindica●e themselves from slavery and bondage , yet out of I know not what respects to betray all those that have ventured their lives for them , and to have their blood shed ; I say it were such an example as were not to be paralleld since the beginning of the world . Therefore I beseech you my brethren let us lay this to heart , and the Lord make known to us all what is to be done in such a time as this , that we may not be stripped naked , and set as in the day wherein we were borne . The Third Lecture . HOSEA part of the third verse and verse 4. And make her as a wildernesse , and set her like a dry land , and slay her with thirst . And I will not have mercy upon her children , for they be the children of whoredomes . IN the first part of this second Chapter , wee have already shewed part of Gods threatning , even to strip his people naked as in the day wherein they were borne , to bring them into as low and mean a condition as ever they were in . Now that which was more generally exprest the last day , we have in the latter end of this third Verse more particularly set forth unto us . And make her as a wildernesse , and set as a dry land . God would bring this people that dwelt in the land of Canaan flowing with milke and honey ; that were in regard of the beauty that God had put upon them , excellent for beauty , now to be as a wildernesse . In the former Chapter you heard that the state of the Ten Tribes vvas set out by Hoseas wife , her name was Gomer , ad this Gomer was the daughter of Diblaim . Gomer signifieth perfection , and what Diblaim signifieth I told you then . But now there is another signification of this Diblaim , that we are to refer unto this expression of the Lord in this place , that he will make her as a wildernesse , for you shall finde Ezek. 6. 14. that there is mention made of a desolate countrey and a wildernesse that was towards Diblath , to which this that the Prophet speaks of the mother of Gomer may seem to have reference . Diblath then , it appeareth , was a place where there was a very desolate , waste wildernesse , and Gomer was the daughter of this Diblath , from whence Diblaim , that is , Though the ten Tribes were as Gomer in regard of their beauty , perfect , for so they were ; yet she was the doughter of Diblath , or Diblaim , that is , she came forth out of a low and meane condition , and was even brought out of a wildernesse , now shee shall be brought again into the same estate wherein shee was , for I will set her as a wildernesse . As a wildernesse . The Church of God is in it selfe Gods garden , a garden inclosed , and so it is called Cant. 4. 12. As a garden inclosed is my sister , my Spouse . It is the place of Gods delight , not a place for beasts to come into , but inclosed , they are to be kept out of it ; a place where very precious fruits doe grow , that are very pleasing to God , a place that hath the dew , the showers of Gods blessing , the dew of Hermon , the dew that descendeth upon the mountains of Zion , there God commandeth his blessing , even life for evermore . But now she must come to be a wildernesse . For first , the hedge , the pale , the wall of Gods protection shall be taken away from her , and she shall be laid open , lyable for all wilde beasts to come in and to devoure her . They loved liberty , and were loth to be inclosed , though it were in Gods garden , though it was with the pale & wall of Gods protection ; Well , seeing you will have liverty , you shall have liberty , and this pale and wall of my garden shall be taken away , and your condition shall be like the condition of the beasts in the wildernesse . Againe , you shall be as a wildernesse . There shall no good grow among you . There was no good grew amongst you , that was your sin ; and there shall no good grow among you , that shall be your plague and punishment . The blessing of God shall be taken away from you , you shall not have those showers of blessing as formerly you were wont to have , but you shall be as a wildernesse , Jer. 17. 5. 6. Cursed be that man that trusteth in man , and maketh flesh his arme , and departeth from the Lord : Why ? For he shall be as the heath in the desart , and shall not see when good commeth , and he shall inherite the parched places of the wildernesse in a salt land . Vatablus interprets this judgement upon the hearts of Idolaters ; they are dry , unsavory ; they are destitute of all spirituall good . And I will set her as a dry land . ] So the Septuagint read it , I will order you so . Your sinnes bring you out of order , but Gods plagues order that which sin doth disdorder . At a dry land . This is contrary to the blessing of a godly man , for he is said to be as the tree planted by the river of water . The graces and comforts of Gods Spirit are compared to waters in the Scripture , Psal . 87. 7. All my springs are in thee , All my comforts , all the gifts that I have , all the graces that I have are in thee . But now God will set them as a dry land , he will take away his gifts , and take away their comforts from them , and so leave them wast and desolate . The Observation then from hence is , That sinne is of a wasting nature : sinne layeth wast Countreyes and places that people live in . VVee have a most remarkable place of Scripture for that , Zach. 7. 14. They laid the pleasant land desolate , They , who are they ? you shall finde it ver . 12. Those that made their hearts as an Adamant stone , lest they should heare the law , and the words which the Lord of Hosts had sent in his spirit by the former Prophets , They made the pleasant land desola●e . VVe cry out of those that make stripe and waste , and there are actions commenced against them . O let not us lay waste this pleasant land , this good laud of ours , this garden of the Lord. It is indeed as an Eden , as a Paradise , our fore-fathers have left us this our land as Gods garden ; let not us through our sinnes leave it to our posterities as a wildernesse and a dry land , Psal . 107. 34. there is a threatning that God will make a fruitfull land barren for the wickednesse of them that dwell therein . Sinne hath heretofore laid wast as pleasant and fruitfull Countreys as ours . Those that travell in Germanie , their hearts even bleed within them sometime to see where famous Towns have stood , now the places are overgrowne with nettles , they are laid wast as a wildernesse . Aud in this God threatneth after the manner of great Kings who when their Subjects obey them not , threaten to lay their Countreys wast and to destroy their Cities , as Ecclesiasticall Stories tell us of Theodosius , that had layed great taxes upon the City of Antioch at which they were much grieved , and imagining it seemes that the Queen had a speciall hand in it , they pulled down the brazen statue of the Queene that was in the Citie in a kinde of anger upon this , Theodosius threatneth to lay the Citie and Countrey wast as a fruite of his displeasure . It is a fruite of the anger of a Kings according to their power , to manifest it that way , not onely upon particular men , bnt to lay whole Countreyes wast . God is the great King , and he threatneth this against his people for their sinnes , that he will lay them wast as a●wildernesse . God had rather that the wilde beasts should eate up the good of the land , then that wicked stubborn sinners should enjoy it : God had rather have a land under his curse , to have nothing but thornes and bryars brought forth of it , then that wicked wretches should partake of the sweetness and fruit of it , for sin doth not only pollute the sinner , but the land , and putteth both the sinner and the land under a curse . And s●ay them with thirst . In the 36. Psal . ver . 8. VVe have a full expression of the plentifull provision of Cods people that dwell in the house of the Lord. ●he Text saith , They shall be abundantly satisfied with the fulnesse of thy house , and thou shalt make them to drinke of the river of thy pleasures , O what a sweet promise is here to those that dwell in Gods house , and walke with God as beseemeth those that are in his house ! they shall have fatnesse , and drinke of the river of his pleasures : but here is threatned slaying with thirst , that God will not onely take away those rivers , but even drops of water , they shall not have a drop to coole their tongues , but shall be slaine with thirst . There was a time wherein God had such pittie upon his people , that hee would cause water to gush out of the rock , rather then their thirst should not he satisfied : But now God threatneth that hee will make the heavens as brasse , and the earth as iron , and though a little water might save their lives , they should not have it , He will slay them with thirst . Oh what an alteration doth sin make in Gods administrations of his wayes towards us ! It is a great judgement thus to be slayn with thirst . I knew my self a man once that lying in a burning feaver , professed that if he had all the world at his dispose , he would give it all for one draught of beer . At so low a rate is the world at such a time as that is . If the want of a little beer or water to satisfie thirst for a little while be so great a judgement , Oh what is it then for all good to be eternally with drawn from all the faculties ! I have read of Darius , that when he fled from his enemies , and being in great thirst ( though those Kings had a delicate drinke that was peculiar to them which they called Coapsis , and others 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 ) he met with a dirty puddle of water with carry on lying in it , and he sucked in that and dranke very heartily of it , and profest , that it was the sweetest draught that ever he dranke in his life . This meditation may be very usefull upon this evil of thirst , that if a little puddle water can afford so much comfort when the faculties are in such a disposition as they are fit to draw out that comfort that is in this puddle water , Oh then what comfort and goodnesse is there in an infinite God when he shall communicate to his creature all that good that is communicable , and when all the faculties of soul and body shall be in a full disposition , to receive all the good that is communicated , and not put into a disposion by reason of want , but by reason of the excellency of the faculty raised to such a height , and inlarged to receive what good God himselfe hath to communicate to his creature ? But further , it is observable . Though God did bring them into a wildernesse , and set them in a dry land , yet if they might have some drinke , though but water to refresh them in this wildernesse , and in this dry land , it were not so much . Though they were in a scorching Countrey , in the wilderness , parched with heat , might they have but some refreshment there , the judgement were not so great : but they shall be in a wildernesse , in a dry land , and there they shall be scorched with heat , and then God shall deny them all succour , all helpe . He will slay them with thirst . God useth thus to deale with wicked men , to bring them into extremity , and there to leave them destitute of all succour , of all helpe , VVe have an excellent Scripture for this , Ezek. 22. 20. I will gather you in mi●e anger , and in my fury , and what then ? I will leave you there and melt you , saith God. This may be a Comment upon this Text. I will bring into the widernesse and set them in a dry land and slay them with thirst . The Saints may be brought into great extremity , but God leaveth them not there . God makes their extremity his opportunity for mercy , he bringeth refreshing to them then , they never have more sweet refreshings from God , then when they are in the greatest extremities in regard of trouble and affliction . God promiseth , Esay , 4. 6. that he will be a shadow for them in the day time from the heat , and a covert from storme and from raine . This is Gods peculiar mercy to the Saints ; perhaps they have no shelter now , but when the storme commeth they have a shelter then , and they have a shadow when the heat commeth ; in their extremity they have comfort . But it is otherwise with the wicked , the wicked perhaps may have many shelters before the storme commeth ; but when the storme commeth , then they are destitute , they may have many shady places before the heat cometh , but when the heat commeth , then they are left fuccourless , then they are slain with thirst . When wicked men are in prosperity , then there may come one blessing after another ( I meane that which is in it self a blessing ) heaped upon them , but when they come into adversity , when they have most need of comfort , then they are left destitute . This slaying with thirst is applyed by some spiritually ; I will bring a spirituall famine upon them . When they shall be in a wildernesse , in a dry land , when they shall have most need of comfort for their soules , they shall be deprived of it . Many men in the time of their health and prosperity have many sweet promises of the Gospel revealed unto them , many blessed manifestations of Gods free grace and goodnesse in his Christ made known unto them , but they slight and disregard them : But when God shall bring them into the wildernesse , when God shall cause them to be under the torment of a scorching conscience , when conscience shall be burning , and scalding , then perhaps they may long , Oh that I had one drop of water , one promise out of the Word to comfort me ! Oh that I might have but never so little refreshing ! Oh that I might heare againe those things I have heretofore heard and neglected ! But then God may deny one drop of water to coole their scorching consciences and stay them with thirst , slay their soules with thirst at that time : And thus many poore creatures are slain with thirst , that did so little regard those rivers of consolation , that in the time of their prosperity they might have had . Ver. 4. And I will not have mercy upon her children , for they be the children of whoredoms . I confesse at the first view , looking upon this verse I thought I might quickly passe it over , the rather because we had some such expressions in the former Chapter , where God threatned that he would have no more mercy upon them : But the Scripture is a vast depth , and there are many excellent treasures in it , there is alwayes aliquid revisentibus , something for those that come to see again and looke again , and this something will appeare to be much , that we shall see out of these expressions further then before hath been observed . And I will not have mercy ] This Particle [ And ] hath much in it , it is a most terrible And. This conjunction many times in Scripture is as a pleonasme , and doth not serve for much use , but here in this place it is of great use , and it is filled with terrour as full as it is possible for such a little particle to hold . I know there may be many curiosities sometimes in observatious of particles , of conjunctions : but we shall not meddle with any curiosity , but speake of that which is plain , and the intention of the Holy Ghost here . I say this And is a most dreadfull And ; marke the conjunction , you had foure And 's before , saith God , I will strip her naked , [ And ] set her as in the day wherein she was borne , And ] make her as a wildernesse , [ And ] set her as a dry Land , [ And ] slay her with thirst . Is not here enough ? Oh no , there cometh a fifth And , and that is more terrible then all the former foure [ And ] I will have uo more mercy upon her children . This addeth terrour to all the rest . Suppose that all the other foure had beene , and if this had not come , there had not beene such a grievous threatning , If God had said , I will strip her naked & set her as in the day wherein she was borne , and I will make her as a wildernesse , and set her as a dry land , and slay her with thirst , yet if there might be mercy in all this , their condition had not beene so miserable , but ( saith God ) I will doe all these , And I will have no more mercy upon them . Oh this hath that terrour in it , that it is impossible for the heart of a man that apprehends it to stand under it . And for the opening of this I shall shew you how that all the former foure not only may stand with Gods mercy , but they have stood with Gods mercy ; that God had heretofore shewed mercy to them when they were in such a low condition in which they were borne , when they were in the wildernesse , when they were in a dry Land , yea when he did slay them , he shewed mercy unto them . But now he saith , he will do thus and thus , and shew no mercy unto them . So that then though this And be conjunctive in Grammar , yet here in Divnity it is a disjunctive , and a most dreadfull disjunctive to part them and mercy a sunder , yea and to part many of them and mercie eternally asunder . To shew you therefore the soure former , that though they were in such a condition heretofore , yet God did shew them mercie ; now what a condition is that God will shew them no mercie . As First , In the day wherein they were borne , that ( as you may remember ) I shewed you out of the 16. Ezek. what a low and pittifull condition the people of Israel were in , they were cast out in the field , & they were in their blood , and not washed , and the like : But mark in the 8. ver . I passed by thee and looked upon thee , behold the time was a time of love , and I spread my skirt over thee , and covered thy nakednesse , yea , I sware unto thee , and entered into covenant with thee , and thou becamest mine . Here are the highest and the fullest expressions of Gods grace that could be . First , I looked upon her , and then the time was a time of love , and then , I spread my skirt over thee , and I entered into covenant with thee , and thou becamist mine : Here are all these expressions of mercy , even at that time when they were cast out as forlorne in the open field , and no eye pitt●ed them : but now they are threatned to be cast out into the open field againe , and no eye to pittie them in heaven or in earth , no , nor the eye of God to pittie them : now God threatneth to cast them off for ever , so as he will see them in their blood , but it shall be no more a time of love , but a time of wrath , and he will no more enter into covenant with them , neither shall they be his . 2. When God brought them into the wildernesse , God there shewed them mercy , for that you have a marvellousfull Text , Deut. 32. 10. Hee found them in a desart land , and in the wast howling wildernesse ; but mark , he led them about , he instructed them , he kept them as the apple of his eye . Though they were in a wast howling wildernesse , yet they were as deare to God as the apple of his eye . Yea further , ver . 11. As an eagie stirreeth up her nost , fluttereth over her young , spreadeth abroad her wings , taketh them , beareth them on her wings , so the Lord alone did lead them . It is the note of Paulus Fagius , citing for it Rabbi Solomon upon this , as the Eagle carries her young ones , not as other birds , for other birds it is observed carry their young ones in their claws , the Eagle bears hers upon her wings , and this is the reason that is observed , because the Eagle is more tender of her young ones then other birds are , why ? for other birds carrying their young ones in their claws , if any shoot at them , they hit the young ones , and kill them first , but may misse the old one ; but the Eagle carries hers upon her back , upon her wings , that whosoever shoots at her young ones , they must shoot through her first : So saith God , I carried you in the wildernesse as the Eagle carries her young ones upon her wings , that if any shoot at you to hurt you , they must shoote through me first before they can come at you . This was Gods mercy to them when they were in the wast howling wildernesse , here is not such an And , they were in a wildernesse , yet God had much mercy upon them . Thirdly , milestone God brought them into a dry Land , in this wildernesse they wanted water , yet ( though they were ready to murmure ) he made them sucke honey out of the rocke , and oile out of the flinty rocke , Deut. 32. 13. You will say , when did God make them suck honey out of the rock ? wee read indeed that water gushed out of the rocke in a dry land , but here the Scripture speaks , that he made them suck honey & oile out of the flinty rock . It is a note of Chrysostome speaking upon this very thing , of Gods making them sucke honey and oile out of the rocke : Not , saith he , that there was indeed honey or oyle came out of the rock , but because they being in the wildernesse , and in such great want , the water that came out of the rock was to them as sweet and delightfull , as if it had beene honey or oyle . Thence he gathered that note , that want and necessity will make every thing very sweet and comfortable , water will be as honey and oile to them that want . When you are at your full tables , This wine pleaseth you not , and that beere pleaseth you not ; but if you were in necessitie , water would be as wine , it would be as honey and oile to you . Yea but what say you to the fourth And , He will slay them with thirst ? Can you shew us any place wherein God did slay his people , yet shew mercie to them ? Yes , I can . There is a place where it is said , God slew his people , yet for all that at that very time he shewed abundance of mercie to his people ; when God did come with his sword in his hand , yet with abundance of compassion in his heart . The Scripture is in Psal . 78. 34. Marke what the Text saith there , When he slew them , then they sought him , and they returned and enquired early after God , and they remembred that God was their Rocke . Well , they sought him , and they remembred this , that God was their Redeemer , but did God redeeme them at that time ? Yes , verse 38. He being full of compassion for gave their iniquity , and destroyed them not , yea many a time he turned his anger away , and did not stir up all his wrath , Or as the old Translation hath it , He called backe his anger , which here he will not doe : He was full of compassion , and forgave their iniquity , and called back his anger , though he did slay them at that time . He denieth to doe it here , he letteth out his anger here to the full , and will not call it back , I will have no mercy upon them : And it is observable in this Scripture that yet the Text saith before that , they did but flatter God with their mouth : though they did but flatter God with their mouth , yet such was Gods mercie toward them , that he calleth back his anger . My brethren , God hath a high esteeme of his worship in a Nation ; though it should be but externall ( but we must not rest in that ) yet many times externall humilliation and worshipping of God in a Nation hath beene effectuall to deliver them from externall judgements . Therefore we have much cause to be incouraged , in that God doth stirre up our Nation at this day , yea and those particularly that are going in that expedition and service for the Kingdome , that God doth stirre them up to goe forth worshipping of him . Our adversaries come against them with Oathes and curses , and they goe against them with fasting and prayer , not externally onely , but we hope internally many of them , and thousands that joine with them in our Nation . And if God will shew so much mercy to them when they did but flatter him with their mouth , surely then when as there are so many true worshippers of him , yea those that are the instruments of the work ; we have much cause to think that God will shew mercy to us , and that if anger were come out against us , yet God will call it backe . Thus then we see that so long as Gods people be Gods people , though they may be brought to great troubles ( we cannot be secured from troubles ) yet still there is mercie for them ; so long as they are his people , so long as the knot is between God and them , and they are in Covenant , there is mercie for them . But now when they are cast off , now there commeth an and , I will doe thus and thus , bring them into these extremities , and I will shew no mercy to them , there shall be judgement without mercie . The observation then from hence is , when God commeth upon the wicked with wrath , hee cometh with pure wrath . Wrath without mixture of mercie , and this is intolerable . We have a remarkable place for this Isa . 7. 5. An evil ( saith the Text ) an onely evil , behold it is comming . Marke , there may come an evil to the people of God , that which materially is evill , but it can never be said of Gods people that an evill , an only evill is comming : If an evil come , there cometh a great good together with that evil : but now it is upon the wicked , an evil , & an onely evil is coming . God threatneth Psal . 75. 8. that he hath a cup in his hand , full of mixture , the mixture of that is an aggravation of the wrath that is in it : but here there is a cup in Gods hand without mixture , and the want of mixture is the aggravation of the evil of this cup. VVhen wrath is pure , then it is grown beyond anger , and grown to hatred : so long as it is but meere anger , it admitteth of mixture of love , but when once it is ( as we may speak ) grown to that height of sowerness that all the mixture of love is gone , then it is turned to hatred . There was a time when Israel spake in a murmuring way that God brought them into the wildernesse because he hated them . Deut. 1. 27. But now God threatneth to bring them into the wildernesse and to hate them indeed , according to that Hosea 9. 15. All their wickednesse is in Gilgal , for there I hated them . David prayeth Psal . 6. 1. that God would not rebuke him in his wrath , neither chasten him in his hot displeasure ; but what then ? Have mercy upon me O Lord : So long as God sheweth mercie he doth not chasten in his sore displeasure : but when God commeth with afflictions & denyeth mercie , then he commeth in sore displeasure indeed , it is hatred . Secondly , When God commeth without mercie he commeth upon the wicked in the most unseasonable time for them that can be . That is the difference betwixt the evills that come upon the godly and the wicked . There may be evills ( that materially are so ) upon the godly , but yet they shall come upon them when it shall be seasonable for them : but when they come upon the wicked it shal be when they are most unseasonable for them : As a husband-man if he would cut his Tree so as onely to lop it that it may grow and flourish again , he will be sure to do it in due time , as in January or February , but if he would cut it that so it may dye , hee will lop it when it flourisheth most , at Midsummer . God indeed letteth wicked men grow up and flourish to the height of their prosperity , and then he commeth and loppeth them because then hee knowes they must die and perish . It were better to be lopped in January , in winter time before you flourish , then you may live for your good ; but if you stay till the summer , you die for it . You have an excellent Scripture , Zeph. 2. 4. They shall drive out Ashdod at noon day . In those Countries that were exceeding hot and scorching , she pheards and others that had their businesse abroad , used to keep their houses at noon day , or get into some shady places and sleepe . Now when God threatneth a judgement in wrath , and denyeth mercie , saith hee , they shall drive out Ashdod at noone day , in the worst time that possibly Ashdod can be driven out , in the middest of scorching . Because God intended to destroy them , he drives them out at noone day . Again thirdly , When God commeth upon the wicked and denyeth mercie , he regardeth not the proportion of any affliction or any evill , whether it be enough or not enough for them , what is that to him ? When hee cometh upon his own people he weigheth out his wrath . Never did any skilfull Physitian or Apothecary more carefully weigh out to every dram what the potion should be that is to be given to a child , then God doth weigh out every affliction that he sendeth upon his children . The difference is just as if you should goe to the Apothecaries to take ratsbane to poyson or kill vermine , you doe not weigh out how much you should take , but give them it at adventure , and let them take as much as they will , and let them burst : but if you take any thing for your child , if it have any strong vertue in i● , or without composition , it may be poison , you will take heed , you will not take a dram , a graine too much , but will be sure to weigh it out exactly . Thus though when God commeth to his children hee weigheth out their afflictions , yet when he cometh with judgements upon the wicked , he cares not how much , how many or great they be , whether sutable to their conditions or no , whether they can beare them or no , whether their backes breake or no , he cometh with judgements upon them to destroy them . Fourthly , When afflictions commeth without mercie upon the wicked , God stoppeth his ears at all their cryes . If they cry when God cometh with judgements against them , he calleth their cryings howling . Hee tells them though they cry aloud , yea cry with teares he will not heare them , Fifthly , God commandeth all creatures that they should deny help to them . They may stand and be amazed , but help them they cannot . They all say how can we help , seeing God helpes not . Sixthly , There is the curse of God mixed with every judgement to drive them further from God , and to harden them more in their sinnes . Lastly , One judgement is but the making way for another , yea all judgments in this world are but the fore-runners , and makers-way for eternall judgements . This is the portion of the cup of the wicked when God saith he will shew them no mercie . The afflictions of the Saints may seeme to be more grievous outwardly , but thus God never afflicteth them , there is mercie alwayes for them . VVherefore all yee Saints of God who are under any affliction at any time , be patient and quiet , be contented under it , for though your afflictions before and grievous , yet God delivereth you from such afflictions as these wherein he saith he will shew no mercie . But further . I will not have mercy upon her children . Her children . ] The judgement of God in punishing the sin of the fathers upon the children we spake somewhat of in the Chapter before , wee will wholly let that passe now : and onely consider children in another way then we did before , in a politicall consideration , for certainly that is the meaning of the Text , I will not have mercy upon her children ; that is , I will not have mercie upon the particular people that belong to Iezreel . Private and particular people are called the daughters of Jerusalem , the daughters of such a Country . So that the whole community together with the officers & Governours they are as the Mother , and the private and particular people they are as the children . So that when God saith he will have no mercy upon her children , hee doth not onely threaten the State and the Church , the Governours and the whole Community thus , but he threatneth every particular person of them , though you that are in the multitude perhaps thinke you may escape in the crowde ; No saith God , I will looke to every one of you of the multitude of the private and particular persons of Israel , and my wrath shal● not onely come out against those that are in higher places , but it shall come out against you also , I will slay her children . It is true indeed , the heads and governours of places are usually most invelved in the guilt of the sins of nations , and their judgements are usually most dreadfull when God commeth with nationall judgements . As Num. 35. 3. 4. The Text saith there that Israel joyned themselves to Baal ▪ Peor , and the anger of the Lord was kindled against Israel , and the Lord said unto Moses , take all the heads of the people , and hang them up before the sunne . The Lords anger was kindled against the people , but he bade Moses especially look to the heads , and take them and hang them up be●●re the Lord , that the fierce anger of the Lord might be turned away from Israel . Certainly execution of wrath upon great ones , upon such as have beene heads in evill , is a Sacrifice exceeding well pleasing to God. But though God ay●●e at them especially in nationall judgements , yet the multitude and private people must not thinke to escape , and that upon these grounds . First , Because many times it is for their sins that God suffereth their Governours to doe so much evill as they doe , As , Israel had sinned , and God was wrath with Israel , therefore David did what he did in numbring the people . When you see your Governours doe that which is naught , lament for your own sins ; doe not spend your time onely in crying out against them , but look to yourselves , it is for your sinnes that God hath left them to do as they have done . Secondly , It may be the reason why Governours do not reforme , is , in the perversenesse of people , that they are not in a preparation to receive that good which otherwise our Governours had in their hands & hearts to bring to passe . As 2 Chron. 20. 33. it is cleere there , Howbeit the high places were not taken away , why ? For as yet the people had not prepared their hearts to seeke the God of their Fathers . Why ? should they have pulled down the high places ? no , but they should have beene in a preparation for the pulling of them downe . Certainly this is the great cause why our high places are not pulled downe , why Reformation hath gone on no better then it hath , and why we have so much evil remaining amongst us , because the people have not prepared their hearts , they are not in a disposition to receive the mercie that our governours have hearts to bring unto us . They have hearts to work for us , but when we speake to them of what is fit to be done , their answer is , but is England in a fit disposition to receive such a thing as that is ? so that the truth is , although you are ready to cry out of your Governours , you say , they have power in their hands , why doe they not reforme things ? yet the guilt in great part devolves upon the people , they are not in a fit d●sposition to receive such reformation : therefore God threatneth the child●en , the peo●le here . Again further , It may be it is from you that the Governours that are evil are so much incouraged and abetted in that which is evill : though you doe it not , yet you so much incourage them as the guilt redounds upon you . Yea lastly , If you do but obey them in any thing that is evill , in doing of that , the guilt devolveth upon you , for you should not do it , but rather obey God then man. Many thinke to make this their plea , they are commanded to doe thus and thus , and Governours would have them doe it , and it is Law and the like , and they thinke upon this plea they may do any thing in the world . This will not secure you , God may come with judgement without mercie upon the children as well as upon the Mother . And if Gods wrath should come in nationall judgements against England , let the people know that they are like to smart most dreadfully , for never was their a time in our dayes , nor in our fore-fathers dayes , that so much depended upon the people as at this day ; never were they called to that help as now they are called to at this day . So that the people now may have reformation , they may have blessings , if it be not through their own default . As Cant. 7. 1. The Church is there described in her beauty , and it beginneth at her feete , How beautifull are thy feete ? And Cant. 5. There Christ is described in his beauty , and it beginneth at the head , His head is as the most faire gold . God sometimes makes use of the people to be great meanes , and perhaps the beginning of means to bring beauty to the Church , though they cannot perfect it . Heretofore private persons could doe little : Alas though they were under grievous oppressions , they knew not now to help themselves . Many men that had purses , and strength , and heads , and hearts and all , yet they knew not what to doe , but to make their moane one to another , and to heaven ; but now it is otherwise , now you may do somewhat else besides making your moane one to another , yea besides making your moa●e to heaven : for you that have purses now you may see waies to employ them for the publique good , for Religion , for liberty , you that have strength of body may know what to doe , you that have head-pieces , I mean parts , you are called to help , you may joyne together for God and the good of your Country , you may do much more then heretofore could be done . Wherefore now if you should desert the Cause of God , and desert those that you have trusted , you must expect the most dreadfull wrath of God , and that without mercie , even upon the people that ever was upon any nation since the beginning of the world , for never any nation that we know of , had more depending upon the people then there is at this day upon the people of England , O consider of it , and oh that all the people of the land did but know what God would have them to do in such a time as this ? Again , I will not have mercy upon her children : upon particular private persons in the society . One note more upon that , It is a dangeraus thing for men in any societie to do as the most doe : If they be in a civill societie to give their votes and to do as the greater part doth ; if you be in a Church societie , to do as the greater part doth without any examination of it , this dangerous . For though the greater part , the communitie may doe that which is evil , you shall not be excused by that , for you to say , why what could I help it , wh●n the most doth it ? God commeth upon private and particular men , upon the children , even every one of them : And why ? For they are the children of whoredomes . That is either passively or actively , passively , because they were begotten of whoredomes and brought up , their education hath been in whoredome , they have had it from their parents , Or else they are the children of whoredomes actively , they live in the same whoredomes their Mother did . From hence , First , There is little hope of children brought up in wicked education , who have wicked parents also . If the dye have beene in the wooll it is hard to get out of the cloth . If wickedness , if evill principles have beene dropped into children , there is little hope of them for good , especially of those children that have been brought up in wayes of superstition and Idolatry , their hearts being so soyled , and defiled , and hardned in superstitious and idolatrous wayes , they seldome come to any good . Therefore that which hath been mentioned is very good , namely of wayes to take the children of Papists to bring them up in the education and knowledge of the truth . Yet Secondly , This shall not excuse children , though they be the children of whoredomes . It is no excuse for them to say they had it from their Parents , and they did as their Parents have done , and as they bade them , and according as they brought them up . No it excuseth not at all , for the wrath of God commeth upon them that are the children of whoredomes . Then what a mercie is it for us to be brought up in the truth ; to have Parents that doe professe the truth , and for our education to bee in the way of truth ? It is a mercy that we do not consider of to give God the glory of it : How dangerous is it to have superstitious Idolatrous Parents , and to have such kind of education ! there is not one of ten thousand that altereth his religion : If they have Turks , or Jewes , or Papists to their parents , and such education , it is not one of tenne thousand I say that altereth his religion . Therefore it is like our condition would have been the same if God had not cast it that our parents should be such as professe the truth , and our education according to the truth . Blesse God for this . And you that are parents doe you look to your children , and bring them up in the truth . Children who have gracious principles dropped into them , and those watred by prayers and tears , there is hope of them ▪ and not of them alone , but of the nation where they live . Lastly ( which is the observation which mainely wee are to consider of ) When Gods judgements come abroad in the world , let the children of whoredomes look to it , God threatneth he will have no mercy upon them , or they are the children of whoredomes . The children of whoredomes are the butt of Gods wrath when his judgements come abroad in the world . Isa . 27. 4 Furie is not in me , saith the Text , that is , it is not in mee toward my Saints ; though I come out in a kind of fury , yet it is not in me toward them , what then ? Who would set the briers and thorns against mee in battle ? I would goe thorough them , I would burn them together . When my wrath commeth against the briars and thornes , I will go through them , and burne them together ; but for my children , fury is not in me toward them : When Gods wrath is abroad in the world , let not the children of the bride-chamber feare , but let the children of whoredomes feare and quake , let briars and thornes feare , but not the fruitfull trees in Gods garden : Godjudgements know how to make a difference between men , they are dis stinguishing things when they come abroad : God sendeth not his judgements hand over head , but putteth into them a distinguishing quality . God hath a chamber of rest and safety for his people , wherein he will hide them till his indignation be over-past ; but for the children of whoredomes , superstitious , Idolatrous , wicked and ungodly people , they are the people of Gods indignation , they are like Idumea , the people of Gods curse , as you have it , Isa . 34. 5. There are a people this day amongst us who are certainely the people of Gods curse , and let them look to it as well as they will. Rev. 14. 8. Babylon is fallen , is fallen ( saith an Angell there ) and mark what followeth . ver . 9. And another Angel followed , saying with a loud voyce , If any man worship the beast and his image , and receive his mark in his forehead or in his hand , the same shal drinke of the wine of the wrath of God which is powred out without mixture into the cup of his indignation . It is according to that in the Text here , God will have no mercy , they shall drink of the wine of the wrath of God without mixture , without mixture of any mercy at all . And further , He shall be tormented with fire and brimstone in the presence of the holy Angels , & in the presence of the Lambe , and the smoake of their torment ascendeth up for ever and ever , And they have no rest day nor night that worship the beast and his image . Here is a dreadfull threat against the children of whoredomes , against such as follow the wayes of the great whore of Babylon . Blessed are they that in these times have testimony in their own consciences , that it hath been their care above all things to draw themselves out from the guilt of all superstitious and Idolatrous vanities , and to keep themselves ( according to that light that God hath discovered to them ) pure from the pollutions of that man of sin . Blessed I say are these , they need not feare this day ; but for those that have involved themselves in the guilt of those pollutions , they have need to humble their souls before God , and to cry mightily , for wrath is going out against the children of whoredomes . This Text here spoken of , is not meant only of hell hereafter , but it is meant of judgement even in this world : And above all times that ever yet have been since Antichrist began , it is a most desperate thing to be a Papist in these dayes , because now is the time for God to make these children of whoredomes the very Butt of his wrath and indignation . We heare of wars , and rumors of wars , and a great deale of stir there is abroad : My brethren , keep your hearts chast to God , and fear not , for God hath another manner of people to deal withall then you ; you shall be sealed first , before the wrath come out . Though I cannot excuse you altogether from suffering some afflictions , these children of whoredomes may bring some trouble upon the Saints for the present ; yea perhaps some of you may have your blood spilt , but God hath mercy to bestow upon you , but for them there is wrath , and wrath without mixture , God saith he will have no mercy upon the children of whoredoms . Let such as are going forth then in this Service , for Religion and Liberty , go forth with courage and undauntednesse of spirit , why ? for they fight against none but those that God fighteth against . Who are they but the children of whoredomes that they go to fight against , those who have shewed themselves to be open fighters against God and his truth , such as are most abominable swearers , cursers , and blasphemers , such as make no other use of the light of the Gospel that they have , but only to scorn and contemn it , such as are open despisers of God and his truth , and of his people ? Certainly if there be a cursed generation upon the face of the earth , these are the people , whose mouths are full of curses , and certainely Gods curse is upon them who are so full of cursings themselves . If there be any of you here that are now , or hereafter may go forth in this service , your spirits should even rise with indignation against such monsters upon earth , and goe against them as David against Goliah , What shall this uncircumcised Philistine defie the hoast of the living God ? Thus your hearts should rise if you have any love to God and his truth ; Shall a company of cursed monsters that do nothing but blaspheme , and curse , and sweare , and defie God and his servants , and his Tabernacle , and worship ; shall these uncircumcised Philistins go on thus defying God and his truth ? If you have the hearts of men within you , especially of Christians , me thinks you should not be able to beare it , but goe forth against them with fulnesse of spirit and resolution , certainely God will make them a prey to you , they are not only such as not only have put off Christianity , and are become Atheists , but they have put off all kind of humanity , and are rather turned monstrous beasts , or devils . Fear them not , though their hearts be full of pride and rage , and though they beast never so much what they are , or what they have done , or what they will doe ; I say feare them not , for this is part of the curse of God that is upon them that though God fighteth against them , they will not see it , they shall not see it , because God intendeth to destroy them ; though judgments are out against them , yet they will not repent . You shall finde it divers times in the book of the Revelation , that those that followed Antichrist , though they were tormented , all the judgments of God were against them , yet they repented not . This I say is the curse of God upon such , God will not give them repentance unto life , for they are the children of whoredoms , whom God intendeth to have no mercy upon : therefore the higher their rage riseth , the higher your hearts should rise against them . But we must go on to the 5. verse . For their mother hath played the harlot . Their mother , that is , the State and the Church , for they were both involved in one , hath played the harlot . This [ For ] hath reference two ways ; either it may have reference to those words , I will not have mercy upon them , for not only they are , but their mother is defiled with whoredomes , she hath played the harlot : or secondly , it hath reference onely to the latter part , they are the children of whoredomes , for their mother hath played the harlot : either it referreth to the reason why God will not have mercy upon them , because their mother hath played the harlot : or secondly to the reason why they are the children of whoredomes , for their mother hath played the harlot . And from both these references we have very usefull observations for us . The first , God cannot endure a succession in wickednesse , I will not have mercy upon them , their mother hath played the harlot , they are children of whoredoms themselves , and their mother hath plaid the harlot , there is a succession of wickednesse among them , and that I cannot beare . The ground is , because those that keep up a succession of wickednesse from the mother to the children , and so goe on downeward , they are guilty of all the wickednesses that went before them in that line ; Else how can that be understood where Christ saith he will require all the blood from Abel to Zacharias upon that generation ; but because they continuing in that way of sin , kept up the succession of that sin , and so that generation was guilty of all the sins of that kind that went before even unto Abel . So the father is a whore-master , and the child he proveth to be one too , and so goeth on , the child is not only guilty of that sinne of his owne , but of his fathers , and of his grandfathers , and hee is guilty of all that kind of sinne that is gone before , even up to the beginning of the world ; why ? because hee keepeth up the succession of that sinne in the world . This is a most terrible thing to consider of , enough to wound the strongest heart in the world , especially of those that know they have had wicked Parents . Again , For their mother hath plaid the harlot , consider this word For , as having reference to the reason why they are children of whoredomes , for their mother hath plaid the harlot . The observation is , Children usually goe according to their parents , which way their parents goe , commonly the children goe . It is a usuall thing where there are prophane parents to have prophane children , if the parents sweare to have swearing children , if the parents be superstitious to have superstitious children ; if parents be scorners of Religion , to have children scorners too : we find it true in experience , in that new nick-name that is brought up on the godly in roome of the former , it is as frequent in the mouths of children as in others , because children go according to what their fathers formerly did : I will give you one notable Text of Scripture for this , it is 2 King. 2. 23. When Elisha the Prophet was going up to Bethel , there came forth little children out of the City and said unto him , Goe up thou bald-head , goe up thou bald-head . The thing that I note it for is this , that not only the children did it , and so were destroyed , ( for two she-beares came out of the wildernesse and tare 42. of them ) but what children were they that did this ? If you observe the Text , you shall finde that they were the children of Bethel ; and what place was that ? That was one of the places where the calves were set up , and it was a place of much superstition , and the children were as superstitious as their parents : A place that had the name , the house of God , but a place exceedingly abused , and no place did more degenerate from the name then it , it was a Bethaven , a house of vanity and wickednesse . It was the place that was most superstitious , and those were the children that scorned at the Prophet : But we need no other proof but only experience , yet there is one notable Scripture further for it , Jer. 7. 18. The children ( saith the Text ) gather wood , their fathers kindle the fire , and their mothers kneaded the dough : the children joyned you see : Pelagius thought that there was no sinne came into the world but only by imitation , children imitating their parents . Certainly imitation is of great power and force to prevaile with the hearts of children . You that are wicked parents , had need to looke to it what you doe before your children . He that sinneth before a child , specially a parent , sinneth doubly , for a child will be ready to imitate it . What , will you not only sin against God , and be enemies unto him , but will you leave a succession , that when you are dead and gone , some must out of your loynes , and from your bowels , blaspheme God after you are rotten in your graves ? Suppose you that are parents had a plague sore upon you , would you goe among your children , and breath upon them ? this cruelty is much worse , will you goe into your families , and breath infection into your children , and so make them like you , and guilty of your sins , and of the plagues of God together with you ? oh cruell parents ! On the otherside , as therefore children of whoredomes , because their mother hath plaid the harlot , why then should not children be gracious and godly , who have gracious and godly parents ? Why should it not be said , This childe is a godly childe , for his mother was a gracious woman , and his father a godly man ? You that have godly parents , let this be your Encomium , You are godly and gracious children , and you had godly and gracious parents , this will be your honour before the Saints . But how vile is it , when it may be said , Here is a wicked wretch , yet he had a godly father , and a godly mother ; here is an uncleane and filthy liver , yet hee had gracious parents ? It is no wonder to say thus , This man is filthy , for his father was filthy , and his mother was a harlot ; but to look upon one , and say , Here is a whoremaster , yet his father was a godly gracious man ; Here is a harlot , yet her mother was a holy woman ; O how vile is that ! I remember a speech of that reverend Master Bolton , who died not long since ; It is repo●ted , that upon his death-bed he had his children come to him , & he speaks thus unto them , I doe believe , saith he , there is never a one of you will dare to meet me at the tribunall of Christ in an unregenerate condition . So let me say to you that are evill children of Godly parents , let me in their names speak to you , How dare you , with what face doe you think you shall dare to meet with your godly father and gracious mother before the judgement seat of Jesus Christ ? at that day if your godly father stand at the right hand of Christ , how dare you appeare before that face in the guilt of those horrible wickednesses that you now live in ? Certainly the thought of this hath power to daunt your hearts . She hath done shamefully . The word in the Hebrew ( it is in Hyphil , and so it may be translated transitively ) signifieth , She hath made ashamed , as well as done shamefully ; and so I find it according to some thus rendered , Shee hath made ashamed her husband , she hath made ashamed her children , shee hath made ashamed her self , and all these three may be meant . Yea I conceive the intent of the holy Ghost is to expresse them all . Her husband first , the Church is the Spouse of Jesus Christ , Christ is the husband of the Church , and you know the Scripture saith that the woman is the glory of the man. I remember I gave the meaning of that heretofore ; So the Church being the Spouse of Christ , should be the glory of Christ : the woman should be the glory of the man , but yet being wicked and filthy , she makes her husband many times ashamed . The evil of the wife is a shame to the husband , so the evill of the Church is a shame to Iesus Christ . The Church in Scripture is called the glory of Christ , 2 Cor. 8. 23. If our brethren be enquired after , they are the messengers of the Churches , and the glory of Christ . Isa . 4. 5. Vpon all the glory shall be a defence . It should be so , but when it commeth to be defiled , it shameth Christ , their wickednesse reflects upon Christ . Christ is said to walke in the middest of the golden Candlesticks , Rev. 2. 1. Every Church is a Candle-stick , and it should be a golden Candle-sticke , but if it come to be a filthy rustie Candle-stick , it is a dishonour unto Christ who walketh amongst them . Wicked men doe not shame Christ , but godly doe . My brethren let us take heed of that , It is an evill thing to bring shame to our selves , and one to another , but to bring shame upon JESUS CHRIST is the greatest evil . Many of you perhaps are ashamed of Christ , take heed you be not a shame to Christ . They are ashamed of Christ that are ashamed to appeare in the cause of Christ ; but as for you that are so , Christ hath more cause to be ashamed of you , for you are a shame to him . It is true , I cannot deny it but many Churches of God , and that of late have brought some shame to Jesus Christ by their dissentions and fractions , and they must take shame to themselves , and they have taken shame to themselves , they have acknowledged it to the glory of Christ , and in that regard in some measure have washed off that shame that they have brought to Christ . Againe further , a shame they are to their children . Wicked Parents are a shame to their children ; when a child appeareth forward , towardly , and hopefull , and it be said , Would you not wonder to see him so forward ? the father of him is a beastly dr●nkard , a filthy whore-monger , of a vile and malignant spirit ; now the child is ashamed to heare of the evil of his father , and of the evil of his mother . As foolish children are a shame to their Parents , so wicked Parents are a shame to their children . You that have gracious children take heed you be not a shame to them , and so a shame to your selves . And then a shame to her selfe , she hath plaid the harlot , she hath done shamefully . Wherein had she done shamefully ? I will onely mention one particular . Certainly that shame of hers was especially in subjecting Religion to carnall policie . For what did she doe ? what was the great sinne of the ten Tribes ? It was this , because they were afraid that if they did go up to Jerusalem to worship , the people would then depart from the house of Jeroboam , to the house of David , therefore out of politicall regards they would have the worship set up at Dan and Bethel , there they would have Calves , they must not goe up to Jerusalem the place which God had appointed to worship in , but at Dan and Bethel . This was a meere politique fetch , for they could not but acknowledg that God did require that they should worship at Jerusalem where the Temple was , and there was no other reason why they would worship at Dan and Bethel , but meerely out of State policie that they might prevent the people from going backe to the house of David , and indeed they did professe so much themselves . Here then they did shamfully . The Observation then from hence is , that for governours or any to subject Religion to policie is a shamefull thing . It is shamefull to make Religion an underling , and to make policie the head . Perhaps they call this wisedome , a prudentiall way , wee must be carefull and wise to foresee inconveniences that may follow . But what if God give it another name ? God may give it a name of base temporizing , a name of folly and wickednesse : to subject Religion to policie it is shamefull , because it abaseth that which is the great honour of any Country , it makes it an underling : what is the excellency of man but Religion ? what is the excellency of a Country but Religion ? and what hath England been glorious for more then for Religion ? Now to put the excellency of a thing under any inferiour , this is shamefull , to put the Crown that is for the head under ones foot is a dishonour to it : although a thing hath in it self but little excellencie , if it be brought beneath it selfe under other things that have not so great an excellency in them , it makes it vile . And shamefull also it is because it holdeth forth this , that we dare not trust God for our civill estate and for our peace , therefore Religion must come under . Shamefull it is again because it is grosse folly , for there is no such way to breede disturbance in a politicke state , no such way to undoe a State , as to make Religion an underling to policie . Was it not so here ? That very way that they tooke to uphold their policie was the way to destroy their State , & did destroy it at last , even their corrupting of Gods worship . What cause had they then to be ashamed of this , that God should take that which they thought to helpe themselves by , and make that the very thing that should cause their ruine ? And certainly it will be so , they that are of the deepest and politikest ferches and reaches , if they thinke to secure themselves and preserve their peace , out of that principle , so as Religion must come under , and must be serviceable , it will appeare at last they doe shamefully , God will make them ashamed of it one way or other , it will be the onely way to undoe themselves and us . I confesse in matters of Religion there are some commands that are affirmitive precepts : These though they doe ligare semper , yet not ad semper , there is not a necessity that at every time and instant they should be urged , so that it may be that a people may be in such a frame that men cannot but by degrees bring in a reformation to the height of it , and then it is not carnall policie to bring in such wayes of God gradually , as are commanded by affirmitive precepts ; but negative precepts binde semper and adsemper , and the State must looke to that , that they do nothing against Christ out of policie that they doe not hinder by any positive Law the way of Christ , for though Christ may be willing to forbeare some Ordinances for a time , and he doth it out of mercy to a people , he saith he will have mercy and not sacrifice , but Christ will never beare that there should be any thing done against him in that time . If they should out of any State policie to preserve peace , or to gratifie an evill party , sacrifice any part of Religion , or any godly person , this will prove a shamefull thing , Christ accounts it so , and whosoever doth so will be ashamed of it at the last . Now my brethren , why should not God be trusted ? let us looke at Religion in the first place , and so pray wee that those who are our reformers who have power in their hands may never prove to be guilty of this shamefull way of putting Religion under policie . I will give you a notable example in Scripture about it . It is Josh . 5. When Joshua had brought the people of Israel over Jordan ( that you know was the very beginning of their entrance into Canaan ) now as soone as they were brought unto the borders of the Land , they were to encounter with all their enemies , and you may imagine that when Joshua had passed the river the , people might thinke that all the Country would be about their eares , one would thinke then that policy would have taught them to lay aside all thoughts of Religion , and to look to their enemies that were at hand , if ever they were outragious they would be then , and therefore now let us minde nothing but arming our selves against them : But mark now God goeth another way to worke , as soone as they were gone over Jordan , and were upon the borders of the Land of Canaan , they must goe and circumcise themselves , and you know when they were circumcised they were sore that they could not fight . Simeon and Levi destroyed a whole City when they were circumcised , they were not then in a posture of fighting or defending themselves , but lay at the mercie of their enemies . But this was Gods wisedome . Nay further , they must go and keepe the passeover too , they must mind and tend Religion : And mark you shall finde in the latter end of the Chapter , that after they had been circumcised & kept the Passeover , then appeareth one to Ioshua with a drawn sword , and saith he , I am the Captain of the Lords Hosts . Then the Captain of the Lords Host appeareth to fight for them when they had once obeyed ; whereas had they neglected Circumcision and the Passeover , & thought of fighting onely , they , might have missed of the Captaine of the Lords Hosts to have fought for them , and what would have become of them then ? So you see God would have us minde Religion in the most dangerous times , and though we thinke we must mind our peace and safety , and lay our hands upon our swords ●or our defence , yet let us be carefull of our Religion , and then we shall have a Captain of the Lords host come and fight for us . Marke 8. 15. we are charged to take heed of two sorts of leaven , The leaven of the Scribes and Pharises , and the leaven of Herod . The leaven of the Scribes and Pharises is corruption in Church affairs , the leaven of Herod is corruption in Religion too , but in order of the Common-wealth , in bringing under things of God to the affairs of the State , for in this Herod was like Jeroboam , he was affraid of his kingdome as Ieroboam was , hee had many wayes and plots to keepe himselfe in that kingdom as Ieroboam had , and many did cleave to Herod in his plots , as Israel clave to Ieroboam in his , therefore saith Christ , take heed not onely of the leaven of the Scribes and Pharises but of the leaven of Herod . And it may be the Lord saw us to prone of sinfull compliances , even ready to have sacrificed much of his worship and many of his Saints for the obtaining peace in the State , and so to have fallen off from that reformation that both God and his people expected , hence hee hath taken the worke into his owne hands , hee will bring about his owne worke , though it may cost us deare , who knowes how much blood ? The Fourth Lecture . HOSEA 2. 5. Shee that conceived them hath done shamefully ; for she said , I will goe after my lovers , that give me my bread , and my water , my wooll , and my flaxe , mine oyle and my drinke . GOds threats against Israel to make her as a wilderness and as a dry land , to slay her with thirst , in the 3. verse , to shew no mercy to her children , in the 4. ver . The reason because her mother had played the harlot , in the beginning of this 5. ver . we finished the last day . Onely in a word to give you one note from that title of Mother here , that wee observed not before . The Community of the Church and civill State is called Mother , in way of distinction from private people , and private people are as the children of that Mother , so we opened it in the second ver . The Observation is , The Community of a State and Church should be to particular persons as a Mother . They should have the affection of children to it , they should take much to heart those things that concerne it , the sufferings of State or Church should be the sufferings of all particulars . There are children of Belial that are risen up among us , that are even taring the bowels of our Mother , a viperous generation that seeke to eate out the bowels of her Mother , let our hearts breake for this , as Psal . 35. 14. I bowed down heavily as one that mourneth for his Mother . Let not us lift up our heads and be jolly now , but for the present bow down heavily as those that are called ( though in some respects to rejoyce , ) yet in many others to mourne this day for our Mother . Yea let our hearts rise against these vile monsters that joyne with a Malignant party to bring such woefull confusion and trouble even to our Mother . We may say to them justly as Saul said unto Ionathan passionatly , You children of the rebellious and perverse , why have you chosen to joyne with them for the confusion of your Mothers nakednesse . Let us do what we can to help . Shall we see her bowells torne and not stirre at all ? She calleth now to us to come and help her , and let us know that if it go ill with her , it cannot go well with us . If the Mothers breast thorough some incurable disease must be cut off , the tender Father takes away the children and will not suffer them to behold the torture of their Mother ; Who knows but that this hath been Gods end in taking away his deare children in former times , because hee would not have their tender hearts to see so much sorrow and evill as should befall their Mother ? And what God hath reserved us to see in the sufferings of our Mother we do not know . Howsoever let not her suffer by us , let not her suffer for want of our help , let not her suffer without us , let not us be so unnaturall as to be every one shifting for himselfe , for the private and particular , neglecting the publicke , the community , neglecting our Mother that should be as deare to us as the bowels out of which we came . She hath done shamefully . VVe should have the affections of children to her though she hath done shamefully . But further , Here you have the amplification of her whoredomes , shee hath plaid the harlot , and so plaid as she hath done shamefully : The latter end of the verse is by way of probation of this amplification , for how doth it appeare she hath done shamefully ? for she hath said , I will goe after my lovers , &c. For the first then , this amplification of her whoredome , her whoredome is such as is shamefull , Hence first observe . That sinne , but especially whoredome is a shamefull thing . Pro. 13. 5. A wicked man is loathsome , and commeth to shame : Pro. 14. 34. Sinne is a reproach to a nation , or to any people ; Sinne of its owne nature let it bee what it will be , it is shamefull : Much more then whoredome , to play the harlot , for all sinne doth drowne a man , it brings him beneath the excellency of a man , it is contrary to the image of God in man , to that wherein true honor , beauty , glory doth consist . It makes men vile . I will give you but one Text for it , Dan , 11. 21. And there shal arise a vile person . Who was that ? It was according to interpreters , Antiochus Epiphanes , the great King of Assyria , and yet a vile person . Josephus tells us that the Samaritans when they were in danger of suffering from him because he thought them to be Jewes , they wrote to him in this manner . To Antiochus the mighty God ; and his very Epithet , Epiphanes , is as much in our English as Illustrious , Antiochus the Illustrious , the famous , bright in his glory : He that was so illustrious and so great a Prince , that was written unto as the mighty God , yet in the Scripture language being wicked he is a vile person . It is a special note of one that is fit to dwell in Gods Mountain , of one that is a Saint , Psal . 15. 4. to be able to see the vilenesse of sin thorough all the glory of the world , in whose eyes a vile person is contemned . Sin is a shame because it deceiveth a man , The way of the wicked shall deceive him , What profit have you now of those things where of you are ashamed ? It is a good signe of grace to be able to see into the deceits of sinne , so as to be ashamed of it . But though all sin be shamefull , yet whoredome especially , and that either bodily or spiritual . First bodily , the expression of shamefulnesse though especially it aymeth at their Idolatry , yet it hath its rise from bobily whoredome , if that were not shamefull , the expression could not be full ; that she had played the harlot , and done shamefully , Pro. 6. 32. Whoso committeth adultery with a woman , lacketh understanding , he that doth it destroyeth his own soul ; a wound and dishonour shall he get , and his reproach shall not be wiped away . It makes one to be as one of the fooles in Israel . And I ( saith Tamer when Amnon defiled her ) whether shall I cause my shame to go ? and as for thee thou shalt be as one of the fooles in Israel . 2 Sam. 13. 13. Amnon though a Kings sonne , though a brave gallant , yet by his uncleannesse he makes himselfe as one of the fooles in Israel , Deut. 23. 18. Thou shalt not bring the hire of a whore , nor the price of a dogge into the house of the Lord ; they are joyned both together , for Scripture language makes those to be doggs who are uncleane and filthy . When Ishbosheth charged Abner with the sinne of uncleannesse , 2 Sam. 3. 8. Am I a dogs head , saith he , that thou chargest me with a fault concerning this woman ? Many Adulterers goe very fine and spruce , many young wantons are bravely drest , but in Gods esteeme they are as dogges thorough their uncleanness . It is not a harsher title then the spirit of God gives them . I have read of a people amongst the heathen that condemned this sinne with death , and with a shamefull death according to the nature of the sinne , the death was this , they would have the adulterers or adulteresses head to be put into the paunch of a beast , where lay all the filth and uncleannesse of it , and there to be stifled to death , a punishment fit for so filthy a sinne . And as this sin is ever shamefull , so especially the more lovely any yoke fellow is that is forsaken , and the more vile and fowle the whore is , so much the more shamefull is the sin : Athenaeus bringes in Plato , bewayling himself in his own condition , that he was taken so much with a filthy whore . It is more shamefull for Christians then for heathens , because they know that the covenant of mariage is the covenant of God , as Pro. 2. 17. But further , corruption in Gods worship is most shamefull , for that is aymed at especially here . The shamefulness of corrupting the worship of God is exprest in that most famous Text we have for this purpose . Exod. 32. 25. Aaron made the people naked unto their shame , how was that , but by false worship though it was of the true God ? In false worship , there is shame because in that a man subjects his conscience to vile things . Conscience that is not to be subject to any creature , only unto God himselfe is here made subject to low and vile things . Indeed it is not shamefull to subject our consciences to God in the use of creatures though never so meane appointed by himselfe , but those that doe subject unto creatures in wayes of false worship not appointed by God , subject not their consciences to God but unto those creatures , and that is shamefull . In false worship though there may seeme to be a great deale of humility , yet there is notorious pride and presumption , and therefore much shame . For a creature to take upon him by his owne fancie and conceit to raise up creatures higher then ever God hath raised them , to put higher respects upon creatures then ever God hath done , this is boldnesse and presumption , yea to presume so far as by his owne fancy and conceit , to raise up the creature so high as that God himself according to the humors of men must come to be nearer men , and to be more present with these creatures then otherwise he would . Thus men presume to bring God to be under their fancies , and is not this shamefull . Further it is extreame folly , for we contradict our selves when we thinke to honour God and yet goe against him , when wee put high esteeme upon such things as are abominable and detestable . Marke that excellent Scripture for this , Ierem. 44. 4. I sent unto you all my servants the Prophets , rising early and sending them , saying , O doe not this abominable thing that I hate . Marke , God cryeth out with a kinde of shrieke , all my servants the Prophets I sent , saying , O doe not this abominable thing ; It is a delightfull thing 〈◊〉 your eyes , but abominable in Gods. And Ezek. 22. 3. they are called by a word that signifieth the very excrements that come out of a man they glory in them , but he saith , they defile themselves by them . When God opens their eyes they will see false worship a shamefull thing , and when they doe so , God will shew them the Excellency of his own . You have an excellent Scripture for this , Ezek. 43. 10. 11. Sonne of man shew the house to the house of Israel , that they may be ashamed of their iniquities , and if that they be ashamed of all that they have done , that is , of all their false worship , what then ? Then shew them the forme of the house , and the fashion thereof , and the goings out thereof , and the commings in thereof , and all the formes thereof , and all the Lawes thereof , and all the Ordinances thereof , and write it in their sight that they may keepe the whole for me thereof , and all the ordinances thereof and doe them . Marke my brethren , you see how God standeth much upon formes , all the formes thereof , and the forme thereof : Let not us slightly account of any thing in Gods worship , of circumstances for God standeth much upon his own forme in his own worship . Many who have no Religion but a forme , yet neglect Gods forme . Men love to stand much upon their owne forms , let them know God stands much upon his formes , and it is no hinderance but a furtherance to the power of Religion to keep close to Gods forme , and if we would come to know what are Gods Ordinances ( we cry out , O that we could but know what is the right way ) this is one way for you to know : First , be ashamed of what you have done , be ashamed of your former false worship , and then God will shew you the Ordinances of his House , and the true beauty of his true worship : till then there are so many distinctions , and evasions , and objections that they never come to understand it : when God humbleth the heart , and makes ashamed of what hath been naught before , all the distinctions , and evasions , and objections vanish away as the mist before the sunne . And the more excellent the Lord is , and those Ordinances are from which we doe depart , the more shamefull is that ●●lse worship that our hearts doe decline unto . She hath done shamefully , why ? she hath forsaken such a husband , she hath forsaken the Lord JESUS CHRIST who is so lovely , she hath forsaken the blessed Ordinances that God hath appointed , and turned her selfe to vanities of her owne . Cant , 5. 16. Christ is there said to be altogether lovely , there is lovlinesse enough in Christ to satisfie the soul for ever . And Ezek. 7. 20. As for the beauty of his ornament ( speaking of Gods Ordinances in his Temple ) hee set it in Majesty , but they made the images of their abominations , and of their detestable things therein . Oh how shamefull was this ! This sheweth the shamefulnesse of it , because God set the beauty of his ornament in Majesty . The Ordinances of God that he appointed himselfe , they are Gods ornament they are the beauty of his ornament , they are the beauty of his ornament set in Majesty ; and shall these beautifull glorious things be forsaken , for vanities of our own inventions ? This is shamefull . She hath done shamefully for she hath said thus and thus ; Here is implyed , that the thing done was not onely shamefull , but that she was shamelesse in that she had done . She hath played the harlot , and done shamefully , for she hath said , &c. From hence the Observation is , Sinne , especially whoredome either bodily or spirituall , being let alone to grow to a height , will growe to an impudencie ; those that continue in these , will grow not onely to doe shamefully , but to be shamelesse in their doings , Ier. 6. 15. Were they ashamed they committed abomination ? No , they were not all ashamed , neither could they blush . At first sin may seeme to be a little shame-faced , but afterward it growes brazen-faced ; modest a little at the first , but bold , and impudent , and daring afterward . True , indeed if men should be told before-hand what they would doe afterward , they would be ready to say as Hazael to the Prophet , Am I a dead dog that I should do this ? Their hearts would even shake at the thought of it : yet when sinne hath hardned their hearts but a while , they will doe it , and that with open face too . Whoredome you know at first , it is that that every man blusheth at , but within a while , uncleane ones can make their boast of their filthynesse , But especially spirituall whoredome , the corruption of Gods worship at first may be a little modest , but see to what a height it growes if in time this be not prevented . I will give you a notable example of this , and that is of Solomon himselfe . At the first we shall finde Solomon very modest in the matter of Idolatry . 2 Chron. 8. 11. the Text saith there , that he brought up the daughter of Pharaoh out of the City of David to the house he had built for her , for he said , My wife shall not dwell in the house of David King of Israel , why ? because the places are holy whereunto the Arke of the Lord hath come . Marke how carefull Solomon was of any pollution , of any thing that had any seeming holinesse in it ; My wife shall not so much as dwell in the house of David , I have so much respect to the Arke of God , to the worship of God , to those places that are holy that my wife shall not so much as dwell there ; But oh what did Solomon grow unto afterward● he suffered Idolatry most shamefully , as we shall finde 1 King. 11. 5. there the Text saith , that he went after Ash●oreth the goddesse of the Zid●nians , and after Mileom the abomination of the Amorites , and built a high place for Ch●mosh the abomination of Moa● in the hill that is before Jerusalem , just there he built it too , as if it had been in defiance to the Temple of God and his true worship , and that for Molech the abomination of the children of Amm●● ; and thus he did saith the Text , ver . 8. for all his strange wives which burnt incense , and sacrificed unto their gods . This shamefulnesse he was grown unto ▪ And thus we see it in experience ; how faire are men in their wayes of superstition at first ? At first it is onely decency , that is all they plead for ; well , afterward it riseth from decency to significancy , that is a little higher , to put them in minde . Thirdly , from significancy it riseth to efficacy , to stirre up the dull mind of man : Fourthly , from efficacy , it riseth to necessity , that now it must be done , and the worship of God cannot be without it , and there shall be no ordinance , no administration at all without it . Decency , significancy , efficacy , and necessity , thus it riseth to be shamefull at last . So amongst the Papists in their traditions , surely at first only they would come with this argument , What , will you not regard them as you would doe other bookes and other Histories ? they are the traditions of our fore-fathers ; but at length they came to this , in the fourth Sexion of the Councell of Trent , the Synod doth take & honour the bookes of the old and new Testament , and the traditions of the Fathers , with equal● affection of piety and reverence as they doe them . To this shamefulnesse they grew to at last . And so for worshipping of Images , why , it is it for the decency of Churches to have them , and they are but to put you in minde at the most ; but at length they came to this , these are the very words , the same honour is due to the Image and to the Exemplar . Lastly , from this amplification that she hath done shamefully ; VVhen men doe grow shamelesse , impudent in evil , there is little hope of them . I will have no mercy upon them , Why ? For they have done thus , they are grown thus impudent . It is a good thing to keepe the bridle of shame as long as we can upon our children and servants , and any of our inferiours ▪ therefore take this one instruction with you , be not too ready to rebuke and chastise your servants , your children , in reproachfull manner before others , left you bring them to that , that they shall see they have no honour to lose , and then there is little hope of them : Evermore keep such a hand over your children and servants as they may see they have some respect to lose , that they may not be so ashamed by you , as for them to thinke they cannot be worse , they cannot be more disgraced , there is no such way to bring them to grow desperate as that is . It is very great wisedome in Governours to keepe the bridle of shame still , and not to let those raines goe , and this is the reason that your Bride-well or Goale-birds seldome or never come to good , why ? because they have no bridle to keepe them in , they have lost all their honour and they can lose no more , and there is no rational creature but would have honour , there is not the meanest servant you have but hath a kinde of respect to honour , and that will doe more then blows except they be grown to be very beasts . But how doth he prove that it is shamefull ? Thus , For she hath said , I will go after my lovers that give me my bread and my water , my wooll and my flaze , mine oyle and my drinke . For she hath said : Hence first . Deliberate sins are most shamefull sinnes . This is a proofe of her shamefulnesse , because that which she hath done she hath done upon deliberation , she said she would do thus and thus , she considered before what she would doe , and yet she would doe it . Wickednesse committed de industria , ex consilio , of purpose resolved upon , this is very shamefull . Gal. 6. 1. It is said of Godly men that they may be overtaken with a fault : If a man be overtaken with a fault . It is one thing to be overtaken with a sinne , and another thing to overtake a sinne ; a gracious heart may have sinne overtake it , but it is a shamelesse heart that overtakes sinne . Secondly , She hath said I will goe . Whoredome either bodily or spirituall is usually very wilfull : as if she had said , let all the Prophets say what they can , let them talke out their hearts , I will have my minde , I will follow my lovers still . Thus it is with bodily whoredome . Those who are guilty of this usually grow extreame wilfull . Prov. 2. 19. None that goe unto her return again ; neither take they hold of the paths of life : It is a most dreadfull Scripture against all adulerers & unclean ones , There is none , saith the Text , make it out how you will , there is none that goe unto her return a-again ; neither take they hold of the paths of life , those are the words of the Holy Ghost , I leave the words with you . So Pro. 23. 27. A whore is a deepe ditch , and astrange woman is a narrow pit : they cannot easily get out , nor will they easily get out they are so ▪ plunged in , 2 Pet. 2. 14. Eyes full of adultery that cannot cease to sinne : why cannot they cease to sinne ? it is not because they have a heart but no power , but their wills is brought into that bondage and subjection that they cannot will otherwise : therefore Ezek. 47. 11. wee finde that though the waters of the Sanctuary were very healing , yet saith the Text , the miry places and the maershes were not healed , miry , filthy , uncleane hearts are very seldome healed by the waters of the Sanctuary , I remember AElian reporteth that there was a whore that did boast that she could easily get scholars away from Socrates , but Socrates could get no scholar from her , none of her followers . It is true , that a whore is prevalent , and when she hath once gotten them it is almost impossible to get them away from her . Therefore that place Heb. 6. that speakes of that sinne that is impossible to have repent anoe , Tertullian interprets it to be no other but the sinne of uncleannesse : The Author of this Epistle ( saith hee ) knew no promise of second repentance to the adulterer and fornicator ; that is his expression , shewing how ordinarily those that are guilty of that sinne and are given up to it , grow wilfull in it : And therefore in Ephes . 4. 19 , these two are put together , being past feeling , and having given themselves over to laciviousness and want onness , wantons usually grow past feeling . And for spirituall adultery , that usually is very wilfull too , for those that are left by God to that way of false worship , to Superstition and Idolatry , they seldome returne againe but grow exceeding wilfull in that wickedness . You have a notable Text for that , Jer. 44. 16. 17. the people say there , The word that thou hast spoken to us in the name of the Lord we will not heare , but we well doe whatsoever commeth out of our own mouth , to burn incense to the Queen of Heaven . VVee will goe on in that way to burne Incense to the Queene of heaven talk as long as you will. And so you have it Jerem. 20. 10. Goe ( saith God ) passe over the Isles of Chitrim , and see , and send unto Kedar , and consider deligently , and see of there be such athing ; Hath a nation changed their gods , which yet are no gods ? Men are setled in the wayes of Idolatry , and will never give over the worshipping of their gods ; but you have forsaken me : therefore be astonished O ye heavens at this , and be ye horribly afraid , be ye very desolate , saith the Lord. So Micah . 4. 5. All people will walke every one in the name of his god : Their hearts are set upon it , they will doe it . Spirituall whoredome doth mightily besot the heart . I suppose you know the sext , it is a very famous one , Esay 44. 19. 20. None considereth in his heart , neither is there knowledg nor understanding to say , I have burnt part of i● in the fire , yea also I have baked bread upon the coales thereof , I have rosted flesh and eaten it , and shall I make the residue thereof an abomina●● ? shall I fall down to the stock of a tree ? He feedeth on ashes , a seduced heart hath ●urned him aside that he cannot deliver his soul , nor say , Is there not a lie in my right hand . And so Rev. 16. 11. where , those that were given up to Antichrist , though they were tormented , they blasphemed the God of heaven , because of their pains and their sores , and they repented not of their deeds . Thirdly , wilfulnesse in any sinne , but especially in these sinnes , is a very great aggravation of it : I will have no mercy upon them , I will give them up , why ? They have done shamefully , and they have said , I will goe after my lovers . There are a great many who in their passion think it a brave spirit to say , I will , and I will , and I will , and I care not , say what you can , or whatsoever becommeth of it I will doe , or I will have this and this : Especially men in place and of estates are not able to endure the controlling of their will in any thing , and therefore when their wills are but crost , they burst out into outragious speeches , and fall a blaspheeming , and swearing , and saying they will have their wills , though it cost them their lives . Thus we find it in the people of Israel , 1 Sam. 8. 19 , when Samuel from God came and told them in a long narration what hardship they should endure in having a King that was not them according to Gods minde , they 〈◊〉 him all that he said , and they doe not stand to answer any of Samuels arguments , but presently they break out into this resolution , Nay , but we will have a King. Those whom God leaveth to hardnesse of heart , and intendeth ruine to , he usually giveth them up to this wilfulnesse in their evill wayes . The Scripture records Pharaoh for a famons example of one hardned and prepared for ruine . He was of a most wilfull spirit . Exod. 15. 9. you shall find his wilfulnesse expressed foure times there in that one verse , I will pursue , saith he ; and then again , I will overtake , and thirdly , I will divide the spoile ; and then fourthly , I will draw my sword : and there are two other expressions that come to the same effect , that are equivalent to the former even in the same verse , My lust shall be satisfied , my hand shall destroy them . Put all these six expressions that you have in that one verse , together , and where have you such an expression of a wilfull creature as Pharaoh was ? and what became of him you all know . Only one more example I find in Scripture paralleld to this , and that is the King of Babylon ; Egypt and Babylon were two the most eminent for Idolatry and persecution of the Church that ever were in the world , and these are the two most famous examples for wilfulnesse that ever were , Esa . 14. 13 , 14 ▪ you have in these two verses five times I will. 1. I will ascend into heaven . 2. I will exalt my throne above the stars of God. 3. I will si● upon the mount . 4. I will ascend above the heights . 5. I will be like the most high . And what became of him afterwards you all know , yea the next wo●ds tell you , Yet thou shalt be brought down to hell , &c. These two little words , [ I ] and [ Will ] doe a great deale of misch●efe in the world . Luther I remember npon Psal . 127. saith , I am of that opinion , saith he , and verily perswaded , Monarchies would longer time by farre endure , if those that are high Monarchs and States would but omit this one Pronoun , I , this same Ego . It is true , in publique wayes they express themselves in the plurall number , We , but private resolutions are in the singular number , I. This for that little word , I. The second is Will , I will , that is a little word too ; But I may say of this little Will , this little word , as James saith concerning the Tongue , It is indeed a little member in the body , but it setteth the whole world on fire , and it selfe is set on fire of hell . So it is true that this same little Will it is but a little word , but it setteth whole Kingdomes on fire , it setteth whole Townes and Cities on fire , and it is it selfe s●ton fire of hell , Bernard hath an expression , Take away Will once , and there will be no hell . O the mischiefe that it doth in the world ! I will only say these two things to those that keepe such ado with these two little words , I , Will. First , That which thou dost so much pride thy selfe in , and thinkest thy selfe such a man that canst say , I will and I will , know , It may be as heavy a judgement of God upon thee as can befall thee in this world , for God to give thee up to thy will. There is nothing wherein God doth more let out his wrath upon the children of men here in this world , then in this , in giving them up to their will. Therefore tremble at this when thou hast so many expressions , I will and I will doe this . I will give you a Scripture or two for it , sutable to the businesse : shevving the wilfulnesse of those that had their will in wayes of false worship , perhaps some of you may be set upon this , that you will have this , and let men say what they can , you will have this used : The place is , Ezek. 20. 39. Goe ( saith God ) serve yee every one his idols , and hereafter also , if you will not hearken unto me . Goe , saith hee , you will not hearken to me , you heare out of the word what should be the way of my worship in the purity of it , oh say you , that is novelty , a new thing , and you will not have it thus , you answer not any arguments , but you cast it off , and say , you will not have it , wel saith God , go and serve your idols , if you will not heare me , if you beset upon your will , go and serve your idols , and take your fill of your own wayes . And Psal . 81. 11. My people would not hearken to my voyce , Israel would have none of me , they were all upon their will , they would not , and they would not : Marke what followeth , so I gave them up unto their owne hearts lusts , and they walked in their owne counsels . You will have your owne counsels , and your own will , and so God giveth you up to them , and then woe to you , you are undone . Secondly , you that are set upon your wils in that which is evil , know God is and will be as wilful toward you as you can be toward him . Marke that notable Text , Jer. 44. 25. that setteth out the notorious height of wickednesse that was in the people of those times who were so wilfull , You and your wives have both spoken with your mouths , & fulfilled with your hand that which is evill , you vvill not say onely you will doe it , but will doe it indeed . Well saith God , you have done so , you have both spoken with your mouths , and fulfilled with your hands , saying , We will surely perform the vowes wee have vowed , we have vowed it , and we will do it , we have vowed to burne incen use to the Queen of heaven , and to pour out drinke-offerings unto her ; you will surely accomplish your vowes , and surely performe your vowes ; you will goe on in your false wayes of worship ; mark what followeth in vers . 26. Therefore heare ye the word of the Lord , I have sworn saith the Lord , you have vowed , and I have sworne , I have sworne by my great Name , that my Name shall no more be named in the mouth of any man of Judah , in all the land of Egypt : and vers . 27. Behold , saith God , I will watch over you for evill , and not for good , and all the men of Judah that are in the land of Egypt shall be confirmed by the sword and by the famine untill there be an end of them . God will be as resolute as you for your hearts , as the stoutest sinner that liveth : you will , and God will , who shall have their will think you ? Answer to this you stout hearted that are farre from God , answer to this you stout children , and stout servants , and stout wives , you will and you will. A wilfull man never wanteth woe . If you will be resolute in any thing , my brethren , be resolute in that which is good , be resolute in the work of repentance : say with David , Psal . 32. I will confesse my sins , indeed I had many thoughts to come and shame my selfe , and open all unto God , but I could not get it off , at length I grew resolute , and said I will and I have sworne to keepe thy righteous Precepts ; and as they Mic. 4. we will walke in the name of the Lord our God ; and as Joshua , I and my Louse will serve the Lord , doe you what you will , wee are resolute that wee will serve the Lord. This is a blessed wilfulnesse indeed . Oh that 〈◊〉 ●outnesse and wilfulnesse of many people might be turned to this resolution for God and for his truth ! especially carry this note home with you , you that have had such often expressions of your will , you will and you will , and turn it unto the willing of that which is good , I will follow my lovers , sayes the Apostate , from God ; I will follow my Beloved , who is altogether lovely , let every gracious soul say . Fourthly , For she said : She profest what she would do . Profest sinnes are shamefull sins . It is an evill for sin to lye lurking in any ones heart , but for sin to breake out into open profession , this certainly is a great evil : This is to prove that she had done shamefully , because she said she would doe so and so . There is a great deceite in the hearts of many men , they are ready to say , I were as good say so as thinke so , I say so , and perhaps others think so , it were as good for me to speake it as to keepe it in my heart . My bre thren there are two deceits in this kind of speaking . First you suppose that when you speak so , that therefore it is not in your heart , and you make this comparison of what is in other mens hearts , and in your mouthes , as if the evil were in your mouthes onely , and in their hearts onely , as if the comparison lay thus , they think and doe not speak , and you speak and doe not thinke . Here is the deceit , for if you speake you have it in your hearts too , you both speak and think , for so the Scripture telleth us , that out of the abundance of the heart , the mouth speaketh ; if you speak maliciously you have a malicious heart , if you speake uncleanly , you have an uncleane heart , if oathes be in your mouthes , you have a profane heart . Secondly , here lyeth the deceit , as if you should have lesse in your heart because you vent it ; as your passionate people will say , I were as good vent my minde and then I shall be quiet . Thou deceivest thy selfe ; the venting of the corruption that lyeth in thy heart will never lessen it but increase it . It is not with the corruption of our hearts , as it is with liquor in a vessell , that the more is let out the lesse is within it ; but as it is with a fire in a house , that when it is kindled within and burstech out , there is not lesse within because it bursteth out , no , the more it bursteth out and flames , the more still b●rneth within : and as it is with water in a fountain , when it bursteth out of the fountain , there is never a whit the lesse water in the fountain , it may rather have the lesse by stopping , and fire may be lessened by smothering . Know therefore that professed wickedness it is aggravated wickednesse . It is true , secret sins may be more dangerous in regard of the cure , but they are more abominable to God in regard of the open dishonour that is done to him by them . The aggravation of the blood that was shed by the people , that God speakes of , Ezek. 24. 7. it is set out thus , The bloud that was shed , saith the text , it was not poured upon the ground to cover it with dust , that it might not cause fury to come up to take vengeance , you did not conceale the blood , you did not cover it , but set it upon the top of a rock ; what then ? Not being co vere● , but being professed and lad open , this did cause fury to come up with vengea●●● against them , Gods anger would have been against them if they had shed blood though they had covered it ; but to shed blood & not to cover it , it causeth the fury of the Lord to come with vengeance . So you know he saith in that place of Isa . Chap. 3. 9. They declared their sin as Sodome , and hid it not : Woe unto her soul , saith he , woe unto them when they shall presume to declare their sin as Sodome . And as I said before , God will be as wilfull in punishing a sinner , as a sinner is wilfull insinning ; so here God will be as professed in plauging , as thou shalt be professed in sinning for thy heart . That you shall see in that forenamed place of Ezek. they did not cover the blood , well marke it , saith the Text , I have set her bloud upon the top of the rock that it should not be covered ; Woe therefore to the bloody City , I will even make the pile for fire great , &c. I will be as profest in my plagues and punishments as you are profest in your sins . My brethren , if we will be profest in any thing , let us be professed in that which is good , let us do that as openly as we can , 2 Cor. 9. 13. the text saith there that God is glorified for their professed subjection to the Gospel , for their subjection of profession , so the words are . It is not enough for to subject to the Gospel , but there must be a professed subjection to it : therefore Rom. 10. 10. Confession with the mouth is there made as necessary to salvation as beleeving with the heart , they are put together . There may be times that confession may be called for as well as beleeving , and as necessary to salvation . I remember I have reade of one Gordius a martyr , who when his friends came to him , and would have him keepe his heart to himselfe , & only with his mouth to deny what in his heart he beleeved was true , Oh no saith he , it is fit for my mouth that was made for God should speake for God : And Zwinglius is of the opinion that we may even as well worship the Altar of Jupiter or Venus as hide our faith and profession when we live uuder Antichrist , such a speech he hath . The way to honour Religion & bring it into credit , it is for those that are godly to professe what they doe . I knew once one that was noble both in birth and grace , and having to doe oftentimes with those of his ranke , greatones , that would be scorning at Religion under the name of putirrnisme , he would usually take this course , when he was to come into such company he would begin himselfe & owne himselfe to be one of those that they called a Puritan , and so he prevented them , and by that meanes prevented much sin in them , and much scorne of Religion by thus owning of it . It is certain , that the best way for the honoring of Religion it for every one to owne it , though there be ignominous termes put upon it . If ever we were called to profession of what we doe beleeve , we are now called to it in these dayes . Certainly God professeth for us , God doth not onely respect us , but he doth professedly , he doth it openly , in the eyes before the faces of our adversaries . Let us not onely have God in our hearts , but professe his name openly before the faces of our adversaries . It is time now to do it . It had beenewell if . you had professed heretofore when Gods truth called for it . It may be many of you may be found to be guilty in betraying the truth of God for professing no sooner then you did , but however betray it not now for want of profession , be willing now to professe of what party you are , that as wee reade of Jonah Chapter 9. when he was in the storme , and the marriners awaking he saith unto them , I am an Hebrew that feare the God of heaven , which made the sea and the dry land , and so he goeth on in making an open profession of himselfe . My brethren , if we be not in a present storme , yet the clouds grow black , therefore awake you sluggards , you that are secure awake out of your security , and now professe what you are , I am an Hebrew that feare God , whatsoever they talke of such and such men under such ignominious terms and titles , I am one of them , and I am willing to appeare so . Many times you will be like Nichodemus you will come to JESUS by night , you are affraid to be seene : You would give in money to the Parliment , and help to forward that worke God hath in hand , but onely you are affraid to be seene . I know there may be possibly some occasion to keepe some men in from appearing , but not many , the cases are very rare ; Ordinarily , certainly it is not enough to do it , but to doe it professedly , let it bee declared who you are , and what side you take , She said I will goe after my lovers . If you say we live in wicked and evil times , it is dangerous to appeare , I may not onely keepe my heart right , but I will doe as much as another , but why should I appeare ? The worse the times are , the more thou shouldest appeare . Mark. 8. 38 Whosoever shal be ashamed of me in this adulterous generation , of him shal the Son of man be ashamed when he commeth in the glory of his Father , with his holy Angels , If the generation were holy , it were nothing to appeare , not to be ashamed or affraid ; but wee must not be either ashamed or affraid in the midst of an adulterous generation . 2. Why should wickedness have this advantage , that it dares appeare , but godlinesse dares not ? 3. If all should reason as you doe , what would become of the Cause ? why should others venture themselves more then you ? What is your flesh , your estate , your liberty more then theirs ? 4. You must appeare for examples sake , to provoke others . This is a duty as well as any . 5. If the adversaries prevaile , they will finde you out , except you meane to give up your consciences to them , and then you will escape no more then others ; to be sure you will not have so much peace as others who have most appeared . Fifthly , I will follow after my lovers , Who are they ? Either first they who they were in association withall , as the Egyptians and the Assyrians , ( and so I finde some Interpreters carry it ) or thef● Idols , and that is especially aymed at , but the the other may beare an Observation , and perhaps both may be included . It is a dangerous thing , very sinfull and vile for the people of God to joyne in aff●●ciation with Forraigners that are of a different Religion , to think to have help from them . The people of God , Jer. 42. were set upon this , to have their association with Egypt , and they could not be brought from it ; and if you read that Story , it will appear to be very vile and dangerous ; they seemed to yeeld unto God , that they would doe what hee would have them , and they would not goe into Egypt if he forbade it ; but in Chap. 43. when Ieremiah had told them the mind of God , that they should continue in the land of Iudah , and not goe down into Egypt , Then spake Azariah , and Joha●an , and all the proud men , saying unto seremiah , Thou speakest falsly , the Lord hath not sent thee to say , Goe not into Egypt to sojourn there . They are loth to break off their association with Egypt . I remember Gwalter in his Comment upon Hosea , though not upon this Text , telleth a story of the Grecian Churches , that in the yeare 1438. because they were afraid of the Turks breaking in upon them , they sent to the Bishop of Rome , that they would be under his subjection , meerly that they might have the help of the Latine Churches to keep them from the rage and tyrannie of their adversaries ; but within a few yeares they were destroyed , Constantinople and the Empire were subdued , so as Heathenisme and Atheisme prevailed , and this is the fruit saith hee of seeking the association of others in a sinfull way . But because this is not the chi●● thing that is aimed at we passe it by . She said she would goe after her Lovers , that is , her Idols . What those were we shall see by and by . Idolaters use to keepe good thoughts of their Idols . They call them their Lovers , they look upon their Idols as those that love them ; and hence they used to call them Baalim , from Baal , a husband . So it should be the care of the Saints , evermore to keep good thoughts of God , to look upon God as their Lover , as one that tendereth their good . Idolaters doe so to their Idols , shall not the Saints do so to the true God ? My brethren , let us not be ready to entertain hard thoughts of God , it is a dangerous thing . Gods great care is to manifest to us , and to all the world that he loveth us , and he hath done much to manifest to us here in England , and to our brethren of Scotland , that he loveth us and them . In Revel . 3. 9. the Text saith of the Church of Philadelphia , that God loved them . Forty yeares ago Master Brightman interpreted that Text of the Church of Scotland ; Philadelphia signifieth as much as brotherly love : You know how they are joyned in Covenant one with another , and wee see that those that said they were Iewes , they were the Church , the Church , but proved themselves to be of the Synagogue of Satan , are forced to bow before them ; and if they were not madde with malice , they must needs acknowledge that God hath loved that Church . And since God hath done great things for us , to manifest that he is the lover of England , let us then keep good thoughts of God. Seventhly , Idolaters highly prize the love of their Idols . They do not only maintain good thoughts of their Idols , or thinke that their Idols are their lovers , but they set a price upon them , they said I will follow my lovers , I must make account of their love , they must doe me good for ought I know more then any thing you speak of . It is true both of bodily whoredom and spirituall whoredom , I will onely make use of one Scripture to daunt the heart of whore-masters and uncleane wretches that so much prize the love of their whores and whore-masters . You prize their love , but what get you by it ? you get Gods hatred by it . You rejoyce that you have the love of your whores , and upon that God hateth and abhorreth you . Marke that good you will say . Thus , Pro. 22. 14. The mouth of a strange woman is a deepe pi● , he that is abhorred of the Lord shall fall therein . What get you by this ? your whores imbrace you , and God abhorres you . If there be any whore-master , any unclean wretch in this Congregation , either thou art an A●heist or this text must strike thee at thy heart . Art thou in that way and yet not repenting , thou art the man that this day God tells thee to thy face , that he abhorres thee . But how then should wee prize the love of JESUS CHRIST our husband ? Cant. 1. 4. The remembrance of thy love is better then wine . The Church prizeth the love of JESUS CHRIST more then men in the world prize their delight in wine . And my brethren doe you prize Christs love , and Christ will prize yours , and that is observable , according to the degree and way of your prizing Christs love , so Christ will prize your love . Cant. 4 18. you have there the same expression of Christs love to his Church , answerable to what hers was before , Thy love is better then wine saith the Church to Christ , How much better is thy love then wine ? saith Christ to the Church : Eightly , I will follow my lovers . In bodily and spirituall whoredome there is a following hard after those things they commit whoredome withall . I will follow them and not onely say they are my lovers , but I will expresse it by following of them . The heart of whore-masters and Idolaters do follow hard after their uncleannesse in bodily and spirituall filthynesse . First for bodily filthyness , observe whore-masters how they follow their lovers , Josephus in his Antiquities tells us this strange story of one Decius Mundus , that offered to give so many hundred thousand Drachmies , that came to six thousand pound English money to satisfie his lust one night with a whore , yet could not obtaine his desire neither . Will not you be content now who have been guilty of spending a great part of your estate , in a way of uncleannesse , now to doe as much for Religion , for God , and Christ , and his Kingdome , as ever you have done for your whores ? If there should be any in this place that have beene profuse for their uncleannesse , and yet now are strait handed in these publike affaires , such as these are fitter to be taken out of Christian congregations , and to be shut up in slies . For spirituall whoredome , I shall shew you how superstitious and Idolatrous people as they prize their idols , so they follow hard after their lovers . You know that story of the children of Israel when the Calfe was to be set up , upon proclamation all the men and women tooke off their ear-rings and their jewels , and brought them to Aaron to make the Calfe . What a shame will it be to us if we should keepe our eare-rings , and our jewels , and things perhaps that have not seene the sunne a great while , that we should keepe them now when God calleth for them ! Let women do that for God & his truth , for your own liberties & posterities that they did for their Idols . Though you have care-rings , and jewels , and rings that you prize much , yet let them be given up to this publicke cause . And it were a shame that gold-rings should be kept meerly to adorn the fingers when the Church and State is in such necessity as it is . Away with your niceties now and your fineness and bravery , and look to necessities , and to the preservation of the lives and liberties both of your selves and your children , If you should see a malignant party come with their spheares and pikes , and your children sprawling upon the toppes of them , and their blood gushing out , what would your gold-rings , what would all your niceties and braver doe you good ? I will give you for this ( because it is a point of such concernment ) foure notable expressions in Scripture about Idolaters eagerness and earnestness of spirit in following after their Idols . The first is Isa , 57. 5. The Text saith there , that they were inflamed after their Idols , they were on fire after them . The second is , Jer. 50. 38. They were madde upon their Idols . Thirdly , You have a text more sutable to that I am speaking of ; It is Isa 46. 6. it is said there , that they did lavi●h gold out of the bagga . They did not onely give their gold rings that were of no use , and part with that which they could well spare , but they did lavish gold that was in the bagge : they would not onely bring some of it , but they did lavish it , for so the word is ; and they lavished not their silver but their gold , and that not a piece or two out of a paper , but out of the bagge , they brought their bagges of gold , and did lavish gold out of them , and this they did for their Idols , Oh what a shame is it then that any should be penurious , and not come off full in the publicke cause of the Church and Common-wealth ? The fourth Text is Jerem. 8. 2. and there we have five expressions together of the pursuance of the heart of Idolaters after their Idols , the like wee have not in all the booke of God in one verse . Speaking of their Idols . First he saith , whom they have loved . Secondly , whom they have served . Thirdly , after whom they have walked . Fourthly , whom they have sought . And Fifthly , whom they have worshipped : and all this in this one verse , O how are the hearts of people set upon the wayes of Idolatry ! I remember Cambden reports of a King of England , Canutus , that spent as much upon one crosse , a● the revenues of the Crowne came unto in a whole yeer , he was so profuse in charges about his superstitious vanities . Master Calvin in a Sermon of his upon that Text seeke ye my face , hath this expression . Foolish Idolaters when they endure much in their pilgrimages spend their money , waste their bodies , and abused in their travail , yet they goe on , and thinke all sufficiently recompenced , if they may see and worship some Image of a Saint or holy relicke : Shall the beholding , saith he , some dead carrion or apish Idol have more power to strengthen them then the face of God in his ordinances shall have to strengthen us ? My lovers that gave me my bread and my water , my wool and my flaxe , mine oyle and my drinke . What were these Idols ? The Idol that gave their bread was Caeres , shee was the goddesse that the Heathens did worship for corne . For their water , Luna , the Moone was the Idol they worshipped for their drinke , and all moist things . For their wool and flaxe Ashtaroth was their god : And for their oyle Fryapus . The seventy translate that which wee say here wooll , clothes ; and that which we say flaxe , they linnen ; and they likewise for the fuller expression adde a word or two more , and all other necessary things . So they , though their Idols gave them all , flaxe , and wool , and hempe and all things . Observe from hence . Idolaters have a great many idols to supply their severall wants . My lovers , in the plural number . The idols of the Heathen do not supply all good , but one one thing , and another another thing . And that is the difference betweene the true God and Idols . The excellency of the true God is , that he is an universal good , we have all good , flaxe , and oyle , and bread , and wine , and all in one , in our God , in our lover . And that is the reason that God chalengeth the whole heart . Idols are content with a partiall obedience , because they are but partiall in bestowing of good things , but God justly requires the whole heart of his worshippers , because he is an universall good to them . My Lovers that gave me my bread , &c. Marke , The end that Idolaters ay me at in their worship is very low . They follow their lovers and are very earnest , for what I pray ? for their wool , and their flaxe , and their bread , and their water , their oyle and their drinke . These are the things they aime at ; they desire no more , they look no higher , may their flesh be satisfied , give them but-liberty to sport on the Lords day , to have their feasts , their wakes , merry meetings and they care for no more . Their spirits are vile , and accordingly is their worship . Therefore their worship is external , it is bodily , because their aimes are at externall and bodily things . As a mans end is , so is a man , either base or honourable . There are many men that cry out as if they aimed at God and Religion in many things they doe , they make a noise about Religion , and God , and Christ , and his Ordinances , and the publicke good , but the truth is , their aimes are at gaine and credit , and at their wool and their flaxe , and herein they shew the baseness of their spirits , like the lapwings that make a loud cry , as if they were come neere their nests , when their neasts are somewhere else . VVhatever their cry be for God and the publicke good , but if you marke them , their neast is in their wool , in their flax , in their profit in their honour and preferment , in these outward things . But the end of the true worshippers of God is a great deale higher , they soare aloft , there is a spirituall heighth of soule whereby they are raised upwards by the grace of God. A godly mans feete are where a wicked mans head is , that which he accounteth his chiefe good , a godly man can trample under his feete . He lookes at God himselfe , at his service , he worshippeth the high God : he is a child of Abraham , not Abraham but Abraham , what is the signification of that ? Pater excelsus ; a high Father , for he is the father of children of high spirits , not only of Children that are beleevers , but of those that have high & raised spirits , so Abraham signifieth a high father . Cleopatria told Marcus Antonius , that he was not to fish and angle for gudgeons and trouts , but for Castles , & Forts , and Towns ; so I may say of a Christian , he doth not fish & angle , especially in matters of Religion , for wool , and flax , and oile , he hath no such low and base ends , but at God , and Christ , and heaven , and glory , and imortality , he lookes there ; he serves God not for these things , hee desires these things , that by them he may be fitted more to serve God. One that hath beene acquainted with the free grace of God in Christ will serve God for himselfe without indenting with him , he will be willing to go into Gods Vineyard , and not indent for a penny a day . You that will indent with God in his service and will have your penny , you who have such low and meane spirits , God may give you your penny and there 's an end of you . But further marke , there is another observation flowes from hence . There ends are ●ow , they looke no higher then corne , and flaxe , and wooll , and oyle . Hence it followes , that that way of Religion that men can get most bread , and wool , and flaxe , and oile by , that is the way that most people will follow , because the hearts of most people are low and base , and they aime at no higher things . That way of Religion that most estate is got by , that can please the sence , that is the Religion that pleases most people . It is the speech of one Pamchtius an Heathen , Make me a Bishop , saith he , and though I be now a Heathen yet I will bee a Christian as well as any other : He saw in what pompe the Bishops lived , and by that he thought it was a fine thing to be a Christian . By outward pompe and glory Antichrist draweth many followers , they go where they can have most wool and flaxe , they can get most preferment that way . I remember a story I have read of AEneas Silvius , hee observed the reason why the Pope prevailed against the Councel , though it was a general councell , which hee said was above the Pope , though afterwards when he came to be Pope himselfe his minde was changed , but how came it to passe that the Pope alwayes prevailed ? this is the reason , saith he , the Pope hath a great many places of preferment and honour to give , the general councel hath none , the general Councel can enquire after the truth , and present the word , and can tell what is Gods mind , but it hath no honour , no promotion , no preferment to give , therefore alas the general Councel prevailes little ; the Pope getteth all , and all because he hath Bishopricks , and Cardinals places , and livings , and great honours to bestow . Luther in his Comment upon Hosea , and upon this Text tells a notoble story of one that he knew that lived like a Noole man by his many Ecclesiasticall preferments , who when he was at his table , and bread and wine was brought to the table , that was excellent bread and wine , he ( pointing to it with his finger ) said these are the things tha● make me that I cannot leave this kinde of life , and so after he came to be a Bishop , who had several Canon-ships before . So certainly these are the arguments that prevaile most in the world , arguments taken from bread , and flaxe , and wool and oyle , are stronger arguments then any taken from the Scripture , then any thing taken from the honour of the Father , Sonne , and holy Ghost , When men can come with Sauls arguments , 1 Sam. 22. 7. Will the sonne of Jesse give every one of you fields and vineyards , and make you all Captaines of thousands , and Captains of hundreds ? what will you follow him ? can he prefer-you ? O no , he can doe little for you ; so I say when men come with this argument , you go along in this way , I pray what will this bring you in ? what preferment will you get this way ? you may get preserment in the other way , this drawes , this prevails . It was a speech , not many yeers agoe , in a publicke Commencement at Cambridge , made by the Vice-Chancelour , speaking to the young Scholars , wishing them to take heed of being Puritans , what can you get in that way saith he ? you shall live poorely , perhaps you may have some three halfe-penny ben●fice in following that way ; but in the other way come to be children of the Church , and then you may be sure to have good benefices , you may come to be Prebends , to be Deans , to be Bishops : Thus he perswaded the young scholars to take heed of Puritanisme . There is a mighty strength in this Argument upon the hearts of most . Hence the poverty of Christ is great scandall and offence to most people , when they see that Religion will not bring them flaxe , and wool , and oyle , but that they must live poorely , they scandalize at this exceedingly . It is reported in the story of Charles the great , that he having war with an heathen King , Aygolandus King of Africa , because this King would make peace with Charles , hee made some profession as if hee would be a Christian , and Charles was very glad of this , and got him to his Court to parley with him ; being in his Court he saw 30. poore people that Charles fed , who were halt , and may med , and blind , and in a very poore garb , Charles the great did it on purpose , because he would have poverty before his eyes continually , that hee might not be too high in , and proud of his prosperity . Now when Aygolandus saw them , who are these saith hee ? These saith Charles are the servants of God : nay then replyed he , if your God will keep his servants no better , I will be none of his ; I thought to be a Christian , and to serve your God , but seeing those that serve him have no better food nor no better rayment then these , I will be none of those servants . Thus it is with many , thought their consciences are convinced which is the best way , yet because of the want of flaxe , and wool , and oyle , they will not come off . Further observe , It is a shamefull thing for men to make Religion to be in subjection to their wool , and corne , & oyle . They have done shamefully in this . Many wil do this , but this is very shamefull . Before I shewed that it is shamefull to subject Religion to politique affairs , to the publique State of a Kingdome , but now to subject Religion to our owne base sensualities , to our own particular ends , for profit and preferment , oh this is very shamefull . Gain gotten this way , it is filthy lucre , as the Scripture saith of it , yet hujusmodi lucri dulcis odor , the smell of this gaine is very sweet unto many . What , is thy Religion serviceable to gain , to a trade , to sensuall lusts ? what is this but to stop the holes of a mudd wall with diamonds and precious pearls ? That were a folly you will say , that because you have a hole to be stopped in a mud wall , to put in diamonds and pearls to stop it , and to make such precious things serviceable to such base ends , thou dost as much , thou wouldst have that which shall be a content to thy flesh , and thou wilt make Religion subject to that , thou art as base and vile in this . Religion my brethren is the glory of a man , the glory of a nation , and shall we turn this glory into shame ? It is a base thing in Magistrates to subject the acts of justice to their base ends , for gain and profit ; for a Judge , or a Justice of peace , or a Prelate to shew most favour where there is most flaxe , and wool , and oyle , where Butts , or rundlers of Sack , or the like are to be got , this is basenesse in them : But to subject Religion to such base ends as these , this is the villany of all basenesse . A generous spirit is far from this . It is observed of the generous spirit of Luther , that when a Papist was vexed at him for his preaching and writing , faith a Bishop , there is such a stir with this Luther , why do you not stop his mouth with preferment ? As it hath been the speech of a Bishop here in this land , that hearing that a Kinsman of his was a zealous Preacher ; well falth he , let me alone , I will silence him ; and indeed hee did , How ? He gave him two livings , and that silenced him presently . So here , why do you not stop this Luthers mouth with preferment ? He presently answered , That Germane beast cares not for money , he is above money . He called him beast in his anger , whereas he might have called him an Angel , because his spirit was above these things , his mouth would not be stopped with them . Some mens lust of malice goes beyond their lust of covetousnesse , like those Cockatrices , Jer. 8. 17. that will not be charmed , it is a shamefull thing then that our zeale for God should not goe beyond our lust for gaine , to subject your Religion to flaxe , and wool , and oyle , it commeth from a base diffidence in God , as if he would not provide for us such outward things , therefore Luther hath this expression in his Comment upon Hosea . They followed their idols for bread , and wool , and flaxe , and oyle , as if God would not give bread to his Church , or as if it were more safe to goe to the Devill for it , as if we could not have wool enough , and flaxe enough , and oyle enough from God. Oh let us trust God for all , for our cloaths , for our meate and drink , for our estates , for our children , God certainely will feede his Church . And yet those men that have hearts so base themselves , they thinke it impossible for any man but to be taken with such arguments : They may talke of Religion and conscience say they , but I will warrant you they may be taken off with money , and preferment , places of profit and honour . They think it impossible for men to stand against these arguments . It putteth me in mind of that speech that Balaak used to Balaam , Did not I earnestly send unto thee to call thee , wherefore camest thou not unto me ? Am I not able to promote thee to honour ? As if he should have said , Thou art a strange man indeed , did not I send thee word that I would promote thee to great honour , and give thee silver and gold , or whatsoever thou wouldst have ? What will not preferment and money tempt you ? I thought this would have tempted any man in the world . Thus many think that whatsoever mens Spirits are , they may be taken off with promotion and money : But let all such know that there are a generation of men in the world of true generous Spirits , that are above all these things , and take as much delight , and have as much sweetnesse in denying these places of honour and preferment , and gaine , as those that offer them have in the enjoying of them . It was a notable speech Plynie had concerning Cato ( It is in his Epistle Dedicatory to his naturall History ) speaking of what a notable spirit he was , Cato ( saith he ) tooke as much glory in those dignities and honours that he denyed , as he did in those he did enjoy , Certainly it is so with the Saints , the true generous spirit of Christians take as much content in those places of preferment they deny for Christ , as in any gaine they enjoy . There is no tempting of such men . Let us pray therefore for those that are intrusted by us , not onely for civill things , but for matters of Religion , that temptations for bread , & corne , and wool , and flaxe , and wine , and oilemay never tempt them , that the preferment , and gaine may never byasse their spirits , may never sway them . These meanes have been assayed ( certain it is ) totempt some of them with , such wayes have not been left untryed by some , and have prevailed , but thorough Gods mercy he hath preserved others , and he hath made the world to know that Christ hath a people to whom Religion and the publicke good is more deare then all the flaxe , and wooll , and wine , and oyle in the world , then all the estates , and high places , and great preferments that can be offered them . And now the Lord our God keepe this in their and in our hearts for ever . The Fifth Lecture . HOSEA 2. 6. 7. Therefore behold , I will hedge up thy way with thorns , and make a wall , that she shall not finde her paths . And she shall follow after her lovers , but she shall not overtake them ; and shall seeke them , but shall not finde them : them shall she say , I will goe and returne to my first husband ; for then was it better with me then now . THe last day ( you may remember ) wee spake of that reason that God giveth in the former verse , why he would shew Israel no mercy , because that she hath done shamefully , and said she would go after her lovers that gave her her bread and her water , her wool and her flaxe , her oyle and her drinke . There are yet one or two observations ( that time would not give us leave to speak of the last day ) in those words . I will onely give you a hint of them , and passe suddenly to these two verses . The first is this , Prosperity and successe in an evil way is a great hardning of the hearts of men in their evil . I will follow after my lovers , for they give me bread , and water , and wooll , and flax , and the like . I remember Eusebius reports that Maximilian the Emperour in an Edict of his against the Christian , crying out of Christian Religion as an excrable vanity , & seeking to confirme the Heathens in the worshipping of their idol gods . Behold saith he , how the earth bringeth forth fruit for the husbandman in abundance , how our medows are adorned with flowes and h●rbs , and moistned with the dews of heaven , what health we have , and what quiet and peaceable lives ; and thus he goeth on in seeking to conforme the hearts of Idolaters in their wicked wayes . Prosperity in a wicked way is exceeding hardning . That story of Dyonisius is famously known , having committed sacr●ledge against their Idol-gods , robbing their Temples , yet his voyage being prospetous , after he had ended his journey , hee boasted himselfe that though he did not worship the gods as others did , yet he prospered as much as they . In that yeere when those Innovasions in Gods worship were principaly brought in amongst us , especially in that Diocese of Norwich , is proved to be a very fruitfull yeere ; and one Commissary among the rest in his Court , after the harvest was taken in , speakes to the Countrey-men in this way , Doe you not see how God prospereth us ? What a plentifull harvest have we had this yeere ? This is since you began to worship God with more decency then you we●● wont to doe . Thus attributing all the goodnesse of God to that way . Let it be all our prayers , that God will never prosper us in asinfull way . Further , It is very observable how often this word My is iterated : Give me My bread , and My water , and My flax , and My oyle , and My wooll , nothing but My. We noted the last day , what hurt those little words , those particles [ I ] and [ Will ] doe : Now we are to consider what evil there is in this particle [ MY ] Hence the observation is , That carnall heatts looke upon what they enjoy as their owne , and thinke they may use it as their owne ; and especially such as are Idolaters . Though they will acknowledge that that they have commeth from the Idols , ( as here they did , for they said their Lovers gave it them , yet when they had these things , they thought they might do with them what they would , then they were theirs , Mine , and mine , and all is mine . Thus it is usual for carnall spirits to acknowledge in the general that that they have commeth from God , but when they have it , then it is their owne they think ; they little thinke that God reserveth the propriety of what they have after he hath given it them . You mistake if you think that that is all the acknowledgement you owe to God for what you enjoy , that you had it from God ; but you must acknowledg like wise that God reserveth his propriety after he hath given it you . God doth never give any thing in that way that one friend giveth to another ; a friend may give you a gift , yet when you have it , it is your owne , and you may use it as you please , your friend parteth with his own propriety . God never giveth any thing so , as to part with his own propriety ; though he hath given it you , yet you cannot say it is Mine , in respect of God , it is still his . There is no such bond upon conscience as to use all the comforts we have for God as this , & see that all comes from him in the way of a covenant of grace . I say this it is that will lay a bond upon conscience , to make use of your estates , and of all you enjoy for God , and not thinke to employ them for your own ends : It is not the slight acknowledgement that Idolaters have , that all comes from God , will doe it ; Carnal men looke upon that they have , comming from God through second causes , and no further ; but a Christian lookes upon that which he hath as coming from God in a covenant of grace , and this engageth the heart strongly to use all for God , from whom all is received in such a way . Verse 6. Therefore behold , I will hedge up thy way with thornes , and make a wall , that she shall not finde her paths , &c. These two verses are the workings of Gods bowels of mercy towards his Elect amongst Israel , in the midst of the most dreadfull threatnings against her . They are as it were a Parenthesis of grace ( in the Chapter ) to the Elect , though mingled with some severity . They are indeed the Epitome of the whole Chapter , for I told you in the division of the Chapter at the beginning , that those were the two parts , declaring Israels sinne , with threatning judgement , and yet promising mercy unto the Elect , unto some amongst them . The first part is from the beginning to the 14. verse , the second from the 14. verse to the end ; Only this 6. and 7. ver . commeth in the midst , as it were a parenthesis , and containeth the sum of all the other ; for hee was in a threatning way altogether in the 4. and 5. verses , and you shall finde him in the 8. vers . and so on , going in a threatning way again : Onely in this 6. and 7 , verses is abu●dance of grace , though mixed with some severity , as you shall see in the opening of them . For the explication of the words . Therefore . This must have reference to some-what before , and answereth to a Wherefore , Therefore , Wherefore ? Because I have dealt with you by the way of my Prophets ; in convincing , in admonishing , in threatning , and all this will not doe , therefore I will deale with you in another way . Therefore behold . ] That way of mine that I now speak of , it is a singular way , you shall find much of the grace of God in this way , a wonderfull way that I will deale with you in now , Behold . I will hedge up thy way . ] There is a two-fold hedge that God makes about his people ; There is the hedge of protection to keep evill from them , and there is the hedge of affliction to keep them from evill . First , the hedge of protection , that you have in Isa . 5. 5. where God threatneth that he will take away the hedge from his vineyard , he will take away his protection ; and so it is said of Job , that God had hedged him about ; but that is not the hedg heer meant , it is the hedg of affliction . I will hedge up thy way , that is , I will bring fore and heavy afflictions upon you , but yet in a way of mercy , these afflictions shall be but as a hedge to keepe you from evill , they shall not do evill to you , or bring evill upon you . I will hedge ●p thy way with thornes . ] That is , I see you will be going on in these wayes of Idolatry and false worship , I will make them difficult to you , you shall goe through thornes ; if you will goe to your Idols , you shall not get to your Idols , but you shall be pricked . It is a Metaphor taken from a husband-man , who when the cattle will break over pastures , makes thick hedges that they shall not get over , they shall be pricked , it shal be with much trouble if they do goe over . So I will deal with you saith God. Or when a husband-man seeth passengers make a path in his ground too broad , and so spoile the grasse or the corn , hee layeth thornes in the way that they cannot goe into his corne ; or if they doe , they shall goe with some trouble : so saith God , I will hedge up your way with thorns . And make a wall . ] Maceriabo Maceriam , I will wall a wall , so the words are . It may be they will get through the thorns , but though they do get through I have another way to deale with them , I will come with stronger afflictions and they shall be of more power to keepe them from their same , they shal be as a wall , and though they get through the thorns , they shal not get over the wall . That she shall not find her paths . ] Mark the change of the person , that is observable , I will ●●dge up thy way , first , and then I will make a wall , and she shall not find her paths ; the person is changed , and so wee have it often in Scripture , that is to signifie some kind of perturbation of spirit , that manner of speech is usuall amongst men when their spirits are troubled , they speak sometimes in one person , sometimes in another : And indeed the Lord here speaks after the manner of men , as if his Spirit were troubled at the perversenesse of his people . Besides the change of the person here is to expresse some indignation of God against their perversenesse , therefore he speakes as if he would turn from them , and rather speake to some body else , as if hee should say , I speake to these , yet they are stubborn and stout , well I will speake to all that are about them , to all the beholders , take notice of their stubbornesse , and perversnesse , and judge between them and me . And she shall follow after her lovers , but shee shall not over take them ; and she shall seeke them , but she shall not finde them . In the 5. ver . it was but I will goe after my lovers , Vadam , but here it is , shee will follow , from that root which signifieth persequor , to follow with eagernesse , it is not only sectari , but insectari , the word is the very same that is used for persecutors , who eagerly pursue those that they doe persecute . Psal . 7. 5. David speaking of his enemies following of him , the same word is used that is here , save me , saith he , Lest the enemy persecute my soule , It is the same , and so the Seventy turn it . Yea , and beside the form of the word , it being ( in Piel ) that signifieth to do a thing auxiously , and diligently , carefully , whereas ( in Cal. ) it signifieth onely a bare doing of a thing : but when it commeth into forme , as those that are skilfull in the Hebrew tongue know that fignifieth to doe a thing with care , that solicitiousnesse , and diligence , so therefore it is turned by Polanus , anxie prosecutus est , She hath prosecuted or followed with a great deale of care . So that this is more then the other , for it seems that after she had some affliction she grew worse for a while , and was more eager upon her Idols then she was before . But she shall not over take them . Though she be never so much set upon that way of evill , yet I will take a course to keep her from it , she shall not overtake them . Yea She shall seeke them , but shall not finde them . The word signifieth to seeke with a great deale of endeavour , not onely to seeke in ones thought and minde , but to goe on to walke up and downe that wee may finde it , is by the Seventy turned by divers words that signifie a seeking more then ordinary . But shall not find them . Let them be never so set upon their ways of Idolatry , yet I will keep them from them . Then shall she say , I will goe , &c. This shall be the effect of it . One would think all this were nothing but threatning , oh no , it is mercy , for it is for this end , that she might at length say , I will goe and returne to my first husband , &c. You may take them in the meaning of these versus , and the scope of them in this short paraphrase : As if God should say , Oh you Israelites , all you have grievously sinned against me in forsaking me , and following of your lovers , sore and heavy evills are ready to befall you , even you my elect ones , upon whom my heart is for good , you have involved your selves in the common guilt of this wickednesse , therefore even you must expect to be involved in the common calamity that shall come upon the nation , and when you are under those calamities , know that I know how to make a difference between sinner and sinner , though guilty of the same sin , though under the same affliction , that what shall be for the destruction of some , shall be in mercy to others , it shall be but to hedg up your ways , to keep you from further sinning , to make your wayes of sinne difficult , that so your soules might be saved : and although your hearts will be a long time perverse , and will not come in and submit to me , yet I will so order things in the way of my providence , that at length I will so worke upon your hearts , that you shall come in and return unto me , you shal bethink your selves and remember what sweetnesse once you had in my wayes , and you shall take shame to your selves , and acknowledge that it was then farre better with you then it is now , and so I will remain to be your God , and you shall give up your selves to worship and serve me for ever . This is the meaning and scope of the words . Now then having the words thus opened and paraphrased , take the severall observations , for they are exceeding full , and very sweet and sutable . First , from the generall the observation is , Though such as are in covenant with God may for their sins be involved in the same judgement with others , yet God will make difference between them and others that are not in covenant with him : God will have other ends in his afflictions towards his people then hee hath towards others , though the difference be not in the things that they suffer , yet the difference is very broad and wide in the ends for which they suffer . When the bryars and thornes are set before God , it is that they may be destroyed , the fire of Gods anger passeth through them to destroy them ; but when God cometh to his people , though some anger be stirred up for a while , yet all the fruit thereof it is to take away their sinne . See what difference God makes between some and some even under the same affliction , in that 24. of Jer. ver . 5. I do not know a more remarkable place in the Scripture for this purpose , saith God there , speaking of the basket of good figges , I will acknowledge them that are carried captive of Iudah , whom I have sent out of this place into the land of the Caldeans for their good . Though they be carried into the Land of the Caldeans , I will acknowledg them there to be my people , and it shall be for their good . Well now there was likewise a basket that had very naughty figs , and they were carried away captive too , both went into captivity , what doth he say of them ? I will deliver them ( saith he , vers . 9. ) to be removed into all the kingdomes of the earth for their hurt . I will 〈◊〉 at their hurt when I deliver them into captivity . This should be a mighty support unto the Saints under all their afflictions , though the affliction be the same to sence and view with that of the wicked , yet you see the difference is broad . It is true , may the troubled heart say , there may be different ends of Gods afflicting some & others ; hee may afflict some for tryall , and others for their sins ; but what will you say if an affliction come upon us for our sins ? Is there a difference here ? Yes my brethren , though your afflictions come upon you from your sins , if you be in covenant with God , the difference still may hold , for so it is here , those afflictions that here are spoken of , God calleth the hedge and the wall , they were fore afflictions , and they were for their sins , for their perversness , and yet God intendeth good and mercy to them in those afflictions : Here is the vertue of the Covenant of grace , it takes out the sting , and venome , and curse even of afflictions , that are not onely for tryal but for sin , they are to keepe you from greater misery ; if God bring some misery upon you ( it so appeareth unto you ) yet being in covenant with him , this is the blessing of God upon you , that those troubles are to keep you from greater misery that would befall you . That for the general . Now for the particulars , as the words lye , Therefore behold . This inference therefore I told you it was as if God should say , thou wilt still goe on , notwithstanding all admonitions and meanes that I shall use by my Prophets , therefore behold I will doe thus and thus , From hence we may observe , first , There is even in the Saints such a slavish disposition remaining that they will stand out against God along time even against admonitions exhortations , convictions , and threatnings of his word . Not only the reprobate will doe so , but such is the perversnesse of the hearts of men , that even the elect of God will many times do so , this is a sore and grievous evill that it should be said so of them , for if there be ingenuity in the spirit of men , the very notice of the minde of God is enough to cause the heart to yeeld , and surely grace doth make the heart of a man ingenuous , and God expects that there should be melting of spirit at the very notice given of his displeasure , yet behold even in the hearts of the godly many times there remaineth so much slavishnesse , that they will not come in but upon Gods dealing very hardly with them , they must have many afflictions , they must be whipped home before they will returne home , God must send the dog many times to worry his sheepe before they will come in . This God complains of Jer. 2. 14. Is Israel a servant ? is he a homs-borne-slave ? why is he spoiled ? ver . 17. Hast thou not procured this unto thy selfe ? So it may be said of many , even of the Saints when we see how the wayes and dealings of God are toward them , yea even God himselfe speakes thus , What , is such a one a servant ? is he a slave ? is not such a one my child ? how is it then that hee must be dealt with like a slave , like a servant ? Secondly , Therefore , because one meanes will not do it , namely my Prophets admonishing , and threatning , therfore I will do thus & thus , therefore I will consider of some other way to deale with you . The observation is . VVhen one means will not keepe from sinne either those that wee have to deale with , or our selves , we must not rest there , but set even our braines on work to look after other meanes . What will not this do it ? Is there any things else that possibly may doe it ? That means then shall be used . Thus God ( as we may speak with reverence ) even studyes his administrations towards his people when he is frustrated in one , and if that do not do it , he bethinks with himselfe , is there any thing else will do it ? if there be any thing in the world can do it , it shal not be left unattempted . God doth not presently cast off his people , because they stand out against him in the use of one meanes . It is true , for others that are not in covenant with him , God is quick with them , and if they come not in presently , he cuts them off , and will have ●o more to do with them , but for his own people though they stand out long , yet God tryeth one meanes after another , and after that another . This is the grace of God towards his own . It should be our care to imitate God in this , when you are to deale with others that are under you , with your children or servants , do not satisfie your selves in this , I have admonished them , and threatned them , and perswaded them , What then ? yet they will not come in : What will you have no more to do with them then ? Will you cast them off presently ? You should study what further course may be taken , study their dispositions , What do I think will work upon them if this do not ? will faire meanes ? will foule meanes ? vvill any thing do it ? if any thing will , you should labour to deale with them that way . So for your own hearts , when you are convinced of the evill of your own hearts , it is true your consciences will not be quiet unlesse you use some meanes against that sinne that is in your heart , well , but I have used meanes , I have layed the word to my heart , the threatnings , the promises to my heart , and I have followed Gods ordinances : will it not doe ? will not my heart come off ? Is there no other meanes to be used ? what doe you say to the afflicting of your soule ? Try that ; you have layed the word to your heart , and you finde it doth not work , try the afflicting of your soules in humilliations , fasting , and prayer , for the overcoming of your sinnes . Thus God doth , when admonitions and exhortations of the Prophets vvill not doe , yet saith God , I will try another way , I will bethinke me of some other course , I will hedge up their way with thorns , & I will see whether I can bring them in that way . These two from the inference Therefore . From the note of attention , Behold , we have an excellent usefull observation that naturally springeth up . For God to make the way of sin to be difficult to sinners , is a most singular mercy . Howsoever alwaies it doth not prove so , but take it at the worst , yet it is better for the way of sin to be hedged with thorns , & to be made difficult to us , then to have the smoothest way that possibly can bee . As it is one of the greatest judgements of God upon wicked men to lay stumbling blocks before them in the way of righteousnesse ; so it is one of the greatest mercies of God to his children to lay stumbling blocks ●●d difficulties before them in the way of sin . It is an 〈◊〉 way of Gods dealing even with reprobates , with those he hoth no love unto , that in the wayes of godlinesse , in the way to life , he in his just judgement layeth stumbling blocks before them , and they appeare very difficult to them , the hedge of thornes compasses about the way of righteousnesse to the wicked , therefore you shall finde it in Pro. 15. 19. that the way of the slothfull man is said to be as an hedge of thornes ; that is , a slothfull man ( who is a wicked man there ) hee lookes upon any duty that he should perform as compast about with an hedge of thornes , God in his just judgement suffereth difficulties at least to appeare to him in the way of his duties , that makes him to have no mind to them . Now this is a grievous judgement of God to cause the way of his feare to appeare so difficult , and so scare them from it , What should I medling with such & such wayes ? I see I must suffer thus and thus , there are these and these stumbling blocks that I must go over , these and these troubles that I must meete withall , I were better sit still and be quiet , I shall never be able to goe through . Such stumbling blocks God layes in the way of godlinesse before the wicked , and they stumble at them & fall , and break their necks . On the other side , God in abundance of mercy casteth stumbling blocks in the way of sin before his people that they cannot get over , if they stumble , it is but to break their shins and to save their soules . But when the wicked stumble , they breake their necks , and damn their soules . But now the wayes of God are plaine to the righteous , Prov. 8. 9. They are all plain to him that understandeth , and right to him that findeth knowledge . Gods wayes are very plain to the godly , and sins wayes are very difficult ; but on the other side , to the wicked Gods wayes are very difficult , and the wayes of sin are very plain . Oh unhappy men , sayes Luther , when God leaveth them to themselves , and doth not resist them in their lusts ! woe , woe to them at whose sinnes God doth wink , when God lets the way to hell be a smooth and pleasant way . That is a heavy judgement , and a signe of Gods indignation against men , a token of his rejection of them , that he doth not intend good unto them . You blesse your selves many times that in the way of sinne you finde no difficulty ; if a whore-master , or a malicious man , who would accomplish his owne ends , find all things goe on as he desires , so that he hath not any rub in his way , no not so much as a prick , he blesseth himselfe . Blesse thy self ? If thou knewest all , thou hast cause to howle , and wring thy hands , for the curse of God is upon thee , a dreadfull curse to make the way of sinne pleasant . On the other side , perhaps many of Gods Saints when they find the wayes of sinne somewhat difficult to them , they are troubled at it , that they cannot have their will. Troubled ? thou hast cause to blesse God who hath thus crossed thee , for it is an argument of much love to thee . There is a Behold put to this , that God should be so mercifull to them , to make their wayes of idolatry and supersition difficult to them . From hence these three observations : I will hedg up her way with thorns . First , there is much bruitishness in the hearts of Gods people . Not onely slayishnesse that was before , but bruitishness too : That is thus , they must not only be dealt withall as slaves ( hardly ) and so be brought home , but as brute beasts , they must have some present evill upon them , or otherwise they will not return out of their evill way , except their sin be for the present grievous and troublesome to them . It is not enough ( you know ) to threaten brute beasts , but they must have some present evill upon them , if wee would keep them from such a place we would not have them goe unto . A man that hath some understanding , though he hath a slavish spirit , yet he may be kept for feare of future evils ; but when a man comes to this , that nothing but present evils will keep him off , hee is worse then a slave in this , he cannot be kept from sinne by the exercise of his reason , God must also deale with him as a brute beast , God must come and let some present evill be upon him to prick him , or else he will goe on in an evill way . This is brutishness , even in the hearts of the Saints . Secondly , hence we may see the pronenesse of mens natures to Idolatry the way must be hedged up to keep men from it . It is not enough to forewarn men of it , but all means that can be used is little enough to keep off men . How wicked then is the way of many amonst us , who seeke to make the way of Idolatry too smooth , and plain , and open as they can ! yea in stead of stopping such as have inclinations to it , they lay before them the inciting and intifing occasions which adde to their owne propension such delectation as putteth them on forward with a swift facility . Thirdly , Afflictions to the people of God , are Gods hedges to keep them from sinne . The command of God is one hedge , and affliction is another . Therefore sinne is called by the name of Transgression , Transgression , what is that ? That is , going beyond their bounds , going over the hedge ; a man that sinneth goes over the hedge . And wee finde , Eccles . 10. 8. Hee that breaks the hedge a serpent shall bite him . ; It is true , in regard of the hedge of Gods command , he that will venture to break that hedge , must expect a serpent to bite him , must expect the biting of Conscience , the anguish and horrour of that : But when that hedge is broke , God cometh with another hedge to keep his people from sinne , so you have it exprest in Job 33. 17 , 18. speaking of afflictions , By them , saith hee , hee withdraweth man from his purpose , and he keepeth back his soule from the pit . As suppose a beast be running to such a pasture , perhaps he doth not see the hedge , and it may be if he should run a little further , he would be plunged in a pit , and there destroyed , but now the husbandman setteth a hedge there , and when the beast commeth just to the hedge , to the thornes , then it is withdrawn from what it was about , and so the life of it preserved ; so it may be with a man that is running to such a place , when hee meeteth with something that hinders him , he is drawn from his purpose , and his soul is kept back from death . You use to deale thus with your children , if you live in the Countrey neer ditches and pits of water , you will hedge about the pits , for feare your children should fall into them and so the hedge keepeth the Children a●ive . As afflictions keep the Saints from sinne , as a hedge to them , so the difficulties in Gods wayes keepes the wicked from God. VVhen difficulties therefore do fall out , it should teach us to consider what way we are in , why ? for God useth to compasse about sinfull wayes , with difficulties , on purpose to keep his people from them . Well , I am in a way going on in it , I am sure I am compast about with difficulties , it may be these difficulties are but Gods hedges to keepe me from sinne ; how shall I know that ? for sometimes difficulties are but tryals of our graces , and they may be such as call for the stirring up of our graces to breake through the hedge , so Pro. 8. 19. difficulties are said to be a hedge of thornes ; they lye in the wayes of Gods people that are blessed wayes , then the worke of the Saints should be to stirre up their graces , and to breake thorough the hedge , though they be pricked , and their flesh torne , that is , their excellency , that they can breake thorough those difficulties , faith will carry through all difficulties in Gods wayes . Therefore here is the triall , when I meet with difficulties , I must not forbeare because there are difficulties , but I must examine , Is it the way of God or not ? If it be the way of God , then lay aside the thought of difficulties , if I have a rule for it let the difficulties be never so many , and the hedge never so thicke , yet I must breake through , and God is so much the more honoured by it : but on the otherside , if upon examination I finde the way I am in is not warrantable by God , then I must know that Gods end in laying difficulties in the way , is to stop my going on in it , and it is desperatenesse in me to seeke to breake thorow , in seeking to break thorow I may break my neck , therefore I must look to it that I have warrant from God for those waies I am in . Oh that men would think of this when they meet with difficulties in their wayes ! I might shew how the Saints have many times met with difficulties in their wayes , and yet have gone on with strength ; That of Jacob is one of the most famous examples we have in the Book of God , the difficulties he met withall , and that in the way that God himselfe bad him go in . God bade him returne to his Father Isaac , and yet he met with sixe or seven prodigious difficulties , that one would have thought should have made him doubted whether he was in Gods way or not , and have caused him to returne back againe . First , Laban pursueth him , and intends mischiefe gainst him ; and Esau he in that journey comes to meet him with a purpose to destroy him , his wives nurse dyed , and Rachell her selfe dyed in that journey , he had his daughter Diana defloured , his two sonnes committed that horrible wickednesse , in murthering the Sechemites : All these fell out in Jacobs journey ; he might have said , Am I in the way that God would have me ? Yes , Jacob was in his way , hee had an expresse warrant from God to goe that journey . Difficulties therefore must not discourage us , but we must breake through them ; especially in these times . It were a low and poor spirit , to be kept from a good way because of ●●ew thorns , because of some difficulties that we meet withall in the way . If we know it be Gods way , goe through it in the name of God , let the difficulties be what they will. But if they be not warrantable by God , let the difficulties we meet withall stop us , for God intendeth them to be a hedge to keepe us from sin . Againe , it should make us be content when any affliction befalls us ; why , because it is more then we know that God intends abundance of good to us ; It may be , if this affliction had not befallen thee , thou hadst undone thy self : If this affliction that thou doest sor riggle to get out of , and thinkest thy selfe so miserable under it , if it had not befalne thee , thou mightest have faln into the pit and beene lost , therefore be not troubled so much at the affliction , but examine whether it be not a hedge that God hath set , to keepe thee from a further misery . But it seemes that this will not serve , there must be a wall , as well as this hedge . Hence the observation is this , The perversnesse of mans heart is such , that he will breake through many difficulties to get unto sin . We reade of Idolaters , who would cause their children to passe through the fire to their Idols , that was more then a hedge of thorns . We see it often that mens hearts are so strongly bent upon their sins , that though it were to passe through a great deale of trouble , though they prick and tare themselves , yet they will have their sin . As that notable story that Ambrose tells us of , of one Philotimus who brought his body to grievous diseases , by uncleannesse and drunkennesse , and the Physitians told him , that if he did not abstain he would certainly lose his eyes , there was no help for him ; as soone as ever he heareth this , he answereth thus , Valeat lumen amicum . Farewell O pleasant light , rather then I will deny my self in this , I will never see light more ; he would venture the losse of his eyes , rather then lose the satisfaction of his lusts . Thus it is with many , O what do they venture for their lusts ! What an argument should that be to us to venture much for God , to indure hard things for the blessed God : though there be some hardship between us and our duty , breake through all to get to that duty ; wicked men will break through great difficulties to get to their sins . There need be a wall as well as a hedge . VVell , if there be need of a wall , I will have a wall , saith God , I will wall up her way , though she may make a shift to breake downe the hedge , she shall not breake down the wall , it is too strong , and too high . Hence the Observation is , God when he pleaseth will keepe men from their sinnes in spight of their hearts , they shall not have their way , they shall not have their desire do what they can . VVhen God sees Men set upon their wicked desires , if they be those that belong not to him , perhaps God may damne them for their wicked desires , and yet they shall not have them neither ; they shall goe to hell for them and never come to accomplish them . Saul , how desperately set was he to mischief● David ? but God made a wall that he could not get to have his desire doe 〈…〉 , Many , especially great Men , how strongly are they set upon their desires ! they must have it , and they will have it , and they must and must , nothing commeth from them but must and will ; well , they may be deceived , God knoweth how to crosse the most stubborn and stout hearts that live upon the earth , that they shall not have what they would have in this world . I will make a wall . God doth thus make a wall about mens sinnes , by sending sore and heavy afflictions , as about the drunkards way , when God brings some grievous disease upon his body , perhaps he is so stopped that he cannot drink , that is a wall about his sinne , that he cannot goe to it according to his desire : so the unclean person , God brings such a disease upon him , that hee cannot have the pleasure of his lust , though hee would never so faine : so when God brings poverty upon others , that they caunot follow their ambition and pride , doc what they can , these are as walls to them ; but God doth not alwayes doe this in a way of mercy . I will make a wall . First , a hedge , and then a wall . Hence observe when lesser afflictions will not serve to keep men from their sins . God usually cometh with greater and sorer ; I see some of them will break through the hedge , I will make a wall therefore , that is , I will come with stronger and greater afflictions , and so keep them off . Levit. 26. 18. If you will not for all this , saith God , turne unto mee , I will punish you seven times more , and I will breake the pride of your power ; you thinke there is a power in your hand , and there is pride in your power , for power raiseth the heart up to pride ; I will break it , I will never leave till I have broke your hearts in spight of you ; and you shall find ein that Chapter four or five times mention of seven times more . This is after the hedge , then there cometh a wall . And they shall not find their paths . Hence , God is able to strike men with blindness that they shall not see their way . Though there be an evill way of mischief before them , yet God knows how to strike them with blindness , though there be nothing to hinder them in it , God can strike men with blindness one way or other , that they shall not bee able to see their way before them . We have this , this day exceedingly fulfilled in our eyes , how doth God blind and befot our adversaries , that they cannot see their way ? the truth of that Scripture , Job 5. 13. is this day before our eyes . He taketh the wise in their owne craft inesse , and the counsel of the froward is carried head long . How hath God taken wise men in their own craftinesse ? & the counsell of froward men , their spirits are froward , because they are crost , they are vexed , & their counsell is carried headlong ; God takes away their understanding , and doth baffle them in their own counsels . A notable Text we have in Psal . 75. 6. The stout-hearted are spoiled , they have slept their sleep , and none of the men of might have found their hands . They are cast into a slumber , and know not what in the world to doe , they know not how to make use of that power they have in their hands ; It followeth further in that Psalme , At thy rebuke O God of Iacob , both the charet , and horse are cast into a dead sleep . A strange expression , that a Charet should be cast into a deepe sleepe ; the meaning is , they can no more tell how to make use of them , then if they all lay for dead , or asleepe . Let us not be afraid of the power of adversaries ; suppose they had power in their hand , God can strike them with blindnesse , & they shall grope to find the door , they shall be baffled in their own waies , they shall not tell how to make use of their own power . Isa . 29. 14. Behold ( saith God ) I will proceed to doe a marvailous worke , even a marvailous work and a wonder : What is it ? The wisedome of their wise men shall perish , & the understanding of their prudent men shal be hid : This is a wonderfull thing that God will doe ; yea , and he will mingle a perverse spirit in the midst of them , so you have it , Isa , 19. 11. Surely the Princes of Zoan are fooles , the counsell of the wise counsellours of Pha●aoh is become bruiti● ; and verse 12. Where are they ? where are thy wise men ? And againe verse 13. The Princes of Zoan are become fooles , the Princes of Noph are deceived ; and verse 14. The Lord hath mingled a perverse spirit it in the midst therof , they have caused Egypt to erre in his worke , as a drunken man that staggereth in his vomit . Here is the judgement of God upon Men , when he list he can blind them in their way that they shall erre in their worke , and they shall stagger in their own counsels and designes as a drunken man in his vor●it , they shall not finde their paths , they shall not know in the world what to doe . VVell , Thus God dealeth with wicked men : But now let us consider this in reference to the Saints , to Gods own people , they shall not finde their paths ; then the Observation is , It is a good blindnesse for men not to see the way of sinne : It is promised here in a way of mercy , that they shall not finde their paths ; this darkeness , it is not the shadow of death , but the way of life . It is rich mercy . I have read of one Maris , a Bishop of Calcedon , a blinde man , to whom Julius the Apostate giving some opproptious words , and calling him blinde foole , because he had rebuked Julian for his Apostacy ; the good man answered thus , I blesse God that I have not my sight to see such an ungracious face as thine : So many may blesse God for their bodily blindnesse , because , it may be it hath prevented abundance of sinne that might have beene let in at the casements of their eyes ; But especially for blindnesse , not to see the way of sinne , if we may call that blindnesse ; It is a mercy that God doth not grant to all , it is a singular mercy to the Saints : For you shall finde there are abundance of people exceedingly quick-sighted in the way of sinne that can finde the path there , and yet are exceedingly blinded in the way of God , and cannot find the path there : On the other side , that Saints are blinded in the way of sinne , but are quick-sighted in the wayes of God. How many men are wise to do evill , as the Scripture saith , they are able to see into the depths of Satan , they are profound to damn themselves , they can finde out such objections against the 〈…〉 , & answer such things that are said against 〈…〉 devises & contrivances how to get to their sinfull wayes , but when they come to the wayes of God , as blind as Moles , they cannot see such necessity of such strictnesse , they cannot understand , men of great parts , great Rabbies , of great understanding otherwise , they have no skill in the wayes of God. I thank thee , O Father Lord of heaven and earth ( saith Christ ) that thou hast hid these things from the wise and learned , and hast revealed them unto babes : Whereas on the other side , you shall find that the Saints are able when they come to Gods waies , to see farre into the excellency and glory of them , they have understanding there , though they be but weake otherwise , they can see into the great mysteries of God , into the beauty of his wayes , so that it dazeleth all the glory of the world in their eies , they are not easily catched with temptations , but can see into the subtilties of the devill that would draw them out of Gods waies ; but when they come to the wayes of sin , there they want understanding , and it is Gods mercy to them to doe so ; there they are but bunglers , they do but grope as blinde men , they are not their crafts masters , they are not cunning artists in those waies , but as the Apostle saith , 2 Cor. 1. 1● . Wee have not received the spirit af the world , wee cannot shift for our selves as the men of the world can , we cannot be so cunning to contrive such plots , & tricks , and devices for our owne ends as the men of the world can , but wee have received the Spirit of God , we can understand things there ( through Gods mercy ) to eternal life . There are many men cunning for their own destruction , they can find every secret path of sin , though sin be a labyrinth , they can goe up and down in it , finde out ever by-path in that way . When the waies of God are propounded to wicked men , there is a mist before their eyes , they cannot see , & when the wayes of sin are propunded to the Saints , God in mercy cafteth a mist before their eies that they cannot see . Eccles . 10. 15. The foole knoweth not how to goe to the City ; wicked men they know not the path to the Church of God , to the Ordinances of God , they talke much about such and such Ordinances , and setting up of Christ in the way of his Ordinances , but they doe not see the way of it , they know not what the true worship of God meaneth ; No , a foole doth not understand the way to the City of God , he cannot finde out that path . But the Saints , though they know not the wayes of sinne , yet they can finde out the paths of God , they know the way to the City , Possidonius tells us a Austin , that when there was wait laid for his life , thorough Gods providence he mist his way , and so his life was preserved , and his enemies disappointed . So many times when you are going on in such a way of sin , perhaps you little thinke what danger there is in it ; God in mercy therefore casteth a mist before your eies , and you misse that way and save your lives . Ver. 7. She shall follow after her lovers , but she shall not overtake them , &c. The Observation is , Untill God subdues the hearto himselfe , men will grow worse and worse in their sinnes ; yea , even Gods Elect ones to whom hee intendeth mercy at last , yet till God commeth with his grace to subdue their hearts , they may grow worse and worse : they would before goe after their lovers , and now here commeth afflictions upon them , yet still they will follow their lovers , and that with more eagernesse of affection , and with more violence then before . Afflictions in themselves are part of the curse of God , and there is no healing vertue in them , but an inraging quality to stir up sinne , till God sanctifie them by his grace , & God may suspend for a time the sanctifying worke of his grace to those he intended good to at last . Isa , 51. 20. The Text speakes of some whose afflictions were not sanctified , That they lye as a wild bull in a net in the streets , and they were full of the fury of the Lord ; They were full of the fury of the Lord , and yet lay like a wild Bull in a net , in a raging manner . This distemper of heart proceeds from two grounds . 1. When outward comforts are taken away by affliction , the sinner having no comfort in God , he knows not where to have comfort but in his sin , if conscience be not strong enough to keep from it , he runs madly upon it . 2. Because he thinks that others looke upon him as one opposed by God for his sin , therefore that he may declare to all the world that he is not daunted at all , nor that he hath no misgiving thoughts , ( though perhaps hee hath nipping gripes within ) yet he will put a good face upon it , and follow his wayes more eagerly then formerly . A second observations ; She shall follow , but she shall not overtake , A man may follow after the devises of his owne heart , and may be disappointed ; he may not overtake them . There is a great deale of difference betwixt following Gods wayes , and our owne wayes ; there was never any in the world that was disappointed ( if he knew all ) in following Gods wayes , but he got , either the very thing he would have , or something that was as good , if not better for him : but in the wayes of sinne , in our owne wayes we may meet with disappointment ; why should we not then rather follow God then follow our own desires ? The desires after sin , as they are Desideria futilia , so they are Desideria inutilia , as one speakes ; as they are foolish , so they are fruitlesse desires , they doe not attaine what they would have . How hath God disappointed men in our dayes● they have not overtaken what they greedily sought after ; Our adversaries blessed themselvs in their designes , they thought to have their day , they propounded such an end , and thought to have it , but how hath God disappointed them ! But whether God hath done this in mercy to them , ( as it is spoken of here ) that we know not , we hope God hath crost some of them in a way of mercy , though perhaps he may deale in another way with other of them . But further , Disappointment in the way of sinne is a great mercy . As satisfaction in sin is a judgement of God , and a fearfull judgement , so disappointment in sin is a mercy and a great mercy , Prov. 14. 14. there you shall find , That the back-slyder in heart shall be filled with his own wayes : A dreadfull threatning to back-slyders and apostates ; when God hath no intention of love and mercy for backsliders , God will give them their owne devices , they shall have their fill in their owne wayes ; you would have such a lust , you shall have it , you shall be satisfied to the full , and blesse your selves in your owne wayes . This is the judgment of God upon backsliders : but for the Saints , when they would have such a way of sin , God will disappoint them , they shall not have it . We account it ordinarily very grievous to be disappointed of any thing , and many times I have had this meditation upon it ; What , doth it trouble the hearts of men to be disappointed almost in any thing ? Oh what a dreadfull vexation and horror will it be for a man to see himself disappointed of his half hopes ! Remember when you are troubled at any disappointment , what will be the terrour then and anguish of spirit if it should prove that any of you should be disappointed of your hopes for eternity ! But those whom God doth often disappoint in the way of sin , they may have hope that God will deliver them from that great disappointment . And againe yet further , Shee would have her Idols , but God will take them away , shee shall not have them saith God , though shee follow after them , and have a great mind to them , yet they shal not overtake them . God will remove them from their Idols , or their Idols from them , ( that is the meaning ) they should not come to their Dan or Bethel , they should either be removed far enough from their calves , or the calves from them . Thus it should be with Governours , they should take such a course as to take away Idols and superstitious vanities from those that will be worshipping of them , and sinning against God by them ; Either take them away from those vanities , or their vanities from them , they should not so much as suffer those things to stand to be inticements and snares for the hearts of people , though they be very brave , and abundance of gold and excellent artificiall work be about such things , yet Deut. 7. 25. Thou shalt not desire the silver or gold that is on them , nor take it unto thee , lest thou be snared therein , but thou shalt utterly destroy it , and thou shalt utterly abhor it , for it is a cursed thing . You shall not look upon the bravery of the worke of their Idols , and upon the great cost that is bestowed upon them , and therefore spare them because of that , oh no , but take them away , that men may not be insnared by them ; So God will do . Further in the fifth place , They shall follow after their lovers , but shall not overtake them . Idolaters hearts are after their Idols when they cannot get them . Though they cannot get them , yet they will be following of them . It is of an excellent use for us , so it should be with us in the pursuing after Gods ordinances ; though perhaps for the present we cannot enjoy the Ordinances of God , yet be sure to keep our hearts working after them . Many deceive themselves in this , they think , we would have all the Ordinances of God , but we see we cannot , and so upon that we sit still & mind no more seeking after them , neither doe they labour to keepe their hearts in a burning desire after them ; and hence many times it is , that the opportunities of enjoying them are let slip . But now if thou canst not have the beauty of an ordinance , if thou keepest thy heart in a burning desire after it in the use of all means for the attaining it , know then , that the want of an ordinance is an ordinance to thee . You shall finde in the English Chronicle of Edward the first , that he had a mighty desire to goe to the holy land , and because he could not goe thither , he gave charge to his sonne upon his death-bed that he should carry his heart thither , and he appointed 32000. pound to defray the charges of carrying his heart to the holy land , out of a superstitious respect he had to that place , though hee could not attaine it his heart should . Thus should our hearts worke after Ordinances . And now we come to the close , and that is the blessed fruit of all this , she shall follow after her lovers , but she shall not overtake them , and shee shall seeke them , but she shall not finde them . VVhat followeth after all this ? Now commeth in the close of mercy , for saith the Text , Then shall shee say , I will goe and returne to my first husband , for then was it better with me then now . Now they shall returne , at length they shall bethinke themselves . Hence we have likewise many sweet and excellent Observations . As First , In times of affliction the only rest of the soul is to return to God. They keepe a rigling , and a stirre , and a shifting up and downe to provide for themselves , yea but they could finde no rest in what they did , but as a poor prisoner that is shakled keeps a stir with his chaines , but instead of getting any freedom he galls his legs : but when the poor soul after all shiftings , and turnings , and vexings , comes to thinke of returning to the Lord , and of humbling and repenting it selfe before him , now it findes rest . Returne to thy rest , O my so●le ; so the words are . Remember after all your afflictions here is your rest in returning to the Lord. Secondly , Then they shall say , that is when they are so stopped in their way that they cannot tell in the world what to do , when they are hedged , and walled , and cannot overtake their lovers , then they shall returne to the Lord. Hence the Observation is , so long as men can have any thing in their sinfull way to satisfie themselves withall , they will not returne to God : There is that perversnesse of spirit in men : Onely when men are stopped in the way o● sinne , that they can have no satisfaction nor no hope , then they begin to think of returning to God. This is the vilenesse of the spirits of men , they never or very rarely will come off to God till then . As the Prodigall , what shift did he make ? hee goes to the farmer , to the swine , to the huskes to fill his belly , and it is likely if he had had his belly full of them he would never have thought of going to his father , but when he came to the huskes and could not tell how to fill his belly there , when he was in a desperate estate , then he beginneth to thinke of returning to his father . So you have it Isa , 57. 10. Yet saidest thou not , where is no hope , thou hast found the life of thy hands , therefore thou wast not grieved ; thou wast not brought to such a desperate stand as to say the is no hope , that noteth that till men be brought to such a stand that they can say , certainly there is no hope or helpe this way , they will seldome thinke of returning to God. Thus is God infinitely dishonoured by us , It is very strange how the hearts of men will hanker after their sinne this way , and that way , till God take them quite off from hope of comfort by it , they will never have a thought to returne unto God ; God is faine to be the last refuge , we account our selves much dishonoured when we are the last refuge , when no body will I must . It seemes God is saine to yeeld to this , when no body will give satisfaction to the soul , then men come to God , and God must . But you will say , will ever God accept of such a one ? Marke the next observation ; returning to God , if it be in truth , though it be thus after wee have sought out for all other helpes , yet God is willing to accept of it . This is an observation full of comfort , the Lord grant it may not be abused , but it is the word of the Lord , and it is a certaine truth , that returning after men have sought other meanes , and can finde no help , though they are driven to it by afflictions , yet it may be accepted by God. It is true , man will not accept upon these termes , but the thoughts of God are as sarre above the thoughts of men as the heaven is above the earth . It is true indeed some time God will not , nay God threatneth Pro. 1. 28. though they call upon him he will not answer , though they see●e him early , yet shall not finde him . God is not thus gracious to all , therefore you must not presume upon it : God some time at the very first affliction hardneth his heart against men , that he will never regard them more , for his mercy is his owne ; but those that are in covenant with him , though they come to him upon such termes , yet they may be accepted of him ; therefore take this trueth for helping of you against this fore temptation , when you are in affliction , which will be apt to come in , Oh I cry to God now in my affliction , I should have done it before , surely God will not heare me now . This may be a temptation ; I confesse I cannot speake in this point without a trembling heart lest it be abused , but the Text presents it fairely to you , and you must have the minde of God made known unto you though others abuse it , Psal . 88. 9. Mine eye mourneth by reason of affliction , Lord I have called daily upon thee : This is spoken of Heman , and God did accept of him as it is apparrent in the Psalm , yet he cryed by reason of affliction ; and Psal . 120. 1. In my distresse I cryed unto the Lord and he heard me ; though it were in my distresse , yet the Lord heard me . Onely take this one note about it , It is true , Though our being stopped in all other wayes may make us cry to God , and God may heare us , but when God doth hear us , he works more then crying out by reason of that affliction ; though at first our affliction be the thing that carryeth ns unto God , yet before God hath done withus , and manifest and any acceptance of us , hee workes our hearts to higher aymes then deliverance from our affliction . Againe further , I will goe and returne . A heart effectually wrought upon by God is a resolute heart to returne to God. As they were resolute in their way of Idolatry , I will follow after my lovers ; so their hearts being converted , they shall be as resolute in Gods wayes , she shall say , I will returne to my first husband . When God will worke upon the heart to purpose , he causeth strong arguments to fasten upon the spirit , and nothing shal hinder it , no not father , nor mother , nor the dearest friend . Perhaps the Lord beginneth to worke upon the child , and the father scornes him , and the mother perhaps saith , What shall we have of you now ? a Puritane ? This grieveth the spirit of the child , yet there are such strong arguments fastned by God upon his heart , that it carryeth him thorough , he is resolute in his way , he will returne . Further , Those who have ever found the sweetnesse of Christ in their hearts , have yet something remaining , that though they should be apostates , will at length draw them to him . Christ hath such hold upon their hearts as at one time or other he will get them in again , there will be some sparkes under those embers that will flame and draw the soule to returne againe to Christ . Therefore if any of you ever had any friends in whom you were verily perswaded there was a true work of grace , though they be exceedingly apostatized from Christ , do not give over your hope , for if ever there were any true tast of the sweetnesse that is in Christ , Christ hath such a hold upon their hearts , that he will bring them in again one time or other . Further , I will return to my first husband , for them was it better with me . There is nothing gotten by departing from Christ . You goe from the better to the worse when ever you depart from him ; What fruit have you in those things , whereof you are now ashamed ? I the Lord ( saith God , Isa , 48 17. ) teach to profit ; sinne doth not teach to profit , you can never get good by that , but the Lord teacheth to profit . It may be you may think to gaine something by departing from Christ , but when you have cast up all the gain , you may put it into your eye , and it will doe you no hurt . Job , 27. 8. It is a notable place . What is the hope of the hypocri●e , though he hath gained , when God taketh away his soul ? Perhaps a hypocrite that is departed from God , a back-flider , that was forward before in the way of godlinesse , and now like Dema● he hath forsaken those wayes and cleaved to the world , he thinkes he hath gained , and perhaps is grown richer , and liveth braver then before , yet what hope hath this back-slyder , this hypocrite , when God taketh away his soul ? then he will see that he hath gotten nothing . As it is said of the Idolater , Isay , 44. 20 , A deceived heart hath turned him aside , he feeds upon ashes , that he cannot deliver his soul , nor say , Is there not a lye in my right hand ? What shall there be more in a lust then in the blessed God ? then in JESUS CHRIST who is the glory of Heaven , the delight of Angels , the satisfaction of the Father himselfe ? Can a lust put thee into a better condition then Christ , who hath all fulnesse to satisfie the soul of God himself ? certainly it cannot be . Againe , There must be a sight and an acknowledgement of our shamefull folly , or else there can be no true returning unto God ; I will goe and return to my first husband , for then it was better with mee then now . As if the Church should say , I confesse I have plaid the foole , I have done shamefully , I have loft by departing from Christ , it was better farre then it is now . Ier. 3. 25. We lie downe in our shame , and our confusion covereth us , for wee have sinned against the Lord our God , saith the Church there ; so it should be with all that come in to return to Christ , they must lie downe in their shame . This I note as very seasonable in these times , we have many now who not long since have been very vile apostates , they have gone with the times , they saw preferment went such a way , and their hearts went that way ; Now they see they cannot have preferment in that way they went , and God of his mercy hath changed the times , they will bee Converts : Wee have in England many parliamentary Converts , but such as wee are not to confide in . Why should wee not confide in them ? If they will repent and returne , God accepteth them , and why should not we ? It is true , such an one was before an enemy , and followed superstitious vanities , but now he is grown better , and preacheth against them , and why should not wee receive him ? To that I answer , It is true , if deep humiliation have gone before that reformation , if together with their being better they have been willing to shame themselves before God and his people , to acknowledg their folly in departing from God , and be willing to professe before all that knew them , and have been scandalized by them . It is true , God began with mee , and shewed me his wayes when I was young , I began to love them , and to walk in them : but when I saw how the times went , and preferment went , the Lord knows I had a base time-serving heart , I went away from God , they were no arguments that satisfied my conscience , but meerly livings and preferment , and now I doe desire to take shame and confusion of face to my selfe : Woe unto me for the folly and falsenesse of my heart , it is the infinite mercy of God ever to regard such a wretch as I. If they do thus take shame to themselves , and acknowledg their folly , this were something . We read in the Primitive times of one Ecebolius , who when he had revolted from the Truth , he cometh to the congregation , and falling down upon the threshold , cryeth out , Calcate , Calcate insipidum salem , tread upon me unsavory salt , I confesse I have made my selfe unsavory salt by departing from the Truth , let all tread upon me . This was a signe of true returning when this went before , we have done foolishly , it was better with us then now . Againe , I will goe and returne , for it was better with mee then it is now : Hence , Though acknowledgement must goe before , yet returning must follow that . It is not enough to see and acknowledg , but there must be a returning : For as reformation without humiliation is not enough , so humiliation without reformation suffices not . And I speak this the rather , because these are times wherein there is a great deale of seeming humiliation , and wee hope true humiliation : but you shall have many in their fasting days will acknowledge how finfull , how vile , how passionate they have been in their families , how worldly , what base selfe-ends they have had , and they will make such catalogues of their sins in those dayes of their humiliation , as causes admiration : the thing itselfe is good , but I speak to this end , to shew the horrible wickednesse of mens hearts , that after they have ripped up all their sinnes , with all aggravations , acknowledged all their folly of their evill ways against God , yet no returning , after all this as passionate in their fam●lies , as froward , as peevish , as perverse as ever , as earthly as ever , as light and vaine in their carriage as ever . They will acknowledge what they have done , but they will not returne . Remember humiliation must goe before reformation , but Reformation must follow after Humiliation . But the chiefe point of all is behind , that is , The sight of this , how much better it was when the heart did cleave to Christ , over it is now , since departure from Christ , it is an effectuall meanes to cause the heart to returne to him . This is the way that Christ himselfe prescribed , Rev. 2. 5. Remember whence thou art falne , and repent . Thou wert in a better condition once then now thou art , oh come in and return , and that thou maist returne , remember whence thou art falne . I will give but a little glimpse of what might be said in this point more largely . The reasonings of the heart in the sight of this may briefely bee hinted thus : Heretofore I was able through Gods mercy to look upon the face of God with joy . When my heart did cleave to him , when I did walke close with God , then the glory of God shined upon mee , and caused my heart to spring within me every time I thought of him : But now , now , God knows , though the world takes little notice of it , the very thoughts of God are a terrour to mee , the most terrible object in the world is to behold the face of God. Oh it was better with me then it is now . Before this my apostasie I had free accesse to the Throne of Gods grace , I could come with humble and holy boldnesse unto God , and poure out my soule before him , such a chamber , such a closet can witnesse it : But now I have no heart to pray , yea I must be haled to it , meerely conscience pulleth me to it ; yea every time I goe by that very closet where I was wont to have that accesse to the throne of grace , it strikes a terrour to my heart ; I can never come into Gods presence but it is out of slavish feare . Oh , it was better with me then , then it is now . Before , Oh the sweet communion my soule enjoyed with Jesus Christ ! one dayes communion with him , how much better was it then the enjoyment of all the world ! But now Jesus Christ is a stranger to mee , and I a stranger to him . Before , oh those sweet enlargements that my soule had in the ordinances of God! when I came to the word , my soule was refreshed , was warmed , my heart was inlightned ; when I came to the Sacrament , oh the sweetness that was there ! and to prayer with the people of God , it was even a heaven upon earth unto me : but it is otherwise now , the Ordinances of God are dead and empty things to me . Oh it was better with mee then , then it is now . Before , oh the gracious visitations of Gods Spirit that I was wont to have ! Yea , when I awaked in the night season , oh the glimpses of Gods face that were upon my soule ! what quicknings , and refreshings , and inlivenings did I finde in them ! I would give a world for one nights comfort I sometimes have had by the visitations of Gods Spirit , but now they are gone . Oh it was better then , then it is now . Before , oh what peace of conscience had I within ! whatsoever the world said , though they rayled and accused , yet my conscience spake peace to me , and was a thousand witnesses for me : but now I have a grating conscience within me , oh the black bosome that is in me , it flieth in my face every day , after I come from such and such company ; I could come before from the society of the Saints , and my conscience smiled upon me : Now I go to wicked company , and when I come home , and in the night , Oh the gnawings of that worm ! it was better with me then , then it is now . Before , the graces of Gods Spirit , how were they sparkling in me , active and lively ! I could exercise faith , humility , patience , and the like : Now I am as one bereft of all , unfit for any thing , even as a dead logg . Before God made use of me and imployed me in honorable services , now I am unfit for any service at all . Oh , it was better with me then , then it is now . Before I could take hold upon promises , I could claim them as mine own , I could looke up to all those blessed , sweet promises that God had made in his word , and look upon them as mine inheritance . But now alas the promises are very little to me : before I could look upon the face of all troubles , and the face of death , I could look upon them with joy , but now the thought of affliction and of death , God knows how terrible they are to me . It was better with me then , then it is now . Before in all creatures I could enjoy God , I tasted the sweetnesse and love of God , even in my meat and drinke : I could sit with my wife and children , and see God in them , and looke upon the mercies of God through them as a fruit of the Covenant of grace ; Oh how sweet was it with mee then ! But now the creature is an empty thing unto mee , whether it come in love or hatred I do not know . It was better with me before then now . Before I was under the protection of God where ever I went , but now I do not know what danger and miseries I am subject unto daily , what may befall me before night . God only knows . Before the Saints rejoyced with mee in my company and communion , now every one is shy of me . Before I was going on in the wayes of life , now these wayes I am in , God knows , and my conscience tels me are wayes of death . It was better with me then , then it is now . Now then put all these together , as I make no question these thoughts are the thoughts of many Apostates ; if wee knew all that were in their hearts , we should find such thoughts as these . As the Prodigall , when hee was feeding upon the husks , he began to bethink himselfe ; What , is not there food enough in my Fathers house ? every servant there hath food enough , and here I am ready to starve , I feed upon huskes , when there is bread enough in my Fathers house ; So may many Apostates say , Alas ! before I had s●eetnesse enough , and was satisfied with those abundance of pleasures that were in the house of God , in his Word and Ordinances , now I feed upon husks , and amongst swine , Oh that it were with me as it was before ! As Job speaks in another case concerning his afflictions , Iob 29. 3. Oh that it were with me as in mo●eths past , as in the dayes when God preserved me , when this candle shined upon my head , and when by his light I walked through darknesse . Before I had some afflictions , but I could walk through all afflictions by that light which I had from God ; Oh that it were with me now as it was then , as in the dayes of my youth , when the secret of God was upon my tabernacle , when the Almighty was yet with me ! It may be said of many Apostates , as Lam. 4. 8. They were once as polished Sap●irs , but now they are become as blacke as a coale . But ●h that you had hearts to say , let me return , let me returne , because it was otherwise with mee heretofore then it is now ! Oh that this day there might an Angel meet thee , as he met with Hagar when shee fled from Sarah ▪ the Angel sad to her , Hagar , Sarahs maid , whence comest thou , & whether wilt thou goe ? So I say , oh Apostate , whence commest thou , and whither wilt thou goe ? Marke , Hagar , Sarahs maid , whence comest thou ? Dost thou come from Sarah ? from Abrahams family where God is worshipped ? where the Church of God is ? and whither goest thou ? canst thou be any where so well as there ? So I say to thee , Thou who wert a forward professor before , Whence comest thou ? Dost thou come from such Ordinances , from such communion with the Saints ? What hast thou gotten by those base wayes ? Thou canst eate , and drink , and laugh a little , and have some esteem with such as are carnall ; Oh whither wilt thou goe ? Oh that God would shew you this day whither you goe ! There followeth yet another Observation , Seeing there is so much grief and shame in complaining of our apostatizing when ever God awakeneth us , it should teach all that are not yet Apostates to take heed what they doe , that they may never bring themselves into such a condition that they may not be forced to complaine . Oh it was better before then it is now . It is a note of Caution to you who are through Gods mercy in his way , you are now well , know when you are well , and keep you well . And you young ones who are beginning to give up your names to God , take heed you do not decline from what now you doe , that you doe not apostarize and fall off from God afterward , lest this be your condition that you shall be brought to at best , for this is at best , thus to lament the change of your condition , perhaps you shall goe on , and God will never cause you to see your shame and folly , till you be eternally undone ; but at best you must be brought to this shame and confusion of face , to acknowledg how much better it was with you before then now ; how much better was it when I lived in such a family , under such a Master , in such a Towne , Oh it was better then with me then it is now ! Oh the precious days that once I had when I was a young one , those dayes are gone , and wheth●r ever they will come again , God knows . Yet further , when the judgement passeth on Gods side , that it was better before then now , then the soul is in a hopefull way . So long as the judgment holdeth for God and his wayes , though thou beest an Apostate , though perhaps thy heart be drawn aside from God , and thy affections be unruly , thou art not in a desperate condition , there is hope of thee . There are two sorts of Apostates . There are some Apostates , who though they are so through the unrulinesse of their affections , and the strength of temptation , yet they keep their judgements for Gods wayes , and acknowledge Gods people to be best , and his Ordinances to be best , and themselves in the danger . But now there are some Apostates , who do so fall off from God and his wayes , that they begin in their very judgements to thinke that those wayes they profest before were but fancies , and that the people of God are but a company of humerous people , and blesse themselves in their owne wayes , and think that they are better now then they were before : oh this is a hideous thing . If thy judgement be once taken , that thou thinkest the wayes of sinn to be better then those wayes of God that before thou professedst , then Lord have mercy upon thee , thou art a gone man , wee doe not know that God will doe with thee , but in the judgement of man thou art even a gone man. I remember Latimer in a Sermon before King Edward hath this passage . I have known ( saith he ) many Apostates , but I never knew any more then one that proved a scorner , and yet returned again . Take heed therefore , saith he , of apostasie . Though a man may fall off from God , and possibly return ; but yet if he fall off , so that his judgement is taken that he is become a scorner , that is a wofull condition , such a one scarce ever returneth . Many such Apostates you have in England , & I would challenge you all to give me one example of any one that ever returned again that so fell . I know many scorners are converted , but they that have beene forward in professing , and then fall off , and prove scorners , where have you any of them come in ? You have a notable place for this , Levit. 13. 44. there you shall finde when the Priest shall come and see a man that hath got the leprosie in his head , the Priest shall pronounce him utterly uncleane , for the plague saith the Text , is in the head . You shall observe in all the Chapter , when the Priest found uncleannesse in any other thing , he was to pronounce it unclean , but if the leprosie be in the head , he shall pronounce the party utterly uncleane , for the plague is in the head , there is not that utter uncleannesse any where as when the plague is in the head , So I may say here , when a man falleth off from the wayes of God by some strong temptation or unruly affection , this man is uncleane , verily he is uncleane ; but when it commeth to the head , that his judgement is against the wayes of God , and so commeth to contemne them and those that follow them , and to thinke his own wayes better , this man is utterly unclean , for the plague is in his head , The Lord deliver you from that plague . The Sixth Lecture . HOSEA 2. 7. 8. For then it was better with me then it is now . For she did not k●ow that I gave her corne , and wine , and oyle , and multiplyed her silve● , and gold , which they prepared for Baal , &c. THere remaines onely one Observation from the 7. ver . and the taking a hint of a meditation from thence concerning our present times , of which briefly . Upon returne unto God , Apostates may have hope of attaining their former condition ; to be as well as ever they were , I will return to my first husband , for then was it better with me then now , by returning , I hope to recover to be as I was then , that is the meaning . In this , Gods goodnesse goeth beyond mans abundantly , Ier. 3. 1. Will a man , when his wife hath committed adultery and he hath put her away , will he return to her again ? But thou hast played the harlot with many lovers , yet return againe to me saith the Lord : Hence ver . 22. the Holy Ghost exhorteth to return upon this very ground , Returne ye back-sliding children , and I will heale your back-slidings . Is there any back-sliding soul before the Lord ? God now offereth to heale thy back-slidings , thou knowest that it is not with thee now as heretofore it hath been , loe God tendereth his grace to thee that thou maiest be in as good a condition as ever ; O that thou wouldest give the answer of the Church there , Behold we come unto thee , for thou art the Lord our God ; truly in vaine is Salvation hoped for from the hils , or from the multitude of the mountain truely in the Lord our God is the salvation of Israel . It is true , God might justly satisfie thee in those present wayes of Apostacy wherein thou art , as sometimes he doth Apostates , The back-slider in heart shall be filled with his own wayes , he shall have enough of them , and Pro. 1. 31. They shall eate the fruit of their own way , and be filled with their own devicss . But behold wisedom it selfe calleth thee now to returne again , and makes this faire promise , Pro. 1. 23. Turne ye at my reproofe , behold I will poure out my spirit unto you . There is not onely a possibility of being received into thy former condition , but Christ doth wooe thee , and calleth after thee , hee promiseth to poure forth his spirit unto thee , yea and there would be triumph in heaven upon thy returning . But let me say thus much to thee , though there be a possibility of comming again into as good a condition as thou wast in afore , yet first there had need be a mighty work of Gods Spirit to raise thy heart to beleeve this . It is not an easie thing for one who hath that fearfull sin of Apostacy setled upon him by God to beleeve that ever God should receive him and returne in the wayes of mercy and comfort as before . Yea second , Though there be a possibility to be recovered to mercy , yet you must be contented to be in a meaner condition if God shall please , you must come unto God with such a disposition as to be content to be in the lowest condition that can be , onely that thou mayest have mercy at the last , as the Prodigall , Let me be ( saith he ) but as one of thy hired servants . And know lastly , that if you doe not return upon his gracious offer , God may give thee up for ever , take thy fill and there is an end of thee ; He that will be filthy , let him be filthy still . Yet further , this expression doth strongly present occasion to digresse a little in the comparing our present times with former times , to examine whether wee can say , it was better with us heretofore then it is now ? In these dayes there is much comparing our present times with times past , and divers judgements there are about present times , some complayning and crying out of the hazards and dangers wee are in , in these present times , much better was it heretofore say they then it is now . To such as these let me say , first as the holy Ghost saith , Eccles . 7. 10. Say not thou , what is the cause the former dayes were better then these ? thou dost uot enquire wisely concerning this thing . Certainly , those people who make such grievous complaints of present times , comparing them with times past , doe not wisely enquire after this thing . It is true , there are many sad things for the present amongst us , things that our hearts have cause to bleed for , such mis-understanding betweene King and Parliament , some blood shed already , and danger of shedding much more ; yet perhaps if we enquire wisely concerning this thing , we shall find , that notwithstanding all this , we have little cause to complaine that it is worse with us now , in comparison of what was before , Consider , first ▪ that which men do most complain of , which makes the times hardest now , it is but the breaking out of those mischievous designes that lay hid long before , & would have done us a great deale more mischiefe if they had been kept in ; Now they breake forth , and breake forth as the desperatenesse of the hopes of those who had such designes ; because they could now goe no longer underhand , but being brought into a desperate passe , they are faine to see what they can doe in wayes of violence , and this certainely is better then that mischiefe should work secretly under board . Secondly , by this we have a discovery of men which way they stand , what was and is in their hearts , and this is a great mercy . Thirdly , with the breaking forth of these things , God grants that helpe now to England , that it never yet had in the like way , so fully , and putteth such a faire price into the hands of the people of England , that never yet was put into their hands . Yea , and consider farther , that the more violent men are now , the more doth it tell us what a lamentable time was before ; for if now when there is such means of resistance , and yet the adversaries prevaile so much , what would they have been by this time , if this means of resistance had not been ? What a case were we in then when they might do what they would , and we had no means to help our selves , what a danger were we in then ? Certainely things then lay at more hazard then now . Fifthly , though there be many sad things amongst us , yet God hath been before-hand with us , we have had already even of free-cost as much mercy as these troubles come to . Sixtly , these troubles that we are in are making way for glorious mercies to come ; though there be some pangs , yet they are not the pangs of death , they are but the pangs of a travelling woman that is bringing forth a man-child : And certainly any Prince would think , that though his Queen should be put to some paine in travaile , yet her condition is better then when shee had nopaine , and was barren , or then that she should lye upon her sick bed , and her senses benummed , and she ready to dye : The pains of a travelling woman are better then a sensless dying . And yet further , if you thinke that you had better times heretofore then now , what times will you refer your selves unto in making the comparison ? I suppose you will instance in the time of the first Reformation , then things were in a good way , when those worthy Lights of the Church , and blessed Martyrs had such a hand in the Reformation . Many there are that do magnifie the ●●nes of the beginning of Reformation , for their owne ends , that they may thereby hinder Reformation now . This you know is the great argument that prevaileth with most ; What , were not those Prayers composed by learned godly men , as Cranmer , Latimer , Ridley , and others ? and can we be wiser then they ? did not they seale their profession with their blood ? My brethren , we need goe no further to shew the weaknesse of this argument , but only to shew how it was in the Church in those times , and you wil● find that you have cause to blesse God that it is not so with you now as it was then , and if that will appeare , then the argument you will see can no further prevail with rationall men . Certainly those first Reformers were worthy Lights and blessed instruments for God , I would not darken their excellency , but weaken the argument that is abusively raised from their worth . It is reported of Mr. Greneham that famous practicall Divine , who refusing subscription , in a Letter of his to the Bishop of Ely , gives his reasons , and answers that Prelates objection against him , namely , that Luther thought such Ceremonies might be retained in the Church ; his Answer is this , I reverence more the revealed wisdome of God , in teaching Mr. Luther so many necessary things to salvation , then I search his seeret judgements in keeping back from his knowledg other things of lesse importance : The same do I say of those worthy instruments of Gods glory in the first Reformation , & that it may be cleare to you that God kept back his mind from them in some things . Consider , whether you would be willing that should be done now that was then ; As in the administration of baptisme , we find that in the book of Lyturgy in King Edwards time , which was composed by those worthy men ; first the child was to be croft in the fore-head , and then on the breast , after a prayer used , then the Priest was to say over the child at the Font , I command thee thou unclean spirit , in the name of the Father , and of the Son , and of the holy Ghost , that thou comest out of this infant , thou cursed spirit remember thy sentence , remember thy judgment , remember the day is at hand wherein thou shalt bee burnt with everlasting fire prepared for thee and thy Angels ; & presume not hereafter to exercise any tyranny over this infant whom Christ hath bought with his precious blood . Then they dipped the childe thrice in the water , the Godfathers and the Godmothers laid their hands upon the child , and the Priest putteth a white vestment over it , called a Crysome , saying , Take this white vesture for a token of thine innocency , which by Gods grace in this holy Sacrament of baptisme is given to thee , & for a signe whereby thou art admonished as long as thou livest to give thy selfe to innocency . Then the Priest must anoint the Infant upon the head , saying , Almighty God , &c. who hath regenerated thee by water & the holy Ghost , who hath given thee remission of all thy sins , vouchsafe to anoint thee with the unction of his holy Spirit . Would you now have your children baptized after this manner ? yet these learned holy men thought that to be a good way . So at the buriall of the dead , the Priest casting earth upon the corps shall say , I commend thy soule to God the Father Almighty , and body to the ground : and in another prayer , Grant to this thy servant ; that the sinnes he committed in this world be not imputed to him , but that he escaping the gates of hell , and pains of eternall darknesse , may ever dwell in the region of light . You will say , things are otherwise now . True , therefore I say there is no strength in that argument , that those men that composed that liturgy were worthy lights in the Church ; for they were but newly come out of Popery , and had the scent of Popery upon them , therefore it is too unreasonable to make that which they did the rule of our Reformation now , as if we were to goe no further then they did . The like may be said of the Primitive times , which many plead for the justification of their superstitious vanities , for the Christians then came but newly out of heathenisme , and lived amongst Heathens , and therfore could not so soon be delivered from their heathenish customes . I could relate to you sad things there were in Qu. Elizabeths dayes , in K. James his dayes , but I must not take too much liberty in this digression , onely let us hereby learn not so to cry out of evill times that we are faln into , as to be unthankfull for present mercies ; let us blesse God for what wee have had , and looke unto the rule for further reformation . For shee did not know that I gave her corn , and wine , and oyle , and multiplyed her silver and gold , which they prepared for Baal , &c. The Spirit of God returneth here again to convincing , upbraiding , accusing , threatning Israel . The sin of Israel went very near to the heart of God , and God speaks here as a man troubled in spirit for the unkindenesse , unfaithfulness , unreasonableness of the dealings of his Spouse with him , it runneth in his thoughts , his heart is grieved at it , and he must vent himselfe , and when he hath told his grief and aggravated his wrong , he is upon it again & again , still convincing , upbraiding , charging Israel for dealing so unfaithfully and treacherously with him , all shewing the trouble of his spirit . For she did not know , &c. These words depend upon the 5. ver . ( for the 6. & 7. they are as a parenthesis ) She hath done shamefully , for she said , I will goe after my lovers that give me my bread , & my water , my wool , & my flae●●e , &c. For she did not know , &c. She did thus and thus , for she did not know that I gave her corn , and wine , &c. What was Israel worse then the Oxe or the Asse that knows his owner & his Masters crib ? It is impossible but Israel ( that was the onely people of God in those times , where God was most , nay we may say onely knowen in the world ) should know that God was the cause of all the good they had , certainly they could not be ignorant of that , for in their Creed ( as Buxtorfius and others make mention ) they had 13. Articles , and this was the first Article , I believe with a true and perfect faith , that God is the creator , the governor , the sustainer of all creatures , that he wrought all things , still works all things , & shall for ever worke all things . And at their feasts they had these expressions , Blessed be thou O Lord our God King of the world that dost create the fruit of the vine . The Mr. of the feast himself came in ( he did not set a boy to it ) publiquely to bless God for the fruit of the vine , and yet here the Text saith they did not know that God gave them wine . When they came to take bread they had this speech , Blessed be thou O God that art the King of the world , that bringest forth bread out of the earth ; And at the end of their feast this , Let us bless him who hath sent us of his owne , of whose goodnesse we live . The question answered , and blessed be he of whose goodnesse we live , Yea they used to blesse God solemnly for the sweete and fragrant smell of spices and herbs . This was their constant way , and yet God chargeth them that they did not know that he gave them bread , and wine , and ●●le , they did not lay it to heart . We shall see afterward of what great use this is unto us , to shew what profession they made of acknowledging that God gave them all , and yet God charges them that they did not know it . That I gave them , what ? Corne , wine , and oyle , & multiplyed her silver and her gold . Here God expresseth himselfe more largely then they did before in that they received from their Idols , they talked in the 5. vers . of receiving from their Idols bread , and water , and wool , and flax , &c. but here is wine , & oyle , and silver , and gold , more then they had from their Idols . God setteth out his mercy to them , to upbraid them . And they prepared them for Baal . We must enquire here first what this Baal was . The name of him [ Bagnal ] it signifieth a Lord ( and from thence signifyeth a husband ) because they attributed such dominion that their Idols had over them , acknowledging their Idols to be Lords , therefore they called them by the name Bagnall , their Lords : And because they chose them as their husband , therefore also they had this name , it is all one with Bel too , for the Chaldee put out that letter [ 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 ] and the pricks being altered it is all one Baal and Bel. Now this Baal either was some speciall Idoll , or else a generall name given to all Idols ; sometimes it is a name given generally to all , in the plurall number Baalim . Jer. 9. 14. They have walked after the imaginations of their owne heart , and after Baalim . But it likewise notes a speciall Idol , an Idol that was the same with that of the Zidonians , which they called Iupiter Thalassius , or their sea Iupiter , that idol was called Baal in a speciall manner , 1 King. 16. 31. you may see how the worship of Baal came into Israel at that time . It is true , the worship of Baal had been in Israel a long time before , in Iudg. 2. 11. you shall find there that they served Baal , yet the idolatry of Baal was often cast out by the people of God , but in that place of the Kings you shall find how it came in afresh , the Text saith , that Ahab tooke to wife Iexebel the daughter of Eth-baal King of the Zidonians , & went and served Baal , and worshipped him ; That was the occasion that Ahab matching with a Zidonian , to the end that he might ingratiate himselfe with his wives kindred , he would worship his wives God. And this Baal hath divers additionall names . Sometimes you shall find in Scripture called Baal-zebub , or Belzebub ( it is all one , for Baal and Bel is the same , only changing the points ) and that signifieth their god of flies , & the reason why Baal had that name , was , because in those Countreyes they were extreamly perplexed with flies , and they attributed the power of driving them away , and of helping them against the molestation they had by them to their god Baal , hence they called him Baalzebub ; you may see how much they attributed to their god for deliverance from flies , wee have other manner of deliverances by the goodnes of our God then this , yet for this Baalzebub was one of their principall gods , therefore it is said of Christ , that he cast out devils by Belzebub the prince of devills , which is by the god of flies , Mat. 20. 25. He is called 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 , Belzebul , which is as much as the dung , god , Zebel in the●●y ●iac signifying Stercus , dung . Then there was Baal-perazim , that addition was onely from the place , the Mountain where he was worshipped . There was also Baal-berith , that signified onely the covenant they entred into with that God. So that it seemes the very Idolaters did binde themselves to worship their god by solemne covenant or very strong arguments , to teach us to be willing to binde our selves in worshipping the true God by all the legall bonds we can , to make God to be the God of our Covenant , as their god here was . It is needlesse to name more who had this name . I shall afterward shew how God himselfe had once the name of Baal , for the word signifying the name of husband or Lord was as due to God as to any other , and God himselfe tooke that name . But here we are to understand it of their Idols . They prepared them for Baal , they made them for Baal , so the word is . It importeth these two things . First it importeth that they did sacrifice these thing to their Baal , for so facere , to make , is as much many times as Sacrificare , to sacrifice ; And Bella mine takes advantage from this word , when Christ saith , Hoc facite , do this , he draweth an argument that the Lords Supper is a sacrifice , for the word to doe is used somtime to sacrifice . But secondly , they prepared them , that is , of their gold and silver they made Images of this their Idoll god Baal , they would not spare their gold and silver , but laid aside and prepared it to make images of Baal , and they thought that gold and silver thus laid out as good as any in their purses . The Observations . First . It is God that supplyeth all the outward good of his people . They did not know that I gave them , &c. I gave them all the corn , and wine , and oyle they had , I did not onely give them mine Ordinances , but I gave them corn , and wine , and oyle , and gold , and silver . It is the Lord himselfe that supplyeth all outward good to his people , he doth not onely prize the soules of his people , but hee takes care of their bodies too , and outward estates . Psalm , 34. 20. He keepeth all his bones . Yea , he takes care of the very haire of their heads . The bodies of the Saints are very precious in the eyes of God , the most precious of all corporall things in the world : The Sonne , and Moone , and Starres , are not so precious as the bodyes of the Saints , how much more precious are their soules ? VVe have an excellent note of Austin upon Psalm , 63. 1. where the Text saith , My soule thirsteth for thee , my flesh longeth for thee , &c. Upon this he hath this Note : If the flesh hath any need of bread , of wine , of money or cattell , seeke this of God , for God giveth this too , for marke , Those who thirst for God must thirst for him every way ; not only their soules ●●rst for him , but their flesh must thirst for him ; for saith he , did God make the soul , and did the devills or any idols make the flesh ? No , he that made both soule and flesh , he feedeth them both , therefore all Christians must say , My soule longeth after thee , and my flesh also . If then we can trust God for our soules , and our eternall estates that hee will provide for them , we must trust him for our bodies also , for our flesh , for our temporall estates , that he will provide for them also . Secondly thus . All that we have , all our supply that we enjoy in this world , it is the free gift of God. They did not know that I gave them corne and wine , &c. All of us live upon the meere Almes of God , the greatest man in the world is bound to goe to Gods gate and beg his bread every day ; though he were an Emperour over all the world , hee must doe it to shew his dependance upon him , that he lives wholly upon almes : Men thinke it hard to live upon almes , and because they have maintenance , so much comming in by the yeare , such an estate in land , they thinke they are well provided for many yeers : But what ever estate thou hast , though by thy trading thou hast gotten so much by the yeare coming in , yet God requireth this of thee , to go to his gate , & beg thy bread of him every day ; so Christ teacheth , Give us this day our dayly bread ; And certainly if we did but understand this our dependance upon God for all outward comforts in the world , we could not but feare him , and seeke to make peace with him , and keepe peace with him , and it would be a meanes that our hearts would be inlarged to give to others who need our almes , and seeing every man and woman of us is an Almes-man , and an Almes-woman . Thirdly , It is our duty that we owe to God to know and take notice of God as the author of all our good . They know not , that implyeth they ought to have knowne . This is a speciall duty of that worship we owe to God : it is the end of Gods communicating all good to us , that he may have active glory from his rational creature as well as passive glory , and there is no creature else in all the world that God hath made capable of knowing any thing of the first cause but only the rational creature , therefore it is the excellency of such that they do not onely enjoy the good that they have , but they are able to rise up to the highest and first cause of all their good : There is a great deale of excellency in this . It is observed of Doves , that at every pick of corne they take in their bill they cast their eyes upward ; and in the Canticles you shall finde the eyes of the Church are called Doves eyes , because they looke so much up to heaven upon every good they receive : They have not dogs eies , the men of the world have dogs eies , dogs you know looke up to their Masters for a bone , and when they have it they presently looke downe to the ground ; so the men of the world , they will pray to God when they want , but wh●n they enjoy what they would have , they look no more upward but all downward . This taking notice of God to be the Author of all our good , and to give him praise , is all the rent we pay to God for what we enjoy , therefore it is fit we should doe that ; and if we doe any thing for God , be sure God takes notice of that to the uttermost , yea though it be himselfe that enableth us to do it , yea though it be but a little good mingled with a great deale of evill , God takes notice of it , and will reward it , surely then we should take notice of the good that he giveth out to us . This sweetneth our comforts to see that they all come from God , and for that observe the difference betweene the expression of Jacobs blessing , and Esaus blessing ; when Isaac came to blesse Jacob , hee expresseth himselfe thus , Gen. 27. 28. God give thee of the dew of heaven , and of the fatnesse of the earth , and plenty of corne and wine , &c. Now when he commeth to blesse Esau , marke his expression then verse 39. Thy dwelling shall be the fatnesse of the earth , and of the dew of heaven from above , but hee never mentioneth God in that ; It is not Esaus blessing . God give thee of the dew of heaven , and of the fatnesse of the earth , though it is true Isaac meant so , but yet he doth not mention the name of God so in Esaus as in Iacobs blessing , Certainly my brethren , the seed of Jacob count their blessing to be a double , a treble blessing , that they can see God in it : carnall hearts do not much regard God , if they can have what they would have , if they can have their flesh satisfied in what they desire , from what hand it cometh that they doe not much care ; but a gracious heart , a child of Jacob , rejoyceth more in the hand from whence it commeth , then in any good he can possibly enjoy . Fourthly , They did not know . God doth a great deale of good in the world that is little taken notice of , or laid to heart . Many of Gods dispensations are invisible , the Angels , Ezek. 1. are described with their hands under their wings . God doth great things somtime so invisibly , as he cannot be seene ; And when he doth great things that we might see , yet through onr neglect , stupidity , and drossinesse of our hearts , we doe not see them . The most observing eye that is in the world , that takes the exactest notice of Gods mercy , and hath the greatest skill to set forth the riches of Gods goodnesse to himselfe and others , yet alas it is but very little that he takes notice of , no not of that he might doe . It is with the quickest sighted Christians as with a skilful Mathematician , a skilfull Mathematician takes notice of and understands many parts of the world , and is able to set out the several parts distinctly to you in such a Climate , in such a Countrey , but yet when he hath done all , he leaveth a great space for a Terra incognita , for an unknown world , and that unknowne world for ought we know may be five times bigger then the known world ; So they that have the most observant eye of Gods mercies , and take the most notice of them , that can best set out the mercies he bestoweth , spiritual mercies , temporall mercies , preventing mercies , past mercies , present mercies , delivering mercies , &c. yet when they have done all , they must leave a great space for the Terra incognita , for the unknowne mercies of God. The truth is , those mercies of God that are obvious to our knowledge every day , one would thinke they were enough to melt our hearts , to breake them in pieces : but besides these mercies we take notice of , there are thousands and thousands of mercies that we know not of . As we daily commit many sins that we know not of , so daily we receive many mercies that we know not of likewise ; And as in our confession of sins , we should pray to God first to pardon our sins we know , and so to name them in particular ; and when we have done , then , Lord forgive us our unknown , our secret sins ; So in our thanksgiving , first blesse God for the mercies before us , and when we have done . Lord blessed be thy name for all thy unknown mercies that I have little taken notice of . We soone grow cold and dead if we doe good ; and men take no notice of us , neither what we know , nor what we doe is any thing to us except others know it too , but this is the vanity and pride of mens hearts , it is Gods prerogative above his creatures , to doe all for himselfe , for his owne glory , and yet he doth much good in the world that none knows of ; we are bound to deny our selves in that we doe , not to seeke our own glory ; The most excellent peece in the most excellent of our workes is our selfe-denyal in it ; why should we not then doe all the good we can doe cheerefully , though it be not known ? we should doe good out of love to goodnesse it selfe , and if we would doe so we should be encouraged in doing good secretly . Fifthly , and which commeth yet more fully up to the words , They did not know , &c. In Gods account men know no more then they lay to heart and make good use of . The Schooles distinguish of want of knowledge , there is Nescientia , and Ignoratia ; Nescience is of such things as we are not bound to know , it is not our sinne not to know them ; but Ignorance is of such things as we are bound to know , and that ignorance is two-fold ; there is an invincible ignorance , let us take what paines we can , wee can never know all we are bound to know ; and there is an affected ignorance , when we do not know , because out of carelesnesse we doe not minde what is before us , and when we have minded it so farre as to conceive it , yet if we lay it not to heart as we ought , still in Gods account we know it not , if we digest not what we know into practise , God accepteth it not . As God is said not to know when hee doth not approve , I know yee not , saith he , so when any man hath a truth in notion and it doth not get into the heart , when it is not imbraced there , God accounts that that man knowes it not ; Therefore you have in Scripture such an expression as the Seer is blinde ; It is a strange expression , it seemes to be a contradiction , such a thing as we call a Bull : The Seer is blinde : But it is not so here , because God accounts those that have never so much knowledge , yet if it doe not sanctifie the heart so as to give him the glory , they are blinde , blinde as a Beetle ; The knowledge of the Saints is another kinde of knowledge then other men have . We have , saith Cyprian no such notions as many of your Phylosophers have , but we are Phylosophers in our deeds , we doe not speake great things , but we doe great things in our lives . 1 Thes . 4. 9. You have an excellent expression for this , you are taught of God to love one another , what followeth ? And indeed so you do , That is an evidence that you are taught of God when it p●evay leth with your hearts , when it may be ●aid , indeed so you doe : VVho is there in the world but knowes that wee should love one another ? but men are not taught of God to love one another untill it may be said of them that indeed so they doe . There is nothing more obvious to the understanding of a man then the notion of a Deity , that there is a God , we may as it were grope after him as the holy Ghost speakes ; but yet 1 Iohn 2. 4. He that saith he knowes him , and keepes not his commandements , is a lyar , and the truth is not in him ; Any man who ever he be , though the greatest Schollar in the world , if he saith he knowes God and keepes not his commandements , he hath the lie told him to his teeth , hee doth not know God at all , though this of God be the most obvious thing to be understood that possibly can be , and yet Christ saith no man knoweth the Father but the Sonne , and to whom the Sonne shall reveale him . Hence it is when a soul is converted , you shall heare these expressions , I never knew before , I never knew what an infinite Deity meant , I never understood the infinite soveraignty and Majesty of the great God , I never knew what sinne meant before ; yet if you had asked him afore , he would say , I know God is a Spirit , that he is infinite and eternall ; I know that sinne is the transgression of the law ; I never knew that Christ was before , yet before hee would have told you that Christ was the sonne of Mary , and came into the world to dye for sinners . I remember an expression of a Germane Divine , when he was upon his sick bed , In this disease saith he , I have learned what sin is , and how great the Majesty of God is ; This man though a Preacher , and doubtlesse he could preach of sinne and of the Majesty of God , yet hee professeth he knew not these things untill God came powerfully upon his heart to teach him what they were . The Hebrews say , words of sense carry with them the affections , or else they be to no purpose : when men have notionall knowledge onely that comes not down into the heart , they are like men that have weak stomacks and weake heads , when they drink wine all flyeth up to the head & it makes them giddy , but if the wine went to the heart , it would cheare & warme it : so all this mans knowledg flyeth up to his head & makes him giddy , whereas if it were digested & got to the heart , it would warme and refresh , yea 〈…〉 The Text saith of Elies sonnes , 1 Sam. 2. 12. that they knew not the Lord ; they were Priests of God , yet they were sonnes of Belial , and know not the Lord. Be not offended at great Schollars who have skill in the tongues , Arts and Sciences , do not you say these men that are great and knowing men , would they do thus and thus , if things were so as you speake ; they are not knowing men , God saith that Elies sonnes did not know , the Lord , the things of God are hid from them . I thanke thee O Father Lord of heaven and earth , that thou hast hid thess things from the wise and prudent , &c. Sixthly , They did not know that I gave them , &c. Affected ignorance comming thorough distemper of heart is no excuse , but rather an aggravation . It is a high degree of ingratitude not to prize Gods mercy , but not to take notice of Gods mercies , Oh what a high ingratitude is this ! That which shall be part of Gods charge against sinners can be no excuse of their sinne , it is a part of Gods charge that they did not know , therefore their ignorance cannot be their excuse . God threatneth to cut people off , to have no mercy upon them for want of knowing as well as for not doing , They are a people of no understanding , therefore he that made them will have no mercy upon them , and he that formed them will shew them no favour , Esay 27. 11. Ambrose hath this expression , Thou doest sinne greatly if thou doest contemne the riches of Gods long suffering , but thou sinnest most of all if thou doest not know it . From the word [ for ] as depending upon the 5. ver . ( for so it doth , ) The Observation is , The not taking notice and considering of Gods mercies , and laying them to heart , is the cause of vile , and shamefull evils in mens lives . Therefore they did shamefully , therefore they went after their lovers , because they did not know , the cause of almost all the evill in the world it is from hence , They that know thy name will trust in thee , those who know the Lord will feare him and his goodnesse . Esay 1. 4. Ah sinfull nation , saith God : God fetcheth a sigh under the burthen of it , his spirit is laden and troubled with it , Ah sinfull people , &c , What was the matter ? The Oxe knoweth his owner , and the Asse his masters crib , but Israel doth not know , my people doth not consider , they were more stupid then the brute creatures . Oh sinfull soul , this is the cause of all thy inordinate walking , of all thy profanenesse , of all the ungodliness in thy wayes , because thou dost not know , thou dost not consider , thou dost not lay to heart the wayes of God towards thee . Ier. 2. 5. God chargeth his people that they were gone from him , and ver . 7. that they had made his heritage an abomination . What is the reason that is given of both these ? It is in the 6. ver . They did not say , Where is the Lord that brought us up out of the land of Egypt ? &c. They did not take notice of what the Lord had done for them , therefore they were gone far from him , &c. If thou hadst but a heart to lay to heart what God hath done for thee , it is impossible that thou shouldst goe so farre off from God as thou dost . For these deductions are easie and obvious to any from such a principle . 1. Justice , common equity requires living to God , seeing we live by and upon God. 2. Common ingenuity calls for requiring good with good ; the Publicans and Heathens will do good to those that do good to them . 3. If all be from God , then all still depends upon God. 4. How much good is there in God from whence all this good and mercy comes , when God shall shew another day to men and Angels how hee was the fountaine of all good ! it will confound those who have not laid it to heart . 8. She did not know that I gave her corne , and wine , and oyle , and multiplyed her silver and her gold . God is more bountifull to his people then the Idols can be . The Idols by their owne confession gave them but their bread , & water , and flax , and oyle , &c. but God giveth them wine , & silver , & gold . God gives them better pay a great deale then the Devill doth ; yet the Devill usually hath more servants to follow him then God hath , though his wages bee lesse and worse . It is usuall for men to get souldiers from adversaries , by giv●ng them more pay : This is the way God takes , he offereth a great deale better pay to those that will follow him , then they have that follow the Devill , yet God can get few to follow him . This shews the vilenesse of mans heart against God. 9. She did not know that I gave her , &c. which she prepared for Baal . When men get abundance , then they soon grow wanton . When I gave them corn , and wine , and oyle , and multiplyed their silver and their gold , then they followed Baal . This is the reason of so many solemne charges of God , Take heed when thou art full , that thou dost not forget the Lord. As they that are neerest the sun are the blackest , so those to whom God is neerest in regard of outward mercies , are many times blacker then others . It is observed , that the fatter mens bodies are , the lesse blood and the fewer spirits they have ; so the fatter mens estates are , many times the lesse spirit they have to any thing that is good ; God hath lesse spirit from them , sinne hath much more . We read of the sunne melting the Manna that fell downe , but the same Manna was able to bear the fire ; so many a mans heart is able to beare affliction , and the affliction doth good , prepareth for much good , as Manna was prepared to be eaten by fire , but prosperity melteth them , makes them useless . Many men when they were poor and in a low condition , were very usefull ; but when they grow high and rich , they are of very little use in the places where they dwell . Trajan the Emperour was wont to liken a man growing to a great estate , to the Spleene in the body ; for as the S●leene grows big , the body growes lesse : so when mens estates grow bigger , they grow lesse usefull . Euagrius noteth it as a speciall commendation of Mauritius the Emperor , but notwithstanding his prosperity he retained his ancyent piety : it is a very rare thing to see men advanced to high places , do so . 10. I gave her corne , and wine , and oyle , and I multiplyed her silver and gold which they sacrificed to Baal . Even those creatures that wicked men abuse to their lusts , God gives them . Though he doth not give them for that end , yet those creatures that they use for such an end are given of God. If thou beest a drunkard , that wine or drinke that thou dost sacrifice to that lust of thine , who giveth it thee ? Is it not God ? thou hast a good estate more then other men , and all the use thou makest of thy estate is meerly that it might be but as fewell for thy lusts , who gave thee this thy estate ? Is it not God ? God giveth thee cloathes and thou sacrificest them to thy pride , thou hast more money then others , and so canst vent thy malice more then others , from whence hast thou this ? Thou hast more strength of body then others and thou ventest it in uncleannesse , where hadst thou this ? consider this , and let this meditation prevayle with thine heart to stop thee in thy sinful way , let it be seconded with the next ; viz : That is a most horrible wickedness and abominable ingratitude , for any man to take Gods creatures and abuse them against God. What , I gave them corne , and wine , and multiplyed their silver , and their gold , and have they prepared these for Baal ? God speakes of this as of a monstrous sin , as if God should say , let all my people lament my condition , that I should do so much for them , and they doe nothing for me but all against me , sacrifice all to Baal : As perhaps many of you have beene kinde to some of your friends , and have raised them , and made them , as we use to say ; they have wanted nothing , but you have been bountifull to them , if now these men should turne your enemies , and that estate they have got by you , they should use it to doe you a mischiefe , would you not call in your neighbours and friends , to joyne with you in lamenting your condition ? What , did you ever heare of such an example , that I should doe so much for such , and they turne all against me ? you tell it as a most lamentable story to your friends ; God doth so here ; he makes this his grievous complaint . This is as if a bird should be shot with an Arrow , whose feathers came out of her own body ; we would even pity a bird in that case . Many men make no other use of their estates but to turne them against God ; they are not as the slothfull servant that hid his talent in the napkin , if it were but so it were not so much , but they take their talents & imploy them against God. Would it not goe to your heart if one should sue you in law , and beare the charges of the suit out of your owne estate ? VVe use to complaine such a man sueth me , and it is my owne money hee goeth to law with ; So thou goest against God , and hee is fayne as it were to beare all the charges : It is not against the light of Nature ? the very heathens : the publicanes and sinners will doe good to those that do good to them : Thou art worse then a publicane and sinner , wilt thou do hurt to God that doth thee good ? When Julius Caesar saw Brutus come to give him a stab in the Senate house , he cryed out , What thou my sonne , wilt thou do it ? But suppose that Iulius Caesar had given him the dagger with which he stabbed him , then O thou my sonne , what stab me with that dagger I gave thee ? If when Jonathan gave David his sword and bow , David should have turned against Jonathan and killed him with his own sword and bow , would not the unkindnesse or rather the abominable wickedness have pierced deeper into his heart , then any swords or arrows possibly could ? If you can finde any creature that is not GODS to fight against him withall , you may doe it , but if all you have is from him , it is horrible wickednesse to take that and to sacrifice it to Baal . Certainly God giveth it for other ends , to goe crosse to Gods ends is an evill thing : VVhen God aymeth at such a thing , for us not to joyne with God in the same end he aymeth at is an evil , but for us to ayme at a quite contrary end , that is horrible wickednesse indeed . They sacrificed to Baal . When once superstition and Idolatry hath got into a place , though there be much done against it , yet it is not easie to get it out . It is from hence that God doth so often complaine of Baal , yet you shall finde in Iudg , 2. ( I thinke that is the first place it is mentioned that they served Baal ) but it appeareth that they fell off from Baal , yet they fell to him againe , for in Iudg. 8. 33. After Gideons death it came to passe that the children of Israel turned againe and went a whoring after Baalim , and made Baal-berith their god ; It speakes as if it were a new thing now that they should fall to worship Baal after they had left worshipping him ; After his death . And 1 Sam. 7. 4. The children of Israel did put away Baalim ; and yet if you reade Chap ▪ 10. 22. they fall a confessing that they had sinned , because they had forsaken the Lord and served Baalim ; though they had put him away before , yet he had got up again ; So in that place before named , 1 King. 16. there Ahah would serve Baal , it is brought in there as a new thing , as a novelty , because Baal had beene so much suppressed , 2 King. 10. you find that Iehu sought to destroy Baal & all his Priests , but yet Baal was not got out for all this , but he got in againe , for in 2 Kin. 23. 4. the Text saith , that Josia who was long after that time , caused the vessels that were made for Baal to be taken away and burnt . This is a marvailous use , and seasonable for our times . If superstition be opposed , though it be cast out as we thinke in a great degree , yet if there be not a thorough Reformation , it will winde in one way or other againe . If we thinke it enough to cut things short , and to take away their strength , and their enormities , we deceive our selves ; if there be nothing done but so , they will grow up againe ; it is but cutting the weeds a little ; if branch and root be not taken away , they will up again ; Baal will put up his head one way or other . I remember Cluverus a late Historian , yet much approved of , bringeth in one that gave this councell concerning Rome , because it was much annoyed with Wolves ; saith he , there is no way to save Rome from Wolves , but to cut down the woods wherein these Wolves breed and live , for otherwise they might kill and kill , but they would breed agaiue . So sometimes when childrens heads are overrunne with vermine , the way to destroy the vermine is to shave the haire quite of off : So certainly , this is the way to destroy superstition from amongst us , to take away the places and revenews of those men that have beene maintainers and upholders of superstitious wayes of worship ; Let us by cutting down the woods , and shaving off the hayre destroy these Wolves , and if they will needs be Priests , let them be Shavelings . Which they sacrificed to Baal . Lastly , Idolaters are very liberall to their Idols , they are willing to sacrifice gold ' silver , corne , wine and oyle , and all to Baal , but of that before . The Seventh Lecture . HOSEA 2. 9. 10. Therefore will I returne and take away my corne in the time thereof , and my wine in the season thereof , and will recover my wooll and my flaxe , given to cover their nakednesse . And now I will discover her lewdnesse in the sight of her lovers , and none shall deliver her out of mine hand . IN the former verse , Israel is accused for abusing her silver and gold , &c. in the service of Baal ; now it followes , Therefore I will take away my corne in the time thereof , &c. if there be a therefore , we must enquire wherefore it was , because they did prepare their corne , &c. for Baal , Therefore I will returne . 1. What is the meaning of returning . 2. What the meaning of the time and season thereof , I will take away my corne in the time thereof , and my wine in the season thereof . 3. What that phrase imports , I will recover my wooll . For the first therefore . I will returne , that is , I will change the way of my administrations toward them , I will goe out of my way of mercy , and turne into my way of judgement , I will goe back againe ; I was in a way of judgement toward them , and they cryed to me , and I turned into a way of mercy , but I will goe back againe into a way of judgement , I will returne , Arias Montanus hath a good note upon the place , Whereas God hath heretofore bid them not to be afraid of all the tokens of the Southsayers that is , when they say by Astrology some signes of death that might follow , they were afraid ; be not afraid , saith the Lord , but know your corne , and wine , and oyle depends on me , not on the second causes ; though second causes make against , yet feare not , for I will give you come , and wine and oyle ; but now it is quite contrary , though second causes promise all kind of ple●ty whatsoever , that there shall be abundance of corne , and wine , and oyle , yet I will take away your plenty , there shall be a dearth of all things amongst you . I will take away my corne in the time thereof : that is , first in the times of harvest just when their corne is to be taken in , and in the time of their vintage , I will then take it away , whereas I might take it away in the seed , I will let it grow till the harvest , and then take it away . 2. In the time when they have most need of it , when they are in the greatest straits , and know not what to doe without these creatures , 3. In tempore suo , so some , In the time I have appointed , though I have let them goe on and enjoy the creatures in abundance , yet my time is come that I will take away all . And will recover , the word signifieth , I will snatch it away , I wil spoyle you of it ; and it hath reference to two things . First , I will recover it as out of the hands of usurpers , you have my corne , and wo●l , and flaxe as usurpers , but I will recover them out of your hands , as a man that hath his goods taken away from him usurped , hee by some meanes or other recovers his goods againe ; so saith God , you have my corne , and wine , and as you have carryed the matter , you are but usurpers , I will sue you for them , you shall not enjoy them long . Secondly , I will recover , it hath a reference to prisoners and bondslaves , when the enemy shall get any of ours into their power , and make them bond-slaves , a greater power goes against the enemy , and recovers them out of his hands , and gets them again ; As Abraham recovered Lot and his goods , Gen. 46. 14. Or as if marriners should get those gally-slaves the Turks have gotten : and recover them out of their hands , as if he should say , these creatures of corne and wine , &c. they are in bondage , and I will recover them out of your hands , you know the creatures groane under their bondage while they are in the possession of wicked men , 8. Rom. my creatures are in bondage to you , and they cry to me , and I will recover them out of your hands . There are many precious and choice truths to be presented to you out of the words . First , Therefore I will , &c. Whence observe , Though God gives mercy out of free grace without cause in our selves , yet he takes not away mercy without cause , there is a therefore for taking away mercy , but we have many mercies given without a therefore : When God takes away mercy we have cause to look into our selves to finde out a therefore , but you may find out thousands of mercies that God gives to us , and you shall finde never a therefore for them . It is not so great a wonder that thousand thousands are in misery as that any one enjoyes mercy , for misery hatha therefore in our selves , for mercy there is reason only in the breast of God. Secondly , I will returne . Sinne causeth God to change the way of his administrations towards his people . Though God be in wayes of mercy , yet sinne may put him out of those wayes , and make him returne and go in a way of judgement agnine : how much better were it for sinners to returne , then that sinnne should cause God to returne ? Oh sinner , returne out of thy evill wayes , if God returne , it will be a sad returne . Not long since God was in wayes of judgement against us , and lately he hath come into wayes of mercy , and now he seemes to returne againe to his former wayes of judgement . Ier. 14. 9. Why art thou as a man astonished ? A man astonished stands still ; or if he moves , it is up and down , as if he knew not which way to goe , though we have suffered hard things , wee cannot yet say God is returned , but he seemes as a man astonished , and knowes not which way to go . Thus God is pleased of himselfe after the manner of men , to speake ; let us cry to him that he may not turne out of his way of mercy , into those sad wayes of wrath that he seems to be looking towards . I will take away my corne , and my wine . Abuse of mercy causeth the removing of mercy , 11 Zach. 17. Woe to the idoll shepheard that leaveth the flocke , the sword shall be upon his arme , & upon his right eye , his arme shall be dryed up , and his right eye shall be utterly darkned . Hath God given any a right hand , any abilities ? take heed God doth not strike that right hand , or right eye , any quickness of parts , let them take heed that thorough abuse it be not put out : how many shepherds when they were young had many excellent parts , great abilities , but having abused them to their lusts , God hath taken them away ! So in children , there is no such way to lose your children , as to abuse them , if your hearts be inordinately set upon them , God takes them away . I will tell you of a speciall passage of providence concerning this , & I speak it the rather , because I was an eye and eare witnesse of it , living not far from the place , A godly man desiring his friends to meete to blesse God for his blessings in a plentifull Harvest , after dinner was done comes in a little child , who was indeed a very lovely child , Oh saith the father , I am afraid I shal make a God of this child ; by and by the child was missing , and presently they went to looke him , and hee was found sprawling drowned in a pond . Consider this ye parents who have your hearts inordinately set on your children . Againe , I will take away my corne , and my wine , and my wool , and my flaxe . Marke , before they made them their own , in the former verse , they said they are theirs , now God challenges them for his , here we have , My , My , My , repeated on Gods side , as frequent as before it was on theirs . Fourthly , God keepes the propriety of all that we have ; though God gives all , yet he keepes the propriety of all in his own hand : God hath another propriety in our estates , then any Prince in the world hath . Subjects have propriety in their estates , and enjoy them with as true a right as their Soveraignes , but no creature hath any propriety in what it hath in reference to God , this great Soveraign of all the world holds the propriety of all his hands , not onely what we have , but what we doe , and what we are is all Gods : yea sayes Luther , even our thanksgiving to God for gifts is a gift of God : It is therefore a very vile thing to attribute to our selves what is Gods , when God hath enriched us we adde this odious particle , sayes Luther , I have done it , yea , sayes he , men do so often say , Feci , Feci , I have done , I have done it , that Fiunt faeces , they are as dregs before the Lord ; By this you may see they are not your goods that you abuse it is a great argument to be bountifull and free for good uses ; because what wee have is Gods. I will give you a notable Text for this , 1 Chron. 29. 14. For all things come of thee , and of thine own we have given thee . David thought not much of his bounty towards the Temple , because all was Gods. Therefore I will take away . This [ Therefore ] hath not onely reference to the abuse of them , but to that in the 7. ver . and she shall follow after her l●vers , but shall not overtake them , &c. then shall she say , I will goe and return to my first husband , for then it was better then now . God makes this to be a meanes of working that frame of spirit in them of returning to their first husband . And from hence the note is . Fifthly , The taking away those good things we enjoy , is a meanes of making us returne to God , it is a speciall meanes of conviction , to convince us of sinne , when God comes with some speciall worke of his against us , it workes more upon us when we see some reall expression of Gods displeasure , when God takes his mercies from us then when we heare the threat , now wee come to be sensible of our sinnes . You that are tradesmen and runne into debt , and your Creditors tell you they will come upon you , yet you goe on , till the Bailife comes into your shop and seizeth upon all , and goes into your house and takes away your bed from under you , and all your goods ; when you see all goe out , then you thinke of your negligence , and then the husband and wife wring their hands . So though God threaten you for the abuse of the creature that hee will take it away , yet you are not sensible of it till God indeed takes away all , and then conscience begins to be awakened and fly in your faces . VVhen David saw God taking away his people , then his heart smote him for numbring them ; hee was told of the evill of that way of his before by Ioab , but he goes on in it . VVhen Samuel prayed for raine in wheat harvest , and there came thundring and lightning , then the people feared exceedingly , and acknowledged their sin in asking a King. Those who have abused their estates in these times , when the enemy comes , what gratings of conscience will they have ? Then these thoughts will arise , Have I used my estate for God ? have I done that I might doe ? have I not satisfied my lusts with those things God hath now taken from me ? There is usually a grating of conscience for the abuse of any thing , when God takes it away . When God takes away a wife , if the husband hath a tenderness of conscience , his first thoughts are , Have I performed the duties of my relation to my wife as I ought ? have I not neglected my duty towards her ? and this causeth sad thoughts . And when God taketh away a child . Have I done my duty towards this child ? have I prayed for it , and instructed it as I ought ? Againe , I will take away your corne in the time thereof , and your wine in the season thereof . This presents this truth to you . That there is an uncertainty in all things in the world ; Though they promise faire , yet they are ready to faile us , when they promise most . A husbandman that hath a good seed time , promiseth much to himselfe , it comes up and thrives , and yet at harvest it is all blasted . Habak . 3. 17. Though the labour of the olive faile , The phrase is , Though the Labour of the olive lye , that is , the olive promised faire , it grew up , and looked very faire , and ripened , but it did lye , that is , it did not performe what it seemed to promise , for in the time thereof it vanished and came to naught . I had certain information from a reverend Minister , of a strange work of God this way ; The thing was , in his owne Towne there was a worldling who had a great crop of corne ; a good honest neighbour of his walking by his corne , saith he , Neighbour you have a very fine crop of corne , if God blesse it : Yea , saith he , I will have a good crop , speaking contemptuously and before he could come to get it into the barne , it was blasted , that the corn of the whole crop was not worth six pence . Here we see the uncertainty of the creature in the time thereof , when it seemes to promise never so faire , when wee are ready to take it into the barne , it depends on God , as well as when it is under the clods . Oh the blessednesse of Gods servants , who are sure of their good for time to come ! We may promise our selves certainty , even for the future in the things of Christ ; but for outwards they are never sure , no not when men have them in their hands . Many things fall out betweene the cup and lip , as we have it in the proverb . I will take away my corne in the time thereof , and wine in the season thereof . Hence Observe . God lets out his displeasure many times to those that provoke him , when they make account of the greatest mercy , when they are at the greatest height of prosperity , when afflictions seems to be the farthest off from them , then it comes heaviest upon them : When they thinke least of it , when they thinke all sure , then God comes upon them by his displeasure , when his displeasure shall be most bi●ter to them : for that is the strength of the point , he will not onely take them away in the time thereof , but when the affliction shall be most grievous to them . That in the 20. of Job , ver . 22. is a most notable Scripture for this , In the fulnesse of his sufficiency he shall be in straits . A man may seeme to have sufficiency of the creature , and may have his fulnesse of sufficiency , yet God saith he shall be in straits in the fulnesse of his sufficiency , I can give you another admirable work of providence in this very things wherein you may see God to come in sore affliction at such a time , when it is most bitter : it came from that worthy Divine Doctor Preston , it was in the Towne where he was born ; There was a man who of long time had no childe , but when God gave him one , at the weaning of it hee called his friends and neighbours to rejoyce with him for this great mercy : and the Nurse going to dandle the child in her arme , and wearing a knife in her bosom , the point of the knife being upward , while she was dandling of the child , runs into the belly of the child , at that time when all his friends were about him to rejoyce with him . When men thinke the bitternesse of death to be past , ( as Agag did ) the curse of God comes on them . Ps . 78. 30. While the meate was in their mouths , the wrath of God fell upon them . I have read of Pope John the 22. that he said he knew by the position of the Stars he should live a long time , and boasted that he could cast his nativity , and the same night by the fall of a chamber he had newly built for his solace , he was s●ain . Another example in this kind I have heard credibly reported of a drunken fellow in an Inne was swearing most dreadfully , and one comes in and saith , Sir , what if you should dye now ? saith hee , I shall never eye , and going down the stairs when he went out of his chamber , he presently feldown and broke his neck . There is likewise a history of one Bibulus a Roman , that riding in triumph in all his glory , a tyle fel from a house in the street and knockt out his brains . As on the contrary , Gods wayes and dealings with the Saints are such , as what time their condition is most sad , God comes in with mercy to them , when they are in the most dark condition and gloomish , Gods face shines on them ; so when the wicked are in their prosperity , God smites them , When the irons entred into Iosephs soule , God delivered him . When the Apostle had received the sentence of death in himself , God comforred him 2 Cor. 1. 9. When Abraham was lifting up his hand to slay Isaac , the Angel of the Lord stayed his hand . As it is observed in nature , a little before day breake it is darker then before , so a little before the happinesse of Gods people , there are some great afflictions . Zech. 1. 7. At the evening time it shall be light . I will recover . From this phrase of [ recovering ] observe , First , when men abuse mercies , they forfeit their right in their mercies , they come then to be but usurpers ; they are not usurpers of mercies , meerely for the use of mercies , but for the abuse of them ; they are not charged for their right to use them , but for their not right using them , there is great difference between these two . It hath beene taught by many , that all wicked men have no right at all to use any creature , but are to answer as usurpers before God. But certainely there is a mistake . It is certain man hath forfeited all , but God hath given a right to all that they do enjoy in a lawful way , a right by donation . They have not such a right as the Saints have , a right in Christ , once being in Christ we may challence of God all things that are good for us . Another man hath right , but how ? as a malefactor is condemned to dye by his offence , being condemned , he hath forfeited all his estate , and all the benefit of a subject ; But if the King be pleased to allow him provision for a day or two , till the time of execution , he cannot be challenged as an usurper , for that he hath , he hath it by donation , and it is such a right that all wicked men have ; all wicked men in the world are under the sentence of condemnation , & have forfeited their right , and all the good of the creature , only the Lord is pleased out of his bounty to give such and such enjoyments , they shall have such and such houses , and such and such lands for a time , till the day of execution comes . This might daunt the hearts of wicked men : you look upon your selves as great men , you have your shops full , you have large estates , you are like some malefactors , who have a better supper before execution then others . But still your not right using may make you usurpers before God. You give your servant order to buy such and such commodities , suppose your servant run away with your money , or bestow it on his whores , &c. if he run away do you not follow him as a thiefe ? you trust him with such a stock , to keepe such markets , now he hath right to use your estate ; but if he run away with your estate , and use it against you , if you meet with him again , you will say , what a thief are you to run away with your Masters estate , and abuse it against him ? I will recover , &c. All the time the creature serves wicked men , it is in bondage , and God looks upon it with a kinde of pitty . God hath made all things for his owne praise , and he gives the children of men many mercies , but it is for his owne glory ; but when these creatures which were given for the glory of God , are abused to thy lust , the creature groanes under thee . Thou drinkest wine , but the creature groans under thy abuse ; never any gally-slave did groan more under the bondage of the Turks , then thy wine and thy dishes on thy table groan under thy abuse , Rom. 8. 22. As God hears the cry of the widow and fatherless , so he hears the groans of the creature . Cornelius a Lapide tels a story that he heard of a famous Preacher , shewing this bondage of the creature , brings in the creatures complaining thus , Oh that we could serve such as are godly ! Oh that our substance & our flesh might be incorporated into godly people , that so we might rise into glory ! but if our flesh be incorporated into the flesh of sinners , we shall go to hell , and would any creature go to hell ? The very creatures shall be in hell eternally , when wicked men consume them on their lusts , being incorporated into their bodies . Certainly , the creature one day wil have a kind of revenge upon ungodly men , & divers think that hell will be a turning all creatures into a Chaos , into a confusion again as it was at the first , and the wicked put into that , and so tormented there , there shal not be an annihilation , but God shall take away the beauty , comfort & glory of the creature , and whatsoevershal be for the torment of ungodly men shal abide , and so they shall bee tormented eternally by the creatures they do abuse . As in such a building as this is , there is lime and stone , and morter , but now the art of man puts a beauty upon them ; but suppose all the art of man were taken away from this building , at an instant , what would become of us then ? it would bury us in the rubbish of it ; now it is usefull and delightfull , but if the art were taken away , it would be our destruction . So the creatures of God have much of Gods wisedome , power and goodnesse in them , which God suffers wicked men to enjoy ; but God will take away all his wisdome , beauty and goodnesse , so that nothing but the confusion & rubbish of the creature shall be upon the wicked to all eternity . I will recover my wooll and my flaxe given to cover their nakednesse . Whence observe , God gives his blessings to us , not for luxury , but for necessity ; I gave them to cover your nakednesse . Therefore when our Saviour teacheth us to pray ▪ it is for dayly bread , or bread which is for our substance , so much bread as serves for our substance , and that but for a day neither . Most are abusive in their desires , after , and use of the creature , they looke at bravery rather then necessity ; As Cyprian hath an expression , It is not the heat of their cloathes , nor calor , but color , the colour is rather regarded by many . God lookes now especially that we should cut of our superfluities , when our br●thren want necessareis . To cover your nakednesse . It seemes that our nakednesse needs a cover . Sin hath made nakednesse shamefull . Hence therefore our bodies are called vile bodies ; those bodies that we study so much to pamper and adorne , they are bodies of vilenesse , as the Apostle speakes , Phil. 3. 21. yea , of that vilenesse with an article , or of the vilensse ; to be proud of our cloathes that cover our shame , that cover our nakednesse is an unreasonable thing . Would you have your bodies adorned ? labour for godlinesse , and then you shall have bodies like the glorious body of JESUS CHRST ; you may have bodies that shall not need a covering . Lastly , when abundance is abused , it is just with God that we should want necessaries , I will take away their corne , &c. how many are there who have lavished out their estates , upon whom you may see Gods judgement so grievous , that they want a piece of bread ; now you often tell your lavish wasting servants , they will be glad of a crust before they dye ; It proves true often of Masters and Mistresses also , who out of pride and delicacy of spirit , will be so fine & brave above their ranks , that God doth blast them that they have not to cover their nakednesse . Those in the third of Isa , who had that gorgeous and brave attire , are threatned with baldnesse , and grinding with sackcloath , ver . 24. and such as come to misery by their wasting superfluity have none to pitty them . I have read of Alfonsus a King of Spaine , who when a Knight falling into want and being arrested for debt , there was a petition to the King to succour him , I saith the King , if he had spent his estate in mine , or in the common-wealths service , it were reason he should be provided for , by me or the common-wealth , but seeing he hath spent all in rio●ousness , let him suffer . Consider this you who are so loath to part with your estates for the publicke , you murmure at every thing that is required of you for that , but you are profuse in expences for your lust , God hath wayes to bring you low enough in your estares . Ver. 10. And now I will discover her lewdnesse . And now , that is , when I recover my wooll , and flaxe , I will discover her lewdnesse , I will take their covers from their own eyes , and from the eyes of others . Wicked men , and especially Idolaters have divers covers for their lewdnesse . There are especially three covers that these people had for their lewdness . The first was their outward prosperity : do you speak so bitterly against us , as if we were Idolaters , as if we had forsaken God , are we not in as good a condition as Judah , who you say hath not forsaken God ? Secondly , Their externall worship is that yet they kept something according to Gods own mind , they yet kept the Sabbath and some solemn dayes according to the law , this cover they rested in ; as if they should say , What doe you accuse us as if we did not worship the true God , have not we Gods service with us , and our solemne assemblies ? Thirdly , They had other services which were not Gods , yet they did cover them , with glorious pompous shewes , they had pompous dayes of solemnity , pretended for God , but being of their own invention , they were hatefull . Well saith God , I will take away your prosperity , and I will take away those things you thinke to put me off with , I will take away your solemnicies , and all the pomp in your services . I will discover their lewdnesse . The word lewdnesse , that comes of Nabal , that signifieth to fall , it signifies the falling of the spirit low , poor , vile , and unworthy things . Hence the Hebrews use that word for a foole , one that hath a vi●e spirit , set upon base contemptible things , is Nabal , a foole . Hence that speech of Abigail concerning her husband , as is his name , so is he , he is Nabal , and folly is with him . The Seventy turne this by another word , that signifieth uncleannesse , the mixture of their spirits with vile things that make their spirits to be unclean . The English word Lewd comes from Loed an old Saxon word , which signifieth one that is of a servile disposition , of an under spirit ; some are of servile spirits naturally , they are born to a kind of servility , & bondage , they are inclined to baseness , and vileness , by their natural genius : others are of more sublime spirits naturally , as if they were borne for great things ; these people are lewd , they have vile spirits , forsaking the blessed God , & his glorious wayes , turning to vanities that can doe no good . So we say of many , they are lewd base fellowes , that is , they are of such sordid dispositions , that they seeke only after such things as have no worth in them , & satisfie themselves in things beneath the excellency of a man , unbeseeming a rationall creature to take content in . Act. 18. 14. we finde this word lewdnes , the Greek word translated there lewdness doth elegantly set forth the disposition of a lewd man , namely , such a one as is easily drawn to any wicked way . I will discover her lewdnesse in the sight of her lovers . In the sight ; this is a great aggravation of their shame . God will cast filth on them , not before those that are strangers , but those before whom they would be honoured . It is a note of Calvin upon this , that seemes to reach the meaning of the holy Ghost , alluding to the way of whores , who having great men for their lovers , favourites with Princes at the Court , they rest on their power , and confide in their greatness , they care not what their husbands can doe against them , and so grow proud against their husbands , because their lovers have great power . There was a remarkable example of this here in England , that you may remember , it were but to ●ake in a filthy dunghill to mention it . I will take away their confidence , though their lovers be never so great , the Assyrians , and Aegyptians , whosoever they be , they shall have no power to help you , but I will discover their lewdnesse before their face . From hence take these observations . First , all wickednesse , and especially Idolatry , hath many covers for it ; except we looke very narrowly to those that are superstitious and idolatrous , we shall not see the evill of that sin . Some covers are subtilly woven , but it may be said of them all as Isa . 28. 20. The bed is shorter then that a man can stretch himselfe on it , and the covering narrower then that he can wrap himselfe in it . Secondly , Prosperity in a sinfull way is a great cover ; though it be a very vile and sinfull way , yet prosperity is a cover to it : This glisters so in many mens eyes , that the filth of sin is hid , many a foule hand is under a faire perfumed glove , an ill complexion may have a painted face , and prosperity is no other to wicked men , then a painted face to a foul woman . As a painted face is no argument of a faire complexion , so neither is prosperity of a good condition . Crooked diseased bodies , halfe rotten , may have fine cloths . Green leaves on a tree may hide the rifts , the mossiness , and blackness of the body which appears in winter . Many men are abominable false in all their wayes , cruell , and bloody in their hearts against God and good men , their spirits are invenomed , and they have given up themselves to most horrible sins , yet so long as they have power about them all is covered , were all their prosperity taken from them , and all their glory and greatness , and nothing but their falshood , and hatred of the wayes of God appeared , what dreadfull creatures would they bee ? There is many a man that is taken with a strumpet , when shee hath painted her selfe bravely like Iezebel , but if he should see this whore whipped up & down the streets , and full of botches , how odious would this strumpet be in his eyes ? take away her bravery , and she is to him the Ioathsomest creature upon earth . Thirdly , Retaining some truths in the way of worship is a great cover to much falsenes . When some of you are to pay a great sum , you can shuffle in a brasse six pence or shilling , or a light piece of gold : so some , though they retaine many errors , yet because they keep some truths , they think to cover much superstition . False wares will be holpen off amongst good , and a man that useth to lie will sometimes tell some truths to put off a lie . A man that is a base selfe-secker , will many times deny himselfe ; many times you shall have the proudest spirits that are , to bee as crowching and subject to those that are their superiours as any , and so by seeming humility , cover a great deale of pride . So the evill of ceremonies , and false discipline , passe without much contradiction , you must not trouble your selves about these things , and why have not we as wholsome soule-saving doctrine as in any Church in the world ? because of this the corruption of the other is covered , much hypocrisie is covered under excellent gifts , the gifts are gifts of Gods Spirit , but they oftentimes cover much vileness . Further observe , Outward pompous devotion in Gods worship is a great colour of notorious Idolatry , as gilded Crosses , painted Churches , pompous Ceremonies : how hath it covered the most desperate hatred to the power of godlinesse that ever was ? I will discover thy lewdnesse . God hath a time to discover wickednesse , it shall appeare one day in its colours , vile and abominable wickednesse shall not always goe uncovered . God will not discover her infirmities , neither should we ; wee should doe as God doth , discover the lewdnesse of men , but not their infirmities Love covers a multitude of faults , if they be but infirmities . And when you discover the lewdnesse of others , take heed you do not discover your owne lewdnesse in the mean time . Many when they go about to discover the lewdnesse of other men , do it with such bitternesse of spirit , and with rejoycing , that they have got any advantage against those that are religious , if they heare any reports against such , whether true or false they care not , they relate it confidently , something will stick . This is for men to discover their own lewdnesse , when they cry out against the lewdnesse of others . Those who are wise and understanding , are able easily to see it ; but if wee would not have God discover our lewdnesse , let us get such a cover as shall never be uncovered ▪ You may have many shifts to cover your sinnes that are not large enough , but I wil tell you of a cover that is large enough to cover all : What is that ? The righteousnesse of Jesus Christ . Psal . 32. 1. Blessed is he whose transgresison is forgiven , whose sin is ●overed . There is a cover that covers from the eyes of God and man for ever . I will discover her lewdness in the sight of her lovers . I will take such a way to manifest her vile lewdness before her lovers , that she shall neither prevail with them , nor be upheld by them . Whence observe , When God discovers mens lewdness , they shal do little hurt . 2 Tim. 3. 6. But they shall proceed no farther , for their folly shall bee made manifest to all men . There are many who have secretly gained on the spirits of other men , by faire pretences , that they will doe nothing but thus and thus , and they seek nothing but the publicke good , and they desire the furtherance of the Gospel , but when opertunity shall serve , there shall be a ciscovering that their intentions goe another way then their words seemed to import , and then they shall proceed no further , for they shal be vile and contemptible in the eyes of those with whom they prevailed before . Againe , further , I will doe it in the sight of their lovers . When God sets himself against his enemies , he will goe through his work in the face of all those that seekes the contrary , doe what they can . God needs no shifts , no tricks nor devices to carry on his work , but he can carry it on in the sight of his adversaries , he will carry on his worke , and shame them in the sight of their lovers , and bring them downe low , doe what they can . God can make use of the wisedome and policy of men , and hee can make as much use of their indiscretion , as he hath done of late . The great workes of God amongst us of late have been carryed on with a high hand in the sight of those that have been our adversaries ; what discoveries have there been of the filth of men ? how hath their nakedness been made naked ? what charges in their conditions ? what contempt hath God cast in the face of those that were the great champions sor lewdnesse , and that in the very face of their lovers ? Their lovers looked on them , and had as good a heart to them as ever , there was little or no change in the hearts of their lovers ; and though their lovers were as eager for them as ever , yet their shame hath been discovered . This Scripture is as cleerely made good this day , as any Scripture in the Book of God. Againe , In the face of their lovers . Dishonour before those we expect honour from , is a sad , a great evill . Oh , saith Saul , Honour me before the people . Saul cared not much if hee were dishonored before strangers , but he would be honored before the people . It is such a thing to be dishonoured before those that we would be honoured before , that the stronger a mans spirit is , the more intolerable the burden is ; one of a mean and low spirit , doth not much care for dishonour any where , but a man that hath strength of spirit indeed , counts it the worst thing that can be to be dishonoured before those that love him . This we finde among many Tradesmen that are civill at home , but if they get among strangers , oh how lewd are they in an Inne ! those that love God and the Saints , are most afraid to have their evill discovered before God and the Saints , for a gracious heart desires honour from them most . One that is godly can beare disgrace , any contemptuous abuse from many of those that are profane , rather then from one that is godly . Wicked men care not for dishonour among the Saints , because they care not for their love . If dishonour before lovers be such a shame , what will dishonour before God at the great day be , and before the Saints and wicked men too who were your lovers ? I will discover their lewdness in the sight of their lovers . When I take away their corne , and wine , and flaxe , and these things , their lovers will be ashamed of them . The way of carnall friends are to esteem of men when they are in prosperity , but when they are down in adversity , then they contemn them . Huntsmen when they would single out a Deer , they shoot her first , and as soon as the blood appears , all the rest goe out of her company , and push her from them . It is so with carnall friends , if a man be in affliction , if they see their friend shot , they look aloofe from him . Wee have had wofull experience of this of late , when many godly Ministers were persecuted , those who before had seemed to be their lovers , grew strange unto them . In a sun-shine day , men that passe by look on a dyall , but in a darke stormy day , a hundred may ride by it and never look to it . When wee are in a Sun-shine day of prosperity , men will look towards us ; but if the gloomy day of adversity come , then they passe by without regard to us . I● a man of fashion come to a house , the dogs will be quiet , but when a beggar comes in raggs , they flye upon him . It is apparant by this , that men in their prosperity are not regarded for any thing in themselves , but for their prosperities sake , for their moneys sake , for their cloathes sake . Suppose any of you have a servant goes up and downe with you , and you know whither soever you goe , the respect that is given , is not for your sake , but for your servants sake , you go to such a house , and they use you kindly , only for your servants sake , you take it very ill . This is all the respect that men have from false lovers , it is not for any good in them , it is for their prosperity , for their servants sake ; O how vaine is respect from the world ! If you be gracious , God will not deal with you thus ; if you have your estates taken from you , God will not despise you as carnall friends doe . Psal . 22. 24. For he hath not despised nor abhorred the affliction of the afflicted . When the Saints are afflicted , God doth not hide his face from them , but when they cry to him he hears them . Yet further we see here , carnall hearts have a great deale of confidence in many things they trust to , in time of danger they will not believe but they shall escape . Let us not be troubled at the confidence our enemies have , they doubt not but to prevaile ; this is from the curse of God upon them ; their case is never so desperate , but they have something to shelter themselves in their own thoughts : Oh what a shame is it that any thing is rather trusted in , then God! the husbandman casts seed-corn that costs dearer then any other corne into the ground : The Merchant trusts all his estate to the winds & waves of the sea , & if they saile , all is gone ; you trust servants with busines of weight . If you goe to Westminster , you trust your lives in a boat halfe an inch thicke , God is not trusted so much , that blessed God who is the only true object of soule-confidence . Lastly , when God sets himselfe against a generation of men , or any particular , all the means in the world shall not help . Ezek. 9. the Prophet had a vision of six men with weapons of war in their hands ; there were six principall gates in Jerusalem , and God would set these sixe men with weapons in their hands at each gate , that if they run to this , or the other , or any gate , the man with the weapon in his hand should be sure to take them , they should not escape . Amos , 5. 8. Seeke him that maketh the seven Stars and Orion ; Why are these named seven stars and Orion ; the one is the extreame of cold , and the other of heate ; The Lord hath the power of both : if they escape the heat , the cold shall take them ; if the cold , the heate shall take them : and I likewise , saith the Lord , can make both these helpfull to you as I please . Hence there is such blasting of means , for the cursing of those whom God sets himselfe against ; let us not be afraid of the great assistance that our adversaries have , though they have great assistance , they are in Gods hand , and none can deliver out of Gods hand ; all their strength is but as tow and flaxe before the flame of fire . If God be in a way of mercy , none can take out of his hands , Isa . 43. 13. There is none can deliver out of my hand , I will worke , and who shall let it ? Wherefore it is a fearfull thing to fall into the hand of God when he is in a way of wrath , and it is a blessed thing to be in his hand when he is in a way of mercy , for none can deliver out of either . Christ holds the stars , not only Ministers , but all his Elect in his hand , and none can take them out . I will give you a notable example in Gods preservation in times of danger : In the time of the Massacre at Paris , there was a poor man , who for his deliverance crept into a hole , and when he was there , there comes a Spider and weaves a cobweb before the hole ; when the murtherers came to search for him , saith one , Certainly he is got into that hole : No saith another , he cannot be there , for there is a cobweb over the place ; and by this meanes the poore man was preserved . The hope of the wicked , Job saith , is as the Spiders Web ; yet if God please he can make a cobweb to deliver his people . The least things shall deliver when he will , and the greatest meanes of deliverance shall not deliver when he pleases . The Eighth Lecture . HOSEA 2. 11. I will also cause all her mirth to cease , her feast dayes , her New Moones , and her Sabbaths , and all her solemne feasts . THe Lord proceeds still in his threats against Israel , in this verse we have as sore a threat as any , for it is in part spirituall . Her mirth , 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 , so the Seventy reade it , the word signifieth the right temper , the right posture of the minde , when the minde is in a right frame , then it may be merry ; Whosoever is merry ( saith S. James ) let him sing ; there the word though not the same , yet signifying the same thing ; who ever hath his minde in a right frame , let him sing . No man can be truly merry except his minde be in a right frame . I will cause [ all ] her mirth . God many times takes away from his Saints much of the matter of their mirth , but never takes away all . This is a dreadfull threat to cause all their mirth to cease . I will cause it to cease . I will turne it away , so the Seventy . I can soone have all their mirth down , they shall never be able to rejoyce more if I please ; it is gone all with the turn of a hand . It appeares that Israel , though an apostatizing people , though a people of Gods wrath , designed to dreadfull judgements , yet was a merry jocund people , they went on still in their mirth and joviallity . That which is here implyed , is more fully exprest in Amos Chap. 6. 4. who was contemporary with Hosea , and hee was the Prophet of the ten Tribes as Hosea was , now see there how Amos setteth forth the mirth of this people , They lye upon beds of Ivory , and stretch themselves upon their couches , and eate the Lambes out of the flock , and the Calves out of the middst of the stall , they chaunt to the sound of the Violl , and invent to themselves instruments of musick like David , they drinke wine in bowles , and anoint themselves with the chiefe oyntment . This was their condition when they were under such fearfull guilt and in such dreadfull danger . Sensuall men , while they prosper , they looke upon themselves as above the word , and blesse themselves in the satisfying of their own carnal desires , as if it were but a poore low and meane thing for them to be under the power of the word , to feare sin and threatnings , it is too low for such brave spirits as they have ; But , come let us sing away all care , let us live merrily , let us take our pleasure for the present , and crowne our selves with rose-buds . This is the disposition of carnall hearts under all their guilt and danger ; They swim delightfully in that River of Jordan , and suddenly fall into the Dead Sea ; they spend their dayes in pleasure , and in a moment go down into hell . This is all the portion of their cup they receive from the Lord : They have a little joy here , this is all they are like to have , and therefore they will take their fill of what they have . But this will not hold . I will cause this mirth to cease . Sinne and mirth can never hold long together ; there must be a separation between them . The union that there is betweene sinne and mirth at any time , it is a forced union ; God never joynes them together , and if you will joyne those things God never joyned , your joyning cannot hold : Sinne is of such a canker-fretting nature , as it will soone fret out all the varnish of mirth and joy that is upon it . If you will not take away sinne from your mirth , God will take away mirth from your sin . It is indeed the happinesse of the Saints that they shall have everlasting joy , the pleasures at Gods right hand are for evermore , but the pleasures of sin must cease . Thirdly , when afflictions come upon the wicked they are all Amort , their joy , their mirth is gone . We say of fire , it congregates things of the same kinde , and separates things that are of diverse kinds . So it is with the fire of affliction , it congregateth things of the same nature , as thus , sinne and horror , trouble , anguish , sorrow , vexation , accusation of conscience , condemnation , these are of the same kinde ; sin and these are Homogenall ; now when affliction commeth , it congregateth all these ; Here is sinne , yea but sorrow , and anguish , and horror of conscience seemeth now not to be together with your sinne , but when the fire of affliction comes it joynes all these together . On the other side , sin and joy , and prosperity , and peace , these are Heterogeneall , things of another kinde , now when the fire of affliction comes , it separates these Heterogeneall things ; then the hearts of the wicked sinke as lead , they lye down in sorrow , the candle of the wicked is blown out , all their mirth and joy it is but the light of a candle , affliction makes all to be but as a stinking snuffe . And indeed ungodly men when affliction comes are men of the poorest spirits of any men , they quickly dye , they succumb , they fall downe under the least weight of affliction ; They seeme to have brave spirits , to out-brave the word of God , but they have poore , meane , and low spirits when they come to beare Gods hand upon them ; Affliction takes away all their good , that they conceive and understand good . There is nothing within them to support them , there is nothing but darknesse and blacknesse within , nothing but guilt and gnawings of the worme ; And they looke upon every suffering they indure but as the beginning of eternall suffering ; And there is the venome and curse of God goes together with their affliction , which drinks up their spirits . Oh the happy advantage the Saints have in their afflictions over that the wicked have in theirs ! They have spirits indeed that well may be called brave spirits , that can stand under the greatest weight of affliction , and that with joy , in the midst of them ; Paul can rejoyce in tribulation , yea and glory in it too . They have comfort in the creature , but they are not beholding to the creature for comfort ; they depend not upon the creature for comfort , their joy is a great deale higher ; That is precious light indeed that no storme can blow out . See an example of a brave spirit that way , that in the midst of affliction can have the light of joy , Habak . 3. 17. Although the Figtree shall not blosome , neither shall fruit be in the Vines , the labour of the Olive shall faile , and the fields shall yeeld no meate , the flocke shall be cut off from the fold , and there shall be no herd in the stals ; What then ? Yet I will rejoyce in the Lord , I will joy in the God of my salvation : All their joy shall not cease ; perhaps in times of affliction , in sad dismall times , they may abate somewhat of their outward joy , but all their mirth shall not cease , there shall be joy within , though none without . Lastly , I will cause all the mirth to cease . All our mirth depends upon God , he can take it away when he pleaseth . God is called in Scripture , The God of all consolation ; Joy is Gods propri●ty , he gives it when he will , and takes it away when he will. Tou have an excellent Text for Gods hand in taking away joy from the hearts of men when he pleaseth , it is Lamen . 3. 65. Give them sorrow of heart , thy curse upon them : Marke it ; Now that word that is translated sorrow of heart ( I especially take the note from thence ) A word that comes from that that signifies a helmet , or a shield to fence of any thing , or to cover a thing as a thing is covered by a shield and helmet ; And it doth note to us that disease which Physitians call Cardiaca passio , a kinde of disease whereby the heart is so opprest , and there is such a stopping , that it is as it were covered sicut scuto , as with a shield , there is a lid as it were put over the heart , a shield to keepe out all things that should comfort , and to fence off all things that may be taken to be any refreshments to the spirits ; let the most precious Cordials in the world be given to those that have that disease , they cannot be refreshed by any of them , and so the heart comes to be suffocated with sorrow . This is the meaning of the word here , Lord give them sorrow of heart ; Put them into such a condition , as that their hearts may be so stopped and stifled with sorrow , that what ever meanes shall be used to bring any comfort to them , let it be kept off , that no creature in the world may be able to afford the least refreshment to them ; They were wont to shield and fence off thy VVord : when thy word was used to be delivered to them , wherein the treasures of thy mercies were , and they heard the sweet promises of the Gospel opened , yet they fenced off thy word as with a shield ; Now when they are in affliction let their hearts be choaked so , and let there be such a fence put upon their hearts , that though there be never so many promises brought to them , they may be fenced off by the secret curse . As , Doe we not finde many wretches who have lived under the Gospel , and fenced off the treasures of mercies opened to them , when they have beene in affliction they have beene in horrible desperation , and whensoever any thing out of the Gospel hath been spoken to them for their comfort , they have had strange kinde of fences to put off such things ; As those that reade the story of Spira , may wonder what a cunning fencer he was to fence off all comfort that was brought to him . This was from the Lord , Lord give them sorrow of heart , that is , Lord put such a shield upon their hearts , as all comfort may be fenced of from them . We see ( my brethren ) how we depend upon God for comfort , we all cry out for comfort , let us know and take to heart our dependance upon God for it , God can fence our hearts from comfort when he pleaseth , let us take heed we doe not fence of his word form our hearts . I will cause all her mirth to cease , her feast dayes . These two are put together , for the hearts of men when they enjoy a more liberall use of the cheature then ordinary , and are amongst cheerfull company are warmed , raised and inflamed at such times , If the heart of a man be gracious , and hee feasts in a gracious way , his heart is warmed , and cheered , and inlarged in things that are good ; so the heart of the wicked when they are at their feasts , all their lusts are warmed , and their spirits are raised & strengthned in the things that are evil . You have a notable example of the cheering and raising of the hearts of men in good things in the time of feasts , 2 Chro. 30. 21. the feast that Hezekiah made for the people of Jerusalem in that great Passeover , the Text saith that they kept the feast of unleavened bread seven dayes with great gladness , and vers . 23. the whole Assembly tooke counsell to keep other seven days , & they kept other 7 dayes with gladness . Now mark how their hearts were raised , and mightily up upon this , Chap. 31. ver . 1. When all was finished , all Israel that were present went out to the cities of Iudah , and brake the images in pieces , and cut down the groves , and threw downs the high places and the Altars out of all Iudah and Benjamine , in Ephraim also and Manasseth , untill they had utterly destroyed them all . Their hearts being up , and their feasts being in a gracious way , they were so inflamed , that now they tooke upon them a mighty courage in doing great things for God. It were well if it were always so with us when God calleth us to feasting , ( as sometimes he doth , though not now ) that our hearts were alwayes up in our feasting , warmed and inlarged to do much good . It is that which hath been the honour of this Citie , that in their Companies feasting yearly , they were wont heretofore usually when they had rejoyced one with another , when their hearts were up , to consult together what good to do for their countries in which they were borne , and then to resolve to send the preaching of the Word to such a great Town where most of them were bred , and to such another Towne . This was a gracious feasting , and for this they were much envyed at : And though these feasts were prohibited upon other pretences , yet the hindering this good done at those times , lay in the bottome of that prohibition . Feasting also warms the lusts , and desperately inflameth wicked resolutions of ungodly men . When a company of ungodly men met together in a Tavern , and there have drunk and eat liberally , how desperately are they set against the ways of godlines ! then they scorn and jeer godly Ministers , and Parliament , and Christians ; they are then as if they were above God , their tongues are their owne , and who shall controule them ? and all when their lusts are heated with wine and good cheer . Mark that Scripture , Ps . 35. 16. With hypocriticall mockers at feasts , they gnashed upon me with their teeth . Here is scorning and violence , gnashing upon the Psalmist with their teeth , and this at their feasts . Hos . 7. 5. In the daye of our King , the Princes have made him sick with bottles of wine , he stretched out his hand with scorners . They brought bottles of wine , and when his lusts were heated with wine and good cheere , then hee joyned with them in scorning the wayes and worship of GOD ; they scorned at all those that would goe up to Jerusalem to worship according to the institution , these must be so precise that they will not joyne with us , as if wee had not the worship of GOD among us , they tel tales to Jeroboam and the other Princes of the godly who would not yeeld to their idolatrous wayes of worship , they scorned at their precisenesse ; Now saith the Text , The King stretched out his hand with scorners , takes them by the hand , and encourageth them in that way , and tells them he will take a course with them , not one of them shall be suffered to live in his dominions . Their hearts were put all agog with their feasts , but God hath a time to take away feasting times from a people , a time when those who have delighted themselves so in the use of the creatures , shall have all those merry meetings and brave times cease , never feast more , never meet with such merry company more ; As that Pope Adrian said when he was a dying , O my soule whither art thou going ? thou shalt never be more merry . For Kingdomes also , though there be times for feasting , yet there is a time of mourning ; and God seems this day to be comming to us to take away our feasts , to call upon us to spend our times in another way ; It were good for us to do what we can to prevent God , by humbling our selves in a voluntary way , to take away our owne Feasts , and to change our Festivities into Humiliations . The times call for fasting now , rather then feasting ; and it is a most dreadfull sin then for men to give liberty to themselves for feasting , when God calls for mourning and fasting . It is not at your liberty to feast when you will. Isa . 22. 12. is a most dreadfull place , that might make the hearts of those who are guilty in this kinde tremble . Vers . 12. And in that day did the Lord of hosts call to mourning , and to girding with sackcloath , and behold joy and gladness , slaying oxen , killing sheep , drinking wine . Surely this iniquity shall not be purged from you till you die , saith the Lord God of Hosts . While the bread is taken away from our brethren , and the land is so miserably spoyled , and when such a black cloud hangeth over our heads , here is no time for Festivities . Whatsoever your customes have been , at this time now coming ( I mean that which you call your Christmas Festivity ) you are certainely bound now to turne it into a time of mourning ; For if wee should grant it lawfull for men to appoint Holy-days that way , for feasting , ( of which more by and by ) yet certainly it cannot be but a sinfull thing , so to set those dayes apart , as whatsoever providence of God falls out , yet they will continue what they themselves have set . You will all grant this , that if it be lawfull to keep this time of Festivity , yet this not that that God himselfe hath set apart and enjoyned . We never have it required by Christ , or by his Apostles , that at such a time , just when the yeer cometh about , that wee should have solemn dayes of Festivity . Well then , at the most , if we suppose it lawfull , it is but the institution of man ; if it be mans institution , then certainly it must give way to Gods work , to providence . For man to put so much upon his institution , because hee hath appointed such a day when the yeer cometh about to rejoyce in , that whatsoever worke of God falls out in the mean time , that calls for humiliation and fasting , yet hee will hold to his own institution ; what is this my brethren but to make the commandements of God to be of none effect through mans tradition ? It is apparent breach of that Scripture . For this is certaine now that it is the commandement of God that you should mourne and fast , if then because of mans institution you will put by the command of God , and now spend time in feasting and rejoycing , which ought not to be but in such times when God shines upon a Kingdom in wayes of mercy , know this is sin unto you . If you can say that God shines upon us now in present extraordinary mercies then we may feast . I confess they are extraordinary mercies in regard of what wee may hope to be the event and effect of them ; but for the administrations of God towards us , they are such as if ever they called for fasting , they call for it at this day . Therefore here by Gods works amongst us , wee know we have Gods will revealed to us , namely to fast ; the other at most is but mans institution and tradition . Now the traditions of man must yeeld to the commandements of God. With what conscience now can you take such a plentifull use of the creature , and suffer your brethren to want cloaths and bread ? If God have yet granted to you such a comfortable estate that you have so much to spare as to feast , know you are bound in conscience then to lay out that in relieving your brethren who have been so cruelly used , therefore God brings them to you to be objects of your compassion . It would be very acceptable to God if so much as any of you have usually spent in feastings , or intended to spend in these twelve dayes , you would set it now apart for the reliefe of those who want bread , and set the time apart also for mourning in your families , that God would pardon the sinne of these times formerly committed . And now not only feasts in private Families should cease , but the feasts of Companies in your publique Halls likewise . What abundance of poor plundered people might be relieved , if all that were spent in one yeere in the feasts of your companies , were laid aside for their use ! These are times for mercy , not for festivity ; if wee will not cease our feastings , let us know , God hath thousands of wayes to take away feasts from a kingdome , and to bring cleanness of teeth among us , I will take away their feasts , saith the Lord. The main thing in this verse to be opened to you , is , what these feasts of the Jews were . In the opening of all these we shal be put upon the opening of much Scripture , and therefore I shall not make hast out of this verse . The words here are Feasts and solmne Feasts ; they are Feasts both in your English , but the words in the Hebr. differ much , the first comes from a word that signifies to rejoyce and leape , the second from a word that signifies a stated , a setled time . Our English word Feast comes of the Greek 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 a goddes , as the heathen so called , that which the Latines call Vesta , the goddess both of earth and of fire . The Jewes had their Civill feasts , and their Holy feasts . Amongst their Holy feasts , some were of Gods appointment , and some of their own . Of Gods appointment , some were more solemn , some lesse . Their Civill feasts were times wherein they tooke a more liberall use of the creature , in rejoycing one with another upon some specially occasion , this they called a Good day , not a Holy day , so you have it , Esth . 8. 17. The Jewes had joy and gladnesse , a feast and a good day , so they were wont to expresse the day of feasting , facere Bonum diem , to make a Good day to their brethren , it will appeare by examining that Text of Esther , that that day thought it was set to be kept every yeer , yet it was but as a good day to them , and could not be said to be a holy-day ; we do not read of any religious solemne exercise that they had for the day : Such a day I take to bee our fifth of November , a Good day , not a Holy-day , wherein wee have a more liberall use of the creature then at other times , and remember the mercies of God with thanksgiving : But wee know the day is not set apart for this end , so as it is unlawfull to be exercised in any other thing , and we shall shew afterward , how that dayes cannot be set apart Annually , or be made holy by men . Their Religious feasts which they presumed themselves to make holy , were [ their ] feasts rather then Gods , and for that you have the example of Jeroboam , he appointed a feast even of his own head ; it is in 1 King. 12. 32 , 33. And Jeroboam ( saith the Text ) ordained a feast in the eighth month , on the fifteenth day of the month , like unto the feast which is in Iudah , so hee offered upon the Altar which hee had made in Bethel , the fifteenth day of the eighth month , even in the month which hee had devised of his owne heart , and ordained a feast unto the children of Israel . Marke here , Ieroboam is rebuked for appointing a feast of his owne heart , like the feast God had appointed ; this is no excuse that he would be an imitator of God. This reason many think will justifie their superstitious way , they do but imitate what God did , as thus , God had an Ephod for the Priests , therefore they will have a holy garment ; God had a Temple consecrated , they will have one so too God had his feast days and holy-dayes , they will have theirs too in imitation of God. This very thing that Ieroboam did , hee is rebuked for , that he would set up a thing like unto Gods. Where God hath set his stamp upon any thing , wee must take heed wee presume not to set our own stamp . Suppose any one should take a piece of silver , & should set just the same stamp as neer as he can that the King doth upon his coine , be it but a two-pence , the silver is his owne ; well , but if he come to be examined , Why do you thus ? What hurt saith he is there in it ? I have done no more then the King , I have done but as he did ; Why , may we not follow his example ? will this answer think you serve his turne ? It is as much as his life is worth : Just such a plea is this , they will doe such and such things in Gods worship , why ? God hath done so before , and they doe but imitate God ; There is as much strength in the one as in the other . Therefore that word here [ devised of his owne heart ] in the Hebrew comes from a word that signifies to lye , Ieroboam did lye , Isa 44. 25. He frustrateth the tokens of the lyars , it is the same word : Jeroboam indeed in setting this day apart , he did it under a pretence to honour and worship God , but though it might seeme to make Gods honour and worship better then before , yet the Scripture puts the lie upon it , so the word is ; I thinke this was the reason he set it apart in the eighth month , the Feast of Tabernacles was the fifteenth day of the seventh month ; now he would not alter the day , but have it the same day that Gods was , but in the eighth month , for the Feast of Tabernacles was appointed for this end , to praise God for the in-gathering of the fruits of the earth , and it was as upon our September ; Now because upon the fifteenth of September perhaps all the creatures were not gathered in , there might be some remaining abroad , therefore Ieroboam might have this device , he would stay till every thing be gathered in , till they had it in their barnes , and in their vessels ; when they had it all fully in , and it was fit to eate and drinke , then saith Ieroboam , now it is the time to praise God , you praised God before when you were taking in of the fruits , but you have not taken them all in , you cannot come to use them , but now having them all in , and now being able to make use of them , now is the time to praise God. This was Jeroboams wisdome , and he thought to make a Feast to take the people rather then Gods Feast . There are no superstitious men but will have some argument and plea for their wayes , to take the hearts of people to embrace those wayes rather then Gods simple , plaine and pure Ordinances . Well , but though Jeroboam did it under this pretence , yet hee lies still ; so those men that will take upon them to sanctifie dayes , or places , or garments , or any gesture that God never did , though they say they doe it for Gods honour , to make Gods worship more glorious and decent ; yet it is a lie : Just as those who will make Images , brave golden Images of God , O say they , it is for the honour of God , but marke what the Text faith , Hab. 2. 18. What profiteth the graven Image that the maker thereof hath graven it , the m●lten Image and a teacher of lyes ? If Images be lay mens bookes , they are books that have abundance of err●aes in them , they are full of lies . Here now ariseth the Question about mans appointing Feasts , whether there may he holy Feasts ( taken so in a proper sence ) by mans appointment ? Ieroboam is accused for it plainly : and Gal. 4. 10. there is a charge upon the Galatians , and that very severely . You observe dayes , and months , & times , and yeers , I am afraid of you le●t I have bestowed upon you labour in vaine . It appeares by this that peoples hearts are mightily set upon their Feasts , their dayes , and months , and yeeres , they were loath to be taken off from them , so that the Apostle speakes with a deale of bitternesse of spirit , I am afraid of you that I have lost my labour ; and indeed when godly Ministers take paines amongst people whose hearts are set upon such things as these , for the most part they loose their labour , little good is done . Yea will some say , to observe the Jewish dayes after they were abolished by God , that was sinfull and dangerous , but we doe not keepe Jewish days . But mark what these men say , God abolisheth his owne , and yet they thinke hee gives liberty to man to set up others . If this were so , that upon Gods abolishing his own , men should have liberty to set up theirs , then the Christians are under a more heavy bondage and grievous paedagogie then ever the Jewes were , for it is better to have a hundred days of Gods appointing , then one of mans , it is more honourable . Further , if God appoint , there needs no scruple , as there is if man appoint ; yea , if God appoint , wee may expect a speciall blessing , and efficacy , and presence of God , we cannot expect such things in mans appointment . Now if this were so , when God hath taken away Jewish Ceremonies , man might lawfully appoint others as he pleaseth , and when God hath taken away Iewish dayes , man might appoint other dayes , we may pray to God with good reason to bring us under the pedagogie of the Law again , rather then to be thus under mans power . Thus farre we grant , that upon any speciall work of God , the very revolution of the yeare hath a naturalnesse in it to put me in mind of such a thing , and so farre as there is a naturalnesse in it , there is good in it , I may make use of it . Therefore I dare not say that is altogether unlawfull at such times to have some outward rejoycing , when God doth not call for mourning some other way , ( except the argument from the extraordinary abuse there hath been of it may be of force ) Nay that there may be advantage taken of the peoples leasure , to preach the word , and to heare Sermons upon such dayes we deny not . Wee know that Christ was in the Porch of the Temple at the feast of Dedication , which was one of the dayes of their owne appointing , not that he was there to countenance or honor the Feast , but because he had been there before at another Feast of Gods appointment . Now there being a multitude of people at that time also gathered together , he takes advantage of the concourse of the people to come to the out-porch to preach to them . So much therefore as we may grant , we will not deny . For the understanding of this point , the setting apart days , I suppose there are these two things will be questioned . First , Why may not governours of the Church set apart dayes , as well as appoint times for preaching , or as well as others of themselves will appoint such times , as once a week so much time set apart for a Lecture ? Secondly , VVe may appoint fast dayes , and dayes of thanksgiving , these are set apart by man , how cometh it to passe then that this can bee cleare that a man may appoint a time for preaching constantly once a weeke , and he may appoint times of fasting , and dayes of thankesgiving , and yet not have this liberty , to make a day that may be properly called a holy-day ? VVe must cleare that point from this objection , or else we do nothing ; and for the clearing this wee must know there is a great deale of difference in these three things , the right understanding of which will cleare all the matter . Between deputation , and dedication , and sanctification of a thing . I may depute a creature to be made use of to help me in holy things , and yet still this creature is not sanctifyed by its deputation , and so we do a time for a Lecture , such an houre in such a day deputed , but the time is not made holy by it the place is deputed , but is not made holy by it . Yea I will appoint such a garment that I have when I am in such a service such a day to weare , but yet the garment is not made holy by it . A creature is not made holy meerely by being made use of at holy exercise or in a holy thing . As thus , suppose I goe to reade the holy Scripture , I make use of a candle to reade it by , I doe not make the candle holy by this , because I make use of it . If the making use of a creature in a holy duty did make the creature holy , then it would fall out generally in all creatures . I make use of the very light and the ayre when I am reading and speaking holy things in publicke assemblies , I do not make the light and ayre holy , because I make use of them in holy things ; so I make use of this houre to preach in , though I make use of it in a holy duty , I make it no further holy then a man doth his spectacles that he useth to reade the Scripture by . A deputation is this , when such a creature as I shal think most commodius for such a service shal be put a part for such a service , or when such a creature , as I have use of for such a service , will be a naturall and usefull help to me , to appoint it for that service upon that ground . The second is dedication , that is when I give a thing out of my own power , for a pious use , that I cannot make use of for any thing again . As when a man hath given so much of his estate to build a School or an Hospitall , it may be said to be a kinde of dedication , he hath devoted , given so much of his estate to that end , so that hee cannot make use of it himselfe to another end . Now we doe not so set apart the time of preaching , as that we cannot make use of this time for any other end , wee may as wee see cause alter it , where it is from 9. to 11 , we make it from two to four , whereas if it were a thing that we had dedicated , that is given out of our own power then it cannot be changed by us . That is a second degree , this is not sanctifying yet . Now sanctification is beyond dedication , that is when any creature or time is so set apart for holy things as it must not be used in any thing but that that is holy ; and though the same holy actions be done at another time , and with the use of another creature , they shall not be accounted so holy as at this time , and when this creature was made use of . This is the proper sanctification , and the setting apart of any day thus , that is , such a day God giveth to me to make use of for my occasions , if I shall thus set it a part , so devote it for such a businesse , as it may not without sin to me ( whatsoever falleth out ) be used to any other occasion . And secondly , when I have set it apart I shall put so much in it as if the same holy actions be performed to another time , they shall not be accounted so holy as at this time , although that time hath as much natural fitnesse in it , now I sanctifie time to my selfe , but thus I cannot doe without sin . You shall finde that there are these two things in all holy feasts , and indeed in all things that are accounted holy . First , it was a sinne for them to make use of that time for any other thing , or any other wayes then God had appointed : Secondly , the actions that they did at that time were such as were more acceptable to God then if they had done the same thing at another time . Yea it was so in their very days of humiliation , that were once a yeere , a day of Expiation , this day must not be used for any thing else ; and if they humbled themselves or fasted upon another day , that would not have beene so acceptable to God as upon this day . So wee shall see it in all superstitions of men when they set apart either dayes , or places , or things , they put these two upon them . As for places , They say we appoint a place for people to meet in a religious way ; yes , but when comes it to be superstitious ? Thus first when it comes so to be set apart , so as I shall make conscience of using it to any other use but this ; Secondly , when I shall be perswaded in my conscience that God accepts of service done him in this place better then in any other though as decent as this . So for superstitious garments . You will say , may not Ministers be decent ? I have heard a great Doctor give this argument for a surplice ; somtime saith he I ride abroad to preach and my cloake is dirty , is it fit for me to come into a Pulpit with a dirty garment ? and therefore there is alwayes appointed somewhat to cover it ; it is decent . Suppose it be so , but if it be so that this garment must be made use of for nothing but such a holy exercise , and secondly if I thinke the wearing of it doth honour the service , and that God accepts of the service performed in such a garment rather then in another , this is superstition ; as in one place in Suffolke when that garment was lost , there was a strict injunction to the poore countrey men that there might not be any service or sermon till they had got another : for which they were appointed ten dayes , and this being upon a friday , there were two Sabbaths without any service , therefore it is apparent they put the acceptation of the duty upon it . So for days , for any man to set apart a day , so that it shall be a sin , that a mans conscience shall condemne him before Ged as sinning against him , if he doe any thing upon that day but such holy duties . Secondly , That though the same holy duties be done upon another day , they shall not be accounted so acceptable to God as done upon that day , this is superstitious . Yer certainly of this nature have many of our dayes been , for if you opened your shops , what a deale of disturbance was there in the city ! It was a profaning of the day , every Proctor and such fellowes had power given them to molest you : 2. did not they account it a greater honour to God for to have service read that day then to have it read upon an ordinary teusday or thursday ? yea preaching upon a Lecture day that was not one of their holy dayes , they accounted not so acceptable unto God as service upon that day . Here comes their institution , their institution puts upon it more then God puts upon it , so it cometh to be sinfull . So if you should set apart this time you call Christmas , so as you should make conscience of doing any other service or worke that day , and besides , you should think that to remember Christ and to blesse God for Christ upon another day is not so acceptable to God as to doe it upon that day , here comes in the evill of thus putting mans institution upon dayes . Well , but this is not cleare● except we answer another objection . But doth not the King and Parliament command dayes of fasting and dayes of thanksgiving , and are not they of the same nature ? Will not you say it is sin for us to open shops upon these dayes . I answer , our dayes for fasting and thanksgiving have not those two ingredients in them , for first , if God by his providence call any particular man to any particular businesse in his family , then ( let this man take heed he doe not appeare in a way of contempt ) he need not have his conscience condemn him though he spend all that day in that businesse . They may set apart a day to be spent publickly , yet with this limitation , not to enjoyne every particular man , that whatsoever Gods providence calls him to in particular businesses , he must leave off all , & make as much conscience of doing this as upon the Lords day . You will say , upon the Lords day , if we have any extraordinary thing fall out , we may go a journey or doe businesse , as a Physitian may ride up and down , workes of mercy may be done , therefore this makes no difference betweene Gods day and these of mans appointment . I answer , Though a Physitian doe a worke of mercy upon the Sabbath day , yet he is bound to doe it with a Sabbath dayes heart , as a work of mercy ; whatsoever calls him off from those services that are Gods imediate worship , he must doe that thing with a Sabbath dayes frame of heart , he is bound in conscience to doe it so , and he sinneth against God if he rides up and down to Patients with such a heart as he may doe it upon another day , he may follow it as a businesse of his calling upon another day , but not so now ; but if he do it with a Sabbath dayes frame of heart as a worke of mercy , he keeps the Sabbath in that . But if there were a necessity upon a Fast day to ride , a mans conscience need not to condemne him before God , if he went about that worke as the worke of his calling at that time . It is not therefore so dedicated but Gods providence may take us off to doe other civill actions , and that as the works of our calling . Secondly , Neither is it so sanctified as if the same works done at another day were not so acceptable to God as done upon this day . As our fast dayes set upon the last wednesday of the Moneth , to thinke that the worke done upon another day were not so acceptable to God as done upon that day , this is a sanctification of the day , and such a sanctification is sinne . The same answer may be given for dayes of thanksgiving . Besides , yet there is another thing considerable , that is in the stating of the time . Though men may thus depute and appoint dayes to worship God , yet they cannot state any such dayes , but onely as Gods providence calls them to it , according to the present occasion . Therefore it were certainly a sin if a state should appoint once every yeer to be a fasting day in a religious way , God did so , but men have no power to do so , the reason is this , because they doe not know but God may call them to rejoycing upon that day , they have not the liberty of the time . All that we can doe is this , when God calleth us to fasting , wee must appoint dayes of fasting ; when God calls us to rejoycing we must appoint dayes of rejoycing . Therefore to appoint the time of Lent as a religious fast is sinfull , and the Statute it selfe threatneth a mulct upon that man that shall call it a religious fast ; for civill ends it may be , but stated fasts which are not limited by providence , are certainly evil ; and so for these monthly fasts that are now injoyned , if we should say we will have a fast once a moneth upon this day these twelve moneths , or these two yeers , I perswade my selfe the State should sin : but to have it as long as Gods hand is upon us , as long as the occasion lasteth , and Gods providence calls us to it , that is justifiable . Our Brethren in Scotland wholly deny both stated Fasts and all other dayes : Nay they will scarce agree to this monthly fasting we have , because they are so loth to yeeld to any stat a jeiunia . And I remember I have heard of a speech King James once made in Scotland , blessing God that hee was borne at such a time , and was a member of such a Church ; and the reason he giveth is this : For , saith he , the Church of Scotland exceeds in this all other Churches . England though it hath pure doctrine , hath not pure discipline ; other Reformed Churches have pure doctrine and discipline , but they retaine the observation of many holy dayes ; but the Church of Scotland hath pure doctrine and discipline , and keeps no holy dayes , and therefore saith he , it is a purer Church then any in the world . Thus I have endeavoured to shew you how far things may be set apart , & how far not , when it commeth to be a sinne for any one to sanctifie a day . By this we may see what a mercy it is to be delivered from those men who have robbed the Kingdome of so many dayes as they have , and put so many superstitious respects upon them , and so have involved us in much guilt , blesse God for delivering us from them , and for those dayes that God giveth us liberty to exercise our selves in his worship , let us know our liberty in them . Thus much for those Feasts that are called their Feasts , that were of their owne appointment . Her new moons . The ordinance of God in the new moons is in Numb . 28. 11. In the beginning of your new moons you shall doc thus and thus , &c. It was Gods ordinance that the Jews at the beginning of every month should have a holy day , when they had a new moon they should keep that day holy to God. That which the Latines call Calends , were their new moones . The holy solemnity of these dayes was in three things . First , the offerings that were there appointed by God particularly for that time , were many & chargeable , two young bullocks , & one ram , seven lambs of the first yeer without spot , besides their flower & oyl for their drink offerings , and one kid of the goats for a sin-offering . Secondly , At these times they were wont to repaire to the Prophets for instruction , to know the mind of God. That you have 2 King. 4. 23. where the husband of the Shunamire said to his wife , wherefore wilt thou goe to him to day ? it is neither new moone nor sabbath . Indeed if it were new moon or sabbath you may goe , but while it is neither , why will you goe ? That implyeth that this was a thing in use among the Jewes to repaire to the Prophets for instruction , and to heare Gods word from them upon those dayes . Thirdly , yea it was unlawfull to buy and sell upon those dayes , Amos. 8. 5. When will the new moone be gone that we may sell corn ? they were weary of it , it seems , because they might not buy and sell in it . These three things we finde in Scripture upon their new moones . Now Euxtorphius who relates to us the Jewish way , hee tells us of three other things they were wont to doe in their new moones . First , Those that were most devout among them , used to set apart a day for fasting and prayer to intreat God to blesse the new moon to them . 2. As soone as there was an appearance of the new moone , one steppeth up and cryeth , O thou Creator of the moone , be ever blessed , and so he goes on in the benediction of God for this creature . 3. They used to leap and to reach toward the moon so soone as they saw it , speaking after this manner : We reaching to the moon , we cannot reach it ; so all our enemies that reach at us , are as unable to reach us to our hurt , as we that . But why did God appoint this feast of the new moone ? It was appointed for these 4. ends . 1. Because God would be acknowledged to have the government of all inferiour things in the world , and especially of all the changes of times . As the Sabbath was for putting us in minde of Gods creating the world , so the new moones were appointed for them to blesse God for the government of the world , for many nations have attributed much of the government of the things of the world to the moone ; the tydes you know ebbe and flow according to the moone , the great worke of God in the seas seeme to bee governed by God in the use of that creature , yea things seeme to be governed more sensibly by this creature then by others , to the end therefore that they might not sticke in the creature , but give God the glory : therefore hee appointed the feasts of the new moone ; if they had any changes of times and seasons , God caused it , rather then this creature , and as the heathens , so they called the Moone the Queene of Heaven , and they would not be taken off from offering cakes to the Queene of heaven , they attributed all their prosperity to her , as we reade in the Prophet . Now from this , God would take them off , therefore he appointed this solemn feast of the new moone , 2. God would hereby teach , that the bringing of any light unto us after darknesse is meerly from himself , and he must be acknowledged in it . The Moone is a glorious creature , and causeth much light , but soone after there is darknesse , and after this darknesse light springeth up againe . Here is the work of God , we are taught a morall lesson from this Feast , that is , Hath God at any time brought darknesse upon a Kingdome , or upon a Family , or upon a particular soul , doth he begin to bring light ? He must be acknowledged and praised for it . 3. God would teach them this also , that the beginnings of all mercies are to be dedicated to him ; when God reneweth a mercy , at the very first , before it comes to perfection , it is to be given up unto God ; they were to celebrate this Feast upon the beginning of the light of the Moon . And lastly , which is more , this aymed at Christ , as all other Ceremonies of the Law did . It pointed out our condition in our depending upon Christ , for our light must be renewed by our conjunction with Jesus Christ who is the Sun of righteousnesse ; as the light of the Moone is renewed by her conjunction with the Sun , that gives the great light to the world . And as the light of the Moon increaseth , as it takes it from the Sunne , so doth our light increase as we take it from the Sun of Righteousnesse . Thus this feast was typicall , and thus we see these feasts were of speciall use . But when they come to abuse these Feasts , saith God , I will take them away , you shall have no more ; and therefore Isa . 1. God professeth a loathing of their feasts , and amongst others of their New Moones . Not but that they were holy in themselves , but when they came to abuse them , by adding their owne superstitious vanities , or else had not the due end for which God appointed them , then God is offended . Now saith God , you acknowledg darknesse to be from me , and light to be from me , and change of time to be from me , but what use do you make of your time ? You seeme to give up the mercies you receive unto me , but you do not honour me with them , nor for them . You seem to think of the Messias in these things , but your hearts are not with him , but all your wayes are after your lusts . I loath your feasts . Just as if a man comes to God , and prays devoutly , Lord lead me not into temptation , and assoon as he has done , he presently goes into wicked company , God loatheth you for going quite crosse to your prayers ; you pray , Lord give us this day our daily bread , as if you should say , Lord I depend upon thee every day for my bread , and for a blessing upon all my outward estate ; and assoon as you have done , you cozen , and cheat , and goe presently to the Devill for your bread : God loatheth these prayers of yours , as God loatheth their New Moons , because when he appointed such a worship for those and those ends , yet they went quite contrary . Yet there are two th●ngs exceeding observable about these New Moones . We often read of these things , but we passe them over and do but little mind them . First , God will have the glory of his creature , of the New Moone , and that solemnly , yet it must be at that time when the Moon is very little , scarce any at all , it must not be at the full , when the Moon is most glorious , God doth not call to be glorified in that creature when it is fullest of glory ; but when that creature is ( as wee may say ) in the meanest condition , when it hath but a little light beginning , scarce any at all , then God will be glorified . This is the instruction and morall lesson from hence , which is no strained one , but I think intended by God himselfe , in appointing this feast , in that God will have the glory due to him from this creature in the beginning of its light , rather then at any other time . We are taught in this , That there is a great deale of danger when we are giving God the glory of the creature , of sticking in the creature , and not passing through the creature speedily enough , and going from it to God. God is very jealous of his glory this way . God hath made many glorious creatures indeed , & he would have his glory from all his creatures , he would have us give due esteeme to his creature ; but when we esteem it for any excellency there is in it , God is jealous lest any of his glory should stick in the creature , therefore he cals for it at that time when the creature is most meane . That is the reason that Gods Ordinances are so plain , we have but plaine bread , and plain wine , and a plaintable , and no brave pompous attire , because God saw that when wee are to deale with him spiritually , if we had pompous things we would sticke there ; and we see men that are taken so with pompous things , they give not God that glory that is due to him , but they stick much in the creature , and honour it rather then God. It seems that the Heathens making the Moone to be their goddesse , especially looked at it when it was most light , as appears , Iob 31. therefore Iob to cleare himselfe from that idolatry , saith , If I beheld the Sunne when it shined , or the Moone walking in brightnesse : They used to worship the Moon thus when they saw it walke in brightnes , because they could not reach the Moon , they kist their hand , and so bowed to the Moon in acknowledgment of a Deity , therefore Job would free himselfe from that , If I beheld the Moone walking in brightnesse , or if my mouth have kissed my hand , that is , saith he , I have not worshipped this creature . This is it I note it for , that when the creature is most glorious , there is danger of giving God the lesse . It is thus with us many times , God hath many times more glory from us when our estates are little , then when they are very great ; there is many a man , who when hee hath beene in full light of prosperity never minded God , bus when God hath brought him into darknesse , then he hath given God glory , and then it hath been indeed most acceptable , because then he sees Gods hand helping him without the creature . Further , God had most glory from the Moon when it had the least light , so God may have glory from us though our light be extinguished , it is no great matter . There is yet another thing that is remarkable concerning this Feast . You shal observe what difference there is between the Feasts of the new Moones by Gods appointment under the Law , and the Feasts of the new Moones as they are set forth to us in Ezek. I lay this for a ground , that those Chapters in Ezek. from the fourth & so on , though they seem to speak of the Iews ceremonies , and Temple , and Feasts , yet the scope of those texts is to set out the glorious condition of the Church of God in the time of the Gospel ; As in Isa . 66. 22. Then they shal worship me from Sabbath to Sabbath , and from Moon to Moone , that is , their constant worship shal be in comparison as a Sabbath , and they shal not only worship me at the beginning of the Moon , but all times , their worship shal be so full & so constant : Therefore though in that place of Ezek. there be speaking of new Moons & other Feasts , yet it is to set out the condition and blessed estate of the times of the Gospel under those shadows & types , the Prophet speaking according to the Jewish language in that way . This being granted , let us compare the institution of the Feast of the new Moon , In Num. 28. with what is laid in Ezek. 46. in Num. 28. they were to offer for a burnt offering two Bulloks , one Ramme , & seven Lambs , but in Ezek. 46. 6 , In the daies of the new Moon there should be but one bullock & six lambs . God himself had said , that in their new Moons they should offer two Bullocks & seven Lambs , yet when the Prophet would set out a more glorious condition of the church , he saith , they should not offer so much as they did before , they should offer but one Bullock and six Lambs . What are we taught from this ? We are taught by this two excellent lessons , which are the reason of the difference . First , that there is such a blessed estate of the Gospel coming , that shall not be subject to such changes as hath been heretofore , but a more setled condition of peace and rest , so that they shall not have such occasion to blesse God for his providence in the changes of times as before they had . Their solemnity of the new Moon , that is , of doing that spirituall thing that was done in a ceremonious way , that was to give God the glory for the change of times : now in the times of the Gospel they shall not have so many Sacrifices , to make it such a solemn business as it was then , Why ? because the Church shall be in another condition of more rest & safety , and more constancy in their wayes , not hurried up and down by mens humors , and lusts , and wills as before . Secondly , that the state of the Gospel shall not be so subject to danger neither as it was before , there shall not be that occasion to blesse God for bringing of light presently after darkness , for that is one end of the Feast of the new Moon , that when they could not see the Moone a great while , and it was darke , as if that creature had been lost out of Heaven , now they see it againe they were to blesse God for it : But in the time of the Gospel that is comming , there shall be no such darknesse , this time is not yet come , we yet had need to have our seven lambs and two bullocks for we have much darkness , those places in Ezek . aime at some speciall time more then other , there is a glorious time of the state of the Church , when there shall not be such occasion of blessing God for delivering us from darknesse as there hath beene . The Ninth Lecture . HOSEA 2. 11. I will cause all her mirth to cease , her feast dayes , her new moones and her sabbaths , and all her solemne feasts . OF the Jewish new moons the last day , God threatens likewise to take away her Sabbaths . Sabbaths . ] Plutarch thought that the Sabbath of the Jews was from Sabbos , a name of Bacchus , that signifies to live jocundly , and bravely , and merrily . Indeed the Sabbaths that many keep have such a derivation , their Sabbaths are sabbaths of Bacchus , to be merry , and to eate , and drinke , and play , is the end of all their Sabbaths . But the word hath a better root . God would have us upon the Sabbath rest from all other works , that we may be free to converse with him : therefore it is so much the more inexcusable if when we have nothing else to doe we shall deny to converse with God as he requireth of us . If a friend should come to your house to converse with you , and he should know you have no businesse to take you up , yet you will scarce see him , or spend a little time with him , will hee not take it ill ? If indeed you could have such an excuse that your businesse is extraordinary , though your time be lesse you spend with him , it would not be so ill taken ; but when he knows you have nothing to do , and yet you deny time to converse with him , will not this be taken for a slighting him ? Thus you deale with God ; Had you indeed great occasions and businesses to doe upon that day , though you did not so converse with God in holy duties , it were another matter ; God might accept of mercy rather then sacrifice . But when hee shall appoint you a day to rest , wherein you have nothing to doe but to converse with him , yet then to deny it , this is a sleighting of the Majesty of God. Now the Jews had diverse Sabbaths , amongst others these were principall ones . The Sabbaths of dayes , and the Sabbaths of yeers . The Sabbath of dayes , every seventh day they had a Sabbath , and it was kept unto the Lord. Now this Feast of theirs had so me what in it Memorative , somewhat Significative , and somewhat Figurative . It was a Memorial , a Signe , and a Figure . A Memoriall of two things . 1. Of the works of Gods Creation . After God had finished his works of Creation , then he rested , and sanctified the seventh day , and Psalm . 92. being appointed for the Sabbath , the Argument of it is the celebrating the Memoriall of Gods great works . 2. Of the deliverance out of Egypt , in remembrance of the rest that God did give them from their bondage . So you have it Deut , 5. 15. Remember that thou wast a servant in the land of Egypt , and that the Lord thy God brought thee out thence , through a mighty hand , and by a stretched-out arme : Therefore he commanded thee to keepe the Sabbath day . Secondly , it was Significative , a Signe , Exod , 31. 17. It is a signe betweene me and the children of Israel for ever : And verse 13. It is a signe betweeue me & you , that I an the Lord that doe sanctifie you . God made it a signe , that as this day was by his command to be sanctified , set apart from other dayes , so God had set apart this nation of the Jewes from other nations . Thirdly , It was Figurative , it did figure out or typific the rest that did remaine for the people of God , Heb. 4. There remaineth a rest to the people of God , both here in the time of the Gospel , and in heaven eternally . Now we are to know there was some speciality in this day of rest , in this sabbath of the Jews more then in any other sabbath . As , First , in the Antiquity of it . It was the most ancient of all the dayes , set apart for an holy use , being from the time of the Creation . Secondly , it was written with Gods owne finger in the Tables . Thirdly , God rained no Manna upon this day , and that even before the Law was given in Mount Sinai , for the honour of this day . 4. The whole weeke doth take denomination from the Sabbath . Luke 18. 12. I fast twice in the weeke , twice a Sabbath , so the words are in the Greek . So Marke 16. 2. The first day of the weeke , the first of Sabbaths , so the words . 5. This Sabbath is called an everlasting Covenant by way of eminency , as if nothing of Gods Covenant were kept if this were not . Exod. 31. 16. Ye shall keepe the Sabbath for a perpetuall Covenant . Yea 6. God puts a remembrance upon this day , and not upon any other sabbath . If a friend who would faine converse with you , send to you three or four dayes , or a wecke beforehand , I pray think of that day , I will come to you then and converse with you , wee will enjoy communion together ; now if when he doth come he shall finde you emplyed in unnecessary businesses , will he take it well ? God doth so with you , saith God , I desire to converse with your soules , and I appoint you such a day , think of it , remember that day that you and I may be together , and converse sweetly one with another ; if God finde you then occupied in unnecessary businesses , he will not take it well . This Sabbath the Jewes rejoyced much in , and blessed God for it , Nehem. 9. 14. as a great mercy . And Philo Iudaeus speaking of the fourth Commandement saith , It is a famous precept , and profitable to excite all kinde of vertue and piety . And the Hebrews say we must sanctifie the Sabbath at the comming in and going out , and blesse God that hath given us this Sabbath : Yea it is called by some of the Hebrews , the very desire of dayes ; And Drusius telleth of a Jew , who when the Sabbath d●y approached , was wontto put on his best cloathes , saying , Come my . Spouse , &c. as being glad of tharday , as a Bride-groome of his Spouse . It is not my worke to handle the point of the Sabbath-day , or Lords-day now , but to open it as we have it here in the Text , to shew what kinde of Sabbath the Jews had ; onely observe this one thing about this Sabbath ; If you compare Numb . 28. 9. with Ezek. 46. 4. you shall finde that the offerings in the time of the Gospel prophesied of , were more then those were in the time of the Law. In Numb . you finde but two Lambes , but in Ezekiel you finde six Lambs and a Ram for the Sabbath : This by way of type shewes , that in the setled times of the Gospell , Gods worship upon the Christian Sabbath should be solemnized more fully then it was in the time of the Law. The next is the Sabbath of yeeres , and they were of two sorts . There was one to be kept every seven yeeres , and another every seven times seven , every fiftieth yeere . Every seventh yeer there was a rest of the land ; as every seventh day there was a rest of the labour of their bodies , so every seventh yeere there was a rest of the land . Exod. 23 , 10. Six yeeres thou shalt sow thy land and gather in the fruits thereof , but in the seventh yeere thou shalt let it rest analye still , rhey must not prune their Vines , nor gather their vintage one yeere in seven . The Sabbath of dayes signified that they themselves were the Lords , therefore they ceast from their own labours : But the Sabbath of yeeres , the resting of the land signified that the land was the Lords , at Gods dispose , and that they were to depend upon the providence of God for their food in the land ; God would dispose of the land , when they should plow , and when they should sow , and gather in the fruits thereof as he pleased . We must acknowledge ( that is the morall of it to our selves ) that all lands are the Lords , & the fruit that we enjoy from the land it is at his disposing . If any man should aske , what should we eate that seventh yeere , seeing they might not plow , nor sow , nor reape , neither have vintage , nor harvest ? The Lord answers them , Levit. 25. 20. 21. I will command my blessing upon thee in the sixth yeere , and it shall bring forth fruit for three yeeres . God you see will not have any to be losers by his service . Let us trust God then , though perhaps you have now one yeer in which you have no trading ; People cry out , Oh this twelve-month we have had no trading in the City , we can get no rent out of the Country neither . Do not murmure , trust God ; It may be God hath beene beforehand with many of you , you have had full trading formerly that may preserve you comfortably now : If not before , trust God for the next ; the Jews were faine to trust God every seventh yeer , they had nothing comming in for one yeere in seven . If once in all your life time God take away your trading upon extraordinary occasion , do not murmure , do not give lesse to the poore now ; I speak to those whom God hath blessed in former yeers , so as that they are not only able to subsist , but to give too ; See for this Deut , 5. 9. Beware thou sayest not in thine heart the seventh yeere is at hand , and thine eye be evill against thy poor brother , and thou givest him ●ought , and he cry unto the Lord against thee , and it be sinne unto thee . If now because you have not such a full Income as you were wont to have in your trading , if a company of poore distressed plundered people come among you and desire your helpe , if you deny to relieve them , if they cry unto God against you , it will be sin unto you . Now this rest of the land was to put them in minde that there was a time comming when God will free them from labour ; Now they were faine to eate their bread in the sweat of their browes , but God would supply them once in seven yeeres without the sweat of their browes in ●illing the land , shewing that there was a time where in God would bring his people to such a rest that they should have full supply of all things without labour . But further , besides this there was a second thing , in this seventh yeere all debts that their brethren owed to them were to be released . Deut. 7. 15. it is called there , the Lords release , the Lord is mercifull to those that are in debt . God knowes what a grievous burthen it is for his people to bee in debt , it is indeed an inconceivable burthen ; rich men who are full-handed do not understand what a burthen it is for men to hang upon every bush , to be in debt to every man they deale with , they cannot sleep quietly , they can have but a little joy and comfort in their lives , the burthen is so grievous . Now God in mercy to his people that they might not all their dayes goe under such a burthen , and so have little joy of their lives , therefore he granted this favour to them , that once in seven yeeres their debts were to be released : But it was the debt of an Hebrew , Deut. 15. 30. Forraigners debts they were not bound to release : By that wee are to learne this instruction , that there should be more pity and commiseration shewen to those that are our brethren in the flesh , or our brethren in regard of Religion and godlinesse , in regard of their debts then others . It is true , there is a complaint of many that are godly , that they have little care and conscience in paying their debts : the justnesse of that complaint I know not , but there may be a slothfulnesse in many , if not unfaithfulnesse , and if there be carelesnesse & unfaithfulnesse in some , it is enough to cast an aspersion upon all that are godly : but though those that are godly should be more carefull of paying their debts then others , but if they cannot , you are bound to be more mercifull unto them then to others , because they are godly , and not to seeke to take advantage the rather upon them , because they are godly , this is a vile and a wicked heart , to take advantage so much the rather , if thou seest them godly & laborious in their calling , and it be meerely a providence of God , and not any negligence of theirs , thou art bound to shew much commiseration unto them . In that forenamed place , Deut. 15. 9. Beware there be not an evill heart in thee , to be lesse merciful to thy poore brother because of the seventh yeeres rest of the ground , or because the debt was to be released that seventh yeere , but ( verse 10. ) thou shalt surely give it him , and thy heart shall not be grieved , because for this thing the Lord thy God shall blesse thee in all thy workes , and in all that thou put test thy hand unto . Notwithstanding there must be a cessation of plowing , and sowing , and vintage in the seventh yeer , yea and notwithstanding thou wert bound to release thy debt in the seventh yeer , yet you must doe this , and not do it grudgingly , you must not murmure and say , what doth God require of us that we must neither plow uor sow , and that we must release our debts and give too , nay and give , and not have our hearts grieved too , that we must not complaine of this ? Oh my brethren , God loveth exceedingly cheerfull givers , and hearts inlarged with bowels of compassion , he doth no : love hearts grumbling and objecting against giving . Many men have no quicknesse of understanding in any thing else but against workes of mercy , how quick are they in their objections , and can finde such subtle wayes to save their purses that a man would wonder at it , against this there is a solemne charge , Deut. 15. 11. Thou shalt open thy hand wide unto thy brother , to the poore and needy in the land . The third thing to be done once in seven yeers was the release of servants too , they must goe free , and they must not be sent away empty neither , as ver . 18. of that Deut. 15. It shall not seeme hard to thee when thou sendest him away free from thee , you must give them liberty , as ver . 14. It is true , we are not bound to the letter of this , every seven yeers to doe thus , but there is a morall equity in it , when servants have done you faithfull service , you must not think that it is enough that you give them meate and drink , and cloth , but you must be carefull of your servants how they should live after they are gone from you . This was the first sabbath of yeers . But the second was most famous , and that was the rest that was every seven times seven yeers , the fiftieth yeer , which was called the yeere of jubile , from that trumpet that they were wont to proclaime that yeer by , which as the Jewes tell us was a Rams-horne . In this yeere there were divers of the same things done that was in the seventh yeer , as the release of debts , the release of servants . But there are some things observable that were done at this time beyond what was done every seventh yeer . As for servants , the release of them was not onely of such servants as had then served seven yeers , yea if they had served any time , they were then to be released , but besides there was order taken by God for release of some servants that would not be released in the seventh yeere , for when the seventh yeer came , though all servants might then be released , yet there were some that would not be released , and there was an order taken by God for that , Exod. 21. 6. if there were a servant that loved his master and would not goe free , then his Master should bring him to the post of the door , and with a nayle bore his eare , and then the Text saith , he should serve him for ever : Now that [ for ever ] is by Interpreters interpreted but for a time of Jubile , and then he should have rest . Here it is to be understood of the 50. yeer , the yeer of Jubile . There are some kind of spirits that are so slavish that when they may have liberty they will not , they deserve to have their eares bored , to be slaves to the fiftieth year , if not for ever . Many amongst us this day have such spirits . God offereth us a release from bondage , how many of us love servitude still ! It is just with God that we should have our eares bored , and that we should be slaves even for ever , but we hope there will be a Iubile come at length for our deliverance , God would have a Iubile even to deliver those that were of the most servile spirits , and might justly be left to serve for ever . It is true , when God began with us in the beginning of our Parliament , like the seventh year God offered to us a release , and we refused it then , and since we deserve that our ears should be bored ; but God is infinitely mercifull , though we be of servile spirits , and know not how to pitty our selves , we hope the Lord will pity us , and grant us out of free and rich grace a Iubile , even to deliver those who have a mind to be bond-slaves ; I am sure God doth so spiritually . If God should not deliver those that are minded to be slaves , he should deliver none . It was a great mercy so to provide for servants , that they might be delivered . The greater , because servants then were not as they are now , there was a great deal of hardship that servants indured then more then now , they were bought and sold , not only other nations , but the Hebrews were bought for servants also , so you shall find it , Exod. 21. 2. Besides , servants were in such bondage then , as if the Masters did beat them with a rod untill they killed them , yet they must only be punished , they must not have blood go for their blood , yea though he died under his hand , yet he was but to be punished , and if the servant lived but 2. or 3. days after , the Master was not to be punished at all , so you have it , Exod. 21. 20 , 21. If a man smite his servant with a rod , and he dye under his hand , he shall be surely punished , notwithstanding if he continue a day or two , he shall not be punished , for he is his money . Oh that servants would consider of this , and bless God for the liberty they have now more then servants had in former times ! It was so likewise with the Romans , the word [ servant ] cometh à Servando , because the Romans used to have such for servants as were preserved in time of war , that should otherwise have bin put to death , whether they were those or others , yet the condition of all was very servile both amongst Iews and Romans , which may justly rebuke the pride of servants now , if they be but crost in their minds in the least thing , they make such a complaint as if they were exceedingly wronged . Let servants rather bless God for their condition , then murmur at a little hardship they indure , for the hardship of servants in former times was another manner of hardship then any you can indure who have the hardest masters . Hence it is that in the day of Iubile the servants did so rejoyce ; Iewish antiquities tell us that nine days before their release , the servants feasted and made merry , and wore garlands , because of their freedom approaching . The second thing extraordinary in the day of Jubile , was , that not onely debts , but lands were released . Lev. 25. 22. The land shall not be sold for ever . And there were divers reasons for this , why the land must not be sold for ever , but must return to the first possessors in the year of Jubile . One reason is in the Text , Lev. 25. 23. For the land is mine , saith God , for yee were strangers and sojourners with me : God would hereby teach them that they must not account themselves absolute lords of the land , the land is mine ; and you that are the greatest land-lords of all are but as strangers and sojourners with God , the land is still Gods. And vers . 28. If a man bee not able to redeeme his land , nor his kinsman for him , it shall remain unto the yeer of Iubile , and in the Iubile it shall goe out , and hee shall return unto his possession . If he could redeem his land himself or a kinsman for him , he was to redeeme it before ; but if a man should be so poor as he could not give any thing to redeem it , yet in the year of Iubile it should return unto him . God would not have his people too greedy to bring the possession of the Countrey in to themselves , to have a perpetuall inheritance to themselves and their posterity . This is the greediness of many covetous and ambitious men , oh that we could lay land to land , and house to house , to get a perpetuall inheritance for our selves and posterity ! God would not have his people be of so greedy dispositions , for a few of them to get the whole Countrey into their own possession , therefore he would have no man that ever had any possession , but once in fifty years that possession must return to that familie again . The land was to return to the first owner , that the distinction of Tribes might be continued , which was known much by the continuance of their possessions that belonged to every tribe & family . God had great care before Christs time to keep the distinction of tribes , that so it might be cleare out of which tribe Christ came . But further , this year of Iubile aymed at a higher thing , it was a type of Christ , to set out the blessed redemption that we have by Christ . The trumpet of the Gospel which the Ministers blow is a trumpet of Iubile . That place Isa . 61. 1 , 2. seems to have reference to a Iubile , there the Text saith , that Christ was appointed to proclaim liberty to the captives , & the opening of the prison to them that are bound , to proclaim the acceptable yeer of the Lord ; now that acceptable year was the year of Iubile , there was the opening of the prison , and the releasing of them that were bound . Psal . 89. 15. saith the text , Blessed are the people that heare the joyfull sound , that hear the Jubile . Oh blessed are our ears who live to such a time as we do , to heare the trumpet of Iubile blowing in one congregation or other almost every day ! now we have a release of our debts & bondage , this is the joyfull sound . We are all by nature in debt ( sins you know are called debts in the Lords prayer ) every soul is bound over to Gods eternall justice to answer to the law , for not obeying the law ; now cometh this Iubile and releaseth all debts . And we are all bond-slaves , in bondage to sin , to the law , and to the devil , now cometh the Gospel , this Iubile , and releaseth our bondage , sets us at liberty . 3. We have forfeited our right to the crea ure , yea to heaven it self ; now the Gospel comes and restores all , we have right now to the comforts of this world , and to heaven . Canaan was a type of heaven , and the loss of their inheritance , there was a type of the loss of heaven , and the bringing them again to the possession of it , a type of the restoring of right to heaven ; Oh happy are they then who hear this joyfull sound , not only with the eares of the body , but who have it sounding in their hearts , and that by the work of the spirit of God in them . In this year of Iubile there is one thing further very remarkable , and that is the time when this trumpet that was to proclaim this yeer was to blow , Lev. 25. 9. the trumpet was to blow upon the tenth day of the seventh moneth . What remarkable thing is there in this , that the trumpet must be blown the tenth day of the seventh month ? yes , there is this remarkable in it , the tenth day of the seventh month was their day of expiation ( the day of their atonement , their publique fast ) This day appointed every year for all Israel to afflict their souls before God , to humble themselves for their sins , and to seek for mercy from God ( as we shal shew you more largely when we come to open the solemnity of that day ) I only mention it now to shew that the trumpet of Iubile was to be sounded upon that day . It is a strange thing that upon that day wherein they were to afflict their soules before God , and to mourn for their sins , the trumpet of Iubile was to sound , that was to proclaim joy and mirth , things of a contrary nature to humbling and mourning . Yea but this affords us divers excellent instructions . As First , God would have his people so to mourn as to know their joy is coming . In the darkest day they had , wherein they were bound to afflict their souls most , yet they were so to mourn , as to know there was a Iubile at hand . We are not to mourn as those without hope : in our most grievous & sorest mournings we must have our hearts sink in desperation , wee must so mourne as to expect a Iubile . Yea further , the Saints mourning is a preparation to a Iubile o● joy . Ioy then is neer at hand when the Saints must mourn in a godly manner . Did not the Lord deal graciously with us the last fast day when we were mourning before him ? There was amongst our brethren in other parts a kind of trumpet of Iubile blown ; the Lord was then working for us ; what great deliverance did God grant that very day at Chichester ? God shews that the mourning of his people doth make way for joy . Yea further , then indeed is the sound of the trumpet of Iubile sweetest , when we are most afflicted for our sins . When we are most apprehensive and sensible of the evill of sin , then the joy of God , the comforts of the Gospel are sweetest to the soul . When the trumpet of Iubile is blown in congregations , if it meets not with hearts afflicted sensible of sinne , they are not delighted with the sweet sound of this trumpet , it is not melody in their ears , it rejoy ceth not their hearts : But let a poore soul be brought down and made sensible of the evill of sinne , and Gods wrath , then let but one promise of the Gospel be sounded forth , how sweet , how joyfull is it ! Again , pardon of sin is the only foundation of all Jubiles . For this tenth day of the seventh month , wherein the trumpet of Jubile was to be sounded , was a day of Atonement . What is that ? A day of covering ( for so the word is ) of pardon of sin to the people of God. Many men keep a continuall Jubile , live merrily and bravely , doe nothing but eate , and drink , and play , and dance , and laugh , and cannot endure these fadde melancholy people . What is the foundation of this thy Jubile ? Art thou sure there is an Atonement made between God and thy soule ? Art thou sure thy sin is pardoned ? Is this the foundation of thy rejoycing ? Know it will not last , it is not Gods , but the Devils Jubile , except there be an atonement made between God and thee as the foundation of it . Yet further , in that the sound of the Jubile was at that time when the day of Atonement was . Note this , When God hath pardoned us , then our hearts are in a fit frame to pardon others . Now comes the Jubile , and now you must release your lands , your debts , and forgive those that owe you any thing . This is the day wherein God testifieth his mercy in pardoning your sinnes , and they might well say , Now Lord command us what thou wilt in shewing mercy to our brethren , we are ready to pardon , to release them , to extend the bowels of our compassion towards them , for thou hast pardoned our sins . The reason of the rigidnesse , of the cruelty , the hardness of the hearts of men , and straitnesse of their spirits to their brethren , is this , because God hath not witnessed to their souls the pardon of their own sinns , an atonement between God and them . Their solemn feasts . Among their feasts , they had three that were especially very solemn feasts more then others : And they were The Feast of The Passeover . Pentecost . Tabernacles . These three were very solemn , especially in this one regard , wherein they are all three united in one thing , that is , upon these three Feasts all the Males were to ascend up to Jerusalem to worship , to the place which God did choose , and so you have it , Deut. 16. 16. Three times in a yeere shall all thy males appear before the Lord thy God , in the place which he shal choose in the feast of unleavened bread , ( that was the Passeover ) and in the feast weeks , ( that was Pentecost ) and in the feast of Tabernacles . But how could the ten Tribes then keep these Feasts ? for they went not to the Temple . You may as well say , how had they an Ephod ? of which Chap. 3. Jeroboam was wise enough to keep the feasts , though not in that way God appointed , he could tell them the going to the Temple was but circumstance of place . From this connection of these three together in this solemnity , upon which these three were especially called their solemn feasts , there are divers things to be noted . First , we may see a reason why there were sometimes so many beleevers at Ierusalem . An argument is brought by some from that place , Acts 21. 20. to prove that there may be in one Church more then can possibly assemble together in one Congregation , for the Text saith there , Thou seest how many thousands of Iews there are which beleeve , how many millions it is in the Originall ; now say they , there could not be so many millions to joyn in one Congregation : The answer to this is cleare , that the time of which this place speaketh , was when the people of the Jews were all assembled together at Jerusalem to keep the feast of Pentecost , for Chap. 20. vers . 16. the Text saith , that the Apostle hastned , if it were possible for him to be at Ierusalem the day of Pentecost ; now reading the story on , it plainely appears , that in that journey in which he did so hasten , he did get to Ierusalem at the day of Pentecost , and being there at that time , no marvail that they said , Dost thou not see how many thousands of Iews there are that beleeve ? For all the males of the people of the Iewes were got together at Ierusalem , according to the institution , so that they were there by reason of that Law that as yet they submitted to , they were not in a Church state at Ierusalem , therefore there is no strength in that objection against congregationall Churches . Secondly , where there is a nationall Church , there must be an uniting of them in some way of Nationall worship . There is this Nationall worship that the Iews by institution from God were united in , three times in a yeare to go up to the Temple to worship : And except there shonld be some such kind of individuall worship , not in the same species , that is , as others are praying , so are we , and as others are hearing , so are we , for so all the Churches in the world may be joyned , but to joyne in one act of worship together , as that was of going up to the Temple , there must be such a thing . And that made the Iews a Nationall Church , because we have no such institution now , no Nation in the world can in a proper sense be said to be a Nationall Church as theirs was ; in some figurative sense we may so call it , but not in that proper sense as it was among the Iews . Thirdly , there are some Ordinances that cannot be enjoyed but in the way of Church-fellowship . The Iews could not enjoy these feasts as they ought ( indeed it may be Israel , the ten Tribes would make a kind of patched up feast , but they could not feast so as they ought ) unlesse they went to Ierusalem in that way God appointed . As among the Iews , there were some Ordinances they might enjoy in their Synagogues and private houses , but some which they could not enjoy but in the Temple ; so there are some Ordinances we may enjoy in our families , but others wee cannot enjoy but in Church-communion , which Ierusalem is a type of . A fourth thing observable is , these three times wherein they were to go up to Ierusalem , were all in the Summer time , not in the Winter . For the first , which was the Feast of the Passeover , was in the latter end of our March , and the beginning of April ; the Feast of Pentecost was fifty dayes after , the Feast of Tabernacles was about the middle of our September . It was indeed a very laborious thing for them to goe up to Ierusalem to worship , but God did so commiserate and pitty them , that they were not to goe in the winter time . That is the reason of that phrase in Acts. 27. 9. Sayling was dangerous , because the Feast was already past , that is , the Feast of Tabernacles was past , which was about the fifteenth of September , and so it began to be winter . God would be so indulgent to his people that they should have the Summer time to go up to Jerusalem in . If it would be an affliction to goe up to Jerusalem in the winter , and therefore God would favour his people in that ; Oh what an affliction is it then to flie from Jerusalem before our enemies in the winter time ? We had need pray the more hard now for those that are in danger of the enemy , that God would be mercifull to them in this . A fifth note is when they did goe up to these three Feasts , they must not come empty , but full-handed , so you have it , Deut. 16. 16. Ye shall not appeare before the Lord empty ; Noting thus much , That when ever we come to acknowledge Gods mercy for any thing , we must come with full hands , and liberall hearts , with hearts ready to distribute , or otherwise we doe but take Gods Name in vaine . The last is , the wonderfull providence of God toward them , though all the males in the whole Countrey were to come up to Jerusalem three times in the yeere , yet their Countrey should not be in danger of the enemies : For the Jews had not such walls of Seas about their Country as we have , but they lived in the very midst of their enemies , they were surrounded with them , on the East the An●onites and Moabites ; the West , the Phylistims ; the South , the Egyptians . Idumeans ; the North , the Assyrians , to whom the Prophet seemes to have reference , Zach. 1 , 18. Now they might say , shall our males goe up to Jerusalem three times a yeer , why then our enemies that lie close in our borders , ( for they lay as neere them as Yorke , or any other shire is to us ) may come upon us and destroy us ; therefore God laid in a caveat and provision for the incouragement of them , Exod. 34. 24. he tells them there , None shall desire thy land when thou shalt goe up to appeare before the Lord thy God thrice in thee yeere ; God tooke care that none should desire their land . Let us goe on in Gods service , and hee will take care to deliver us from our enemies . Many times out of slavish feare of the danger of enemies , and what disturbance they are able to make amongst us , wee are ready to betray the cause of God , and neglect his worship . Let us learne from hence to goe on in Gods wayes , and not feare any hurt our enemies can doe us , God saith that he will take care when they are all at Jerusalem in the exercises of his worship that none should desire their land . Now for the opening these severall Feasts , in it you may be helped fruitfully to reade much Scripture in the Old Testament , for much of it is spent in things concerning some of these . The first was the Passeover . You have the history of it Numb . 28. 16. 17. and in divers other Scriptures : That Feast was in the beginning of the yeere . It is true , our Scripture was the beginning of their Annus Civilis their yeere for Civill affairs , but the Month Abib , which was the middle of March , and part of Aprill , was Annus Ecclesiasticus , the Ecclesiasticall yeere , and it was so appointed , upon their deliverance out of Egypt when God commanded them then to celebrate their Passe-over , hee told them that that Month should be unto them the beginning of monthes , the first month of the yeere . Noting thus much , That deliverance from great evills are mercies that we are highly to prize ; the Jews were to begin their yeere in memoriall of the mercy they had upon that Month. For the name [ Passeover ] from God sending forth destroying Angels that yet passed over the houses of the Israelites that night ; he went thorough the land and destroyed all the first borne of the Egyptians , but saved the Israelites , this Feast was also called the Feast of unleavened bread , Luc. 22. 1. because they were to goe out of Egypt in hast , and could not have time to leaven their bread , but tooke only a little flower and water together , and so carryed it upon their backs ; Josephus tells us that they tooke onely a little flower with water together that might serve them with a great deale of sparing but for thirty dayes , there was all they had for so many thousand thousands onely for so many dayes , God put them to it , to depend upon him . We are ready to murmure if we see not enough to serve us many yeers , if our armies have not enough for so long time : they had but a little meale and water that might serve them for thirty dayes , and they knew not where to have more when that was spent ; no marvaile that it is said of Moses , Heb. 11. 27. by faith we went out of Egypt . This bread is called the bread of affliction , Deut. 16. 3. and it was unleavened bread , not onely to typifie that we must not have our hearts leavened with malice , but to put them in mind of that sore affliction they were in , not onely when they were in Egypt , but when they went out of Egypt , that they had then but a little meale and water to serve them for thirty dayes . Now this Passeover was partly Memorative , and partly Figurative . Memorative , First to remember the deliverance of their first borne . Secondly , to remember their deliverance from the bondage of Egypt . When others are smitten ( that is the morall signification ) and we passe over , this is a great mercy . Againe , Deliverance from bondage , and in that outward man and bondage in respect of Religion and conscience is a mercy for everto be celebrated . God is pleased now to offer us this mercy of deliverance from both these bondages , certainly we are a people devoted to misery if we shall not take Gods offer of mercy . We have beene in bondage in our estates and liberties , God offereth us freedome , and freedome also from Antichristian bondage which is worse then Egyptian bondage . The Text saith when they were delivered from the bondage of Egypt Moses sang , and in the Revelation when they were delivered from Antichristian bondage they sang the song of Moses . We were long since delivered from a great part of this bondage , now the Lord ostereth to deliver us altogether . But to let that goe . They were to eate this Passeover with their staves in their hands , this was to note their hasty going out of Egypt . We should not when God offereth us mercy of deliverance , goe forth slowly . This is our misery at this day , the Lord offereth deliverance and we lye slugging on our beds , and are like that foolish child the Prophet speakes of that sticks in the birth : We have stuck these two yeers in the birth , whereas we might have beene delivered long before this . It concerns us all to consider what the cause is , and to lament it before the Lord that we may make our peace with him . But further . In thanksgiving for a mercy we are ever to remember what we were before that mercy . They must eate unleavened bread at this Feast , the bread of affliction , they must remember the afflictions they were in before they had this mercy , whereof this Feast was a Memoriall ; when wee blesse God for a deliverance , we must really present before our souls the sad condition we were in before we were delivered . Further , The speciall thing that is aimed at in the Passeover , was that it should be a type of Christ , who was that paschall lamb that was to take away the sinnes of the world , he that was rosted in the fire of Gods wrath for our sinnes , as that Lambe that was to be eaten in the Passe-over was rosted in the fire : And if ever the Angell of Gods vengeance do passe over us , it is thorough the blood of that Lambe sprinkled upon our hearts , which was signified by the sprinkling the blood of the Lambe upon the posts of their houses . In the Lords Supper we celebrate in effect the same Feast of the Passe-over they did : and by this we may learne this excellent note . There is little comfort in the remembrance of outward deliverances , except we can see them all in Christ . They were in this Feast to remember their deliverance out of Egypt , but withall they were in it to have a figure and type of Christ , that sweetned their remembrance that made the Feast a joyfull Feast , when they could see their deliverance out of Egypt as a fruit of Christs sufferings , when this Lambe that was to put them in minde of it , did put them in minde likewise of Christ the paschal Lambe . In all deliverances from any kinde of affliction , if you would have the remembrance of them sweet unto you , you must looke upon them all in the blood of Christ , and so remember them , and then your hearts will be inlarged to blesse God. This was the Ordinance of God in the Passe-over , but besides Gods Ordinance , the Jews added divers other things . The first thing observable that they added , was earnest prayer to God for the building of the Temple ; which many of them observe to this day . Those who writ of the customes of the Jews tell us , that because the Temple is destroyed where they were to goe up thrice in the yeere to solemnize these Feasts , therefore they pray so earnestly and mightily for the Temple in this manner : They cry altogether to God , Lord , build thy temple shortly , very quickly , very quickly , most quickly in our dayes : & then they go over it again , Mercifull God , great God , kind God , high God , sweet God , with divers other epithets , Now build thy Temple quickly , very quickly , &c. Now , now , now , five times together , ●o Euxtorfius tells us . They teach us how much the Temple doth concern us . Here is onely their mistake , they rested in the materiall Temple , they did not consider that This Temple was a type of Christ , therefore as earnestly as they prayed for the building of their materiall Temple , so we are to pray for the building up of the mysticall body of Christ , now Lord , build quickly , doe not defer it , even in our dayes do it . A second thing they added was the manner of casting out of unleavened bread , in this they observed three things , their inquisition , their extermination , their execration , first with a candle they would narrowly search every corner of the house , to see if they had the least crumme of leaven , if any were found they cast it out with solemnity , and then they used to wish a curse upon themselves if there were any left in their houses that was not cast out . This morall Observation wee may be taught from it , it should be our care when we are to receive the Sacrament , to make narrow inquisition , to get the candle of the word , and to search every corner of our hearts , every faculty of the soule , to see if there be no leaven in it . 2. Whatsover we see to cast it out of doores . And 3. to be so much set against sinne , as to be willing to take a curse upon our selves , if we should willingly let any knowne sin be in our hearts , and to acknowledge that God might justly curse us in his Ordinance , if we be false in this . Thirdly , they used to shew forth all their brave rich things , if they had any bravery in cloathes , in furniture , in any good thing , they would shew all at this Feast . By their superstition we may learne this note , that in the time of our comming before God , it is fit for us to manifest his graces , to exercise all those beautifull graces that the Lord hath endowed us with by the work of his Spirit , for there is the riches of a Christian , there is his brave cloathes , and his plate , all his excellencies are his graces . The fourth thing they did was , after the Passe-over was at an end , they would fast three dayes , to humble themselves for their faylings in keeping that Feast . This was not Gods Institution , but it was their custome , and we may learne this from it , ( though not to binde our selves to that they did ) too looke back to our receiving the Sacrament , and to bewayle all our miscarriages ; I beleeve if things were examined to the quick in our receiving the Sacrament , you would finde matter enough to fast and pray for the humbling your soules from your miscarriages . Lastly , in the Passe-over they used to reade the book of the Canticles , because that booke treats especially of the conjunction of the soule with the Messiah , which is sealed up especially in the Passe-over . And that indeed is a speciall meditation for us when we come to the Lords Supper , to meditate of our conjunction with Christ . The next is the Feast of Pentecost . This Feast is called also the Feast of Weekes , because there were seven weekes to be reckoned , and then at the end of them it was solemnly to be kept , you shall finde it , Levit. 23. 15. There you have the Feast of the Passe-over , and in that the first day of seven , and the last day of seven was solemnly kept ; now they were to count from the morrow after the first Sabbath , seven Sabbaths , that is , seven weekes compleate ; the first Sabbath of the Passe-over was the fifteenth day of the month Abib , and then the next day from that they were to count seven weeks , and at the end of seven weeks was the Feast of Pentecost to be kept . Now in this first day wherein they began to count their weeks ( for the preparation to this Feast of Pentecost ) you shall find that the first fruits were to be offered up to God , it was a kinde of distinct Feast , called the East of the First-fruits , in which they were to bring a sheafe of the first fruits of their harvest unto the Priest to be offered to God ; And the reason was , because new their harvest began : Assoone as ever the Passe-over was killed , and they had kept the first Sabbath of the Passe-over ( for they were to keepe it seven dayes ) they began their harvest , they must not put a Sickle into the corne , nor reape any thing of their ground untill they had kept the Passe-over ; it affordeth auto us this instruction . We cannot enjoy any sweetnesse nor any blessing from any fruits of the earth , but through the blood of Jesus Christ : After they had solemnized the memorial of the blood of Christ , then they might put a Sickle into the corne & reape it , and not before , & as soone as they had solemnized the remembrance of Christ in the Passe-over , they might goe with comfort and take the fruits of the earth & rejoyce in them , but not before . Now this was in the month of Abib , that is part of our March , & part of April , then began their harvest , & thence it hath its name , for Abib signifies an eare of corne . Now their harvest began so soone in the land of Canaan , not only because it was a hot Country , for it is observed that Africa was a hotter Country then theirs , and yet their harvest began not so soone ; but because of the blessing of God upon that land , therefore Ier. 3. 19. it is called a goodly heritage , because of the timely bringing forth the fruit ; the words translated goodly heritage , signifies an heritage of comlinesse ; the same word that is here for goodly , signifies a Roe-Buck , to which this land was compared , and so it may be said to be a land of a Roe-Buck , because of the speedy and swift ripening of the corne . The observation is , It is the blessing of the Church to have their fruit ripe betimes , not to stay too long before they be ripe , for Canaan was a type of the Church . You young ones consider of this ; the Lord loveth to have the fruits of Canaan ripe betimes ; if you grew in the wildernesse , though you did not bring forth fruit in your young time , God did not so much regard it ; but if you live in his Church , in Canaan , the Lord expects you should beg in betimes , in the very spring of your yeeres you should bring forth fruit un to God. Men doe much rejoyce in timely fruits , they are lovely : Yea and God rejoyceth in them too , Micah . 7. 1. My soul desireth the first ripe fruits , this is true of God himselfe . Your parents and Godly friends may say , our soule desires that grace may spring up betimes in these young ones , so it may be said of God , the very soul of God desireth to see the first fruits ; fruit in young ones is that which is pleasing to Gods soule . We may further note , when we have had communion with God in holy things , then we may have a holy and more comfortable use of the creatures . As before we noted when we have solemnized the blood of Christ , then we may enjoy sweetnesse from the comforts of the earth ; so now , when wee have enjoyed communion with God in his Ordinances , then it is a fit time to have a holy use of the creatures , yea then you must be carefull of having a holy use of the creatures ; as soone as ever they came from the Passe-over the first day they were to celebrate the first fruits unto God , From whence , Thirdly , After the blood of Christ is sprinkled upon the conscience , then men will be ready to dedicate things unto God. Then as Zacheus said , Halfe my goods I give to the poore ; here are my goods , here is my estate , doth the Church , doth my brethren stand in need of helpe ? Loe wee are ready to offer them up unto God. Fourthly , The first of blessings are to be offered up unto God. God gives them a charge , that the first of the first of all the fruits of their land should be offered unto him , all that commeth afterward should be the more blessed . Learne this you young ones , dedicate the first of your years unto God , the very first of your first , the dawning of your years . Now assoone as they had dedicated their first fruits , when harvest was done , then comes the Feast of Pentecost : then they rejoyced in the consummation of harvest . If you dedicate your young dayes unto God , when the consummation of your years comes , how may you keepe a Feast of Pentecost ! The Jews first deditated the first fruits , fifty dayes before , and then at the fifty dayes end they kept their joyfull Feast of Pentecost , so might you if you dedicated your young yeares unto God , On the other side , what a sad thing will it be for old men that but now begin to thinke of God and Christ ; it is well you do so ; but you cannot doe it comfortably as you might have done , if you had begun in your younger yeares . If the Jewes when their harvest was done had brought two loaves unto God , might God say , why did you not bring the first fruits unto me ? God might so upbraid you , but however come into God and he will not upbraid you , he upbraideth no man , but yet the comfort will not be so much because your consciences will upbraid you . Fiftly , note this , Happy is the man that when he comes to reap the fruit of his actions , shall have a feast of joy . Thus is was with the Jews , the very beginning of their harvest was with a Feast , and the conclusion with a Feast toe . All the actions of our lives are a sowing of seed , if you sow sparingly you shall reap sparingly , and happy those men when they come to reap , that both the beginning and conclusion of their reaping shall be a joyfull feasting . Many sow merrily , but they reap horrour and anguish ; but when the Saints come to reap , they shall have a Feast of joy . At thy right hand are joyes and pleasures for evermore . 6. At the fiftieth day then they were to solemnize the mercy of God in giving to them the fruits of the earth for their harvest . Hence this Note , Much praise is due to God for the Fruits of the earth , for outward comforts , How much praise then is due for JESUS CHRIST , and all spirituall mercies in him ? Though we ought to blesse God for the things of the earth , yet we should be so swallowed up in blessing God for his word & Ordinances , and spirituall mercies , as in comparison our hearts should be above the Fruits of the earth . Therefore it is observeable , that in Ezekiel where there is a Prophesie of the state of the Church , set out by the Jewish way of Feasts , though there be mention of the Passeover , and new moones , and Sabbaths , and of the Feast of Tabernacles , yet there is no mention of the Feast of Pentecost , no mention of keeping a Feast for blessing God for these things . Not but that they should doe so , but that their hearts should be so carryed up with abundance of spirituall mercies , that then all for Christ , and for heaven , and for eternity , their hearts should be wholly set upon spirituall things . 7. It was a great ingagement to them to use the creatures , when in the first beginning they had dedicated them unto God , and in the conclusion of harvest they had solemnized his mercy in giving them the creatures . For God did thereby teach them that they might be further engaged to use all creatures for his service . As it is a mighty engagement to any man if God give him a heart to dedicate the beginning of a mercy unto God , and when he hath got the mercy fulfilled , then in a solemne manner he blesseth God for it , to make use of this mercy for Gods honour . Certainly the reason why many are so loose in their conversations , and doe not employ the creatures of God to his glory , is , because they do not in a solemn manner blesse God for that they enjoy . As in your trading , suppose you have some comfortable Incomes , perhaps you take these comforts , and thanke God in a slight manner for them , how doe you use them afterwards ? onely for your selves and for the flesh . But when you heare of Incomes of riches flowing in upon you , if you can then presently take the first . Fruits and give some part to Gods service as a testimony of thankfulnesse , and in your families and closets in a solemne manner give God the glory for the good successe you have had in your estate , this will be a mighty ingagement to you to use your estates for his service . 8. Mark at the first , in their preparation , they were to bring but a sheafe , but afterward , Levit. 23. 17. they were to bring two loaves ; in the first they were to offer one he-lambe without blemish , but afterward seven lambes , & a young bullocke , and two Rams , &c. both burnt-offerings , and sinne-offerings , and peace-offerings when they had received the full harvest . Thence learne , though you be forward to give God glory when you are young , the first fruit of your years , yet when you come to be old , you should flourish in the Courts of Gods house . First they offered but a little unto God , afterward abundance . Doe you so ? I appeale to all old men that are here this day , if God did give you any heart to give up your young years to him , blesse God for it ; but now when you are old , are you as forward as ever you were ? You ought to be not onely so , but much more abundant in the work of the Lord. Nay cannot others witnesse against you , that there was such a time wherein you were more forward , and that now you begin rather to temporize ? The LORD forbid this should be spoke of any old men . God expects more afterward then at the first fruits ; and though nature may decay , yet their is a promise that in their old age they shall flourish in the Courts of Gods house , and shall manifest the graces of his Spirit much more . VVe are ready at the first Fruits to offer unto God some what , when his mercy commeth first ; but when mercy comes afterward more fully , we should be more in our offerings . You will say , what is the meaning of this , that there is a burnt offering , a sin-offering , and a peace-offering in the Feast of Pentecost ? what is the difference of these three offerings ? The difference is this ; The burnt offering was in testimony of their high respect to God , they wholly had respect to God in the burnt offering ; that is , they tendred up something to God as a testimony of the high & honoraable esteem they had of his Majesty , it was wholly to be given up to him . Now in the other they had respect to themselves , the sin-offering was not to offer a sacrifice meerly to testifie respect to God , but to be a typicall signification of Christs sacrifice for sins ; they were to looke through their sacrifice to Christ , and their sin-offering was to be an atonement for their sin . The Peace-offering was in thanksgiving for a mercy , or when they would petition to God for a further mercy . All this must be done in the day of Pentecost . But besides this end of Pentecost , to solemnize the mercies of God in their harvest , there is an other that is constantly affirmed by the Jewes , and I finde many Divines making no question of it ; but I finde it not so clearly laid down in the word . They say God in this feast did solemnize the giving of the law , and this is their ground , because fifty dais after their coming out of Egypt was the time of Gods giving the Law , and so they say Pentecost was appointed to blesse God for giving the law . The Iews say that God dealt with them , as a King should deale with a poor man in prison , first hee releaseth him of his bondage , and withall tells him , that after such a time he will marry him to his daughter ; now say they , will not this man count every day , & long untill this time come ? So when God did deliver us out of AEgypt , he told us that after such a time he would give us his law , and marry us to his daughter , which is the law , and this is the reason why wee count so disigently the very weeks , nay the days , as longing for that time when we are to be marryed to the law , when the Lord shall grant to us such a mercy . From whence we may note , that we are not only to keep Gods law , but to rejoyce in Gods law ; not only to look at what is commanded as a duty , but as a high priviledg , and so blesse God for the law . It is a higher thing to love Gods law , and rejoyce in it then to obey it ; Great peace shall they have that love thy law ; David profest that he loved the law of God more then silver and gold , that it was sweeter to him then the honey and the honey combe . The Iews at this day do much reioyce when the law of God is read , and in their Synagogues when the law of God is brought out , they lift up their bodies in a kind of exlatation , reioycing that God gave this law unto them . Further , the time of their Pentecost was the time of the descending of the holy Ghost upon the Apostles : as God at that time gave the law by Moses , so the Spirit at that time came by Christ , to shew that we are in the Gospel to receive the Spirit of God , to inable us to fulfill the law . They had the letter of the law , but in comparison of what we have , they had not the Spirit , but now the holy Ghost is come in a full measure ; as hee then came upon the Disciples , so he comes now in the time of the Gospel in a fuller way then formerly , there is a continuall Pentecost . But the works of God do not of themselves sanctifie any time , except we take that note with us , we may run into a thousand absurdities ; if we argue thus , because the Iews had such a time vve may have such a time , or because there vvere such blessings at that time , therefore vve may sanctifie that day . No , the vvorks of God do not sanctifie any time of themselves , it must be the Word , some institution or other , either the VVord vvritten , or some immediate dictate of the Spirit that must sanctifie any day . Certainly the vvork of our redemption it self is not enough to change the Sabbath , if vve had not s● me footing for a nevv institution . VVee usually give this ground for a change of the day , because of the greatnesse of the worke ; but though the works of God be great , though never so great , it is not for us to sanctifie a day , it must be an institution of God , or else wee sinne in sanctifying any set and stated time for any such work , for Christs resurrection , or sending of the Spirit , except there come an institution , though the work be as great as any thing God ever did for the Iewes , it will be but will-worship in us , and God will not be put off with this , What is not this as great a worke as that the Iewes had , and may not we celebrate the memory of it as they did ? but God will say , Who required these things at your hands ? Thus far you may do , that is , blesse God for those works all the dayes of your lives , but to sanctifie any particular day for them , certainly that cannot be done without sin ; we have our warrant for the Lords day as well as the greatnesse of the work , because of the practise of the Apostles who were inspired by the holy Ghost . The next is the feast of Trumpets , onely one particular about it at this time , because providence makes it so seasonable . In the seventh moneth , ( which was the first moneth of their Annus Civilis ) there were three feasts . Festum Tubarum , Expiationis , Tabernaculorum . The first was the feast of Trumpets ; now there was a three-fold use of Trumpets among the Iewes . 1. For the calling of the congregation together , as we use to doe with bells . 2. The calling of them to warre . 3. For the solemnizing of their feasts . This feast of trumpets you have , Numb . 17. There are four ends given by Divines of the feast of Trumpets , some I confesse are very improbable , but there are two very probable . The one is , this feast was to celebrate the New-yeer with them ; as upon every new moneth , that was called the feast of the new Moon , to celebrate the beginning of the moneth , so in the beginning of the yeare they had a feast to celebrate the beginning of the year , that was this feast , for it was on the first day of their civill yeare ; so that it is very probable that feast was appointed to blesse God for the new yeere , as well as they had one to celebrate the new moneth . It was Gods insti●ution for that time to have the New-year consecrated by that feast , yet this can be no ground for us now to consecrate the beginning of every new yeer unto God : that was Iewish , and it is ceast , if we will have any consecration of a new yeer , it must be by vertue of some institution or other , let ( who can ) shew the institution : we must not thinke because it hath a shew of wisdome , and it seemes to bee reasonable to us , therefore it may be this is not enough in matter of worship , you must strictly tye your selves to an institution in matters of worship , in consecrating of times . As it is Iewish , so it is Heathenish , the Heathens consecrated their new yeer to the honour of their god Ianus , and we read in Concilium Antisiodorense , in France in the yeer 614. it was the judgement of that Councell that it is not lawfull to observe the festivities of the Gentiles , to keep their worship and observation of their Calends , ( that is , the beginning of their months ) to adorn houses with lawrel & bayes , for all these practises saith the Councell ) savour of paganisme . And likewise an ancient writer saith , that the Kalends of Ianuary are rather to be taken heed of , then to be accounted Kalends , and so to be sanctified ; And further , hee saith , the Church hath appointed a solemn feast to be upon that very day , because o● the notorious abuses there were wont to be upon that day . And Polydore Virgil saith , that these solemnities of Lawrell and Bayes , and masques , and mummings , and such vanities , they all come from the Heathens Bachanalia , and Saturnalia , that were wont to be at that time of the year . However therefore we put them upon Christ , and think we honour him , and call it the Circumcision day of Christ , yet by those customes we dishonour him , for they are rather Heathenish then Christian , To doe it , I say , because we think to consecrate ●ine ; though there may be some naturall reason of rejoycing , yet no ground for consecration . Let no man object and say , these solemnities have beene a long time in the Church . It is true , these are ancient , but from whence comes the antiquity ? It comes from hence , because Christians being newly converted out of Paganisme , they would keepe as much as possibly they might of the Pagan customes , only they would give them a turn , turn them to Christian solemnities , but the rise was from their Pagan customes : therefore all the argument of antiquity , either for these , or Ceremonies , or Prelaticall government , it comes from this ground , because their pagan customes were so , and they lived among pagans , and having been lately pagans , they savored and smelt of Heathenisme still . So now , many plead that such things were in the first Reformation : no marvail they retained them , for they were but newly come out of popery , and they savoured and smelt of popery . Indeed to plead the antiquity of these things , which men must shew when they are put to it , is one of the greatest arguments against them . Thus was they Feast of All-Saints turned from the Feast Pantheon , and so the Feast of the Virgin Mary , which they call Candlemas , the Heathens had the festivity of their goddesse Febru ( who was the Mother of Mars ) upon that day , from whence the name of our moneth February cometh , they did then celebrate that time with Candles , and such things , as papists doe now . This antiquity have you for celebrating of Candlemas . The like may be said for the argument of antiquity for the Prelates . O say some , such a kind of government hath been ever since Christian Religion hath been in England . Grant that there hath been some kind of Bishops ever since , but from whence came they ? We find in Histories , that when the Pagans were here in England , they had their Flamins , and their Archflamins , London was one , and Yorke was another , and when they were converted to the Christian Religion , yet still keeping some of their Heathenish customes , instead of their Arch-flamins , they made Arch-bishops , and of their Flamins , Bishops , and that in their very places , as London and Yorke , and some say Chester , they kept their Bishopricks still . This is the very ●●und of the antiquity of them ; therefore my brethren , let not us be put off with such arguments as these , men delude you , they baffle you by these arguments . The Tenth Lecture . HOSEA 2. 11. And all her solemne Feasts , &c. WEE began the last day to speake something of the Feast of Trumpets , you shall finde the institution of it in Leviticus 23. 24. You shall have a Sabbath , a memorial of blowing of Trumpets , Now there were divers ends of Gods institution of this Feast , I have spoken of one ; the second reason of that Feast , the Hebrews thinke , was a remembrance of Isaacs deliverance , when he should have been sacrificed , and the Ram caught by the hornes to be sacrificed in his stead ; they drew it from this argument , because that Feast is called A memoriall , ( say they ) to remember the deliverance of Isaac , and it must be by the Trumpets of Rams hornes , to call this to remembrance , the deliverance of Isaac , and a Ram sacrificed in his stead ; this is the Iews opinion of it , but it seemes to be farre from the meaning of the holy Ghost . A third reason of the Feast of Trumpets , some say , ( Cajetan amongst others ) was instituted for a memoriall of Gods giving the lay by sound of the trumpet ; that is not likely neither , because this Feast was not kept at the time of Gods giving the law , if there were any time for the celebration of giving the law , it must be at the Feast of Pentecost . A fourth , it was for a celebration of a memoriall of Gods goodness to them in the time of war , for all the mercies of God unto them in their wars , which was declared by the blowing of the trumpets . But I rather take another reason , to be a maine and principall reason of Gods institution of this Feast , to be a preparation to the Feast of atonement and expiation , and therefore ( saith Calvin ) it is called a memoriall , Levit. 23 , for this reason , to put them in minde to humble themselves before God , to afflict their hearts in the day of atonement ; and secondly , a memoriall before God , that God may remember them for mercy , so the Iews observe from the seventh day of the first moneth , unto the tenth day , there was more then ordinary exercises in giving of almes , in praying , in going to their synagogues , they were very devout for those ten dayes in way of preparation for the day of Atonement , of Expiation . From whence note , It is of this use to us to prepare for the day of Fasting ; Ministers should blow their trumpets to the people to prepare them for that day : God hath accepted of those poore kinde of fasts that we have kept , abundance of mercies we have received on them ; there is scarce any one Fast day that is kept , but we presently hear good news after it ; if we had kept Fast dayes as we ought , if we had been prepared as we should , O what might we have obtained of God by this time ! if God accepts such poor things as we do , ( as God knowes they are poore and meane ) if we had every time a trumpet blown before us to prepare us for the day of atonement , what atonements might England have made with God before this time ! to reade understandingly those things you reade about the Feast of Trumpets . The next Feast was the feast of Expiation , in the tenth day ; I thought not to have spoken of that , because the Feast of Expiation is a Fast rather then a Feast , but that is meant here as well as any of the other , for this reason , though it were a Fast , yet the Hebrew word here that is translated solemne Feasts , signifies onely a setled , stated , solemn time . And Secondly , It was a great mercy to them to have such a day of Fast ; though the day of atonement , be a day of afflicting themselves , yet it is the cause of rejoycing to a nation , that God grants them such a day of atonement ; it is the speciall meanes to make way to the joy of a nation , and therefore this is included amongst the other : now the history of that , you have in these two famous Scriptures , Levit. 16. and Levit. 23. In this day of atonement , the tenth day of the seventh month , there are divers things very observeable , and usefull for these times . The first is , The solemn charge that God gave for the afflicting mens souls upon that day ; you shall finde in a few verses three severall times a solemn charge to afflict their soules , to humble their souls , Levit. 23. 27. 29. 32. God appointed one day in the year for all the Jews to afflict their souls , to make an atonement between God and them , in a day of Fast , and they were charged to be sure to afflict their souls then , and that soul that did not , God threatened to cut it off . The second thing observeable is , that the Priest was to goe into the Holy of Holies , where he was to go but once a year ; Levit. 16. the beginning and the latter end compared together ; you shall finde it . This may teach us thus much ; If ever we are to looke upon JESUS CHRIST in the presence of God , to go into the Holy of Holies , making intercession for us , it is in the day of atonement , in the day of publick Fast of the Kingdome , then are we to exercise our Faith upon Christ , as entring before God into the Holy of Holies for us , after we have charged upon our souls our sins , and afflicted our souls , we must likewise cast up an eye of Faith , beholding Jesus Christ our high Priest at that day before the Father making intercession for us . The third thing observeable is , at that day the Priest was to make an atonement for all the holy things ; in Lev. 16. 20. When he hath made an end of reconciling the holy place , the Tabernacle , and the altar , &c. the Priest was not only to seeke to make reconciliation between God and the people , but to reconcile the holy places , even the Holy of Holies had a kind of pollution in it , and must be reconciled then , and the Tabernacle , and the Altar , all of them had a kind of pollution upon them : so infectious is the sin of man , and all these were to be 〈…〉 a day of atonement . 〈◊〉 teacheth us , That in a day of Atonement , of F●sting , we are then 〈…〉 speciall care to sc●●● mercy from God , to be ●●conciled to us in regard of all our holy things , our holy duties , and offerings ; we are to seek then to get the best services that ever we performed in all our lives , to be cleansed , that God may be pacified in regard of the filth and uncleanness that hath cleaved even to them . You are not in the day of a Fast , onely to confesse your notorious sins to God , those that in their own nature are sinfull , but you are then to examine all your holy duties , and to humble your selves before God , and to seek to make peace with God , in regard of the uncleannesse that hath been in them . This few thinke of , they 〈◊〉 the day of a Fast confesse such sins as are vile in themselves , but to be made sensible of the uncleannesse of holy duties , that is little thought of in the day of their Fasts . 4. In their day of Atonement , the Priest was to lay the sins of the congregation upon the scape goat . The story of the scape goat was this , The Priest must come and confesse the sins of the congregation , laying his hand upon the head of the goat , and then he must send this goat into the wildernesse . The meaning is of great use to us ; Jesus Christ he is the scape goat , and we are in the dayes of our humiliations to come and lay our hands upon Iesus Christ , and to confesse all our sins over him , and look upon all our sins as laid upon him . Now the scape goat was to be sent into the wildernesse : What is that ? That is , sent into a land of forgetfulness , so as the Iews should never come to see that goat again that their sins were laid upon , it signified to them , that their sins were now so forgiven them , that they should never hear of their sins againe . Thus are our sins upon Christ , as we shall never come to see , nor heare more of them , In the day of our Fasts we should thus exercise our Faith upon Christ . A fift thing that was to be done , was to sprinkle the blood of the slaine goat upon the mercie-seat , and before it . It is the blood of Christ that is upon , and before Gods mercie-seat , that procures mercy from thence for us . The sixt thing . In the 16 , of Leviticus , ver . 12. the Priest must take a censer full of burning coales of fire from off the Altar , and his hanfull of sweet incense beaten small . This he must doe in the day of Atonement ; to teach us , That in the day of our solemne Fasts , we must be sure to get our hearts full of burning coales from the Altar , full of affection and zeale , full of mighty workings of spirit to God , although you that are godly , and so are Priests to God , at other times come with few coales from the Altar , a little affection , your affections are scarce heated , but in a day of Atonement you must come with your hearts full of coales , and be sure it be fire from the Altar , doe not satisfie your selves in naturall affections then , but be sure you be full of spirituall affections ; and then full of incense . VVhat was that ? it typically represented our prayer , you must be sure to have your hearts full of prayer , to send up abundance of incense before God ; the incense must be of spice● beatou small , what is that ? the prayer● that we are to send up to God , in the day of Atonement , must come from much contrition of spirit , our hearts must be beaten small to powder , when the hearts of men are beaten to powder , then they are able to send forth such incense , as is a sweet favour in the nostrills of God. Many of you in the day of a fast seem to be full of prayer , but is this prayer a sweet incense to God or no ? how shall I know that ? by this , God hath appointed the incense , upon the day of atonement , to be that , that must come from spices beaten , if thy heart be beaten to powder , and thy prayers be but the savour , and the odour of thy graces that are as spices , and heated by the fire of Gods spirit : then here is the incense that pleases God. First , graces , which are the spices , the contrition , that is the beating small , then the fire of Gods Spirit to cause the incense to rise up in the nostrills of God as a sweet savour . Further , a seventh thing in the day of atonement was , the cloud of the incense must cover the Mercy seate , ver . 13. and then the blood both of the bullocke , and the goate , must be sprinkled upon the Mercy seate , and that seven times , and ver . 15. the blood of the goat must be sprinkled not onely ●pon the Mercy seate , but before the Mercy seate ; what is the meaning of this ? must our mercy seat be clouded in the day of atonement ? wee had need have it appear to us , and not be clouded ; yes , in the day of atonement it must be clouded , but clouded with incense ; the incense that was sent up , was a type of the sweet perfume of the merit of Jesus Christ ; Now in the day of atonement we must look up to the mercy seate , as clouded with the merit of Christ , clouded , that is , the merit of Jesus Christ round about it , as a cloud , and covering the Mercy Seat , to teach us that no man must dare to look upon the Mercy Seat of God as it is in it selfe , but he must have the incense of the merit of Christ round about it , the reason was given why the Lord must have the incense as a cloud to cover the Mercy Seat , lest hee die ; if he had entered into the holy place , and there looked upon the Mercy Seat , and not clouded by the incense , he must have died for it ; those men that think to come into Gods presence , and look upon God out of Christ , and think to receive mercy from God out of Christ , they die for it , this is the damnation of mens soules , to look upon God as mercifull out of Christ , mercy is an attribute of God , but if we dare ( who are sinfull creatures ) to looke upon this attribute of mercy , and not have the incense of Christ merit , it is the way to destroy our souls . O how many thousands are in hell for this ! many who are afflicted for their sins , and cry to God to forgive their sins , and believe he is mercifull , and think to exercise their faith upon God as mercifull , and yet not looking upon the mercy seat as clouded with the merit of Christ , it proves the destruction of their soules . In a fast , when you come to look upon God , you must not look upon God as the Creator of heaven and earth , or as mercifull in himself barely , but look upon Gods mercy in his Sonne , and so exercise your faith , or else you can never make an atonement , but rather will procure Gods wrath . It is not only dangerous , but horrible , once to think of God without Christ , sayes 〈◊〉 . Again , the blood of the Bullocke and the Goate must be sprinkled seven time 〈◊〉 the mercy seate , when wee come to make our atonement with God , we must exercise our faith in the blood of Christ , and sprinkle it seven times , again and again upon the mercy seat ; wee looking upon God when we pray to him as a God of mercy , and we present our selves in our humiliations before the mercy seat , but know this , that the mercy seat will doe us no good , without the blood of Christ ; faith must take this blood of Christ , and sprinkle it , tender it up to God his Father , for the atonement of our souls and procuring mercy to us ; and not only so , the blood of the Bullock & the Goat must be sprinkled upon the Mercy seat , but before the Mercy seat ; we must not only thinke there can be no mercy obtained from God , but by the blood of Christ , but we cannot so much as have accesse to Gods Mercy seat without the bloud of Christ , we must not dare to enter but by the bloud of Christ , by him we have accesse to God ; we must all know , that all sinners are banished from the presence of God , and must not have accesse to Gods presence as they are in themselves . Lastly , this day divers times is called A Sabbath of rest , that is , A Sabbath of Sabbaths , so it is in the Originall , as one of the principall Sabbaths that they had ; I did not handle it amongst the Sabbaths , because it comes in now more fully amongst these solemne Feasts ; there must be more rest in the days of atonement , then in other of their solemn days : There was that permitted in other solemn days , that was not permitted in that day ; this may teach us , that in the dayes of fasting , above any dayes , we must get our souls now separated from the world , there must be a rest in our hearts , a rest from sinne , a rest from the world , it must be a Sabbath of Sabbaths unto us . Now notwithstanding God had given this solemne charge for this day of atonement , yet Theodoret tels us , that in his time they did so degenerate , that they spent this day in sports , and made it a day of mirth , God grant that the ordinariness of our days of atonement do not grow to this abuse , as in some places it is amongst us ; the most solemne things that ever God gave charge of yet in time degenerates , this is the wickedness of mens natures . One note more from this Feast of Expiation , it is very probable that the Grecians did use yearly in expiation of their Cities , in this manner from this we find amongst the stories of the Grecians , that yearly they were wont to have a kind of Expiation , in imitation of the ways of the Jewes ( the Devill is Gods Ape ) for their Cities , there was this custome amongst them , certaine condemned persons were brought forth , with garlands in manner of Sacrifices , and these they were wont to tumble down from some steep place into the middst of the Sea , and so offer them up to Neptune the God of the Sea , with these words , Be thou a 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 for us ; The like was used by them in the times of publique infection , when they had a publique plague in their Cities , they used such a custome to make an atonement betweene them and their gods , there were certain men brought to be sacrificed to their Gods , for an expiation for ther whole City , and they were caled 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 this word was used to signifie that that man that was to expiate for all the sins of their Cities to their gods , ing all their sins upon him , was as filth and 〈◊〉 - scouring ; and from these two words it is probable the Apostle in the first to the Corinthians 4. 13. hath that expression , by which we may come to understand the meaning of those two words there , We are ( saith he ) made the filth of the world , and off-scouring of the people ; 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 ▪ in these alluding to the manner of the Grecians , We for our parts ( saith he ) are made as despicable and odious in the sight of the people , and are as much loaded with the curses of the people , as those condemned persons that had all the sins and curses of the people put upon them , and so were offered to their Gods for expiation . The Feast of Tabernacles . The history of this Feast is Leviticus 23. 34. & soon ; In this Feast the Iews were to take boughes off the trees , and make booths of them ; and those that write the history in their manners , they tell us , they used to carry boughs in their hands , because they could not make booths & Tabernacles for all the people , therefore some of them thought it sufficient to carry boughs in their hands , and those boughes they carried in their hands they used to call Hosanna ; Do thou fold , or prepare the Hosanna , so they used to speake , therefore when Christ came to Ierusalem , they cryed , Hosanna to the Sonne of David ; the meaning was not a prayer , Save us O thou Son of David , as some would have it ; but Hosanna to the Son of David , that is , we hold forth these boughs to the honour of the Messiah , the Son of David , the Feast of Tabernacles was to point at the Messiah ; now for those boughs , ver . 40. there was a command of God , they should be goodly trees , palme trees , or willowes of the brooke , but why so ? it noted that thereby they were to acknowledge Gods goodnesse to them , that whereas they had lived forty yeares in the wildernesse , in a dry place , they were now brought to a fruitfull land , that had much water , which was a great matter in those hot countries , and therefore they were to bring the willows of the brooke , and goodly trees , those that might most testifie the goodnesse of God to them in delivering them from the wildernesse , and in bringing them to a land , filled with sweet and pleasant brookes : Things observable in this Feast are , First . The end why God would have this Feast kept , he aimes at these three things chiefly . First , God would have them to blesse his name for his mercies to them in the wildernesse , when they dwelt in boothes ; it was appointed by God , that they should once a yeare call to minde the great mercies of God , while they were in the wildernesse , and there dwelt in boothes , and had no houses , for so was the dispensation of God towards his people , for forty yeares they were to be in the wildernesse , and not to have a house in all that time , but dwelt in Tabernacles ; this was a mighty worke of God , and manifested his exceeding protection over them , and provision for them , and his providence every way to provide necessaries for them , even as well as if they had had the strongest houses ; that so many hundred thousands should live forty 〈◊〉 , and never have a house built all that time , was a great work of God ; God ●ould declare thereby , that the Church in this world is not to expect any certaine habitation , any setled condition , but to be as men that dwell in tents , removing up and downe , and so seeke after a City that hath foundations , as it is said of Abraham . At this Feast the Jewes were wont to reade the Booke of Ecclesiastes , principally because it speakes so much of the works of Gods providence . All the while Gods people dwelt in boothes and Tabernacies , God himselfe would dwell in a Tabernacle ; God would never have a house built unto him , till he had brought his own people to be setled in houses of their owne ; and therefore when David began to thinke that he had a house of Cedar , and therefore surely God must have one too , God tells him , Did ever I speake of a house for me ? as if he had said , As long as my people went up and down in booths and Tabernacles , I was content to have a Tabernacle , and a booth for my dwelling , thus God is willing to suite himselfe with the condition of his people ; Is the condition of his people in a fleeting way , then I will be so too , saith God ; If your conditions be afflicted , and unsetled , I will be so too ; In all their afflictions , God was afflicted , in all their unsetlednesse , God seemed to be so too . Indeed afterwards when Gods people came to be in a setled estate in Ierusalem , then God would have a house built him ; God would hereby teach us , That if himselfe be content to be in a condition like us , then we must be content to be in a condition like him , as thus ; when we are afflicted will God be afflicted with us ? when we are unsetled , will God be ( as it were ) unsetled with us ? then let us not thinke it much , if afterwards God be in an afflicted way , his truth and his Gospell be in a suffering way ; let us be willing to suffer with God ; when God is magnified and praised , then our hearts should be inlarged too , and rejoyce in his praise ; we should consider the condition that God is in the world , & we must suite our selves with that . Again , would God have them once a yeare to celebrate the remembrance of their dwelling in boothes and Tabernacles , and that after they came to Ierusalem ? From hence note . It is good to remember our low estates , to have a reall remembrance of our low & mean conditions we had heretofore ; doth God now bring us into a more setled condition then heretofore ? Let us not forget in what an afflicted condition we were in , how unsetled , how ready we were to fleet up and down ; If God should grant his people , that they should think themselves setled in their own kingdoms , yet let them never forget the time , when they were unsetled in this & other countries , there hath been a great part of the people of God , whose thoughts have been , what shall become of them , & whether shall they go , and perhaps to this day many have such thougts , unlesse there be some speciall mercies of God prevent it , yet may be the condition of thousands in the land , before a yeare go about ; If God should prevent you , ever remember your fleeting condition once you were in ; It was Gods great care of the people of Israel , that they should never forget their dwelling in Tabernacles . Thirdly , Note the time of their Feast of Tabernacles , they were to dwell in booths , upon the fifteenth day of their moneth , it was but five dayes after their day of atonoment , so that being so presently after the day of publique atonement ; this lesson may be learned . After our humiliations for our sins , and making up our peace with God , it is good to keep our hearts low with the meditation of the uncertainty of all things in the world . You have been humbling your selves , and making your peace with God , yet when your hearts are comforted with the hope of your alonement made , keep your hearts low , take heed of pride ; the feast of Tabernacles must be kept , presently after the feast of Atonement ; this is one speciall means to keep your hearts low , to have a reall remembrance of the uncertainties of the comforts of this world . This lifteth up mens hearts to conceive some excellencies in things here ; therefore goe into your boothes , and work your hearts down , keep your feast of Tabernacles . Fourthly , God would have their hearts kept low by the actuall going into their booths and tabernacles , though they had faire and sumptuous houses in the City , yet they were to go out , and live in their booths a while ; you might think , were it not enough for the Priest to tell them , and bid them remember their dwelling in Tabernacles , but they must go forth from their houses and abide in booths . It is a good way to keep those men humbled , that are raised from a low condition to a high , even actually to goe into those houses that are low and mean , go into the houses of poor men , look into the cupboards , see what provision they have , this will be a means to humble your hearts , when you consider , This was once my condition . A second end of this feast was , to blesse God for all the fruits of the earth they had received , when they had received all in , their Vintage and all . As the feast of Pentecost was to blesse God for their first fruits , and their harvest , but now all the fruits of the earth , Vintage and all were gathered in . Now they were to joyn all together , and to blesse God for all the fruits of the Earth . That this is Gods end , is cleare in Deut. 16. 13 , 14. Thou shalt observe the feast of Tabernacles , after thou hast gathered in thy corn and thy wine , and thou shalt rejoyce , &c. because the Lord thy God shall blesse thee in all thy encrease , therefore thou shalt surely rejoyce . From hence there is this lesson . It is usefull to remember what a poor condition we were once in , and the uncertainty of all things that we have ; even when we have got our riches into our houses , when all things are in our possession , it is not so much to think how uncertain they are , when they are growing in the field , but after the Vintage was gotten in , then they were to keep the feast of Tabernacles , to remember the uncertain condition of all things in the world , this we are very loath to doe , it is unsutable to our natures , and therefore this feast of Tabernacles was much neglected among the Jewes untill such time as they 〈◊〉 been in captivity , after God had carried them into Babylon , and the●● b●ought them back againe into their own Countrey , then they kept the feast of Tabernacles , more solemnly then ever they had done , as we finde Nehem. 8. 17. Since the day of Ioshua the son of Nun , they had not done so , they never kept the feast of Tabernacles so solemnly from their first comming into Canaan , as then they did , now being come out of prison they could remember the uncertainty of all things in the world ; men forget the uncertainty of all things in the world , but if they be driven from house and home , and lose all , then they remember what they have heard and confessed ; of the uncertainty of all worldly things : some of our brethren who are plundered and driven from their habitations , if God should ever restore them to their habitations againe , then their hearts would be enlarged in blessing God , then they would be more sensible of the uncertainty of the comforts of the creature then ever before . Thirdly , The Feast of Tabernacles had an aime at Christ and the state of a Christian , it was to typifie JESUS CHRIST to come into the world , and to pitch his tents amongst us , as John 1. 14. he dwelt amongst us ; he came and pitched his Tabernacle amongst us , it is in the Greek , and the state of a Christian likewise , is an abiding Tabernacle , 2 Cor. 5. 1. If our earthly house of this Tabernacle be dissolved , till we goe where JESUS CHRIST is gone before us , to prepare mansions for us , Iohn 14. our dwelling is in Tabernacles . In the offerings that God appointed to offer in this their feast , Numb . 29. 12. there are some things very observable , but hard to finde the meaning of , the feast was to be kept seven dayes , the first day was a great day , and the last day a great day , the first day there were 13. bullocks to be offered , and 14. lambes , the second day , there was but 12. bullocks , and the third day but 11. and the fourth day but 10. and so every day one decreased , ( as you may see there ) and the last day , there was but one offered , Now divers Expositors have sought to finde out the meaning of this . I doe not finde any such thing in all the Scripture , as this is , but onely in this place , Calvin confesses when he speakes of this , that for his part he doth not understand the meaning of it , and rather then to make guesses of it , & uncertainties , I will saith he be silent in it , & yet he ventures upon a conjecture a very unlikely one , therefore I shall not name it . That which is most likely seems to be in two things . The first is , they must offer every day lesse and lesse , that is ( saith another interpreter ) to shew their increase in sanctification , that they should grow to more and more perfection , every day of their feast , and so have lesse need of Sacrifices then they had before , and so it will afford a good note to us , that when we come to keepe dayes to God , every day we should grow more and more in sanctification , and have lesse and lesse sin to answer for , then we had before . Another interpretation that is given , is , that it was to shew the cessation of the sacrifices of the Jewes , that they were to decrease day by day , and this I take rather to be the meaning , because the last day is but one bullocke that was offered , and yet the Text saith , that that was the great day of the Feast , when there was fewest sacrifices to be offered . Ioh. 3. 37. The last and the great day of the feast , Jesus cryed , if any man thirst , let him come unto me ; there is somwhat to be noted about Christ there , though it is true , it was the feast of dedication , which was their own Feast , from whence many would prove the lawfulnesse of holy daies , yet the truth is , upon examination you shall finde there is scarce strength enough , from that place to prove it , though it be lawfull to take the advantage of such times , but it will appeare there , that it was the Feast of Tabernacles , as in 2 Chro. 8. 9. Their Feast of the dedication of the Temple , was at that time that the Feast of Tabernacles was ; one thing is to be observed from Christs being there at the Feast , the last and the great day , Jesus cryed , if any man thirst , let him come unto me ; Why did Christ upon the great day of the Feast cry out thus , If any man thirst , let him come unto me to drinke ? one reason may be , because when men are most strongly possessed with the uncertainties of all outward things in the world , then they are fit to entertaine the gospell , then fit to heare of JESUS CHRIST , when their hearts are taken off from the world , and they looke upon all things here as unsetled , the conclusion of that feast is a speciall preparation to the Gospell . Esay , 40. 6. 7 , &c. The preparation to the good tidings of the Gospel , is the Proclamation that All flesh is grasse , and all the goodlinesse thereof as the flower of the field : yea the withering of the grasse , and the fading of the flower must be proclaimed again and againe . And then seasonably and acceptably it followes , ver . 6. O Zion , that bringest good tidings , behold your God. Tremelius thinkes that the reason of the expression of CHRIST at this time was , from the custome of the Iews at this Feast ; at the feast of Tabernacles the Iews were wont with great joy to bring store of water out of the River of Shiloh to the Temple , where being delivered to the Priest , he powred it out upon the Altar , together with wine , and all the people sung that of Isaiah , with joy shall ye draw water out of the wells of salvation ; though it were their own invention , Christ takes a hint upon it , they accustomed themselves to draw water , and powre it out , Christ saith , what do you stand upon this ceremony of yours , this your custome will die and perish in the use of it , but come to me and there you shall have water , I am the well of salvation , a spring of grace shall be continually in the heart of that man that beleeveth in me . One note more is observable in this Feast , we have a prophesie that in the times of the gospel , the feast of Tabernacles should be kept then , that is in the truth of it , not in the ceremony . In Zach. 14. 16. there is a Prophesy that when Christ cometh , the very truth of the feast of tabernacles , then all people shall worship the true God , and keep the feast of Tabernacles . Why is it there Prophesied that all people shall come and keep that feast ? the reason may be this , this feast is named , because in the times of the gospel , men shall acknowledge their outward comforts to be from God , & 〈◊〉 ●ertainty of all things here , and that they are strangers and pilgrims 〈◊〉 in the times of the gospell , this shall be made more evident to the hearts of people , then ever before , the more JESUS CHRIST shall be known in the world ▪ the more shall the hearts of men be taken up with the knowledge of God in every creature , and of the uncertainty of every creature , and have their hearts taken of from the comforts of the world , and never account any setled condition here , but account themselves pilgrims , and strangers ; that is a signe that the Gospel hath prevailed with your spirits , if you have your hearts taken off from the creature , and you looke upon your selves , as strangers in the world , and looke for an abiding City , then do you keep in an Evangelicall sense this feast of Tabernacles . Or secondly , if it be meant of the glorious setled condition God in the latter dayes shall bring his Saints unto , yet then they shall remember with thankfulnesse , what their poor unsetled condition once was . Thus you have had a view of the chiefe of the Jewish Feasts , which God threatens here shall cease . There are onely these three Observations to be drawn from altogether . First , Even those things that are appointed by God himselfe , if once they be abused , God will not own them , but then they are accounted ours rather then Gods , her sabbaths , why not my sabbaths ? why not Gods sabbaths ? God did appoint them , but because they had abused them , God would not own them ; her sabbaths , and her solemn Feasts . The Ordinances of God , though never so good in themselves , if you pollute them , God rejects them , they are your ordinances then and not Gods , looke then that all ordinances be , as God would have them . Secondly , It is a grievous and lamentable affliction upon any people , for God to deprive them of his sabbaths and ordinances , his ordinances are included in their solemne Feasts , nay ( saith God ) you will goe on in your wickednesse , and would put me off with your sabbaths , and solemne meetings , and with those things that were once my ordinances , you will satisfie me with them , though you continue in your wickedness , no , you shall be deprived of them , you shall have no more sabbaths , no more solemne Feast dayes ; it is a sad affliction for a people to have no more sabbaths . How many of you neglect solemne meetings of Gods people ? time may come when God will rend these priviledges from you , and then your conscience will grate upon you , O the sabbaths that once we had ! O the solemn meetings that once we enjoyed ! but our hearts were vaine and slight ; we did not make use of them , and now they are gone , now perhaps thou art cast into a goale , or into a dungeon , and there thou keepest thy sabbaths & thinkest upon thy solemne meetings . O how unworthy is this land of sabbaths ? how did we set our selves to persecute those that kept sabbaths ? there was never any such a thing in any Christian nation : other places though they are somewhat loose upon their sabbaths , yet they never persecute them that will keep sabbath : how justly might God have taken away our sabbaths ? let us acknowledge Gods free grace ; what reproach hath it been in England to assemble to heare Sermons ? how justly might God have taken away these solemne Assembles from us long before this ? let us pray that what ever judgement God sends upon us , he will not take away our Sabbaths , nor our solemne assemblies , but that we may still enjoy those we have , and enjoy them to better purpose then ever we have done . 3. God hath no need of our services ; If God call upon us to worship him , it is for our good , not for any need he hath of what we doe . What do I care , saith God , whether I have any Sabbaths kept or no ? I can provide for my glory , what ever becomes of your duties ; I need them not , I can be glorious without you . But these threats are but to take away things that are spirituall ; carnall hearts thinke if they may live and prosper in the world , what care they for Sabbaths , and for solemn meetings ? Tell them of taking away Ordinances , tell them of truth of Gods worship , what is that to them ? Let us have our peace , our trading , and our outward blessings , and truth will follow , O no , a gracious heart will rather reason thus , O Lord , let us have thy Ordinances , let us have thy Gospel , and then for our Vines and Fig-trees , our tradings , and our outward blessings , we will leave them to thy dispose ; if thou will give us thy Sabbaths , and thy Ordinances , we will trust thee for our Vines , and for our Fig-trees . But if the Lord be so angry to deny us his Ordinances , how can we ever thinke that he will be so mercifull to us , to continue our peace , or our civill liberties ? No sure , if Truth be gone , Vines and Fig-trees will not stay long : The next words therefore are , I will destroy her Vines and her Fig-trees . The Lord may suffer those places that never had Sabbaths and Ordinances to prosper in their Civill ●eace a long time , but where these have , and the wrath of God be so incensed as to take away these , it cannot be expected that outward peace and plenty can hold long there , First seeke the kingdom of heaven , saith Christ , and all these things shall be added unto you : No , ( say they ) let us first seeke the kingdome of earth , and the things of heaven will be added to us ; which shewes the sleightnesse of their account of heavenly things . As the paper and the thred in a shop , is given in to the commodity , it is added , if a man bargaine for the paper and thred , and think the commodity will be given in , what a folly were it ? Many men have their thoughts altogether upon the things of this life , and they think the Gospel will be given into the bargaine , as if they have peace , they shall no question have truth , as if the Gospel were the paper and thred , and the things of the world were the commodities . It is your wisdome if you would enjoy outward peace , let your hearts be for Ordinances , cry to God for Ordinances , and then God will take care you shall sit under your Vines , and under your Fig-trees peace . The Eleventh Lecture . HOSEA 2. 12. 13. And I will destroy her Vines and her Fig-trees , whereof shee hath said , These are my rewards that my lovers have given me : and I will make them a forrest , and the beasts of the field shall eate them . And I will visit upon her the dayes of Baalim , wherein she burnt incense to them , and she decked her selfe with her eare-rings and her jewels , and she went after her lovers , and forgat me , saith the Lord. GODS threatning Israel , in taking away spirituall mercies ; their Sabbaths , and Ordinances , their solemne Feasts , you have in the former verse ; but because they might not be much sensible of such a judgement , to be deprived of Sabbaths , and solemnities of worship , would not be so grievous to many , but the destroying of the fruit of the ground , the spoiling of their land , the losse of those things wherein their riches and outward comforts lay , would be more grievous , therefore God joynes this threat with the former , And I will destroy her Vines and Fig-trees ; In these two , Vines , and Fig-trees , there is a Synecdoche , by these are meant , all her outward prosperity ; I will not lop their Vines , I will not cut downe some branches of their Fig-trees only , but destroy them . If God stayes long before a judgement comes , hee comes fearfully indeed , he comes with destroying judgments , then he strikes at the very roo●e of all a peoples prosperity , and leaves them hopelesse of ever recoveriug themselves ; It concerns us to humble our selves under Gods hand , when he doth but cut off some branches of our vines and fig-trees , of our outward comforts , lest ere long there followes a destroying judgement , a cutting to the very roote : Doth God come in your families , and cut off a branch or two , a childe or two ? Humble your souls before him , he may cut downe the tree , stub up the root ere long , he may come to the Mother , or the Father , and so roote out the family : So in a Nation , it is a very remarkable place that you have , Ezekiel , 21. 27. I will overturne , overturne , overturn , when was this spoken , and to whom ? It was spoken unto Israel , and to Israel when they were in captivity , and yet God threatens them thus even there , I will overturne , overturne , overturne , Whereof she hath said , these are the rewards that my lovers have given mee ; The word that is translated reward , signifies Merces meretricia , it comes of the Hebrew word that signifies hired with wages , but such wages as are given to harlots , and yet she is so impudent as to make use of that very word , these are my rewards ; the word she useth here might upbraid her , but so impudent doth Idolatry make men to bee ; If we be guilty of whoredome , we have our rewards of whoredome then , ( say they : ) Whoremasters use to give rewards unto their whores ; whoredome is a costly sin to many a man ; Many men secretly wast , and consume in their estates , and their neighbours wonder how they come to be so low ; Uncleannesse is as a Gangrene , as it will consume the body , so the purse , it beggars many men , when the world little thinks of the cause . Secondly , These are my rewards , these that you call Idols , give mee liberall rewards , I have what I served them for . God may suffer men in wickednesse to prosper , to gaine their hearts desire . Thirdly , It is a dangerous thing for sinners to look back to their sins committed , and then to blesse themselves , as if they had gotten by them ; Indeed , before a sin is committed , the sinner by temptation may be perswaded there is much gaine to be had in that way ; and in the very act of comission , the sinner may find some flashie false contentment and delight , but usually after the act is over , when the sinner looks back , he sees nothing but shame , guilt and horrour ; Sinners scarce dare look back to their sinnes after they are committed , except such as are most desperately hardned in their sins , they dare not think of what they have done : but here you see , they look at what they have done , and blesse themselves , as if they had got a goodly reward by it : As the sight of the evil consequences of sin is a means to humble , so the apprehending of gayning by sin , is a speciall meanes to harden in sin . Judas thought it a brave thing to get the thirty pieces , yet when hee saw the evill fruit that his sin produced , he looked with horrour upon his sin , his soule sunk under the burden of it : If a Judas looking after sinn , hath his spirit filled with horrour , what hope is there then of such a one , as looking after it , blesseth himselfe as a gainer by it ! If a man either prospers at that time he sins , or prospers more a little after he hath committed a sin , then he did before , or so prospers as that he conceives his sin to be some way instrumentall to bring in that gain that was got : this hardens exceedingly . Fourthly , These are the rewards that my lovers have given me . It is a provoking sin to attribute the blessings of God to our own wicked sinfull ways , and thereby to harden our hearts in those ways . It is too much to attribute any of Gods blessings to second causes , to our lawfull endeavors , to our industry , to our care , to any instruments , but to attribute them to our wickednesse , this is abominable , God expects glory in the acknowledgement of every mercy , and improvement of it unto him : where then there is not only a deniall of this to him , but a giving it to his enemy , to wickednesse , to the Devill , whom he hates , this goes exceeding neer to the heart of God. It is a great part of our sanctifying of Gods name in the use of all the creatures , to acknowledge him in all , that all depends upon him , and thereby to be quickned in his service : but to thinke all depends upon that which is contrary to God , and therefore if we want what we would have , to begin to think we have not served our lust enough , and to be put on to serve them more , this exceedingly provokes . I le give you one notable example of this wretchednesse of mans heart , and indeed it is a very dreadfull one , I had very credible relation from a Minister , who being at Hamburgh , hee was told this story . There was a consultation of many of the Ministers of Germany at that Town in the time of the sorest distresses and calamities that were in Germanie , the Ministers were Lutherans , they consulted to find out what might be the cause why the hand of God was so heavy upon Germany , in those parts where they lived , that so they might reform what was amisse , and make their peace with God , the isse of their consultations came to this , that the reason of their calamities and troubles that were upon them , was because the Images of their Churches were not adorned enough : because there was not cost enough bestowed upon them , they were not decked as they thought they should have been : and therefore for the preventing of the continuance of those calamities in those parts of Germany , they unanimously consented to improve all the strength they had to beautifie and adorn the Images in their Churches more : this was a sad thing for Ministers who professing against Popery , as the Lutherans do , they indeed keep Images in Churches : But could it be thought that they should be thus vaine , yea wicked , as to attribute the want of their Vines and fig-trees to the want of their superstitious vanities , and to bring up their consultations to this conclusion , that if they were more zealous of the one , they should the more prosper in the other ? was not this a sore and grievous evill , going neare to the heart of God ? Many attribute the increase of their estates to their lying , to their over-reaching , their swearing , and rejoyce in this , this I have got by these wayes ; Zeph. 1. 9. God threatens to punish those that leape on the threshold , and fill their masters houses with violence and deceit : That is , the servants of great men , who by oppression and by fraud bring in gain to their Masters houses , and then they leap upon the threshold for joy , applauding themselves in the successe they have had in their wicked wayes : It is usuall in whatsoever ways men are , if they meet with any prosperous success , to bless themselves , as if this success came in the rather because of those ways , let the ways be never so wicked : Of late have not some made the world believe they have had great success , & have made an argument that their ways have been good , and God hath blessed them , because they have done as they have , though we know their ways to be such as brings most fearfull guilt upon themselves , and their families , and we have all cause to have our hearts tremble within us , to think of them ; and if it be through seducement , and not through a worse principle , to pray to God , O Lord forgive them , for they know not what they doe : and for the success they boast of , who would not if he might wish such success to his Enemy ? But if Idolaters can encourage themselves in those ways they are in , from what good they suppose they have by them , for their rewards ; how much more then should the Saints encourage themselves in the rewards that they have from their lover , from the Lord Christ ? Psal . 129. 56. This I had ( saith David ) because I kept thy word ; this is the reward I have had from my lover ; I blesse God , I have in some measure got my heart to breake before the Lord , and to melt after him , and the Lord hath come in mercifully to me , though indeed there be no worthinesse in what I have done , yet the Lord hath beene gracious , he hath encouraged his poose servant in his way ; these and these mercies the Lord hath given me as a fruit of seeking him ; he hath not said to the seed of Iacob , seeke ye me in vaine ; I have sought for comfort , for peace , and at last it is come , I will call upon the name of the Lord , as long as I live ; we should consider of Gods mercies we have , and rejoyce in them as the love-tokens that come from our beloved ; These are the rewards , these are the love-tokens that come from our dearly beloved . Hereafter when the Saints shall come to heaven , how will they blesse God , and blesse themselves in their God , for those glorious things , those blessed rewards that they then shall receive from their beloved , and enjoy for ever with him ! then they shall triumphingly say , the world said heretofore , What profit is there in serving of the Lord ? But blessed be God , that I went on notwithstanding in the wayes of God , and now I see there is profit to purpose ; O these joyes ! O this glory ! O this crowne ! this happinesse ! these are the rewards that I have from my beloved . A fift , what any man gets by sin , or lookes upon as gotten by sin , or uses as a meanes to harden himself in sin , the curse of God is in it , and it will rend it from him , he shall not ever enjoy it ; I will destroy their vines & their fig-trees , whereof they have said , these are the rewards that my lovers have given me , 1 Kings 21. 16. you shall finde that Ahab blessed himselfe in getting Naboths vineyard , by the device of Iezebel , the text saith , He rose up to goe to take possession , but verse 9. Thus saith the Lord , hast thou killed , and also taken possession ? in the place where the doggs licked the blood of Nabeth , shall doggs licke thy blood , even thy blood ; What , you have got an estate now , you have got the vineyard , you have got possession , how got you it ? by wickednesse , though you blesse your selves in it now , as a reward of your vile wayes , certainly the Lord will either force you in the anguish and terrour of your soules , to vomit up those sweet morsells againe , you shall not hold them , or some fearfull judgement of God up-you , will rend them from you ; that which many have got by unjust and sinfull wayes , they have indeed rejoyced in for a while , but after a while that estate hath beene in their consciences as drops of scalding lead in the very apple of a mans eye ; so terrible hath it been unto them . For this I will onely give you an example , a late one , that came to my owne hands in restoring that that was wrongfully got many yeeres agoe , from one neere my selfe , I shall the rather name it because the partie desired that the thing might bee made knowne to the glory of God , He sends that that he had wrongfully got ; divers yeeres after , with a letter with these expressions ; Many a throb of conscience had I about it , many an ●king heart , and many promises have I made of restitution , and thousands of times have I wished unto you your silver againe ; what shall I doe ? to keep it , it is to continue in sin ; to give it to the poor , alas , it is not mine owne ; or at least the evill purchase of gaine hourded up in the stuffe of my iniquity ; to send it home , the owner is dead , I would to God I had sent it before , that it might not have layne so hard upon me ; but seeing that is past , and cannot be recalled , here I sent it you , I aske God forgivenesse , and pray you fayle not to pray for me ; Sweet Jesus forgive me : It was kept divers years , but was biting all the while in the conscience of the poor man , and at length it must breake forth in such expressions as these are . Consider of this , every one who hath got any thing by a sinfull way , and have blest himselfe in it , this is the reward I have got by such a cunning device , and such an unjust and deceitfull way , you got it cleverly , and have enjoyed it , and been merry with it , well , one day it may thus lie grating in your conscience , O then how rerrible will it be to you ! this is the best way to be rid of the rewards of sin , when they begin to cause aking in your consciences , cast them out your selves , all your praying to God for forgivenesse will never ease you without this way ; if you be able to restore , but if you will not doe it this way , God may come by some hideous judgement , and force them from you in spite of your hearts , and then how terrible will it be to you , when you looke upon them as going from you , as being rent by God from you ! O now I must part with all that gaine , and sweetnesse that such and such wayes of sin have brought me in ; the gain , the sweet is gone , but the guilt , the curse , the dregs , the filth , that remains upon my spirit , and for ought I know must stick by me to all eternity ; Gods judgements will be upon you one day , but as strainers to let out whatsoever is sweet , & delightfull to you , and to keepe in the filth and dregs ; Remember this , you that have got rewards by sinfull wayes , your rewards of sinne may now delight you , but there is a time you shall have rewards for your sins , that will not please you . I will make them as a forrest . God threatens his people to make them as a forrest , the Seventy they reade it otherwise , I will put those things as a witnesse ; you will say here is a great difference ; I will make her as a forrest , and I will put those things as a witnesse ; Those things , that is , those rewards ; they rejoyce in the rewards that they have had of their iniquity , but I will make them to be as a witnesse against them ; Certainly there is a truth in this , Those things that you rejoyce in as got by sin , the Lord will make them to rise up , and witnesse against you ; be sure now you cast them out , they will be witnesses against you another day else ; A man that is guilty , would be glad , when he knows one that would witnesse against him , were dead , or out of the way ; have you got any thing by a sinfull way ? have you got any thing by a sinfull course ? put it out of the way , for otherwise it will bee a witnesse against you , either upon your sick-bed , or at the great day of Judgement ; but how can thesee-two readings be reconciled , I will make them as a witnesse against you , and I will make her as a forrest ? It is true , the words in the English seem to be very wide one from another , but there is an easie mistake that might cause the Seventy to read those words , so as to render them thus , I will put them as a witnesse , for [ 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 ] signifies a forrest in the Hebrew , and [ 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 ] signifies to witnesse , so it is used , Zach. 3. 6. Montanus reads those words , Contestabatur Angelus ; now those that are skilful in the Hebrew know that there being no more difference in the words then in those letters which are so like one another , one is [ 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 ] the other is [ 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 ] there might easily be a mistake in that regard ; but we take it as it is here , I will make her as a forrest . The Church is Gods garden , hedged in with Gods protection , but God here threatens to take away the hedge , and let in the wild beasts ; Concerning the hedg of God about his Church we have spoken before : The wilde Beasts are one of Gods sore judgements often threatned : Those who will not be subject to the blessed holy God , they shall be subject to the ravening and rage of Beasts : And it is like the Seventy understood it , even literally of that judgment of noysome beasts to be let in upon them ; for I find that they add to these words [ the beasts shall eate them ] the fowles of the Heaven , and the creeping things of the earth shall devoure ; but though I find that in the translation of the Seventy , yet I do not find it in the Hebrew Text , and therefore we must let it passe , and only speak of what we have here , of the beasts eating : Now therefore by that according to most Interpreters , I incline to think , and am perswaded , that it is the intention of the holy Ghost to express a judgment beyond the judgment of letting in of noysome beasts , namely the Assyrians , the adversaries of Israel , who should come upon them as ravening beasts to devour them ; from whence the words being so opened , you have these three notes of great use concerning us . The first is , sin makes men like Beasts , the beasts of the earth , he meanes the Assyrians , great ones , and yet he calls them the beasts of the earth , to be like a beast , is worse then to be a beast ; for to be a beast is but to be as God made the creature , it is no dishonour to it : but to be like a Beast , that is the corruption of a creature , and the deformity of it , the worst deformity that possibly can be : Chrysostome shews it thus , Beasts ( saith he ) have but some particular evill , take the worst of all , as the Swine , sensuality , the Tyger , and the Bear , cruelty ; the Fox subtlety , &c. But wicked men have all evills that all beasts in the world have in them . One wicked man hath the sensuality of a Swine , and cruelty of a Tyger , of a Bear , the subtilty of a Fox , and whatsoever is set out Emblematically by any Beast , a wicked man hath it all in his heart ; yea and farther , wicked men are worse then beasts in this , that they doe corrupt themselves in those things that they have common together with beasts , more then beasts do . As the Drunkard corrupts himself in his drink , which a beast will not do , a glutton corrupts himselfe in his mea●●ore then ordinarily a beast will do , and that I think is the 〈◊〉 〈…〉 in 〈…〉 Iude , ver . 〈…〉 of that they know not , and what they know naturally as bruit beasts , in those things they corrupt themselves . As for their intellectuall parts , they will be speaking evill of what they know not , they will take upon them as if they knew much , but the truth is , they understand little , and yet they will speak evill of that they know not . It is a dreadfull Text against such as will be crying out against men and their ways , when as in truth they know not what they are ; but further , in that they know naturally as bruit beasts , in that they corrupt themselves , that is , in things they do know meerly by sense , as bruite beasts do , they know by tasting , and by smelling , as bruit beasts do , in those very things they corrupt themselves more then bruit beasts , that is , by excess in meats and drinks . Would not any account it to be one of the greatest judgments that could befall him , if God should turne him into the fashion of a Beast while he lives here in this world , though he should still retain the mind of a man in him ? Suppose God should inflict this judgment upon a Drunkard , he should still have his intellectuall parts as now he hath , but yet his body should be turned into the form of a Swine , or a rayler into the form of a dog , as they say Hecuba Priamus his wife was for her rayling ; would not this be a fearfull judgment ? It is an expression of a heathen , Lactantius hath it from Cicero , ( saith he ) If it would be such a judgment as a man would be willing to indure any misery in the world , rather then to have his body turned into the fashion of a Beast , is it not as great a misery to keep the fashion of the body , and to have the mind to become like a beast , to keep a humane shape with the soul of a beast ? surely it is worse then to have the shape of a beast with the soul of man. Secondly , God looks upon wicked men who do great things in the world with a contemptible eye : the Beasts shall devour , that is , the great King of Assyria , and all his Courtiers about him , and Cavalliers with him , they shall come to devour them , they are but the beasts , God speaks in a contemptible manner , as he doth against Senacherib that King of Assyria , in Isa . 37. 29. God threatens to put a hooke in his nostrils , and a bridle in his lips , because of his rage and of his tumult , that is , he would use him as a beast , to hook his nose , & to put a bridle into his jaws . Mark likewise how contemptible God speaks of the King of Babylon , and his whole army , Ioel 2. 20. His stinke and his ill savour shall come up , because hee hath done great things ; and so in Psal . 59. 7. They belsh with their mouths ( saith David ) and they goe up and down the Citie grinning like a dog : these are the expressions of David , and in that Psalm he means no other but those his adversaries , that were about Saul in his Court : and Ezek. 38. 3 , 4. To the chief Prince of Meshech and Tubal , I will put hooks in thy jawes ( saith God ) and in Dan. 7. the four great Monarchs , Babylonian , Persian , Grecian , Roman , are set out by four beasts , & the fourth Monarchy which by most Interpreters interpreted the Roman Empire , Dan. 7. 7. it is described to bee dreadfull and 〈…〉 and strong exceedingly , & it had great iron teeth , it devoured and brake in pieces , and stamped the residue with the feet of it , and it was divers from all things that was before it ; Now this beast raged first in the heathen Empire , and after it gave its power to the beast Antichrist , as you may reade in Rev. 13. and that beast was like a leopard spotted , full of uncleannesse and filth , or as some translate it , a panther , who by the scent of it drawes other beasts to him , but devoures them , and his feet like a Beare , and his head like a Lyon. Thus you see how God describes the great ones of the world , to be as beasts looking with a contemptible eye upon them . Thirdly , It is a sore and a heavy judgement for a people to be delivered up to the rage of cruell adversaries ; the beasts shall devoure them . I will give you up to them who will bring you under , you will not be obedient to me , but to them you shall , I will let out cruell wicked men upon you . Hence David prayed , Lord let me not fall into the hands of men , when God would put him to his choyce , to choose what judgement he would have , he was quickly resolved what to refuse , hee would be sure he would not have that judgement , to be given up to the hands of men , that he knew was dreadfull ; and Psal . 55. 6. he prayes , O that I had the wings of a dove , that I might flye into the wildernesse , and there abide . Into the wildernesse ! Why hee should be among the wilde beasts in the wildernesse , and yet he cryes , O that he had the wings of a dove , he would abide in the wildernesse ! VVhy what is the matter here ? it was because of the cruelty of Saul , and his courtiers , David apprehended them so cruell , that he had rather fall into the hands of Tygers , and wilde beasts in the wildernesse , then into theirs . I could give you notable examples of people that would rather endure any misery in the world , then be given up into the hands of their enemies . That story is most famous of Numantia in Spaine , when Scipio came against it , and they were afraid it would be taken , all the young men first took all the old men in the City and killed them with as faire a death as they could ; then they brought all the treasure and riches of the City to the market place , and set all on fire , and after that they all took poyson and poysoned themselves , and thus in one day old and young , and all in the City , were quite destroyed , rather then they would fall into the hands of their enemies . Psa . 22. 20. Deliver my soul , saith David , from the sword , my darling from the power of the dog , the power of the dog , and the sword , is but one the interpretation of the other ; and that text is observable , 1 Cor. 15. 32. That I have fought with beasts at Ephesus after the manner of men ; some interpret this litterally , that he did indeed really fight with beasts , as being one way of torment they put the Christians to , to fight with beasts ; but it is rather thought by most interpreters , that the meaning is with men that were beastly , with cruell men , and Esthius thinkes those men to be no other , but those that are mentioned in Acts 19. 9. of whom the text saith there , that divers were hardned , and spake evill before the multitude , Paul then departed from them , and 〈◊〉 he disciples , Paul says that it was a most 〈…〉 to get the multitude to be gathered together , and there to speake against him and his doctrine , and against Christ , when all the multitude were got together , now their malice thought that a fit opportunity to vent all their venome against Paul and his doctrine , upon that the spirit of Paul was so provoked ( saith the text ) that he departed from them , and separated the disciples : he saw them desperately set upon it with malice that they would take such an advantage , so to speake against him and his doctrine before the multitude ; it is thus with many , the more sedition is raised , the better are their designes furthered . Christ tells his Disciples , Marke 16. 18. that Serpents should do them no hurt , and drinking poyson shall not hurt them ; yea , in the 19. of Luke the beginning , he tells them they shall have power over divels ; Serpents shall doe them no hurt , poyson shall doe them no hurt , they shall have power over Devils : but Mathew . 10. 17. Beware of men ; they might say , why blessed Master , what need we be afraid of men ? Serpents shall do us no hurt , we shall have power over Devils , and yet for all this , Christ bids them take heed of men ; as if there weere more danger of hurt from wicked men , then from Devils , or from Serpents , and therefore S , Paul in the 2. of the Thessalo . 3. 2. prayes that they may be delivered from absurd men ; so the words are , that those that had lost the very principle of reason , and were even as beasts . There are a generation risen up amongst us , who have sucked up the poyson of the old Serpent , and are sweld with it , who are set on fire of hel , and the poyson of Asps is under their lips , and in their hands , and as it was said of Romulus and Romus , the founders of Rome , they were suckled by woolves , so are these , who desire to build up Rome againe ; much like the first founders of that Rome , they seeme to be men suckled by wolves , or as the Poets faine of Lycaon , turned into a wolfe for his cruelty ; or as it is said of their S. Dominick , that was the Father of the Dominicans , that when his Mother was with child of him , she dreamed that she brought forth a wolfe , with a firebrand in his mouth ; according to that representation she had in her dream of her childe , she proved afterwards ; and if we look to the cruelty , and the rage of these kind of men , we may even think , that their Mothers have brought forth wolves with firebrands in their mouths ; in these Satan rages , and we hope therefore his time is but very short , because he rages so much ; had they prevailed , and brought all under their power , no Chronicle of any Nation under Heaven would afford the like stories of horrid cruelties , as the Chronicles of these times would have done ; where they have prevailed , in Ireland , there have beene the beginnings of such barbarismes , as here would have risen to the perfection of all rage and horrible cruelties ; they may be faire a little while , till they get more strength ; but certainly had they their will , there would never be parallel examples of that horrible rage and cruelty as you would finde among them , the Lord deliver us from being scourged with these Scorpions ; let us humble our soules before God , that God may not humble us before such beasts , that we may not say that England shall be as a forrest , and these beasts shall devoure them ; in the meane time let us not be offended at their prevailing in some places , for then we should be as beasts our selves , Psal . 73. 22. So ignorant was I , I was as a beast before thee , ( saith David ) Genesis 9. 5. God saith , He will require of the beasts the blood of his people , Certainly , God will require of these beasts , the blood that hath been shed , it is precious blood that they have drunke ; had it beene corrupt blood , God would not so much have cared for it , but it hath beene the blood of his Saints ; let us believe that God will turne the rage of man , the rage of beasts , to his praise , Psal . 76. 10. Surely the Lord cannot possibly behold without indignation such vile beasts to worrie his Lambs , who are so deare to him , even such so precious in his eyes , to be torne and worried by such beasts as these are , the eyes of the Lord are purer then to behold such iniquity as this is , we may well cry out with the Prophet , Haback . 1. 2. 3. How long shall we cry out of violence and wrong ? spoilings and violence are before me , whe●efore lookest thou upon them that deale treacherously and holdest thy tongue , when the wicked devoureth the man that is more righteous then himselfe ? The higher the scum ariseth , the nearer we know it is to the fire . I have read of Philo , when the people of the Iewes made use of him to apologize for them unto Cajus the Emperour , Cajus used him very ruggedly , when he came out of his presence , the Iews came round about him , well , ( saith he , to encourage them ) Surely Cajus will arme God against himselfe for us . But it may be said by some , surely these men are not beasts , for they are skilfull warriers , they are not so bruitish as you take them to bee , but are skilfull enough in their wayes ; marke that text of Ezekiel 21. 31. I will deliver thee into the hand of bruitish men , skilfull to destroy ; they are skilfull to destroy , and yet bruitish men ; we have a promise from God , and our prayers should hasten the fulfilling of it , in Ezek. 34. 25. He will cause the evill beasts to cease out of the land , and ver . 28. the beasts of that land shal no more devoure them ; O that that time were come ! O that the Lord would so worke for us as to cause our beasts to cease out of our land , that they might no more devoure ! Isaiah 35. 9. No Lyon shall be there , no ravenous beast shall be found there , but the redeemed shall walke there ; there is such a time coming ; let us be patient in the mean time , and comfort our selves in these Scriptures , though our brethren endure hard things , by these cruell beasts , and though God may perhaps bring some of us under the rage of them , yet there is an estate of the Churches , that will be ere long that they shall be troubled no more with such uncleane , such outragious beasts . VERSE 13. And I will visit upon her the dayes of Baalim , wherein she burnt incense to them , and she decked her selfe with her eare-rings and her jewels , and she went after her lovers , and forgat me , ( saith the Lord. ) Here is the conclusion of the threatning part of the Chapter ; Now God will come upon them for all their sinnes together , if a generation shall succeed 〈…〉 esse , God may justly come upon 〈…〉 , for all the suns of the former generations ; all the blood from Abel to Zechariah shall be required of this generation ; I will visit all the dayes of Baalim , ever since they served Baal , let men take heed of continuing in the wayes of sin , who can tell what sin may put a period to the time of Gods bringing his judgement upon a Nation , a family , or a particular person ? though God hath spared heretofore , upon the next sin committed , there may be such a period put , as God now may come upon the family , not onely for that sin , but for all the sins of the family , that ever have been committed since it was a family , and so upon a Nation , for all the sins of a nation , since it was a nation , and all thy sins , ever since thou wast a sinner . Men goe on a while in the wayes of sin prosperously , but when God commeth to visit , what will become of them ? Isaiah 10. 3. What nill you doe in the day of your visitation , and in the desolation which shall come from far , to whom will ye flee for help ? and where will you leave your glory ? Now you are merry , and laugh , now you feare nothing , but what will you do in the day of visitation ? what will become of you then ? whether will you flee then ? and where will you leave your glory ? I will visit upon them the dayes of Baalim ; in the plurall number Baalim , by which some think and that not improbably , that it is meant of their under Gods that they had , which they called Baalims , for the Heathen had their chiefe Gods , and their Dii minores , their lesser Gods , that were unto them , as mediators to their chiefe Gods , and so our Papists have , they have their Diiminores , lesser Gods , who are tutelar Gods , either over Nations , or over families , or over particular diseases , &c. As they say , for England , S. George , for Erance , S. Dennis , for Ireland , S. Patrick , for Wales , S. David , for Scotland , S. Andrew , &c. These Saints they are in imitation of the Heathens , Baal , or in the Caldee dialect Bel , was the King of Babylon after Nimrod , the first that was deified , and reputed as a God after death , whence those men that were deified after their death , and worshipped as Gods , as the Papists worship their Saints , they called Baalims , as from Iulius Caesar , the other that followed after , were called Caesars : This interpretation gives unto us much light to understand that Scripture that you have in the first of the Corinthians , 8. 5. 6. Though there be that are called Lords whether in heaven or in earth , as there be Gods many , & Lords many , but to us there is but one God the Father , and one Lord Iesus Christ ; If the Apostle had spoke in Hebrew , it would have been thus , though there be many Baalims , there is to us but one God , and one Baal ; for in Hebrew , Baal is Lood , there are many Gods , ( say they ) there were divers greater Gods , and there were many Lords , many Baalims , that is , there are many amongst the Heathens that are mediators to their other chiefe Gods ; But to us ( saith he ) there is but one God , and but one Lord , but one Baal , we have not Baalims , wee have not many mediators , to mediate between us and God , but as we have but one God , so we have but one Lord , but one Mediator , who indeed in regard of his humane nature is inferiour to the Father , but yet such a Lord by whom are all things , and we by him , we acknowledge not greater Gods , and lesse Gods : the Papists acknowledge but one God , but they have many Lords , many Mediatours , many that must be between God and them , but this is a heathenish opinion . Again , Baalim in the plurall number . Another reason given by some , and not improbably , is , that in regard of the severall images they had of their Baal , in severall places , even in their private houses ; for Idolaters would not satisfie themselves in worshipping their Gods in publicke , but would worship them in their private houses also . Now though the Jewes had onely two Idols set up , one in Dan , another in Bethel ; yet they had some representations of those images in their private houses , which may be grounded upon that text Hosea 10. 5. Because of the calves of Bethaven , that is of Bethel , calves of Bethel . Why , how many calves were there ? there was but one calfe set up there , and yet here it is in the plurall number : now the reason of that is given , because though there was but one calfe set up for the publicke worship , yet they had in their private families , the picture of that calfe , and so would bring the worship of their Baal into their families . A good lesson for Christians , not to satisfie themselves with publicke worship , but to bring as much of the worship of God as they can into their families . Wherein she burnt incense to them . Incense was a typicall signification of prayer , in two respects . First , in the sweet savour of it . And secondly , in the ascending of it by fire , so all our prayers should be as incense , sweet before the Lord , and ascend up with the fervency of zeale , and Faith ; it is properto God alone to have incense burnt unto him in a religious way , the heathens burnt incense to their Idols , imitating the worship of God. She decked her selfe with her eare-rings , and her jewels : they worshipped their Idols in sumptuous manner , adorning themselves with as costly apparell as they could , especially their foreparts : the word that is translated jewels , signifies the nose jewel , the same word that you have in Isay , 3 , 21. nose jewels , they hanged upon their faces , jewels to make themselves beautifull before their Idols : whores use to adorne themselves more pompously then grave matrons , by this many simple people are drawn to the love of Idolatry , which is spirituall whoredome ; outward braveries draw the sences ; they thought God would accept of their service the rather , because of their costly jewels , that hung about their eares and nostrills . From hence this note . To thinke that God will accept our service the rather , because of any apparel , or any thing of our own devising , is to deale with God as the heathens with their Idols ; we must take heed of that : the Heathens instituted garments , that so they might be accepted . There was a Councel in the 333. year of Christ , that hath this Canon in it , it anathematizes all those that shal judge one vesture , one garment more holy then another , & make more for piety then another doth . We are to learn from Idolaters thus much , to 〈◊〉 adorn our souls , when we come into the 〈◊〉 of God ; did they deck their bodies , and hang jewels about eares and noses when they came before their Idols for acceptance ? Let us beautifie our souls every time we come before the living God ; and would you know what fine cloathes you should have , when you come into Gods presence ? I will tell you , and especially women who delight so much in fine cloaths , 1 Pet. 5. 5. Be yee cloathed with humility ; so the word is to dresse with a dresse that Gentlewomen used to weare in those times , with ribband ; about their heads ; well ( saith the Apostle ) would you have a fine dresse ye women ? be ye cloathed with humility ; the finest dresse you can possibly have : and I will tell you another dresse too , in 1 Pet. 3. 4. Adorned with a quiet and meeke spirit , which is with God of great price ; it is much set by of God , so translated in some of , your books . You love to be fine , if you come into Gods presence with quiet and meek spirits , and cloathed with humility , you will be as fine as can be in the very eyes of God ; but withall remember , both men and women , the robes of Christs righteousnesse , except you come cloathed and decked with that garment also , certainly you can never find acceptance . They followed after their Idols , but forgot me ( saith the Lord. ) Their lovers were remembred , but I was forgotten , saith God ; God speakes here in a lamenting way , as a man bemoaning his sad condition : as if he should have said , how am I flighted by my people ? the Idols can be followed , they can be remembred , but I am neglected , I am forgotten , they have activity for their Idols , none for mee , memory for them , but none for mee . God takes it very ill , when men can find memory , strength , and activity enough for their sinfull wayes , but none for him ; many complain of strength , they are weak , but who was ever so weak , but had strength enough to sin ? though memories be weak , yet sinfull ways can be thought on . Forgot me , that is , First , they have forgot what a God I am . Secondly , what I have done for them , the great works I have done befor them . Thirdly , all their engagements to mee ; many follow wicked wayes , yet so as sometimes they have checks of conscience , they have somewhat of God yet sticking upon their hearts , some remembrances of God , and so long there is hope ; but when a sinner hath so far departed from God , and followed on his ungodly ways , as God is quite worn out of his thoughts , then hee is in a sad case indeed . I appeal to you , is it not the case of some here ? there was a time that you had mighty impressions of God upon your spirits , and then you could never go up and down in your shops , streets , fields , but the thoughts of God were in your minde , and when you awaked in the night season , the thought of God was in your hearts ; but there was some haunt of wickedness that your hearts hankered after all that while , temptation came , and you have given way to it , and now ( friend ) you can go up and downe , one day after another , and scarce think of God at all ? what is the matter that you have no thoughts of God now , as you were wont to have ? yet perhaps you are not gone so farre , but that now and then there commeth in some darting thoughts of him , but so as your conscience knowes they are very terrible to you , you can never now have a thought of God , but it is as a clagger at your heart , and indeed it must needs be terrible to a guilty conscience that is departed from God. Well , take heed what thou doest O thou sinner , goe not on so long in thy sinfull wayes , till thou wearest out all the thoughts of God , for some have done so , though they had checks of conscience , when they have beene in wicked company , God hath come into their thoughts , and troubled them , but they have gone to wicked company againe , and some thoughts of God have yet followed them , but they have gone again and again , and now they have forgot God , as if there were no God at all in heaven , as if God had nothing to doe with them , and they nothing to doe with God , O this is a sad condition indeed . If any of you be declining into such a condition as this is , the Lord stop you , this day the Lord awaken your consciences . Ordinarily the more prosperity men have , the more forgetfull they are of the Lord ; They forgat me , as Genesis 48. 20. Jacob set Ephraim before Manasses , first Ephraim , then Manasses ; Ephraim signifies fruitfulnesse , and Mansses signifies forgetfulnesse ; thus it is with men , Ephraim comes first , f●uit fulnesse , God is fruitfull to you , and blesseth you in your estates , & then comes Manasses , forgetfulness ; you are forgetfull of his goodnesse to you : My brethren , if always we had such impressions of God , as we have sometimes , O how happy were it ! It will terrifie hereafter , when God shall againe so present himselfe to you , and cause you to remember what impressions of his divine Majesty once you had ; let us hold forth our continuall remembrance of God , so as all that behold our conversaions , may say , surely the thoughts of God are mighty upon the spirits of these men ; thus we should live before our brethren : I will give you this one rule for your lives ; Live such lives as by them you may hold forth before your brethren such remembrances of God , as they may conclude by that they see in your conversations , Certainly there are deepe thoughts of God upon the heart of this man , there was a time indeed he walked lightly ; vainly , foolishly , but now he is serious in his way , he is considerate , he is heavenly , he walks with feare ; Certainly there are great impressions of the divine Majesty upon his heart ; if it be so with us , how joyfull will it be to us hereafter , when God shall appeare in his glory , then to have our consciences tell us , the impressions of the Majesty of this God , that now I see so high and great have beene upon my soul , in the whole course of my life , I now see the glory of the great God shining , and blessed be his name , even this God that appeares so gloriously , hath appeared often to my soul before , and I have kept the impressions of his glory upon my heart , and he was continually in my thoughts . It is a wonder that God should ever thinke of us , who are so forgetfull of him as we are ; Psalm 8. What is man that thou remembrest him ? ( saith the text ) what is man ? The word there that is translated man , some would bring forth the Hebrew roote which signifies forgetfulnesse ; I finde Eusebius taking it thus , What is man O Lord , that thou shouldst remember him ? that is , what is forgetfull man , that thou shouldest remember him ? yet I confesse the Hebrew word that is there translated man , comes from another roote that signifies weakelinesse , sicklinesse ; what is weake man , what is sick-man ; yet if this word come not from that roote that signifieth to forget , yet I am sure there is a word that commeth from that roote that signifies to forget , that is used for women , because of their forgetfulnesse ; we would be glad to have God remember us , in the day of our adversities , let us remember God now ; all you young ones , remember God , remember your Creator in the dayes of your youth ; you old people , whatsoever you forget , forget not the Lord ; let us all remember the Lord , who hath remembred us all ; who hath remembred England , in its low estate . for his mercies endure for ever . We have done with the threatning part , now it followes , Therefore , behold I will allure her , bring her into the wildernesse , and speake comfortably to her ; [ Therefore ] Beloved , it is a strange therefore ; what , they followed after their Idols , they have said , that all their prosperity was a reward of their Idols , they have forgot the Lord , they have decked themselves with their jewels , to honour their Idols ; ( and marke ) it comes presently , Therefore I will allure her , and I will speake comfortably to her ; one would rather have thought it should have followed ; Therefore I will yet plague her , therefore my judgements shall pursue her , and cut her off ; but marke it followes , Therefore I will allure her , and speake comfort ably unto her ; O the rich and free grace of God to his people ! But of that the next day . The Twelfth Lecture . HOSEA 2. 14. Therefore behold I will allure her , and bring her into the wildernesse , and speake comfortably unto her : and I will give her her Vineyards from thence , HEre begins the second part of this Chapter ; the former was in conviction , threatning , pronouncing judgements : this from verse 14. unto the end , is the opening of the free and rich grace of God to Israel . It may be said of this Chapter , as Psalm 85. 10. Mercy and Peace are met together , Righteousnesse and Truth kisse each other , There is a blessed conjunction betweene threatning of judgement , and proffering mercy ; but where is the copula of this conjunction ? What is that knits these two together ? Here is a conjunction , but it is very wonderfull , it is in the first word , therefore ; that is the copula , [ therefore ] I will allure her ; Wherefore ? This therefore hath a very strange and wonderfull wherefore , if we consider of what went before ; the words immediately before were , She went after her lovers , and forgate mee , saith the Lord , [ therefore ] behold , I will allure her ; there needs an Ecce be put to this [ therefore ] be hold ; Behold , I will allure her . Lyra could not see how these things could bee joyned together , therefore hee thinks that this verse hath not reference to that that immediately went before , but to the words in the beginning of the Chapter , Say to your brethren , Ammi , my people , and to your sisters , Ruhamah , shee that hath obtained mercy , therefore : And Cornelius à Lapide not understanding the cause of such a connection , he would referre the beginning of this verse to the end of the seventh verse : She shall say , I will goe to my first husband , for then it was better with mee then now , therefore also I will allure her ; these two , though learned men , yet are Papists , and therefore understand but little of the free rich grace of God , and hence are put to it , so much , to make a connection betweene that that went before , and this therefore ; but wee need not go so farre , the right knowledg of the fulnesse , and the riches of the grace of the Covenant , will help us out of this difficulty , and tell us how these two , the greatnesse of mans sin , and the riches of Gods grace may have a connection one to another , and that by an Illative therefore . I confesse the Hebrew word is sometimes conjunctio ordinis , rather then causalis , a conjunction that only sets out the order of a thing , one thing following another , rather then any way implying any cause , but the reading here by way of inference , I take to be according unto the scope of the Spirit of God , and it gives us this excellent note . Such is the grace of God unto those who are in Covenant with him , as to take occasion from the greatnesse of their sinns , to shew the greatnesse of his mercy , from the vilenesse of their sins , to declare the riches of his grace . And the Scripture hath divers such kind of expressions as these , as Gen. 8. 21. The Lord said in his heart , I will not again curse the ground any more for mans sake ; VVhy ? For the immagination of mans heart is evill from his youth : A strange reasoning ; I will not curse the ground for mans sake , for the imagination of mans heart is evill from his youth . One would have thought it should have been rather , I will therefore curse the ground for mans sake , because the imagination of mans heart is evill from his youth ; but the grace of God knowes how to make another manner of inference then we could have imagined : So likewise , Isa . 57. 17 , 18. For the iniquity of his covetousnesse was I wroth and smote him , I hid me and was wroth , and he went on frowardly in the way of his heart ; I have seen his wayes ( saith God ) Now one would have thought that the next word should have been , I will therefore plague him , I wil destroy him , I will curse him ; but mark the words that follow , I will heale him , I will 〈◊〉 him also , and restore comforts unto him , and to his mourners ; I will create the fruit of the lips , peace to him . This is a consequence at least , if not an inference . David understood this reasoning to be indeed the true reasoning of the Covenant of grace , and therefore he pleadeth thus with God , Psal . 25. 11. Pardon my iniquity , for it is great ; Lord my iniquity is great , therefore pardon it . Hearken you Saints , ( hearken I say ) this is the great blessing of God unto you who are in Covenant with him , whereas otherwise your sins should have made you objects of Gods hatred , your sins now render you objects of his pitty and compassion , this is the glorious fruit of the covenant of grace . I would only the Saints heard me in this thing , but why doe I say so ? I will recall my word , let all sinners heare me , let the vilest , the worst sinners in the world heare of the riches of the grace of God in this his Covenant , that if they belong to Gods election , they may see the fulnesse , the glory of Gods grace , to be inamoured with it , their hearts ravished with it , that they may never be at rest till they get evidence to their soules , that God indeed hath actually received them into this his Covenant . If then God be pleased in the riches of free grace to make such an inference , therefore let us take heed that wee make not a quite crosse inference from the greatnesse of our sins , nor on the other side , from Gods grace . As thus , You have followed your lovers , you have forgot me , therefore will I allure you . An unbelieving heart would make this inference : I have followed my lovers , I have followed after vanity and folly , and therefore God hath rejected mee , therefore God will have no mercy upon me , therefore I am undone , therefore the gates of mercy are shut against me , unbelieving heart do not sin against the grace of God , he saith , you have forgotten me , therefore will I allure , and speake comfortably to you ; doe not you say , I have forgot the Lord , and therefore the Lord will for ever reject me ; these discouraging , determining , despairing therefores are very grievous to the Spirit of God. God would have us have all good thoughts of him . It is a maine thing that God intendeth through the whole Scripture that his people should have good thoughts of him , and that they should not think him a hard master . It is an excellent expression of Luther , ( saith he ) the whole Scripure doth principally aime at this thing that we should not doubt , but that wee should hope , that we should trust , that we should believe , that God is a merciful , a bountifull , a gracious , and a patient God to his people . It is an excellent expression that I have read of Master Bradford , in one of his Epistles , ( saith he , O Lord sometimes me thinks I feel it so with me , as if there were no difference between my heart and the wicked , a blind mind as they , a stout , stubborn , rebellions spirit , a hard heart as they , and so he goes on ; shall I therefore conclude thou art my Father ? nay , I will rather reason otherwise ; saith he , because I do believe thou art my Father , I will come unto thee , that thou mightest enlighten this blind minde of mine , that thou mightest soften this hard heart of mine , that thou mightest sanctifie this unclean spirit of mine ; I this is a good reasoning indeed , and is worthy of one that professes the gospel of Jesus Christ . Again , as the inference of this unbelieving heart is grievous to Gods spirit , so the inference of a prophane heart , an unbelieving heart makes his therefore from the greatnesse of sin against Gods mercy , and the prophane heart makes his therefore from the greatnesse of Gods mercy , to the hardening of his heart in his sins ; what , shall God make his therefore from our sin to his mercy , and shall we make our therefore from his mercy back again to our sins ? where sin abounds , grace abounds , but where grace abounds , sin must not abound , because God is mercifull to us who are very sinfull ; let not us be very sinfull against him who is so mercifull . God takes occasion from the greatnesse of our sins , to shew the greatnesse of his mercy ; let not us take occasion from the greatnesse of his mercy , to be emboldened in greatnesse of our sins . Therefore [ behold . ] Behold . Here is a wonder to take up the thoughts of men and Angels , to all eternity , even that that we have in this inference , behold , notwithstanding all this , yet you men and Angels behold the fulnesse , the riches of Gods grace , I will allure her ; what will not God cast us away notwithstanding the greatnesse of our sins ? let not us reject Gods ways , notwithstanding the greatnesse of any sufferings we meet with in them ; there is a great deale of reason in this that I speak ; you may as well beare with sufferings in Gods wayes , and yet embrace them , as God doth beare with sinns in your hearts , and yet embrace you ; but it follows , therefore I will allure ; the Heb. word translated allure , signifies to entice , and is used many times in the ill part , blandiendo decipere , to deceive by subtle enticing : the Seventy in their translation , thus , Therefore also I will deceive them , and the old Latine lactabo , and others seducam , therefore also I will seduce them , so sometimes the word is : God makes use of this word to expresse a very gracious affection to them , the sweete and gracious wayes that God intendeth to deale with them in . What God means by alluring of his people , when once he is reconciled unto them , may be expressed in these three things . First , I will open the beauty and excellency of the infiniteness of my grace and goodnesse , and I will set it before them to allure them . I will spread before their soules the beauty , the glory of the riches of my grace . Secondly , I will out-bid all temptations of their lovers , whereas before they went a whoring from me , because their hearts were allured by their lovers , their lovers proffering unto them such and such contentments , and so did subtilly draw their hearts from me , I will now deal with them in a more powerfull way then their lovers possibly could , and I will out-bid them all . Did their lovers proffer to them comfort ? I will bid more then they ; did their lovers proffer gaine ? I will bid more gaine ; did they proffer more honour and respect ? I will out-bid them in this too : I will bid more honour , and more respect , so as I will perswade their hearts that they shall come to enjoy more in me then possibly they could com●● enjoy in whatsoever their lovers could doe for them . And indeed then hath the Gospell the true , full , gracious worke upon the heart of a man or woman , when it yeelds to the profers of the Gospel , as finding that all that the world can bid is now out-bidden ; I have a better bargaine here in Christ then the world proffers to me . You know when one comes to offer so much for a commodity , and another out-bids him , he carries it away : so when the world , and lust , and sin proffers to the soul such and such contents , then comes God , and out-bids all , and so the bargaine is made up , God carries away the heart . Againe , further , I will allure , that is , I will come upon them even unawares , and as it were steale away their hearts , by a holy guile ; as S. Paul tells us , that he caught the Corinthians as it were by guile . I will secretly insinuate my selfe unto them , and I will draw their hearts in such a sweet way , in such a secret hidden way , that I will take them before they are aware . So it is with many a soule ; God takes it before it is aware , though it is true , that afterward the soul comes to understand things more clearely about Gods grace , but at the first , God hath taken the heart even almost before it thinks of him . Indeed the sinner sees himselfe , he is not where he was before , surely there hath been here something working upon my heart ; I finde it otherwise with me now then it hath beene , but how this comes to passe , I scarce understand for the present , but shall understand more ; like that expression we have in the 6. of Canticles , ver . 12. Ore ever I was aware , my soule made me as the chariot of Aminadib : That is , the chariots of a willing people , so the word Aminadib signifies . My heart was caught , and run amaine to God , and this was before ever I was aware , there came such wayes of Gods grace into my heart more then I thought of , and caught my soul , that my soul run mighty freely , swiftly after the Lord , and this is a blessed deceit , when the heart is so deceived , so allured , so enticed ; As sometimes it is with an Adulterer , he doth but give a glance of his adulterous eye , and catcheth the Adulteresse before she is aware ; it may be she never thought of any such thing ; but there is a glance of an uncleane eye that catcheth the heart secretly . Thus with Christ , hee sometimes gives such a glance of his eye upon the heart of a sinner , as takes the sinner before he is aware ; the sinner is brought in love with the wayes of God , and with the truths of God , even before he thinks of it . We are to know that the grace of God hath a subtilty in it , as well as the Serpent ; The Scripture , Pro. 1. 4. attributes a subtilty to Gods grace ; It is a blessed thing to be thus out-subtilled , ( as I may so speake ) for the grace of God to be too subtile for our sins ; As I remember Luther , when he was charged for Apostacy , he acknowledged it , ( saith he ) I confesse I am an Apostate , but how ? an Apostate from the devil , falling off from the devill , & returning unto God , such an Apostate I am ; So many a mans heart may be deceived , but if he can say , Blessed be God , I am deceived indeed , but so deceived that my sin is beguiled ; I am seduced , but it is out of the wayes of sin , into the wayes of God. Many are easily allured by temptations , they are presently taken by the devills allurements , but they are very subtile in objecting against all the allurements of Gods grace , but he is subtile enough to put off the allurements of sin and of the devill . Therefore behold , I will allure her , and bring her into the wildernesse . Here is some difficulty in this ; how comes this in ? Therefore I will allure her , and bring her into the wildernesse , and speake comfortably to her . How can this , to bring into the wildernesse , be between alluring , and speaking comfortably ? I told you , that this second part of the Chapter was altogether mercy : what can be meant then by bringing into the wilderness ? Some for the shewing that yet it is a way of grace that God intendeth in this phrase , I will bring them into the wildernesse , translate the words , After I have brought them into the wildernesse , Postquam per duxero eam , so T●emelius , he was a Jew , and therefore could well understand the Hebrew tongue , he tels us that Vau , that is translated and , is as much as postquam , after I have brought them into the wildernesse , and then the meaning is thus . After I have humbled them throughly , as I did their fore-fathers in the wildernesse , then will I speake comfortably unto them : God humbled their forefathers in Egypt , yet that was not enough , hee humbled them afterwards in the wildernesse , and then he brought them into Canaan ; many times God brings one affliction after another upon his own people to break their hearts , to humble them throughly , and at last he speaks comfortably to them . It hath been so with us , the Lord not many yeares since brought us into bondage , it might have humbled us , & broke our hearts before him ; but when wee began to bee delivered a little out of our bondage , the Lord brings us into the wildernesse , and follows us with afflictions to this day , that he might throughly break us , and yet we hope all this while , it is but making way unto Canaan . But in the second place , take it as you have it here , I will allure her and bring her into the wildernesse . Then wee may take the scope of it to be not the afflicting part of the wildernesse , but only the manifesting this unto Israel , that he would shew unto them great & wonderfull works of his power , & wisdome , and goodness , as he did unto their forefathers in the wildernesse . What ever your conditions shall be into which you shal be brought , yet you shall have me working in a glorious way for your good and comfort , as ever I did for your forefathers when they were in the wildernesse : and this exposition is rather strengthened from that we have ex Thargum Ionathae , I will work miracles , and great wonderfull , famous things for them , such as I did work in the desert : hath God wrought gloriously for his people hitherto in the wayes of his mercy ? if reconciled to him , they may expect the fame wonderfull works of God for their good even to the end of the world We may read the stories of Gods wonderfull power in deliverances of his people in their straits in the wildernesse , and make them to be our own , and pleade with God , that he would shew forth that old , that ancient power , and wisdom , and goodnesse of his , as he did unto his people formerly , this is the ground of that excellent prayer , that we have Esay 51. 9. 10. Awake , awake , put on strength O arme of the Lord , awake as in the ancient dayes , in the generations of old ; Art thou not it that hast cut Rahab , and wounded the Dragon ? Art thou not it that hath dryed the sea , the waters of the great sea ? Awake , awake , thou art he who hast done such great things formerly ; it is a great help to our Faith to consider what God hath done for the Church of old . But further , Poreus saith this expression is taken from the condition of a poor man that is drawne aside out of his way by a thief , a thief comes and entices him out of his way , and carries him into some desolate place , & when he hath carried him thither , then the manbegins to bethink himself , where he is , and sees himself in a sad condition , and knows not what in the world to do , and yet at that time there comes in supply , comfort , and help for him ; so ( saith God ) I will bring you into the wildernesse , that is , I will put you into the same condition , that such a poor man is put into , I will allure you , as the thief allures , I will make proffer to you of abundance of good , and by that I will draw you into such and such wayes , wherein you shall meet with very great straits , for a while , and you shall be put into an amazed condition , as not knowing what in the world to do , and when that is done , then I will come with the fulnesse of my grace , and speake comfortably to your hearts . Thus though God speakes of bringing into the wildernesse , yet still it is with an intention of shewing mercy there ; and is not this just to a very haire for all the world our condition ? have not the ways of God toward England for these two or three years been alluring wayes ? God hath made proffer unto us of a great deale of mercy , and raised the hopes of his people , and the Ministers of God have spoken encouraging words to his people , that surely the Lord intends great goodnesse to us , and because Gods wayes have been such towards us , as they have been , we have endeavoured ( God knowes ) to follow him in those ways of his , to do that , that for the present those present ways of his called for : and yet we are even brought into the wilderness now , even into a kind of desolate condition , that for the present we even are at a stand , & we see afflictions to be round about us , & the very beasts to be ready to come & teare us , and pull us in pieces , and yet we can say to the comfort of our hearts , Lord , if we be deceived , thou hast deceived us , for ( Lord ) thou knowest that whatsoever we have done , it was our duty to doe , and although we be brought into great straits , for the present , yet we repent not of what we have done , nor of what we have said , for thou hast allured us into this condition , thy gracious wayes of mercy towards us in the beginning of the Parliament , and so on hath allured us , and hath brought us into what we have done . Wee will not therefore say , what is now become of all our hopes ? but wee expect God even in this wildernesse , to speake comfortably unto us , let not men upbrayde us for what wee have done , we would doe as we have done , if it were to do again , for God hath brought us into these wayes , and if he hath allured us into the wildernesse , the next words shall be made good unto us , he will speake comfortably to us : if we be in no other then that wildernesse he hath allured us into , then we may expect fully that he will speake comfortably to us . Here is the difference betweene men bringing themselves into trouble ; or being brought by the Devils or worlds allurements , and by Gods. In the one we cannot expect comfort , but in the other we may confidently . Further , There is yet another interpretation that I think is most genuine , and full ; For the ground of that I shall say in this , we must know that from the beginning of this part of the Chapter to the end , God is expressing himselfe unto his people in a conjugall way ; that is , whereas his people had gone a whoring from him , yet he would receive them againe into a conjugall affection , and communion : all along God expresses himself thus , from the fourteenth verse to the end . Now this being laid for a ground ; In this expression of Gods bringing into the wildernesse , the Prophet alludes unto the custome of the Jewes , that they had in their marriages . Their custome that I reade of , was , that the Bride-groom used to take his Bride , and carry her out of the City , into the fields , and there they had their nup tiall songs , and delighted themselves in some place there , one with another , & afterward he brought her back againe , leaning upon him , into the City , to his Fathers house , and there they rejoyced together , and solemnized the further nuptials : now these fields are called the wildernesse , either because they might be some champion dry fields that were about the City ; or otherwise , let them be what they will be , yet because he would allude unto the mercy of God in bringing of his people out of Egypt , into Canaan , and would put them in minde of that mercy of his , therefore he gives these fields this title , calls them by this name , and this custome of the Jews seemes to have warrant from Scripture it self , Canticles 8. 5. Who is this that commeth up from the wildernesse , leaning upon her beloved ? That was the way of marriage , they came out of the fields , leaning upon their beloved , and so were brought unto the Bridgegroomes Fathers house : So Christ brings his Spouse through this world , which is as the wildernesse , and Christ is here solemnizing his espousals , and hath his nuptiall songs in this world ; and the Church leanes upon Christ , all the while she is in the world , but Christ is carring her to his Fathers house , and ere long we shal be with him there , solemnizing the marriage of the Lambe in a more glorious way : This expression goes on clearly thus , I will allure her , and bring her into the wildernesse ; As the Bridegroome speakes sweet and comfortable words to his Bride , and carries her abroad into the fields , and there solemnizes the nuptials , and so comes back againe , having his Spouse leaning upon him , and bringing her to his Fathers house ; so I will deale with you in the fulnesse of my grace . I will performe all the nuptiall rites with you . I will be married againe unto you , and looke what the most solemnity in your City of Jerusalem , or any of your Cities , there is in any nuptials , I will make as great a solemnity in the nuptials betweene you and me : It is true , when a marriage is such as people are loath to make it known , then there is no such solemnity , but when it is a great marriage indeed , and such as marry together with their friends would glory in it , then there is the more full solemnity ; so saith God , I will not be ashamed to take you againe , but I will take you openly ; I wil have the solemnity of my marriage with you as publickly as may be , I will carry you abroad into the fields ; and look what rights soever there are in the most solemne marriages amongst you , those rights I will performe unto you , that it may be a most glorious marriage solemnity between you and me again : thus I will bring into the wildernesse , and speake comfortably unto them . And speake comfortably to her . These words that are translated here , speake comfortably , in the Hebrew are , loquar super cor , or ad corejus , I will speake to her heart , I will speak to her , either so as to prevaile with her heart , or speake to her so as to do her good at the very heart : Many Scriptures may be brought to shew , that speaking kindly , friendly , or comfortably , the Hebrews expresse by speaking to the heart ; I will give you two or three instances , Genesis 34. 3. Shechem spake kindly to the Damosell , the words are in the Hebrew , Shechem spake to the heart of the Damosell ; So Ruth 2. 13. Thou hast comforted me , for that thou hast spoken friendly to thy handmaid ; thou hast spoken to the very heart of thy handmaid ; there are two more remarkable places for this , one is Esay 40. 2. Speak comfortably to Jerusalem , the words are , speak to the heart of Jerusalem ; What should be spoke to the heart of Jerusalem ? Cry unto her , her warefare is accomplished , her iniquity is pardoned ; These are the comfortable words that God required should be spoke to the heart of Jerusalem : O that God would speak thus to England ! this would do good at the very heart , if God would speake thus from heaven , Her iniquity is pardoned , and her warefare is accomplished . But yet a place that is more suitable unto this expression in the text , it is Iudges 19. 3. There you have the story of a Levite , whose wife having played the harlot , yet he was willing to be reconciled to her , & the text saith , that he went & spake friendly to her ; Now the words are in the Hebrew , Hee went and spake to her heart ; And indeed it is a word to the heart of an adulterous spouse , if her heart be humbled , when she knows that her husband will be willing notwithstanding her playing the harlot to be reconciled to her , this was the condition of Israel , who had gone a whoring from God , yet when God promises a renewall of the marriage rites he saith he will speake to her heart ; from whence we might observe this note . That an Apostatizing people , or an Apostate soul , had need have words of comfort spoke to their hearts , or else there can be little ease to their terrified consciences . We read of Spira that famous Apostate , he had words of comfort enough spoke to his eare , but they did him little good , God did not come in and speak to his heart , therefore his conscience could not be quieted , the throbs of it could not be eased : How many lie under the troubles of an accusing conscience , and have the throbs and bitings of a guilty spirit , because they have been back-sliders from the truth ; and though they come to Sermons , one after another , & hear the Covenant of grace opened to them in the fulnesse of it , & the riches of Gods goodnesse set before them in the beauty of it , yet they goe away without comfort , why the words come to the eare , God all this time speaks not to the heart ; sometimes it pleases God to take but the hint of a truth , and dart it upon the heart of a troubled sinner , that he feeleth it at the heart , and sayes , Well , this day God hath spoken to my heart , so he goes away rejoycing , eased , comforted , pacified ; when as perhaps such an one had heard a hundred Sermons before , wherein there were blessed and glorious truths presented to him , and it did no good untill Gods time ; and when the time of Gods love is come , some little hint of a piece of a truth God darteth to the hearts and that doth the thing . God shews hereby that it is not in the word of man to comfort an afflicted conscience . Hence an expression Luther hath in his Comment upon Genesis , It is far harder to comfort an afflicted conscience , then to raise the dead ; you think it is nothing to Apostatize from the Lord , you thinke it is easie to receive comfort , you will find it is not so easie , you will find it as easie to raise the dead as to comfort your afflicted consciences . But you told us before , how rich the grace of God was , that God tooke advantage from the greatnesse of our sins , to shew the riches and greatness of his mercy : grant it , let the grace of God be never so rich , but till this grace be applyed to the heart , till God be pleased to speak himself to the heart of a sinner , it will not do . I remember a story of one who had made profession of Religion , and afterwards Apostatised and made little of it , when his acquaintance told him that those things he now did he would smart for one day , he thought because he had some knowledg in the Gospel , that it was but to believe in Jesus Christ , Jesus Christ came to pardon sinners , &c. when he came upon his sick bed , he was in great torment of conscience , and grievous vexation , and cryed out bitterly of his Apostacy , there came some of his acquaintance to him , and spake words of comfort , and tells him that Christ came to save sinners , and he must trust in Gods mercy , &c. At length he begins to close with this , and to apply this to himself , and to have a little ease , upon which his companions began to be hardned in their ways , because they saw after so ill a life it was so easie a matter to have comfort ; but not long before he dyed , he brake out roaring , in a most miserable anguish , O! ( saith hee ) I have prepared a plaister , but it will not sticke , it will not sticke : wee shall find though the grace of God be rich , and the salve be a soveraign unlesse God be pleased to make it stick by speaking to our hearts , nothing can be done . From hence further , learn this note . As when God speaks comfortably to his people , he speaks to their hearts : so Gods Ministers , when they come to speak in Gods name , should labour to speak so , as to do what they can to speak to hearts . It is true indeed , it is impossible that any man of himselfe can speake to the heart of another , but yet he may endeavour , and aime that way , there is a kind of speaking that God doth assist , so as to bring it to the heart of his people . What speaking is that ? you will say . That that cometh from the heart , will most likely go to the heart , though I know God can take that which comes but from the lips , and carry it to the heart when he pleases , yet ordinarily that that comes from the heart , goes to the heart , therefore Ministers when they come to speak the great things of the Gospel , they should not seeke so much for brave words , and enticing ways of mans wisdome , but let them get their own hearts warmed with that grace of the Gospel , and then they are most like to speak to the hearts of their Auditors . It is a good note that I have met with from Ribera , let Ministers remit ( saith he ) of their care of fine curious words , of brave neate phrases , and cadencies of their sentences , but let them bend their studies to manifest humility , and mortification , and to shew love to the soules of people ; otherwise , though they speake with the tongues of men and Angels , they shall become but like the sounding brasse , and the tinckling cymball : this is an expression even of a Jesuite , it were then a great shame that Gods Ministers should not labour to speak so , as that they may speak to the hearts of people : you must be desirous of such kind of preaching as you find speaks to your hearts , not that that comes meerly to your eares : how many men love to have the word jingle in their ears , and in the mean time their hearts go away , and not one word spoke to them ? but when you finde a Ministry speake to your hearts , close with it , bless God for it , and count it a sadd day when you goe from a Sermon , and there is not one word spoke to your hearts in that Sermon . From the connection of these two , I will bring them into the wildernesse , & speak unto their hearts : if we should take the wildernesse for bringing into affliction ( because there are so many interpreters that are very godly men , & learned men , go that way ) I dare not wholy reject it , but that there may be some intention that way . Hence the first note is , Afflictions make way for Gods word to the hearts of sinners ; there are many obstructions at the hearts of men while they are in prosperity , but when afflictions come , God by them opens those obstructions , and so gets his word to their hearts ; afflictions cannot convert the heart , but they can take away some obstructions that did hinder the word from coming to the heart . Many of you have heard thousands of Sermons , and scarce know of any one that hath come to your hearts , but when God casts you upon your sicke beds , and you apprehend death , then you feele the same truthes , that you were not sensible of before , they lie upon your hearts , the threatning word of God , that went but to the ear before , now it is got to the heart , now it terrifies , now you cry out of your sins , and rellish the sweet promises of the Gospel that afflictions make way for . I remember an expression that I have read of Bernard , he had once to a brother of his , who was a Souldier , but riotous and prophane , Bernard gives him many good instructions , wholsome admonitions , and counsels , his brother seemed to slight them , he made nothing of them , Bernard comes to him , and puts his hand to his side ; one day ( saith he ) God will make way to this heart of yours , by some speare , or launce , he meant God would wound him in the Wars , and so hee would open a way to his heart , and then his admonitions should get to his heart , and as he said , so it fell out ; for going into the Wars , he was wounded , and then he remembers his brothers admonitions , they got to , and lay upon his heart to purpose . It God should let the enemy in upon us , their swords or bullets may make way to our hearts , that so Gods word may come to have entrance there , the Lord rather pierce our hearts by his spirit , then that way to our hearts should be made thus . Secondly , when we are brought to great affliction , that is the time for Gods mercies . This should make us not to be so afraid of afflictions , how afraid are we ? how do we hang back when we see afflictions coming ? why art thou so loth , O thou Christian , to come to affliction ! the time of affliction is the time for God to speake to the heart of a sinner ; many sinners may say that their condition hath been like Jacobs , he never had a more sweete vision of God , then when he lay abroad in the fields , with no other pillow under his head then a stone , it may be God will take away all your outward comforts , and when they are all gone , then may be Gods time to speake comfortably to your heart . Thirdly , the words of mercy , O how sweet are they , when they come to the heart after an affliction ! Psam 141. 6. Thy Judges shall be overthrown in strong places , they shall he are my words , for they are sweet . If the words be taken , for bringing into the wildernesse , that is , for Gods wonderfull workings for the good of his people , then the note is , When God works great and wonderfull things amongst a people , then God speaks to the heart of that people : then surely God hath spoken to our hearts , for he hath done great and wonderfull things amongst us ; he did not more wonderfull things amongst his people in the wildernesse , then he hath done omongst us here in England . But from that meaning , of bringing into the wildernesse , as the custome of marriage , of solemnizing of nuptials , then the note is this , When God is reconciled once to a people , they may expect full manifestations of his love unto them , one manifestation after another , as alluring , and carrying abroad into fields , and nuptiall songs , all kind of manifestations of Gods love : A people , a soule that was never 〈◊〉 sinfull before , and is new reconciled , may expect it . Let all back-fliders then , whom God is about to draw again to himself , listen and hear what God saith unto their hearts ; if they come in and repent let them know that God is willing to manifest all expressions of love and goodnesse to them . Againe , there is yet one note more from this expression of bringing into the wildernesse , and speaking to the heart ; yet because it is the most improbable , I will onely but mention it to you , there may be yet some good use made of it , and therefore I will set it before you ; I finde divers going that way , it is this ( say they ) by bringing into the wildernesse , God meanes that he would take them off from their engagements in their own Country , carrying them to a strange place , and so take them off from their houses . lands , shops , estates , friends , acquaintance , from the pomp , the glory , and all the clutter of the world , that they enjoyed , and were snared by in their owne Countrey , and so he will carry them aside into desolate places , and there he will instruct them , when he hath got them as it were alone ; That hath been Gods way in making himself known unto his people , whom hee hath had a love unto , to draw them aside from the clutter of the world , from their engagements , and there to speak to their hearts . We have a famous place for that , Mar. 8. 23. the poor blind man , whose eyes Christ intended to open , the Text saith , Christ took e him by the hand , and carryed him out of the City , and there fell a working upon him , and opened his eyes ; he carryed him from the clutter of people , from his friends and acquaintance , and there opens his eyes . While we are in the midst of engagements here in our owne land , while we have our estates , and all well about us , wee are scarce fit to hearken what God hath to say to us : Many of Gods people have found it by experience , that whereas there were many truths of God , that they had some incklings 〈◊〉 while they were here , and read books about them , and heard much of them , yet they could not be convinced of them , and their consciences tell them , while they were here they did not go against the light of their consciences , but how ever it came to passe , convinced they were not ; but when God took them aside from their engagements , and from the pomp and glory of their land , and carryed them into the wildernesse , or into some remote places , where the glory of their own Countrey did not so glister before their eyes , they then could see into truths , that they never saw before ; those things that could not get into their hearts before , now when God drew them aside got in ; and it is not now their conceit , but they knovv certainly , that they do understand much of Gods minde , that they did not understand before ; vvhen God hath taken them aside , then God hath opened their eyes . Vers . 15. I will give her her vineyards from thence . Vinatores , so some translate the vvord , her vine-dressers , and indeed the Heb. vvord that is for vine-dressers , & vines , or vine yards , is the very same letters , only the puncta are different , but vve vvill read it as it is here , from thence ; illinc , ibi , either from that time that they are in the vvildernesse , or from that condition of their affliction in the wildernesse , wherein I will speak comfortably to her , thence I will give her her vineyards ; God threatned to destroy her vineyards , now God saith , he will give vineyards . Observe , God can as easily restore , as he can destroy : It is an easly thing for men to make havock , to do mischief , but it is not so easy a thing for them to restore all again ; they can easily spoile a Country , but they cannot so easily raise a Country again . Psal . 52. 1. Why beastest thou thy selfe in mischiefe , O mighty man ? There is no reason that a man should boast that he can do mischiefe ; we have some who make their boasts in nothing but this , that they can go up and down the Country , and plunder , spoile , and make havock , but can they make all up againe , that they undo ? Plut arch tells us of one commending the power and valour of Philip , for that he had utterly destroyed Olynthus , a City of Tracia ; a Lacedemonian standing by answered , but he cannot build such a City . A foole may breake a glasse , and all the wise men in the Countrey are not able to make it up againe . Men may do a great deale of hurt and mischiefe , but it is not their lives , nor the lives of a thousand such as they are , can make up againe what hurt is done by them : But it is Gods property , he can destroy vineyards , and he can restore them againe ; I will give them their vineyards againe , when I am reconciled to them : Suppose there be the greatest Pacification that can be , yet all this while , who shall make up the hurt is done ? if there be reconciliation with God , he will make up all our hurts again . Secondly , I will give her her vineyards . It is a note of Calvin , God saith not , I will give them their corne , that is for necessity , but I will give them their vineyards , that is for delight : the note is , When God is reconciled to a people , hee will not onely give them substance , but abundance , even for delight , as well as for necessity . Thirdly , When God is reconciled to a p●●ple , he comes with present reall evidences of his love , he reserveth indeed abundance of mercy afterwards , but he is never reconciled , but he comes presently with some reall evidences and demonstrations of love ; God saith not onely , I will speake comfortably to them , and there is an end , and they shall expect mercy along time after ; No , but I will speake comfortably to her , & I will give her her vineyards againe : I will give unto them reall manifestations of my love ; so it should be with us , when we come in to God , to be reconciled to him , we should come in with reall expressions of our repentance , of our respects unto God. Here is a deceit , ( I beseech you confider of it ) many when they lye upon their sick beds , will promise what they will doe for God , if God restore them , but they doe nothing for the present , and so they are deceived . When you therefore finde your hearts wrought upon , broken , and melting , take heed of this deceit , doe not satisfie your selves in promising what you will doe for God , if you be in such a condition , and such a condition , but doe something presently , set upon the work presently , and so engage your hearts to God ; if once you be engaged by doing something , the worke will goe on : It is a great matter when we can engage the heart of a man to God in any businesse , suppose a man promise to doe this or that , yet if all this while he have done nothing , he lookes not upon himselfe so really engaged , as when something is done , he therefore sooner flies off again ; but if together with his promise he be brought to do , hee will not so readily flye off ; God doth so with you , he together with his promise , gives some real evidences of his love . Againe , After God speakes to the heart , and then restores vineyards , then they are blessings , then they are sweet indeed , for then God restores them as fruits of reconciliation with him ; Many a poor afflicted soul know what belongs to this comfortable note : I thought my sinfulnesse forfeited all my comforts , all mercies , and God indeed tooke away this , and the other comfort from me , but it pleased God to come in graciously upon my heart , and to speake to my heart , and in some measure to breake it , and to humble it before him , so that I hope peace is made up , and notwithstanding those great offences of mine , he hath now restored mercies ; he took away a childe , but he hath given another , a be●●e● ; he hath took away one mercy , & he hath given a better ; & this I can ( though with holdness , yet with humility ) say it is as a fruit of my reconciliation with my God ; O how sweetly may such a one enjoy that mercy from God! If after the meltings of thy heart after God , he then comes in with mercies to thee , thou mayest take them , as tokens of love to thee ; now thy house is a comfortable blessing to thee , & thy yoake-fellow , & thy children about thee ; O how comfortable blessings are they ! yea , the meat on thy table , is sweet with a double sweetness , when thou canst looke upon all , as the fruit of Gods reconciliation with thee ; As the Christians Acts 2. 46. 47. when they once believed in Christ , they did eate their bread with gladnesse & singlenesse of heart , praising God. We may enjoy all our common mercies in another manner then other men can they will be blessings doubled , yea a hundred fold encreased ; I will speake to her heart , and then , I will give her her vineyards . Perhaps God hath given thee an estate in the world , more then thy neighbors , more then thy brother ; But hath God spoke to thy heart ? Are Gods blessings upon thee as a fruit of Gods speaking to thy heart , in away of reconciliation with thee ? otherwise it is but a flat dry comfort , to have an estate , and not to feele God speaking to our hearts . I will restore unto you your vineyards from thence : From whence ? From the wildernesse . There the Note is , God can bring vineyards out of wildernesses . Let us not be afraid , onely let us make up our peace with God , and then though we be in a wilderness , God can from thence bring us vineyards . Our brethren have found vineyards in the wilderness , and many of Gods people in the midst of their straits have found abundance of mercy . Further , From the wildernesse ; they shall have more love , mercy working more strongly for them now it seems , then they had before ; They had vineyards before , but they had none in the wildernesse . Now God will dravv mercies out of those things that were unlikely , he will bring forth good unto them , out of things that seemed to goe quite contrary to them : the Lord hath done so for us , out of those things that seemed to goe quite contrary to us , God hath brought much good to us , as if hee had made vineyards to spring out of a wildernesse . But the close of all is . Those mercies that come to us out of great difficulties , and seeme to be raised out of contraries , are the sweet mercies indeed , those we are to rejoyce in ; and therefore it followes , and they shall sing . Deut. 32. 13. God made them to suck honey out of the rock , and oyle out of the flinty rock ; When did God doe so ? where did you ever reade , that God did cause his people to suck honey out of the rock , or oyle out of the flinty rock ; wee reade indeed , that the rock was smote , and the water did gusb out of it , but when did we reade that ever oyle or honey came out of the rock ? there was never any such thing that we reade of ; but the meaning thereof is , because they being in necessity , God brought forth water , yet being brought out of the rock by such a mighty hand of God , it was oyle , it was honey to them , it was as good as if God had given them oyle and honey ; Why ? because it came out of so much difficulty : So all the mercies that God gives to his people , when he brings them out of difficulties and straits , they are sweet and glorious mercies . Let us be patient a while , though we seeme to be in the wilderness , and we see nothing to fetch out water from , but onely rocks , stones , and difficulties , yet God at length will bring mercies out of those difficulties , and they will be honey mercies to us , then we shall sing and praise the name of our God with joyfull hearts . The Thirteenth Lecture . HOSEA 2. 15. And the valley of Achor for a doore of hope , &c. THe words are an excellent expression of mercy to Israel ; For the opening of which these three things are to be enquired into . 1. What this valley of Achor was . 2. The reason of the name . 3. Why this is said to be a doore of hope . For the first , Achor was a very pleasant , delightfull , fruitfull rich valley , and lay neer Jericho ; The first place that Israel came into , in the entrance upon , and taking possession of the land of Canaan , Esay , 65. 10. And Sharon shall be a fold of flocks , and the valley of Achor a place for the herds to lye down in , for my people that have sought me . First it is joyned with Sharon , Can. 2. 1. I am the rose of Sharon , that was a sweet pleasant place . Secondly , It is said to be a place for the herds to lye downe in ; a fat pasture that they shall even tumble in . And thirdly , It is promised as a bles●●● 〈…〉 the Lord. The reason of the name Achor . That hystory we have Iosh . 7. sheweth Achan , who 1 Chron. 3. 7. is called Achar , having taken the accursed thing , God left the Campe , and Israel fell before the men of Ai , which was the first battell that ever they fought for the possession of Canaan , upon that their hearts were exceedingly troubled , as if the whole worke had been at an end ; so fraile is mans nature , so soone discouraged when it meets with opposition , notwithstanding all the experiences of Gods mighty power going along with them , so lately bringing them over Jordan so wonderfully , and given them Jericho so miraculously , yet now at the losse of 36. men , their hearts begin even to faile , Ioshua falls with his face upon the earth ; and Josephus in his hystory of the Jewish Antiquities , sets down Ioshuahs prayer at large , these are some expressions , Beyond all expectation , having received an overthrow , being terrified by this accident , and suspitious of thy promises to Moses , we both abstaine from war , and after so many enterprises , we cannot hope for any successfull proceedings , by thy mercy relieve our present sorrow , and take from us the thought of despaire , wherein we are too farre plunged . Now God comes to him and askes him , Why he lay upon his face , and bad him get him up , for Israel had sinned in the accursed thing ; upon search made , Achan was found out , whereupon Joshua tells him , that he had troubled the Hoast of Israel , and God would trouble him ; upon which they stoned him , and from thence it was called the valley of Achor , vers . 26. that is , Va●●is tribulation is , the valley of trouble . The third thing is the principall , why this valley is called a doore of hope . Herein two things , First , how it was a doore of hope to Israel then , when they first came into Canaan . Secondly , how it is promised to be a doore of hope to repenting Israel in after-times . For the first , It was a doore of hope to them in two respects . First , because it was the first place wherein they tooke the possession of Canaan , when they began to have outward means of substance , to eate of the corne of the land , all the while they were in the wilderness although God provided wonderfully for them , by sending them Manna from Heaven , yet because they had no way of substance by ordinary means , they always feared lest they should want upon any strait they were brought into , their hearts began to sinke . Now in this valley God gives them outward means , & this raises hope in them , that their danger was over , and that they should do well enough . This is our nature when ordinary means fayle , our hearts fayle , yea though in regard of Gods extraordinary workings , we have never so many gracious encouragements , and when God grants means againe , then we hope . Secondly , God made their great trouble there a means of much good unto them , for by that they were brought to purge their Campe , they learned to feare the Lord , and were prepared more then before , for so great a mercy as the further possession of that good land . The Septuagint instead of those words a doore of hope , have these , to open their understanding for there indeed they learned the dreadfulnesse of God , who for one mans sin was so sorely displeased ; there they understood to purpose , that the God that was amongst them , was a holy God , and that he would have them to be a holy people . But how should this valley of Achor be a doone of hope to Israel in after times ? First , the Jews think that Israel shall return into their own country againe , yea and the same way , they shall come again into Canaan by that valley which shall be a door of hope to them . Secondly , but rather by way of Analogy , as God turned this valley of trouble to much good unto them , so he would turn all the sore afflictions of Israel in after dayes to their great advantage , grievous afflictions should make way for glorious mercies . Thirdly , But especially thus , in this expression , God followes the Allegory of marriage ; now it was the custome of the Jewes in their marriages , that the Husband gave his Spouse according to his quality , as a dowry , some peece of ground , rich as he was able , and this he gave as a pledge of his love to her , to assure her that whatsoever was his , she should have the benefit of it ; so saith the Lord , although you have gone a whoring from me , and may justly expect that I should for ever reject you , yet I will marry you to my selfe , and I will fully perform all marriage rights for the expression of my love towards you to the uttermost , you shall know that you are marryed to a Husband who is rich , I will give you a rich and plentifull dovvry , and this but as a token and pledg of further love , mercy , riches , that you shall enjoy by me , it shall be that valley of Achor , that rich , delightfull , fruitfull valley . By this he means he would bestow some speciall choise mercy upon them , at his first taking them into his favour again , and that should be a pledg of , and making way to much more mercy , that he intended for them a doore of hope to let in greater things , as the first fruits of all those glorious things that he had treasured up for them . From this valley of Achor , as it concerned Israel before . First , Sometimes when God gives men their hearts desires , when they think themselves happy , as if all trouble were past , then he comes in upon them with great and sore afflictions . Secondly , although God hath been humbling mens hearts with sore and long afflictions , yet just before he bestows great mercies , he afflicts againe , to humble and break their hearts yet more . Thirdly , sin will make the pleasantest place in the world , a place of trouble . Fourthly , the afflictions of the Saints do not only go before mercies , but are doors of hope to let in to mercies , means to further the way for mercies . God commands light to shine not only after darknesse , but out of darkness . Josephs prison , Davids persecution , Daniels den , made way for glorious mercy God had in store for them ; that which once The mistocles said to his children and friends , the Saints may much more say to theirs , I had beene undone , if I had not been undone ; had it not been for such a grieyous affliction , I had never come to the enjoyment of such a mercy . Hence we must learn not only to be patient in tribulation , but joyfull . But the especiall thing intended in this expression is this : When God is reconciled to his people , then present mercies are doors of hope to let in future mercies ; the Saints may look upon all mercies received as in-lets to further mercies to be received . Every mercy a door to another mercy , and all mercies here put together , are a door to eternall mercy . When Rachel had a sonne she called his name Joseph , Gen. 30. 24. saying , The Lord shall add to me another sonn . Every mercy the Saints have may well be called Ioseph , it brings assurance of mercy to be added , this is the high priviledge of the Saints : every mercy that a wicked man hath , he may look upon as his utmost , as his all , he may write a ne plus ultra upon it ; one misery , one judgment upon a wicked man makes way toanother , but not one mercy : howsoever God in his bounty may lengthen out mercies to him , yet it is more then he can expect , he rather hath cause to wonder he hath so much , then expect more , but God ever draws out his loving kindnesse to his Saints . Psal . 36. 10. Draw out thy loving kindnesse unto them that know thee , and thy righteousnesse to the upright in heart . First , the good that others have from God is bounty , patience , but that which the Saints have is loving kindnesse . Secondly , that which others have is no ways tied to them by promise , but that which the Saints have they have by promise . it is righteousness , Ps . 23. Thou makest me lye down in green pasture , thou anointest my head with fresh oyle , my cup runneth over . Here is a great deal , but is here all ? no , ver . 6. surely mercy & goodnesse shall follow me all the dayes of my life . That we read of David , 2 Sam. 5. 12. is very observable , from Gods prospering him in his present way , he draws an argment to confirm him in the assurance for the future , that his Kingdome was established to him , why ? did not Saul prosper at the beginning of his raign as well as David ? & yet it was no evidence of his establishment ; but David could see Gods mercy coming to him after another manner then Saul could , all mercies the Saints have come from the covenant in which there is a rich treasure of mercies , a blessed connexion of the mercies . The covenant between David & Ionathan was , 1 Sam. 20. 15. That loving kindnes must not be cut off from the house of Ionathan . The covenant between God and the Saints is , that loving kindnesse shall never be cut off from them , but the links of mercies shall be fastned one to another , so as they shall reach eternity . Mercies to the Saints come from love , & amor nescit nimium , love knows no such thing as excesse . The Saints understanding this mistery in the way of Gods grace towards them hence they follow God in seeking his face then , especially when he is most in the way of mercy ; whereas the men of the world who know not this , seldome seek after mercy , but in times of affliction , when God is in a way of justice and wrath , this is their folly . Infinite reason there is ; O ye Saints of the Lord , that one duty should for ever make way for another , seeing on mercy makes way for another : here lyes a great difference between doing duties from the strength of common grace , and from sanctifying grace : in the one the spirit by doing some things is wearied and thinkes now it may rest , but in the other , the very doing still encreaseth strength , and puts the heart upon doing more . But may not security promise continuance of mercy ? Yes , but if so , then when affliction comes , the heart will sinke for feares of continuance in misery , as well as before it hoped for continuance of mercy . When then may we assure our selves that our mercies are doores of hope to further mercies . First , When they are created mercies wrought by a more imediate hand of God , generation may be imperfect , but creation never ; omne creatum est perfectum , Esay , 26. 12. Lord thou wilt ordaine peace for us , What is the argument ? for thou hast wrought all our workes in us . Secondly , When they are spirituall mercies , Ezek. 39. 29. Neither will I hide my face any more from them , VVhat is the argument ? For I have powred forth my spirit upon the house of Israel ; but is not this your private opinion that this argument will hold ? No , the words following are , Thus saith the Lord God. Thirdly , When mercies carry us to the God of mercy , and are turned duties , as if we can turne our duties into mercies , that is , account every duty a mercy , that is a good argument that we shall hold out in duty , when wee can turne mercies into duties , that is , make every mercy an engagement to duty , that is a good argument that mercy will hold out . But are there not interruptions many times in the wayes of Gods mercy to his own people ? VVe sometimes think there is an interruption , when if we knew all we should see a blessed concatenation , but it must be granted that there may sometimes be some kinde of enterruption in such a particular . After Israels returne from captivity and beginning to build the temple , there were such enterruptions as it was seventy years before it was finished : but though there may be enterruptions for a time , yet not a quite breaking off , there is yet a strength in the grace of the covenant that carries the work on and perfects it at last ; by ceasing in one way of mercy , God prepares for another ; the very ceasing in such a way may be a mercy ; we our selves at this day are a sad spectacle of the interruption of the wayes of Gods mercies towards a nation . Mercy that ere while shined in her beauty upon us , hath now seemed in a great measure to have withdrawn the beames of her glory ; our doore of hope that we thought to be so wide open , seems almost shut against us . I dare not say that it is shut , lest I should wrong the present grace of God yet continuing to us . But First , Sinne , yea our many and fearfull sins , lyes at this our door , Gen. 4. 7. Secondly , And now a crowd of difficulties seeme even to stop up the door , they come thronging still to it , as if they would certainly stop it up against us . Thirdly , As the Prophet Ezek. 11. 1. 2. saw at the door of the gate five and twenty men , amongst whom there were some chiefe ones , who devised mischiefe and gave wicked councell in the city , so may we at this day , see many even of the chiefe ones , devising mischiefe , and giving wicked counsel , by which they labour to shut , yea to lock , and bolt up this our doore of hope . Fourthly , VVe hoped that this our door of hope would have been like the doors that entred into the oracle , of which we read 1 Kings 6. 31. made of the olive tree , yea the side-posts and lintels were of olive tree , & carvings of palm trees & cherubims , all overlaid with gold , but now our door seems to be of Iron , the way to our help and mercy must be through the Iron gate , we must get to it by suftering hard things . 5. Our door that was wide , whereat mercy began to come flowing in apace freely , now it seemes to be straitened , it is now the strait gate , we must be content to strip our selves of a great part of our estates , of many of our outward comforts , yea we must venture them all , and well if possibly at length we may crowd in . 6. Yea , our door-posts are like the Israelites in Egypt , besprinkled with blood , the keeping up of our meanes of mercy hath cost much blood , and may cost more . 7. Now when we knock , when we would step in the dogs bark at us , and are ready to flye upon us , yea it may be the servants , yea some of our brethren are discontented at us , frowne upon us , speake against us . 8. Alas we have rejected the right key that should have opened this our door , no marvaile then though we stand blundring at it , and it opens not unto us . VVhat is that right key that would have opened it before this time , had we made use of it ? That key of David that we reade of , Apoc. 3. 7. That openeth and no man shutteth . This key the Church of Philadelphia had , therefore it followes , ver . 8. I have set before thee an open doore , that no man can shut . But what is this key of David ? It is the ruling power of Jesus Christ in his Church ; David in his government was a speciall type of Christ , the first godly King over his people that ever was : Government is emblematically set forth by a key , Esay , 22. 22 , God promised Eliakim to commit the government to him by that expression , The key of the house of David will I lay upon his shoulder , Esay , 9. 6 , 7. The government is said to be upon Christs shoulder , and he sits upon the throne of David ; that is observable that to Eliakim there was promised , but the key of the house of David ; but to Christ the key of David himselfe ; the one was to governe but as a steward , the government of the other was to be Princely . If we had been the Church of Philadelphia , united in brotherly love , and had had this key of David amongst us , we might before this time had had a door set open amongst us , that no man could have shut against us ; but woe unto us , how many amongst us say of Christ , We will not have this man to rule over us ? Mr. Brightman more then thirty years since paralelld this Church of Philadelphia with the Church of Scotland , he made it in a typical way to set forth the wayes of God towards that Church in after times ; and indeed they have been very like one another divers wayes , and God ways towards the one hath been the same with his ways towards the other in many things . 1. They are both Philadelphians , united so in a brotherly covenant , as no Churches in any kingdome more . 2. It was said of Philadelphia , it had but a little strength , and yet it kept Gods word . VVhat Churches in any Nation have beene more contemptible , then those in Scotland ? They have beene accounted a poore beggerly people , despised of all , and yet God hath enabled them to doe great things . 3. God hath caused their enemies to come and bow before them , and to know that he hath loved them , even those who said they were lews and were not , that they were the onely Church , when indeed they were the Synagogue of Satan ; & they have rejected false government , and have received much of the government of Christ , the key of David is more received among them then in any kingdome in the world ; no marvaile then though their doore be so opened that none could shut it , thorow Gods mercy ; our Houses of Parliament have cast away the false key , ( The Lord deliver them and us ) for ever medling with it any more whatsoever come of us . They have further professed their desires to enquire after the true key . This door of hope we hope will open to us in due time , so as none shall shut it . 9. We have lost many opportunities for the opening this door , never had a people fairer opportunities for mercy then we have had , we cannot looke back upon them without trembling hearts , we may see cause to lament the losse of them with teares of blood , even this hath cost much , and is yet like to cost more blood . 10. Yea woe unto us , out father comes forth and seemes to be angry with us , and bids shut the doore against us , yea hee shuts us out himselfe ; is not that complaint of the Churches , Psal . 80 , 4. truly ours , O Lord of Hoasts how long wilt thou be angry with the prayer of thy people ? If God be angry with out knocking , what shall we doe ? 11. And well may God bid shut the doore against us , for we have shut it upon our selves : This our doore of hope hath a spring lock , it is easily shut too , but it cannot so easily be opened againe : we have stood wrangling and strugling one with another , and have clapt to the doore upon our selves before we were aware . That Scripture Hos . 7. 1 , is as truly ours , as ever it was Israels , When I would have healed Israel , then the iniquity of Ephraim was discovered , and the wickednesse of Samariah . VVhen the Lord would have healed England , then the iniquity thereof hath been discovered more then ever . There is the vilest spirit of malignity , against godlinesse , against the Saints , against the way of Christ in his Ordinances , that ever was upon the face of the earth . Now men care not though they ruin themselves , though they bring themselves and posterity to be bondslaves , so they may but have their wills upon those that are godly to suppresse them . The controversie now is almost grown to that height , that the kingdome divides it selfe into those who have some shew of Religion , and the haters of it . Those times complained of in Micah are even ours , Chap. 7. 5. Trust ye not in a friend , put no confidence in a guide , keepe the doores of thy mouth from her that lyeth in thy bosome ; Yea , it is almost come to that in the fourth verse , The best of them is a bryar , the most upright is sharper then a thorny hedg . There is much frowardnesse , much perversnesse even in the best , many contentions and grievous breaches even amongst them ; they cannot endure you should be jealous of them , and they give cause of jealousie daily . This generation for a great part of it , shew themselves to have such sullied , such puttid spirits , so defiled with superstitious vanities , so imbittered with a spirit of malignity , that we may feare God hath no pleasure in the generality of it : yea Moses and Aaron have sinned , the best have so sullied themselves with Antichristian pollutions , that just it were with God that this whole generation should be first taken away , and that the young generation that is comming on , who have not so defiled themselves , should have this doore that lets into Canaan opened to them , that they onely should goe into , and possesse that good land , but our carcasses should fall in the wildernesse . You who are godly young ones , whose hearts began betimes to yerne after Jesus Christ , know the heart of Jesus Christ yernes after you : and although some of you may fall in fighting for your brethren , & so be received to heaven , yet you are of that generation God will open this door of mercy unto , you shal go in & possesse Canaan , all this valley of Achor is but a door of hope to you ; continue you on in your sincerity , God will reveale himselfe more fully to you then he hath done to us , if we be cut off before those treasures of mercy that God has ready for his people be opened , we must accept of the punishment of our iniquity , and even beare this indignation of the Lord because wee have sinned against him . 12. Yea the Lord hath strucke us with blindnesse at the doore , we grope up and down and we cannot finde it , as Gen , 19. 11. Never were a people at a greater losse , in a greater confusion then now we are ; every man runs his owne way , wee know not what to doe , nay the truth is , we know not what we doe . 13. Yea many because they have found some difficulties at the right door , they have gone away from it , and have sought back doors to help themselves by , even base , false , shifting , treacherous ways , seeking to comply for their own private ends , as if their skins must needs be saved , whatsoever becomes of the publique . 14. This is yet a further misery , that we are groping up and downe at the doore , and night is come upon us , stormes , tempests are rising , dangers are approaching , and yet God opens not to us . 15. Above all our misery this is yet the greatest , that even our hearts are shut up too , there lyes a stone rowled at the doore of our hearts , and such a stone , as is beyond the power of an Angel to rowle away , were it that after all our hearts were but open , our condition yet had comfort in it . Oh now what shall we do● ▪ 1. Let us resolve to waite at this doore , ●●aite upon God in those wayes of helpe that yet in mercy he affords unto us ; Certainly we are at the right doore , let us say with Shecaniah , Ezra . 10. 2. We have sinned against the Lord , yet there is hope in Israel concerning this thing . Let us resolve whatsoever becomes of us not to goe from our fathers door , if we perish , we will perish at his gates . 2. Let us worship the Lord at this our doore , though we be not entred in ; yet let our hearts bow before the Lord in the acknowledgement of his greatnesse , power , dominion that he hath over us ; to doe with us what he pleaseth : as Ezek. 46. 2. it is said , The Prince shall worship at the threshold of the gate , and the people of the land shall wo●ship at the doore , 3. Let us look in at the key-hole , or at any crevise that wee can , to see something of the riches of mercy that this door opens into . Within on the other side o● the door we may see what liberty of conscience , what enjoyment of Ordinances , the blessing of Gods worship in his own way , we may see the wayes of God and his Saints would be made honorable in this kingdome , yea in a higher degree then any where upon the face of the earth ; yea we may see many sweet outward liberties , the free enjoyment of our estates , peace , plenty , prosperity in abundance , all these , and more then we can think of , if this door were but once opened to us ; howsoever it is good 〈◊〉 looke in , to quicken our hearts , and set on our desires and endeavours the more strongly in the meane time . Oh how happy were we if we had these mercies ! 4. Let us yet knock lowder , and cry lowder at our Fathers doore . But did not you tell us our Father seemed to be angry at our knocking ? Mark what we have in that very Scripture , where the Church complains that God is angry with her prayer , Psal . 80. 4. How long wilt thou be angry against the prayer of thy people ? Yet ver . 7. Turne us againe , O God of Hosts , and cause thy face to shine ▪ And ver . 14 , Returne we beseech thee , O God of H●sts , look down from heaven , behold & visit this vine : ver . 19. Turne us againe O Lord God of Hosts , cause thy face to shine , and we shall be saved . 5. Let every one take away his sinnes that lye at this door , let every one sweep his owne door , Zech. 8. 15. 16. Again have I thought in these ●●●yes to doe well unto Jerusalem , and to the house of Iudah , feare not . But yet mark what followes , These are the things that ye shall doe , Speake ye every man the truth to his neighbour : execute the judgement of truth and peace in your gates . Let none of you imagine evill in his heart against his neighbor . Both private men , and men in publick place must reforme , How far are we from this ? Never more plottings , more heart-burnings one against another , & those in publike place neglect the execution of judgement ; they would have their policies beyond Gods wisdome . God puts these two together , and commends one as a meanes to the other , the execution of judgement and peace ; but they have a further reach they will not exe cur●●●dgement for feare of a breach of peace . It is just with God that we should never have peace , till we can trust God for it in his own way . 6. Let us seek to God againe , and call to him for the right key . Lord reveale the way of thy worship , and thy government to us , and we will yeeld our selves unto it . 7. Stir we up our selves against all difficulties . Things are not yet so bad , but we may help our selves , if we have hearts . Our Father heares us , he can command many Angels to come to help to rowle away the stone ; yea he hath opened divers doores to us already . We are indeed come to the ●ron gate , the Lord can make that at length flye open of its own accord , as Acts 20. 10. The Church was praying , and after the pr●●on doo●es were opened to Peter , and he had passed the first and second gate , he came unto the iron gate that led into the City , and there he found as easie passage as any where else . In the mount will the Lord be scene . 8. Let us exercise Faith in the blood of Christ , let us as it were besprinkle this our door with the blood of the Lambe ; yea looke we up to Christ as the true doore to let into all mercy ; let Faith act as well as Prayer . 9. Let us now especially watch all opportunities of mercy , and take heed we neglect no more as we have done many very foulely , lest hereafter wee knock , and cry , Lord open to us , and it proves too late . 10. Let us open to God who knocks at our doores ; it wee would have him open to us , God knocks at the doore of every one of our hearts , open we to him fully , set all wide open for him , Openye gates , stand open ye everlasting doores , let the King of glory come in . These who doe thus are the true generation of those that seek the Lord ; let England open , for God yet stands at the doore and knockes , and if we will yet open to him , he will yet come in and suppe withus , and we shall suppe with him . It is true God rebukes and chastens severely , so he did Laodicea at that time when he stood at her doore and knocked , Apoc. 3. 19. 20. if any Church be or ever was like to that of Laodicea , we have been ; luke-warm as that was ; a mixture of Gods worship hath beene amongst us , more then in any reformed Church ; we have beene a proud people , we have thought our selves rich , & wanting nothing , whereas we knew not that we were indeed wretched , miserable , poore , blinde , and naked : and those who would be Angels of this Church , how hath God spu●d them out of his mouth ! they are cast out as filthy , they have laine upon the stomack of God and his Saints a long time ; they with all that belonged to their Courts , have made themselves a most ●oathsome generation of men ; and now God is at our doore & knocks , cals to us to let him in , that he may come and rule us , that he may bring peace & salvation unto us ; But howsoever whether Christ be admitted by the State yea or no , yet let the Saints who are willing that Christ should rule over them , hold on to the end , the promise is even to those in Laodicea , to him that overcometh will I grant to sit with me in my Throne even as I also overcame , and am set down with my Father in his Throne . 11. ●et us encourage what we are able ; all our faithfull doore-keepers , those who are the publicke instruments of God for our good , upon whom so much of the great affayres of the kingdom , under God depends . And for the quickning of our hearts that we may doe all we can , that this our doore of hope be not shut against us , Consider further , First , This doore was opened to us when we began to think , yea almost to conclude that all doores of hope had beene shut against England , when we were ready to give up all for lost . Secondly , It was opened to us after much knocking by prayer . If ever there were a Parliament of prayer since the world began , this was , and is , How dreadfull then would it be to have this doore shut against us ! Thirdly , It was opened by a mighty hand of God. Josephus tells us of a doore of the Temple that used to have thirty men to open it , and yet as a prognostication of some great thing to fallout , it opened of its own accord : This our door was more hard to be opened , thousands of men could not have opened this , it was the mighty work of God to doe it . Fourthly , It is a door that opens to the greatest mercies that ever England had : how happy would England be in the happy success of this Parliament ! 5. It is a door that our adversaries have laboured all they can to shut by policy , and by force , and thorow Gods mercy , yet they cannot . 6. How sweet have the manifestations of God been to us , in the beginnings of his goodnesse , and our endeavours ! Can● . 5 4. 5. My beloved put his hand at the door , & my bowels were moved , my hands dropped myrrhe , and my fingers sweet smelling myrrhe upon the handles of the locke , the beginning of reformation : but the hand upon the door is sweet , what would the work compleated be ? 7. If this doore should be wholly shut against us , what a miserable people should we be ? if these men have their wills , then never expect Parliaments more , or never good from Parliaments , They will be the most contemptible and servile things that can be , if any , they will be doores to let in all misery , to frame mischiefe by a law ; then what are we and our posterity but slaves ? the Popish party must , yea will be gratified , their designe will be effected ; what contempt of the Saints , of Religion ? what hatred ? what persecution will then follow ? what horrid blasphemies ? how will they be hardned in all manner of wickednesse ? our estates , our liberties , our Religion are then gone , yea it is like our lives , and if not so , so miserable would our lives be , as we had better have the grave open her mouth upon us , and we be shut in it , then to live to see , hear and feele such things as we and our friends , are like to heare , see , and feele . It would be the most horrid judgment that ever was against a nation , it may be told to all the nations of the world , God gave England a fair opportunity to help it self , to be a most happy nation , but they had no hearts , they were blinded , their hearts were taken from them , those worthies they chose , who ventured themselves for them , they basely deserted , and betrayed , they have also vilely betrayed themselves , their liberties , their Religion , their posterity , and now are become the most miserable nation , the most fearful spectacle of Gods wrath upon the face of the earth . Wherefore beloved in the Lord , let us make sure of Christ , who is our hope , and who says of himselfe that he is the door , as indeed hee is to let in all mercies of God into us , that whatever disappointment we have of our hopes here , yet we may not be disappointed of our last hopes , though it should prove that here looking for light , behold darknes , yet we looking for the light of Gods face eternally , we may not be driven out to everlasting darknes . But shall I end thus ? nay the close of all shal rather be the close of the 31 Psal . Be of good courage and he shal strengthen your heart , all ye that hope in the Lord hope yet that God will make the valley of Achor adoor of hope unto us . The next words in this Scripture are words of joy , She shall sing as in the dayes of her youth . Was there ever a time wherein shee had cause to sing praise to God ? there are times coming that shall be as joyfull as ever yet times have been , God hath mercy for his people , he hath singing times for them . The Foureteenth Lecture . HOSEA 2. 15. — And she shall sing there as in the dayes of her youth , & as in the day when she came up out of the land of Egypt . YOu have heard formerly of the valley of Achor , that God gave to his people to be a doore of hope . This day you shall heare of Gods people standing singing at this door of hope . Though it be but a door of hope , yet at that day they shall there sing , as in the days of her youth , when they came up out of the land of Egypt . There are six things needfull to be opened for the meaning of Gods mind here in this their singing at the door of hope . First , the reading of the words are to be cleared . 2. The scope is to be shewed . 3. What the dayes of youth that are here spoken of are , is to be opened . 4. What was the song that they did then sing in the dayes of their youth , is to be declared . 5. What cause they had to sing in this the day of their youth , is to be enquired after . Lastly , how this is applyable to repenting Israel , and what time this prophesie a●meth at , likewise is to be manifested . For the first , the reading of the words , you have it in your bookes [ they shall sing as in the dayes of their youth ] There are only two words that have need of opening . First , the word translated [ singing . ] Secondly , that which is translated comming up out of the land of Aegypt . For the word [ singing ] the Septuagint have it thus , She shall be ●●mbled ; A strange translation you will say ; how much different is it from this in our books , She shall sing ! I find divers translate the word so [ she shall be humbled ) Cyril , Theodoret , and he caryeth it thus , that she shall be humbled by the Assyrians , as she was before humbled by the Egyp●ians . But certainly the words cannot be carryed so , for it is spoken of ascending , of coming up out of the land of Egypt . But they might easily mistake in translating the words , because the Hebrew word signifieth both humiliavit , and it signifieth likewise ce●init and contavit , both to be humble , and to sing . The Hebrews divers times by the same word set forth contrary things ; As 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 signifieth both to blesse and to curse , many there might be named in the same kind . This word likewise that is translated singing , signifieth , ( and so it is translated by some ) Respondebit , she shall answer , and I finde a very excellent note from it in Cyril , and some others : Shee shall answer as in the dayes of her youth : What answer did shee make ? Thus , God in the dayes of her youth , when she came out of Egypt , did bring her to his Covenant , and gave his land to her , as Exod. 19. 5 , 6. Now therefore ( saith God ) if you 〈◊〉 obey my voyce indeed , and keepe my Covenant , then ye shall be a peculiar treasure unto me above all people ; ( A sweet promise to all in Covenant with God , that they shall be a peculiar treasure unto him above all people . ) Now vers . 8. All the people answered to gether and said , all that the Lord hath spoken we will doe . Thus they answered him in the days of their youth , so some would carry it , they should answer as in the dayes of their youth , when they came up out of the land of Egypt , as if the meaning should be thus ; whereas God in the dayes of their youth did tell them , that if they woul● keepe his Covenant , they should be a peculiar treasure unto him above all people of the earth , they all with one consent answered , All that the Lord hath spoken that will we doe . So saith God , when I shall againe convert them to my selfe , I will renew my Covenant with them , and upon the declaration of my Covenant to them , they shall freely , readily , and wil●ingly answer , Lord we accept of thy Covenant . Thus it is carryed by some , and the exposition is very sweet . But we shall joyne both the significations of this word together , both ●●ing , and to answer ; And that I take indeed to be the meaning of the Spirit of God , they shal sing by way of answering : Thus , they were wont to sing , ●lternis choris , they were wont in their joyfull songs to answer one another , his praecinentibus aliis succinentibus , some singing before , and some answering . So that it was not a bare singing , but a singing of a Canticum dramaticum , or such a kind of song , as they did answer one another in their singing . And thus ( saith God ) shall be the melody of my people , when I am again reconciled to them upon their repentance , there shall be mutuall singing , one singing to another , and the others answering in a joyfull way . The other word to be opened , is that which is translated , coming up out of the land of Egypt . The word you have in your books [ came up ] it is ascended , as in the day when they ascended up out of the land of Egypt . And wee are to take notice of the manner of the expression , because it will afford to us a profitable note anon . They ascended out of the land of Egypt , partly because Egypt was a Countrey that lay very low , and in that respect they may be said to ascend . But that is not the chiefe , they were in a low condition , they were in a state of bondage , and in that regard they were said to ascend . The second thing to be shewed is the scope , what the Spirit of God aymeth at , They shall sing as in the dayes of their youth , when they ascended out of the land of Egypt . Read it so , and It is a further expression of the nuptiall solemnity that there should be between God and his people , in the time of their reconciliation ( for so I have told you formerly , that God goeth along in this second part of the Chapter , in that continued Allegory , to shew his bringing of his people to him in a way of marriage , in a betrothing way , which afterward is exprest more fully ; and all the way God expresseth it , is in the manner of Nuptiall solemnities : ) As if he should say , Marriage is an ordinance I have appointed for mutuall joy and delight that the man and wife should have one in the other , so I will bring you and marry you to my self , and there shall be a great deale of joy that I will have in you , and you shall have in me ; there shall be the singing of the Epithilamium , the Nuptiall long between us ; there shall be a time of abundance of rejoycing between us , when I shall take you again to my selfe . Doe you think with your selves , when was the greatest time of joy that ever you had in your lives ; Know I will bring you to as much joy as ever yet you had . Looke what mercy you had when you came out of the land of Egypt , and rejoyced in it , you shall hereafter have mercies as great as that . Did I then appear in a miraculous way to you ? I will do so again . Had you mercies that were promised long before , and rejoyced in them ? you shall have the like again . Had you mercies that you a long time prayed for before ? you shall have the like againe . Did Moses and Miriam goe before you in singing , and you followed after ? there shall be the like time again , when both Governours and people shall joyne together in singing and praysing the name of the Lord. This is the scope . The third thing is , what is meant by the dayes of their youth ? The dayes of their youth is the same that after wards is exprest , and the day when they came up out of the land of Egypt , that is , the time when they were delivered out of bondage , after they had passed through the Red-sea , and had seen the great works of God in their deliverance , then was the day of their youth . Jer. 2. 2. I will remember the kindnesse of thy youth when thou followedst me in the wildernesse . The time that this people were delivered from Pharoah , and saw the great works of God in the wildernesse , is the time of their youth , in the time of their bondage ; they did not outwardly appear to be the Lords ; but when God manifested himself so gloriously in their deliverance , then God did as it were take them again to be his people , and they did seem as it were then to be born againe , and the time of their being in the wildernesse was Gods training them up as it were in their youth . For a people that are under bondage can scarce be said to be born , they are but as the Enbryo at least in the womb in that prison . They cannot be said to be a people when they are under bondage , at least they are not a living people . Hence Chap. 13. of this Prophesie , when they were in bondage under Jeroboams wicked commands , the Text saith , vers . 1. that they died . When Ephraim spake , trembling , in Israel he exalted himselfe ; but when he offended in Baal , hee dyed . A people under bondage are as a dead people ; before they have their liberty , they are to be accounted as not born ; and if they lose their liberty , they are to be esteemed as if they lost their lives . But here a question ariseth . How can God have reference to this time , and tell them they shall sing as then , whereas in the beginning of the Chapter we find that when God threatneth them , he telleth them he will set them as in the day wherein they were born ? so that to be brought to the same condition they were in , is a threatning ; How then is it here a promise ? The answer to that is , it is true , the time when they came up out of Egypt was indeed a time of much mercy , but they were in great straits in regard of externall helps , as a succourlesse , helplesse , and shiftlesse people , when therefore God threatneth to set them as in the day wherein they were born , he only aymeth at that , that is , to bring them into a succourless , helplesse , and shiftlesse condition in regard of creature-helps as formerly they were . But when God promises mercy , and telleth them he will bring them into that condition they were in their youth , hee doth not consider of their succourlesse & shiftlesse condition , but rather looks at all the mercie they had in their deliverance out of Egypt . As it is a great affliction for a people to be brought into the same condition that once they were in , that is , to have all the sowr & bitter without any of the sweet , so it is a great priviledge for a people to be brought into a former condition , when they shall have all the sweet without the sowr , when God shal take away all the branne , & give them only the flowr , strain out all that is evil , & give them all that is good , that is a comfortable condition ; but when God shall strain out what is good , and give them what is evill , that is a sad condition , and that is the threatning before , and this is the promise now . The fourth thing for explication is , what the song was that they did then sing in the daies of their youth when they came up out of the land of Egypt . That song of theirs you shall find , Exod. 15. Then sang Moses and the children of Israel this song unto the Lord , &c. And afterwards you shall reade that Miriam and all the women sang likewise . In this song of theirs , there are these five things Observable . First , this song o Moses , Exod. 15. was the most ancyent , the first song that ever was in the world that we know of . Orpheus , Musaeus and Linus , the most ancyent of the Poets were 500 , yeares after this time . Secondly , It was a triumphing song ; Then sang Moses and the children of Israel , the Lord hath triumphed gloriously , &c. When they saw Gods judgements upon the adversaries , then they sang in a triumphing way . But you will say , how could they sing thus when they saw such a dreadfull spectacle before their eyes ? What , sing at such a lamentable object , when the Egyptians were so miserably destroyed , when they were sprawling up and down in the water , and it is like they heard their shriekings , their dolefull cryes , and saw their bodyes how they were cast upon the shore ; And then shall Moses and the people of Israel sing ? O cruell hearted people that should sing at such a lamentable object as this ! What , to triumph over their adversaries thus fearfully perishing ? To that we answer . We must not be more pittifull then God is , Psa . 58. 10. The righteous shall rejoyce when he seeth the vengeance , he shall wash his feet in the blood of the wicked . But you will say , this is austerity , they are cruell hearted people that shall doe so . Not so neither . Moses was the meekest man that ever lived upon the face of the earth , the lovingst man except Christ that ever was ; yet Moses sang thus when he saw the Egyptians destroyed ; so that to rejoyce in Gods judgements against the ungodly , may stand with meeknesse & quietnesse of spirit , with a loving and sweet disposition as Moses had . It is true , we ought not to insult over wicked men in way of revenge , in respect of our selves , but when we consider the righteous judgments of God upon his adversaries , we may be swallowed up in the consideration of Gods justice , and rejoyce in it ; But so , as not altogether to be without some pitty and commiseration of the persons perishing : As Titus Vespation is said to weep , when he saw the destruction of Jerusalem , though his enemies . But there is a time comming when all the Saints shall be so swallowed up with God , so as they shall rejoyce in the destruction , yea in the eternall damnation of the wicked , without the least pitty & commiseration of them ; they shall wholly mind God and his glory without pitying of them , yea though they were the fruit of their own bodies , and came out of their owne loyns . But for the present , though wee are to rejoyce and triumph in the works of God and his judgements upon the wicked , yet with some mixture of pitty and compassion towards their persons . And mark by the way some difference between Gods affection toward his people , and toward wicked men . It is very observable , that when Gods people come to be in an afflicted condition , if there shall be any that dare to be so wicked as to rejoyce in that , God will avenge himself on them ; yea if they doe but looke upon his servants that are in affliction with any kind of contentment , the Lord will be avenged on them for it . But when the wicked are destroyed , God doth not onely give us leave to look at them , but to rejoyce and sing praises to God for their destruction . I will give you a Text for this , Obad , verse 12. Thou shouldest not have looked on the day of thy brother , neither shouldest thou haeve rejoyced over the children of Iudah in the day of their destruction . Mark , God hath a quarell against them that did but look upon the day of their brothers distress , and rejoyce . But when destruction commeth upon the enemies of God , then the people of God may look , and rejoyce , and triumph . Thirdly , It is a song most excellent , in regard of the elegancy of the expressions , and variety of the matter . For verse 1. He hath triumphed gloriously , or thus , He is become gloriously glorious , or , in magnifying himself , he hath magnified himself . What an elegant expression is here , He is magnifyed above the magnificent , so some . All Gods works are glorious , but some are gloriously glorious ; and so is this work of God towards his people . Rivet hath a good note upon this : The greatest glory of God , wherein he is most glorious , it is in doing good to his own people ; so ( saith he ) great men should account it their glory not in spoising others , especially those that are their owne , but in doing good , that was the great glory of God wherein he was gloriously glorious , in delivering of his people , not in spoiling them . In Esay , 14. 20. there is threatned a dishonourable buriall to the King of Babylon , upon this ground , saith the Text , Thou hast destroyed the land , and slaine thy people : Yea he threatneth his seed , The seed of evill doers shall never be renowned , because he had destroyed his land , and spoiled and slaine his people , his owne people . Againe , the elegancy of this song is in those expressions that are in the abstract ; He is Fortitudo mea , and Laus mea , and Salus mea : Hee is my strength , and my praise , and my salvation , all in the abstract . So in that elegant Epiphonema , or patheticall eruption of spirit , which though it should have beene in the close as comprehending all the rest , yet he breakes forth in the midst of the song , verse 11. Who is like unto thee , O Lord ? glorious in holinesse , fearfull in praises , doing wonders . In many other particulars , we might shew abundance of elegancy in this song . Fourthly , it is not onely narrative of what was , but propheticall of what is to come . A Propheticall song , The Dukes of Edom shall be amazed , the mighty men of Moab trembling , &c. ver . 15. Fiftly , it is typicall , that is , a song that doth typifie out the rejoycing of Gods people in after time , when the Saints shall overcome Antichrist , then the song of Moses shall be sung over again : That is a very observable place , Rev. 15. 2. 3. of those that overcome the beast , the Text saith , They sung the song of Moses , that is , they sung that song , which this of Moses was but a type of . Sixtly , according to some , this song was a miraculous song , so Augustine hath it in his Tractate , De mirabilibus Scripturae , a miracle worthy of admiration without measure . Wherein did he think the Miracle of this song to be ? In this , that he imagined that both Moses and all the people , were at one instant inspired by God to sing this song : this is that which hath beene thought by some . But we are not able to make out that there was such a miracle at this time , but rather God inspired Moses onely , and the other people followed Moses as he sung this song . I note it the rather for this , because here by we may see that singing is an Ordinance in the Church of God , not onely in the time of the Law , but in the time of the Gospel , for this place , She shall sing as in the dayes of her youth , is spoken of the time of the Gospel , Therefore not onely when one man hath an extraordinary gift , ( as the Scripture speakes , if any one hath a Psalme , an extraordinary gift in the Congregation of making a Psalme ) that he should sing , but it is an Ordinance to joyne with others who have the gift of making a Psalme ; so were the people to doe here . The fifth thing to be enquired after is , the reason of their singing , what cause they had thus to sing in the dayes of their youth . The reason was because of their great deliverance they had from Egypt , and therein indeed are many things considerable , that will afford unto us many excellent observations . First , then they sang because of their freedome from outward bondage . Bondage hath three things in it . 1. When any one is under the power of another , under any Law without his consent given , either explicite or implicite . 2. When he serveth another without any respect to his own good ; only ayming at the satisfying of the will of him whom he doth serve . 3. VVhen he is forced to doe what he doth with rigour . Here you may see the difference between a free subject , and a slave ; no free subject is bound to any laws of men , as mens laws , but such as some way or other he giveth his own consent unto ; thus it is with us in England , that is the difference betweene us and the Turks , who are slaves , they are bound meerly to the will of those above them ; but in England , every freeholder , some way or other gives consent to whatsoever law he is bound unto , therefore there is none can challenge any further power over him by any Law , but what he hath either explicitely or implicitely given his owne consent unto . Secondly , he is a slave that is forced to obey , without any respect of good to himselfe , but onely to satisfie the will of him whom he doth obey . There is no such distance betweene one man and another , that one should serve another , without respect to his own good . Indeed there is such a distance betweene God and us , that the more we are swallowed up in aiming at God , and the lesse we ayme at our selves , it is the better service ; but there is not such a distance between men and men , we are not bound to serve men , but in some ayme and respect to our own good , so far as it concernes men , Therefore in England when any thing is granted to the King , it is usulaly so , as to send up some other Bill , that may be for the good of the subject , as giving him somewhat , but withall expect some good and benefit from him to them . Indeed in our service to men , we are to ayme at God , and in the condition God hath put us , to seek to glorifie him , more then to provide for our selves ; but so far as our service hath regard to man only , and looks no further then him , we are not bound to serve him , further then with respect to our selves and the good of others . Wherefore subjects may know that they are not made meerly for the will of those that are above them , they indeed serve them , but they serve them for the good they expect from them . The third is to serve out of love , and not to have only rigorous Lawes to force them to such service . Now the people of Israel were under bondage in all these three respects . First , they were forced to serve without any consent at all . Secondly , they that did governe them , did not at all ayme at their good ; It is no matter for them , let them perish as dogs , we will have our worke done , and well done too . VVhen men shall governe so as they care not what become of thousands of others , so they have their wills satisfied , this is to make free subjects bondslaves . And thirdly , all was done out of rigour , they forced from the people what they did , as for their love they cared not for that . Wherefore when they were freed from these three things , they sung , and they had cause so to doe . Secondly they sung when they came out of the land of Egypt , because they were not only in bondage in Egypt , but in bondage under such a King as they were . For , consider who it was they were in bondage unto , and then to be delivered from such a one , you will see a great deale of cause of singing . First , They were bondslaves to a King of another Nation . Sometimes Country and kindred sake moves compassion , but being they are another people , to whom I have no relation , but only to serve my own turn of them , it is no matter what becomes of them ; let become of them what will , I will have my will satisfied . Secondly , They were bondslaves to a King that ruled by an arbitrary government , there was but only his will for the Law , he would impose what work and taskes he pleased , how many bricks they should make , and when he pleased take away their straw , and yet tye them to the making of so many . He governed them not by Law , but by Will. Thirdly , They were in bondage under a cruell King , for the King of Egypt in the Scripture is called a Dragon , for his cruelty , Ezek. 23. 3. I am against thee Pharaoh , King of Egypt , the great Dragon . Fourthly , They were in bondage to a King that was an unnaturall King ; unnaturall in this , that whereas the predecessors of the Israelites had saved Egypt from perishing , saved the King and his family from destruction ; yet now , without any regard to what was done in former times by their predecessors , having this power over them , he oppresses them in such an unnaturall way , so as not to care what becomes of them . Fiftly , they were in bondage under a King that extreamly hated them , & that is a sad thing . The text saith , Gen , 43. 32. The Egyptians might not eat bread with the Hebrews , for that is abomination to to the Egyptians . Sixtly , They were in bondage under a wilfull King , under one who was extreamly set upon his will ; we scarce read of any one that ever was so set upon his will as this King was , therefore they expresse this in their song which they sung when they came out of Egypt . Exod. 15. 9. blessing God that they were delivered from such a wilfull Prince as he was . In the 9. ver . four times he saith [ I will ] I will pursue , I will overtake , I will divide the spoile , I will draw my sword , and the 5. time , my lust shall be satisfied upon them , but of this before , to be slaves to such a one , so wilfull , was a very hard condition , the like wilfulnesse hath beene already noted of the King of Babylon , and none the like to these two ; the Text speakes from their deliverance in part from under the King of Babylon also , as if he should say , you did sing when you came up out of Egypt merrily , and joyfully , because you were delivered from such a cruell wilfull King , you shall sing so again , for you shall be delivered again from as cruell and wilfull a King as he was ; for though not all the ten Tribes came back , yet it was in part fulfilled by many of them . Lastly , They were in bondage under a suspicious and jealous King , lest they should grow to a head , and so rise against him , one that thought he could not confide in them . It is a sad thing when there are such suspitions between King and people , or people and King , that they cannot tell how to confide and trust one in another . VVell might they sing therefore in the dayes of their youth , when they came up out of the land of Egypt . Thirdly , They sang when they came up out of the land of Egypt , because they were freed from what hindered them in the exercise of Religion . Hence Moses told Pharaoh , that they must goe three dayes journey in the wildernesse to sacrifice unto the Lord their God ; they could not sacrifie in Egypt , therefore when they got freedome to sacrifice to God , this being a great mercy they sang praises . Fourthly , They sang , because their deliverance out of Egypt was wrought with a mighty hand . The Lord hath triumphed gloriously , hath been gloriously glorious ; so the words are . And ver . 6. & 7. marke what the Text saith , Thy right hand , O Lord , is become glorious in power . The hand of God is God , strength , but the hand of God in power is a greater expression . Thirdly , Gods right hand in power . Fourthly , the right hand of God is glorious in power , this is a mighty expression , surely great was the work of God in their deliverance . Yea and further , ver . 16. it is said , by the greatnesse of his arme , not onely Gods hand , but his arme , and the greatres of his arme was in this work . And ver . 7. In the greatnesse of thine excellency , Mulititudine celsitudinis excellentiae , superbiae elationis , in the greatness of thine excellency , in the multitude of thy height , of thy elation of the lifting up of thy self in a kind of pride , ( for the word that is translated excellency there signifies pride too . ) Now God did this in the multitude of his excellency , that is , he did such a work toward his people , as had a multitude of glorious works in it , which if you could analyse , anatomize , you should find a multitude of glorious excellencies in it . Well might they sing , when God did manifest himself thus . All these will afford us excellent and sweet observations by and by . Further , they sang when they came up out of the land of Egypt , because this mercy was the fulfilling of a promise made long before . Therefore the Scripture telleth us , That at the end of 430. years , even the selfe same day , the hoasts of the Lord went out of the land of Egypt ; which hath reference to a promise , and sheweth us that God kept his word to a very day . Hence in vers . 2. of that 15. of Exod. He is my God , I will prepare him an habitation , my fathers God , and I will exalt him ; As if hee should have said , O Lord thou didst make promises to our forefathers , now thou hast fulfilled those promises , thou art our God , and our Fathers God. This made them sing so merrily . 6. It was a mercy that was got by much prayer , for Exo. 3. 7. it is said , they cryed unto God by reason of their afflictions , there were many cries sent up to God before their deliverance , and now being delivered , this made them sing . 7. It was a mercy that came after a sore and long bondage . Lastly , It was a mercy that they had in order to that great mercy of leading them into Canaan , therefore this they mention as the especiall cause of the joy of their hearts in the 13. vers . Thou hast guided thy people in thy strength to thy holy habitation , and ver . 17. thou shalt bring them in , and plant them in the mountaine of thine inheritance . The holy Ghost speaks here as if the thing were done already , as if he should say thus , O Lord thou hast indeed granted unto us a great mercy in delivering us out of Egypt , but herein we prize thy mercie that it is in order to the bringing us to thy habitation , and it will bring us at length to the mountain of thy holinesse ; it is not so much that were are delivered from bondage , as that wee expect to bee brought to thy holy habitation . Now saith the Lord , you shall sing as you did then , look what causes you had then to sing , you shall have the same causes to sing again , when I am reconciled to you . The last thing for the explication is , when this was fulfilled , or to what time this is to be referred . There are four times that this prophesie aims at , and refers unto . First , It began in some degree to be fulfilled at their returne out of their captivity from Babylon , though it is true few of the ten tribes returned , yet it is clear in Scripture that many of them did then return , and had the beginning of this mercy , and there was joy and singing . Isa . 12. the whole chap. is a song blessing God for their return from the captivity , Jehovah is my strength , and my song , he also is become my salvation , &c. 2. This prophecie aims at spiritual Israel ; so in Rom. 9. it is applied to the calling of Jew & Gentile together ; when the Gospel was first preached , Jewes and Gentiles being called home , became the spiritual Israel of God , then there was singing , Rom. 15. 20. Again he saith , rejoyce ye Gentiles with his people . The third time that it refers unto , is the delivery of Gods people from under the tiranny of Antichrist , typified by the tiranay of the Egyptians : for that , the former place is very full , Rev. 15. 2. there you shall observe , Those that had gotten the victory over the beast , and over his image , and over his marke , and over the number of his name , stood upon a sea of glass mingled with fire , having the harps of God in their hands , and they sang the song of Moses , & the song of the Lamb , saying , Great & marvellous are thy works Lord God almighty , just and true are thy ways thou King of Saints , &c. In this song , which I make no question but this Scripture hath reference unto , there are divers things observable . To take them up briefly by the way . 1. That they that sung were those that had gotten victory over the beast , over his image , and over his mark ; that is a full victory , not only abominating Antichrist himself , but any image , any character of him , any thing whereby they might seem to allow of him , to be owned by him . 2. They stood upon a sea of glasse mingled with fire . The sea of glasse , I find interpreted , Christian doctrine , so called , for the clearness of it , though not so clear as afterward it should be , for there is some darknes even in glass , but clear in comparison of what it was before ; for 2 K. 25. 13. The sea was of brasse , which is far thicker and darker . But there was fire mingled with this sea of glass , that is , though they had a clearer doctrine then before , yet there were many contentions in the Church through many different opinions , and much division there was even amongst the godly . It was a sadde condition indeed , yet it is ordinary , especially when Doctrines come to be first cleared , to have great contentions grow in the Church among godly men . It is no wonder though good men should be of different opinions , yea and have some heat of spirit one against another , when the light first breaks forth . When men are in the dark they sit together , and walk not at such a distance ; but when light comes , it cannot be expected but there will be differences . But yet mark , the godly then , they did not reject the doctrine , because there was fire mingled with it , because there was heate of contention , but the Text saith , they were there with their harps in their hands , they were professing this doctrine and rejoycing that ever they lived to that time , to have the Gospel so clearly revealed unto them . And they sang the song of Moses , and not only of Moses , but the song of the Lamb too . What was that ? First , great and marvellous are thy works , in that we see we are delivered from Antichristian bondage , as the people of Israel were delivered from Egyptian bondage with a mighty hand of thine ; Oh it is a marvellous worke of God that wee are thus at liberty . Therefore know this , that whensoever the Church shall be delivered from Antichristian bondage , it shall be a marvellous work of God , therefore we may not be discouraged , because wee meet with some difficulties by the way , for wee shal never be delivered , but so as it shal appear to be a wonder ; if we should be delivered without difficulties , we should not see the marvellousness of the worke . Further , Iust and true are thy wayes . God in that deliverance will shew the fulfilling of all his promises , and he will fully satisfie the hearts of his people , who have been a long time seeking him , and suffering for him . Whereas the adversaries , because God did forbear a while in his patience and let them prosper , thought there was no God in heaven that looked upon them , they scorned at the fastings , and prayers , and faith of the Saints ; But though the hearts of the Saints were ready to faile , yet at last they shall say , Iust & true are thy wayes , Lord we now see all thy good word fulfilled , all thy promises made good ; now we see it is not in vaine to seek thee , it is not in vain to wait upon thee , for just and true are thy wayes . O thou King of Saints . God will appear then to be a King of Saints . He is indeed the King of the world now , and the King of his Saints , but he doth not appear so clearly , the kingdome of Jesus Christ as King of Saints hath been much darkned in the world ; We have some what indeed of the Priestly and Propheticall office of Christ made known to us , but very little of his kingly office ; but when God shall fully deliver his people , then they shall magnifie Jesus Christ as the king of Saints in an especiall manner . Lastly , they shall say , Who will not feare thee thou King of Nations ? As if they should say , wee see now it is good to feare God , wee see now God hath made a difference between him that feareth him , and him that feareth him not . The Angel that John saw , Apoc. 14. 6 , 7. Flying in heaven , having the everlasting Gospel to preach , cryes with a loud voyce , Feare God , and give glory to him ; The feare of God will be mighty upon the hearts of the Saints in those times . This shall be the song of Moses that this Scripture aymeth at , they shall thus sing as they did in the dayes of their youth , when they came up out of the land of Egypt , yea and the truth is , their song shall be much more glorious . The last time this prophesie aymeth at , is the great calling of the Jewes , then the Scripture saith , Everlasting joy shall be upon their heads , they shall obtain gladnesse and joy , and all sorrow and mourning shall flee away . They shall so sing , as never mourn more in this world , in regard of any malice and rage of their adversaries . This was not fulfilled at their return out of the Babylonish captivity , therefore there is yet a time for the fulfilling of it , and the Scripture is clear about the fulfilling it , even in this world ; that place Rev. 21. 4. is a repetition of that prophecy , he saith there , God shall wipe away all teares from their eyes , and there shall be no more sorrow nor crying . When Jews and Gentiles shall joyne together , then they shall siug indeed to purpose , as they did in the dayes of their youth , when they came up out of the land of Egypt . First , it is a great mercy for people to be delivered from outward bondage . It will be found a great mercy when the world shall be delivered from their outward bondage , when men shall see they were born free-men , and not slaves , though Subjects , yet not slaves , when men shall see that the world was not made for twenty or thirty to doe what they list , and they to account all the rest as beasts , yea dogs ; as if it were not so much for the lives of thousands of them to goe , as for their humours and lusts not to be satisfied ; but when men shall know , that they are men and not beasts , and so shall live like men , and not like beasts , to be at the will of others , this will be a great mercy . But to be delivered from Antichristian bondage , is a greater mercy , then it was for the children of Israel to be delivered from their Egyptian bondage . For , First , when they were in the Egyptian bondage , we reade not that their consciences were forced , that they were forced at all to any false worship . Pharaoh did not this , but Antichrist forced to Idolatry . Secondly , Though Pharaoh layed heavy taskes and burthens upon them , yet he did not kill them , indeed at length they killed their first borne , but the people of Israel themselves might have their lives still , though with hardship . But Antichrist thirsts for blood ; Papists are bloody men . Thirdly , It was the affliction of Gods people to be in bondage in Egypt , but it was not their sin : But to be in bondage under Antichrist , is not onely an affliction , but it is sin , and that of a high nature too . 4. Though they were under Egyptian bondage , yet they were delivered from Egyptian plagues ; but those that are under Antichristian bondage , shall come under Antichristian plagues . Come out of her my people , lest you be partaker of her plagues . You must not think to escape so as they escaped out of Egypt ; if you stay in that bondage , you will be involved in their plagues . With what an eye therefore should we look upon those who would bring us into this bondage againe , when God hath begun to give us a little reviving ? Jer. 37. 20. O my Lord the King ( saith Jeremy ) let my supplication , I pray thee be accepted before thee , that thou cause me not to returne to the house of Ionathan the Scribe , lest I die there . So let us ery to the King of heaven and earth , O Lord our King , let our supplication be accepted before thee , since wee are begun to be delivered from that bondage , doe not cause us to returne to that house againe . The second is , A reconciled condition is a singing condition . When there is a harmony between heaven and the soul , between God and a sinner , there is a sweet melody indeed , there may well be singing , Esay , 35. 10. The ra●somed of the Lord shall returne and come to Zion with songs and everlasting joy upon their heads . And Esay 44. 23. Sing Oye heavens , for the Lord hath d●ne it ; s●out yee lower parts of the earth , break forth into singing ye mountains , We being justified by faith having peace with God , saith the Apostle , we not only rejoyce in hope of glory , but we even rejoyce and boast in tribulation : Having peace with God , though war withall the world , we rejoyce . Thirdly , It is a great mercy , when Magistrates and people shall generally joyne together in praising God , when they shall sing as they did in the dayes of their youth , ( for that is the promise . ) How is that ? Moses beginneth , and Miriam followeth , the leaders of Israel , and then all the people joyne together , and answer one another in their singing . When that day shall come that God shall stirr up the hearts of Magistrates and great ones , that there shall be singing Hallelujahs to him that sitteth upon the throne , and the Lamb for evermore ; and when God shall generally move the hearts of the people , that they shall answer one another in their singing , and so joyne in a sweet melody ; this will be a blessed time indeed . Now perhaps in one place there is singing , and blessing God for what is done , in another place there is cursing , and cursing those that do sing . Some mens hearts are rejoycing in the great things God doth , other mens hearts fret and rage when they heare of the great works of the Lord , this makes no melody in heaven . Perhaps now in the family the Husband singeth , and the wife frets ; perhaps the wife singeth , and the malignant husband is inraged ; the servant rejoyceth , and the master chafeth ; the children sing , and the parents vex ; this is harsh musique . This is our condition at this day ; there are better times coming , when Moses , Aaron , and Miriam , and all the people shall joyn in singing praise to our God. 4. Thankfulnesse to God , for mercy cannot be without joyfulnesse . A grumbling , pensive , sadde , dumpish disposition , cannot be a true thankfull heart as it ought . God will not accept in this sense of the bread of mourners . It is grievous to the Spirit of God , that we should be pensive and sad in the midst of abundance of mercies . 5. They shall sing there . There , where ? at the door of hope in the valley of Achor . You may remember in the opening of that valley of Achor , I gave you what might be understood by it according to the most , that is , that God would make the greatest trouble and affliction of his Church to be a door of hope , to bring mercy to them : And if you take it in that sense , here rises an excellent observation . When God brings into straits , yet if he shall sanctifie our straits , making them means of good to us , we have cause to rejoyce . You have an excellent Text , Isa . 35. 6 , 7. For in the wildernesse shall waters breake out , and streams in the desart , and the pa●ched ground shall become a poole , and the thirsty land springs of water . Those things that seem to goe most contrary to you , I will work good unto you out of them , saith God. VVell , what is the fruit of this ? This is set as the reason of the words immediately before , Then shall the lame man leap as an Hart , and the tongue of the dumb sing . Because the Lord shall make the parched ground become a poole , and the thirsty land springs of water , this shall make the lame to leap as an Hart , & the tongue of the dumb to sing . Though our tongues be dumb , yet it should make us sing when we see God working good out of contraries , when wee see things that of themselves tend to our ruin , and would bring us to misery , that are as the valley of Achor , yet God working good out of them ; if wee have the hearts of men in us , much more the hearts of Christians , though we were dumb before , this should make us sing . Yea all this is brought in as an argument to strengthen the weak hands , and the feeble knees , and as a reason why those that have weake hearts should not feare , because God workes good out of that which seemeth the greatest evill ; vers . 4. Say to them that are of a fearefull heart , be strong , feare not , and then followeth this in the 6. verse . Are we in the valley of Achor , a place of trouble and straits ? wee have cause to sing even in this valley of Achor , for we have not yet been brought into any straits , but God hath brought good out of them ; he hath turned the parched ground into a pool , and the thirsty land into springs of water . It is our great sin , that when God calleth us to singing , we are yet concluding of rejecting ; we are ready to think if we be brought into the valley of Achor , we are presently cast off : Oh no , God calleth you to singing , nothwithstanding you meet with difficulties . Isa . 49. 13. Sing O heavens ( saith the Text there ) he joyfull O earth , breake forth into singing O mountaines , for God hath comforted his people , and will have mercy upon his afflicted ; But mark now the next words , But Zion said , the Lord hath forsaken me , & my God hath forgotten mee . At that very time , when the Lord was calling for singing , even then they were concluding of rejecting . Take we heed this be not our condition . But take the words as then I told you as I conceived them to be the meaning of the spirit of God , that this valley of Achor was some speciall mercy that God gave at first as a door of hope to further mercies he would give afterward , and there they shall sing . Then the observation is , When the Lord is beginning with his Saints in the ways of mercy , though they have not all that they would have , yet it is a singing condition . Though you be but yet brought into the valley of Achor , and be but at the doore of hope , and not entred into the door , though you have not yet got the possession of all the mercy God intendeth for you , yet God expects you should sing . You must not stand grumbling , whining , complaining , and murmuring at the door , because you have not what you would have ; though God makes you wait at the door , you must stand singing there . It may be said of Gods mercy as of his word in Psal . 119. 130. The entrance into thy word giveth light , so the entrance of Gods works of mercy giveth light . Psal . 138. 5. Yea they shall sing in the wayes of the Lord , for great is the glory of the Lord. In the ways of the Lord they shall sing , though God be but in the wayes of his mercy , and they have not what they would have , yet they shall sing . This is certainly one great reason why our doore of hope is not yet opened to us as we desire , or at least that we have not that entrance that we would have at that door , because we stand murmuring ; yea we stand quarrelling one with another at the doore , whereas God expects that we should stand singing and praising his name there . Though wee have not what wee desire , yet let us blesse God that ever we lived to this day , to see so much of God as we have done , though we should never see more , though the mercy we look for should be reserved for the generation that shall follow , yet we have cause to blesse God while we live , that we have seene and do see so much of God as we have done & daily do . Let us stand at our Fathers door singing , and if we must sing at the foot of Zion , what song shall we sing when we come to the height ? Ier. 31. 12. They shall come and sing in the height of Zion they shall flow to the bountifulnesse of the Lord. If there be any one with whom God is dealing in a way of mercy , though you can see but a little light thorough the key-hole , yet you should sing there . There are many poor souls , with vvhom God is beginning in very gracious ways , yet because they have not their minds inlightned , their hearts humbled as they desire , power over corruptions , abilities to performe duties as they expect , they are presently ready to conclude against themselves , surely the Lord will not have mercy , we are rejected . They think they have nothing , because they have not what they vvould . O unthankfull heart ! This is the very thing that keepeth thee under bondage , because when the Lord is setting open a door of hope unto thee , thou wilt not take notice of it , but art presently murmuring and repining , because thou hast not all that thou wouldest . Wouldest thou enter in at this door , and have God perfect the mercy he hath begun ? take notice of the beginnings , and blesse God for what thou hast . This would be an observation of marvey lous use to many a drooping soul , if they would learne by this dayes coming hither , to sing hereafter at the doore of hope . Yet further , They shall sing there as in the dayes of their youth . It is the condition of Gods own people many times , when first they enjoy liberty , then to be in a singing condition , but afterward to lose their joy . At first indeed when Gods mercies were fresh to them , in the dayes of their youth , O how their hearts were taken ! how then they sung merrily and chearfully , Moses and all the people ! but in processe of time it appeareth they had not kept up this singing , this harmonious , this melodious heart of theirs , therefore God promiseth they should sing as in the dayes of their youth . We finde it so in people , when they first come to enjoy liberty out of bondage , Church liberties , Oh how they rejoyce in them ! how do they blesse God for them ! O how sweet are these mercies at their very hearts ! they rejoice that ever they lived to this time ; but within a while the flower of their youth is gone , and they soone have the teats of their virginity bruised . At first indeed , O the sweetnesse ! but stay a while and you shall finde contention or scandoll arising amongst them , or deadnesse of heart befalling them . Oh the blessed condition that God hath brought us to , to have these liberties and ordinances according to his own way ! but within a while we may say as the Apostle to the Galatians , Where is the blessednesse you spake of ? They would have pulled out their eyes for Paul , What is become of all now ? All their beauty & glory is quite damped , let us take heed that when our hearts seem to be raised and mightily affected with mercies , we do not soon loose our vigour & heat . It hath been so with England , when they have had fresh mercies at first , they rejoyced in them exceedingly . I have read of the City of Berne , when they were first delivered from Antichrist , they wrote the day of their deliverance upon pillars with letters of gold . Was it not so with us here in England ? I will only instance in that deliverance upon the fifth of November , how mightily was both King and Parliament affected with it ! their hearts were exceedingly up , then there was blessing God , for their deliverance from Papists , then there were prayers and thanksgivings set forth , and in them , this expression against Popery , Whose faith is faction , whose Religion is rebellion , whose practice is murthering of soules and bodyes ; When the mercy was fresh , how did their spirits worke ? then they profest against all kinde of Popery . Reade but the Proclamation about the solemnity of that time , and the expressions of the prayers then set forth , and one would have thought verily then that Popery should never have prevailed in England again ; who would ever have thought it possible that a Popish Army should ever have had any countenance in England more ? Certainly , if a Popish Army had been raised at that time when mens hearts were so up , all the people of the land ( if it had been but with clubs ) would have risen and beaten them to pieces . It is so with many young people , when God first beginneth to worke upon their hearts , O how are they for God! then their spirts are mightily up for Christ , Psal , 90. 14. O satisfie us early with thy mercies , and then we shall be glad and rejoyce all the dayes of our lives ; It is a sweet thing when the latter part of that prayer followeth , when God satisfieth young people with his mercy , and that satisfaction abideth , so as they rejoyce all the dayes of their lives afterward . The Lord doth many times satisfie young ones with his mercy , but they quickly grow dead and cold , and their hearts are soone hardned and polluted , and they doe not rejoyce all the dayes of their lives . Another Observation , that restored and recovered mercies , are very sweet and precious mercies . They shall sing as in the dayes of their youth ; They were once in a blessed sweet singing condition , they had lost it , but now God promiseth to recover them . Iob 29. 2. O that I were as in months past , as in the dayes when God preserved me , when his candle shined upon my head , and when by his light I warlked thorough darknesse ; as I was in the dayes of my youth , when the secret of God was upon my Tabernacle . Iob desireth this earnestly , that he might have restored , recovered mercies ; What a happy condition should I be in then , saith he , if it were now with me as in the dayes of my youth ! May not many in this place say so ? God hath been gracious to them in former dayes , he hath given many sweet manifestations of his love , many soule-ravishing communications of himself unto them ! but how have they lost them ! They may well say , O that it were with us as in the dayes of our youth ! Oh that God would restore to us what mercy we once had ! what a blessed condition should we be in then ! But God here giveth a gracious promise , that he will restore them , that he will give them that which is the petition of David , Psa . 51. Restore to me the joy of thy salvation ; Lord I have lost it , O that I might have it againe ! How happy should I be ! So Ps . 132. 1. By the Rivers of Babylon there we sat down , yea we wept there when we remembred Zion , we hanged our harps upon the willowes . They were in this sad condition , but if one should have come to them and have said , what will you say if you shall be restored againe and goe to Zion , to Jerusalem againe , and have songs there , as much and as delightfull as before ? their hearts could not have held in them . This mercy would be like that wine mentioned , Cant. 7. 9. that is so sweet , that it causeth the lips of those that are asleepe to speake ; If there be any life left , such a mercy will raise and actuate it . Psal . 126. 1. 2. When the Lord turned againe the captivity of Zion , our mouthes were filled with laughter , and our tongues with singing , when God granted them a recovered mercy . As a poore prodigal , that hath left his fathers house , and afterward is come to beggery and misery , and is under bondage , & is almost starved ; he sitteth down under a hedg , wringing his hands , falleth a lamenting the losse of his Fathers house , and considering what comfort he had in his Fathers presence , cryeth out of his folly and madnesse ; but if one should come and say to him , what will you say if your Father should be reconciled to you , and send for you home , and promise to put you in as comfortable a condition as ever ? O how would this cause singing in his heart ! Thus God promiseth to his people , that he would restore them to that singing condition they had lost . They shall sing as in the dayes of their youth . That which made this mercy so sweet , was because it was a promised mercy . Hence this Note . Promised mercies are sweet mercies . Luke 16. 61. Blessed be the Lord God of Israel , for he hath visited and redeemed his people , and hath raised up a home of salvation to us , in the house of his servant David , as he spake by the mouth of all his Prophets . And ver . 77. To performe the mercy promised ; there is the cause of singing , Blessed be the Lord God of Israel , that hath performed the mercy promised . Giving out of a promise is sweet to a gracious heart , it can sing then ; much more sweet is the promise when it cometh to be fulfilled . 2 Chron. 20. 17. Stand still and see the salvation of the Lord , there is the promise . Mark now how Jehosaphat and the people were affected with the promise : And Jehosaphat bowed his head with his face to the ground , and all Iudah and the Inhabitants of Ierusalem fell before the Lord , worshipped the Lord. And the Levites , and the child en of the Koathites , & the children of the Korhites shall stand up to praise the Lord God of Israel with a loud voyce on high . And ver . 21. He appointed singers unto the Lord that should praise the beauty of holinesse , and to say , Praise the Lord , for his mercy endureth for ever . Jehos●phat had not got the promise fulfilled , it was only made ; they had not got the victory over their enemies , but onely a promise that God would be with them , & presently Jehosaphat & all the people fell a singing . A gracious heart seeth cause enough to sing , if he have got but a promise , but much more when he hath got the performance . If the promise of a mercy hath such sweetnesse in it , what sweetnesse then hath the mercy of the promise ? But the promise was not only barely fulfilled , but fulfilled with a high hand , and that made them sing . This may be another Observation : When God appeareth remarkably , with a high hand in delivering his people , then the mercy is to be accounted a precious mercy indeed , and all the people of the Lord should sing and praise him . Esay 43. 19. 20. mark there , when God had told of an extraordinary hand of his in a way of mercy , saith he , I will plant them in the wildernesse , and so goeth on : Then ( saith he ) shal this be , that they may see , and know , & understand , & consider , that the hand of the Lord hath done this , and the Holy One of Israel hath created it . When Gods imediate hand doth a thing , when it helps a people in an extraordinary way , he expects that they should see , and know , and consider , and understand together : All these expressions are heaped one upon another . And if any people be called to this , we are at this day ; God hath appeared extraordinarily to us . Oh that we had eyes to see ! Oh that we had hearts to consider and understand , that we might give God the glory that is due to him ! The Fifteenth Lecture . HOSEA 2. 15. 16. — And she shall sing there , as in the dayes of her youth , and as in the day when she came up out of the land of Egypt . And it shall be at that day , saith the Lord , that thou shalt call me Ishi ; and shalt call me no more Baali . SOme few Observations are to be added to the 15. verse . Mercies that have been much sought for , that have had many cryes sent up to God to obtaine , when once they are granted , should cause singing forth the praises of God. The people of Israel cryed much , before God granted them deliverance from Egypt , Exodus 3. 7. I have heard their cryes , saith God : And God sayes here , They shall sing as they did when they came out of Egypt . Psal . 22. 26. They shall praise the Lord that seek him . The more we seek God for any mercy , the more we shall praise God when we have obtained that mercy . Psal . 28. 6. 7. Blessed be the Lord , because he hath heard the voyce of my supplication ; my heart trusted in him , and I am helped . What followeth ? Therefore my heart greatly rejoyceth , and with my song will I praise him . Because God had heard the voyce of his supplication , therefore with his song he would praise him . Those mercies that we get by crying unto God , those are singing mercies indeed . Such mercies as come to us only through a generall providence , without seeking to God , they are not such sweet mercies ; as Hannah said to Eli concerning her son whom she had got by prayer , ( and therefore named him [ Samuel , ] Sought of God ) As thy soul liveth , this is the son , this is the child that I was here praying for , and the Lord hath given me my petition which I asked of him . This she spake , triumphing in Gods goodnesse . Mercies got by prayer may be triumphed in . When you want a mercy , pray much for it ; the more you pray for it , the more you will sing when you have it , and the lesse prayer went before , the lesse singing will follow after . Further ; Mercies that make way for the enjoyment of Ordinances are very sweet mercies , singing mercies , They shall sing as they did when they came up out of the land of Egypt . Why did they sing when they came up out of the land of Egypt ? Because that mercy , that deliverance from Egypt made way to that rich mercy of the injoyment of Gods worship in his Ordinances . How doth that appear ? Thus , Exod. 15. where they sung when they came out of Egypt , ver . 2. I will build him an habitation saith Moses , together with the people ; they rejoyced in that , that now they were going on in the way to build God an habitation ; but more , ver . 13. Thou hast guided them in thy strength unto thy holy habitation : as if Moses and the Israeli●es should say , this indeed is a great deliverance that we are delivered out of bondage , but what is this but in order to a higher mercy that we looke at yet further , that is , guiding of thy people in thy strength to thy habitation ? we looke upon this present mercy of our deliverance , for which we doe now sing and give thee praise , but in order to the guiding of thy people to thy habitation , and that in thy strength : as if Moses should say , Lord there will be a great many difficulties between this and our comming to enjoy thy habitation , but thou wilt guide us in thy strength , thy strength shall carry thy people along till it bring them to thy habitation ; this was that which made them sing so chearfully as they did . And again , v. 17. Thou shalt bring them in , and plant them in the mountaine of thine inheritance , in the place , O Lord , which thou hast made for thee to dwell in , in the sanctuary , O Lord , which thy hands have established . This was that that made them so sing . So David , Psa . 27. 4. One thing have I desired of the Lord , that I will seeke after ; that I may dwell in the house of the Lord all the dayes of my life , to behold the beauty of the Lord , & to enquire in his Temple ; That is a choice mercy , therefore all mercies that make way for that mercy , are indeed sweet mercies . So we should looke upon all our deliverances , from outward troubles , and whatsoever peace God giveth us to enjoy , as sweet and comfortable , in order to this mercy of enjoying Gods mountaine , of living in God● habitation , that we may dwell there all the dayes of our life . A third Observation is , New mercies should renew the memory of old . They shall sing as in the day when they came up out of the land of Egypt , that is , I will grant to them yet further mercies , and that mercy that I shall grant , shall renew the memory of all the former mercies they have enjoyed from me . As new guilt renews the memory of former guilt , so new mercies the memory of former . Hath God delivered you from any danger now ? were you never delivered before ? if but when you were a childe , those deliverances you now have should bring into your memory what then were . So in a nation , doth God grant to a nation any new mercy ? this new mercy should bring into the memory of that nation all the former mercies that ever that nation hath received . Psal . 68. 26. Blesse ye God in the congregatations , even the Lord from the fountaine of Israel . Not only you who are true Israelites , but in your blessing God now , let present mercies be to you but as streames to bring you to the fountaine . Consider of all the mercies along till you come to the fountaine , even that Covenant that God hath made with Israel . A fourth is , All former mercies to Gods people should help Faith in beleeving future mercies . That is raised from hence . Why doth the Prophet tell them or comming out of the land of Egypt ? He speaks of some mercy that was to come to Israel ; now hee names this coming out of the land of Egypt , that he might helpe and strengthen their Faith in the beleeving of what mercy was to come : As if he should say , That God that hath wrought so wonderfully for you , in delivering you out of the land of Egypt , is able , and willing to make good his word in granting to you deliverance for time to come . We have excellent Scriptures for this , as Psal . 66. 6. He turned the sea into dry land , they went thorough the flood on foot , there did we rejoyce in him . Marke , they went thorough the flood , and there did we rejoyce in him : How did we rejoyce in him ? it was many hundred yeares after that we came to rejoyce : But upon the manifestation of Gods great goodnesse to his people in former dayes , our faith commeth to be strengthened in Gods mercies for our times , and there did we rejoyce in him , we did rejoice in the worke of God when they went thorough the Red-sea upon dry land , for it is an argument of Gods mercy to us of the power , goodnesse , and faithfulnesse of God to us . Another temarkable Text is , Hos . 12. 4. Hee had power over the Angel , he found him in Bethel , and there he spake with us : Marke , he had power over the Angel , he found him in Bethel ; VVho was that ? It was Jacob , who many years before , but there he spake with us , hee did not speake with Jacob onely , but there hee spake with us , that is , whatsoever goodnesse the Lord did shew to Jacob in Bethel , it concerned us for the strengthening of our faith , Mat. 22. 31. 32. Have ye not read that which was spoken unto you , saying , I am the God of Abraham , and the God of Isaac , and the God of Iacob ? This was spoken to Moses many hundred yeares before ; but that expression of Gods grace then , was a strengthening the faith of the godly , when Christ spake , and is the same to us now . A fifth is , where there is a proportion of mercies , there ought to be a proportion of thankfulnesse . They shall sing as they did in the day when they came out of Egypt . I will grant unto you as great mercies as they had , and I expect as great thankfulnesse from you as I had from them ; as they sung to my praise , so must you sing too . God sheweth as much mercy to you now , as he hath done heretofore , I appeale now to you , nay God appeales to your consciences , Is there a proportion of thankfulnesse as of mercies ? There hath been a time when you have sung to the praise of God , when your hearts have been inlarged to give God praise , why should it not be so now ? A sixt observation is , deliverance out of Egypt is an ascending condition , That ariseth from the words as they are in the Originall , They shal ascend out of the land of Egypt , so I told you the words were in the Hebrew ; as then God would never rest till he brought them up to Mount Zion , so when God beginneth to deliver his people from Antichristian bondage , they should never rest in their spirits , untill they be got to the height of Reformation , to the height of their deliverance , that is , to come to enjoy Gods Ordinances in his own wayes , in the purity and the power of them . This is our misery and our b●senesse , that upon some little deliverance we presently are ready to rest , whereas we should rise yet higher and higher , and expect that God should goe on still with us , and raise us in the wayes of mercy , untill he hath brought us even to the top of Mount Zion . Seventhly , From the connection of these words with what followes , They shall sing as in the day when they came up out of the land of Egypt , and they shall call me Ishi , and shall call me no more Baali , for I will take even the very names of Baalim out of their mouths , and they shall remember them no more , that is , there shall be a most glorious reformation , & they shal be delivered from all the remainders of their Idolatrous worship , they shall not so much as remember their very names , the Reformation shall be so perfect ; From thence the Observation is , When God raiseth the spirits of people to rejoyce in his mercy , then is the time for them if ever , to set up a through Reformation ; then when their hearts are warmed , inflamed , and inlarged with the goodnesse of God unto them , then is the time to cast out all the remainders of all superstition , of all kinde of false worship . I will give you two excellent Scriptures for this , the one is , Esay 30. 19. Thou shalt weep no more ( saith he ) he will be very gracious unto thee at the voyce of thy cry ; The Lord promiseth abundance of mercy , he tells them that they shall weep no more , he will be very gracious ; now marke what followeth in the 22. verse , Ye shall defile the covering of thy graven Images of silver , the ornaments of thy molten Images of gold , thou shalt cast them away as a menstruous cloth , thou shalt say unto it , Get thee hence ; The other Scripture is , 2 Chron. 30. 26. there you finde that there was great joy in Jerusalem , such joy as the text saith , was not since the dayes of Solomon , it was upon the celebration of their Passe-over , there had not beene the like ; Marke then in the beginning of the next Chapter , saith the text , when all this was finished , that is , when they had celebrated a Passeover so full , and had such abundance of joy , such a joy as had not beene in Jerusalem since the time of Solomon ; Now all Israel went out to the Cities of Iudah , and brake the Images in pieces , and cut down the groves , and threw down the high places , and the Altars out of all Iudah & Benjamin . Their hearts were inflamed with the joy they had , & they went with resolution and brake down 〈◊〉 ●●ages , &c. And marke it , the Text saith , it was 〈…〉 that did this ; 〈◊〉 went out into the Cities of Iudah , and brake the the Images in pieces , and threw down the high places , & the Altars out of all Iudah : What had Israel to doe with Iudah ? Iudah and Israel were divided ; But now their hearts were so inflamed for God , that they were not able to abide any false worship amongst their brethren , though it belonged to Judah , yet they would goe help their brethren to cast down all their Images , and to cut down their Groves and Altars , this was when their hearts were warmed with joy in blessing the name of God. VVhen God once warmeth the hearts of people , it is much what they will doe for God then : They will not stand examining every nicety , but they will fall upon the work directly ; the joy of the Lord was the strength of their hearts at this time : as it is with the lusts of wicked men , when they get into company , at feasts , in Taverns , and there they are drinking , while their lusts are warmed , then what desperate resolutions have they to doe wickednesse ! So when Gods Saints are exercised in Gods Ordinances , and are refreshed with the sweet love of God , when that lies glowing at their hearts , what strong resolutions have they for God! then they can doe any thing for God. Now the very name of Baalim must be taken away . VERSE 16. And it shall be in that day , saith the Lord , that thou call me Ishi , and shalt call me no more Baali . 17. For I will take away the names of Baalim out of her mouth , & they shall be no more remembred by their name . Here we have as full a Prophesie and promise of as thorough reformation of the Church , as any I know we have in Scripture , God hath a time to reforme his Church thorowly , the very names of their Idols , the very remembrance of them shall be taken away . This reformation is ●ods worke , I will doe it saith God , I will take away the names of Baalim They shall call me Ishi , and no more Baali . ] Why ? what great difference is there betweene these two names Ishi and Baali , that God will have one but not the other ? The truth is , both of them signifie even almost the same thing ; Both of them are names very fit for a wife to call her husband by , Ishi is my husband , and Baali is my husband too . But the word Ishi cometh from a word that signifieth strength , the woman being the weaker vessel , therefore shee calls her husband Ishi , my strength ; for the husband should be strength to the wife , he should live with her as a man of knowledge , he should be a protection to her , he should help her in all her weaknesses , & afflictions . Baali signifieth my Lord , as well as my husband ; it is a word that moteth rule and authority , Ishi is a word that hath more love and familiarity in it ; Baali is a word that noteth the inferiority of the wife to the husband . Now God saith he will be called Ishi , but not Baali ; why ? there is no hurt in the word Baali it selfe ; the word Baali is a very good word , and hath a good signification , & it is proper to God , as any word that can be given to him by the Church ( but that God did forbid it here ) for it is no more when the church cals God Baali , then if the Church should say , O God that art my Lord , my husband , who art to rule & govern me ; Yea and we find that God gives to himself this name , Isa . 54. 5. Thy Maker is thy [ husband , ] so it is in your books , but the word in the Hebrew is the same that we have here , Thy Maker is thy [ Baali , ] so that husband and Baal is the very same . But now because they had abused this word Baal , and given into their Idols , therefore God would have no more of it ; though it was a good word , a significant word , and as proper to God as any was . As the word Tyrannus was a name once for a King , Kings were called Tyrants , without any such ill signification as now it carries with it ; but because they had gotten the sole power into their hands , they did so oppress , abuse their power , therefore oppressors were called Tyrants . So the Latine word fur , which is for a thiefe , it was once the ordinary word for a servant , Fures , and Servi were wont to be the same , and without any ill signification ; but because afterward many servants grew to be false , to steale from their Masters , therefore fures was altogether taken in the worst part , onely for theeves . So Sophista , a Sophister , was one that studied wisdome , but because they did so much degenerate , many under the colour of the study of wisdome , deceived others , therefore the name Sophister was used in the worst part . I might instance in many other . For further opening this . May not the name Baal be mentioned ? God tells them that he would take away the name of Baalim out of their mouths . VVhy may not we use this word Baali in our mouths ? To this I answer , Yes , it is not unlawfull for us to mention the word , notwithstanding this , for the holy Ghost a long time after this mentions the word in an historicall way : Rom. 11. 4. hee speaks there of those that had not bowed their knees to Baal , the word you see is mentioned & remembred by the spirit of God , therefore it was not a sin ; nay not only the word Baal , b●r it is not unlawfull to mention the names of any Idols of the heathen , for the holy Ghost doth so likewise , Acts 18. 11. speaking of the ship that they sayled in , he saith there , whose signe was Castor and Pollux , the names of two heathen Idols . And you may observe that here in the text the remembring is as much forbidden as the mentioning . Now if it were a finne meerly to mention the names of the heathen gods , it were a sin to remember them . Therefore God means the mentioning of them Honoris gratia , any way for their honour , or without detestation of them . The words being thus opened , you have many excellent observations out of them very usefull and seasonable for our times . First , There is a great deale of danger in words and names . You shall call me Ishi , I will not have you call me Baali , I will not have that word used ; the Devill hath got much by words and names , heretofore by the word Puritane , though 〈◊〉 knew not what it meant ; now by this new name that he hath of late invented ; the devill hath alwayes some words , some names for distinction of men , in which he sees advantage is to be had . The speaki●●●f the ways of 〈…〉 the language of superstition doth much hurt . 〈…〉 a notabl● 〈◊〉 ●etion from the Papists themselves concerning that , it is in the Rhemists Testament in their notes upon that place , 1 Tim. 6. 20. Keep that which is committed to thy trust , avoyding prophane , and vaine bablings , so we translate it , they translate it , prophane novelties , this is their note upon it ; Let us ( say they ) keep our fore-fathers words , and we shall easily keepe our old faith ; you shall see that wee had not long since the very spirit of these men breathing in many amongst us . The Hereticks call repentance amendment , but let us say they keep the old word Penance , they say the Lords Supper , but we will keep the old word Masse ; they say Communion Table , but let us keep the old word Altar ; Was it not just thus with us ? the call Elders and Ministers , let us say Priests ; they say superintendents , but let us keep the word Bishop ; ( it is a Scripture word indeed , but not in that sense they call it , for in the Scripture sense every Presbyter is a Bishop ) they say Sacrament , let us keep the word Sacrifice and Host ; they say Congregation , let us keep the word Church ; they morning , evening prayer , let us keep the words Mattens , even-song ; and so Oblation & Lent , and Palmsunday , and Christmas day , &c. This was the policy of Papists , and it hath been the policy of many of us to bring in popery by . Let us take heed of this , for the Devill is subtile in this ; for though these words have some kind of good sense in the Originall , yet there is danger in the use of them . Augustine in his preface to his narration upon the Psalms hath this expression . It is a better thing in the mouths of Christians to speak according to the manner of the Church , so we may well say , it had been better that in the mouths of Protestants , there had been the ordinary language of Protestants , not the language of Papists . Certainly if God had not been very mercifull unto us , the very language of Papists that began to be amongst us would have done abundance of mischief , take heed as long as you live of the language of Papists , whatsoever pretence they may have for their words . In that place of the Rhemists Testament quoted , they say , Let us take heed of the words of hereticks , they there confess that heretiques ( as they call us ) use many words that have no great hurt in them , but because they are the words of heretiques , let us not ( say they ) use them ; They are wise enough , they will not use our words , though they confesse the words themselves have no harme in them , yet because they are our proper language ( as they make them ) distinct from themselves , therefore no Catholiques should use them , why should not we be as wise as they ? The second Observation , Idolatry is a most loathsome and abominable thing ; Why ? Surely that is most loath some that we may not so much as mention , that we may not so much as remember . We must seek to abolish the very name , the very remembrance of Idolatry as much as possibly we can . First , one that we hate , we do not love his presence , we do like his company . Secondly , if we hate him very much , we doe not love so much as to see him ; and if perhaps we doe see him afar off , out hearts rise , that is a second degree . But thirdly , if our hatred be so great thee wee cannot endur●●● name him , that is a greater degree of hatred . But fourthly , if wee cannot endure to remember him , that is more then to name him . Yet thus should it be in our manifestation of our hatred to Idolatry : we should not admit it into our company , much lesse then to joyn in the Ordinances of God. We should not admit , no not the very sight of it , no not the name of it , no not the memory of it without a great deale of indignation . Jer. 44. 4. Oh doe not this abominable thing , saith the Lord there ; The Lord cryes out with a shriek as it were , Oh! doe not this abominable thing , as if any of you should see one ready to murther your child , or to cut the throat of your father , you would shrick out , Oh! what mean you to doe ? do not such a horrible villany as this ; so God cries out as it were with a shriek , do not this abominable thing . It is observable in the second commandement , that God saith hee will visite the sinn upon the third generation of them that hate him : none seem to love God more then wil-worshippers ; they will not only worship God as he hath appointed , but will devise ways of their owne , and yet God charges the breakers of no commandement with hatred of him but onely these . As if God should say , you pretend love to me , in that you will finde out new wayes to worship me by , you pretend decency and reverence , but I account it hating me , you can provoke me in nothing more . Tertullian in his book De Idololatria , hath this expression ; Idolatry is the principall hey nous crime of mankind , it is the chief guilt of the world , and the onely cause of judgment in the world . It were good therefore , seeing God hates it , and loaths it so much , that we should hate and loath it , and therefore even cast out the name and the memory of it ; it were a happy thing if this could be obtained , that now the names as of Popish , so of heathenish Idols could be got out from the Church ; But I know not how it comes to passe that we Christians do still retaine the use of their names , the very dayes of the week am●●g us are called by the names of Planets , or Heathen Gods : Not that I think it a sin , when it is the ordinary language of the world , so to speak as may be understood ; for the Apostle ( as I said afore ) mentioneth the name of Castor and Pollux : but if there could be an alteration by a generall consent , it were a thing desireable ( as our brethren in New-England doe ) and it were very desireable likewise , that our children might not be educated in the use of heathen Poems , where the names of heathen Idols are kept up fresh amongst us ; The Papists themselves acknowledge so much in their notes upon the Rhemists Testament , Rev. 1. 10. where they say , the name Sunday is Heathenish , as all other of the week dayes , some imposed after the name of Planets by the Romans , some by the name of certaine Idols that the Saxons worshipped , to which they dedicated their days before they were Christians ; which names the Church used not , but hath appointed to call the first day Dominike , ( the Lords ) the other by the name of Feries , untill the last day of the week , which she calleth by 〈…〉 name Sabbath , because that was of God , and 〈…〉 imposition of 〈◊〉 ●eathen . And in their Annotations upon Luke , 24. 1. The first day of the Sabbath , that is , first after the Sabbath , which is our Lords day . And the Apostle ( 1 Cor. 16. 2. ) commanded a collection to be made on the first of the Sabbath ; whereby wee learn ( say they ) both the keeping that day , & the Churches count of days , 2 , 3 , 4. of the Sabbath : that is , the second day , the third day of the week , and so on , to be Apostolicall , which S. Sylvister afterward named 2. 3. 4. Feriam . Thus you have the Papists acknowledging the Lords day to be Apostolicall , and the calling the days of the week , the 2. the 3. the 4. &c. to bee likewise Apostolicall . The Heathenish Roman names of the days were from the seven Planets , 1. Sol , from thence Dies solis , Sunday , dedicated to the Sun. 2. Luna , Monday , dedicated to the Moon . 3. Mars , Tuesday , dedicated to Mars . Our English Tuesday is a Saxon name , from Tuisco , who they say was chiefe leader and ruler of the German Nation from the Tower of Babel , who in honour of him called this day Tuisday , Tuisco his day . 4. Mercurius , to whom Wednesday is dedicated . Our English is from the Saxons , Woden , who was a great Prince amongst them : after his death they adored his Image . The 5. Jupiter , to whom Thursday is dedicated : Our English is from the Saxon Thor , the name of an Idol which they anciently worshiped . The 6. Venus , to whom Friday is dedicated : Our English is from Friga , an Idol of the Germans . This Idol represented both sexes , as well man as woman , an Hermaphrodite . She was reputed the giver of plenty , and the causer of amity , it is like it was the same which the Romans called Venus . The 7. Saturnus , dedicated to Saturn , from whence our Saturday hath the name : or as others think , from Seater , an Idol of the Germans . Exod. 23. 13. we have this charge , In all things that I have said unto you , be circumspect , & make no mention of the names of other Gods , neither let it be heard out of thy mouth . Psal . 16. 4. David professeth he will not take the names of Idols into his lips . A third note is , that little things in point of Gods worship , any way tending to Idolatry are to be taken heed of . The very word Baali , meerly to mention it , one would think to be one of the smallest things that could be , but yet we see God would have his people take heed of that . There is no Commandement wherein God speaks of himself as a jealous God , but in the second : now jealousie you know doth not only cause one to bee offended at some grosse thing , but at any thing that doth but tend that way , as if a Husband be a jealous Husband , hee is not onely offended if hee should meet with his wife committing the very act of adultery with another man , but the least glance of a wanton look will displease him , the least thing that is any way tending that way will offend him . So saith God in this commandement . I am a jealous God , to note that though wee should not agree to grosse Idolatry , to worship Images in a gross way , yet if we do any thing that doth but tend that way , that hath but any likeness to superstition , the Lord is jealous of that , even such a thing would displease him , in matters of Gods worship little things are not to be contemned ( if in any things in the world ) we are to make conscience of little things then in point of worship , when we come to deal with God , we had need to look to the smalest things . No question but the Pharises when they washed their hands , and Christ would not was his , would be ready to accuse him of too much precisenesse , what is there any hurt in the washing of a mans hands ? yet Christ would not wash his hands . Though this might seeme to be but a little matter before others , yet because it had some kind of tendency to shew some respect to their superstitious waye , Christ would not agree to them therein . There is a story in the Primitive times of that noble servant of God and Minister of the Church Marcus Arethusius , who in the time of Constantine had beene the cause of overthrowing an Idoll Temple , afterward when Julian came to be Emperor , he would force the people of that place to build it up againe , they were ready to doe it but he refused it , whereupon those that were his own people , over whom he had been Bishop , tooke him and stript him of all his cloathes , and abused his naked body , and gave it up the children to lance it with their pen-knives , and then caused him to be put in a basket and anoynted his naked body with honey , and set him in the sun to be stung with waspes , and all this cruelty they shewed because he would not doe any thing toward the building up of this Idoll Temple ; Nay they came to this , that if he would doe but the least thing towards it , if he would give but a halfe-penny to it they would save him ; but he refused all , though the giving but of one halfe-penny towards the re-edification of that Idoll Temple might have saved his life , hee would not doe it , for a little thing in that which concerns the worship of God in Religion , is of more concernment then your or my life . I have read in Theodoret of Valentinian , who was afterwards Emperour , going before Julian into the Temple of the goddesse Fortune ( which by the way , because we are speaking of the names of Idols , take this note ; The word Fortune , as it is commonly used , such a man hath a good forture , should be forborne : The Heathen had a goddesse that they called Fortune , and we should not continue those names ) when they went up into that Temple , the Priest there had his holy-water , ( just as the Papists who imitate the Heathens ) as he sprinkled it upon Julian , by accident there came but one drop of water upon Valentinian , he thereupon presently struck the Priest , and withall tooke his garment and cut that part of it in pieces upon which the water was sprinkled . Some would say , alas what was that ? It was but a little water that dropped upon him , & that by accident ; yet in detestation of that Idolatry , he cut in pieces that part of his garment . VVe cannot shew our hatred against Idolatry fully , except wee show it in little things , as well as in things that are very grosse and vile . Theodoret lib. 4. cap. 15. tells of the zeale of children of Samosaten , who because a Tennis-ball with which they played , had but touched the foot of the Asse whereon L●●ius their hereticall Bishop rode , they cryed out it was defiled , and burnt it in the Market-place presently ; hatred is much shewn in little things . Fourthly , It is the 〈◊〉 of all Gods people , to keepe themselves as free from Idolatry and superstition as can be , from the very verges of it : Why ? Here they must not so much as mention the very names of their Idols , certainly therefore they must keepe themselves at a great distance from it : We must not thinke it enough to say , Can any man convince us that this is Idolatry ? Though it be not , yet if it but borders upon it , it is your duty to keep your selves from it . Ps . 81. 9. You shall not have any strange God with you , or by you . It is not onely sorbidden that you shall not worship a false God , but you shal not so much as have a false God by you ; as Deut. 25. 13. when God would forbid the sinne of injustice , of selling wares by false weights , mark what the expression is , Thou shalt not have in thy bag divers weights ▪ a great & a smal one , it was sin to have a great and a small weight in a mans bag ; Why ? if you should find a great and a small weight in ones bag , perhaps you would say , but can you prove that ever I sold wares by the small weight , or tooke wares in by this great weight ? Yea , bnt saith God , to the end you may be farre off from the sinne of injustice , I require you that you shall not have them in your bag ; God would have us keepe off from the very verge of that sin , much more from Idolatry , which is the worst of all other sins ; Esay 65. 4. God chargeth upon them , not onely that grosse sin of eating swines flesh , but the having the broth of abominable things in their vessels ; They might say , we will not eate the flesh , but the broth ; no you must not have the broth of abominable things in your vessels , you must keep far off from that defilement ; As the Lord speakes concerning corporall whoredome , Prov. 5. 8. Remove thy way farre from her , come not ●igh the doore of her house ; If one should say , we will not commit uncleannesse , but saith God , you must remove your way farre from her , and you must not come nigh her , no not nigh the door of her house . We must not come nigh Popery , we must abstaine from the appearance of that evill . Certainly , it hath beene a great distemper in many of your hearts , that you went so nigh to Popery as you did , especially at such a time when the Tyde was comming in upon you ; for a man to stand just at the edge of the water when the Sea is comming in , especially if you were in some places , as in the Washes in Lincolneshire , is a dangerous thing , to stand at the edge when the tyde is going away , is not so dangerous : Many of you when the tyde of Popery and superstition was comming in , you stood upon the very edge of the water ; this is a sin you ought to repent off . Fifthly , The Church of God must not worship God after the manner that Idolaters doe : They must not so much as make mention of the names that they did , certainly then not worship God in the way they doe , in those orders and ceremonies they doe . Marke that place ; Deut. 12. 30. Take heed to thy selfe that thou be not snared by following them , and that thou enquire not after their Gods , saying , How did these Nations serve their Gods ? even so will I doe likewise ; thou shalt not doe so unto the Lord thy God ; then verse 32. VVhat thing soever I command you , observe to doe it , thou shalt not adde thereto nor diminish from it . Thou shalt not so much as enquire how others serve their gods , what their rites and ordinances , and manners of serving their gods are , thou shalt not worship me so ; How then Lord ? as if they should say , Whatsoever thing I command you , observe to doe it , thou shall not adde thereto , nor diminish from it , you must keep to that , and not think to worship me , as others worship their Idols . The Lord stands much upon this , though the thing in it self may be a lawfulthing , yet because it is the way idolaters have taken up , therefore it must be rejected , Ezek. 44. 20. there is a comandement to the Priests of the Lord , that they shall not shave their heads , nor suffer their lockes to grow long , but they shall round their heads , so the words are rendred in the old Translation , and Arius Montarus translates them thus , They shall clip equally their haire all of a length , that is the meaning of the words as they are in the Hebrew ; the old Translation , They shall round their heads , is according to the Hebrew ; the reason is this , because the idolatrous Priests , according to the several ways of worshipping their Idols , some did shave their heads , others wore long hair as women , some kind of Idols being worshipped one way , some another , all in excessive ways : Now saith God to his Priests , they shall doe neither ; so that it is the injunction of God to his Ministers there to be Round-heads . Certainly the Devil forgate that place of Scripture when he raised up such a name to reproach men by , which we have the expresse word in Scripture for the injoyning it : And on the other side , when the Scripture would describe the enemies of God , it describeth them by the contrary , the hairy scalpe . I remember I have read of the Lacedemonians , when they would reform excesse in apparell , which was much amongst them , at length their consultation came to this result , that there should be a law made , that none but harlots should weare pompous and rich cloathes , and by this meanes they thought to get all women that regarded their credites , or chastity , to goe in meane or plain cloathing , by this they attained their end : If by the light of nature once a thing come to be in fashion with harlots , grave and sober Matrons will never meddle with it , then what Idolaters take up in worship , the Church should abstaine from ; if there must not be a conformity betweene Matrons and harlots , there must not be a conformity between the Church of God and Idolaters . Arius Montanus in a Treatise he hath De Templi fabrica , saith , that the Jews report of 13. tables of stone that were in the outward court of the Temple , at which men were wont to pray , & all of them were made , saith he , so as some looked to the North , some to the South , and some to the West , but not one toward the East : And so God built his Temple that the Holy of holiest was not to look toward the East , but toward the West : Hence Ezek. 8. 16. it is said that ●●●se that worship 〈◊〉 the Sunne , with their faces toward the East , they had their backs upon the Temple , so that it appeareth plainly , that the Temple stood west-ward , and upon this ground , because there were so many among whom the Jews lived , that were worshippers of the Sun , and in their worship they would ever look Eastward , & upon that very reason the Lord would not have the Holy of holiest built Eastward ; Now all your Chancels in England are built Eastward , and it was wont to be the order and way of your superstitious worshippers evermore when they came into such a place to look Eastward , and bow solemnly themselves , not only to the Altar , but Eastward . I have seen my self a Bishop , who when the Communion table was set down in another place , he neglected that , and goes to the East end of the Chancell , and boweth himself , though his back was upon the table . And you shall observe it in all your burials , the corps are laid East and West , for this end by some , that when Christ comes to Judgment , they may be ready to look him in the face , it being a trodition that he shall come from the east . You must not think , that those who do not follow the old customes of superstition , do it out of crosness of disposition ; it is the same way that God brought his people up in , when they saw Idolaters worship one way , they should worship another way ; we must take heed of borrowing from the Egyptians , if you borrow from them you may think it riches , but you may get their botches and boils : we have enough in the word of God , we need no imitation of Idolaters and Papists in the way of worship . Yet further , that which lies more fully in the Text is , such things that in themselves considered have no hurt in them , yet when they come to be abused to Idolatry , they must be cast away ; I will take the name of Baali out of your mouths , the name was good , but being abused , was to be taken away ; yea not only such things as are in the originall of them from Idolaters , but even such things as in the beginning were of Gods own institution , if they do not yet continue his institutions , if God doe not require the continuance of them still , they must be taken away , not only corrected , but removed , and wholly rejected from Gods worship . I will give you an instance for both these together , Exod. 34. 13. Ye shall destroy their altars , break their images , cut down their groves . Many will easily grant , those things that came from Idolaters at first , should be rejected by us : but they say those ceremonies we have , we have them from the ancient Fathers in the primitive times before Popery was . For a full answer to that which may for ever stopp the mouth of that objection , you have an expresse command here , that those groves were to be cut downe whose originall was not from Idolaters , for Gen. 21. 33. the text saith that Abraham built an Altar , and planted a grove , and called there on the name of the Lord , the everlasting God ; groves and altars had a good originall from Abraham , but afterwards being abused by Idolaters , God requires of them now to cut down the groves . And that example 2 K. 18. 4. of the Brazen Serpent , it had a good beginning , and was an ordinance of God for a time , only it did not continue as an ordinance afterward , but they might think and so plead that it was kep● as a religious monument : But H●zekiah according to the command of God by Moses , beat down the Braz●n Serpent , and called it Nehustan in a way of contempt , a piece of brasse , though it had been a notable instrument of good to the people of Israel in former times , yet now it was but Nehustan , but a piece of brasse . And further , to the abolishing those things that have been abused to Idolatry there is added a gracious promise , Esay 27. 9. By this shall the iniquity of Iacob be purged , and this is all the fruit to take away his si●ne , when he maketh all the stones of the Altar as chalke-stones that are beaten in sunder ; Then indeed hath Jacobs correction the true fruite npon him to purge away his sinne , when hee makes all the stones of the Altar as chalke-stones ; And Josiah is commended 2 King. 23. for destroying the high places , the groves and altars and the charets for the sun , &c. And repenting Manasses , 2 Chron. 33. 18. is commended that hee did take away the strange gods , and the Idols out of the house of the Lord , and all the altars ; and Daniel , chap. 1. would not eate of the Kings meat , because it had been abused and consecrated to his Idols . But for the opening of this there will be something required by way of answer to an objection . You will say , are not those prohibitions there particular , concerning the Jews and not so fully concerning us ? they somtimes are forbidden to take of the gold and silver of the Idols , doe such prohibitious concerne us in every thing that hath been abused to Idolatry ? For answer , I confesse I thinke we are not bound in every particular circumstance according to those commandements that God required of them : neither doe I thinke that they had been bound if they had not had some expresse commandement in some things that they did , if they had made use of the silver , or gold of an image , for some civil use , before the expresse prohibition came to them , it had been no sin unto them , those things being required of them by some positive Law , and not required in the second Commandement further then there is a morall equity in them . But how farre do they binde us ? All those rules God gave to the Jews to destroy all things abused to Idolatry , binde us in these three cases . First , we must retaine nothing whereby any false worship may retaine any honour . If Mordecai would not bow to a living monument of that nation , whose name God had ordained to be blotted out from under heaven , much lesse should we reverence dumbe monuments of those Idols which God hath devoted to destruction ; we must not shew respect to any thing that Idolaters have abused , when our reserving of them , or respect to them may any way keepe up any honour of them . Therefore certainly thi● is a truth , that to take a ceremony from Papists , to bring it into the most solemne Ordinances of CHRIST , yea so into them to that end that it may adde to the honour of that Ordinance , can never be justified . There never was any ceremony more abominably abused then that of the Crosse ; Now though it be not a sin to make a crosse , yet to bring it into one of the most 〈◊〉 Ordinances of Christ in his Church , and to make it there to conduce to the honour of such an Ordinance , it is impossible but men must shut their eyes if they doe not see it a great evil . So for vestments , suppose there might be some use of them some other way , yet to bring them to make the worship of God to be decent , to think that those vestments that have beene ●o notoriously abused , should adde to the honour of divine worship must needs be sinfull , surely all those scriptures that required the Jews to abolish those things that have been abused by Idolaters , if they have any morality in them , they will cast out these . Secondly , When any thing that hath been abused to Idolatry , shall in the use of it imply any communicating with Idolaters , then it must be rejected : that is cleare out o● Rev. 2. 20. there the Church of ●hyatira is charged that they did eate things sacrificed to Idols ; Why ? the meat sacrificed to Idols was good meat , a good creature of God , and we have that rule , that every creature of God is good , if it be sanctified by the word and prayer , yet they are charged for it as a sinning against Christ in it ; You will say what is that to them if it were offered to Idols ? they might eate it as Gods creature : But it was a sin because the eating of that did argue communion with them , that is plain in that 1 Cor. 10. 18. 19. 20. where you have the argument of the Apostle against eating things offered to Idols , thus he reasoneth , When you eat the same bread in the Sacrament it is a note of your communion one with another , so when you eate of the things sacrificed to idols , that is a note of your communion with them : that is the argument of the Apostle in that place , and upon that ground it is made a sin , You cannot ( saith he ) partake of the Table of the Lord , aud the table of devils , if you eat of their meat , you communicate with them & so it is sinne to you . Thirdly , To make use of any thing abused by Idolaters when it cometh to be a scandoll to our brethren , a snare to those that are weake , then it is a sin against God , 1 Cor. 10. 28. eating meat offered to Idols , is forbidden in the former place upon a ground of communicating , but in this 28. ver . it is forbidden upon the ground of scandoll , that is enough : Calvin in his Epistle to the Lord Protector in King Edwards dayes , hath these words ; What other things were those ceremonies maintayned by in England but so many pleasing allurements that ensnare poore miserable soules , & bring them into evil ? certainly these that we have retayned have brought abundance of evil this way , they have been the ensnaring of many souls . In these three things the rules that concerne the Jews have a morality concerning us . But yet these rules must be observed with some cautions , or else we may goe away and not understand the ruels aright . They must be understood first in things that are not Ordinances continued by God ; for certainly if it be an Ordinance that God hath appointed , though Idolaters abuse it never so much , we must goe on in it . It is true , the brazen serpent was an Ordinance of God , but it was an Ordinance but for a time , it was not a continued Ordinance , and therefore being abused to Idolatry it was to be destroyed ; but when a thing is an Ordinance appointed by God to be continued in the Church , we must go on in the use of it , though it be abused . As in Baptisme , the ordinance is water , though they abuse water , we must continue the use of it ; in the ordinance in the Lords supper is the use of bread and wine , though they abuse those elements , we must continue them , why ? because no abuse is an argument to refuse that which is a duty ; the subject of scandall is a thing indifferent , but if it be an ordinance , we must continue our obedience , whether men be offended or not offended . Secondly , Neither can any of these rules hold in any thing that is of necessary use for the worship of God , so as we cannot enjoy the worship of God without them . As for places , supose Idolaters have abused a place of meeting for Gods worship , when we have no other place to meet in , this is ( for the present at least ) of necessary use to Gods worship , there is a naturall necessity of a place , and if no other for the present may be had , we are bound to worship in that place , the abuse of men must not hinder Gods worship , God hath never put his worship under the power of wicked men , so as they should keep his people off from it when they please . Thirdly , If it be any ceremony that of its own nature ( not by vertue of any institution from man ) hath that decency in it as that the want of it would be an undecency , then though it be never so much abused , we are to goe on in it ; for it is the duty of Gods people to worship God in a decent way ; It is the rule of the Apostle , Let all things be done decently , but there is a mistake in that use that many make of that Scripture , this rule is , that which the light of nature teaches , though we had never found it in Scripture , it is not meant of such a decency as the institution of man puts upon a thing , but such a decency as God in the nature of the thing puts upon it , so that if it were wanting , the worke would bee undecently performed : But if the things be meerly mans inventions and institutions , having their supposed decency , not from what is indeed in the things themselves , but from that which mans institution puts upon them , then they come not under that rule of the Apostle , but the abuse of them is argument enough for their rejection . But it may be objected , If we can instruct people what the abuse is , and what right use they may make of such things , will not that serve for the retaining them ? No certainly , it had not been enough for the Jews to use the name Baali , though their Prophets had taught them what the abuse of it was . This is as if a man should keep a company of rags , that have lien a great while upon plague sores , and say it is enough , I will wash them cleane , and lay them out to ayre them ; will any wise man keep such rags in his house upon this precence ? Those things that have had poyson in them , none will be so unwise to keep them by them , upon pretence of washing them clean ; if they be broken vessels of which there is no use , they are cast upon the dunghill with lesse trouble and more safety . All things that are of mans invention , yea those things that have beene Gods Ordinances , but now are out of date , & are not for the present Gods Ordinances the Scripture calls them beggerly rudiments ; you cannot compare mens inventions to cloaths , or any thing worth the ayring or keeping , but the truth is , all such things that have been abused to Idolatry , are no other but as such dirty rags , and plaisters laid upon plague-sores . But further you will say , If that use we receive them for be not the same use they were in , if we retain them for another use that is good , why may we not doe it ? The text answers that , though the Jews should call God Baali in a right sense , it was not enough , they must wholly reject the very mentioning of the name . But further , suppose a harlot should be brought out of a most notorious stews in Rome or Paris , and brought to Dover into an honest mans chamber , is shee not a harlot still ? and is there not a provocation in her to uncleannesse , though she become now to lye not in the stewes , but in the chamber of an honest man ? So in all those things that have been abused to Idolatry , though you should think you make use of them in a better way , it is no other then to bring a harlot out of the stews , into a place not so vile , and to company with the harlot there . Besides , if a mans wife whom her husband had not without just cause suspected for uncleannesse with another man , should get something from that man , and keep it in her bosome , or lay it next her heart , and should tell her husband , true , she keeps such a thing , but she intends no hurt in it , it is a good thing , onely she had it from him , will this think you satisfie any jealous husband ? The Church is the wife of Christ , he is jealous , and he hath cause to be jealous , for he knows while we are in the flesh , we are prone to spirituall filthinesse ; and if we take any ceremony from Popish Idolatry , and joyne with his own Ordinances , and think to put off Christ thus , we intend to make no ill use of it , this will not satisfie Christ . If any say , why should we not retain our liberty if the things be good ? But why shouldst not thou manifest thy hatred to all Idolatry ? And why shouldst not thou tender thy brethren so , as to prevent all scandall that may come by the use of such things ? But you will say , the idolatry of Papists , and the idolatry of Heathen is not the same , there is a great deale of difference between the Heathens in worshipping their Idols , and the Papists worshipping of God , though in a false way ? Indeed the difference seems to be much , but yet the Idolatry is even the same in both ; for you are mistaken , if you think that many of the Heathens worshipped a false God , otherwise then the Papists doe ; though they made stocks and stones their Idols , yet they worshiped the God that was Primum Ens , the first Being , in and through those Idols : Therefore Austin upon Ps . 96. brings in one answering thus , We do not worship a stone , but the vertues , the strength , and the powers of the great God wee worship : And another , one Maximus Madaurensis that Austin speaks of in his 43. Epistle , Who is so madde , or so void of sense that will doubt whether there be more Gods then one ? we invocate the vertues of this one God under many names , diffused through the frame of the whole world . VVhat more faire answer can Papists give for their Idolatry then they did ? Therefore the thing continueth still cleare , that ( with those rules and cautions that have been named ) such things as have been abused to Idolatry , must wholly be cast away ; we must not retaine them , and think to put off God with such distinctions . To what end doe we retaine them ? Is there not sufficient in the worship of God it selfe to make it acceptable to him ? The Sixteenth Lecture . HOSEA 2. 16. 17. 18. And it shall be at that day , saith the Lord , that thou shalt call me us more Baali . For I will take away the names of Baalim out of her mouth , and they shal be no more remembred by their name , &c. And in that day will I make a covenant for them with the beasts of the field , and with the fowles of heaven , and with the creeping things of the ground : and I will break the bow and the sword , and the battell out of the earth , and will make them to lye down safely . TO adde a word or two more about that principall Observation in these words opened the last day ; god would not have his people to worship him in that way that Idolaters worship him ; It hath alwayes beene the care of the Churches of God , to distinguish themselves in wayes of worship from Idolaters . The Manichees were wont to keepe their fasts upon the Lords day , and upon that the Churches did utterly prohibit the keeping of Fasts upon that day , because they would not doe as the Man●chees did . Tertullian saith it is Nefas , a detestable wickednesse to fast on the Lords day . And Ignatius saith ; to fast on the Lords day is to kill Christ . There is a notable and famous Tractate of Tertullians , concerning a Christian souldier being in the Army of the Heathens , when they in honour of their Idol gods did weare upon their heads a coronet of bayes , he tooke his coronet , and instead of waring it upon his head , he held it in his hand , upon this there was a great mutiny in the Army , his fellowes storming at this , that one souldier should be in a different garbe from all the rest , surely this was some nice conscienced souldier , that ( he forsooth ) must not doe as others did , he must hold the coronet of bayes in his hand , whereas others wore it on their heads : The mutining of the souldiers came at length to the Officers of the Army , and upon that this Christian souldier was called to question , why he was in a different kinde of way from his fellowes ; hee gives this answer , I am a Christian , and therefore it doth not beseeme me to doe as these doe , that we are the bayes upon their heads in honour of their Idol gods ; upon that they were all in a mighty rage , against this souldier , and not only himself , but all the Christians that were neere hand were in danger of a great persecution ; Nay , there was a great mutining amongst other Christians , that this one man for such a nicety should indanger not only himself but other Christians . Tertullian therefore writes a whole Tractate to defend this Souldier for this his practice , and he saith of him , that he was holier then his holy brethren , who thought and presumed they might serve two Lords , that they might comply themselves for the avoyding of persecution with the Heathens in the observation of their superstitious way of worship ; and he cryes out in an exclamation , in commendation of this Souldier ; Oh most glorious souldier , who would thus venture himselfe , and not comply with Idolaters ! and whereas some would pleade against him , even Christians , that would rather comply then indure the hazard , and say , where is it written in all the word of God that we should not weare bayes upon our heads ? Tertullian answereth againe , Where is it written that we may doe it ? saith he , we must looke into the Scripture to see what we may doe , and not thinke it enough that the Scripture doth not directly forbid this or that very particular . By this we see that some to avoid trouble and persecution , will as much as ever they can comply with the wayes of Idolatry , yet those that are of a true Christian heroick spirit indeed , will not comply with them , but will rather hazard the sorest persecution . Thus it should be with us , we must not retaine any thing that hath been abused to Idolatry , so as to keep the honourable memoriall of it ; wee must not comply with Idolaters that way ; and especially in regard of that great Idol of the Crosse ( which we instanced in , the last day ) not so far to retaine it as to bring it into the Ordinances of God , the very Sacrament , this puts a great honour upon it ; yea and too too great an honour is put upon it in reserving it in the eminentest place of the City , and to thinke it is an ornament unto it , whereas it is indeed a great disgrace and dishonor , and retaines the memory of your fore-fathers superstition , which is their and your shame . Augustine sayes , it is better to dye with hunger then to eate that which is offered to Idols , so far were these ancients from suiting themselves with Idolaters . Gabriel Biel saith the Church of Rome though meet to use leavened bread , lest in unleavened they should seeme to be like Ebion the Heretick : and Bellarmine would not have Paul called Divus Paulus , but Beatus , because Divus and Diana were the words of the heathen for their gods and goddesses . This promise to take away the names of Baalim comes in upon Gods reconciliation to his people . From whence the next note is , when God is reconciled to his people , there will be a thorow Reformation both outward and inward . Idolatry is cast out not onely from the heart but from the mouth , the taking away the names from their mouthes is a synechdoche , and notheth the uttertaking away of all wayes of Idolatry in the outward practice as well as in the inward affection . The more reconciliation there is with God , the more enmity against Idols and superstitious worship . A fruitfull signe then it is that we in England were never thorowly reconciled unto God , because we never yet have cast off our Idols . As some remaynders of superstition abiding amongst us , did not long since break forth to most horrid and vile ways of false worship , so some remainders of Gods wrath that hath been amongst us , this day breakes forth into a most dreadfull flame . When the people of the Iews shall be called again , and God shall be perfectly reconciled to his Churches , then Idolatry shall be perfectly rejected , and there shall never be so much as mention of their Idols any more , this Text aymes at those times , and shall perfectly be fulfilled at that day , that is the day when God will do it . They shall call me no more Baali , but Ishi , my husband . Thence the note is , When a people is reconciled to God , then they call God theirs , my husband , Isbi . Psal . 16. 3 , 4. David professeth that he would not so much as take up their names into his lips , of which before . Now mark what followeth presently upon that , ver . 5. The Lord ( saith he ) is my portion , when the Prophet is so taken off from Idols , as not to mention the names of Idols , then The Lord is my portion ; So here now Ishi , the Lord is my husband , now can we claim a peculiar interest in God indeed . This is the evil of sin , it hindereth a nation , a soule from clayming this interest in God. God is a blessed and glorious God , yea but what is that to this people , to this apostatizing people ? what is that to this apostatizing soule ? but when the soule comes into God , & comes off throughly to the work of Reformation , then this God is my God , Ishi , my husband . Can any comfort , any profit that you have in ways of sinne countervaile this great loss ? you gaine some contentment in the flesh , some profit in your estate , but you lose the comforts of your interest in God , what is your gaine now ? thinke of this when any temptation comes , I may be yeelding to this temptation , get this contentment to the flesh , but I shall lose this blessed priviledg of clayming an interest in my God , I shall not be able to say , Ishi , my husband . Thirdly , Ishi , The word compared with the former Baali , is a word of more love then the former . Baali is a word , though it signifies my husband too as well as Ishi , but it is husband under the notion of dominion , under the notion of power that causeth feare ; but Ishi is a husband under the notion of love and protection . Hence the note is , God delights to have his people look upon him with love and delight . It is Gods care , and it is his good pleasure that his people should not looke upon him so much as one that hath dominion over them , but that they should look upon him with joy and love , and call him Ishi . The more reconcyled we are unto God , the more have we the use of the loving appellations of God. For a soule to be alwayes under the spirit of bondage , to looke unto God only as the Lord of all , this is not so pleasing to God ; but when you come to have the spirit of adoption , the spirit of grace , an Evangelicall spirit , that you can look upon him with love , and say Ishi , my husband , that title of love and goodnesse , this pleases God at the heart . It is reported of Augustus that he would not have the title of Lord given to him , he refused it , and would rather have his people to looke upon him under the notion of love as a father , rather then to feare him . It were happy that all Princes were of this minde , to desire that their people should rather love them then feare them ! It is a most villainous , wicked , and cursed principle that is in some , who infuse into the spirit of Princes , let your people feare you , no great matter whether they love you or no. Suetonius relateth this passage of Augustus , when a poor man came to present a petition to him with his hands shaking and trembling out of feare , the Emperor was much displeased , and said , It is not fit that any should come with a petition to a King , as if a man were giving meat to an Elephant that is afraid to be destroyed by him . God doth not love the bread of mourners to be offered up in sacrifice , hee loveth to have people come unto him with a holy boldnesse , with a filiall , not with a servile and slavish spirit . Christ laid down his life to redeeme us that wee might serve the Lord without feare . Fourthly , They shall call me Ishi , that is , My strength . The Church should looke upon Christ as the strength of it ; Thy maker is thy husband , and who is he ? The Lord of Hosts is his name , thy redeemer , the God of the whole earth shall he be called . When the people of God can look upon Christ their husband as the Lord of hosts , and their Redeemer as the God of the whole earth , then they finde quiet and satisfaction in their spirits , Psa . 89. 17. God is said to be the glory of the strength of his people ; Though we be weake in regard of our outward helps , let us looke up to Christ our strength , he hath been our strength , he is the glory of it . Fiftly , I will take the names of Baalim out of their mouth , and they shal be no more remembred by their name . Repentance must be proportionable to mens sins . How doth that arise ? before ver . 13. God charged them that they had forgotten him , They went after their lovers and forgat me , saith the Lord. Now saith God , your Idols shall be forgotten , your hearts were so far set upon your idols as you forgat me , now in your repentance your hearts shall be so much upon me as you shall forget your Idols . Those men who have beene so wicked and ungodly heretofore , that they have forgot God , God hath not been in all their thoughts . God expects now from them that their lusts should not be in all their thoughts . It is not enough that you forbeare the act , but you must not roule the sweet of them in your thoughts you must not so much as remember them , except it be with the detestation of them . If there be not a proportion between your repentance & your former sins , you may expect there will be a proportion between Gods wrath and your former sins , Further , They shal not so much as be remembred by their name , they shal not thinke of them . The note from hence is , all superstitious vanities though they may seem for the present never so glorious , yet in time they will vanish and come to nothing , God hath a time to make them so to vanish , as they shall not so much as be thought off . Col. 2. 22. it is said of the rudiments of the world , that are according to the Doctrine of men , they perish in the use , in the present use , that is , they effect nothing that they seeme to be appointed for , there is no good cometh of them for the present , but in the very use they come to nothing ; but time shall be that God will cause them all to perish utterly , and the very remembrance of them shall be taken away . It is true for the present while mens hearts are set upon superstitious wayes , O how glorious are they in their eyes ▪ but these glorious things will come to nothing , whereas those Ordinances of God that seeme to be but meane things , wherein the simplicity of the Gospel appeareth , they shall appeare full of beauty , though for the present they seeme to be darkened , they shall be glorious in the eyes of the Saints to the end of the world . Not long since what a stirre was there about the more then decent , even superstitious adorning of Temples , and building of Altars , and brave Canopies , what sumptuous things and fine knacks had they , and all to set out a pompous superstitious way of worship ? this altogether prevailed ; as for the purity and simplicity of Gods wayes and worship , how was it trampled under feet as an unworthy contemptible thing ? but these things that for a while seemed so glorious , begin to vanish , and wee hope ere long will come to nothing , the very memory of them shall perish , the purity of Gods worship , and the simplicity of the Gospell in Gods Ordinances shall recover their beauty and glory when those braveries shall be no more . 7. A true penitent cannot remember former sinnes without indignation , for so is the meaning of the phrase , they shall not remember . Some of us may remember how we have beene intangled with wayes of false worship , and how we have fullyed and wrung our consciences that way , we said we would yeeld as far as we could , but indeed we yeelded further then wee could , for id possumus qnod jure possumus , we have cause to remember it with shame and confusion of face . Ye old men may remember the sins of your youth , but how can you remember them and speake of them with joy and meryment ? that is an evil , yea almost a desperate signe , do you so remember the sinnes of your youth as to tell tales of the pranckes of your younger dayes with joy ? you are in a high degree left of God , and given up to hardnesse , you shall remember them with shame and indignation , the sweet morsells of former sinnes coming up into remembrance should be bitter and sower unto you . The last note is , the taking off mens hearts from Idolatrous wayes , is a speciall worke of God , I will do it saith God. I will take away the names of Baalim out of their mouthes . Certainly the people in these times hung much upon their false ways of worship , they had many arguments for their way , no question but they had many distinctions to uphold it : but there shall come a day saith the Lord , when I will take away the names out of their mouths . I will stop your mouthes , I will take off your hearts from all those Objections and reasonings you have had to maintaine such ways as those were , I will silence all , & then you shal see evidently & convincingly to your shame that you have been gulled by such vaine & false distinctions , I will take off all those ingagements your hearts were bound in , those being taken off I will soon take you off from all . What a deale of stir hath God ( that we may speake with holy reverence ) to take mens hearts from wayes of false worship ? What a company of distinctions and objections have men , their hearts clinging to them , being very unwilling to be taken off , now & then their consciences are wrung , yet they hold fast , and then conscience hath another wring , and then they another objection , and another distinction , and yet perhaps true grace lyes at the bottome after all this . But God having a love unto them , by some way or other takes off their hearts , if he doth it not by settling truths upon the heart by his Spirit , he will doe it by some notable works o● providence ; we finde it by experience , so long as mens engagements hold , that they cannot enjoy their estates , liberties and comforts , without yeelding to such wayes of superstition , they will not be taken off from them ; they please themselves in this ( and perhaps they speake what they thinke ) that they doe nothing against the light of their consciences ; for why ? their ingagements keepe off the strength of truth , that it comes not to a full conviction of conscience : But when God shall by any worke of his providence take off their hearts from ingagements , and then come and set before them the same truths that formerly he did , they come to see now a convincing evidence in those truths , they stand admiring that they saw it not before , wonder what the matter was , they read such bookes before that had the same arguments against their wayes , and for the truth , but they could not see the strength of them before , now they see it apparently , and they are ashamed of themselves every time they goe into the presence of God , they are confounded in their owne thoughts to thinke , that though truths were so clear before , they did not see them , now they see them with such cleareness , as they thinke they could lay downe their lives for them , whatsoever they suffer for time to come , they can never yield to what they have yeilded to heretofore : What is the matter ? God hath come in with power , God hath taken off their hearts . God attributeth this to himself , I will take the names of Baalim out of their mouthes ; whatsoever they have to say for the keeping of such names and reliques of Idolatry , yet I will come with power upon their hearts and take them out of their mouths . Then indeed when God thus commeth the thing will be done . And let us take heed we doe not stand out too long , lest God come to take off our hearts by some dreadfull way of judgement or other ; It were better our mouths were stopped , our objections silenced , and so all the reliques and remainders of false worship were taken from us thorough the word and Spirit of God : If that will not doe , God will come in some other way , and take the name of Baalim out of our mouths ; And if wee will keepe the memory of superstitious wayes , God may extirpate the memory of them by such wayes as may prove fearfull unto us , and make our hearts to ake , and our eares to tingle . VVee have a notable passage for this , Ezekiel 6. 6. In all your dwelling places saith God , your Cities shall be laid waste , and the high places shall be desolate , ( marke ) that your Altars may be laid waste , and made desolate , and your Idols may be broken and cease , and your Images may be cut down , and your works may be abolished . Observe the Text , In all your dwelling places your Cities shall be laid waste ; to what end ? That your Altars may be laid waste ; So that God will lay waste their Cities for this very end , that hee may lay waste their Altars ; if they will not lay waste their Altars , if they will not abolish their superstitions that are amongst them , God will abolish their Cities , lay waste their Cities that he may lay waste their Altars . God hath begun to put it into the heart of our governors , the Parliament , to abolish many superstitious pictures and crosses in divers places , there is yet one great one remaining , and we hope God upon the same grounds may put into their hearts the abolishing of that . It would be a dreadfull thing unto you , if God now calling upon us to cast out the remainders of all Idolatry & superstition , to lay waste all Idolatrous Pictures , Images and Crosses , if we should not come off , but that God should lay waste your Cities , to lay waste your Altars , Crosses , and reliques of Idolatry : You see God threatneth this here , as if God did not intend so much to lay waste their Cities , hee would preserve them , but because he could not ( that we may speake according to the manner of men ) abolish their Altars , but by laying waste their Cities , saith God , rather then your Altars shall stand , your Cities shall downe . God hath wayes , and most terrible wayes too to take away the memory of superstitious vanities ; Oh that vve had hearts to joyne with God before he cometh in such a dreadfull manner to abolish the memory of such things ! Were our Prelates in their power , such a speech as this could not be borne , when Master Vdal a godly Preacher in Queene Elizabeths dayes , was charged with such an expression . If it come in , ( that is , the true government of Christ as he meaneth , ) by that means that will make all your hearts to ake , blame your selves ; for these words especially was he then condemned to be hanged ; such was the rage and potency of the Prelates in those dayes : What I have said may be against the spirits of such as cleave to superstitious vanities , wee have no cause to feare the exasperating of these , for surely they cannot be more exasperated then they are for the present , and it were a foolish thing to exasperate and provoke God , for feare of further exasperation in those who are for the present exasperated even to the utmost against us . And if they were not , but the exasperation would arise new , what is the exasperation of vile men , to the abiding of the wrath of God upon us ? VERSE , 18. And in that day I will make a Covenant for them with the beasts of the field , and with the fowles of Heaven , and with the creeping things of the ground ; and I will break the bow , and the sword , & the batteli out of the earth , and I will make them to lye downe safely . In this verse God promiseth peace and security ; peace , in regard of their deliverance from the beasts of the field , and fowles of the heaven , & creeping things of the ground ; Peace from the hostility of their adversaries , he will break the bow & the sword , & the battell out of the earth ; And security , they shall lye down safely . I will make a covenant for them with the beasts of the field , &c. Some allegorize upon these words , the beasts of the field , they say are meant cruell wicked men ; the fowles of the ayre , ambitious wicked men that are lofty in their thoughts & counsels ; the creeping things of the ground , subtill adversaries , God here promises , they say , to deliver them from all these . But I desire not to fall upon Allegories , but when there is a necessity , therefore take the words literally , The beasts of the field , fowles of the ayre , and creeping things of the earth . But how may God be said to make a covenant for his people , with the beasts of the field , and the fowles of heaven , and the creeping things of the earth ? For to speake properly , no creature is capable of a Covenant with God , but onely the rationall . The meaning is , there shall be such an establishment of Gods worke upon the beasts and fowles , and creeping things for the good of his Church , as if God had bound them to doe them good by way of Covenant ; that way of God is called making of a Covenant with them ; I will shew it you in another Scripture , Ier. 33. 20. If you can break my covenant of the day , & my covenant of the night , that there should not be day and night in their season , &c. How doth God make a Covenant with the day , and a Covenant with the night ? Thus , there is an establishment of Gods decree upon the day , and upon the night , that it should be in such and such a way from the Creation unto the end of the world , and that establishment is called Gods Covenant ; so Oceolampadius upon my Text , I will order inviolably and unalterably , there shall be an establishing decree upon these creatures that they shall doe you no hurt but good . From hence the notes are these . First , Sin hath caused enmity between man and the creatures ; that is implyed here , I will , saith God , make a Covenant ( upon your reconciliation with me , and your reformation ) with the creatures , now they shall be at peace with you , I will doe it , noting that by our sin there is grown enmity betweene us and Gods creatures . VVe have lost by sin a great part of our dominion that God gave us over his creatures , that was the result from that Image of God that man was created in . Therefore when you see any creature to rebell against you , bee put in minde your rebellion against God. It is true , God hath kept a little of mans dominion over the creature still , to the end that the world and humane society may be preserved . Sometimes you may see a little child driving before him a hundred Oxen or kine this way or that way as he pleaseth , it sheweth that God hath preserved somewhat of mans dominion over the creatures . But a great part is lost by our sin . If we that are the servants of God rebell against him , it is just with God that the creatures that were made to be our servants should rebell against us . And you who are Superiors , when any of your inferiours are stubborne against you , your servants , your children rebellious , raise your hearts up to this meditation , My servant is rebellious against me , how have I been rebellious against the Lord ! my child is stout and stubborn against me , how hath my heart been stout & stubborn against the Lord my Father ! Againe , peace with God brings peace with the creatures . I will make a covenant with the beasts of the field , with the fowles of the ayre , &c. Job 5. 23. you have a strange kind of promise , Thou shalt be in league with the stones of the field , and the beasts of the earth shall be at peace with thee . This goes somewhat deeper then that which is here promised , there shall be a league , not only with the beasts , but with the stones of the field . How in league with the stones of the field ? It is more easie to be understood , to be in league with the beasts of the field , for they are many times hurtfull unto us . But how with the stones of the field ? There are many interpretations given of that place . Only thus much for the present . It was wont to be the way ( and so it is still in many places ) in setting the bounds of their fields , they took stones which they set up for land-marks , and engraved upon their stones , to note to whom this or the other parcell of ground belonged . Now this is the promise , that the Lord would be so gracious to his people , that they should enjoy the bounds of their own habitations securely , they should not be wronged , their land-marks should not be taken away . The stones of the field shal be in league with thee , that is , the stones of the field that stand for your land-marks shall abide , and none shall take them away ; I will preserve your bounds , as if you were in league with the stones that are your land-marks , as if they had agreed with you , and were in covenant that they would undertake to stand , and to set out the bounds of your fields for ever : And the beasts of the field also shall bee usefull to you , and do you no hurt . But you will say , sometimes the beasts of the field doe hurt the Saints , how doth God make a covenant with them ? Many things might be answered to that , vers . 17. of that place of Job he speaks of a time when God corrects and men despise not the chastning of the Almighty , now this in vers . 23. hath reference unto that time : that is , when any do make use of Gods correction , doe not despise it but in a reverent way submit unto Gods hand of correction , then God will make this league with the stones of the field , and with the beasts of the earth . If God hath corrected you with any sicknesse , and you doe not profit by that sickenesse , it is just with God that a beast of the field , that some or other creature should meet you , and be more terrible unto you then ever your sicknesse was . And the promise here in Hosea is to those that are reconciled to God , who have cast off their superstitious vanities : And because wee are not here perfectly reconciled , therefore this promise is not perfectly fulfilled ; But I make no question but the holy Ghost here aymeth at the t●me of the call of the Jews , and then I believe that this promise shall be literally fulfilled , and those other promises in Esay and other places , where God sayes he will make the Lion to eate straw with the Oxe , and the like , and that no venomous creature shall doe them hurt ; When the calling of the Jews shall be , the creatures shall be brought into such a kind of excellency in a manner as they were in Adam in Paradise , they shall come to the primitive institution , the Lion was not at the first creation wont to live upon prey : the creatures were not made to prey one upon another , therefore the promise is that the Lion shall live in that kind of quietnesse as it was to do in Paradise , if man had not sinned ; And at the calling of the Jewes it is very like there shall be such a restitution of all things ( as it is called Acts 3. 21. ) the creatures shall be restored to such a knd of excellency as it had at the first in the Creation : And though in part this may be fulfilled to Gods people , so as the beasts of the field shall do them no hurt , that is , if they prevail against them it shall be for some gracious ends that God aymsat , yet for the literall fulfilling of it it is reserved for that day . Thirdly , VVhen God is reconciled to his people , shall the beasts of the field and the fowles of the ayre , and the creeping things of the earth be at peace with the Saints ? what a wicked and ungodly thing is it then in men , that the more any are reconciled unto God , the greater enemies are they unto them ? God promiseth when his people be reconciled to him , the creature shal be reconciled unto them ; yet thou a vile wretch when thou seest one grow up in the wayes of reconciliation with God , thy enmity increases towards him ; what a horrible wickedness is this ? it is more then bruitish by farre , it is desperate wickednesse ; as it was with those Kings of Canaan , Iosh . 10. 5. assoone as the Gibeonites had made peace with Ioshua , and were in coveuant , the five Kings conspired against them , they lived quietly enough before with them , but when they heard that they had made a covenant with Ioshua , they presently conspired against them ; Thus it is with many at this day , when you had your companions who would drink , swear , and break the Sabbath , and be unclean , and scorn with you , they were good fellowes then , how would you hug and embrace them , and delight in them ? but so soone as God hath wrought upon their hearts , and they are brought from enemies to be reconciled unto God , now your hearts are opposite to them , now you look upon them as your enemies , now you hate them , now your spirits rise against them : O horrible & desperate wickedness ! the Lord rebuke you this day , the Lord strike upon such a heart . Before Saul was converted hewas a man of repute , but assoone as he turned Christian , he was a pestilent , a seditious fellow , Away with such a man from the earth , he is not worthy to live , the next newes wee heare , forty of them conspired together , and bound themselves with an oath , that they would neither eate nor drinke till they had killed him . Fourthly , I will make a Covenant , saith God , you shall have this mercy , and have it by covenant . Mercy that commeth by Covenant is excellent mercy indeed . The same mercy that cometh in by a worke of generall providence is nothing so sweet , nothing so firme as that mercy that cometh in by Covenant . When the Saints enjoy a mercy , though it be outward , they are not so taken with the mercy , for the outward part of it , because they have some comfort and contentment to the outward man by it , but they are taken with it upon this ground , they see even this outward mercy cometh to them by vertue of Gods Covenant with them , that sweetnesse and makes firme the mercy ; when they goe up and down the field and the beasts come not upon them to destroy them , they can looke upon their present safety as enjoying it in the Covenant . You will say , the wicked can walke up and down in the fields , and the beasts not destroy them . Though they doe , yet a godly man hath more sweetnesse in this then he , in that he can see this his safety from the Covenant : when he rides a journey , his beast is not made an instrument of Gods wrath to dash out his braines , perhaps it is so with his wicked neighbour that rides with him , but that from whence the preservation is , is different , it is a mercy to the godly man form the Covenant that God hath made with him , to preserve him in all his wayes , it is but generall providence to the other ; wicked men may have the same mercies for the matter of them that the godly have , yet there is a kernell in the mercy which onely the Saints enjoy . There are two things observable in a mercy comming by Covenant . 1. It is more sweet . 2. More firme . More sweet , Psal . 25. 10. All the paths of the Lord are mercy and truth , to such as keepe his covenant . This is a sweet promise , a soule-satisfying promise , more worth then all the riches of your City , even that one promise ; all the passages of Gods ordinary providence are mercy and truth to those that keepe his Covenant . Marke , perhaps they are mercies to you , there is a generall bounty you have in your ordinary preservation , but they are not Mercy and truth to you , there is the addition , they are Mercy and truth to the godly , that is , they are such mercies as are bound to them by Covenant ; Therein David rejoyceth , therefore saith he in the beginning of the Psalme , I will lift up my heart unto God , as amongst other reasons so for this , that all the paths of God are not onely mercy , but mercy and truth : You have beene preserved , and have had many mercies from God , Well , they are Gods mercies unto you , but are they mercies and truth to you ? that is , Doe they come to you in a way of promise ? Looke to that , there is the sweetnesse of a mercy , and it is a good signe of a gracious heart to looke more to the Originall whence mercy commeth , then to the outward part of the mercy . Secondly , They are more firme , Esay 54. 10. The mountaines shal depart , & the hills be removed , but my kindnesse shall not depart from thee : Why ? For the Covenant of my peace shall not be removed . That mercy that you have , I give it in a way of Covenant , and the hills and mountaines shall depart rather then that kindnesse of mine shall depart . 5. Is it such a blessed thing for God to make a Covenant with the beasts for us ? VVhat a mercy is it then for God to make a Covenant with our soules ? the Covenant that God makes with his people is a Covenant in Christ , there is mercy . It is a very observable place we have , Gen. 17. concerning Abraham , you shal find there that in ten verses of that Chap. God repeateth his Covenant which he made with Abraham , thirteen times , to note thus much , that that was the mercy indeed that must satisfie Abraham in all his troubles , sorrowes , and afflictions : as if God should say , be satisfied with this Abraham , that I have entred into Covenant with thee and thy seed , I am a God in Covenant with thee . And 2 Sam. 23. 5. there is a notable Text , Although ( saith David ) my house be not so with God ( as I desire , as I expect ) yet the Lord hath made me an everlasting Covenant , ordered in all things and sure ; for this is all my salvation , & all my desire , although he make it not to growe . Take this Scripture Christians , take it I say and make use of it in these times of trouble , though things doe not go as you desire yet say as David did , yet the Lord hath made a Covenant with us ordered and sure in all things , ands all our this isalvation and all our desire . 6. Is this a mercy for God to make a Covenant with the beasts for his people ? what a mercy is it then for God to make a Covenant with his Son for his people ? It is that we are to blesse god for , that he will make a Covenant with brute beasts for our good , but that God will make a Covenant with his owne son for our good , for our eternall good . That God should bring the second person in Trinity ; to be the head of the Covenant for us , what a mercy is this ? Tit. 2. 1. the Apostle speaks there of eternall life that was promised before the world began , Why , what promise was there ever made before the world began ? to whom was this promise made ? who was there before the world began for God to make any promise unto ? It was onely the Son of God , the second person in Trinity , and there was a most blessed transaction between God the Father , and God the Son , for our everlasting good before the world began , and upon that dependeth all our salvation and our hope . When we reade the promises of the Gospel that the Lord hath given to us as branches of the Covenant of grace made with us , we are ready to think , we are poore weake creatures , we cannot keepe Covenant with God , we cannot performe the conditions of the Covenant : But Christians know this , thy peace , the salvation of thy soul doth not depend so much upon a Covenant God hath made with thee as upon the Covenant he hath made with his Son , there is the firmenesse , the original , the foundation of all thy good & thy salvation ; and though thou art a poore weake creature that doth not keepe Covenant with the Lord , yet the Son of God hath kept Covenant with the Father , and hath perfectly performed all conditions the Father required of him , the worke hath been perfected by the Son , and here is our comfort . Raise your drooping hearts by this meditation . The second part of this peace , and that is a promise of deliverance from hoftility , from the enemy , I will breake the bow , and the sword , and the battell out of the earth . First , Peace is a great blessing , it is a great mercy to have the bow and the sword broke . It is a part of the Covenant that God makes with his people , to take away the instruments of hostility . Esay 2. 4. God promiseth the breaking of swords into plough-shares and spears in pruning hooks . You finde the contrary when God threatneth judgement to a people , Joel . 3. 10. he threatneth thus , to beate their plongh-shares into swords , and their pruning hooks into spears , then they are in a sad condition . It is a great deale better that their swords should be beaten into plow-shares , then that the plow-shares should be beaten into swords ; that the speares should be made pruning hooks , then that pruning books should be made spears . This peace is a most amiable thing , and lovely in all our eyes , every man desireth it , and God promiseth it unto his people in many places as a most speciall fruite of his love unto them . Esay 33. 10. Jerusalem shall be a quiet habitation , a tabernacle that shal not be taken down ; And Num. 6. 25 , 26. The Lord make his face shine upon thee and be gracious unto thee , the Lord lift up his countenance upon thee and give thee peace ; the shining of Gods face appeareth in giving of peace to a Nation : therefore Jer , 16. 5. where God threatneth the taking away of peace , marke the expression , I have taken away my peace from this people saith the the Lord , even loving kindnesse and mercies . He doth not say I have taken away peace , but I have taken away My peace , and then , when My peace is taken away , I will even take away loving kindnesse and mercies , how easie were it to let out ones selfe in large discourses in the high commendations of peace ? God teaches us in these days to set a high price upon it . We have had a peace a long time and the Lord knowes we have not priced that mercy ; now we know what a sad thing it is to have war in our Gates . And if this be a fruite of Gods Covenant to have peace , we have cause to bewayle the breach of our Covenant . Surely there is a great displeasure of God out against us ; this cup of blood that is prepared and powred forth and drunke in a great measure is a most dreadfull one , our brethren have drunke deepe of it , we have been afraid of it long since , we have heard of rumours of wars , and when the Cup was abroad we prayed that if it were possible it might passe from us , this Cup did passe and went to our brethren in Ireland , and now it is come unto us , the sword hath had its circuite , and now it is come amongst us , and that which is come is exceeding dreadfull , because our wars are not with forreign enemies , but Civill wars the worst of all . I have read in the Romane Chronicles , that in a battell between Sylla and Marius , there was a souldier by accident killed one , not knowing who it was , but after he was slaine he saw it was his brother , presently in anguish of spirit he ran his sword into his owne bowels . This we finde to be ordinary among us , even brother to be against brother , yea son against father of each side at this time . Certainly therefore it is time for us to fall upon our knees , and to be humbled before the Lord for the breach of our peace . Peace is a sweet mercy , therefore pitty it is that it should not be improved , pitty is it that it should be abused . Oh how have we abused our former peace ! God gave us peace before , to what end ? That we might be edifyed and so built up in the feare of God and comfort of the holy Ghost , as Acts 9. 31. it is said , the Churches had rest , & were edifyed , and did walk in the feare of God , and the comforts of the holy Ghost . We have not made this use of the rest God hath been pleased to afford us , but we have growne wanton with our peace , with this precious jewell , and just it is with God to take it from us . And now we doe desire peace , but to what end ? Still ayming at this especially at this that we might have more freedome to satisfie our lusts , and to make provision for the flesh , that is the very ground of most mens desire of peace : whereas if we did understand the true worth of peace indeed , we would thinke it a very low end to desire peace onely to attaine this . Ezek. 37. 26. Marke the promise that is there , I will make a Covenant of peace with them , it shall be an everlasting Covenant with them , and I will place them and multiply them , and will set my sanctuary in the middest of them for evermore . Yea that is a comfortable peace , to be desired indeed , when God by peace shall make way to set his sanctuary amongst us . If we did desire peace upon these termes , we might have peace sooner then we are like to have it . Againe , Peace is sweet , therefore pitty it is that it should be falsifyed . Ps . 28. 3. there are some that speake peace to their neighbours , but mischiefe is in their hearts . It is pitty that such a precious thing as peace should be serviceable to mens lusts , that it should be pretended only to drive on a mischievous designe , Peace is too good to be serviceable to mens base ends . Yet further , Peace is a great blessing , therefore pitty it is that it should not be endeavoured for to the uttermost . Yea cursed be that warre that hath not peace for the end of it , it is that which ought to be as the Embleme of every souldier , to have it written upon his sword , Sic quaerimus Pacem , even thus doe we seek peace . It is a great deale better to have a war that aymes at , and works peace , then to have a peace that ayme● at , and works war. It is true , war produceth very dreadfull effects , but war that shall bring forth peace , is better then peace that produceth war ; and the more we do commend peace , the more doe wee still commend that war that tends to the bringing forth true peace , rather then to seeke for a false peace that will produce most dreadfull war afterwards . Peace is a great blessing from God , but we must take heed we buy it not too deare ; we may say of this as we use to say of Gold , we may buy gold toodear . You will say how is it possible to buy peace at too deare a rate ? Yes , if you give these three things for it , you have but a deare bargain of it . First , if you sell truth for it , selling any truth for peace , you buy peace too deare , for the least truth is better then all the kingdomes of the earth . It first cost the blood of Christ , and since hath beene watered by the blood of thousands of Martyrs . Secondly , if you shall betray those that have beene most active for the publique good , onely that you may be way of complyance provide for your own particular peace , this peace costs you too deare . Thirdly , if you for love of peace shall subject your selves to tyranny or slavery . This is peace at too deare a rate , and the posterity that comes after may curse that basenesse of spirit , and cowardlynesse of the generation that went before , that should buy peace for themselves so deare , as to bring not onely themselves but their posterity under the bondage of miserable tyranny and woefull slavery . It is true , it is a great deale easier for a man that is striving and fighting with his enemy , to lie downe , then to spend his strength with fighting and striving ; he shal not spend so many of his spirits in the act of lying down , why will he we ary himself ? is it not better to lye down upon the soft grasse then to tyre himselfe in combating ? but if this man lye down , he hath his throat cut by his enemy ; hath this man thinke you done wisely for himself ? to prevent trouble , he hath lost his life , If we should be so weary of present troubles as to lye downe to have our throats cut by our adversaries , shall the generation to come commend either our wisdome or valor ? It is true , when a stream runneth strong , you cannot expect to stopp that streame , but there will be some trouble in doing it ; And the truth is , that war that is now o● foot with us , though it hath much trouble in it , and many of our brethren suffer many hard things by it , yet let us know it is but to stop a streame of misery that was comming upon us , and it is better to undergoe some difficulties in the stopping the streame , then to be quiet , and so let it overflow us , till all be past recovery . Our adversaries cry out that we are enemies to peace , and they all for peace , that is they would have us to be so quiet as to let them doe what they list , they would faine have us so to love peace as to give up our strength to them , & to be irrecoverably under their power . Therefore let this generation be wise , for great things depend upon these present affaires of the kingdome , that concerne not only their own outward comfort , but the glory of God , and the good of their posterity to many generations after . I will breake the bow and the sword , &c. It is God that bringeth peace as he pleaseth ; it is a great blessing , and it is Gods peculiar work to bring this blessing . We may treat and treat about peace , but untill God pleaseth to give a commission for peace , it will not be . If God commeth in with exceptions , our treaties and our plots will never do the work . [ I ] will breake the bow , saith God , Jer. 47. 6. O thou sword of the Lord , how long will it be ere thou be quiet ? put up thy selfe into thy scabbard , rest and be still . The sword answers , How can I be quiet seeing the Lord hath given me a charge against Askelon , &c. Till God give a commission to the sword it cannot rest and be still . Job . 34. 29. When he giveth quietnesse , who then can make trouble ? and when he hideth his face , who then can behold him ? whether it be against a nation or a man onely . If he cause trouble , who can make quietnesse ? Oh no , none can . It is God that is to be looked at in breaking of treaties , it is God that hardneth the hearts of men that they shall not make peace untill his time come . Iosh . 11. 19. 20. a most remarkable text . There was not ( saith the text ) a City that made peace with the children of Israel save the inhabitants of Gibeon , for it was of the Lord to harden their hearts that they should come against Israel in battell that they might utterly be destroyed . Of all the Cities in Canaan that Gods people came against , though Gods hand was very remarkable in going along with them , working many miracles for them , yet the Text observeth that there was none that would make peace with them only Gibeon , why ? for was of the Lord to harden their hearts to come against Israel in bat tell that they might utterly be destroyed . God intended to destroy them , therefore God hardened them that they should not make peace with his people . God is the Prince of peace , therefore he disposeth of it as he will ; Many devices may be in the hearts of men , they have many plots and contrivances , but the counsell of the Lord shall stand . Psalm , 29. 11. The Lord sitteth upon the floods , yea the Lord sitteth King for ever . The Lord will give strength to his people , the Lord will blesse his people with peace . That is not the peace for God to blesse his people with , for which they must lay open their throats to be cut , and betray his cause . God need give no strength for this , but Gods way is to give strength to his people , and then to blesse them with peace . We love peace , but let us look to have our peace thorow the strength of God : put those together , the Lord hath promised it , & do you pleade this promise ; though we seem weak , yet the Lord will give his people strength , and so he will blesse his people with peace . We must work our peace by improving Gods strength , not thinke to get peace by a sluggish complyance , & a base unworthy yeelding to our adversaries , Jer. 14 , 19. We looked for peace , it seemes they were in some treaties , and there is no good , for healing , and behold trouble , all their treaties came to nothing : But mark what follows , ver . 20. We acknowledge , O Lord , our wickednes & the iniquity of our fathers ; O Lord we dwell amongst people that are set on fire , we speake of peace , yea when they speake of peace they have mischiefe in their hearts , O Lord our wickednesse and the iniquity of our fathers is great , O Lord pardon our iniquity . This is the way to have peace , to make up our peace with God. Thirdly , Thorough Reformation is the way to bring peace , Mark how it riseth , They shall call me no more Baali , then will I break the bow ; when they shall break of throughly their Idolatry , then will I break the bow & the sword ; so long as they worship false gods , war shall be in their gates ; but when they shall throughly reforme and set up my worship in that way that I wil have , then will I break the bow . That is the way if we could trust God for it . Here is our baseness that we will not trust God in this way of peace , we are ready think that reformation will bring disturbance , O no , reformation is the way to a thorow peace . Let our wisdomes be pure , and then certainly it will be peaceable . We have a most excellent Scripture for this , Isa 33. 20. Jerusalem is there promised to be a quiet habitation , what followeth ? ver . 22. For the Lord is our judge , the Lord is our law-giver , the more we entertain him as judge , & our lawgiver , the more peace we shall have , Isa . 9. 7. Of his government & peace there shal be no end . When the government of Christ commeth , then cometh peace . Zach. 6. 13. He shal rule upon his throne , & be a Priest upon his throne , & the counsel of peace shal be between them both , that is , advance Christ in his Kingly Office as well as in his priestly Office , & then there shal be a counsell of peace . VVhat is the reason that the counsell of peace hath not prevayled to this day ? We have cause to feare they have not beene set betweene both , betweene the Kingly Office and Priestly Office of Christ to advance them both . Esay 32. 17. 18. The works of righteousnesse shal be peace , and the effect of righteousnesse quietnesse , and assurance for ever , and my people shall dwell in a peaceable habitation , and in sure dwellings , and in quiet resting places . See how the Holy Ghost addes one word to another , to shew that true peace is in the wayes of righteousnesse . When mens counsells for peace are crooked counsells , when they seek to company for their own ends , when the honour of God is not their chiefe ayme , it is just with God to dash all their counsels . Esay 59. 8. The way of peace they know not , saith God , there is no judgement in their goings , they have made them crooked paths , whosoever goeth therein shall not know peace . Wee know the going of the serpent is a crooked going , it windeth up and downe ; so many of our Counsellours of peace have gone like the serpent , winding up and down in their carnall policies , they have not studied reformation , but have gone in crooked paths , and therefore they have not brought forth the true effects of peace . But one place more , Jer. 31 , 22. 23 , there the Lord speaks concerning his people , when he was about to deliver them from captivity , How long wilt thou goe about ? that is , you doe not goe on the right way , you compasse about , you have fetches because you meet with difficulties in your way , you thinke by this and the other meanes to avoid troubles , but you shall goe on by a right line : what followeth ? The Lord blesse thee O habitation of justice and mountaine of holynesse ; Apply your counsels that way to be the habitation of justice and the mountaine of holinesse , and the worke is done , execute justice upon Delinquents that are in your power , and set up the Ordinances of God in the right way of worship , this is the way of peace , but all this while you have gone about , Oh that the Lord would deliver our great Councellours from going about . They shall lye down safely . Hence the note is , onely Gods great peace bringeth safety , if we patch up a false peace upon base & unworthy terms , we must not thinke to lye downe safely ; but when God promiseth peace a fruit of the Covenant , then it followes , they shall lye downe safely , And I suppose none of you would have any other peace but such a peace as you may lye down safely , and how is it possible do you think to lye downe safely , except the Lord destroy the evill beasts out of the land ? Levit. 16. 5. I will give peace in your land , and you shall lye down , & none shall make you afraid , and I will rid evil beasts out of the land . What is the end of our war at present , but to rid the evill beasts out of the land , that so we may lye downe safely ? Can you thinke to dwell safely so long as so many evil beasts are in the land , & so exasperated in the highest of all their rage ? Certainly , if a false & a patched up peace should be made , we were in a mosticle & hazardous condition , especially those who have appeared for the Cause of God ; those who have shewed themselves most faithfull , can they lye down safely in the confidence of such a peace ? If you have the hearts of true English-men , you would never desire any other peace , but such as that you and your brethren , your Ministers , & those Worthies in Parliament , and all that have appeared for you , might lie down safely , Acts 27. 13. 14. we reade of a soft south-wind , that did blow , but the Text saith , that not long after there arose a tempestuous wind called Euroclydon . So if we have a false peace , it may blow as that south wind did , softly and still , but certainely the Euroclydon , the most terrible East-wind will follow after . 2 Chron. 20. 30. Jehosaphat was quiet , for his God gave him rest , Suppose we should be quiet , and our owne base counsells and our own complyances should give us rest , our quiet would never be security to us , there will follow dismall things afterward ; but then is a people quiet safely , when we have the peace of God , together with the God of peace . Phil. 4. 7. The peace of God which passeth all understanding , keepe your hearts &c. Then presently , ver . 9. The God of peace shall be with you . We would be loth to be without the God of peace , then let us be loth to have any peace but the peace of God. You all desire Peace , and so the adversary pretendeth ; take heed you be not deluded with vaine words ; that which is your end in your thoughts , is their means to drive on their designes ; and what good will such a peace doe you ? you will be no more secure then you are , nay your danger will be far greater . Lastly , It is Gods owne gift to his people to lie down safely , this is a further blessing then to have the sword and bow broken . We may be delivered from our enemies , but the Lord may afrighten our consciences with visions in the night , hee may terrifie us a thousand wayes , and take away our security , therefore he addeth this , I will breake the bow & the sword , and then I will make thee lye down safely . This is a precious mercy , it is recumbere faciam , in fiducia dormire faciam fiducialiter , I will make them lye down in trust and confidence , that is , to go to bed without any feare of evill to befall us afore morning . We little thinke what a mercy this is , we have many nights lain down safely , and slept quietly , and have risen up comfortably , you have little thought of the giving God the glory of this mercy . Many of our brethren in divers Countries would prize such a mercy now , when they goe to bed they are afraid of every little noice , and can scarce have a nights sleep , but are scared with Alarums . What would some of our brethren give for one nights rest in safety , that when they goe to bed they might say , Well , I hope this night I shall have quiet rest , I shall not be troubled in my sleep . In many places they are faine to sleep in the day , and to watch in the night . It is true , here in the City you can go to bed & sleep quietly , & rise quietly , Oh think of those that want this mercy , and give God the glory of it while you have it . It is a mercy of God , a great priviledge for the Lord to quiet our spirits in these dangerous times , in these trembling dayes , when every mans hands are upon his loyns . Many who are free from their adversaries , yet through the timerousness of their spirits they cannot have one nights quiet , they turmoyle themselves without own thoughts , Oh what will become of us hereafter ? It may be the enemies will come , and we shall lose our lives , and all will be rent-from us , and this makes them that they cannot lye downe safely , though danger be not yet neere them , but when God is pleased to quiet the heart in the most troublesome times of all , that you can lye down securely , this is a choyce mercy , it is a fruite of the Covenant . This mercy the Lord promiseth , Pro. 3. 23. Then shalt thou walke in thy way safely , thy foot shall not stumble . Mark the 24 ver . When thou lyest down thou shalt not be afraid , yea thou shalt lye down , and thy sleepe shall be sweet , be not afraid of sudden feare , for the Lord shall be thy confidence &c. This made good to one in these dayes is a Text worth gold indeed . So Ps . 107. 3. So doth the Lord give his beloved rest ; others they labour and toyle , and they eate the bread of carefulnes and are mightily perplexed , but so doth the Lord give his beloved rest , that is , the Lord takes away care and thought from his beloved , and gives them rest , so that they can lye downe quietly as it were in his bosome . There is a false ●est and security of the wicked when they make a covenant with death and with hell , as Esay 28. 16. Ye have said , we have made a covenant with death & with hel , when the overflowing scourge shal passe through , it shall not come unto us ; for we have made lyes our refuge , and under falshood have we hid our selves . This text is as proper a text to our adversaries as any I know in the Scripture , they promise to themselves all security and safety they make a Covenant with hell & death , but how ? they make lyes their refuge , and under falshood have they hid themselves . Here is a security , and it is by a covenant , with hell & death ; but this Text holds forth a lying down safely by vertue of another Covenant , even the Covenant of God , therefore it followes , ver . 16. Behold I lay in Zion for a foundation , a stone , a tryed stone , aprocious corner stone , a sure foundation , he that believeth shall not make haste . It is an Observable Text concerning our times , there is a security upon that ground , the overflowing scourge will breake down all , but saith God , I lay in Zion for a foundation , a stone , a tryed stone , a precious corner stone , a sure foundation , he that believeth shal not make haste , you may be secure , though your enemies doe vaunt themselves and will boast in their own wayes , they have made a covenant with hell & death , yet for you I lay in Zion a stone , a sure foundation , he that believeth shall not make haste . Although God doth not come with his deliverance for the present , yet you who believe , quiet your selves , & lye downe safely , and do not make haste . A horse saith the Scripture , Psal . 33. 17. is a vaine thing for safety , they trust in the creature , ver . 18. but behold the eye of the Lord is upon them that feare him , they have a greater safety then if they had Troopes of horses lye about them to defend them , and ver . 20. Our soule waiteth for the Lord , he is our help & our shield , so Pro. 21. 31. The horse is prepared against the day of battel , but safety is of the Lord. Let us the resore cry with the Psalmist , Lord lift thou up the light of thy countenance vpon us , then will we lye down in peace & sleep , for thou only makest us dwell in safety . Would you have quiet sleepe in these troublesome times ? make your peace with God , if there be peace within , then you may lye downe safely notwithstanding all the rumors and tumults of war abroad , but if there be no peace in the heart , though you should live to see outward peace , your sins would dog you , they would pursue you , the terrours of the Almighty would be upon you , and you should not have one nights rest . But Lord what is all this except we may have communion with thy selfe , except we may have communion with JESUS CHRIST ? This is the voice of a gracious heart , therefore follows that blessed promise as a further fruite of the Covenant that God would make with his people , saith the Lord , I will betroth thee unto my selfe , I will be yours too , there shall be a most blessed union and conjugall communion between you and me , you shall enjoy me in all the sweetnesse and love that the wife enjoyeth the husband in , though you have most wretchedly departed from me , yet behold , I will betroth you unto me in righteousnesse and in judgement , & in loving kindnesse , and iu mercies . The Seventeenth Lecture . HOSEA 2. 19. 20. And I will betroth thee unto me for ever , yea , I will betroth thee unto me in righteousness , and in judgement , & in loving kindnes , & in mercies . I will even betroth thee unto me in faithfulness , & thou shalt know the Lord. BUt how betroth ? ( this phrase seems to be very strange ) she had been the wife of God before , and was gone a whoring from him ; though God should be reconciled to her , one would have thought it should rather have been , I will receive you againe , No , but I will betroth you . The reason of the phrase is , to note that God would receive her with that love as if she had been a pure virgin , and he would never upbraid her former departing from him : you have beene an adulteresse , beare your shame , but for my own Names sake I will be content to receive you again , No , but I will be●roth you unto me , you shall be as now taken to me , and your sins shall be no more remembred , they shall be as if they had never been committed . When God pardoneth sin he will remember it no more , the Lord will never charge upon sinners their former sins . And if God will not remember the sins of his people , of his repenting people , to charge them upon them , we should not remember them , to up brayd them for them ; what ever they have been before , if now converted , it is too much boldnesse in any of us to upbraid them for any of their former sins . I remember Beza tells of himselfe , that the Papists upbraided him much for the sinnes of his youth , for his lascivious Poems he made before his conversion ; but Beza answers them thus , Hi homines invident mihi graciam divinam , these men envy me the grace of God. I will betroth thee unto mee , yea I will betroth thee unto me , I will even betroth thee unto me . The repenting Church might say , How is it possible that such an adulteresse who hath been so vile , who hath been so impudent in her wayes of forsaking the blessed God , her glorious husband , who hath so long continued in filthy whordoms , should yet expect to receive mercy ? What , this mercy , to be betrothed to God , to be taken as if she were a chast Spouse before him ? Yes saith God , I will do it , and therefore it is repeated three times for the assurance of the humbled repenting Church that God will again betroth himselfe unto her , and that with some Emphasis , I will betroth , yea I will betroth , even I will betroth : there is betrething , and betrothing , and betrothing , and I , and I , and I , shewing how much the heart of God is in this thing . As if God should have said , Though you think such a thing can never be , you see nothing but cause of doubting and discouragement in your selves , but I wil doe it , yea I wil doe it , and it is thus repeated to note also the excellency of the mercy that is in it . It is an excellent mercy indeed that the Lord will take a people into so neer a communion with himselfe , from this mercy floweth most glorious mercies , I will doe this saith God , I need say no more , here is mercy enough to satisfie any soule living , I will doe it , I will doe it , I will doe it . But will this mercy hold ? will it hold ? I have already apostatized from the Lord , I have still an apostatizing heart , & am like to fall off from God againe , and so may condition is like to be worse then ever yet it was ; no saith God , I will betroth you unto my selfe for ever , my heart shal bee for ever towards you , and your heart shall be for ever towards me , there shall never bee any breach of conjugal love and communion betweene you and I any more . But the Lord is a righteous God , he is a God of infinite justice , and I have most fearfully sinned against him , oh the hideous sins that I stand guilty of before him ! how shall that infinite justice of God be satisfied for my sinnes ? this is the care of a repenting heart , not onely to obtain mercy for pardon , but how shall that justice of God be satisfied ? Yes saith God , I will have a way for that too , though you have been very sinful , yet when I receive you to mercy , it shall be in such a way as I will be righteous , as wel as gracious , I wil doe it in righteousnesse , it shal be no dishonour at all to my righteousnesse , that I take you again to my self . And I wil put such a righteous frame into your hearts , that it shal be no scandal unto me before the Nations that I have betrothed such a one as you unto my selfe . But what reason can there possible be that God should do thus ? how can it be imagined that ever the Lord should do such a thing as this ? God hath ten thousand wayes to honour himselfe , though we perish for ever , no people have ever provoked him as wee have done saith this repenting Israel . Well saith GOD , though you know no reason why it should be done , yea indeed though there bee no reason at all in your selves , yet that which I will doe , I will doe it in judgment too , I know a reason why I will do it , it is not a rash thing that I shall do , I will do it in judgement , it is no other thing that now I promise you , but that I have exercised my wisdome about from all eternity , it is not onely a worke of my grace and mercy toward you , but it is a work of my wisdome too , and there will one day appeare a glorious shine of wisdome in this my work of taking you unto my selfe again , I know what I do in it , yea and on your part though hitherto you have seene no such excellency in my wayesto cleave to them , but you have departed from them , and followed other lovers , yet I shall when I come in wayes of mercy to you , convince you so of the vanity of all other things your hearts runne after , and of that fulnesse of good there is in me to satisfie your soules for ever , that you shal see infinite reason to joine your selves unto me in an everlasting covenant . You though there were some more specious shews in wayes of false worship , but when you shal be reconciled , you shal see there is infinite reason in those wayes of worship your soules have heretofore rejected , you shal not only have your affections a little stirred , and have some heate for the present , but that change that shal be in you shal be out of judgment , I will betroth you unto me in judgement , in judgement on my part . I will have reason for what I doe , and in judgement on your part , you shall see reason for what you doe , you shal see so much reason in comming in to me , that you shall admire at the former folly of your hearts , when you departed from me , and sought your comforts else-where . The workings of my heart shal be in judgment toward you , and the workings of your hearts shal be in judgment toward me . But take it at best that my heart doth indeed come in to God , yet I shall remain a poor , sinful , weak creature , there will hang upon me many infirmities that will be grievous to the Spirit of the holy and just God. Well saith God , I will betroth you unto me in loving kindnesse . I wil deale gently and favourably with you , I will not take advantage of your failings and infirmities , I will remember you are but flesh , I will have a tender respect to you . But it may be there will not onely bee some ordinary infirmities which may be grievous enough to the Spirit of God , but I may perhaps fall into grievous offences that will provoke the Spirit of God bitterly against mee , and so I shall fall into as woful , yea worse condition then before : No saith God , I will betroth you unto me in mercy as well as in loving kindnesse , my bowels of mercy shall yearn toward you , not only to passe over lesser infirmities , but to swallow up greater iniquities . And accordingly I will worke in you gracious dispositions of loving kindnesse towards mee , you shall have a most sweete and ingenuous disposition of spirit , you shall doe what you doe for mee out of principles of love , out of abundance of sweetnesse in all your ways , that perverse , surly , crooked , sowr spirit of yours towards me shall be changed into a sweet , gentle , gracious frame . And this sweetenesse and loving kindenesse shall be in you toward one another , you shall have your hearts changed that were so rugged , and so harsh , and peevish toward one another afore , when I am once reconciled unto you , you shall be reconciled one to another . And you shall have bowels of mercy , as my bowels shall yerne towards you , so your bowels shall yern toward me , as it shall pity my soule to see you in misery , so it shall pity your soule to see me dishonoured , and you shall have bowels likewise one toward another , pitying one another , and helping , and relieving one another in the greatest straits , I will betroth you unto me in loving kindnesse and in mercy . But there are many glorious promises that we find God made to his people , surely according to what wee read in his word there are great things to be done for them , shall ever these promises be made good unto us ? If wee may have mercy , though we be never so low , if Gods loving kindnesse be manifested unto ●s in a way of reconciliation , though wee be but hired servants ; if we may be Spouses , though we be kept hardly , it will be well with us : But saith God , there are glorious promises made to the Church , and I will fulfill them all unto you ; though you have departed from me , and provoked me against you , yet upon your returning you shall be so received , as to have interest in all the precious , gracious , glorious promises I have made to the Church , I will make them all good to you , for I will betroth my selfe unto you in faithfulnesse , as well as in mercy ; looke what ever I have said concerning my Church , that is yours to be made good to the uttermost , and there is nothing that can be for your good , that concerns me as a loving husband to doe , but you shall be sure to have it : And as for you , howsoever your hearts have been hitherto unfaithful towards me in departing from me , yet now you shall have put into you a faithful spirit , there shall be faithfulfulnesse on your part as well as on mine , so as my heart shall confide in you , you shall not deale falsely with mee as before ; your hearts shall confide in me , that I will deale faithfully with you , and my heart shall confide in you , that you will deale faithfully with me , so that whatsoever befalls you , yet you shall be faithfull to me , and faithfull one to another , so as your hearts shall trust one in another . I will betroth you unto me in faithfulnesse . And whereas it is but little that yet you have known of me , and this indeed hath been the cause of all your vile departings from mee , because you have not known me the Lord , therefore you shall know the Lord ; know him in another manner then ever yet you knew him ; I will shew my glory to you , I will open my very heart to you , the secret of the Lord shall be with you , you shall all know me , though your parts be but weak and meane , yet you shall be taught of God ; perhaps you may be ignorant of other things , but you shall know the Lord. And as for outward blessings , you shall have your fill of them too , all the creatures shall be moved towards you to comfort you , to succour you ; Let Iezreelory to the corne , the corne shall cry to the earth , and the earth shall heare the corne , the earth shall cry to the heavens , the heavens shall heare the earth , and the heavens shall cry to me , and I will heare the heavens ; There shall be in them , 1 a readinesse to help , 2 a greedinesse to relieve you ; yea 3 a concatenation of them all , 4 and I will joyn them for the good of Iezreel . But yet we are a people scattered about the world , and most of us are consumed : but , I will sow her unto me in the earth ; you were scattered , this is a judgment , but now it is turned to a mercy , your scattering is as seed , you shall fructifie , & encrease abundantly , & so be a blessing to the whole earth . But we have lien underthe curse of God a great while , and have seemed to be rejected ; but saith God , I will have mercy upon her that had not obtained mercy . Lastly , we are a proverb uuto all the world ( as you know the Jewes are ) we are a by-word , a scorn , a reproach amongst all people , they say , God had rejected us , and so trample upon us : No saith God , I will not onely betroth you to my selfe , but it shall appeare to all the world you are my people , I will say to you which were not my people , you are my people ; though you be a people scorned and vilified in the world , yet I will owne you , and it shall appeare so , your low and miserable condition shall not hinder me from saying , you are my people : and as for you , whatsoever you shall meet withall in my wayes , whatsoever you suffer for my worship , though it be scorned and despised in the world , yet you shal own it before the world , and you shall say , Thou art my God. Thus you have a short paraphrase upon this gracious expression of God to his reconciled people . You have here but a flash of this mercie of the Lord to his Saints . But when was all this fulfilled you will say ? or is it to be fulfilled ? to what times does this prophesie refer ? There is in part the making good this prophesie , when ever a soule is brought into the embracing the Gospel ; but the height of this shall be at the calling of the Jewes , then not only the spiritual estate of particular converted soules shal bee thus happy , but the Church state shal bee thus , the visible Church shal be betrothed unto the Lord for ever . We cannot say so of any visible Church here , there is no visible Church but may fall off from the visibility of it , but when God shal bring in the Iewes , they shall never fall off from the visibility of their Church-communion . Revel . 21. 2. seemeth to have reference to this prophesie . And I John saw the holy City , new Jerusalem , coming down from God , prepared as a bride adorned for her husband : And I heard a great voyce out of heaven , saying , Behold the Tabernacle of God is with men , and he will dwell with them , and they shall be his people , and God himself shall be with them , and be their God. This hath almost the same words that wee have here in this prophesie that is to be fulfilled in that glorious Church-estate , that shal bee when God calls home to himselfe his own people : Mark there , God himself shall be with them ; God is always with his people ; but God himselfe , that is , a more especiall , and immediate , and full presence of God shall be with them . But the words must have yet a more full search into them I will betroth thee . ] The Scripture makes much mention of Espousals and of marriage , to expresse the great mysterie of the grace of God to his people . The holy Ghost seems to delight much in this Allegory : there is none more frequent in Scripture then it , which is a very great honour to a married condition : And such ought to be the lives of those that are in a married condition , as much as may be to resemble the blessednesse of the condition of a people reconciled unto God , for in all similitudes there must be something in the thing to resemble that which it is brought for . Married people should so live , as all that behold the sweetnesse , the happinesse of their lives , may be put in mind thereby of that sweetnes & happiness there is in the Churches comunion with Jesus Christ . I appeale to you , are your lives thus ? Now in a married condition there are these foure things most remarkable . First , There is the neerest unino that can be , They two shal be made oneflesh ; this is the power of God in an Ordinance , consider it , two that not perhaps a month before were strangers one to another , never saw the faces one of another , did not know that there were such in the world , if they come under this ordinance , though it be but a civill ordinance , these two shal now be neerer one to another then the child that came out of the fathers loynes , or out of the bowels of the mother , the fruite of the wombe shall not be so neere now to thee , nor must it love thee so much as this party , that not long since it was a meere stranger unto . Whence cometh this but meerly from the power of an Ordinance ? One would thinke that the affection of a mother to the fruite of her own bowels should be more then it were possible for her to have to a stranger she had never seen before in her life ; but it is not so , when a woman cometh under this Ordinance , she now commeth to have ( according to that which is her duty ) more affection to one that was ere while a stranger , then to the child that came forth of her owne bowels , so a man then to one that came out of his owne loynes . Here is the power of Gods Ordinance , though but civill . Now then if an Ordinance of God , though but civill , hath such an efficacy in it , what efficacy have divine Ordinances then ? Certainly they have mighty efficacy upon the soule when they are administred in the way of God. So it is here , I will betroth thee ; as if God should say , thou wast not long since as a stranger unto me , one cast off , yea thou wast as an enemy unto me , but now all the creatures in heaven and in earth , the very Angels themselves shall not be more deare unto me , in a nearer communion then you . This is true of a wretched sinfull creature that hath not onely been as a stranger unto God , but an enemy unto him , he cometh now upon conversion and union with Christ , to be in a nearer conjunction and further communion with God then the very Angels in heaven are in some regard , for they are never said to be the Spouse of the Son of God so as the Saints are . This is the mighty power and love of God in uniting his Saints to his Son. Secondly , There is in nothing in the world that full communication of one creature to another , as there is in that condition of marriage ; so in our spiritual marriage with Christ , there is an inconceiveable communion of one to another ●●ally , God hath two wayes of communication of himselfe , one is infinite , that is to his Son in that inconceivable mysterie of the generation of the Son ; he hath other wayes of communication of himself after a finite manner ; but of al the finite ways this is the greatest , his comunication of himself to his Saints in Christ ; God hath no such comunication of himself to all the creatures , as he hath to his Saints in his Son. God in comparison communicateth little or nothing of himself to the frame of heaven & earth , so as he doth to any one of his Saints . So far as there wants communion in a married estate , so far there wants the blessing of it , it should be full : The communion of God to his Church is a full communion , his wisdome , power , riches are made over to the Saints , the merits , the righteousnesse of Christ are made all over to them . This is mutuall , there is no such communication of any creature to another , as there is of the hearts of the Saints to God ; one converted to God , le ts out his heart into God in a fuller way then any creature can let out it selfe to another creature . Suppose all the creatures in the world should have their beauty and excellency put together in one , and present it self wholly unto thee to be an object of thy delight , yet it were not possible that thou shouldst communicate thy self so fully to it , as thy soul will communicate it selfe to God upon thy conversion . The soul gives up it selfe to God , as into an infinite ocean of goodnesse , so as it would not retaine any thing of its owne , as a drop of water into a tun of wine , it retains not its savour or colour that it had before , but it is as it were turned into wine . And hereby you may know whether your conversion be right yea or no , As that which is Christs cometh to be thine , so that which is thine cometh again to be Christs . My beloved is mine , and I am his , saith the Church . Hence it is that the honour that Christ the Husband hath , reflects upon the Saints ; they shine with the brightnesse of his beams . Esay 43. 4. Since thou wast precious in my sight thou becamest honourable . It was wont to be the custome among the Romanes in their marriages , when the wife was brought home , she had this speech , Where you are Ca●us , I am Caja . How meane soever the woman was before , yet being married , she partakes of the honour of her husband . So the Saints , whatsoever they were before , they are now looked upon as honourable in the eyes of the Father , in the eyes of Christ , in the eyes of the holy Ghost , aud in the eyes of the Angels and the rest of the Saints , who are able to discerne their excellency . And so on the other side , ( for still it is mutuall ) as the Church hath honour from the lustre of the beams of Christs glory , so even the Church is a glory unto Christ . As the Scripture saith , The wife is the glory of the man. ( which place heretofore you have had opened unto you ) so the truth is , the Church is the glory of Christ . How is that ? you will say : It is true , Christ is the glory of the Church , but that the Church who is a company of poore creatures should be the glory of Christ , how can that be ? yes , it is so , Christ accounteth himselfe glorified before the Father , that he hath such a Spouse . Mark that place , 2 Cor. 8. 23. Whether you inquire of Titus , he is my partner , or of our brethren , the messengers of the Churches , the glory of Christ , Titus and the brethren are there called the glory of Christ . And Ephes . 1. 23. the Church is said to be the fulnesse of him that filleth all in all . Howsoever we are to be low in our own eies , yet this is certaine , that it is the glory of Christ before the Father and the blessed Angels , that he hath such a Spouse as he hath . Hence Rev. 21. 9. Come , Behold the Bride , the Lambs wife : The very Angels rejoice in this , O come , behold the Bride , the Lambs wife . Certainly had it not been for the glory of Christ , the Angels would not in such a triumphing way have called all to behold the Bride the Lambs wife . They call to behold the glory of Christ in his Bride , Psalm , 45. the Church is described to be brought in to the King all glorious and beautiful , with ara●ment of needle-worke , &c. Christ rejoyceth , and his very heart even springs againe to present his Church unto his Father , Father here behold my Spouse that I have married unto my selfe . It is true , a childe may sometimes marry against his fathers consent , such a one as he may be ashamed to think of bringing to his fathers house , because she will be a disgrace to his father and his friends : But how mean and sinfull soever we are in our selves , when once we are betrothed unto Christ , he will not thinke it any dishonour , no not before his Father , that he hath such a Spouse , but he will account it his glory before him and the blessed Angels , that he hath betrothed her unto himself . And again , this communion makes the Afflictions of Christ the Churches afflictions , and the afflictions of the Church the afflictions of Christ . There is a communion in evill things as well as in good . The very sins of the Church come to be charged upon Christ ; as a woman that was in debt before maryage and so subject to arrests , if she be once maryed she is no more troubled with the Serjeants , none can arrest her , but all the debts are charged upon the man : so though we be in debt , owing a debt of punishment because we have not payed the debt of obedience , and while we are out of Christ , before this blessed marriage , we may feare every moment to have some sergeant of the Lord upon us to arrest us , to hale us to prison , there to lye untill we have paid the uttermost farthing ; but when the soul is married unto Christ , all debts , all sinnes are all transacted upon Christ , all charged upon him , if the law come now and require satisfaction , if justice comes you may send them unto your husband to answer all , and he will not take it ill . A husband perhaps may take it ill , and thinke he hath brought himself to misery , when arrests come upon him for his wives debts , it may take off his heart from her , but Christ will never love you the worse for all your debts when they are charged upon him , he will willingly satisfie them , and he will rejoyce in the satisfaction of them before his Father . And if there be any affliction befall you , Christ is afflicted with you . Esay 63. 9. In all their afflictions be was afflicted . So on the other side , all the afflictions of Christ are the afflictions of the Church ; doth Christ suffer ? you take it unto heart as if it were your own suffering . Christ takes your sufferings unto heart , as if 〈…〉 his own ; 〈◊〉 And you take the sufferings of Christ unto heart as if they were your owne . Thirdly , In a married condition there is a mutuall intire love . That is , First , loving the person more then what cometh from him . True conjugall love is pitched upon the persons mutually , rather then upon the estates , or any thing they enjoy by the person . So on Christs part , his love is pitched upon the persons of the Saints , Christ loves your persons more then al your actions . It is true , all these gracious actions you doe are lovely before Christ , for they ate the fruits of his spirit , but know , the pitch of Christs love is upon your persons chiefly . So the pitch of your love , if it be a right conjugall love , is upon the person of Christ rather then upon any thing that comes from him ; thou seest him altogether lovely in himselfe , besides those riches of pardon of sin and precious promises that thou enjoyest by him , his person is that which satisfies thy soule . Secondly , In prising the love each of other , true love can be satisfied witht nothing else but love , love villifies every thing that is tendered , except it comes as a fruit of love , and if there be love , a little is highly prized , if it be but a cup of cold water , it is more then a kingdome without it , the giving the body to be burned is nothing without it . I will give you two Scriptures , one wherein the Saints prize Gods love , the other wherein God prizes the Saints love , Psal . 36. 7. How excellent is thy loving kindnesse O God. Psal . 91. 14. Because he hath set his love upon me , therefore will I deli●er him , I will set him on high . Thirdly , This intire love is a love in all conditions . Christ loves his Church in their afflictions as intirely as he doth out of their afflictions . Deut. 32. 10. He found him in a desart land , and in the wast howling wildernesse , he led him about , he instructed him , hee kept him as the apple of his eye . Marke , they were in the wildernesse , in the wast howling wildernesse , yet even there they were deare unto Christ , they were kept as the apple of his eye . The Church on the other side looks upon Christ in his afflictions as lovely still as ever , Cant. 1. 12. A bundle of myrrhe is my well beloved unto me , he shal lie all night betwixt my breasts . Myrrhe is a bitter thing , yet the Church professeth that Christ though bitter in his afflictions , should lie as lovely betweene her breasts as a bundle of myrrhe . I remember Herodotus reports of one Artemesia , Queen of Halicarnaffus ( and Plinie speaks something of her too ) when her husband was dead , she took his ashes & drank it in wine out of respect to him though dead . The Church loveth a crucified Christ as well as a glorified Christ . A most notable example of the love of a Spouse to her husband wee have in our English Chronicle , Elenor the wife of Edward the first , the King having got a wound by a poysoned dagger , she to shew the intire love she bare to her husband , because she thought if the poyson did stay a while in the wound there would be no cure , therefore with her own mouth she sucked out the poyson that was in the wound , & so ventured the losse of her own life to preserve her husbands . Here was love in a Spouse to her husband . There is the like love of the Church unto Christ , if Christ be wounded with the poysonous tongues of ungodly men in reproaches and blasphemies , let him be never so persecuted in the world , they that are truly gracious are willing to suck in that very poyson to themselves , so they may take it from him . Let the reproaches of Christ fall upon me , O let me suffer rather then Christ . It was Ambrose his wish , Oh that God would turne all the adversaries of the Church upon me , that they might turne all their weapons upon me , and satisfie their thirst with my blood , this is the disposition of a true spouse of Christ . The fourth is unspeakable delight ; communion hath delight : the greatest communion , the greatest delight : the greatest delight that God hath is to communicate himselfe , to his Son firstly , and next in letting out himselfe to his Saints . If there be delight in God in letting out himself to the Saints , in reason one would thinke there must needs be delight in the Saints , in letting themselves out into God , in flowing into God. God takes such delight in letting out his mercy to his Saints , as that he was well pleased with the death of his own Son as a meanes conducing thereunto . One would thinke that the death of Christ should be the most abhorring to the heart of God of any thing in the world , yet the Scripture saith God was well pleased with it , Esay , 53. 10. Why was God pleased with it ? Because the Lord saw this was the way for him to communicate himself in the fulnesse of his grace unto his Church , and therefore though it cost him so deare as the death of his own Son , yet he was well pleased with it . And as for Christ , he takes delight in letting out himself to his people , after he had suffered , the Text saith , he was satisfied when he saw of the travell of his soul . As if Christ had said , O let me have a Church to communicate my self unto , though I see it hath cost me my blood , it hath cost me all these fearfull sufferings , yet I am satisfied , I thinke all is well bestowed , so I may have a people to partake of my love and mercy for ever . Cant. 4. 9. Thou hast ravished my heart , my sister , my spouse , thou hast ravished my heart with one of thine eyes . Then for the Saints , the delight they have in communicating themselves unto Christ is unutterable . Stay me with flaeggons , comfort me with apples , for I am sick of love , saith the Church , Cantic , 2. 5. Psal . 63. 5. My soul shall be satisfied with marrow and fatnesse , and my mouth shall praise thee with joyfull lips , when I remember thee upon my bed , and meditate of thee in the night watches . Take this note , the more fully you lay out your selves for Christ , the more comfort you shall have in your lives . Here is the great difference between hypocrites and others in the comfort of their lives . It is impossible that any hypocrite can have that comfort in his life as a gracious heart can have , upon this ground , because a hypocrite reserveth somewhat of himself for something else , there is not a full comunication of himself unto Christ , he alwayes keepes somewhat back and thereby loseth his comfort : But a gracious heart fully letting out himselfe into Christ , from thence cometh the comfort , & sweetness that he hath in the ways of Christ above all hypocrites in the world . Perhaps you thinke that the onely comfort you can have is by receiving some benefit , some mercy from God , you are much mistaken , the comfort of letting your hearts out to God , is a greater comfort then any comfort you have in receiving any thing from God. And now , Oh how happy are they unto whom Christ is thus espoused ! How comfortably may you live being made sure to Christ ? and how comfortably may you die ? It is our work to seeke to draw soules to Christ , to allure soules to be in love with him . Gen. 24. 35. You may see what course Abrahams servant took in drawing the love of Rebekah and her friends to his Masters son , he begins wi●h telling them that he is the servant of Abraham , and that the Lord had blessed his Master greatly , so that he was become great , and that the Lord had given him flocks , and herds , and silver , & gold , and that he had an onely soone that was to be heire of all this . This is the work of Ministers , to tell people what riches of mercy there are in God , and that all the treasures of those infinite riches of the infinite God are in JESUS CHRIST and to be let out in him , this gaines the heart . Yea it is not onely the work of Ministers , but it should be worke of every gracious heart thus to seek to draw souls to Christ , as Rev. 22. 17. not onely the Angels there say Come , but the Bride saith Come , and let him that hea eth say Come , and let him that is a thirst come , and whosoever will let him take the water of life freely . VVere I not in such a way of explication as I am , surely wee could not get off such a point as this ; but that which I shall say for the present is onely this . Know that it is not want of any worth in you that can hinder communion with Jesus Christ , doe not reason in that manner . I am a poor wretched sinfull creature , will ever Christ be married unto me ? It is not thy sinfulnesse , it is not thy base condition that can hinder thee ; Christ never joynes himselfe to any because they are worthy , but he joynes himself to them that they may be worthy , hee makes them to be worthy in joyning himselfe unto them . The woman is not married unto the King , because she is a Queen , but the King maryeth her , to make her a Queene . And further know , if your hearts be not taken with Christ to joyne with him in his holy mariage , if he be not your husband to enjoy conjugall communion with you , he will be your judge to condemn you . But besides this betrothing between Christ & a soul , there is a betrothing between Christ & a visible Church , especially the Church of the Jews when they shall be called . God shal appeare in his glory when this maryage shall be between Christ and the Jewish Church , the King will then be in his Robes , if a man of estate have a sonne to marry , and intends to solemnize the maryage according to his estate , if he have any better cloathes then other , he puts them on that day ; so at the calling of the Jewes , the King of heaven will be in his robes ; God will appeare in a most glorious manner to the world then ehe did since the creation . Yea and you know the Bridegroome too will be very fine upon the mariage day ; so Jesus Christ will then appeare , ( whether personally or otherwise wee say not ) but certainly hee will gloriously appeare at that day . Tit. 2. 15. We looke for the glorious appearance of the great God , and our Saviour jes●s Christ . And 2 Thes . 1. 10. Christ shall come so as to be admired in all them that believe ; the Church likewise shall then be arrayed in her fine cloaths , shee shall be then cloathed in white cleane , and fine li●nen , as it is Rev. 19. 8. all in the righteousness of Christ , the great doctrine of justification by Christ shall be made out full and cleare . Yea and the creatures , her servants , shall put on the best rayment , as in a great marriage the servants in the house have new cloathes , at that day there will be a change in all the creatures , and another kind of face in the world then now there is . Then will be the marriage supper , and happy shall those be that shall then be found worthy to enter into the bed-chamber ; let us now love Christ , let us now cleave to him , let us now suffer for him ; we may perhaps be some of those , who beside our eternal enjoyment of christ in heaven , may enjoy him in this mariage upon the earth . But we must leave this argument , we spake something of it in the end of the first chapter . And I will betroth thee unto me for ever . [ For ever . ] This adds to the mercy to make it glorious , this [ for ever ] makes a misery though never so little , an infinite misery , and a mercy , an infinite mercy . This betrothing for ever , shall be fulfilled in a visible church communion to the Jewes , and in the spirituall communion of Christ with the soule for the present . Of the visible form first . Isa . 60. 15. I will make thee an eternall excellency , a joy of many generations . I thinke this is not onely meant concerning the spiritual happines of the Saints , but that God hath a time to make his visible church to be an eternall excellency , and a joy of many generations , an excellency that shall never have an end . And this their perpetuall condition , their enduring happinesse shall arise from three grounds . First , from the precious foundation that shall be laid upon that Church when it shall be . Isa . 54. 8. With everlasting kindnesse will I have mercy on thee , saith the Lord ; but mark the ground , vers . 11. Behold I lay the foundation with Saphires ; all the rubbish shal be taken away , it shal not be raised upon a rubbish foundation . God will lay the foundations of it with Saphires , and then with everlasting mercy he will embrace that Church . Secondly , that Church shall be in a peaceable condition , no rent , no division there , therefore in a perpetuall condition . Esay 33. 20. A Tabernacle that shall not be taken down , not one of the stakes thereof shall ever be removed : Why ? the very words before shew the reason , Jerusalem shall be a quiet habitation . Thirdly , this Church shall look wholly at Christ as their Judge , and their Law-giver , and their King. Isa . 33. 22. The Lord is our Judge , the Lord is our Law-giver , the Lord is our King. Churches are ready to change , while they mixe other things with the worship of Christ , and the lawes of men with his laws ; but when they can look to him , I mean in that which is spirituall , as their Law-giver , as their Judge , and as their King , then the happinesse of it shall be perpetuall never to cease in this world , the Lord Christ will betroth this Church unto him for ever . Though I verily think the holy Ghost aymeth at this in great part , yet we are to understand this betrothing for ever , further of the spirituall communion the soul hath with Christ . When Christ betroths himselfe unto a soule , it is for ever ; the conjugall love of Christ with a gracious soule shal never be broken : At the first , mans condition was such , as man laid hold upon God , and let goe his hold ; but now God lays hold upon man , and hee will never let goe his . The bond of union in a believer runs through Jesus Christ , it is fastned upon God , and the spirit of God holds the other end of it , and so it can never be broken ; This union is in the Father who hath laid a sure foundation , 2 Tim. 2. 19. Rom. 9. 11. In the Son who loves his to the end , Iohn 13. 1. In the Spirit , who abides in the elect for ever , John 14. 16 , 17. Esay 54. 10. The mountains shall depart , and the hills be removed , but my kindnesse shall not depart from thee , neither shall the covenant of my peace be removed , saith the Lord that hath mercy on thee . My loving kindnesse shall be more stable with thee , and endure longer then the mountains themselves . It is as sure as the ordinances of heaven . Jer. 31. 35 , 36. Thus saith the Lord , which giveth the Sun for a light by day , and the ordinances of the Moon and of the Stars for a light by night , if those ordinances dopart from before mee , then the seed of Israel shall cease , &c. And Jer. 33. 20 , 21. Thus saith the Lord , if you can break my covenant of the day , and my covenant of the night , that there should not be day and night in their season , then may also my covenant be broken with David my servant . You have these three expressions of the abiding of Gods love to his people . 1. The continuance of the mountains . 2. The continuance of the ordinances of heaven and earth . 3. Gods covenant with night and day . Here is the bottome of consolation to the Saints , They shall be kept by the power of God , 1 Pet. 1. 5. As if God should say , the speciall power that I meane to put forth in this world , shall be to uphold the spirits of my Saints , to bring them to salvation , certainly it is so . The speciall work that God hath in this world to exercise his power about , is to keep Christ and the Saints together . Though it be through Gods power that the heavens and the earth be kept up , yet if God must withdraw his power from one , hee would rather withdraw it from upholding heaven and earth , then from upholding one gracious soule that hath union with his Son. The union that is between Christ and his people , it is too neere an union ever to be broken . I remember Luther hath a notable expression about this : As it is impossible for the leaven that is in the dough to be separated from the dough , after it is once mixed , for it turneth the nature of the dough into it selfe ; so it is impossible , saith he , for the Saints ever to be separated from Christ : For Christ is in the Saints as neerly as the leaven in the very dough , so incorporated as that Christ and they are as it were one lump . Christ who came to save that which was lost , will never lose that which he hath saved . Heb. 7. 16. it is said that Christ was made a Priest not after the law of a carnall commandement : That is , he was not made a Priest as the Priests in the law , after a ceremonial way , but after the power of a indissoluble life : Coeli virture , by a celestiall vertue , so Calvin upon the place . The argument why Christs life is indissoluble , rather then the Priests in the law , is because they were made by the power of a carnall commandement , not by a Celestiall power . So those who professe godlinesse according to a carnall comandement in a ceremoniall way , may faile , vanish , and come to nothing in their way of worship as many have done ; but such as are professors of Religion by the vertue of Gods Spirit in them , they have the power of a life indissoluble . There are two soul-staying and soul-satisfying grounds to assure of Christs betrothing himselfe for ever . First , when any soul is taken in to Christ , it hath not onely all the sinnes that it hath committed heretofore pardoned , but there is a pardon laid in for all sin that is to come . There is forgivenesse with thee , Psal . 130. 4. There lyes pardon with God before hand for all that is to come , as well as for that which is past . There is no condemnation unto them which are in Christ Jesus , Rom. 8. 1. That is , there is no instant of time after they are once in Christ Jesus wherein it can be said they are under the sentence of condemnation . Now were it not that there were a pardon laid before-hand for all sin that is to come , there might upon commission of a new sinne be said at that time , that now they are under condemnation ; for if the least sin be not pardoned , there is condemnation : but this cannot be . I do not say the sin is pardoned before it is comitted , for that is a harsh & improper speech : for when we speake of pardoning sin , we speak of a work applyed to the creature , not of that which is in God : a pardon is laid up to be applyed by God when ever the sin is commited , so that there shal be no instant of time wherein the sinner is unpardoned , & so under condemnation . Then surely he can never fall off from Christ ; for what doth endanger the falling off from Christ , but commission of sin ? Christ hath as well merited at the hand of God pardon for any sin that is to come , as he hath merited pardon for sin past ; do not say this opens a gap to licentiousnesse , then we need not care ; No , the grace of Christ hath no such malignity in it , in saying thus thou speakest against thy life . The second soul-staying argument for perseverance is , that perseverance is a spiritual mercy purchased by Christ as well as any grace , Ephes . 1. 3. Blessed be God who hath blessed us with all spiritual blessings in Jesus Christ . Now you will say , Faith is a blessing , and Humility is a blessing , and Joy is a blessing we have in Christ , why is not Perseverance a blessing , a spirituall blessing too ? Christ hath as truely and as really layd down his bloud to purchase the perseverance , as to purchase thy pardon , as to purchase any thing he hath purchased for thee . That which Christ hath laid down his blood to purchase , surely must be had , the purchase of Christs blood shall not be frustrate . Is there any thing thou hast by vertue that purchase ? Thou mayest be as sure of perseverance , for Chrst hath laid down his blood to purchase that also . Christian then satisfie thy soul in this , God gives the comforts in this world , but he gives them not for ever , but when he betrotheth thee unto his Son he betrotheth thee for ever . Perhaps the Lord in mercy hath made thy life here in this thy pilgrimage very comfortable in giving thee a comfortable meet yoke-fellow , in this thy betrothing thou art happy , but this happinesse is not for ever , thou canst looke upon thy yoke-fellow as a mercy of God unto thee , that makes thy pilgrimage sweet , but there must be a dissolution between thee and her ; but thy union with thy Husband Christ is for ever , there shall never be dissolution of that . Perhaps some of you have lost comfortable yoke-fellowes , death hath come and snapt asunder the union between you , and you complain never woman lost such a husband , never man lost such a wife as I have , if you be godly you have a husband that you shall never lose , it is he that will fill up relations , he saith , Thy maker is thy husband , Esay , 54. 5. And further , this is mutuall , I will betroth thee unto me for ever , & I will give thee a heart that thou shalt cleave unto me for ever . This will afford unto us another usefull meditation , viz. When the Lord chooseth any soule to himselfe , as he setteth his own heart for ever upon thar soul , so he gives unto that soul a principle of grace to cleave unto him for ever too ; to give up himselfe unto him in an everlasting covenant , Psal . 119. 112. I have inclyned my heart to performe thy statutes alwayes ; Is not that enough ? No , he must have another word to expresse the thing , alwayes , even to the end . Davids heart was much taken with the statutes of God , O Lord through thy mercy my heart is inclined to keep thy sta●utes , yea and it is so alwayes , yea and it shall be unto the end . It is a kinde of pleonasme , or rather the expression of the fulnesse of his heart , in his resolutions never to depart from God. But what are those riches Christ bestoweth upon his people whom he betrotheth to himself ? the bracelets , and ornaments hee putteth upon their necks and upon their hands are these . I will betroth thee unto me in righteousnesse , and in judgement , & in loving kindnesse , and in mercies , I will ever betroth thee unto me in faithfulnesse , aud thou shalt know the Lord. There is much of the Gospel in this . In righteousnesse . ] This according to some is understood , as opposed to dissimulation , Sine fuco , without any dissembling , in this he assures his people that they shall finde his dealings with them altogether right and equall , and so I expect from you , and will cause it in you , that in your dealings towards me , you be right and equall , there shall be nothing feigned betwixt us , all shall be plain , right , and just . You know there is often a great deale of dissimulation in marriages , great pr●ffers , and promises , and overtures of what one should enjoy in the other , and when they meet not with what they expect , it causes great dissention between them , and makes their lives exceeding uncomfortable ; But now saith God , there shall be no dissimulation betwixt you and me , I will deale with you in the plainnesse of my heart , and you shall deale with mee in the plainnesse of your hearts . So the word [ righteousnesse ] is taken in Scripture , Isa . 48. 1. They make mention of the God of Israel , but not in truth nor in righteousnesse , one expounds the other , I will receive you againe though you have departed from me , in the very integrity of my soule , doe not feare me , doe not suspect me , doe not thinke though he make a shew of love unto mee , and of great favour , yet hee intendeth to cast mee off at last : These are the jealous thoughts of many troubled consciences . Indeed I heare of mercy , and God is working toward me as if he intended mercy to me , but I am afraid he will cast me off in the conclusion ; No saith God , do not feare , do not suspect me , this mercy I offer is bona fide , it is in the very truth of my heart , therefore let there not be such suspitious thoughts betwixt you and me , you may be sure that what is fit and right for you to have from such a husband as I am , that doth belong to such a Spouse as I professe to take you to be , you shall certainly have it , you need not be afraid , for you shall have plain and upright dealing with me . This I take to bee one part though not all of the meaning of the holy Ghost here , I will betroth thee unto me in righteousnesse , that love I professe to you I do not do it to mock you saith God , but I do it in truth . From whence the notes which are very usefull may be , First , guilty hearts are full of suspitions of Gods reall meaning in all his expressions of love and mercy . They judge God by themselves . As they first slight sinne , because they judg of God by themselves , they see not such a dreadful evill in sinne , they think God sees it not : so after they have sinned , they judge of Gods mercy by their own , they think thus ; if any had offended us so as we have offended God , though we might say wee would be reconciled to him , yet wee could not bring our hearts fully to come off to it , something would remain in our hearts , they therefore think so of God , they suspect God that he doth not mean really in his expressions of love and mercy to them . But take heed of this , doe not judge of God by your selves , though you have a base and cruell heart , and cannot be reconciled to those that provoke you ; it is not therefore so with God. There are these two evils in sin , first in the nature of it there is a departing from God ; secondly , it causeth jealousies and suspitions of God , and so hinders the soul from coming unto God again . Secondly , God is very carefull to prevent all these suspitions in the hearts of his people . God desires that you should have good thoughts of him , and this is that we plead with you for , and do often open the riches of Gods grace to this end that you may have good thoughts of God , and to take off your jealousies and suspitions of him , as if there were no reall intention in all the proffers of mercy he makes to you ; doe not thinke that all those riches of Gods grace are meer words , they are certaine intentions of Gods heart towards you . I will betroth thee unto me in righteousness . And for your parts , I will give you a heart , you shall return to mee bona fide , you shal do it in the plainnesse of your hearts . There was a time indeed , as Psal . 78. 34 , 35 , 36. God complained of his people that they sought him and returned unto him , neverthelesse they did flatter with their mouth , and lyed unto him with their tongues , there was no reality in their returning unto him , they made great promises , that whatsoever God should say unto them they would do it , but there was no reality in it , yea but saith God , there shall come a time that you shall have righteous hearts , and that which you promise to me you shall promise really , there shall not be that falsenesse in your hearts , those shews and overtures that were heretofore , but you shall return to me with all your hearts in righteousness . God hath made adoe at first with us to make us believe that he is in good earnest with us in his proffers o● mercy ; and much adoe there is before our hearts can be gotten to work towards God in good earnest . Further note , this is one reason why God doth betroth for ever , because he doth it in the plainnesse of his heart ; and this is also a good reason why the Saints continue for ever , because what they do to God is in the plainness of their hearts . Those who return to God in an hypocriticall way , will fall off , but they that return in uprightenesse will hold constant with him , Prov. 8. 18. it is said of Wisdome , that with her are durable riches and righteousnesse , they are put together ; where there is true righteousnesse in the heart , there is durable riches . But yet there is another thing in this betrothing in righteousnesse , and that I thinke hath more in it then the former . God will be so reconciled to his Church , as yet he will manifest himself to be a righteous God. In the works of the riches of his grace he will manifest the glory of his justice too ; I will doe it in righteousnesse , though indeed the Lord intendeth to glorifie rich grace , yet so as he will declare his righteousnesse to men and Angels , that in this very work of his he shall be acknowledged by them unto all eternity to bee a righteous God ; GOD will make such a way for this his love and goodnesse as that hee will have satisfaction to his justice in it . That place , Rom. 3. 25 , 26. is remarkable for our purpose ; Whom God hath set forth to be a propitiation through faith in his blood ; How ? To declare his righteousness for the remission of sinnes . Marke it , it is not that he had set forth Christ to be a propitiation , to declare his mercy in the forgivenesse of sins ; you will say , What is there in the forgivenesse of sins but only the mercy of God ? Yes , there is somewhat else , there is righteousnesse too , and the Lord doth declare his righteousnesse in the forgivenesse of sins , and therefore it is that he hath set forth Christ to be a propitiation , that hee might declare his righteousnesse . If the Lord should have said but thus , Well , you are great and grievous sinners , I will be content freely to forgive you all your sins , this would have declared Gods mercy , but not his righteousnesse : but now when the Lord hath set forth Christ as a propitiation , and forgiveth sins through the blood of his Son , in this God declareth as much righteousnesse as grace . This text Luther had a great deale of do to understand , and he prayed much before he could get the right meaning of it ; yea it is repeated again , To declare , I say , his righteousnesse , that he might be just , & the justifier of him that believeth in Jesus ; not that he might be mercifull in justifying him that believeth in Jesus , but that he might be just in justifying him that believeth in Jesus . And this is the great mystery of the Gospel , this is that which the Angels pry into , the Saints and Angels shal admire & blesse God to all eternity , for the reconciling riches of mercy , and infinite justice both in one . This was that which set the infinite wisdome of God on worke from all eternity , how to find a way to save sinners , and to be infinitely righteous notwithstanding . If all the Angels in heaven , and all the men in the world had been put to it , to find out a way to answer this question , How shall sin be pardoned , the sinner reconciled unto God , and God glorifie his justice ? they could never have done it , but God in his infinite wisdome hath found out a way to doe it . This cost God dear , it cost him the heart blood of his own Son , and that was a sign that Gods heart was much in it , and indeed we are not Christians untill in some measure we see , and have our hearts taken with the glory of God in this mystery . We must looke at righteousnesse in our reconciliation , as well as to loving kindnesse and mercy . When God is reconciled unto a sinner , there is not only his mercy glorified , but in that way that God hath found out to save a sinner , hee hath the glory of his justice as much , yea more then if the sinner were eternally damned in hell . How is that you will say ? I make that good three ways . First , when God appointed a surety , his Son , and charged his debt upon him , to satisfie his justice , in that God would not spare this Sonne of his the least farthing token , I mean , not the least degree of punishment , he would not remit any thing to his Son , the Lord did hereby shew a stronger intense love unto justice , then if he had damned tenne thousand thousand creatures Suppose a malefactor comes before a Judg , the Judg will not spare the malefactor , but requireth satisfaction to the law , this shews that the Judg loves justice : but if the Iudges own son be a delinquent , and it appears before all the Country that the Iudg will not spare him , but he must satisfie the law to the uttermost , you will say the Iudge doth honour unto justice more in this , then in condemning many other malefactors . So when the Lord shall cast many thousands into hell , there to be tormented for ever , this sheweth that God loveth justice ; but when his own Son shall take our sins upon him , but by imputation , & God will not spare him ( that is the very word of the Scripture , He spared not his own Sonn , saith the Text ) this declareth Gods love to righteousness , more then if all the world had been damned . Secondly , suppose the sinner that is reconciled had been damned , then the justice of God had been but in satisfying , and never had fully been satisfied ; but in that way that God hath found out to save a sinner , his justice is not only satisfying , but it comes to be fully satisfied , to have enough . Now it is a greater honour to justice to be fully satisfied , then to be in satisfying . As for instance , suppose a man be a Creditor to one who owes him five thousand pounds , this man is poore , and the utmost he can pay is but sixe pence , or twelve pence a weeke ; suppose the Creditor should lay him in the Jayle untill he had payed all , this man would be paying , but would never be payed so long as the Debtor liveth ; but if another rich man should come and lay downe five thousand pound at once , the man is presently satisfied . Here is the difference between Gods satisfying his justice upon sinners , and upon Jesus Christ ; God cometh upon the sinner , he requireth the debt of punishment , because he did not pay the debt of obedience , God cast him into prison , the uttermost he can pay is but twelve pence a week as it were , that is but a little , and thereforefore he must be still paying and paying eternally , which is the very ground of their eternall punishment in hell , because they cannot pay enough in any finite time : Now commeth Christ , and he fully payes the debt , so that justice saith it hath enough , it is satisfied , this is the greater glory to the justice of God. Thirdly , If the sinner had been sent down to hell , God had had the glory of his justice passively upon him , hee should be for ever under the power and stroke of justice , but in the mean time the sinner would have hated God for his justice , and hated justice ; but when justice is honoured actively , the sinner falleth down and acknowledgeth himselfe guilty , putteth himselfe under the stroake of Gods justice , and accepteth of the punishment of his iniquity ; now God is delighted more abundantly in this active way of glorifying his justice , then if the sinner should have beene eternally in hell to have satisfied . And now Devils and all wicked men must needs have their mouths st●pped for ever , they cannot cry out of God becanse he will marry himselfe to such sinners , this is mercy , but where is his righteousness ? where is the glory of his justice ? here is an answer to them all , though the Lord setteth his love upon vile sinners , yet so as hee doth it in righteousnesse . And this is a great encouragement to come in and believe , as thus , if the sinner be terrified with the apprehension of his sinne , I see by them the wrath of God is incensed , and infinite justice comes upon mee , and I heare that crying for satisfaction ; this bids the sinner know likewise , that God hath a way to satisfie infinite justice , and yet to save thy soul , he will marry thee unto himself , and yet he will do it in righteousnesse . And this is a mighty helpe unto a sinner against all faylings afterward , a mighty establishment against a thousand objections the sinner may make against himself . Thus we must seek to God when wee seek for reconciliation , to be received againe when wee have departed from him , whatsoever GOD doth for us , hee must doe it in the way of righteousnesse as well as in the way of mercy . Take this with you sinners , if ever you have a pardon sealed unto you , it must be sealed in the Court of justice as well as in the Court of mercy ; therefore thou needest not appeale from the Court of justice to the Mercy-seat , for in that way of the mystery of godliness that there is in God reconciling himselfe unto a sinner , there may be as much comfort in standing before the bar of justice as at the Mercy-seat , that is , by standing there , in and through Christ , for he hath made justice propitious to us , and now it pleadeth to mercy for us . And indeed this is the very work of Faith , to go unto God this way , when by Faith the sinner shall tender up unto God the Father the righteousness of JESUS CHRIST for an atonement and satisfaction for sins ; It brings the comfort of justification this way . When you come to God in any other way but this , it is but in a natural way , not in a true evangelicall way ; A man by nature may know thus much , that when he hath sinned he must seek unto God for mercy , to pardon his sin , or else he is miserable ; but to seek unto God for pardon with a price in our hand , to tender up the merits of Christ for a satisfaction to Divine justice , here is the mystery of faith ; faith is not onely to rely upon Gods mercy for pardon , but this , I see riches of grace in Christ , and Christ my surety hath made an atonement , hath laid down a price , now by faith I tender up this unto God the Father , and by this way I believe my soul shall be accepted in him . What a mighty ingagement is this for us to be righteous with God ? the Lord betrotheth us unto himself in righteousnesse , & we should give up our selves to him in righteousnesse too . O my brethren , take this away with you , what ever you forget ; If the Lord hath thus ingaged himselfe unto us in a way of righteousnesse , and if it hath cost him so deare to shew himself righteous unto us ; what an infinite ingagement is this unto us to be righteous before him , to glorifie Gods righteousnesse in our conversations : I will doe it in righteousnesse , and you shall have such a righteous heart , as you shall never be a dishonour unto me before the people , neither devils nor wicked men shal ever be able to upbraid me , that I set my love upon such creatures as you , because whatsoever you were , you shall be now righteous . When ever we expresse our selves to be the Spouse of Christ , and be unrighteous in our conversations , we upbraid Jesus Christ , wee are a dishonor unto him before Men and Angels ; what you the Spouse of Christ , where is this ornament , this bracelet of righteousnesse then ? whosoever Christ maryeth , he putteth upon them this Jewel of righteousnesse . Hee blasphems Religion which he seems to honour , sayes Cyprian ; who makes not good in his life what he professes . The Eighteenth Lecture . HOSEA 2. 19. — And in judgement , and in loving kindnesse , and in mercies . IN Judgement ] Some Interpreters we finde make this and righteousnesse to be all one , according to that Psal . 33. 6. He loveth righteousnesse and judgement , and so passe it over , but we must not do so , for wee shall finde much of Gods minde in this . Others take judgement , as divers times it is taken in Scripture for sanctification , so they would make this promise sutable to that of Christ , John 16. 10. 11. I will send the Comforter , and he shall convince the world of sin , of righteousnesse , and of judgement ; that righteousnesse there , is the same with that here ; judgement there by many Interpreters is understood of sanctification ; because the Prince of this world is judged , the power of Satan is already broken , he is already cast out of your hearts . And they thinke to strengthen that by that place in Mat. 12. 20. He will not quench the smoaking flaxe , nor breake the bruised reed , till he send forth judgement unto victory , that is , untill he perfect the work of sanctification , that it shall overcome corruption . This text in Matthew is quoted out of Esay , 42. 3. but there we have the words somewhat different , there it is , He shall bring forth judgement unto truth . Now if that should be the meaning , that by judgement is meant sanctification , then we may learne an excellent note from the comparing these two Texts together ; that it is all one to bring judgement , sanctification unto truth , and to bring it unto victory , when it is in truth it will certainly be in victory . But we shall a little more examine this interpretation of Judgement presently ; for my part I do not think that it is meant either in this Text , or in any of the Texts named . Thirdly , I finde others make this [ in judgement ] to be Gods judgement against the adversaries of the Church . I will betroth thee unto me in righteousnesse ; I will deale with you in a way of righteousnesse , and for your adversaries , I will deale with them in a way of judgement , you shall have judgement against them . So I finde Luther carries it , and he saith that judgement here is the second pearle of the Husbands ring he gives to his Spouse , God promiseth to exercise judgement & vengeance against the adversaries of the Church , and so he applyeth it unto those times wherein he lived in Germany ; saith he , for these many years wicked Magistrates have oppressed the Church , and prophane Doctors have corrupted the doctrine of it , but Germany hath seene God judging his adversaries . And if we should understand it in this sense , we have a sutable place , Esay 54. 5. where God telleth his Church , that He that is her maker is her husband , even the Lord of hosts , and her Redeemer the God of the whole earth ; the word there is Vindex , the avenger , he that will avenge thee of thine enemies , is the God of the whole earth , he is thy husband . This might afford a sweet meditation , that the Lord will defend his Church from the rage of adversaries , as the husband will defend his Spouse being betrothed unto her ; the Lord certainly will take a valuable consideration at the hands of the adversaries who wrong his Church . But this I thinke not to be the scope of the place , Another is [ In Judgement ] Though things be now out of order , all things seeme to be in confusion , yet the time is coming when all things shal be ordered in the Church according to equity and right . These two I thinke are meant in the former Texts , I will convince the world of judgement , that is , the world shall be convinced that Christ hath all judgement committed unto him , and he shews it in this , that the Prince of this world is judged ; so that place before in Matthew , I will cause judgment to returne unto victory , that is , though the adversaries of the Church be many , yet he will cause them all to be vanquished , judgement shal conquer over them all ; though there be much opposition and confusion in the Church , yet I will bring all things in the Church to be ordered & composed in a right way according unto equity . That place likewise Esay 4. 4. where the Lord saith , he will purge his Church by the spirit of judge●ent and by the spirit of burning . I know some carry it as if it were meant of the spirit of sanctification , that is as fire to consume lusts , but rather thus , whereas there were such as did oppresse the Church by false judgement , the Lord would cleanse the Church from wrong and oppression by giving a spirit of judgement unto those that should be the Officers of it , and consuming the adversaries . But yet I thinke we have not the full scope of this place . I rather would pitch upon this as that which is more principally intended , though the other may be in some degree included , viz. I will betroth thee unto me in judgment , that is , there shall be a good reason for what I doe , that which I will now do in betrothing thee unto my selfe shall not be out of rashnesse , it shal not be done unadvisedly , but with understanding , with good deliberation , I know what I do in it , and I know what glory I shall have by it , I will do it in judgement . So I finde the word judgement taken in scripture , Jer. 4. 2. Thou shalt sweare in truth , in judgement , and in righteousnesse . In judgement , that is , when you sweare , know it is a worship of God , and you must doe it in judgement , you must not only sweare in truth , that is ; sweare to that which is true , and in righteousnesse , that is , not to the wrong or prejudice of your neighbour , for you may sinne in swearing though you sweare in truth if you have an intent to wrong any ; but thirdly you must sweare in judgment too , you must understand what you doe , that is , when you take an oath you must know that it is not as the Ex Officio was , to sweare to answer to every thing that shall be asked you , but you must understand beforehand what you are to sweare to , and so sweare out of judgement ; So saith God , I will betroth thee unto me in judgement , that is , I have considered what I am to doe in this thing , and I doe it out of judgement . And for your parts when you shal come and close with me , in this blessed conjugall union and communion you shall doe it out of jndgement too ; I will betroth you in judgement so as to make it appeare before the world that I had good reason so to do , and you shall likewise close with me as you shall be able to justifie it before men and Angels , that you had reason for what you did , that it was out of judgement . There is nothing wherein there is more need of judgement then in marriages & contracts ; therefore the heathens were wont to set Mercury , there god of wisdome , by Venus , their goddesse of maryage , to note that there was need of judgement there , yet there is nothing usually in the world undertaken with lesse judgement , with more rashness and inconsideratness then contracts and maryages , which is the reason of the trouble of their lives ever after . But though there be many contracts between men and women that are not out of judgement , yet saith God I will betroth you out of judgment . Christs match with his Church is a match of judgment , Christ considereth of our meanness before he marryeth with us , hee knoweth us fully what we are , he knowes our sinfulness , our wretchedness , he knows , we are in debt before he maryeth us , and whatsoever else we can think might be any hinderance , he knowes as perfectly as ever he shall know it , & yet he goes on . Yea the match between Christ and his Church is that which hath been plotting in Heaven from all eternity , it is not a sudden , rash match , it hath been plotting between the Father and the Son from everlasting . God the Father giveth consent to this match , God the Holy Ghost is sent to draw the hearts of his people to come in and consent to this match , it is a match out of the deepest judgement that ever thing was done . Though it be true that God can see no reason in us why we should be thus united to his Sonne , yet he can see abundance of reason in himself ; therefore the conversion and salvation of a soul , is not only out of Gods mercy , but it is from Gods wisedome too , Hence the Scripture attributes our pr●destination and our calling , unto his wisdome as well as unto the freeness of his grace , as Ephe. 1. 11. Being predestinated according to the purpose of him who worketh all things after the counsell of his own will. Mark , it is not only because God will. I will have mercy because I will have mercy , I will choose such , and I will refuse such , I will do it ; no , but it is after the Cou●sell of his will. We indeed are set upon our wills many times to do a thing & there is no reason for it , there is no counsel of our will ; but God even in this thing that we can see no reason for at all , hee workes according to the counsell of his will ; and Ephe. 3. 10. the Apostle having said before , vers , 8. that he was to preach the unsearchable riches of Christ , he saith , he was to preach it to the intent that now might be made known the manifold wisdome of God. In all things in the Gospel there is a great deale of wisdome ; Vocation is one of the mysteries of the Gospel , and 1 Cor. 1. 24. the Gospel is said to be the power of God and the wisdome of God ; the Apostle there instances in one thing , which one would thinke hath as little reason in it as any thing in the Gospel , that is , the leaving of the rich , wise and noble , the great ones of the world , and calling the poore ; but herein is not onely the power , but the wisdome of God , God doth even this in judgement . And although we can now understand little or nothing of any reason that there can be of Gods choosing us unto himselfe ; yet this will be made known at the great day of judgement . It will be a great part of the glory of that day for the Lord to make known the counsell of his will ; we now know his will , but we shall then know the counsell of his will , and praise him to all eternity for it ; this shall be the glory of the Saints , that they shall see into the counsel● of Gods will in choosing and calling them , and letting others goe . Gods betrothing himselfe thus to his people in judgement , is an especiall reason of the perpetuity of this betrothing . I will betroth thee unto me for ever ; Why ? First , it is in righteousnesse , therefore it will hold . Secondly , it is in judgement , therefore it will hold too . Things that are done rashly will seldome hold , but though we are set upon them for the present , we quickly undoe them afterward , but that which is done in judgment holds ; the calling of a sinner , and uniting him unto Christ , is done in judgement , therefore it will hold , that is the ground of the perseverance of a sinner ; If a man before marryage knoweth perfectly all the faults his wife hath , or ever shall have , and knowes perfectly her estate & all the incumbrances he shall have with her , yet loveth her out of judgement , surely this love will hold : It is so between Christ and his Church ; Christ before he betrotheth his Church , perfectly knowes all the faults the Church hath , or shall have , all the sins that ever she shall commit , and all the incumbrances & dishonor she shal have , yet out of judgement he betroths her to himselfe , therefore surely this will hold . Comfort yourselves with this Christians , though there be many faylings after your comming to Christ , Christ knew them all before you were united to him , yet out of judgement he betrothed himselfe unto you . There must also be judgement on our parts ; I will put into you a judicious heart , to choose me out of judgement . The Saints who choose Christ , know what they doe . They shall be all taught of God ; every one therefore that hath heard , and learned of the Father , commeth unto me ; None cometh unto me , but such as are taught of God , who heare & learne of the Father , they come to me out of judgement ; I know whom I have loved , saith Paul , and so may every Christian say . They doe not come to imbrace Christ and his wayes out of novelty , because they are new things , ●o not any truth of Christ , out of meer novelty as many doe , and so vanish to nothing ; though it is true , there is alwayes some new excellency in Christ , I meane newly revealed ; Christ hath alwayes something that is further revealed more then we knew before , and delightful I he is in that regard , if we love novelty : It is not a sufficient plea against any truth , because it is now revealed , and was not known before ; 2 Pet. 1. 12. Be established in the present truth : though truths be from the beginning yet there are present truths in regard of manifestation : But the Saints must not therefore receive them , meerly because they are new to them , neither must any reject them , because they are but now cleared , whereas before they lay in the darke ; but all out of judgement , we must examine them , when any truth is presented , though it seems new , because you heard not of it before , reject it not upon that , neither imbrace it upon that , but try it , and when you are convinced , then out of judgement imbrace it . Neither must the Saints follow God , or any way of truth , meerly from the example of others , but out of their owne judgements . Perhaps you see such and such , of whom you have a reverent esteeme , and that justly doe thus and thus ; I confesse , that is enough to put you upon examining , to bethinke your selves , surely there is something in it , or else it is not like they would do it , but that must not be the onely reason , but if upon examination you finde it to be good , then embrace it out of judgement , never rest untill you come to that that the men of Samaria said to the woman , Now we believe that this is the Messiah , not because of thy sayings , because you told us so , but we have heard him our selves , and we know that he is indeed the Saviour of the world . At the first they came to Christ upon her relation , but they did not beleeve in Christ , but upon seeing and hearing Christ themselves . You may come to examine the wayes , the truthes of God upon the relation and example of others , but you must not ingage your hearts in them untill you see the reality of them your selves . Thirdly , you must embrace Christ and his wayes out of judgement , not out of sudden flashes of affection ; suddeu flashes goe out as soone as they come . You have a notable example for this , Luke 14. 15. Happy are they that may eate bread in the Kingdome of God : O this is blessed doctrine indeed . But by that which followes we may finde that they were such as presently went to their Farmes and to their Oxen , and prized them before Christ , & refused to come to the supper . Sudden flashes there were in thsoe that cryed Hosanna , Hosanna , but presently they cryed , Crucifie him , crucifie him . Josh . 24. 19. the people seemed to be moved with sudden affections , they would serve the Lord , yea that they would , but they considered not what they said , You cannot serve the Lord , saith Joshua to them . So Deut. 5. 27. All that the Lord our God hath said unto us , that will we do , but presently , saith God , Oh that there were such a heart in this people to doe it ! The truth is , they know not what they say , they have sudden affections , but they will quickly vanish . We must choose Christ out of judgment . Againe , Not choose him out of mistakes , we must understand who hee is . we must sit downe and cast with our selves afore-hand what we are like to suffer in his wayes . Compare for this Cant. 5. 9. with the beginning of Chap. 6. What is the●● loved , say they , more then another beloved ? Let us know what thy beloved is : Then the Church falls a commending her beloved , and in the beginning of Chap. 6. Whither is thy beloved gone ? whither is thy beloved turned a side ? that we may seeke him with thee , that he may be our beloved too . Nor out of by-ends , but out of a right knowledge of the excellencies of Christ , having our judgments overcome that way . We must not choose any truth or wayes of God , because the times favour that way ; we have now a company of Parliament converts , who were formerly Prelaticall and ceremoniall ; they see how the times sway , this is not out of judgment . Every Christian should be a judicious Christian . Those adorn Religion , they are an honour to Christ . As the more deliberation and judgement there is in sin , the worse it is ; so the more deliberation , the more judgment there is in godlinesse , the better it is . When a soule chooseth Christ and his ways upon this , Oh I see a beauty in the Lord Jesus that I never see afore , I see him to be the character , and the ingraven form of the image of the Father , in him dwels all treasures , the very God-head dwells in him bodily , he is the most precious among ten thousand , the wayes of God are holy and righteous . Here is the rule of eternall life , here lyes the happinesse of the rationall creature , these are the wayes that my soule closeth with , and shall cleave to for ever , whatsoever I suffer in them , for I see the excellency , the beauty , the equity , the glory of them , the Lord is worthy of all honour from all his creatures . This is a choise will hold . The world thinks the Saints are giddy headed people , why ? because they cannot see any reason for what they doe ; they cannot see bottome enough in reason of such forwardnesse , and strictnesse , and zeale as there is in them ; they think they do in calescere in re frigida , that they are very hot about a very poore , sorry , cold businesse , and therefore they count their ways folly ; that any man will do , when he seeth another do a thing that he understands not the reason of , hee will either suspect his owne judgment , or otherwise think the man foolish ; now wicked men are too proud to suspect their own judgments , to think their own reason folly , therefore they count the wayes of God foolishnesse . They looke upon Gods wayes at a distance , therefore they thinke there is no reason for them . It is reported of that notable Convert Marcus Galeasius , that hee was converted by a sermon of Peter Martyrs , coming to heare him he expressed the excellencies of Gods wayes , and the mistakes of the world in this similitude , the men of the world ( saith he ) mistake Gods wayes , as if a man see a company of Musitians that were playing and dancing according to the most exactest rules of art , if he see them at a distance , he sees them skippiug and leaping up and down as a company of madde men , and wonders what they mean ; but when he comes nearer and hears the melodious sound , and observes how all their motions are directed according to rules of art , then he begins to change his thoughts ; so the men of the world look upon the wayes of God , and upon the Saints at a distance , and 〈◊〉 thinke the motions of Gods people and their ways are madness , but when they come nearer , and observe the exactnesse of the rule they walk by , and the wisedome of God that appears in them , they change their judgments , and begin then to thinke , surely there is something in them more then they thought . This similitude God blessed , so as it was the means to convert that Noble man , and made him leave all his possessions in Italie , and come to Geneva , where hee became such a pattern of self-deny all , as scarce any age ever had the like , God working by such a thing upon his heart . When you come neer Gods ways and see them indeed , you will see infinite reason in them , and charge your selves o● infinite folly that you should have such low thoughts of them as you have had . This is the reason why the Saints hold on in their ways . This judgment is as the ballast of the ship ; many hurry on in a kind of profession of Religion , and the truth is , they know not what they do , nor what they professe , if there be any new opinion , I mean not only in regard of new manifestation , but in regard of the thing it selfe , presently they follow it that they may be counted some body , and seem to go beyond other men , they are as a ship that moveth a mighty pace , all the sails are up , and winds blow fairely , but there is no ballast , so the ship topples up and downe , but never comes to the end of the voyage . Lu. 8. 6. when the seed was sown in the stony ground , it sprung up presently , but because there wanted moisture at the root , it withered away . This judgment is as moysture at the roote , that is the reason that Mat. 13. 21. we read of the stony ground , that notwithstanding it received the word with joy , yet when persecution arose because of the word , by and by they were offended , they were mightily taken with the wayes of God , with the great things of the Gospel at first , but not having judgment as soon as suffering came , by and by they were offended . If times should change again , & the adversaries should prevaile ( which God forbid ) we shal soon have experience enough of abundance of professors who have chosen the ways of God not out of judgment by and by they will be offended . Thirdly , I will betroth thee unto me in loving kindnesse . Though Christ takes us to himself , and will not cast us off , yet he may see such failings and frailties in us , as we may be grievous and burthensome unto his spirit , we shall enjoy but little sweetness in our comunion together through the wretchednesse of our hearts . No saith Christ , I will betroth you unto mee in loving kindnesse , my heart and wayes toward you shall be full of gentlenesse and sweetnesse , and I will put such a frame likewise into your hearts both toward me and toward one another , you shall have hearts full of sweetness and gentleness . The Scripture speaks much of the loving kindness of God to his people in Christ , Eph. 2. 7. The exceeding riches of his grace in his kindnesse towards us in Christ Jesus . Tit. 3. 4. After the kindness & love of God our Saviour toward man appeared . You have these Epithets given unto Gods kindness ; great kindeness . Neh. 9. 17. Marvellous kindness . Psal . 31. 21. Mercifull kindness , 〈◊〉 19. 2. Everlasting kindness , Isa . 54. 8. Excellent ●ving kindnes , Ps . 〈…〉 Multitude of loving kindness , Isa . 63. 7. Thus full is is the Scripture of the loving kindness of God towards us in Christ . To open it a little , The kindnesse of God unto us in Christ , consisteth . First , In the freenesse of Gods goodnesse : kindnesse in a friend is seene much in this , when he doth a thing meerely out of his good nature freely , when he doth a kindnesse so as he doth not burthen it , he doth not upbraid his friend with what he hath done ; as he expects little before , he will not be mercenary , so when he hath done he doth not upbraid him with it , he expects not such great matters in lieu and recompence of what he hath done , as shall make his kindness worth nothing , but leaves it to his friend to answer him in a way of kindness again as he thinks fit . Thus it is in all Gods dealings with us , he looks not for much at our hands before , but that he doth is out of his free grace , he doth not upbraid us , he giveth liberally and upbraideth no man , he doth not burthen his kindnesse towards us . But doth not God burthen his kindnesse ? he requireth that we should give up our selves unto him , and serve him , and suffer for him , for his kindness ; I answer , there is nothing God requireth in lieu of all his kindness to us , but it is another kindness in God to enable us to do it , and a further kindness in him to accept it at our hands when we have done it , therefore his kindness is free . The Heathens were wont to paint their Gratiae , their goddesses of kindness naked , upon this ground , because all workes of kindnesse should be free , not clogged , not burthened , The blessing of the Lord maketh rich , and he addeth no sorrow with it . The kindnesses of this world are ordinarily clogged , scarce worth the having ; the kindn●ss of God not so , it is free . Again , kindness consists much in this , in our tenderness over those wee shew kindnesse to . The kindness of God in Christ is much this way , in tendring our weaknesse and dealing with us in all his wayes accordingly , Esay , 57. 16. I will not contend for ever , why ? lest the spirit which I have made should faile before me . He considereth our weakness . Psal . 103. 13. The Lord knoweth our frame , and heremembreth we are but dust , Isa . 40. 11. Christ gathers the Lambes with his arme , and carryeth them in his bosome , and gently leadeth those that are with young . Esay , 63. 9. In his clememcie ( so the word is ) he redeemed them , and he bare them , and carried them alwayes , continually . Kindnes makes one long-suffering , he bare them always and continually . It is kindness for the Man to consider all the weaknesses of the wife , and to deale with her in a loving way accordingly , tendring her good ; this is the kindness of Christ to his Church , Thirdly , kindness is passing by all infirmities , not taking advantages against his people because of them . Christ takes notice of all the good that is in his people though it be never so little , but that which is a weaknesse he will passe it by ; The Lord is not strict to marke what we doe amisse , but the Lord is strict to mark what we do well , if there be never so little good in an action that hath an hundred weaknesses in it , Christ will mark what good there is in it , and passe by all the weaknesses . 〈◊〉 commended by Pecer for calling her husband Lord , in that speech of hers there was nothing but sin saving that word , and the holy Ghost takes notice of that one word and le ts goe all the other . If thou aymest at serving Christ , and canst appeale to him that thy heart istowards him , to honour him as he requireth , I say though there be an hundred weaknessesin an action , if there bee but one thing good , all thy weaknesses are past by , that one good thing is taken notice of . Again , kindnes is in a loving , sweet , amiable carriage toward one another in our converse one with another . Oh the sweet , amiable carriage that is in Christ toward his people ! and that Christ expects likewise from them to him again . If you reade the book of the Canticles you shall finde what sweet , amiable expressions there are between Christ and his Church , what rebounding as it were there is of love and kindnesse one to another , Thy love is better then wine , saith the Church unto Christ ; and , thy love is better then wine , saith Christ unto his Church , This ought to be between man & wife , this is kindness , 1 Cor. 13. 4. Love is there said to be kinde , there is no morosity in love , but all a sweetnesse . Fiftly , kindness is in easiness to be entreated , Jam. 3. 17. Peaceable , gentle , and easie to be intreated . Thus in Christ , he is easie to be intreated by his Church , and the Church should easily be intreated , and indeed is : when the hearts of the Saints are right , there is an ingenuity in them , they are soone moved to any service Christ calleth for . Lastly , kindnesse is compassionate , sensible of all sufferings , so Christ and his Saints mutually . Such loving kindnes as this should be in all maryage-communion ; where there is this loving kindness there is a sweet conjugall communion indeed , and so far as any of this is wanting , so farre the blessing of a maryage estate is wanting ; one reason amongst others , why God makes so much use of this Allegory of marryage , to expresse so great a mystery of godliness , as the union betweene Christ and his Church , is to teach those that are married to live so together , as they may express all that excellency of communion that is between Christ and his Saints . Now I put it to you who are in a marryed condition , is there this loving-kindnes in you , as may hold forth the loving kindnes that is between Christ and his Spouse ? so far as you want in your endeavours after this , so far there is an evil ; when you goe home take this lesson with you , labour to walke so in that way of loving kindnes one to another , as that you may expresse how the loving kindness of Christ is unto your soules . There are many frailties in the man , in the wife , but not so many frailties as there are in you in reference to Christ , Christ beareth with more frailties in you then you can beare with in your wife ; Christ is not morose to you , he is not a bitter husband to you . I have read of Monicha , Austins Mother , who lived neare a Heathen , and she had a very ill husband , of a very crosse and perverse disposition ; this Heathen comes to her one time , and asked her , how cometh it to passe that you and your husband live so well together as you doe ? We know your husband is of a very crosse and perverse disposition , yet we see nothing but there is a great deale of sweetness and love between you ; it is not so with us , we cannot doe so for our lives : Monicha gives her this answer , It may be , saith she , when your husband is untoward & perverse , you are perverse again , and you give crosse answers ; but Christian Religion teacheth me otherwise , when my husband cometh home and is in passion , Christian Religion teacheth me to be as loving , and dutifull , & amiable to him as I can , and so I have gained the heart of my husband . It were a happy thing if all women would take this home with them , and learne this of Monicha Austins Mother , And so on the other side , the man in reference to his wife , this loving kindness is between Christ & his Spouse , let it appeare between man & wise who professe their interest in Christ . And this loving kindness of Christ , Oh how should it draw our hearts unto him ! What more prevalent meanes to draw then loving kindnesse ? Marke that Scripture to shew the power of loving kidndnes , 2 Chron. 10. 7. If thou be kinde unto this people , they will be thy servants for ever , say those ancient Counsellors of Rehoboam , who gave him wise counsell . If this be the way to draw the heart , surely Christ must need have our hearts , he is not a bloody husband , but a kind husband to us , let us then be his servants for ever . It were a good lesson for all Governors to consider of , that it is kindness that drawes the hearts of people , they rule not over beasts , but men , therefore if they would rule over them with comfort and safety to themselves , they should rule with kindness . Hence Cant. 4. 10. it is said , that the Charet of Solomon was paved with love for the daughters of Jerusalem , it is an expression of Solomons gentleness toward the people of Jerusalem . I have read of Alexander Severus , when his Mother and his wife would put him upon harsh wayes , & objected to him his mildness & yeildablenesse to his subjects , saying , you have made your power more contemptible by your kindnes & yeelding so much to your people ; his answer was , At securiorem , but more secure and lasting . Certainly , it would be so if Magistrates had not the evill councell of young Gallants ; if they would follow the counsel of the ancient Counsellors , to be kind to the people , they would be their servants for ever , their peace and safety would be more then now it is . Christ expects loving kindnesse from you unto himselfe , & loloving kindnes likewise one unto another . First . Christ expects you should be full of loving kindnes unto him . O blessed Redeemer , what is that we should do , that we should be kind to the ! The very phrase seems to be too low for Christ , that Christ should look for our kindnesse . Yes , Christ lookes for our kindnesse , and he prizeth it dearely , nothing in the world is prized by Christ more then your kindness ; as a kinde husband prizeth nothing in the world more in his wife then kindness . But how kind to Christ ? Thus , you are kinde to him first , when you cleave to him , when he standeth in most need of you , 2 Sam. 16. 17. saith 〈…〉 Hoshi , is this thy kindnesse to thy friend ? that is , what is thy friend in danger , and hath now need of thee , and doest thou now come from him ? Is this thy kindnes to thy friend ? thou shouldst now be with thy friend in time of his danger and need , and that is kindnesse . So I say , there are some times wherein Christ standeth in more need of us then at other , in suffering times , in times wherein his cause hath many enemies , and our help is called for , if we should now forsake him in times of suffering , may not Christ , nay may not the holy Angels and Saints say , Is this your kindnesse to your friend ? To come to Christ when you have need of him is not so much kindness , but to come to him when he hath need of you , this is kindnesse . Secondly , It is kindnes when we serve Christ in the midst of difficulties . You have a notable place for this , Jer. 2. 2. I remember the kindnesse of thy youth , the love of thine espousals , when thou wentest after me in the wildernesse . To be willing to follow Christ in the wilderness , that is kindness . Christ doth not account it kindnes for us to serve him when we may prosper in his service , when serving of Christ may stand with our own ends , when we may keepe our shops , our lands and possessions , when there is no difficulty at all in his service , what great kindnes is this ? but when for love to the Ordinances , & the truths of Christ , you are willing to follow Christ even in the wildernes , this is kindnes & Christ will account it so ; however some men have thought that they have shewen great kindness unto Christ , in that they have staid & born the brunt ; but how have they born it ? by yeilding to superstitious vanities , & being ceremoniall and Prelaticall ; it will be found that those who have been willing to follow Christ in the wilderness , our of love to him , his truth and ordinances , that Christ will remember that for kindnes . Thirdly , For young people to give up their young yeares to Christ , that is kindnes , by way of allusion at least we may make use of that Scripture , I remember the kindnesse of thy youth ; when thy bones are full of marrow , and when the world seekes to draw thy heart after the vanities of it , when thou mayest have thy delights and pleasures in the flesh to the full ; if then thou beest willing to deny all , and to give up thy selfe to Christ , this is loving kindnesse ; one that is old may possibly come to heaven upon repentance , but what kindness is that for him , who hath nigh worn out all his dayes and strength in wayes of sinne , in the pleasures of the flesh , and now when he is going out of the world , and can have no more pleasure in his sin , he comes to Christ for mercy ; what kindnes is here ? here is selfe-love indeed , but little kindness . Secondly , loving kindnes one to another , I wil bet roth thee unto me in loving kindness ; I will put such a spirit into you of loving kindnes unto your brethren , as I have towards you ; The word that is here used for loving kindness , you shall finde it often in Scripture used for Saints ; those who are called godly , and Saints in your bookes , in the Hebrew are called kinde ones , it may be as well translated kinde ones ; as thus , Psal . 4. 3. Know ye that the Lord hath set apart him that is godly for himself : It is a most admirable text , as if he should say , there are multitudes in the world , and all the world is mine , but I looke upon all the world , as refuse in comparison of some few , onely here is a godly man , a godly woman , I set them , apart , they are for my self ; but the note I observe is , That that word which in your books is godly , in the Hebrew is the kind one , the Lord hath set apart those that are kinde , those that are of sweet , gentle , kinde dispositions . And Psal . 16 , 10. Not suffer thy holy one to see corruption , the Hebrew is , not suffer thy kinde one to see corruption , it comes from the same roote with that that here is translated loving kindnesse . So Psal . 149. 1. Sing his praise in the congregation of the Saints , of the kind ones ; and the same word againe is verse 5. Let the Saints be so full in glory ; the Saints , that is , the kind ones ; noting what an ingredient loving kindness is to Saint-ship , unto godlinesse ; therefore it is not enough for Christians to be godly , but they must be kinde one unto another too . 2 Pet. 1. 3. And to godlinesse adde brotherly kindeness : You thinke you are godly , but you are of a rugged rough-hewen disposition , surly , cruell , rigid , severe , froward , perverse , know here is the exhortation unto you this day from God , if you will approve your selves to be godly , Adde to your godlinesse brotherly kindnesse , except you adde that , you can have little comfort in your godlines . It is impossible indeed for one that hath the power of godliness , and hath the true comfort and sweetnes of it , to be of a rugged and rigid disposition ; the reason is , because there is that infinite satisfaction as I may so say , that such a heart hath in God , that there is nothing that can come from without that can make such a heart bitter , there is so much sweetnes in that satisfaction that it hath in God , as the Scripture saith , A good man is satisfied from himselfe ; that it is not all the bitterness from without that can sowre such a heart . It is true indeed if you have a vessel of honey , a little gall will make all that bitter , but if you have a vessel of gall , a little honey will not make that sweet : But in grace it is thus , though there be a great deale of bitterness in a man or womans nature , though they be of rugged natures , yet a drop of true saving grace will sweeten all that gall ; and if they be once gracious , a great deale of gall & bitternes that cometh from without will not imbitter that sweetnes . I beseech you take notice of this one note , when God hath left men they grow more passionate and froward then they were before ; And I verily beleeve this is one ground of the frowardnesse , and passionateness that is in professors , they have made breaches between God and their soules , their peace between God and them is broken , and nothing then can give them content . As usually it is when a man hath been abroad and others have angred him , when his inward comfort and joy is gone , then every thing angreth him , he is pleased with nothing , his countenance is lowring , and he is unto ward to every one , and why ? because he hath lost the sweetnesse of his own spirit , and now nothing from without can content him , all seems bitter unto him ; but let this man goe abroad and things fall out well , it may be he gets a good bargaine , hears of excellent good newes ; that his goods are come home safely , hee can now beare a hundred times as much as before , and you can scarce anger him , why ? because his heart is filled with sweetness . So it is here , let a Christian walke close with God , keepe his peace with him , he will have so much sweetnes in his heart that it is not easie to put him into any passion of frowardnes , why ? he hath enough within , perhaps his friend , his wife , his neighbour is crosse , but his Christ is loving ; though there be little comfort in my maryage with one who is so peevish & perverse , yet in my marryage with Christ there is satisfaction enough . But when the heart hath made breaches between Christ and it self , when it hath lost the sweetness in that marryage communion , no marvaile if there be no sweetnes in the other maryage communion . I will give you a notable example of this , a man who before his breach with God was of a sweet disposition , was very milde and loving , but after he was of a perverse , and cruell , & froward disposition . The example is Saul ; When he was first chosen King , how humble was he ? hee acknowledges himself to be of the least of the tribes of Israel , and the least in his fathers house , and when some raysed npon him and said , shal this man raigne over us ? the text saith , he held his peace ; and when others would have had them killed , no , by no means they must not be slain , because God had shewen him mercy in a late victory given him . But after Saul had fallen from God , O the rugged , perverse , cruell disposition of his spirit then , even to Jonathan his son , a gracious , loving , sweet natured son , then Thou sonne of the perverse , rebellious woman , he cast a jave lin at him to kill him , then the fourescore & five Priests in the City of Nob must be all slain in his anger ; What was the bottome of all this ? It was the breach between God and his owne spirit . Oh take heed of breaches between God and you , for they will put you into a perverse and froward disposition . What doth a man get by the want of this kindness and loving disposition . He troubleth himself , Pro. 11. 17. He that is cruell , of a sharsh disposition , troubleth his own flesh . I appeale to you , do you not lose much of the sweetness of your lives , you that are in a marryed condition ? What comfort have you in your lives when there is nothing but snarling at , and crossing one another ? you trouble your own house , and your own flesh ; whereas if there were loving kindness betwixt you , it would sweeten all your comforts , yea all your crosses . The loving kindnes of a man or a woman is the beauty of a man or woman . Pro 19. 2. The kindnes of a man , is the desire of a man , saith the text there ; And of a woman , Pro. 31. 29. among other high comendations of a vertuous woman who had done excellently , this is one , The law of kindnes is in her tongue , kindnes giveth a law to her mouth , many women have no law given to their mouthes , their tongues are lawlesse when they are angred , but a woman that is commended of God , the Text saith , the law of kindnes is in her tongue , the kindnes of her heart doth give a law to her mouth , & that is the honor of a woman . To be of a sweet , kind disposition is an exceeding beauty , it addes a glorious lustre to any man living . Isa . 40. 6. All flesh is grasse , and all the goodlinesse thereof is as the flower of the field , the word is in the originall 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 the same word that is here , that word which signifyeth kindnesse is translated there goodlinesse , noting that kindnesse is the goodlinesse of the spirit of a man or woman ; what the beauty of a flower is to a flower , that is kindnesse to a man or woman , it is goodlinesse . Just in Martyr in his Apologie for the Christians faith , that their adversaries did hate only the name of a Christian , they had nothing against the Christians , and what is there saith he in the name ? Nothing but that which is good and lovely enough , now saith he , it is not just to hate that which is profitable & gentle , for so the word signifyeth , they are Christians , what if you call them Christiani , of 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 mild , profitable ? for to they are indeed , they are profitable , gentle , sweet natured people , and why should you hate those people ? 2 Cor. 6. 6. Being filled with the holy Ghost , and kindness , are put together , there is much of the holy Ghost where there is much kindnesse . The spirit of Christ is a spirit of kindnesse and gentleness , and though you may thinke that your rigidness and roughnesse may argue bravenesse of spirit in you ( for it is ordinary for froward and passionate people to thinke they have more brave spirits then others ) but know that your spirits are more base and vile then the spirits of others . I will give you only one Text for that , Psal . 45. 4. it is said of Christ , In thy majesty ride prosperously , because of truth and meeknesse ; now the same word that is here translated meeknesse , 2 Sam. 22. 26. is gentlenesse ; thy gentlenesse hath made me great ; Mark , gentlenesse , magnificence or majesty may stand together , yea Christ is magnificent and full of majesty in the gentlenesse , and quietness of his spirit , ride on in thy majesty prosperously because of thy meeknesse , because of thy gentleness . Would you have a brave spirit like unto the spirit of Christ in his glory ? let your spirits be gentle , sweet , and loving spirits . I will betroth thee unto me in mercies . Loving kindnesse and mercies may seem in the reading as if they were the same , but there is a great deale of difference in them . And in mercies . ] Viscera , so the word is , I will betroth thee unto my self in bowels . Not the fruit only , but the root ; not the water onely , but the fountaine ; thou shalt have the fountain of all good , my very bowels , from whence flowes all mercies . Wherefore Christians you need not fear the want of the supply of mercies , why ? because you have the fountaine of mercies from whence they spring . God may grant to wicked men many fruits of his bounty and goodnesse ; yea but they have not his bowels , they have not the fountain , the root from whence all springs . Here is the happinesse of a Christian , not onely to have much good from God , but to have those very bowels from whence that good cometh . Here lies the dignity , the glory of a Christian , the vastnesse of his riches . Christians , you shall not therefore neede feare to give up any mercy God calls for at your hands , for you have got the bowels of mercy to be yours , you have got the spring-head of all mercy to bee yours , whence you may fetch all seasonable , all sutable mercies when you will. Here is the reason why many who are carnall , when they have got a mercy from God , they keepe it so sure , they are afraid to lose it , they are loth to part with it , though God calleth for it againe . Why ? because they are not acquainted with the true priviledg of a Christian , they do not know what it is to possesse the bowels of God , they know not where to goe for more , therefore they are loth to part with what they have . Now the Saints can part with any thing for God , let him take what he will have , let him strip me as naked as hee pleaseth , I have the bowels of God , I have the spring-head to goe to for all mercies again . It is true , if there were want of water , and you had only water in a cistern , if your neighbour came to borrow of you , you would be loth to lend any ; but if you have a well-spring , and a fountaine that never was dry , and never will be drawn dry , is it a great matter for you to lend water then ? So , it is true , the men of the world are needy creatures , they have something indeed , but it is as water in a cistern , when that is gone , they think that all is gone , therefore they will not lend it , no not unto God himselfe when hee calls for it . But the Saints have the bowels of mercy , the spring-head of all mercy , therefore whatsoever God calls for , they presently say , Lord here take all , I know where to have it againe , and much more then that . This makes godly men so ingenuous for God , and so free hearted to him and to his servants . I will berroth thee unto me in mercies . A little to search into these mercies : It is an argument that hath much depth in it . First , they are a depth swallowing up the greatest evill of sin or affliction . If you should poure a paile of water upon the planchers in your chamber , it seems a great deale of water , like a little sea ; but take a paile of water , and poure it into the deep Ocean , and it is there swallowed up , and appears nothing . Our afflictions that are upon us , and our sinnes , in themselves appear great , but when they come to be swallowed up in these bowels , in these depths of Gods mercies , in which he betrotheth himself unto us , they are as nothing in comparison . Therefore the Scripture hath such strange expressions of the wonderfulness of Gods mercies to his people in Christ . The Scripture hath three notable words to expresse the fulnesse of Gods mercies in Christ . The first is Ephes . 2. 7. the abundant riches of his grace , the riches that are cast in , over and above . The second word is in Rom. 5. 20. The grace of God hath been more then exceeding , there is a second 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 . And a third is , 1 Tim. 1. 14. The grace of God was exceeding abundant , it had a pleonasme asore , yea but here is a super-pleonasme . Here are three 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 put upon Gods mercy , to note the riches of the glory , and depth of the mercy of God in Christ . Secondly , consider these mercies in the effects . They set on worke all that is in God for the good of his people . If there be any thing that Gods wisedome , or power , that all that blessednesse that is in GOD can doe , for the bowels of mercy yerne toward thee , and they will set all on worke for thy good if thou beest in Christ . Yea further , know that it is such mercy as it is the great designe , yea the greatest designe that ever God had from all eternity to honour this his mercy , to set out the infinite glory and the riches of this his mercy in Christ . Certainly God had great designs in doing such great things as he hath done , but above all the designs that ever God had in all his works , that is the chief , to glorifie the riches of his mercy in Christ . They are indeed bowels of mercy , when they are such as in the glory of which God attaineth his great designe in making the world , he would never have made the world , had it not been for that . Fourthly , They are the heart-blood mercies of JESUS CHRIST , they are such mercies as are worth all the blood of Christ , and his blood was certainely most precious blood , when Christ sees any converted and brought home to him , to be made a subject of Gods mercy , hee thinks his blood well bestowed . The text saith , he shall see his seed , and his soule shall be satisfied . I have enough for all the blood I shedde . Indeed I came from my Father , and was made a servant , a curse , I suffered the wrath of my Father , my blood was shed , but if this be the fruit of it , that such and such a soule shall have this mercy , I have enough for all my blood , I am glad that ever I shed it . Yea God the Father is well pleased with it , he thinks the blood of Christ but a valuable price to purchase such mercies as these . As for all the glory of the world God can give that unto men that he hates , to reprobates , as Luther saith of the whole Turkish Empire , it is but a crum of bread that the Master of the house throws to his dogs ; but when it cometh to his mercies in Christ , they are such as are worth the blood of his Sonne , that must goe to be the price for the purchasing of them . 6. They are such mercies as God bestows on purpose that hee may declare to all eternity before Angels and all his Saints , what God is able to doe for a creature , to what a height of excellency and glory these infinite mercies are able to raise a poor creature unto . These must needs be great . Yea they are such as must be the object for Angels and Saints to admire at , adore and magnifie the name of God for , everlastingly . What shall I say more in naming any fruits of these mercies ? Such mercies as whereas before sin made thee to be the object of Gods hatred , it makes thee now to be an object of his pity , God takes the rise from thy sin to shew his mercy . Take heed of abusing it , it is childrens bread , that which I now speak , let us not sinne that grace may abound , God sorbid ; seeing thy sin cannot overcome Gods goodnesse , let Gods goodness overcome thy sin ; Only let us learn to admire at these riches of mercy in Christ , and let us exercise much faith about them . Certainely wee should thrive in godlinesse much more if we did exercise faith in the bowels of God in Christ . Those kind of fruits , as your Apricocks and your May-cherries , that grow up by a wall in the open sun-shine , and have the hot reflection of the sun , come to be sooner ripe & have more sweetness then those that grow in shady places ; your grasse you know that is shaded by the trees , in Orchards , is sowre ; So that fruit that Christians bring forth under discouragements and dispairing thoughts , is very sowre ; some things they do conscience hales them to duties , but alas it is sowre fruit ; though it be better to doe what conscience requires then not , for we must not go against conscience , but to doe it meerly because conscience hales to it , it is but sowre grasse . But when a Christian can by Faith set himselfe before the Sun-shine of these mercies of God in Christ , and continually live in the midst of the lustre of the grace of God in Christ , he groweth ripe sooner , and his fruit is sweeter . You may know whether it be the Sun of righteousnesse or no that you are set in , Doth your fruit grow ripe ? and is it sweet fruit ? Those who talke of mercy and of Christ , who have the name of Christ in their mouths , but is their fruit sowr , does nothing come from them but crabbed fruit ? these men are not in the Sun , they are blinde , they cannot see the Sun , they are but in a light of their own fancy , and in a heat of their own making . Ephes . 3. 18. 19. The Apostle prayes for the Ephesians , that they may be able to comprehend , what is the bredth , and length , and depth , & height of the riches of God in Christ : Marke , the Phylosophers tells us but of three demensions , but here are foure ; but what is the fruit of this ? And that you may know the love of Christ that passeth knowledge , that ye might be filled with all the fulnesse of God ; Here is the effect of it , when we come to know the bredth , and length , and depth , and height of Gods love , and have that knowledge by the Spirit of God that passeth all naturall knowledg , then we come to be filled with all the fulnesse of God. Here now is a glorious Christian , a Christian filled with all the fulnesse of God. VVould you be so ? Learne then to exercise faith much about the infinite riches of the mercy of God in Christ , this will fill you with all the fulness of God , you complain of barrennes and emptines in your hearts and lives , it is because you exercise so little Faith in these mercies of God in Christ . God betrotheth his Church unto himselfe in mercies , in bowels . Let us learne to pleade these mercies before the Lord , to pleade them when we are in any strait , to pleade with God for bowels , Esay , 63. 15. Looke downe from heaven , and behold from the habitation of thy holi esse and thy glory , where is thy zeale , and thy strength , the sounding of the bowels , and of thy mercies towards us ? are they restrained ? Lord , hast thou not said that thou wilt betroth thy Church unto thy self in bowels ? Where is the sounding of thy bowels ? Lord let us have these bowels of thine in which thou hast betrothed us through Christ . Oh what confusion will there be one day unto those that shall misse of all these mercies of God , in which the Lord hath betrothed himselfe unto his Church ! VVhat , will you content your selves now with crums that God casteth to dogs , with the fruits of Gods generall bounty and patience , when you heare of such glorious mercies as are in Jesus Christ ? These things should so raise our hearts , that wee should protest as Luther did , I protest saith hee , God shall not put mee off with these things of the world , with my portion here . Oh no , the Lord hath shewed me greater riches , though I be unworthy of any , yet I know his mercy is free , why then should not I have my portion in these glorious things ? Come in then ▪ come in oh sinfull soule , be in love with Jesus Christ , & the ways of godlinesse , know that all these mercies are tendred unto thy soule this day , to break thy heart , even that hard heart of thine , and they are as free for thee as for any . There is nothing more pleasing unto God then for thee to be taken with the glory of the riches of his mercy . Thou canst perform no duty so acceptable unto God as this , to have thy heart break upon the codsideration of his bowels , to have thy bowels yern again , and to come in and close with this infinite , rich , and glorious grace of his . Which if thou dost , know that the first moment thou art united to Christ , thou dost lanch into the infinite Ocean of mercy , now thou breathest in the element of mercy , now thou livest upon nothing but mercy . Is it so ? Then know God expects a mercifull disposition from thee too . God betrotheth thee in righteousnesse , and putteth righteousnesse into thee ; in judgment , and gives thee judgment too ; in loving kindnesse , and makes thee loving and kind likewise ; in mercies , and putteth mercies into thee , bowels into thee also . First , toward himself . Why ? can we be mercifull unto God ? what good can wee doe to God ? God expects you should have bowels toward him ; How ? Thus , Dost thou see the name of this blessed God thy husband to be dishonoured in the world ? Oh thy bowels should yern , thou shouldst have bowels working now . What , doth God look upon thee in thy blood , in thy misery , and doth his bowels yern toward thee ? Canst thou look upon God in his dishonour , and his cause trampled under foot , and do not thy bowels yern toward him ? It should pitie thy soule to see this blessed God to be so much dishonoured in the world as he is , to see that there are so few in the world that love and feare this God , who is thy God , and hath done thee so much good . VVhat , is there any good cause up wherein the name of God should be honoured ? Thy bowels should work presently toward it . Cant. 5. 4. My beloved put his hand by the hole of the doore , and my bowels were moved for him . VVhen Christ did but begin to open a door , put but in his hand , when there was any good but beginning to be done ; Oh my bowels were moved , saith the Church , and I could never be at quiet untill I had enquired after , yea and found my beloved . Is there any beginning to let in Christ into the Kingdome in his government amongst us ? Dowe feele him putting in his hand at the door ? ( certainly if we be skilled in the way of Christ , we may seele him putting his hand in at the door ) Oh that our bowels would yern , and cause our hearts to flow to the bo●ntisulnesse of the Lord , and joyn with Christ in that blessed work of his that he is about . Our bowels must also be toward the Saints . It is extreamely against the spirit of Christ for a Christian to be hard-hearted toward his brethren , Christ expects bowels ; And as you would account it ●grievous misery to have your bowels rotten , to have diseases in your bowels , know it is as great an evill to have your hearts unmercifull , that is , to have a disease in your bowels , so the Scripture phrase is , Amos 1. 11. He cast off all pitie , & his anger did tear perpetually , so it is in your bookes ; but the words in the Originall are , And corrupted his bowels ; their bowels were corrupted when they were not pittiful toward their brethren in misery . It was a grievous condition that Iehoram was in , 2 Chron. 21. 15. when his bowels came forth by reason of his disease . An unmercifull heart is a worse disease then this . What are wee , and who are we that Gods mercies should be shewen towards us ? why not our mercies toward our brethren then ? The Scripture calleth exceedingly for mercy in the Saints toward one another . Col. 3. 17. Put on as the Elect of God bowels of mercy and kindness . VVould you have an argument unto your selves that you are Gods Elect ? put on bowels then . Never was there time since you lived , or your forefathers lived , wherein God called for bowels more then now . Do you hear of the miseries of your brethren , their goods spoiled , houses burnt , wives , children ravished , themselves imprisoned , their bodies wounded , and yet no bowels all this while ; what , you hard-hearted in the meane time ? Are you the elect of God ? why I pray you , what is your flesh more then the flesh of others ? what are your comforts more then the comforts of others ? why should you lie soft and safe more then others ? Is there any such difference betwixt you and your brethren , that they should be in misery , and you must be pampered , and scarce feele the very wind to blow on you , and yet in the meane time your hearts hardned towards them ? It is true , God it is that hath made the difference you will say ; and God may make a difference where he pleaseth . I grant it , and it would not grieve God to make such a difference betweene you and them , if he saw your bowels yern towards them . But if God layes such afflictions upon your brethren who are better then you , and have done more for him then ever you have done , and yet you are hard-hearted , this will grieve God at the heart . 1 Ioh. 3. 17. He that seeth his brother hath need , and shuiteth up his bowels of compassion from him , how dwelleth the love of God in him ? If thou hast bowels , and shuttest them up from thy brother , surely thou never knewest what the love of God meant . Mark that place ▪ 2 Cor. 9. 8. what encouraging expressions we have unto bounty and liberality toward our brethren , for the opening our bowels toward them . God is able to make all grace abound towards you , that yee alwayes having all sufficiency in all things , may abound to every good worke . There is no such text in all the book of God to encourage to the opening our bowels to the administring to the necessities of the Saints , for that Scripture is brought to that end , that part of the Chapter is spent about that argument , if you believe any thing in the Scripture , if you have any experience of Gods bowels towards you , read over this , and see if it will not open your bowels . God is able to make all grace abound ; Grace abound , that is something ; all grace , that is more ; but all kinde of grace , that is more then that , & that from Gods almighty power too ; but that is not enough , Marke , that you always having all sufficiency in all things . It were enough one would think God should say , you shall have all things needfull , no you shall have all things , If he had said thus , you shall have sufficiency in that you have , that is something , no but you shall have all things , and sufficiency in all things , and all sufficiency in all things . Yea but I may want before I dye ? No , you shall have alwayes all sufficiency in all thiugs . Well , this may make us doe something , you may thinke if I do this good work , and another , and another , I hope I do my part , no but you must abound , you must doe every good work and abound in every good work . But I shall draw my self dry if I be so abundant in every good work ; No , God is able to make all grace in you to abound towards you , that you alwayes having all sufficiency in all things may abound ; You shall never be drawn dry , for you have the bowels of Gods mercy . Alexander giving large gifts , some asked him , what will you keepe for your selfe ? Spes , saith he , I will keepe Hope for my self , I will make account that still there are greater things comming for me ; what he had he gave away , because he had a spirit that looked after and hoped for great things to come ; certainly Christians have that left , alwayes they have hope , they may expect great things , why ? because they have the bowels of Gods mercies to be theirs . One thing more ( to knit all together ) all righteousnesse , all judgement , all loving kindnesse , all mercies comes from God through our union with Christ . Though God be an infinite ocean of goodnesse , yet we can expect nothing from God but through our union with Christ , Man hath forfeited the title he had to all the goodness of God , and now the title upon which he is to hold all his good , it is the union he hath with this husband , with JESUS CHRIST by vertue of this marryage . Whensoever Faith goes to heaven for any good from God , it goeth to heaven by vertue of this right , and obtaineth all the good it gets from God by vertue of that conjugall union the soul hath with JESUS CHRIST . How blessed then was the time when Christ was first revealed to the Church ! Cant. 3. 11. Behold King Solomon with the Crown where with his mother crowned in the day of his espousals , in the day of the gladnesse of his heart , These things opened in our espousals with Christ , must needes make that day the day of the gladnes of our hearts . O how deare should this Christ thy husband be unto thee ! how happy , when thou shalt have full communion with him ! when Jsaac met Rebekka , he carryed her into his mothers tent : when the Lord Christ shall meet his spouse , he will carry her into his Fathers pillace . Behold the riches , the glory of my Father whom I told you of , these are all yours in my right eternally . The Nineteenth Lecture . HOSEA 2. 20. 21. 22. 23 , I will even betroth thee unto me in faithfulnesse , and thou shalt know the Lord. And it shall come to passe in that day , I will heare saith the Lord , I will heare the heavens , and they shall heare the earth . And the earth shall heare the corne , and the wine , and the oyle , and they shall heare Iezreel . And I will sowe her unto me in the earth , and I will have mercy upon her that had not obtained mercy , and I will say to them which were not my people , Thou art my people , and they shall say , Thou art my God. I will even betroth thee unto me in faithfulnesse . Here is a third betrothing , I will betroth , I will betroth , I will betroth , Jerome hath a note upon that and saith , that it is thrice repeated to note three several times of Gods betrothing himselfe unto his people . 1. VVhen he called Abraham . 2. After they went out of Egypt and were in the wildernesse at Mount Sinai . 3. In the time of the Gospell . And of this Exposition Calvin saith , it may be accounted witty , but it is frivolous . He giveth a better reason ( which I thinke to be the minde of the holy Ghost ) why it is thrice tepeated ; Because apostatizing Israel could hardly beleeve that ever God would doe such a thing as this , what after the Lord had cast Israel away ? yea cast her to the beasts ( for so he threatneth in the former part of the chapter ) yet now betroth her to himself , this was unlikely . I will [ even ] betroth thee , so you have it in your books ; now the truth is , the word in the Originall is Vau , the same that is translated and before , but because the third time it is said [ and ] the Translators thought there was an emphasis in the third And , and therefore to expresse that emphasis they put in the word [ even . ] Infaithfulnesse ] In steadiness , so the word signifieth , I will betroth thee unto me in a steady way , my goodness toward thee shall be stable and sirme . So the word is often used in Scripture , Exod. 17. 12. His hands were steady , the same word that we have here for faithfulnes , So Deut. 28. 59. I will make thy plagues of long continuanoe , thy plagues stable and constant , the same that is here for faithfulness . And 1 Sam. 2. 35. I will raise me up a faithfull Priest , and I will build him a sure house , there the word is of the same roote , a sure house , a firm , steady house . Faithfulnes here imports , Gods stability & steadines in his Covenant with his people . It notes not so much the perpetuity , for that was before , I will betroth thee unto me for ever : But firmeness & constancy , as opposite to ficklenes & uncertainty . There is much unconstancy & fickleness in our love one to another , but the love of God to his people is stable , setled , firm & constant love . That is the meaning in the first place , though not all . Esay 62. 5. As the Eridegroome rejoyceth over the Bride , so shal thy God rejoyce ●ver thee , that is , the love of Christ after thousands of yeers is still but as the love of a bridegroome upon the wedding day , then ordnarily love is hot & appears much ; not the love onely of the husband , but as the Bridegroome . There is no moment of time , but Christ rejoyceth not onely as a husband , but as a Bridegroome over every gracious soule . Christs love is steady , because it is pure , without mixture ; it is a holy love . Observe the comparing of two Texts , Esay 55. 3. The sure mercies of David are promised there . In Acts 13. 34. that Scripture is quoted , and there it is The holy things of David ; As noting , because the love of God is holy , therefore it is sure and stedfast . Christs love unto his people is in righteousnesse , as before , and in judgement , and in loving kindnesse , and mercies : It is from the sweetness of his nature , and therefore it is steady & firm . With him there is no shadow of change . It is grounded upon a sure covenant , therefore firme . Though indeed the love of Christ may be to us as the shining of the Sun , not alwayes in the fruits of it , shining out so gloriously , but the Sun keepes his course in a steady way , though sometimes it is clouded , and we have it not so gloriously as at other times . The Saints should fasten upon the love of Christ in the Covenant ; and though other things be never so uncertaine , yet they should quiet their hearts in this , that their happiness in the Covenant of grace is certaine . Perhaps the love of our friend is uncertaine , very fickle and inconstant ; those who will glavor upon you , and seeme as if their hearts were with you , but what sullen moods and fits will there be at times ! and when you have most need of them , you know not where to finde them . But the love of Christ is certaine and stable , 2 Sam. 23. 5. Marke how David comforted himself in the stablenesse of the love of God in the covenant . Though he doth not cause my house to grow , yet he hath made with me an everlasting covenant , ordered in all things and sure , and this is all my desire & all my hope , that is , that the Covenant is sure and stedfast . And ( as we have opened it in all the former ) so here it must be mutuall . I will betroth thee in faithfulnesse , and make thee faithfull too ; that is , thou shalt have a steady , firme , stable spirit in thy love to me , though not in that degree that Christs is , yet there is a stability in the hearts of the Saints unto Christ , they are not carried up and down with every wind of doctrine , with every puffe of temptation as other men are . The righteous is an everlasting foundation , Pro. 10. 25. The upright holdeth on his way , Iob. 17. 9. It must needs be so , because the affections of the Saints unto Christ are holy affections too , though not perfect , they have indeed some mixture , therefore some instability ; but they have holiness , therefore stability . And they choose Christ in righteousnesse and in judgement . And they have the Divine Nature in them ; and as that hath no shadow of change , so they come to have something like to the immutability of the Divine Nature , some shadow of it . Esay 26. 3. A godly man is described thus , Whose minde is staid upon God : he hath a stable spirit , not a wandring , fickle , roving spirit , he hath fixed himself upon God , he can say , My heart is fixed . The men of the world , because they have not that which can satisfie , run up and downe , first , after one contentment , then after another , they have no where to fix : but the Saints finde all-sufficiency in God , when they are there , their hearts are satisfied , and there they fix . As a Bee lighting upon a flower , finding but a little honey , gets away to another , and to another , and to another ; but when it comes to a flower , where it may suck honey enough it fixeth , it stayeth there . The hearts of the Saints find a fulnesse of good , in God , and there they fixe . A fickle , wavering , unstable spirit is exceeding unbeseeming a Christian . As it is in the body , some who have flushings of heat , have a very good colour for a while , but when we know this good colour is but a flush , it is rather an argument of a disease , then of a good complexion . An end of a candle that burnes in the socket gives some flashes of light now and then , but a candle that is set upon a table gives a steady and constant light . Mad people you know have their Iudicia intervalla , some times wherein they doe acts of reason , but you may perceive they are not in their wits , because there is not constancy , and evennesse in their actions . This stablenes , this evenes in a Christian way is the beauty and glory of it . Though you be never so forward sometimes in that which is good , yet if at other times your hearts be off , there is no beauty in your conversation . But give me a Christian whose wayes are even , that you may finde a constancy in him in all his wayes . Those who have such fickle , uncertaine , inconstant hearts , are never like to excell ; if they have any truth in them , yet they will never be eminent Christians , Gen. 49. 4. it is said of Ruben , Ruben unstable as water , but hee shall not excell ; so it may be said of a Christian unstable ; here is one of good affections , at sometimes very forward , but unstable as water , he shall not excell . Constancy in love is exceeding comely and beautifull between man and wife , from thence is the expression of the holy Ghost here ; it adds much unto the lustre and comfort of their lives . For men to seeme sometimes to be mighty fond , & other times to be bitter and sowre , like Nabals ; or the wife to be very fond sometimes , and to be grievous & irkesome at other times , this takes away the beauty , the comfort of their lives . But there is more in this faithfulnesse then stability and firmeness , I will betroth thee in faithfulnesse ; I will certainly performe all the good you can expect from me , which is befitting a husband , yea such a husband as I am , to doe to my Spouse ; you may confide in me , I will be faithfull to you , not onely my love , but my faithfulnes shall binde me to you : My loving kindness , my mercifull disposition is a great bond , but my faithfulnes shall binde me also , I will be content to ingage my selfe to you , that you may certainly confide in me , so as you may not only expect it from my love , but challenge it from my faithfulness . We deny not Gods providence to other creatures , but the Spouse challengeth Gods care , saith Bernard , which is beyond providence , such as is out of faithfulnes , as well as out of love . Christ here condescends to his Spouse , as a man is willing to give satisfaction to his wife & her friends , though the truth is he would doe any thing in the world out of love to his wife , yet in regard of her weaknesse , and to satisfie some friends he is content to enter into bond , to do any thing that is fitting ; it is good to make all things sure before-hand , say her friends , he presently yeilds , for it is no other but what he is willing to doe without bonds , onely to satisfie her and their minds . Thus it is between Christ and his Spouse : The truth is , the love of Christ is enough to make a supply of any of our wants , but wee are weake , and would faine have things made sure , therefore saith Christ to helpe our weakeness , I will even enter into bond , and you may be sure I will be faithfull then , I will binde my faithfulnes to you for all the good you would have . And this faithfulnesse of Christ is either in regard of the great Marriage-Covenant , there hee will be sure to be faithfull to his Spouse ; Or in regard of all particular promises , that are under things as it were . There is the great marriage-covenant , about reconciling God , and paying all debts that are owing and satisfying Gods justice , and bringing to eternall life ; but there are many under-promises , and Christ will be faithfull in them all . Ps . 25. 10. you have a promise worth a kingdome , All the paths of the Lord are mercy and truth , not onely mercy , but mercy and truth , mercy ingaged . VVicked men may have mercy from God , from the generall bounty and goodnesse , and mercifull disposition of God , but what the Saints have is from ●ruth , as well as from mercy , it is bound to them . God stands much upon this that the hearts of his Saints should confide in him . He accounts not himselfe honoured except we confide in him : therefore marke how Christ suiteth himselfe unto our weaknesse , that wee may confide in his faithfulnesse . What is it ( saith he ) that you poore creatures do one to another when you would make things sure betweene you ? Wee answer thus , Lord we ingage our selves by promise one to another . I will do so saith Christ , you shall have my promise , my faithfull promise . Acts 2. 39. Peter invites to Baptisme upon this ground , because the promise is made to you and to your children , and to as many as the Lord our God shal call : The first he speakes to the Jews , the other to the Gentiles ; As if he should say , Come in and receive Baptisme , for to you and to your children the promise is made , to you that are Jews and to your children , and to the Gentiles , they have the promise that you have , they come under the same Covenant for the maine , the promise is to them and to their children too . And this promise that Christ hat●ing aged himself in , is no other then a draught of that which was before the world began , from all eternity , and therefore it is so much the more sure . Tit. 1. 2. the Gospell is called a promise before the world began . All promises in the Scripture are but a draught of that grand promise that God the Father made to his Son before the world began ; As if Christ should say , Will you have engagement by promise ? This is past long agoe , my Father hath engaged himself to me from all eternity , & if you have any promise it is but a draught of that first copie of that great promise my Father hath made me from all eternity . VVhat doe you doe more when you would make things sure one to another ? VVe answer , we doe not onely make a verball promise , by word of mouth , but we write it . God hath therefore given us his Scripture , and the chiefe thing in Scripture is the promise , God hath set to his hand to his promise in Scripture . Hence Luther hath a notable expression , The whole Scripture doth especially aim at this , that we should not doubt , but believe , confide , hope that God is mercifull , kind , patient . VVhat do you more ? Here you have my promise and my hand , is there any thing else you use to do , to make things sure ? VVe answer , Lord wee take witnesses . I will do so too , saith God. VVhen we would make things sure indeed , we take not only two , but three , or four , but half a dozen witnesses sometimes . You shall have witnesses ; saith God as many as you will , witnesses of all sorts , witnesses in heaven , witnesses in earth ; In heaven , I Iohn 5. 7. The Father , the Word , and the holy Ghost , witnesses authenticall , of credit enough , the three Persons in the Trinity , upon earth , the spirit , the water , and the blood . What do you more to make a thing sure ? Lord , we set to our seales too ; you shall have that too saith God , you shall have seals of all sorts , you shall have the broad seale of Heaven , the Sacraments , the seals of the Covenant ; and you shall have my privie seale , I will take my Ring off my finger , I will give you even the seale of the spirit , and do but shew this seale , it is authenticall enough . Is there any thing more ? Yes we answer , there is one thing more , we take an oath , I will do that too , saith God , that you may be sure , and confide in my faithfulnesse . Heb. 6. 17. God willing more abundantly to shew unto the heirs of promise the immutability of his councell , consirmed it by his oath . As if he should say , there is no such need of an oath , but I will be abundant to you , because I would have you trust mee , And mark this is for the sake of the heirs of promise , God would never have done this for other men , it is for your sakes onely who are the heirs of promise , in regard of your weaknesse he conrfims all with an oath . And if wee would have things sure , wee will not have the oath of such as are of no great credit . Mark , therefore it is that God sweareth , and that by the greatest oath , ver . 13. Because he could sweare by no greater , saith the text , he sware by himselfe . Is there any thing more saith God that you use to do among your selves to make things sure ? Yes Lord , we use to take a pawn too . You shall have that too saith he , I will give you a pawn , and such a pawn as if you never had any thing more you would be happie . what is that ? 2 Cor. 1. 22. Who hath sealed us , and given us the earnest of his spirit in our hearts . I will send my spirit to be an earnest of all the good that I intend to do for you everlastingly . Is there any thing else you would require of me that you may confide in me ? Yes , if God would doe some great & notable work as a beginning & as an ingagement of that which is to come after , this is yet more then a pawne , when there is some speciall thing done in way to that which wee make account of , that we are not only promised it , and have it under hand and seale , and have an oath and a pawne , but it is in a great degree begun , and so begun as the difficulty is over . Those who live under the Gospell see the greatest part of our salvation already done for us . God made a promise of sending his Son into the world ; Now in Gods performing that promise that God-man should come into the world to be made a curse for sin , this is the greatest worke of all that is to be done to all eternity , and if God would have failed in any thing it would have been in that . It is not so much for God to deliver us in this world , it is not so much for him to bring us to heaven , as it is to send his Son into the world to be made a curse for us . Now when God hath done so great a work and hath beene faithfull in that great promise , he hath taught us for ever to trust in him , to beleeve his faithfulness in making good other promises . If a man who owes five thousand pound , and payes you foure thousand nine hundred of it , you thinke surely hee will never breake for one hundred , I may trust him for the rest , seeing hee hath dealt so faithfully with me in the great summe . God hath paid the four thousand nine hundred and much more , in comparison of what God hath done for us , take all the glory of heaven , we have not one hundred of the five thousand left behince , therefore we may well confide in him for the payment of the rest . But is God able ? It is true , God is faithfull : This is seldome an objection , at least an explicite objection in the mouths of people , but surely an implicite one it is in the hearts of many ; that appears by those cautions , God gives to take away that objection , 1 Pet. 4. 19. Commit the keeping of your souls unto him as unto a faithful Creator , as if he had not said enough in saying he is faithfull , he adds faithfull Creator , as if he should say , f there be no means to help you I will create means , I will put forth my Almighty power to create helpe for you , but you shall have helpe , Dan. 9. 27. The Lord will confirme the Covenant ; the word is used for a mighty man , a Giant in Scripture . Gen. 19. 8. He began to be a mighty one in the land , as a Giant in the earth , the word here is of the same root , God will come forth as a Giant , as a mighty man to make sure the Covenant he hath made with his people , if there be any thing in the world wherein God will stirre up his infinite power , the excellency of his power , the glory of his right hand , it will be in confirming his Covenant to his Saints , Esay 26. 4. Trust ye in the Lord for ever , for in the Lord Jehovah is everlasting strength , Esay . 54. 5. Thy Maker is thy husband , the Lord of Hosts is his name , the God of the whole earth shall he be called . Seeing God is so faithfull , let not us be faithlesse . But things goe very crosse , and how shall we beleeve , our faith shakes ? the true genuine love of the Saints is such as will love God without gifts , for himself , so the genuine art of faith , is to beleeve in God without experience , yea though things seem to goe contrary . That love is but a lame love that loveth God onely for that which vve receive from him for the present , and that is but a lame faith that beleeveth only in ●od for that which we see for the present . Doe things goe crosse ? they are corrections , and those may come from faithfulnes as well as any thing the Church enjoyes , Psal . 119. 75. I know O Lord that thy judgements are right , and that thou in faithfulnesse hast afflicted me ; As God comes downe to you and sutes himself to you as his poor creatures , so you should labour to raise your hearts to him , to beleeve in him as a great God. ●od deals with you as having to deale with weak creatures , you should deale with him as having to doe with an infinite God. You must give God leave to doe his worke his owne way . The object of our confidence in God , it is , the thing will be done , it is not how it will be done , or when it will be done , but that God will carry his worke thorough . Shall our weakness be so much regarded , as that things must not work so as to shew Gods power ? Certainly it is too too much for us to think our weakness must be so far condescended to . One would think that it is enough , that God condescendeth so much as to expresse himself so to you as you may beleeve ; would you have God condescend to expresse himselfe so to you , as he should not have the glory of his worke , nor you the glory of your faith ? this is too low . Though we be bound to deny our selves much , because of the weakness of our brethren ; Must God deny his glory because of our weakenesse ? We burden God too much with our weaknesse . It is for Gods glory that things goe as they doe ; Lazarus was dead , and dead so long , that the work of God might appeare . But I finde not things go so as I expected , I thinke I have beleeved , at such a time in prayer I thought my heart did close with the promises of God , but yet things goe not so as I expect . Though things be otherwise then thou expectest , yet it may be God calls for new acts of thy beleeving , and it is because there is no renewing of thy faith in his faithfulness . You must know , the continuall actings of Faith draw out the continuall actings of the power of God. I will give you for that one famous Text , perhaps you may reade it often and heare it , but not perceive the strength there is in it . Psal . 31. 19. O how great is thy goodnes which thou hast laid up for them that fear thee ! but marke what followeth , which thou hast wrought for them that trust in thee . Great is the goodnesse thou hast laid up . Gods goodnesse is great to admiration for them that feare him , but how ? It is laid up for them , but now marke , which thou hast wrought for them that trust in thee . All the goodnesse that is in God , is for them that feare him , but it is not fearing God that will bring it to work , it is laid up in a treasury indeed ; do you feare God ? God hath laid up abundance of goodnesse in a treasury for you , but you must not expect this will work for you , unless you trust in him ; your Faith must bring it forth into work , and that before the sonns of men ; thou shalt hide them in the secret of thy presence from the pride of men . Would you be hid in the secret of Gods presence from the pride of men ? you must not onely feare God , but trust in his faithfulness . Mat. 13. 58. Christ did no mighty works there because of their unbelief : And Ma●k . 6 , 5. He could not doe no works because of their unbelief . One says he did not , and the other sayes he could not , When we have a promise , let us put on to get the goodnesse of God to work , which is by believing . For that I will give you as notable an example as any I know you have in the book of God , of a believing heart , catching hold upon a promise upon Gods faithfulnesse to work it out , 1 Chron. 17. 23. and so on . In the former part of the Chapter you shall finde God had promised David to establish his house , to build him a sure house ; Well , as soone as David had got the word , mark how hee improves it , how hee works upon Gods word ; As if he had said , Seeing I have got his word , I will hold to it , he shall not goe from it , saith he , Therefore , O Lord , let the things thou hast spoken concerning thy servant and concerning his house , be established for ever , and doe as thou hast said . Thou hast spoken , do as thou hast said . Ver. 24. Let it even be established , I expect it , seeing thou hast been pleased in such a gracious way to promise me thus , I will relye upon it , let it be even established , that thy name may be magnifyed for ever . I will plead thy name in it , if there be any thing to be pleaded more then other , I will plead it before thee ; but is not this enough ? Vers . 25. Thou O Lord God hast told thy servant that thou wilt build him an house , therefore thy servant hath found in his heart to pray before thee . He had said before , that God had spoken it ; here he goes over it again , as making much of Gods word , thou hast told me , and I pray for nothing but what thou hast told me . Nay yet still David encroacheth more upon God , Ver. 26. Now O Lord thou art God , & thou hast promised this goodnesse unto thy servant . I have not to deal with a man that will be fickle and inconstant , wavering and unfaithfull , but thou art God , and I will trust in thee as a God , thou art God , and thou hast promised this goodnesse , it is thine owne goodnesse , now therefore do it . See how he followeth God upon his promise . And mark what admirable effects followed upon this , Chap. 18. ver . 1. After this , saith the Text , he prospered , when his enemies came against him , he took a thousand charets , and seven thousand horsemen , and twenty thousand footmen from Hadarezer , and when the Syrians came to help that Hadarezer , he slew of the Syrians two and twenty thousand men . After this , mark the connexion of that Chapter and this , after David had improved the promise , hee might have what he would ; thus the loving kindnesse of God was laid up in a promise , but wrought out by Davids faith . This is our evill that we do not improve this faithfulnesse of God , wee lose abundance by it . It is an argument that wee have base spirits . It is a great evill between man and wife , when they cannot confide one in another , but are jealous , how can such live comfortably together ? So we are jealous of God , we lose our comfort in him ; Jealousie comes oftentimes from much basenesse of spirit , and selfe-guiltinesse , because we are of such base hearts our selves , that is the reason we are so jealous of God. Where there is much love between man and wife , there cannot be much jealousie , and if there were intire love in the Spouse of Christ , there would not be jealousie . You have an excellent passage for that , John 5. 40. You will not come unto me that you might have life , you will not believe in me , that is the meaning : then ver . 42. I know you have not the love of God in you . Is there any thing in the world more tedious to a Husband , then that the Wife should be jealous of him ? think of it , the same tediousnesse it is unto the Spirit of Jesus Christ , that thou shouldst be jealous of him , and not confide in his faithfulnesse . Surely if we did trust in Gods faithfulnesse , wee would not think to compound with him so as we do , but wee would improve his promise to the utter most . As you that are Merchants , and have much owing you , all the while you confide in your debtors , you will not compound with them for less then your debt ; if you should come to one that ows you money , and say , I pray Sir pay in my money , and I shall be content to take ten , or fifteen in the hundred ; the party would think himselfe disg●aced ; what , do you distrust me ? Do you think I will break ? No , I will pay you every penny , he stands upon his credit . The truth is , we poor wretches , because we have not Gods promises presently fulfilled , we would compound with God , that is , if God would give us any little comfort for the present , we would be satisfied rather then waite for that which is to come , though it be infinitely more ; this is a great dishonour to God , and an argument of our unfaithfulnesse . It is an argument of little faith , if thou canst be satisued , should God give thee tenne thousand worlds for the present , if God should say , what will yon have ? would you have your enemies destroyed ? would you have your peace and your trading in the world , your ease and quietnesse ? Is this all ? This is to compound with God for twelve pence in the pound as it were . No saith a gracious heart , Lord thou hast promised mercy , & I expect it to the full , I wil not abate the least farthing of it . God loveth we should stand with him for his promise unto the uttermost farthing . No , but I hope God give me Heaven at last , yet I doubt hee will leave mee here in the world . This is to compound with God another way ; there are some who perhaps will pay eighteene , or fifteen shillings in the pound , but it is a dishonour to God to abate one shilling in the pound , therefore we must not onely believe in God for heaven , but for earth , and for safety and comfort , and that in times of greatest trouble . God is well pleased with such kind of holy impudence , as we may say , that is , to follow him for the uttermost , and to urge him upon his word again and again , to pay what he is ingaged for . Again , had we faith in God we would set upon great things though we see but little meanes . Many of you who have but little stockes , yet if you have rich friends that have given you encouragement , and that you know will be faithfull to you , you will trade for great things with your little stock , because you know you have those friends will stand by you . So though we have but little strength , if God call us , we should be willing to set upon great things , because God hath stock enough , and he hath ingaged himself to stand by us . I will bearoth thee unto me in faithfulness . As I will be faithfull to you , and you shall conside in my faithfulnesse , so you shall be faithfull to me , that I may confide in your faithfulnesse , as I fulfill all my promises , & covenant vvith you , so you shall be faithfull to make good all the promises and covenant with me . The Spouse of Christ is such a one as the Spirit of Christ can confide in . It is said of the vertuous woman , Pro. 31. 11. Her husband trusteth in her . Let him be abroad or at home , in what company soever , yet his heart trusteth in her , he can leave all his businesse , his writing , or any thing that concerns him with such a wife : VVhere there is want of this trusting of the heart of the husband in the wife , there is want of comfort in their lives ; thus God saith of his people , Esay 63. 8. They are children that will not lye ; I can confide in them , I can turne them unto any businesse as I will , for they are children who will not lye . They are faithfull to God first in the great Covenant , in the surrendring themselves to God , as they doe at their first closing with Christ . In the first act of beleeving ▪ every gracious soul enters into solemn covenant with God , & it will be faithfull in that covenant . And they will be faithfull likewise in all their under promises & vowes that they make to God , in days of fasting , and thansgiving , and at other times . As Gods promises are Gods gifts unto us , so should our promises be as gifts unto God. 2 Tim. 1. 9. According to his purpose and grace , which was given unto us in Christ Iesus before the world began ; not onely promised , but given unto us in Christ Jesus . Gods eternall purpose is called Gods gift , so our purposes and our promises ought to be as sure as gifts unto God. So in thy conversation thou must be faithfull to Christ , not prostitute thy selfe unto another , but keep thy selfe for Christ . Indeed the spouse of Christ may be ravished by open violence , but she will not prostitute her self to any other , she keepes her self onely for Christ . Thus the Saints are described , Ephe. 1. 1. faithfull in Christ Jesus . There is a kinde of natural faithfulnes as I may so speak , as in that place Esay 8. 2. I took unto me faithfull witnesses , Calvin saith it is meant of Vrijah , that base temporizing Vrijah , who made the Altar according to the patterne that Ahaz sent from Damascus , he is said to be faithfull , that is , he was a faire , honest dealing man , his word was as good as his bond ; so many civill men will be faithfull of their words ; But mark here in the Ephesians it is faithfull in Christ Jesus , it is nnt onely faithfulnesse between man and man , for many Heathens were so , they would rather dye then cozen and cheate one another , but this is a higher degree of faithfulness ; it is a faithfulnesse in Christ Jesus , so the Saints must be faithfull , faithfull to Christ Jesus , and faithfull in Christ Jesus . They who are thus faithfull , are fit for the service of Christ , Christ hath a great deale of work to do , they are only fit for it , Rev. 17. 14. The Lamb shal overcome , why ? for they that are with him , are chosen , and called , and faithfull , not called faithfull , but called and faithfull , and therefore the Lambe shall overcome . It were happy that all that are in this publicke service in the kingdom that are with the Lambe , with Christ in this cause , were called and faithfull , the work would soon be at an end ; It is faithfulness we shall be hereafter re●●rded for , Well done good & faithfull servant ; not well done good and rich servant , or servant who had great imployment in publicke works , but well done good and faithfull servant . Every one of us cannot be eminent , every one cannot be employed in publicke services , but you may every one bee faithfull ; you that are poore servants you may be faithfull as well as a Magistrate , as well as a Minister ; you that are poore labouring men , porters and water-men the meanest , you may be faithfull as well as the Nobles of a kingdom ; God regardeth faithfulnes rather then service , hee hath no need of the services of men , great or small , it is all one unto him , but he looks upon the faithfulnesse of their hearts . And as you must be faithfull unto God and his cause , so you must be faithfull one to another . You who are servants , if you be godly , be sure you be faithfull to your Masters , that there may be no occasion of any such scandoll as often there is concerning those who are professors , such a servant is forward , he must goe to sermons , and he is set against ceremonies , &c. But I never had any so unfaithfull , if mine eye be but off him , hee is from his businesse presently . God forbid there should be such scandols given . So VVives who professe godliness , be you sure you be faithful to your husbands and tradesmen who professe more then ordinary strictness in Religion , be you faithfull in your dealings . Hath Christ married himselfe unto thee in faithfulnesse ? he expects that his faithfulnesse to thee should have that reflection upon thy heart as to make thee faithful to others . There is one note that is to be taken from all together . As if God should say , O Israel , you have dealt unrighteously with me , you have broken your covenant , you have gone a whoring from me , but I will betroth you to me in righteousnesse . You have done foolishly in departing from me , but I will betroth you unto me in judgement . You have been unkind to me , but I will betroth you unto me in loving kindness . It hath not pittied your souls to see me dishonored , but I will betroth my selfe in bowels of mercy to you . You have been unfaithfull to me , but I will even betroth you unto me in faithfulnesse . The note from thence is this . God dealeth not with those in Covenant with him as they deale with him . It is a note of admirable use and comfort . Marke the difference betweene Gods dealing with others and those that are in covenant with him . Let others deale with God in a froward and perverse way , God will deale with them so too , Psal . 18. 26. With the froward thou wilt shew thy selfe froward . Will you be froward with God ? God will shew himselfe froward with you . Will you be proud with God ? In the thing you are proud God wil be above you . Will you be subtil and contriving mischiefe against God and his truth ? God will meet with the wicked , and insnare them in the work of their own hands . Are you resolute in wickednesse ? God will be as resolute as you for your hearts , as Jer. 44 , 25. 26. But when God comes to deale with his Saints in covenant , though they deale frowardly with him , hee will deale gently with them : though they deale proudly with him , hee dealeth in a way of condescension with them ; though they bee unfaithfull to him , yet he will be faithfull to them . Oh my brethren this point hath abundance of sweetnes in it , take heed of abusing it ; Thy sins cannot overcome Gods goodnesse , let Gods goodness overcome thy wickednesse . And they shal know the Lord , They shal know that I am the Lord , so the Septuagint hath it ; so the old Latin , thou shalt know because I am the Lord ; but we rather reade it as it is in your bookes ; They shall know the Lord. But how comes this in , In faithfulnesse , and they shall know the Lord. Thus , upon these two reasons . First , because this shall be the means to keepe the Church the Spouse of Christ in faithfulnesse for ever , they shall know Christ to be the Lord. As if Christ should say , The reason of all your vile departings from me all this while , what is it ? you doe not know me , you doe not see into the bounty and glory , into the excellency of my worship , and what I am , that is the reason you are gone from me and have been unfaithfull to me , but when I betroth you my self again , you shall know me , you shall see so much beauty and excellency in me & mine Ordinances that you shall never depart from me . Low thoughts of God are the cause of superstitious vanities . Had men high and honourable thoughts of God they would never thinke to put him off with such bauble-worship as they do . Acts 9. 7. it is said the God of glory appeared to Abraham , that is given as a ground why Abraham would forsake his Countrey his fathers house and his kindred , if we once knew the Lord , and that the God of glory had appeared to us , we would be ready to forsake all for him and give up our selves unto him in an everlasting covenant . Secondly , And they shall know me ] This is as a fruit of my betrothing my self unto them , as a fruite of the Covenant , Jer. 31. 34. They shal teach no more every man his neighbour and every man his brother , saying , know the Lord , for they shall know me from the least of them unto the greatest of them , saith the Lord , for I will forgive their iniquity , &c. It is a fruit of the conjugall union betwixt Christ and the soul . As it is betwixt man and wife , when they are but only suitors , well willers , they do not communicate their secrets one to another , but when they once come to be marryed together , then they open all their hearts , there is no secret but they will disclose one to another . So saith God , when I am once marryed to you , I will open my whole heart to you , the secret of the Lord is with them that feare him . Those that have but natural knowledge , understands something of the wayes of Religion , of the minde of Christ ; As a man that is in the dark may know where he is , by feeling he may know what length and thickness many things in the house are of , but when the light of the day comes , then hee knowes what the ●●is in the roome after another manner then he did in the darke : this is the difference betweene knowledge of God in a natural man , and the knowledge of one espoused to Christ , by his naturall knowledge he may understand the hystory of the Gospell , he may have some generall notions of God and of Christ , but when the Sun of righteousnesse ariseth , then be sees the excellency and glory of God , then he sees God shining in all his attributes , he sees that in Christ which drawes his heart unto him in an everlasting Covenant . As we reade Cant. 7. 5. Christ is held in the galleries , that is , Christ assoone as he is marryed to the foule , takes it as it were by the hand , and walkes into the Galleries , and there openeth his heart unto her . There is many a sweet turne that a gracious heart hath with Christ in his ordinances , wherin Christ openeth even his whole soul unto it , Joh. 15. 15. All things , saith Christ , that I have heard of my Father , I have made knowne unto you . An admirable Text , surely you cannot but know the Lord then . Here is the fruit of our union with Christ . Oh that our hearts were inflamed with desire after further conjugall communion with him ! according to the capacity of the soul , so Christ makes knowne to it what he hath heard of the Father . Certainly Christ hath heard great things of the Father ; he is the wisdome of the Father , he hath been with the Father from all eternity , and the Father loves him , he will tell him all the glorious things he hath in his heart , and Christ will hide none of those things from his Saints . This is the priviledg of a Saint ; who would not be godly , by which he shall come to know the minde of the Father , according to what Christ knowes of it ? Yea and Christ makes God known to the Saints in another way then others know him . 2 Sam. 7. 27. Thou O Lord God of Hosts hast revealed unto thy servant , so you reade it in your bookes , but it is in the Hebrew , Lord thou hast revealed this to the eare of thy servant . I wonder how that word to the eare comes to be left out in your books , in which indeed the emphasis lye , I am sure it is so in the Text. When God makes known himselfe to his people he revealeth things to their Eare , as we to a friend who is intimate with us , we speake a thing to his eare . There is many a secret which JESUS CHRIST speakes in the eart of his Saints , which others never come to be made acquainted with , 2 Cor. 4. 6. God who commanded the light to shine out of darknes , hath shined in our hearts , to give the light of the knowledg of the glory of God in the face of Jesus Christ . It would aske time for the full opening the gradations of this Scripture , here is knowledg , & the knowledg of the glory of God , & the light of the knowledg of the glory of God , and shining , and shining into our hearts , and into our hearts in the face of Jesus Christ . Surely then they shall know the Lord , and they shall know him in a very spirituall way . The light of the Saints is a light three story high ; First , they have the light of nature , which other men have , the light of reason . Secondly , they have the light of common gifts , which other men have too , and that is a story higher then the other ; Thirdly , they have the light of a sanctifying spirit , that is a third loft , and they shall come to a fourth story , and that is the light of glory . The light that other men have is but as the light you have in a lower room , in ware-houses , which in some you know is so little that you are faine to use a candle at noone day , so some natural men have onely the light of reason , which indeed is rather like your cellars that have but a little light coming in at a grate ; others have somewhat more light , they have common gifts , which is like the light in the next story , somewhat more clear , but the light of the Saints is higher then all these , they know God as their God , great is the excellency of his knowledge , the soul hath blessed satisfaction in it , let us see the Father and it sufficeth us , the fulnesse of glory that is let out into the soul , the sanctification of the heart by the presence of the beams of the glory of God , being transformed into the same Image , it is the very beginning of eternall life . Take onely this note about our knowledge of God by Christ , what a different way have we to know God by , from that which Heathens had . If you reade the Hystories of the Romanes , you shal find the poor & mean ways of those wise men had to know God , as thus , they would look into the intrails of beasts thereby to finde out the mind of their gods , they would observe how the beasts came to the slaughter , whether willingly or not willingly , whether haled or not haled , they guessed somewhat at the minde of their Gods by that , then they would looke into the colour of the bowels of the beasts , then observe whether the entrals were sound or not , then they would observe the fire of their sacrifices , whether the flame ascended right or not , thus they came to know the mind of their Gods ; What poor wayes are these ? we have JESUS CHRIST God blessed for ever , the eternal Son of the Father , who is come from the bosome of the Father , to make all known to us , the mind of God , his and our Father : We know the truth as it is in Jesus , not onely as it is in the works of nature ; some know much of God in the works of creation and providence , wee may know much of God in those great things the Lord hath of late done amongst us ; but to know the truth as it is in Jesus , to know God in Christ , this is another manner of knowledge then to know God in the way of his works , here we see the truth really indeed when wee see it in CHRIST JESUS . Certainly then none united unto Christ in a conjugall union can be an ignorant sot , for Christ ingageth himselfe in his faithfulnesse , upon this marryage of a soul with himselfe , to reveale himselfe and the Father unto it , Joh , 8. 54. Of whom ye say he is your God , but mark the next words , yet ye have not knowne him . A likely matter that he should be your God and you not know him , a likely matter that Christ should be your Saviour and you not know him , seeing he hath ingaged himselfe in his faithfulnesse , that if you bee married to him you shall know him and his Father . Ver. 21. And it shall come to passe in that day , I will heare saith the Lord , I will heare the heavens , &c. Now come in temporall promises , after the assurance of mercy in the Covenant , then come promises for corn , and wine , and oyle ; God would teach us this lesson by it , that all our outward things ( at the least the sweetness and comfort of them ) depend upon the covenant in Christ . I will heare , The word is Respondebo , I will answer , so it may be rendred as well , God will so hear as that he will answer . Many times a poor man cryes to the rich , & he hears him but he will not answer , but saith God , I will hear so as I wil answer . This is a most elegant expression , I wil hear the heavens , and they shall heare the earth , and the earth shall hear the corne and the wine and the oyle , and they shal heare Iezreel . Miraorationis sublimit as , a wonderfull sublimity of speech , saith one Expositor of it ; hyperbolica metaphora , a hyperbolica metaphor , saith another ; pulcherrima prosopopoeia , a most beautifull and delightful prosopopoeia , saith another ; these creatures being put as it were in the person of a man as if they understood what they did . As if the Lord should say thus . My people , you indeed through your sinnes have been brought into great straits , you have wanted corne , and wine , and oyle , you have been scattered in your banishment , but when I shall betroth my self unto you and enter into a covenant with you , then , when you shall cry , O that we might have these outward comforts , presently the corne , and the wine , and the oyle , as if they heard your complaints , shall say , Oh Lord we would help , Jezreel and satisfie these thy servants ; the corne shall cry to the earth , O earth let me come into your bowels , I will rot there that so I may bring forth fruit for this people , the vines and the olive shall desire the earth to receive them , to give juice and nourishment to them , that they may refresh these reconciled ones to God ; the earth shall say , O that I could entertaine the corne , and wine , and oyle that I may be fruitfull in my kinde , but O heavens I can doe nothing except I have your influences and the shine of the sun to warme mee to make mee fructifie , therefore O heavens come in and assist me that I may fructifie for Jezreel ; and the heavens they shall cry , Lord , we would faine help the earth , that the earth may helpe the corne , and wine , and oyle , that they may supply Jezreel , but we can doe nothing without thine hand , therefore doe thou heare us , do thou give us leave to raine upon the earth that it may be fruitfull . Thus the creatures are brought in crying to help Jezreel . Take these Observations . First , See our condition in this world , though reconciled to God yet while we are here we must be beholden to the corne , and wine , to the earth , and heavens , we know not how to doe without them . Secondly , VVhen we are reconciled to God , then the creatures will be serviceable to us , yea they will be greedy to do us good , they will cry for it . Let us take heed of provoking God , the creatures then will be against us . I have read of Cordius a martyr , giving this answer to those who would have had him deny the truth , if deny it saith he , the Sun , Moon , & starres will deny me light . If we serve God , the creatures will account it their happines to serve us . Thirdly , God useth to work good for his people by second causes . He doth not send these things immediately from heaven , but the heavens heare the earth , and the earth hears the corne and the wine . We must looke to second causes , but take heed of resting upon second causes . It hath been Gods work amongst us of late in finding out treacheries & giving successes to manifest himself very strangly when the means have been very poor ; Nay indeed God hath made as much use of mens weaknesse , as of their strength ; but let not us therefore be slack in the use of means , let us do the best we can , though God sometimes work beyond means , and contrary to means , yet ordinarily he makes use of second causes , not only to work , ad praesent iam , as Biel the Schoolman and others say , that is , only together with the creature ; but there is say they no efficacie at all of them issuing into the effect ; but the truth is , God doth make use of second causes otherwise , so that there is some vertue and efficacy in them to work the thing that God intends . Fourthly , there is a concatenation of second causes , not onely an use of them , but every one in their order supplyes the other , the heavens heare the earth , and the earth hears the corne , one after another . If we could see the comely order of the creatures , wee should see them all hang together in a golden chaine ; as it is in the joynts of the body , one bone supplyeth another , one place is hollow to take in another , so one cause in nature supplyeth , and cometh in to the other . As in our salvation there is a golden chain which we have Rom. 8. So in the creatures there is a golden chain of comely order and mutuall supplyance . Fiftly , God is at the higher end of the chaine , and nothing can be done by any link of the chaine of second causes , but by Gods being at the uppermost link . Jezreel must cry to the corn , and wine , and oyle , and they must cry to the earth , and the earth must cry to the heavens , he must be the highest cause . Sixtly , It is most comely , and a great blessing , when the right order and chaine of second causes hold ; As it is in Nature , so in any Society , in a Common-wealth , in a City , when all keep their due subordination , as when the Trades-man works in his way , the Magistrate in his way , the Minister in his way , and every Officer in his place , every one keeping his order . But when it is otherwise , when they are out of order , it is a great misery upon a City or Kingdom . As it was once among the Athenians , Themistocles saith of his son , a bol● youth , This boy can do more then any man in all Greece , Why ? For saith he , the Athenians command the Grecians , and I command the Athenians , and my wife commands me , and my son commands my wife ; here was the concatenation of that government . God deliver all societies from such a concatenation , that the beginning of any publick work , I meane the lower link of the chain should be perhaps in a whoremaster , & he should command one , and that one another , and so one after another . This is a fearfull judgment where soever it is . 7. God is the giver of all plenty , hee accounts it his glory to give raine . Ier. 5. 24. God there wonders that men will not feare him because of that , Neither ( saith he ) doe they say in their hearts , Let us feare God that giveth raine . As if hee should say , It is a strange impudence in men , what , will they not say in their hearts , Let us feare God , seeing he gives us raine ? Thus God gloryeth in this great work , when hee heareth the heavens , and the heavens heare the earth , the heavens will be as brasse over us , and the earth as iron , unlesse GOD heare them , and send raine . Therefore let God be acknowledged in that rain we have had of late ; the creatures wanted grasse , and the grasse cryed to the heavens , and the heavens cryed unto God , and God hath heard the heavens , and sent downe raine , and so we see the earth hath been refreshed , abundance of good hath come to us by those showers . Give God the glory of this . 8. All plenty is given for the sake of the Saints . How ? God heares the heavens , and the heavens hear the earth , and the earth hears the corn , and the wine and the oyle , and they hear Jezreel . It is for Jezreels sake that the earth heares the corne , and the heavens hear the earth , and God hears the heavens . Were it not for the Saints , the earth wauld soon come to a confusion . They are the blessing of the earth , Isa . 18. 24. 9. If the creatures work so graciously for us , how should wee then worke for God , and one for another . What , shall the creatures cry one to another , and heare one another for our good , and shall God cry to us , and wee not heare God ? The senseless corn cries to the earth . O earth help me that I may help Iezreel , and the earth cryes to the heavens , O heavens send down your influences , and the heavens say , We will heare , and the earth saith , I will heare ; Shall the earth heare , and the heavens heare for our good , and shall not we hear when God cryes for help ? God cries to you many times to helpe in his cause , and wilt not thou hear to work for him ? O vile creature , how unreasonable are thy ways before the Lord ! Again , how should we hear the cries of the poor ? When wee are in want , the corn cries to the earth , and the earth cries to the heavens , and the heavens cry to God for us . VVhen the poore , I mean Gods poore , whom Gods hand hath made poore , cry , will not you heare ? VVill you be more hard-hearted then the earth and the heavens are ? seeing they heare you , doe you hear the cry of your poor brethren . Further , if God will hear the creatures when they cry for us , how much more will he hear Jesus Christ when hee cries for us ? It is our happinesse in part , that we have all the creatures cry to God for our good , but the top of our happinesse is this , that wee have Iesus Christ the Mediatour of the new Covenant , making intercession at the right hand of God continually for us . Lastly , Gods mercies go through when they work for the Saints , the corn beginneth to cry to the earth , that stays not here , but the earth goes on , and cryes to the heavens , the heavens go on and cry to God. Gods mercies to his Saints never leave till the thing be done . And I will sow her unto me in the earth . VVhat great mercy is this for God to grant plenty , if he destroy his people ? Our Country is plentifull , but if God should consume us out of the land what good wou●d our plenty do us ? Therefore saith God , I will sow her unto me in the earth . Indeed she is now a poor contemptible people , & there are but few of them remaining upon the earth , but I will make them a seede , and a seed that the Lord hath blessed . I will sow her . Here the Lord alludeth to the name Iezreel , which signifies the seed of the Lord , the sowen of the Lord. It was used in the first Chapter in an opprobtious way , and in the latter end of that Chapter in a way of mercy . I speak of it there , therefore I shall not need say much now , only this , God makes use of the word here , to put her in mind of what shee deserved ; as if he should say , though thou beest a Jezreel , and deservest to be scattered , yet I will be mercifull to thee out of free grace , I will sow thee , there shall come a blessing upon thee , and though thou beest scattered up and down in the earth , yet in all places thou shalt be as seed from whence my Church shall spring . Hence the notes are : First , that Gods people are the seed of the earth : But of that before in the latter end of the first Chapter , onely I will adde a note of Ribera about it : The seed , saith he , lies under the clods , and at length fructifies ; so should the Saints be content to lie under the clods , and though they may seem in regard of their afflicted condition to be dead , to be rotten , yet they shall be glorious and fructifie afterward . Before the time of the Churches glory , times of great calamity and distresse come , which this rotting of the seed before the fructifying sets out unto us . Secondly , every godly man should so live , as either in life or death hee should be as a seed from whence many may spring ; he should be a meanes that many should be begotten to God. It is reported of Cicilia , in the history of the Church , a poore Virgin , that by her gracious behaviour in her mattyrdome , she was the means of converting four hundred to Christ : As in the Indies , one corn bringeth forth divers hundreds , so we should labour to convert as many as wee can , that some that live after may continue to beare up the name of Christ , and the profession of his truth . Especially be carefull of your children , leave them as seed to hold up the name of God in thy family when thou art dead and gone . And further , I will sow her to my selfe . The Saints are sowen unto Christ they are seed for Christ , therefore all their fruit must be given up unto Christ , Christ must have all the fruit we bear : who should have the fruit but he that soweth it ? Therefore Cant. 7. 13. All manner of pleasant fruits new & old which I have laid up for thee O my beloved . Are we able to bear any fruit ? Let us lay it up all for Jesus Christ , for it is he that soweth us unto himselfe , we must not sow to our selves , not to the flesh , for then wee shall reap corruption , but all for Christ . And I will shew mercy upon her that had not obtained mercy . Divers things about Gods shewing mercy after rejection were spoken of in the first Chap. Only these notes for the present . There are none so rejected , as that they can conclude that they shall never have mercy ( those that have committed the sinne against the holy Ghost excepted ) though Israel had not obtained mercy , though they were cast out , yea cast out to the beasts to be devoured , yea saith God , I will shew mercy upon her . 2. Children of wicked parents may at length obtain mercy from God. Though Israel be cast off , yet her children shall have mercy . A comfort to us in regard of the Idolatry of our fore fathers , yea a comfort in the regard of the children that are to come . Our fore fathers have broken the Covenant , why may not we obtaine mercy ? But suppose we should be the generation of Gods wrath , and not obtaine mercy , yet we may have hope that the posterity following shall have mercy . Thirdly , Mercy after it is thought to be past ; if then it come , Oh it is sweet mercy indeed ! when she seemed to be utterly rejected , then to have mercy shewed , this is sweet . Fourthly , Mercy is the cause of all the good the Saints have . One Scripture for it , Psal . 57. 3. Send from heaven saith David . David was in the Cave , in a poor condition , hunted for his life , persecuted by Saul ; I see little hope from earth , saith he , therefore O Lord send from heaven ; What , shall God send Angels from heaven to deliver thee David ? No , but mark what followeth , God shal send forth his mercy & his truth ; as if he should say , Lord though I have no help in earth , though I see no Angels from heaven to helpe me , yet let me have thy mercy and truth , and that is enough . This satisfies a gracous heart , if he may have Gods mercy and his truth , that is Gods mercy revealed in a promise . Lastly , God hath a speciall day of mercy for his people , for his Churches ; I will have mercy upon her that hath not obtained mercy . Let us cry to God for the hastening of this day , let us open the miseries of our own Kingdome , and of Ireland ; Oh when shall this day come that thou , wilt shew mercy to thy owne people which thou hast told us of ! Oh that that day may hasten ! Come Lord Jesus , come quickly . And I will say to them which were not my people . This is that we had in the first Chapter onely with some differences , there it is , In the place where it was said yee are not my people . And I shewed you when I opened that place , both out of the Romanes , and out of Peter , how the Apostle makes use , both of that in the first Chapter , and this here in the second , onely take a hint of the truths in it . First , God hath a special interest in his people ; they are his people , they are called his peculiar people , Tit. 2. 14. The word hath this emphasis in it , God lookes upon all other things as accidents in comparison , and his substance is his people , they are his very portion , as Deut. 33. 19. and Exod. 19. 5. they are his peculiar treasure above all people in the world ; and Esay 19. 25. Assyria the worke of my hands , and Israel mine inheritance . I have made all people , but Israel is mine inheritance , This is the happines of the Saints , therefore they are not as other people are . Num. 23. 9. This people shall dwell alone , and shall not be reckoned among the Nations , this is a great ground of prayer , Lord leave us not , we are thy people , called by thy name , we have an interest in thee . Againe , This is an argument to walke so as God may not be dishonored by us , for we are his people . If those in a mans family walke disorderly , it is a dishonour to the Master of the family ; it is no dishonour to him for a stranger , or one who hath little reference to him , to walke disorderly ; It is not so much dishonour to God for the wicked to walke disorderly , as for the Saints , in regard of their neerenesse to God : And besides , their light is ( as I told you ) three story high , and if they sin , they sin against a greater light then others doe , their sin is greater then the sinne of the wicked in that regard . Further , I will say to them which were not my people , thou art my people , I will own them before all the world . It is a great mercy for God to make it knowne to the world , that his people are his people . The world will not beleeve it , they think they are a poor contemptible people , but there shall come a day that I will make it knowne they are mine ; And amongst other things by which God will make all the world to know that his people are his , this is one , in s●tting up the beauty of his Ordinances amongst them , Ezek. 37. 27. My Tabernacle also shall be with them , yea I will be their God , and they shall be my people , and the Heathen shall know that I the Lord doe sanctifie Israel , when my Sanctuary shall be in the midst of them . Thus they shall know , saith God , that they are my people , and that I am their God , when I have set my Sanctuary in the midst of them for ever . Were it that the Ordinances of God might be set up in their purity amongst us in England , were Reformation perfected , and the Saints walked humbly & peaceably as they should , the whole world will be convinced , that these are indeed the people of the Lord , and that God is amongst them . And they shall say , thou art my God. God must begin withus , we cannot begin and say , Lord , thou art my God , but God must begin with us first , and say , You are my people . There are a great many who say , God is their God , but God never said , they are his people , Joh. 1. 12. it is said of those who beleeved in Christ , that God gave them [ power ] to be the Sonnes of God , the word signifies authority , that they might with authority acknowledge themselves to be the sons of God , and call God Father , they had the broad Seale for it . Will you call ▪ God Father ? where is your 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 , your authority ? if God call you children , if he say you are my people , you may give the Ecchoto Gods mercy and say , thou art our God. Secondly , When God speakes mercy to us , we must answer according to it . Doth God say , you are my people ? we must answer , Lord , thou art our God. This is a great fault amongst Christians , God manifests himselfe to many a gracious heart in abundance of love and mercy , & they give an answer to God in a way of dispaiting and discouragement . Gods ways toward thee speake thus , and say , thou art one of my people , but thy heart works as if God were none of thy God , Hath not God done much for thee ? thou thinkest it is all in hypocrifie that thou dost , whereas the truth is , it is the fruit of his love and kindnes to thee . He speakes aloud in what he hath done for thee , that thou art one of his people , and yet thy heart thinks that he is thy enemy , that he ha●●s thee , and will cast thee off at last . The wayes of God are full of mercy to thee , and he hath set his stampe upon thee , & by his ways of love he tels thee , that thou belongest unto him . O unbeleeving soul , answer Lord thou art my God! & lay aside these discouraging & sinking thoughts of thine ; O that thou wouldst goe away with such an answer in thy mouth ! Doe not answer Gods loving kindnesse , and his gracious dealings towards thee with discouragement and sinking of heart , this is dishonorable to him , and tedious to his Spirit . Thirdly , God works an answerable disposition in the hearts of his people unto him . This is thy duty , but God will work it in time if thou belongest to him . As thus , doth God chuse us to be his people ? then the hearts of the Saints chuse him to be their God ; Doth God say , you are my people ? the Saints say , Lord thou art our God ; Doth God say , I will dwell with them ? they answer Lord , thou art our habitation . Doth God say , I delight in them ? they say , Lord our delight is in thee . Doth God say , I will rest in them for ever ? the Church saith , O my soule returne unto thy rest . Here is a sweet answer , a rebound of all Gods loving kindnes . Lastly , the Saints must professe God to be theirs . It is not enough to beleeve with the heart , but thou must confesse with the mouth ; professe it outwardly : of this before . Further , This is the highest happinesse of the Saints , that God is their God , when they can say this , they have enough . If we could say , this house is mine , this street , this Lordship , this City , this Kingdome , this World is mine ; What is all this ? A Christian comes at length , and saith , this God that made all is mine . As it is reported of the French Ambassador , and the Spanish meeting together , saith the Spanish Ambassadour , my Master is King of Spaine ; my Master ( replyed the French ) is King of France ; my Master said the Spaniard againe is King of Naples : and my Master said the French is King of France ; my Master is King of Portugal , and my Master is King of France ; still he answered with that my Master is King of France , as being enough to answer all the several Kingdomes of the Spaniard . So one saith , I have this house , this land , this stock , this estate , this trade , yea but saith a Christian , I have God , God is mine ; Surely having him thou hast enough . And if God be thy God , he will be a God to thee . 1 Chron. 17. 24. The Lord of hosts is God of Israel , even a God to Israel . So it must be with thee , if thou beest a Saint of God , be a Saint to God ; Are we a people of God , then we must be a people to God. Blessed are the people that are in such a case , yea happy are the people whose God is the Lord. Thus we had opened the gracious manifestation of God to his Church , in part fulfilled spiritually , to spiritual Israel here , but more sensibly to be made good at the great day of Jezreel , that is , when the Jews shall be called , then the Spouse of Christ in a visible way shall be thus married unto him , and the Lord will be their God. Jerome saith upon the Text , All these things that are here promised to the Church , the Jewes expect it at the end of the world , after the time of Antichrist . And I make no question though in a spiritual sence this Scripture is made good for the present unto the Saints , yet in a more visible and sensible way , all this Scripture will be made good to the people of the Jews , & the Gentiles then joyning with them even literally , the glory of the Church shall be visible and apparant . More whereof in the next Chapter . HOSEA , CHAP. 3. The First Lecture . CHAP. 3. VER . 1. 2. 3. Then said the Lord unto me , go yet , love a woman ( beloved of her friend , yet an adulteresse ) according to the love of the Lord toward the children of Israel , who looke to other gods and love flaggons of wine . So I bought her ●o me for fifteen pieces of silver , and for an homer of barley , and an halfe homer of barley . And I said unto her , thou shalt abide for me many dayes , thou shalt not play the harlot , and thou shalt not be for another man , so will I also be for thee . THe close of the former Chapter had much mercy in it , and this Chapter containes the expression of much love also to Israel , but yet withall , God tells them of that meane and low estate they are like to be in before that time comes , for the fulfilling of all that good that God intends to them . God purposes great mercy for them , his heart is much set upon them , but they must for a long time beare their iniquity , they must be brought into a vile and desolate condition in their captivity , even untill a second appearing of Christ . But in all this time the heart of God would be toward them , his intentions would be strong for good to that people above all the people upon the face of the earth : though they might seeme to be utterly rejected of the Lord , and that for many yeers , yet hee would look toward them as a people that he intended yet to marry unto himself , & in time mercy should breake forth gloriously upon them , and his name should be magnified in their returning unto him , so as their hearts should melt toward his goodnesse , they should not abuse it any more as formerly they had done , but they should returne and seeke the Lord their God and David their King , and feare the Lord and his goodnesse in the latter dayes . This is the scope of the Chapter . In which you have three things . 1. Gods love continued unto an adulteresse , Israel . 2. The low and mean condition of this adulteresse for a long time . 3. The returne of God in infinite mercy toward them at the latter day , together with their returne unto him . And the Lord said unto me , goe yet , love a woman ( beloved of her friend , yet an adulter esse . ) We have here a new injunction to the Prophet , and that somewhat harder then his former . In the first Chapter God commanded him to goe and take awife of whoredomes , but here God commanded him to love an adulteresse , which is somewhat more then to take her unto himself , What that was of taking a wife of whoredomes hath been opened in the former Chapter , and may spare some labour in this . It is here a vision as it was there ; As if God should say unto Hosea , Hosea it is just with me as it would be with thee , if thou shouldst goe and have a wife an Adulteresse , notwithstanding all the love she hath found , yet still an Adulteresse , & thine heart should be upon her , so as thou couldest not take thy heart from her , but thou must needs love this Adulteresse still . This people whom I have loved , for whom I have done so much good , yet they have gone a whoring from me , they are an Adulteresse , yet for all that my heart cannot be taken off from them , but is still toward them , yet I love them . This is through the strength of the Covenant that Gods love is so permanent . Others who are not in covenant with him , God casts out for lesser sins for any sins ; but as for his people who are in Covenant with him , no not their adulteries , their idolatries takes not the heart of God wholly from them . Surely then , if thou canst appeale to God. O Lord , thou knowest all things , knowest that there is nothing of thy mind revealed to me but my heart is ready to do it , and if I faile in any thing thou knowest it is the greatest burden of my soul ; O that I knew more of thy minde ! and that I had power to doe more ! surely God will love thee , you heare he loves his people though an adulteresse , as before , so now take this lesson , thy sinnes cannot over come Gods goodnesse , let Gods goodnesse overcome thy sinfulnesse . An adulteresse beloved of her friend . This is ( as some carry it , Calvin , Vatablus , and many others ) beloved of her husband , as if God should say , had they any such excuse for their departings from me , that I have been a bitter husband to them , that I have used them hardly , and rigidly , then indeed they might have some plea ; but I have loved them dearly , I have done much for them , they were beloved of me , & I have carried my selfe to them in the most friendly way that possibly could be , yet they are gone a whoring from me . The wife that followes other lovers , thinks if she have but this to say , her husband is hard to her , hee cares not for her , he loves her not , it excuses in part her adulteries ; and so the husband , a company keeper , an adulterer , if he can say , what will you have me to doe , I never come home but my wife is alwayes b●awling and she loves other men , he thinks this is plea enough for him . But Israel could not have this excuse for her selfe , for she was an Adulteresse , yet beloved of the Lord. If we take the words thus , the notes briefly would be these . First , The husband should be a friend to his wife . There should be nothing but friendly carriage betweene man and wife ; Yea the love of the husband to the wife should farr surmount the love of any friend in the world , but a friend at least to comfort her , to cherrish her in time of sorrowes , to beare the burthen of affliction with her , and so the wife towards the husband . Secondly , A base heart will be base against all bonds of love ; beloved of her friend , yet an adultoresse ; if you should ask , who is he or where is he that is so base ? Lay thy hand upon thine owne heart and consider what the love of God hath been towards thee all the dayes of thy life , and how thou hast carried thy selfe toward him , what love thou hast had from God that might breake the heart of a devill , yet when any temptation comes to draw thee from God , thy base heart listens to it . Thirdly , It is a great aggravation of sin to sinne against much love . We ought to doe our duties to those that we stand in relation unto , though they doe not their duty to us ; if a wife hath a froward husband , a bitter , churlish rugged , wicked , ungodly husband , yet she is bound to doe her duty to him , she is bound to love him , to obey him , to be observant of him in what may give him all lawfull content . So if servants have froward , churlish , cruel Masters or Mastresses , yet they are bound to be obedient to them . 1 Pet. 2. 18. Be subject to your masters not onely to those that rae good and gentle , but to the froward . It is no sufficient excuse for the wife to say , My husband is froward and unquiet , and therefore what shall I doe ? Nor for the servant to say , My Master or Mistresse are unreasonable , they are cruell , what can I doe ? You must doe your duty to them , though they doe not theirs to you , But if you have a loving husband , tender over you , then love is required much more . Love above all things should draw the heart ; the knowledge that it is duty may force obedience , but it is love that draws the heart most kindly . So if a servant have a godly Master and Mistresse , who respects and tenders his good , if he should sinne against them , this aggravateth the sinne exceedingly . To wrong love is a very great sin , Delicata res est amor , love is a most delicate thing , and it must not be wronged , it is tender , a precious thing . A man who is of an ingenuous spirit , had rather a great deale be wronged in his estate , then in his love ; he cannot beare the injury that is done unto his love ; when his love is abused , that goes to his very heart . So it goes to the heart of God for his people to sin against his love ; therefore it is said of the Saints when they sinne , that they grieve the Spirit of God ; he never saith so of wicked men ; they anger God , but the Saints grieve him , because they sinne so much against Gods love . Charge this aggravation of your sinne upon your hearts , and be humbled ; collect together all the expressions of Gods love to you , and let them lye glowing at your hearts , and melt them . But in that God bids him take an Adulteresse beloved of her friend , and calls not this friend Husband , I thinke those who goe another way expresse the minde of the Holy Ghost in this more fully , thus : This friend is not meant of one who is fully married , but rather one in a way of marriage . Amongst the Jewes it was usuall for all women to be under the protection of some men or other . Esay 4. 1. Seven women came and tooke hold of one man , and said , Let us be named by your name , we will eate our own bread , and weare our own cloathes , onely let us be named by your name , let us be under your protection . Even whores were wont , though they had many lovers , yet to have some one speciall man , under whose protection and care they would be , who was to see them not to have wrong , and to make provision for them , and such a one they were wont to call their friend ; And many times these friends would so provide for them , that if they would be reclaymed , forsaking all their other lovers , they would give them good hopes of marrying with them at length . Arias Montanus refers us to one Propertius , in his first Book and second Elegie , to reade about the charge and care of such a friend . The Grecians had that custome likewise : they called him under whose protection they put themselves , 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 , the whore was called from it , 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 . It is said of Plato that he had a whore , one Archenassa , who was called Plato's 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 . Here the Lord would have the Prophet take an Adulteresse beloved of her friend , that is , one that was a common Adulteresse , and yet under the protection of some speciall friend , so as if he might come in place of that friend , and gain the love and affection of this Adulteresse to himself , and in time getting her to be reclaimed , he might marry her unto himselfe . This is according to the love of God to his people , that is , as if God should say , This people is a going a whoring , but I will be content to take them unto my selfe , I will be as their friend , and so love them as a friend to protect them , to have care over them , untill such a time that there may be some experience of their being reclaimed , and then I will marry this Adulteresse fully unto my selfe , for God is not now fully marryed unto the Jews , neither will that marryage be untill that glorious time of their calling comes ; but yet God is as a friend to them to this day , that is , God takes this people yet under his protection , though they seeme to be in a rejected condition , and so , as he gives hope , yea makes many promises that upon their return unto him he will marry them unto himselfe ; yea there shal be a more glorious marriage between the Jews & the Lord Christ , then ever yet there was between him and any people upon the face of the earth . This I thinke to be the very scope and meaning of the words , Beloved of her friend . Somewhat sutable is that we have Deut. 21. 12. 13. when one of the Jews took a captive woman , he might not marry her presently to himself , but if he had a love to her , she was to continue a certaine time , and to be so and so purified , and then he was to take her . The Jewes are for the present as that captive woman , they are in bondage , yet God hath a love to them unto this day ; but so , as they must abide a while untill God be maryed to them ; they are beloved of God , but yet with the love of a friend . The Seventy reade these words , Beloved of her friend , One that loveth evill things , upon the mistake of the Hebrew word , for indead a friend and evill are the same letters , only differing in the points ; so there might easily be a mistake . Who looke to other gods . Their eyes are upon other gods . Where the heart is , there the eyes is . Timor figit oculum , so Amor : Feare fastens the eyes , and so doth Love. The workings of the soule appeares as much in the eye , as in any member ; the workings of love , of trust and confidence appeare much in the eye . They looke to other gods , that is , they have confidence in other gods . Looking up to a thing in Scripture phrase , is to have some confidence in it . Psal . 121. 1. I lift up mine eyes unto the hills from whence commeth my help : That is , I look for help , I have confidence and expect help . But how here to the hills then ? What doth Davids help come from the hills ? Some thinke this to be the place where afterward the Temple was built , and was then the place of the Sanctuary ; but for that it is said that usually in Scripture is but in the singular number , the hill of God ; not the hils ; therefore I finde Calvin , Mollerus , and others , thinke that David here speakes of confidence in the creature , because he presently retracts him selfe in the second verse , My helpe is in Jehovah . As if he should say , I lift up mine eyes unto the creature for help , this is the frailty of my nature , and of the nature of man , to look for auxiliary Forces from Jerusalem , ( which was a hilly place ) I looke for Forces to come from Jerusalem , but they doe not come , well , I will not rest any longer upon them , Jehovah is my help , so they carry it . But now I would rather ( if it may be ) free the Prophet from vaine confidence in the creature , and so the words being rightly understood , may free him if you reade them thus , doe I lift up mine eyes unto the hils ? doe I expect help from the creature ? God forbid I should doe it , for my help is in God. Further , sometimes the Hebrew [ 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 ] is used for [ 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 ] and so it would bee translated above the hils , other men look to the hils , I look above the hils . But rather thus , I lift up mine eyes to the hils , that is , I look to God , why ? because the place where the Temple was to be built , it was not onely upon one hill , but upon hils , and so this expression hath reference to those two hills it was built upon ; the hill of Moriah and the hill of Zion ( which were rather but two ridges of the same ) as 2 Chron. 3. 1. Solomon began to build the house of the Lord upon mount Moriah ; and Psal . 2. 6. I have set my King upon my holy hill of Zion : I look saith David unto God , my Faith hath reference to that place that God hath chosen for himself ; that this is the meaning will appeare if we compare this with Psal . 87. 1. His foundation is in the holy hils , not hill , but hils . The respect Idolaters had to their Idols , being manifested by lifting up their eyes to them , therefore God commanded them , that they must not so much as lift up their eyes to their idols ; And indeed we had need take heed in what we doe in this , so much as to lift up our eyes to look upon the inticements of the flesh ; many will not commit their former sins , but they love to be looking that way . I have read of a Lady , a loving wife , who being at the maryage of Cyrus , she was askt how she liked the Bridgeroom ? how , saith she ? I know not , I saw no body but my Husband . Love and respect drawes the eye either to God or to the creature . According as our hearts are , so our eyes will be . And love flaggons of wine . The word comes from a word that signifies fundavit . The old Latin turns it vivacia uvarum , the leaves , skinnes , and stones of the grape that remaines after pressing , that sinke down into the bottome of the vessell . Noting thereby how saplesse , and savourlesse , and unworthy Idolatrous worship is in comparison of the true worship of God. True worship of God is sweet , and savoury , lovely , and excellent , but mans institutions , how saplesse are they ! The spirits of such men as pleade for and delight in superstitious vanities , the devises of men , how saplesse and unsavoury do they quickly grow ! though heretofore they have had some quicknesse and livelinesse in their wayes , yet if once they delight themselves in the inventions of men , in Gods worship , their spirits grow very unsavory to those with whom they converse . But take the traslation as it is in your books , flaggons of wine , called by this name in the Hebrew , because that vessell , the flaggon is broad in the bottome : That is , ( as some carry it ) thus , They are as drunkards that call for one flaggon after another . Superstitious and idolatrous people , when they have one way of superstition , they call for another ; and when they have got that , they will have another , and are still greedy of more , they are never satisfied , as drunkards are greedy of their flaggons . Or rather , to note the sensuality of the wayes of their Idolatrous worship , their flaggons of wine are joyned to their gods . The Seventy translate the word 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 , Bellaria , fine Cates and junkets , delicate things made with wine and grapes together by all the art they can devise for the pleasing the appetite . From thence the note is cleare . Spirituall adultery and carnall sensuality goe together . They used flaggons of wine in their idolatrous solemnities , that made them love their Idols so much the rather . In the true worship of God there is abundance of sweetness to satisfie the hearts of the Saints , they need not have sensual pleasures to make up their delight , but in superstitious worship there is no such sweetness to satisfie the spirits , therefore they are saine to call for flaggons of wine , and other sensuall things to make up a full delight to themselves . Superstitious and idolatrous Rites bring with them pleasure to the flesh , hence how are they loved and followed by people ? they can hardly ever be taken off from them . In their Idolatrous solemnities they were wont to have Feasts to pamper the flesh . Judg. 9. 27. They went out into the field , and gathered their vineyards , and trod the grapes , and were merry , & went into the house of their God , and did eate and drinke , and cursed Abimelech . So Amos. 2. 8. They drinke the wine of the condemned in the house of their God. What is that ? By oppression and violence they would rend the estates of men from them , and when they had gotten them , then they made merry , yea they would come into the house of their gods , and drinke bowles of wine that they had gotten from the estates of such men whom they had wrongfully condemned , Let Idolaters have their lusts satisfied , and they care not what God they serve . 2 Cor. 8. 10. If any see them sit at meate in the Idols temple ; at meate , they had their flesh satisfied in the Idols temple . Thus God complaines of his people here . As if he had said , Let all bemoane my condition , for though I have loved Israel dearly , she hath gone a whoring from me , and she loveth flaggons of wine , because she hath more pleasure to the flesh in serving Idols , she will serve them . What an abominable thing it is to forsake the blessed God meerly for the love of wine ? How many are there in the world who forsake all that good that is in God , in Christ , in heaven , in eternity , meerely for flaggons of wine ? Calvin hath a note from the word that carries some-what more with it , flaggons of grapes , so the words are in the Hebrew , not flagons of wine , and of grapes rather then wine saith he , because there were artificiall wayes used by them to make their superstitious ways to be more pleasant to them ; As when drunkards have drunk even ad nauseam , that they begin to loath what they delighted in , then they will use some artificiall way or other of mixture of grapes or some other thing with the wine to make it have a new tast , that they may have still delight in drinking ; So ( saith he ) because their old superstitions have nothing in them to satisfie the heart , therefore they are fain to invent new kinds of artificiall wayes to please themselves withall , although ( saith he ) they brag of their antiquity , yet the truth is , they are fain to invent new things every day , to give a new lustre and pomp to their worship , they are alwayes devising some new ceremony or other , or else it would grow loathsome to themselves . This wee have seene in our owne experience , the wantonnesse of mens hearts in superstitious ways is very great , they invent new ways to uphold their old moth-eaten vanities . So I bought her to me for fifteen pieces of silver . The Prophet obeyeth God in this other hard command . God many times sends his Prophets upon very hard businesses , yet they must be willing to serve the Lord in the hardest work ; and bought her to himselfe for fifteen pieces of silver . The word that is here translated bought , signifies to digg , it is taken ( as some think ) from the piercing or boring into the servants eare , which was to be a slave untill the year of Jubile , to note the slavish condition of this people they should be in for a long time . But sometime the word signifies not only boring , but any kind of getting by buying or bargaining , taken from the manner of the Jews , it seems to be a hard expression , how distant do those two seem to be , to dig and to buy ? it signifies also to cut , saith Pagnine , ( excidit ) he hath cut a sunder , because in their bargainings they were wont to cut a beast in sunder , & so to go between the two pieces ; or because in their bargaines they joyned their right hands together , and then another came and put his hand between theirs , as a spade is put into the earth , and so did as it were cut them asunder , and from thence , though the word seem harsh , yet those who understand the manner of their bargainings know the meaning of it . I bought her to my self . This buying was in order to marrying , that shee might be under his care for a while , and then come to be his wife . It was the custome of men in those days to buy their wives . Iacob served twice seven years for Rachel , and so bought her . David bought his wife for a hundred foreskins of the Philistims ; and Christ purchased his Church to himselfe at a dear rate , even by his own blood : But I bought her ( saith hee ) for fifteene Pieces of silver . There is a necessity for the opening these words , not onely that you may see the scope of the holy Ghost here , but likewise may the better understand some other Scriptures . Fifteen pieces of silver ; How much is that ? It is fifteen shekels , for that is a rule among the Hebrews , when a piece of silver is named , and not the summe ; then a shekel is always understood , and when a shekel is set down , and the mettall not exprest , the silver is understood , not gold or any other mettall . Now the common shekell was according to the account of some of the weight of 160. graines of barley . Josephus saith it was about foure Drachmas ( and so I find most carry it ) about 18. or 20. pence of our money ; though a great deale of difference there be among Interpreters about the sum of that shekell ; Jerome upon the fourth of Ezekiel , makes it half an ounce , but there is much difference you know about ounces . This was to signifie the vile and base condition that Israel had brought her selfe into , for thirty shekels of silver was to be given for the price of a maid-servant , Exod. 21. 32. If an oxe have pushed a man-servant , or a woman-servant , he shal give to his Master thirty shekels . Thirty shekels must be given for recompence of losse of a servant who was but a slave ; yet the Prophet must buy this adulteress for half as much , fifteen shekels . Israel , all the tenn Tribes , yea the whole people of the Jews are signified by this adulteress beloved of her friend : So that now the people of Israel , who heretofore the dear ly beloved of Gods soul , his only people upon the face of the earth , the peculiar treasure of God , his portion , his inheritance , had now by their sin brought themselves into a meaner condition then any poore bond-woman in Israel , that they were worth but halfe as much now as a poor woman-slave . This thirty pieces of silver was the goodly price Christ was valued at by the Jews , Zech. 11. 12. Mat. 27. 9. This shewed how Christ was humbled , that he must bee sold for no more then was the price of a slave . But the price of Israel was but 15. pieces , halfe as much . Israel was proud in the day of her prosperity , but now she hath brought her self by her sin into a meaner condition then a slave . And for an homer of barley , and an halfe homer of barley . What that homer of barley was , and what the scope of the holy Ghost is in mentioning of it must be enquired . First , an homer contained ten Ephaes . But by that ( you will say ) we know no more then we did . An Ephah then is neer upon as much as our bushell , so that this homer is neer upon tenne of our bushels . Ruth 2. 17. it is said of Ruth that when shegleaned in the field after the Reapers , she beat out that she had gleaned , and it was an Ephah of barley . And by that you may know the meaning of that text , Esay 5. 10. The seed of an homer shall yeeld an Ephah ; why a homer was ten bushels , how then should the seed of neer tenn bushels yield but one bushell ? It was a threatning of a famine , that though they did sow much , they should reape but little , they should sowe a matter of ten bushels , and reape but one . Or thus , some interpret an homer to be about the burthen that an Asse was able to beare , for 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 in the Hebrew signifies an Asse , 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 so the burthen of that creature was called an homer ; but Ezek , 45. 11. the Text telleth us plainly , that an Ephah is the tenth part of an homer . There is a great deale of difficulty to understand this , if we compare it with another Scripture , Exod. 16. 16 , where the Text saith they were to gather of the Manna every man according to his eating , an homer for every man ; and ver . 36. an homer is the tenth part of an Ephah . This seems quite contrary , here it is that an ephah is the tenth part of an homer , and there it is that an homer is the tenth part of an ephah . But for the salving of this , those who are skilfull in the Hebrew tongue know that these words are written with different letters , though in our English the pronounciation is the same , for that in Exodus is written with [ 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 ] and the other [ 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 ] one thus Gnomer , the other Chomer , so it should be read . Now this homer of Manna that God gave for every man for one day , was almost the tenth part of a bushell , it was foure or five times as much as the Romanes were wont to allow their men , their Dimensum which they called a Chaenix , which was their allowance for their servants , was but the fourth part of this , and scarce that ; noting thereby , tha● God is exceeding liberall unto his people . But why an homer of barley ; Because it was a meane food , and in those times rather the food of beasts then of men ; God promised to feed his people with the finest flower of wheate . Therefore Revel . 6. 5. A measure of ●heate for a penny , and three measures of barley for a penny . But what doth this tend to , that there must be a homer of barley and halfe a homer of barley given for this Adulteresse that the Prophet was to take unto himselfe ? The scope of all is , to signifie the meane condition , that the ten Tribes , and afterward all the Jews should be in , till Christ came to marry them to himselfe . First they should be in a contemptible condition , they should be valued but at halfe the price of a slave . Secondly , they should be fed but meanly and basely , even as slaves , or rather as beasts , this homer and half of barley should be for their sustenance , in which they should be used very hardly for along time . And that you may see how this hath been fulfilled , ( for it did not only refer to the time of their Captivity before Christ , but to all the Captivity they have been in ever since Christs time to this day , and shall be in untill their calling ) the mean condition they were in before , in the time of their first Captivity , you may see Lament . 4. 5. Those that were clothed in scarlet , embraced the dung-hill ; they either lay in filthy places that had dung in them , like beasts , or else they were imployed in carrying dung up and down . And to this day , Histories tell us , that generally the Jews have a most stinking savour , and we know that they are the vilest people in the esteeme of others that are upon the face of the earth . An Historian tells us of an Emperour travelling into Egypt , there meeting with some Jews , he was so annoyed with the stink of them , that he cryes out , O Marco-mani , O Quadi , &c. At length , saith he , I have met with worse , with viler men then such and such , reckoning up divers of the basest people that were upon the face of the earth . And to this day the Turks will admit of no Jew to turne to the Mahumetan Religion , unlesse he first turne Christian ; they have much more honorable esteeme of the Christians , they think that Jesus Christ though he was not God , yet he was a great Prophet ; but for the Jews , they have such vile thoughts of them , that they think it a dishonour to the Turkish Religion that any of them should turne Turk , unlesse be first turned Christian . And we reade of the Romanes , that when they conquered other Nations , they would permit them to call themselves Romanes , after they had conquered them , but they would never permit the Jews to call themselves Romanes , though the Jews would comply never so much with them and be their servants , ( Augustine hath it upon Psalme 58. ) lest there should be some blot stick to the glory of the Romanes by that odious people . Thus we see what shame hath God cast upon that nation even unto this day , that they are counted as the very off-scouring of all nations . Suetonius tels us that in the exactions that the Romanes require of people , they put upon the Jews more then upon all people . This that we reade of in histories , & that which we finde by experience of the base condition these people are in , is the fulfilling this Scripture , that I am now opening unto you , she shal be bought for fifteen pieces of silver , and fed with barly , she shall be in a very low , base and meane condition untill Christ shall come and marry her to himself . Notes from hence are . First , A people who have been high in outward glory , when they depart from God , make themselves vile and contemptible , God casts contempt upon wicked men , especially upon wicked men who corrupt his worship . Do we not see it at this day ? Mal. 2. 9. It is threatned that the Priests who departed from the law , & corrupted their waies should be base and contemptible before the people . Hath not the Lord done thus at this day ? even those that not long since gave themselves the title of the triumphant Clergy and the triumphant Church , and went up and downe jetting as if they would out-face heaven it self ; They feared all men with the High Commission Court. But what shame hath God cast upon this generation ? the people loath them , and we hope in time the Lord will sweepe away the proud and haughty of them , as the reffuse of the earth . Yea our whole nation hath been a proud nation ; what vaunting hath there been of what a glorious Church we had ? never such a one upon the earth , we sate as a Queen amongst the nations ; we have been a haughty people , and God may justly cast contempt upon us . The Jewes were so ( the Temple of the Lord , the temple of the Lord ) but God hath now made them the vilest nation upon the earth . And the truth is , God hath begun to cast much shame upon this nation . The time was when the Kingdom of England was a terror to other people , of late they have been the scorne and contempt of other nations . When Ephraius spake there was trembling ; he exalted himselfe in Israel , but sinning it Baal he died , he became as a dead , poor , vile , contemptible people . Hos . 13. 1. The Lord loveth to name the pride of men . How many have you known who have been proud and lofty , and the Lord hath cast shame and contempt in their saces ? even before those whom they looked upon heretofore with contempt , they have now been made objects of contempt . Secondly , Though a people be under contempt , yet Gods heart may be towards them to doe them good at the latter end . There is the love of Gods election still to this people , God remembers them , and intends good unto them for all this . VVho knowes what contempt God may cast upon us ? Perhaps he may let our proud adversaries trample us under their feet , but we hope he will not , because he sees their hearts so proud as they are . But if he should , we should not despaire , we must not conclude God hath quite cast off England , though he should bring all his people under contempt , so as to betrampled under the foot of pride . And if there be any of you whom God hath so humbled as he hath made you contemptible ; doe you humble your selves before God , but do not despaire , the Lord may yet have a love to you , though you are now under shame and contempt , who knowes but that this was the only way that God had to humble your hearts ? God putteth his ovvn people under contempt , and yet it is all out of love unto them , and vvithan intent to do them good at last . Thirdly , ( which is the most especial note hence ) After many promises of Gods mercy and of a glorious condition , which he intendeth his people , he may yet hold a very hard hand over them a great while , God having promised so much mercy in the former Chapter , Israel might quickly grow vvanton , and say it is no great matter , though we be vile and wicked , yet God will marry us to himself , and we shall be a glorious people , and what need we take care ? Nay saith God stay here , though my heart be toward you , yet this generation shall suffer , and the next generation , & the next generation after that shall suffer hard things , you shal be brought into the most vile condition that ever any people was brought into , yet my promise shall be fulfilled at the last . Here we see what care God taketh that people should not grow wanton with his mercy , and think , Oh we are in covenant with God , and God hath pardoned our sins , what need we care ? take heed of growing want on , thou maist suffer fearfull things in this world . Though God may save your souls , yet you may be brought into as wofull a condition in your ovvn apprehensions as ever any creature was upon the earth . And for England , though it is true , we have as many arguments of the love of God to 〈◊〉 as ever any nation had , but yet who knows what this generation may suffer that hath so sullied it self with superstitious vanities ? We may be brought into vvefullslavery , and then God may raise up unto himself another generation , upon whom he will be stow the mercy intended . Fourthly , Those who will take their fill of delight to the flesh in a sensual use of the creature , it is just with God they should be cut short , & be made to live meanly and basely , to be made to feed with course fare , with barley . The Jews had their delicates before , they fared deliciously , now they must be sed worse then their servants , and eare that which was meate for beasts . How many hath God thus dealt withall , who not long since had their tables furnished with the choysest sare , with variety of dishes , & now perhaps are glad of a harley loafe for themselves and their children ? Again , If God will not utterly destroy a people as he might , but reserve mercy for them at last , though they have never such a meane subsistence for the present , yet they have cause to blesse God. Though this here be a threatning , yet there is a promise in it . The people of Israel ( if they knew all ) had no cause to murmur at Gods dealing , but to admire at his mercy , though they had but a little barley to sustaine them . And suppose God should bring us in England into a low condition , so as we may be glad of a barley loafe ( we know famine commonly followes warre ) ( it was wont to be a phrase ; browne bread and the gospell is good fare ) and God may bring that upon us in another way then ever yet we or our fore-fathers were acquainted with , but yet if the Lord do not cast us off utterly from being his people , though he feed us with brown bread , though we have never so mean a subsistance for the present , we shall have cause to blesse his name . Lastly , It is the way of God to humble those he intendeth good unto , to prepare them for mercy , by cutting them short of these outward comforts . If the Lord hath dealt so with any of you , you have lived full-handed , perhaps wives have brought good portions to their husbands , and now they are broke , and all is lost , perhaps you had good friends in the Countrey , & many of them are plundered in their estates , & now you are faine to fare meanly , and if you have bread for your children you think it well ; but consider this , Is not God now humbling me , and thereby preparing my heart for himself ? Oh blessed be God for this my condition , this bread is sweeter to me then all the dishes I have had in my life . VVhen you sit in your houses with your wives and children , and have nothing but barley bread to feed upon , have these thoughts , I hope God doth this in love & mercy he is making this my condition the best condition I was ever in , the greatest blessing to me Verse 3. And I said unto her , thou halt abide for me many dayes , thou shalt not play the harlot , and thou shalt not be for another man , so will I also be for thee . You shall not only be in such a low condition as a slave , and worse then a maid servant , and be sed with barley , but you shall abide thus , & abide thus many dayes . Thus they have abode these sixteene hundred yeares since Christs time , besides their former captivity . The Lord would have a full experience of Israel that their hearts were throroughly humbled , before he would take them to mercy again . There was never any people dealt more falsely with God in their humiliations then they had done before . How often when they were in misery did they come with their seeming humiliation & cryed for mercy , and God ●●●wed them mercy , and assoone as they were delivered , they fell off againe and went after their Idols , and then being in misery again , they cryed to God and he delivered them , and then presently to their Idols again ; Well , saith God , I will not deale so with you hereafter , I will not trust you so as I have done , you have beene in misery , and I have delivered you when you cryed to me , and then you have fallen to your sins againe , but now you shall be humbled to purpose , you sh●l be ●ow many yeers in this low and meane condition , and then your hearts ●●ll be th●rowly broken , so that when you shall returne to me againe , you shall never fall from me . God hath dealt so with many of you , you have been in affliction , God hath delivered you , you have gone to your sinnes again , you have been in affliction againe , and he hath delivered you , & you have fell to your sins again , and thus you have dallyed with the great God : God may bring a fore & long affliction upon you , that you shall be so thorowly humbled , that you shall never goe back againe to your sins as you have done . This is the meaning , abide many dayes , When we would scoure & purge a filthy garment thorowly , we do not onely wash it , but wee lay it a soaking a great while , and a frosting many nights ; the Jews have lyne a soaking & frostning many hundred yeeres , this is the hardnesse of mans heart , afflictions wil not work presently ; though many wedges be put into , & many blows struck upon knotty wood , it stirs not : some metals are long in melting , yea though the fire be very hot . Againe , Here we see it is Gods ordinary way when he promiseth mercy , to seeme to goe quite contrary to a people , to seem as if he would quite destory them . I will marry my self unto them in loving kindness and in mercies , but yet I will let this people be above sixteen hundred yeers in this forlorne condition . And so it hath been in all Gods administrations since the beginning of the world . When God comes to humble sinners , they must be content to be humbled Gods own time , they must not out of a sudden furious humor say , Lord how long ? I have been thus long in a sad condition , I have prayed thus long . Is your sadness & affliction eternal ? Oh no , a yeer or two perhaps , but you have deserved eternity of misery . Thou shalt abide for me many dayes , thou shalt not play the harlot , & thou shalt not be for another man , so will I also be for thee . That is , in all this time you must have a care of your self that you do not seek after other lovers , let me have experience that you will now worship the only true God , and I will promise you to stay for you as you do abide for me . For the phrase , Thou shalt not be for another man. The Hebrew phrase to be to or for another man is to marry , thou shalt not marry another , Ezek . 16. 8. I entred into a covenant with thee and thou becamest mine , fuisti 〈◊〉 , thou wort to me , that is , thou wert marryed to me , Levit. 21. 3. A virgi●●hich hath no hath and , quae non suit viro , a virgin that w●●n to another 〈◊〉 . A usefull note may be had from ●●nce , That husbands must be to their wives , and wives must be to their husbands , that is , live to them ; whatsoever thou hast , any knowledge , any parts , any grace , it must be to thy wife , for the benefit of thy wife , & what the wife hath must be to the husband . You shall abide for me many dayes , and take heed in all this time you doe not depart from me & worship another God : Hence we may observe . In the time of the sorest affliction and trouble we must then take heed we forsake not God. Though I use you hardly for a long time , yet you may not thinke to go and shift for your selves any other way . In time of affliction we must take heed of using shifting wayes , we must not seek to help our selves by false comforts , though trouble continue long . We have an excellent place for that , Psal . 44. 11. Thou hast scattered us amongst the Heathens ; and ver . 12 , Thou sellest thy people for nanght ; and ver . 13. Thou makest us a reproach to our neighbours , & a derision to them that are round about us ; & ver . 17. And all this is come upon us , yet have we not forgotten thee , neither have we dealt falsely in thy Covenant ; and ver . 19. Thou hast sore broken us in the place of dragons , and covered us with the shadow of death , if we have stretched out our hands to a strange God ; as if he should say , God forbid such a thing as this is , though we be in the place of dragons , though we be under reproach , under great affliction ; ( you may find in that Psalme the most wofull afflicted estate of Gods people described , as in any part of the Booke of God , ) yet we have not lifted up our hands to another God. We must not say as King Jehoram , 2 King 6. 30. Why should I waite for the Lord any longer ? He seemed to be humbled , and put on sackcloth , but he would not be contented to waite for the Lord any longer , but shift for himself . It is that which is in the spirits of men under affliction to thinke , why should I waite for God any longer ? I will now seeke to helpe my selfe in my owne way , to shift for my self , The Lord forbid that such thoughts should be in any of our hearts . Sedebis mihi , thou shalt be quiet , though thou doest abide in this sad condition a long while . Esay , 30. 7. their strength is to sit still , and ver . 17. In rest shall ye be saved , in quietnesse and confidence shal be your strength . Alas , thou art now afflicted , where wilt thou mend thy self poor soul ? wilt thou go to false gods , to thy former sinful lusts ? that is not the way to help thee , thou must abide untill Gods time come that he wil shew mercy to thee , The heart of man is strongly set upon good , and cannot be content to stay Gods time , but if God fubdue thy heart so far as that it is content to abide though never , so long for God , & will not go out to help it selfe in any unlawfull way , this is a good signe that there is much love in the bottom . It is a signe of a strong affection in a woman , when there fall out things that hinder the match between her lover and her self . Well saith she , though there be this and that in the way , though you object never so many things , yet I will have him , I will never marry as long as I live except I have him : This argueth heat & power of affection . So here , I will marry you unto my selfe , saith God , but I will have you stay for me my time , many things are to be done before that day , and then after you have stayed , I will come to you in a glorious manner . As God dealeth with the Jews , so often it is in marrying himself to a particular people . Thou shalt do it . God doth not only command them to do it , but it is a promise and a prophesie that they shall doe it . But you will say , how have the people of the ●ews abode for God ? Thus , they have never to this day chosen any other God , though they have not been convinced of the Messiah , yet ever since the captivity they have hated Idolatry , & that was the thing GOD specially meant in this , thou shalt not have any more Idols , thou shalt choose no other God , no other husband , though thou hast been very wicked and sinfull this way heretofore ( the Jews formerly chose all manner of gods , the gods of the Amorites , and Moabites , and of all the Heathens about them ) yet now thou shalt choose no other gods but me ; thus far this is fulfilled , to this day the Jews since the captivity have never chose any other God , but have acknowledged the Jehovah to be the only true God , they cannot abide Images . There is a notable history for this in Eusebius , in the 18. Chapter of his Antiquities . Caius Caligula sent one Petronius to set up an Image in the Temple of Jerusalem ; divers of the Jewes came to Petronius to plead with him , and said , Sir , what is it that you do ? we beseech you do not do it , dep●ive us of our lives first , for say they , it is impossible so long as our soules are in our bodies to abide it , we will all dye first ; But saith Petronius , it is the command of the Emperour , and there is no contradicting it , it must be done . They answered , seeing you will not transgresse Caesars command , neither vvill we violate the command of our God , nor are we so fainthearted , or have wee such a vaine desire of the continuance of our lives , as to enjoy them upon such terms to lose the reward of eternall life , that is proposed for the keeping Gods commands . This was their spirit then , and to this day they will not endure Idols ; one main thing that hinders the conversion of the Iews is , they being scattered here and there among Papists , and seeing so much Idolatry among them , they are thereby stumbled at Christian Religion , and if God would once pull down Popery , certainely the Jewes would quickly come in , God is now about that . Therefore all of us should assist in what we can to take down all monuments of Idolatry , to make the worship of God more pure , this will be a means to bring about their conversion , and in this regard they have abode for God all this while ; this I conceive to be the meaning of the Text. And I also will abide for thee . VVhat is the meaning of that ? First , in their captivity , saith God , though you shal be long in captivity , and in a low condition , be content , do not take any other god to be marryed unto as your husband ; I will be content , I will stay , I will have no other people upon the earth but you all the while you are in captivi●y . But how doth God abide for Israel now ? God hath chosen the Gentiles how the● doth he stay for them ? Yes certainly , God stayes for Israel to this day , thus . First , all the Gentiles that are called , they come into God , as being joyned to the people of the Jews ; God honoured the Jews so farre , as that all the Gentiles that doe come in , are to be made the Israel of God. But rather further thus , God abides for the people of the Iews to this day , in this sense , God never hath taken , nor never will take to himselfe any Nation upon the earth to be a nationall Church , as the Jewes were , and as it is probable the Jews shall be at their calling again , though God takes the Gentiles that are converted , and severall Congregations to be Churches , but to marry himselfe to a whole Nation , in that way as the Iews were , that is , if a man be born of that Nation , it shall be sufficient to make him a member of the Church , this God did never do since the Iews rejection , and never will do it till the Iews be called again ; though God takes Kingdomes , and so in some figurative sense a Nation perhaps may be called a Church , but to speak properly and strictly , to be a Church so as the Iews were , there is no such nationall Church , nor never will be till the calling in of the Iews again ; then God will be marryed to that Nation in a more glorious manner then ever , & God abideth to this day for that glory which hee intendeth for Iesus Christ , untill they come in . And this I take to be a great reason why God for the present suffers his Churches to bee persecuted so much as they are , herein God suffers himselfe as well as they ; the Church ever since Christs time hath been in a low and persecuted condition , the wicked have prevailed ; What is the reason ? God abideth for this people of the Iews , and hee is pleased himself to undergoe many sufferings , in the mean time do you abide for me , I will be content to suffer much dishonour my selfe , many shall come in to Christ , but yet they shal be a poor contemptible people , the wicked of the world shall prevail against them , shall scorn them , shall contemne them , so that I shall not appear to the world to be their Husband , untill you be called again , I shall be as it were without a wife ; but when the time shall come that you shall return to me , then I wi● manifest my selfe indeed , you shall be a most glorious Church , and then there shall be such a full marriage between us , that all the world shall acknowledge it , then they shall all come and say , Come , behold the Bride , the Lambs wife , This is the scope of this Scripture ; from whence these Observations . First , Husbands should not require of their wives any thing but what they will answerably do for them . God doth so here , Abide for me , saith hee , and I will abide for you , there shall be parpari , like for like . Many husbands will require hard things from their wives , but will doe little themselves ; and on the other side wives expect great things from their husbands , but do little themselves . There must be a proportion betweene what the wife expects from the husband , and what shee doth to or for her husband , and so mutually . 2. In our sadde condition God suffereth as well as wee . This may helpe us in our sufferings we should thinke , though wee suffer much , God suffereth as much as we , why then ●●ould we think much ? the people of the Iews if they had hearts might see it now , God stayes for his honour till they come in . So in all the persecutions of the Church , doth not Christ suffer , in that the great work of Reformation doth not go on ? It is true , we are grieved , 〈◊〉 Spirit of God is grieved as well as we , and suffereth as much as we , God ●oth as it were abide for us , and stays for his glory . Wee desire ( it is true ) ●hat God would come in and manifest himselfe , then we shall be happy and ●ejoyce ; but so long as God stays our happinesse , he stays his own glory . What abundance of glory doth God lose in those praises hee should have , if the Reformation were presently perfected ? but God hath other ends , God is content to stay for his prayses , let us be content to stay for what we desire to have , it concerns God to hasten the work as much , yea farre more then it concerns us to desire it , we suffer something for want of it , but God suffers more . 3. That people , or that soul that endureth hardship a long time for God , and resolveth to reserve it self for him , so as if it cannot have comfort in God it will have none elsewhere , may assure it selfe that God reserveth himselfe for it . Certainly nothing shall take off the heart of God , but there will be a blessed marriage between that soule , that people , and him . Is there ever a poor creature here is in a sad condition , & God seemeth to deal hardly with it , yet hee findeth in himselfe this frame of spirit , well though God seem to leave me , and I am thus desolate , yet if I can have no comfort here , I will have none elsewhere ; I wil be content to stay and wait , no creature shal have my heart . It is true , I am not able to guide my selfe , but I am resolved the Devil shal never guide me ; I am not able to do the will of God , but I will never do the wil of the Devil ; and if God should leave me never so long , nay leave me eternally , I wil never have any other husband , I wil rather dye a widow , I wil never let out my self to any ; if he doe not come in and marry himself to me , I wil be without comfort as long as I live . Is thy heart in this frame ? Peace be unto thee , certainly God intends thoughts of mercy to thy soule , there wil certainly be a marriage betweene God and thy soule . And this frame of heart where it is , oh how wil it help against temptation ! when a poor soul is in distresse , and it may be God seemeth to go off further & further , I have prayed long and long , and yet God seems not to heare , afflictions , they prevail ; why do you pray any more ? why do you come and heare any more ? you were as good leave off at first , God wil never come , you were as good take your pleasure for a while , you can but perish at the last : This temptation many times comes very sorely upon poor distressed soules ; But now when the heart can answer , it is true , the Lord indeed seemeth to be gone , and I have cause to fear lest he should reject me , but become of mee what wil , yet I wil never have any other husband , never any other comfort but God comfort , no other peace but the peace of God , and I am resolved that if I 〈◊〉 I wil perish crying for it ; if thou beest in this frame waiting for GOD , GOD is waiting for thee in way●● of his mercy , and at 〈…〉 bowels of GODS mercy will yerne towards that , as the bowels of Joseph yerned towards his brethren so that he could hold no longer . You know Joseph for a long time used his brethren hardly , but his brethren yet behaved themseves humbly and submissively toward him , and at length he could not refraine ; so it may be God useth thee some what hardly for a while , yet do thou keep in an humble and submissive frame of spirit unto him , do that which beseemeth a creature to do , whatsoever God doth to thee , it is fit God should exercise his absolute power over me , and that I should do my duty to him , do this and be sure thou art a soul that God will marry himself unto in the end . Fourthly , So farre as we are willing to be for God , God is willing to be for us . God requires that you should seek him with your whole heart , Jer. 29. 13. Mark how God answereth , I will rejoyce over them to doe them good , yea I will plant them in this land assuredly with my whole heart and with my whole soule ; Will you seeke God with your whole heart ? I will do you good saith God with my whole heart . God is as willing to doe for you as you are to do for him , if all the faculties of your souls work toward God , all the attributes in God shall worke for your good . If thy estate be wholly given up for God , Gods riches shall be wholly for thee . VVouldest thou know how Gods heart works toward thee ? do but lay thine hand upon thy own heart , according to the beatings of thine heart towards God , so are the workings of the heart of God toward thee ; thou mayest determine it thus ; thou canst not goe up to heaven to know it , but go into thine owne heart and there thou mayest know . As a man may know by the working of an engine within , how the workings are abroad . That is the reason that the Saints , when they have had their hearts enlarged in prayer , they have come to be resolved what God will do for them or for his Church ; as it is said of Luther , when he was in prayer one time more then ordinarily earnest with God , he comes down to his frinds and saith , well it shall goe well with Germany all my dayes , look ye to it afterward : he knew what was done in heaven , by what was done in his own heart . We may know in a great measure what God meaneth to doe with his Churches according to the inward beatings of our own hearts . Further , See here the happy advantage of the Saints , beyond the men of the world thus : Be you for me saith God , & I will be for you . The men of the world can say , I am for the world , & the world is for me , I am for my honour , and my honor is for me , I am for my whore , and my whore is for me , this is all their happines , but now a Saint can say , I am for God , and God is for me . Oh the goodness of God toward us , that he is willing to be for us as we are for him ! for him , alas what can we be for him ? we are poor worms , vile creatures in our selves , what can we do ? he hath no need of us , we are bound to do all that we do . It is all one as if a king should come to a poor beggar , & say thus , poor man thou hast but little , yet do what you can for me , I will do what I can for you ; this were a mighty disproportion : Alas what can the beggar do for the King ? If you will but use your staffe or what you have for me , I will use my riches , & glory , and all for your good ; saith the King to the beggar . So saith God to a poore creature , Be you for me , and I will be for you ; stand for me , and I will stand for you ; use any thing you have forme , and I will use what I have for you . Oh the blessed condition of the Saints ! who would not be for God ? Do not now say , alas ! I am a poore vile and unworthy creature , so were the Jews , do not say I am gone a whoring from God , and dealt falsely with him , the Jews did so , yet saith God , whensoever you will be for me , I will be for you , It is now the great question amongst us , who are you for ? I will put the question to you all , who are you for ? Are your hearts wholly given up to God , or are you for your lusts for the creature ? certainly the creature will deceive you ere long , you will have no good from the creature that now you are so much for ; if you be not for God now , hee will send you to the creature in the time of your distresse . There is a time comming that every one of us shall see the need we have that God be for us ; let us be for God now , that God may be for us then , when we come to cry to him , and say , Oh Lord , let thy mercy and goodnesse be for us , he will say , who were you for ? you were for your lusts , now goe to your lusts , you would have none of me before , I will have none of you now . Pro. 1. 26. 27. You would have none of my reproofe , I also will laugh at your calamity and mock when your feare commeth . Marke , They would have none of Gods reproofe , hee doth not say , they would have none of my mercy , they would have none of my grace , therefore I will laugh at their destruction ; but they would have none of my reproofe ; why ? the reproofes of God are the bitterest , the harshest things of all , yet because they would have none of Gods reproofes , he laughes at their destruction . What shall become of them then , who will have none of the riches of Gods grace offered to them in Christ , The Second Lecture . HOSEA 3. 4. 5. For the children of Israel shal abide many dayes without a King , and without a Prince , and without a sacrifice , and without an image , and without an Ephod , and without a Teraphim . Afterward shall the children of Israel returne , and seek the Lord their God. HEre is much privation , six withouts , 1. without a King , 2. without a Prince , 3. without a sacrifice , 4. without an image , 5. without an Ephod . 6. without a Teraphim , but the last verse makes all up , They shall return and seeke the Lord their God , and David their King. These withouts shew the wofull confused estate that Israel was to be in for many dayes , many years , both in regard of their Civill , and of their Church state . The Civill State , without a King , without a Prince . Their Church , in the four that follow after . Though once they were the happiest people upon the face of the earth both in regard of their Civil and Church estate , yet now they shall be most miserable . This they had brought upon themselves , they had set up their Idols in Dan and Bethel , Dan is the place of judgement , Bethel the house of God , so the words signifie ; there was abundance of corruption both in places of judgement , and in the house of God , and now there comes upon them abundance of confusion both in their Civill and in their Church state . They received their order for both from God himself , from heaven , and their Laws as well for Cvill as for Church Government , which no other people yet ever did in the state manner ; but they leave Gods instituions , and so they are brought into all confusion . They shall be without a King. How without a King ? When they were in captivity , yet they were under a King , the King of Babylon and the Assyrian , and now they are scattered under the Government of Kings and Princes still where ever they are . They have Kings over them , but they have none of their own Nation to be their King , and that is the judgement ; Neither are they governed by their own ( or rather ) by Gods Laws , and for them to be in slavery under Kings , was to them as ill ( yea worse ) then to have no King at all . It is a sad condition for a people to be so without a King , to protect them , without a King to maintaine their Laws , their Priviledges and Liberties . When men reject God from ruling over them , it is just with God to put them under the rule of Tyrants , of Oppressors , of publike enemies unto their state , of destroyers . The blessing of government is very great , if it be right , and therefore the Persians were wont after their Governor dyed to let all the people for five dayes be without any governour at all , that seeing the inconvenience and mischiefe of being without it , they might the more willingly yeeld themselves under Government , and be obedient to it when they came under it . It is a question among Polititions , whether Tyrannie or Anarchy be the better , Tyrannicall Government , or no Government at all . Though Tyrannie ( except it come to a great extremity ) may be better then Anarchie , yet certainly it is not better then to bring power to be regulated , though it be with some trouble , That power that at first raiseth power , that designes such persons and families to have the power , that limiteth that power , surely cannot want power to regulate that power that it should not be to its owne destruction . But here it is not onely to be without a King , but without a Prince too . The word that is here translated Prince , signifieth a Ruler , Judge , or Governour , and so I finde it often used in Scripture . 1 Chron. 27. 31. All these were rulers of the substance , Princes , the same word that is here used ; and Nehem. 3. 9. The ruler of the halfe part of Jerusalem , the Prince . So that by Prince here is meant Judges or any kind of Rulers , they shall be without Prince , without any Judges or Rulers . Though they had no Kings , yet if the government had been in the hand of eminent men , of Judges over them , their condition had not beene so sad . Time was ( not long before ) that their happinesse did not consist in being under the government of Kings , they were in a happy condition before ever these were over them , and the first time that ever they came under their government , it was upon their own choice : and so as God professeth they had rejected him , and God sent them their first King in his wrath . Therefore their misery certainly did not depend wholly upon being without a King. If God restraine not Kings , they often desire to encroach upon the Liberties that the Laws of the Land , the light of Nature , and God himselfe gives Subjects . Plutarch tells us a story of Pyrrhus , who comming to Athens , the Athenians to shew their respect , and to give honour to King Pyrrhus , let him come into their Castle , to sacrifice there , to Minerva , which was a place they were not wont to let strangers into . VVhen he came out of the Castle , he told them that he was much engaged to them for that great favour ; in requitall of which , hee told them he would give them this good counsell , Take heed , saith he , that you never let King come more into this place ; Immitating how easily they may be perswaded to internch upon the liberties of those who come under their power . And this should abide for many dayes . It did abide for 700. yeares and upward before Christs time in regard of the ten Tribes , for from the sixt of Hezekiab to Christ it was so long , the tenne Tribes never came under any Governour of their owne in all that time : And since Christs time neither Judah nor Israel have had either King or Prince of their own . Oh what a blindness is there upon this people ! how dreadfull is that darkness they are now in ! That notwithstanding the Prophesie was so cleare , that the scepter should not depart from Judah untill Shiloh came ; and yet now they have been without Prince these 1600. yeares , and yet they will not believe that Shiloh is come . Thus when God giveth over to blindness and hardnesse , things that are never so cleare will not be believed . But their confusion in their Church state is more grievous then the other , They shall be without a sacrifice , and without an image , and without an Ephod , and without a Teraphim . Two of these foure , expresse their being deprived of Gods own Ordinances , and the other two their being deprived of their false worship . They made a mixture in worship , they would have their sacrifice & their Ephod , but together with them their image and their Teraphim . This is mans perversness to make mixtures in Gods worship , they will keep something of that which is Gods , but they will bring in something of their own too , and that spoiles all . I have read of an Emperour of Rome , that in one Temple he would have Christ and Orpheus worshipped both together . And those who were sent into Samaria by the King of Babylon , of vvhom we reade , 2 Kings 17. 33. They feared the Lord , and served their own gods : but verse 34. it is said , they feared not God , that is , though they would acknowledge the true God , yet they would mix the worship of Idols with the true God , and so God rejected all , they did not feare 〈◊〉 God at all ; It is no feare of God except we feare him onely ; it is no worship of God that is accepted , unless we worship him onely . It is true , the Heathens are content with mixture in their worship ; you may worship one God , and have the worship of another God mixed with it , because there is not any one of them who challengeth to himselfe to be the universall good , but God being the universall good , he must be worshipped alone without mixture . There are two things wherein we must take heed of mingling ; The one is in Divine worship , the other is in that great point of Justification . It is as much as our lives are worth to mingle in either of these , we must keep to the Rule very close and strict in these two , rather then in any thing . These people had both , and God threatens they should be without both ; seeing they would not keep themselves fully to his institutions , they should have none at all , they should have neither Gods institutions nor their own . VVe are this day much like to Israel . In regard of our Civill state , much confusion there is in that , though not altogether so much as was in theirs . And in our Church state wee are very like them ; we have neither the right way of worship , nor the false , in regard of the Government of the Church ; The false is cast away and profest against , yet we have not the true ; Onely here is the mercy of God that we are inquiring after the true , & seeking the Lord , and David our King. The Lord give us hearts to inquire to purpose . Those who understand the Septuagint , shal finde that they translate these foure here , Sacrifice , Image , Ephod , and Teraphim , by words that onely signifie the true worship , and therefore for Image they put 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 an Altar , and for the Teraphim 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Priesthood , and for the Ephod , 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 manifestation ; a word used for the Vrim and Thummim . But the Hebrew is other wayes , S●crafice , Image , Ephod , and Teraphim , as in your bookes . First then to enquire after that which was right , the true worship , Sacrifice and Ephod , what that was , and then the other , Image and Teraphim . Sacrifice . They should have no sacrifice at all , for since their Temple was destroyed they could never have any . That is the reason that they pray with that mighty fervency of spirit that God would build the Temple again , ( as I remember I formerly shewed you out of Buxtorfius . ) Aedifica , aedifica , aedifica ; cito , cito , cito , Lord build , build , build thy Temple , in our dayes , &c. Because they knew they could have no sacrifice so long as their Temple was downe ; And this was a sad condition they were in ; this is their lamentable estate to this day , they have not the legall sacrifices , nor that which was typed out by them . There were these three things in their sacrifices . 1. Their tendring up of themselves to God , the shewing their respect to him in that way he required , that was in their Burnt-Offering . 2. Seeking the expiation of sinne , that was in their Sinne-Offering . 3. Seeking for mercy and thanksgiving , that was in their Peace-offering . Now to have no sacrifice in either of these three kinds , that is , to have nothing to tender up to the high and blessed God to shew our respect to him ; to have no means to expiate our sins when we have offended him ; to have no way to seeke to God for mercy when we need , nor to returne praise , this must needs be a sad thing . This the Jews have not for the present , we have Christ who is to us all these , the tendring up of him . to God , is the tendring the greatest respect to God that possibly can be , the tendring of him is the expiation for our sins , it is the seeking of whatsoever mercy we would have , and it is our Eucharisticall sacrifice too for all our mercies . But those who are without Christ , are to this day without sacrifice , they have nothing to tender up to God. If thou wilt tender up thy estate , thy body , or thy liberty , or thy name , this is no sacrifice acceptable unto God , except thou hast Christ to tender up to him , and canst tender up all in him and through him , then indeed God accepts of these . When thou hast sinned what sacrifice wilt thou offer to God to explate thy sin ? all thy prayers , thy teares are nothing , except they come with this sacrifice , Jesus Christ ; in him indeed a contrite heart is a sacrifice very acceptable to God. But so long as thou art without Christ , the judgement of the Iews is upon thee , thou art without a sacrifice . And without an Ephod . ] By this he meaneth , first , that they should be without the Priesthood . They should not have any Church Officers , And secondly , they should have no meanes to know the mind of God. That is the scope , which appeares thus . First , That by the Ephod is meant the Priests , is cleare by that expression 1 Sam. 22. 18. where it is said that Doeg slew four-score & five persons that did we are a limen Ephod , that is , four-score and five Priests . Secondly , Without the meanes of knowing Gods minde , for the Vrim and the Thummim , was upon the pectorall , upon the breast-plate thas was fastned upon the Ephod ; So that when they were without the Ephod , they must needs be without their breast-plate , for the breast-plate was annexed to the Ephod , and could not be used for the knowing the minde of God but onely by applying it to the Ephod , 1 Sam. 30. 7. David said to the Priest , Bring me hither the Ephod , and David inquired at the Lord , saying , shall I pursue after this troope ? It was by the presence of the Ephod , that he did enquire vvhat the minde of God was what he should do in this businesse that he was now about , whether he should follow the troope , yea or no. And the Text is very observable in the sixt verse , you may see at what time it was that David was so carefull to make use of the Ephod , to know the minde of God what he should doe , he was in an exceeding distressed condition , for Ziglag his owne City that he had the charge of was burnt , and the men of the City were all in a fretting mood , and talked of stoning him , because the Amalekites had come in his absence & taken away their goods , their wives and children , and burnt the Towne . This is the condition of men in publique places , if any thing fall out unsuccesfully , the people are ready in rage to fall upon them ; this makes men in publicke places to be in a hard condition , very dangerous and troublesome . We had need pray much for them , we are ready to envy those that are above us , & employed in publique services ; but considering what danger they are in , & how every thing that falleth out amisse , otherwise then we desire , the blame is presently laid upon them , their condition is not so happy as we imagine . This was Davids condition , nay the Text saith , that being in this condition , he and the men that were with him wept , so as they had no more power to weep their hearts were so broken , yet in this sad and grievous condition , he encourageth himself in the Lord his God , and he calleth for the Ephod to enquire , and know the mind of God what he should do in it . You shall observe that this is the first time we read that David in his VVars and Battells called for the Ephod , when he went to Achish , then he did not enquire , when he invaded the Geshurites , and Amalekites before , he did not enquire , but now when he was brought into straits , when his heart was broken , when he was in a weeping condition , now he calleth for the Ephod : VVhen God brings men into straits , and humbles them , then they will enquire of God to purpose . VVe are now about to enquire of God , to know his mind but we are not humbled enough , our straits have not broken our hearts , and perhaps we shall not so readily know Gods mind , God may yet humble us more , and then when we come to enquire Gods mind , it may be to further purpose . But to open this garment a little . The word Ephod is that Hebrew word , which signifies to close in , and to compasse about , to gird about , because of the fitting garment to the Priests , and the girding of it about them . There were divers sorts of these Ephods , one peculiar to the high Priest , that you have Exod. 28. 6. Others that the ordinary Priests had , that you have in the former places I named about the fourscore and five Priests slain by Doeg ; A third was common for the ordinary Levites , thus Samuel , 1 Sam. 2. 18. ministred before the Lord girded with a linnen Ephod . And there was a fourth that other people did we are in their holy actions , especially before Kings , David danced before the Lord , girded with a linnen Ephod , 2 Sam. 6. 14. And to this day the Jewes have a kind of linnen garment , but not of the fashion of our Ephod , but some little kind of resemblance to it , they wear it upon their heads , and so downward . VVhen Alexander came to Jerusalem , I addus the high Priest came with all his Priestly garments to meet him , which caused him to fall down , prostrating himselfe before him , out of reverence to him ; Iosephus tels us in that story , that the people came with white garments , garments that had some kind of resemblance to this Ephod : Iosephus saith that this Ephod was a garment but of a cubite long , only covering the shoulders and the breast , open above and on either side , and girt about the breasts ; others make it a longrobe , reaching down to the very feet , But there was a robe beside the Ephod , the Ephod was over another robe so Christ appeared unto John , Rev. 1. 13. Cloathed with a garment downe to the foot , and girt about the paps with a golden girdle , like the Priests , for so they were wont to be arrayed ; And Revel . 15. 6. the Ministers of the Churches called by the name of Angels , are described , cloathed in white linnen , having their breasts girded with golden girdles ; not girt about their loynes , but about their breasts , near their hearts . That which makes Ministers of the Gospel ready prepared for the work , is the girdle of truth , and this must be about their hearts ; if their owne plottings and self-ends shall gird them , that is , put them on to a readiness to do what may serve for those ends ; this girdle is not the golden girdle , but like that rotten girdle of Jeremiahs , Chap. 31. 7. that was profitable for nothing . This garment of the Ephod was a holy garment then , and others must take heed of medling with such garments , or of seeking to imitate to make the like garments . We read of Gideon , Judges 8. when God had given him a great victory over the Midianites , he would imitate this Ephod , of the spoil he had gotten of the Midianites , he made a rich and glorious Ephod , but the Text observeth that thing proved to be the destruction of Gideons house , for the people went a whoring after it ; he made it with a good intention to testifie his thankfulnesse to God for his victory , not thinking that ever it should be worshipped . It is a dangerous thing for governours to imitate Gods ordinances in garments or the like , and to preserve them amongst people , though it be with never so good an intention , their good intention will not excuse them ; Gideons presumption in making an Ephod , in imitation of the Ephod appointed by God proved to be the destruction of his house , yet this was Gideon who a little before had destroyed the altar of Baal , though he was so much against Idolatry before , yet now he doth that which furthereth Idolatry : so many Governours , if they take not heed , they may pull down one kind of false worship , and set up another . The Iewes have many mysteries about this garment , it would weary you to hear them . I shall only observe that which is most usefull for you , wee must not read the books of the old Testament , as if they concerned us not . First , upon the shoulders of the Ephod there were set ranks of precious stones , upon them were in graven the names of the twelve Tribes according to their generations : And in the middle of the Ephod upon the breast-plate , which was to be four-sq●are , there were four rowes of precious stones , upon those likewise were ingraven all the names of the Tribes of Israel , & he bore them upon his heart . There is much to be observed in this . First , Let the Tribes be what they will be in themselves , though never so mean , yet upon the Ephod they were precious stones . The Priest wearing the Ephod was a type of Christ ; let those who are godly , be never so meane in themselves , yet in Christ God looks upon them as precious stones . Secondly , These precious stones that were upon the shoulders of the Ephod are called a memoriall , Exod. 28. 12. that was to signifie Christ , bearing the names of all the Saints before his Father for a memorial , those 12 , tribes presenting all the Churches that should be unto the end of the world . When God remembers his Church , it is thorow Christ ; God never remembers his Church , but it is by Christ carrying it before him , that is the comfort of the Saints ; therefore he can never remember them to revenge himself upon them , for he never thinketh of them but only as Christ presenteth them unto him . And further , A memoriall ( say the Jewes ) not onely because the Priests were to beare the names of the twelve Tribes ingraven in those stones for a memoriall before the Lord , but to signifie that the Priests themselves were to remember to pray for the Tribes . And thirdly , A memoriall to signifie that both the Priests and all the people were to remember their godly Ancestors and Predecessors , and to follow their vertues , and not to be any dishonour unto them . But the first is the chiefe , these precious stones with the names of the tribes were first upon the shoulder , and then upon the heart : upon the shoulder , this notes that Christ carryes his Church upon his shoulder , hee beares the burthen of his Church , all their weight , all their afflictions upon his shoulder , the shoulder of Christ standeth under the Churcher , certainly therefore they shall never sinke . But may they not be so burthensome to Christ as that he may shake off his burthen ? No , therefore he hath them upon his breast-plate too as well as upon his shoulder , there was upon the breast-plate in the middest of the Ephod the names of the twelve Tribes , Christ carryes the memoriall of his Churches at his heart as well as upon his shoulders , & that makes Christ put his shoulders to the good of the Churches because they are so neare his heart . An infinite comfort it is in the spirituall meaning of this Ephod that belongs to all the godly , Christ night and day hath thee upon his shoulder , and upon his heart as a precious stone before God the Father . This one thing further is observable about it , you shall finde if you reade that place in Exodus , that the names of the twelve Tribes were to be ingraven upon these stones in order according to their birth , now in Revel . 21. the twelve Apostles who in regard of their Doctrine are made the twelve precious stones of the foundation of the new Jerusalem , you shal reade that they are all the very same precious stones by name excepting four , and those foure I finde that Interpreters think to be the same that the other were , only with different names , for precious stones either in regard of the places where they are found , or in regard of their quality or colour carry divers names , so that it is very probable that those precious stones in Rev. were the same with these in Exo. but there we do not finde that they are set according unto any dignity of one Apostle before another , as they were in the setting of the names of the Tribes , for the first precious stone that was to be set of the foundation of the new Ierusalem , of the glorious Church that should be , it is the stone of Benjamin who was the youngest ; And if there might be any mystery in it , we may think it signifies thus much , at least we may make use of it by way of allusion , that the Lord wil use of the young ones of this generation , who shal make way for the new Jerusalem before any of the other tribes ; God will cull out them to the first stone of the foundation of that glorious Church . In that we find there was not such order set of the Apostles as was of the Tribes , we are taught that Christ would not have us look upon the Apostles as one above another ; therefore you shall find the Apostles are never named in one and the same order ; in one Evangelist they are set down in one order , and in another , in another , as Mat. 10. Mar. 3. Luc. 9. so Act. 1. In all these they are named in a different order , noting thereby that there is no superiority nor inferiority in the Ministers of the Gospel . Upon the Ephod there was likewise the Vrim and Thummim . It is very hard to tell you what this Vrim and Thummim was , it costs a great deal of time to find out what men think it was , and if I should tell you the variety of the guesses of men about this , it would be tiresome unto you and me . Austin in his 117. question upon Exod. In venire quid sint deficile , what this Vrim and Thummim was , it is hard to find , and Cajetan saith , none ever yet explained what it was , and they tell us that even the Rabbins themselves say , the Jewes were very ignorant of this . But most probable one of these two , especially the latter . Some think that they were some stones set in the breast-plate , which by their brightness or darknesse did give an answer to what they demanded of God , that is thus ; when the high Priest went to demand of God what was to be done in any great and publique affairs , hee presented this breast-plate with these stones before the Lord , and if God would give an affirmative answer , the stones gave a more then ordinary brightness and lustre ; but if he would give a negative answer , then the stones were darker then they were before ; but we are not certain of this , we may rather conclude upon the other , viz. that the Vrim and Thummim , ( though we know not what matter they were made of , no more then we know what Manna was made of ) it was somwhat that God gave Moses to put into the breast-plate , which by him was appointed as an ordinance which was to be presented before the Lord by the Priest when they would know the mind of God , & when this was presented before the Lord , God did then usually give an answer to the Priest , either by an audible voyce , or by secret inspiration , yet not always tying himself to give it thus ; for we find in Scripture , somtimes God did not give an answer when he was sought by Vrim and Thummim , as when Saul enquired of God by Vrim & Thumim there was no answer from God ; and it is like Josiah would not have sent onely to Huldah the prophetesse if hee could have had answer by Vrim and Thumim ; but when God pleased he would give an answer this way . The word Vrim & Thummim signifies light and perfection , some would make it to signifie the knowledg and integrity of life that is to be in Ministers , but I rather think the meaning is , that they were bright precious stones which were of a great perfection , and fit to doe that which God did appoint them for . The Septuagint calls this 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 , the Oracle . Hence 1 Pet. 4. 11 Let 〈◊〉 speak 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 , as the Oracles of God. Now this must be upon the breast-plate of the Priest , which the Priest making use of , thereby the people came to know the minde of God. This was to signifie that we must look for the mind of God by Christ . It is Christ who is come from the Father to reveale his counsels to us ; if we look to have the mind of God any other way but through him , we are mistaken . And further , this Vrim and Thummim , this breast-plate of judgment , was to be upon the heart of the high Priest , and that when he went in before the Lord , as Exod. 28 , 30. There are two notable morall observations to be observed from thence . First , The answer that any Minister of God in the name of Christ should give his people , should be such an answer as should lie at his very heart , hee must speak nothing but his very heart unto them ; when he would answer any case of conscience , or make known any thing of the mind of God , his answer must lie at his heart . Secondly , It must be as in the presence of the Lord , it must be as before God , he must consider in whose place he standeth to answer as from God , from the great Prophet of the Church . It is a great judgment threatned to be without Vrim and Thummim , seeing it was of so great use to them . And this should be for many dayes . Josephus saith , that they were without this two hundred years before he wrote his Antiquities , that was an hundred and five years before Christ ; but it appears that they had no Vrim and Thummim long before that time , for at their return from captivity , Ezra 2. 63. the Tirshatha , that is , the Ruler , said unto them , that they should not eate of the most holy things till there stood up a Priest with Vrim and Thummim , therefore they had not then a Priest with Urim and Thummim , they expected to have one , but whether ever they had one after it is not know . This was the reason of that complaint of Asaph , Psa . 74. 9. We see not our signes , there is no more any Prophet , neither is there any among us that knoweth how long ; that is a grievous complaint . Now it is like that Psalme was made about the very time of their return from captivity ; for Ezra 2. 41. Asaph is named among those that came to Jerusalem from the captivity , The singers , the children of Asaph , an hundred twenty and eight . But let it be then or after , by this Psalme wee may finde that it was a very lamentable complaint to be without Urim and Thummim . The result of all is , that it is a grievous thing to the Saints , that in the time of their strait they dono● know Gods mind . At any time when God brings his people into straits , yet if they can know the mind of their God , they are refreshed and encouraged ; but when they shall seeke to know Gods minde , and the Lord resuseth to discover it to them , this is a sad condition indeed . I find one note more of Jeroms about their being without an Ephod . We may observe , saith he , the hardness of the hearts of the Jews , that they should be so many hundred years without sacrifice and without Ephod , without the true worship of God among them , and ways to know Gods mind , and yet they are not guilty of any greater sin then the sin of Idolatry , except it be of the killing of JESUS CHRIST , that they should not reason thus , what sin is it that thus provokes God against us more then ever he was provoked ? Surely there is some greater sinne then ever yet we have committed ; but saith he , they can never finde any other offence , beside the killing of Christ , to be a greater offence then Idolatry , and yet they have a greater judgement upon them then ever they had , though they are not guilty of that sinne as they were formerly ; surely were they not extreamly hardned , they would be convinced that all this is because of our rejecting & crucifying Christ the Son of God. As they had the Ordinances of God , so they had wayes of false worship of their owne , Images and Teraphim . I must shew you what those were , and then how it is a threatning that they should be without those . Image , That seemeth to refer to the two calves they had set up in Dan & Bethel , which they so much gloryed and rejoyced in , they should be taken away . Teraephim , that likewise should be taken away . Now if you aske what this Teraphim was ? in the general , Taraph is a divining image ; as the Ephod was Gods Ordinance to know the minde of God by , so the Teraphim was a way of the Devil , an idolatrous way to know things that were to come . It was an Image made after this fashion , so I finde those that write of it tell us , The Teraphim was the image of the head of a man wrung off his body , salted and bespiced with precious spices , and then upon this head there was a plate of gold with the name of that spirit they would divine by , ( or , as some ) the name of the uncleane spirit was to be put un der the tongue of this head , and this being set upon a wall , there were burning candles and incense offered to it , and that under the constellation of some star , and so enquiring to know something that was to come , by it the devill was used to answer , and to tell them of such things as were to come ; it was an oracle of the devil that told them what successe they should have in this or the other businesse ; sometimes it hit right . See the superstition of the Jewes ; they desired much to know the minde of God , now because they were afraid they should not know all by the Ephod , which was the ordinance of God , they would joyne with the Ephod , the Teraphim . From hence there is this profitable note . It is a very great and fearfull evil for men in searching to know any thing of Gods mind , not to keep themselves to Gods ways of knowledg , to Gods own Ordinances . It concerneth us much now at this day . We are about enquiring the mind of God , that wee may know it about matters concerning the Common-wealth , but more especially about Religion , I suppose there is none of us but will acknowledge that way that God hath appointed for the revealing of his will in the Scripture ; that we must look into the Scripture , and seek to know Gods minde there ; that is good , but let us not joyne Teraphim with it ; then do we joyne Teraphim , when we rest not upon Scripture alone , but search after rules of mans devising , and what will stand with our own carnal ends . The Lord may justly meet with us in wrath , if we presume to joyne our Teraphim with his Ephod . Pray that at this day where there is so much searching after Gods mind , that those who are employed in it , may keepe themselves to the Ephod , to the Scriptures , to that which is Gods Ordinance for the revealing his minde , that they may not joyne the Teraphim , their own fancies and inventions of men with the Scriptures ; so long as we keepe to that rule , we may hope to do well enough ; but if the Teraphim be joyned with the Ephod , if any thing be joyned with the Scriptures , though it may seeme to be never so rationall , we have cause to feare God will leave us . We finde this word Teraphim used sometime in Scripture for the image of any man : as 1 Sam. 19. 13. when Michael took an image , and laid it in the bed instead of David , the word in the Hebrew is Teraphim : so when Rachel stole away her fathers images , the word is , she stole away her fathers Teraphim , and some thinke they were her fathers Divining Images , & that she did rather steale those then any others , because she would not have her father Divine which way they were gone . Zachar. 10. 2. it is said the Idols have spoken vanity ; the word is the Teraphim . By which we may see they were wont to aske of their Idols about their successes . And sometime wee find in Scripture that Idolatry is called by this name , as 1. Sam. 15. 23. stubbornnesse is as Idolatry , the word is , is as Teraphim . But here comes in the question , God threatneth to take away the Sacrifice and the Ephod , that plainly is a threatning , but how is this a part of the threatning to take away the Image & the Teraphim ? You may understand it as a threatning by this similitude ; It is as if God would threaten to bring Israel into such a desolate condition as a strumpet is brought into , not only when all her friends leave her which were her kindred , her true friends , but when all her lovers leave her too , even those who were filthy with her , those who pretended the most love to her , in whom she took abundance of comfort , and from whom she expected protection ; yet now she is brought into such a condition , as she sitteth desolate , for lorne and helplesse : So shall ye be , saith God , your Sacrifice and your Ephod , yea and Teraphim shall leave you . Or rather thus , Howsoever it is a mercy for God to take away false worship from a people , Images and Teraphim , yet in this regard it comes in a way of threatning , because it would crosse and vex them to bee deprived of these Images and Teraphim , it would bee a Judgement in their apprehension : As for instance , what a deal of stir have we with people , when they conceive that any false worship shall be taken away from them , they think they are undone in it ; when the inventions of men in Gods worship are but questioned , what a do is there ! men think their gods are taken away ; as Judges 18. when the children of Dan came to the house of Micah , and took away his Ephod and his Teraphim , he cryed out after them , Yee have taken away the gods that I have made , and what have I more ? what worse thing could you have done more ? I had rather you should have taken away all I had , and yet you say unto me , What aileth thee ? Is it not so at this day ? What is it that now breedeth such disturbance in England at this time , but that people thinke their Teraphim shall bee taken from them ? whereas they have heretofore worshipped God in a false way , after the inventions of men , and now God is pleased to discover light , and thereis an enquiring after the government of the Church in the right way , and the true manner of worshipping God , they are even mad upon this , and would rather lose their lives and their estates , then their Teraphim should be taken away ; let that be taken away , and how shall they be able to pray ? what , will you take away their Religion ? This is the language of men in many ignorant places in this Kingdome , yea , the very language of many even amongst us here , they are verily perswaded that the Parliament are intended to take away all Religion in the Kingdome , and such principles the adversaries go about to infuse into men , that the Parliament are a company of Brownists , meerly because they goe about to enquire after the true way of worshipping God , and would have the Land purged of all superstitious vanities ; Thus people cry out for their Teraphim , Great is Diana of the Ephesians . You may read the like in the history of the life of king Edward the sixth , when he had but banished the Masse , there was an Army rose in Devonshire , and they sent severall Articles unto the King about their grievances , as causes of their rising ; First , they said that their children were denyed to be baptized , as now they cry out that none but a company of Anabaptists doe all this ; the Popish Priests did then infuse into the people that were in those remote Countryes , that they were to have no more children baptized , thinking this would exasperate the people then against King and Parliament : And then they complained that their Service was taken from them ( meaning the Masse ) King Edward was fain to write to them , to tell them that they were exceedingly abused , that they should still enjoy what was according to the word of God , that their children should be baptized ; and for the Masse , saith he , the Common-prayer Book is that Masse the same that it was before , only whereas it was in Latin before , now it is turned into English , and so he quieted the people of that Countrey . Thus it comes to be a threatning , that God will take away their Image and Teraphim , because the hearts of people are so vexed when their superstitious ways are taken away . Now upon this confusion , when they are without King , Prince , Sacrifice , Ephod , Image and Teraphim , when all is come to this confusion , then comes the time that they shal return and seeke tho Lord their God , and David their King. When Gods time is come to raise the most glorious Church that ever was in the world , a little before that there is like to be the greatest confusion that ever was in the world : Lactantius ( I have made use of before in speaking of the first Chap. Great shall be the day of Jezreel ) tels us , that just before the glorious Church ( he speaks of it at large , in lib. 7. c. 15. 24. & 28. ) all right shall be confounded , Laws shall perish , men shall possesse all things by force , good men shall be scorned & contemned : and though these times , saith he , wherein we live be naught , so that one would thinke that wickednesse were grown up to the height , yet in comparison of those evill dayes that shall be a little before this glorious time , these days may be called the golden age . God will bring all into a Chaos first , as he did in the first Creation , & then bring a glorious building out of that Chaos . We know the raising of that glorious Church that is so much prophesied of , is called a creation , a creating a new heaven and a new earth ; and it is probable enough , that as the heavens and the earth were first made out of a Chaos , so those new heavens and new earth that God is about to make , will be raised out of a Chaos , out of that which seemeth to us to be but confusion . VVhat do people cry out of at this day but of confusion ? all things they say are brought into confusion : It is true , confusion is an evill thing , and we are to grieve for it , and to seek to prevent it , yet let us not be too much troubled , for you see when the greatest confusion comes upon the people of the Jewes , then follows the greatest mercy , then they shall return and seeke the Lord their God , never return before that time . Indeed till men be taken off from all , they will not return to God , if they have any thing to go unto , they will never return to God. VVhen Saul had but a witch to go to , he would rather go to her , then seek the face of God in way of repentance . Let not this be our way , because God seems to leave us for the present , and letteth us be in a confusion , and we know not what to do , let not our hearts fiet and vex , let us not go to unlawful means ; For mark , it was just a little before Sanl was to be destroyed that he was growne to that height of evill . There was a time that Saul did enquire after Gods mind , and God refused to answer him , but yet hee would not take such an unlawfull course then , but he searched to see whatsin was amongst the people that caused God to refuse to give him an answer , so you have it in the case of Jonathan , 1 Sam. 14. 33. when he took the honey , he enquired of God , and God answered not , and Saul said , draw neere and see wherein this sin hath beene this day . But afterward he grew to a greate● height of evill , when he was in a strait , and God answered him not , presently he goeth to the witch , but it was when he was near destruction . The note from thence is , VVicked men neare destruction ( as Saul was ) finding things in a confusion , and God not shewing them what is to be done , presently are in a rage against God , then they frer , and seeke after unlawfull means to help them . The Lord forbid that this should b● our condition . Let not us say , things are now in such a confusion that we know not how to find out the mind of God , we consult with Ministers and they know not what to say , they have cast out such a government , and they know not what to bring in , and therefore it were better we were as before . If this should be our teasoning , it is a signe we are like Saul nigh to destruction . Let us be content to wayte , they shall be many dayes without a King , &c. and then they shal return ; this shall be the fruite of being without a King , and Prince ▪ & Ephod , and Sacrifice , not vexing and raging , but returning to God and repenting . It things be worse , & we be brought into greater straits then ever we thought of , let us not murmur , but let us repent . Every one is complaining , but who is repenting ? If there were as much repenting as there is murmuring , then we should soone know the minde of God. Then they shall returne . Here is the use of sanctified affliction , it is to cause returning to God. Jerome expresses the life of an impenitent sinner by a line stretched out , he goes saith he from the center in a right line , and so goes in infinitum from it , but a penitent sinner is like a line bent , and turning back to the center , though by sin he goes from it , yet by repentance he turnes to it again , they are gone from me a great way saith God , but I will give them a turne , they shal bend back again and return to me . They shall returne . Repentance is set out by this vvord , to note the folly of sinne . In sin thou goest out of the way , and the truth is though you thinke you choose a good way for your self , yet you must either come back again or perish . It is just like a man travelling in a rode , and he sees a dirty lane before him , which he is told is the way , he must goe there , but on the other side of the hedg he seeth a green and pleasant vvay , and he gets over into that way , and so perhaps rides on a mile or two , at length he is compast about with ditches and rivers so that he must either return back or else lie there & starve , he returnes back , with shame , and if any one that before told him of the other way see him , he tells him now of his folly , I told you that the other was the way , and that if you went over the hedge you must come back again : So it is with sinners , there are wayes of God that go directly to heaven , but because those wayes are rugged , and they meet with trouble and persecution in them , & they see by-ways that leade to hell that are more plaine & smooth , they get over , they will transgresse , ( for that is the word for sinne ) they are got over , now they are merry & sriske up and down for a while in this fine way ; but friend you must come backe again , and if ever you mean to be saved , you must goe in the way that you have refused . Further , they shal return and seeke the Lord their God. Here is an encouragement for old sinners . The Jews have been above 1600. years in this wofull condition , for saking God , but in their latter dayes they shall returne and seeke the Lord , and God shall be mercifull to them . Hast thou been forty , fifty , sixty years going from God ? there is hope for thy soul , Oh returne , return you old sinners , But further , 〈◊〉 shall return to Jehovah , and seeke him , Jer. 4. 1. If thou wilt returne O Israel , saith the Lord , return unto me . They shal not return from one false way of worship to another , but from the false way to the true , they shall return to God. It is that we had now need look unto . We must not think it enough to cast one false way of government out of the Church , and turn to another , though not so ill yet not Gods , if out of any politicke pretence we reject the way of God it will prove a sore evil unto us , it is one thing not to be able to bring in the way of Christ , and another to reject it , They shall seek Jehovah , not their Idols , but God himself . The word signifies conatu ac studio quaerere , to seek with endeavouring , with study rather then meerly to ask and enquire , they shall be studious in asking after God. They shall seek the Lord , that is , First , They shall seeke his face and favour for the pardon of all their evill wayes , they shall come and acknowledge their false wayes and their doings which have not been good , and seek mercy for pardon . Secondly , They shall seek the Lord , that is , they shall seeke the true worship of the Lord. Calvin in a Sermon upon that place Seeke ye my face , interprets it to be seeking the Ordinances of God , the true worship of God , so Psal . 105. 4. Seeke the Lord & his strength , what is meant by the strength of God there ? It is the Arke , for that Psalme was made at the bringing in of the Arke into the place that David had prepared , as you may see by comparing that Psalme with the 1 Chron , 16. the Arke of God is called the strength of God , Psal . 78. 61. He gave his strength into captivity . Surely if the true worship of God be the strength of God , it is our strength too , a people are then strong when they entertaine the Arke of God , the true worship of God , and then indeed we seeke God aright when we seeke to know the way of his worship . Lastly , They shal seek the Lord , that is , they shall seeke to know his will in all their wayes , and to do it . It is not enough for them to be content to do just that which shall be put upon them , but they shall seek to know what his minde & his worship is . Some yeeld thus far to God , if any come to them and convince them that this is to be done , then they will do it , they dare not then but yeeld to it ; but when the heart is in a true repenting frame , it is then in a seeking frame , it is laborious and industrious to know the mind of God. Whereas the heart of a sinner heretofore lay dead & dull , never stirred after God , now it is in a stirting , in an inquiring , in a seeking way , this is a signe of much good : though thou hast not what thou seekest for , yet be comforted in this that thou art in a seeking way , Their hearts shal re●oyce that seeke the Lord. If thou beest seeking God in his ways , though thou complainest , I have beene seeking a long time , but I know not the minde of God , I cannot apprehend the love of God , the pardon of my sins , yea , but the hearts of those shall rejoyce that seek the Lord , if thou beest in a seeking way thou art in a saving way , there is cause thou shouldst rejoyce in this , that God hath brought thee into such a way . They shall seeke the Lord , and that not saintly but to purpose , auxiously , Jer. 50. 4. 5. They ( the children of Israel , and the children of Judah , when they shall be both together ) shall goe weeping , and seeke the Lord their God , and they shall aske the way to Zion with their faces thitherward . Many of you come to aske questions , but your hearts are not right , your faces & the strength of your spirits are not set to yeeld to the will of God when it is revealed to you . And mark how it appeares that their faces are thitherward , Come ( say they ) let us joyne our selves to the Lord in a perpetual Covenant that shall not be forgotten . This is to seeke God , it is not meerly to goe to a Minister and aske him a question , but it is to goe with our faces , with the strength of our spirits set to know the minde of God above any thing in the world , and so to resolve to obey what shall be revealed to be Gods mind , as to be willing to enter into a perpetual Covenant , to binde our selves to yeeld to whatsoever God shal reveale . When you come to a Sermon , you must not come to get a little notional knowledge , but come with your faces towards Christ and his truth , before you come you should get alone ( if you be a true seeker ) and enter into Covenant with God , that whatsoever God revealeth to be his minde you will yeeld to it & obey it , though you have heretofore gone against many truths revealed to be the minde of God , but Lord no more now , here I am ready and willing to enter into an everlasting covenant to be under the command of every truth . Here is the right seeking of God. They shall seeke the Lord their God ; [ their God ] this hath two references , either to what is past , or to what is to come . To what is past , their God , that is , the God who was once the God of the Jews , the God of their forefathers , the God of Abraham . of Isaac , and of Jacob. And secondly , their God , that is , that God that is yet ready and willing to be reconciled to them , not withstanding all their sinnes . Thus they shal seek the Lord their God. These two references afford two excellent Observations . First , This prevailes much with the heart of an Apostate , when he can but think what God was once unto him before he did Apostatize , and what he was unto his godly parents and predecessors . There was a time that I enjoyed God sweetly , when I went to prayer I had blessed communion with him , it is otherwise with me now , I have apostatized . Let this consideration catch h●ld upon thy heart and turn it this day ; Oh turne , turn thou apostate soul . God who was once thy God in a gracious manner is that God that thou hast vilely forsaken , yea thy fathers God also . Thou hast a godly father , a godly grand-father , remember what a blessed God he was unto them , and return . Secondly , Their God , that God that yet they may have hope to enjoy , notvvithstanding all their departings from him . Hence the note is this , The apprehension o● a possibilty to obtaine mercie from the Lord , is a strong means to draw the heart to returne to him ; when they look upon God as a God in covenant with them yet , and there is nothing to the contrary but he may be their God. Let this be an argument to catch hold upon the spirits of all sinners who are departed from God , thou hast departed from God in a soule and vile manner , but Men and Angels know nothing to the contrary but that he may be thy God for all this . Let me speake to the vilest sinner that is in this place before the Lord this day , thou hast indeed most desperately and wickedly sinned against God , the Jews have done so ; Hast thou crucified Christ ? they have done so ; hast thou denied the truth and followed false waies ? they have done so ; Notwithstanding all thy wicked and evil waies , seeing thou art yet alive , I doe this day yet once more pronounce thee in the name of the great God , that there is nothing to the contrary that either Angels or Men can possibly know , but that God may be thy God , and that this day God may enter into covenant with thee , & thou with him , this night he may come in and sup with thee , and thou with him , there may be a blessed reconciliation between God and thee , return , return thou sinful soul . The Third Lecture . HOSEA 3. 5. — And David their King , and shall feare the Lord and his goodnesse in the latter dayes . THat the Jews shall returne and believe in Christ , is most ordinary and famous both in the words and hearts of those that are faithfull , saies Augustine . In this their returne and seeking God , they shall seek David their King. For the opening this , there are these five things to be inquired into . 1. Who this David was . 2. Why David is rather named then any other . 3. Why he is mentioned in this place . 4. Why joyned with seeking Jehovah , 5. Why this Epithet is added to David here . David their King. For the first , David clearly is meant JESUS CHRIST , Nothing is more manifest then that Christ is meant by the name of David , sayes Augustine . The Scripture is cleare in this , it is usuall in the Gospel to call Christ by the name of David . Compare Esay 55. 3. with Acts 13. 34. Esay 55. I will give you the sure mercies of David ; what are those ? Act. 13. that place in Isaiah is quoted , and there the word is Sancta Davidis , the holy things of David ; the holy Ghost there going according to the Translation of the Septuagint , as it is usuall in the New Testament . And that Psalm 16. 9. 10. where David seemes to speake in his owne person , Thou wilt not leave my soul in grave , nor suffer thy holy One to see corruption : this is interpreted of Christ , Act. 13. 36. 37. Act. 15. 16. In the Assembly the Church of Jerusalem , together with messengers of the Church of Antioch , James makes a speech to the Assembly , & tels them of a prophesie that God would raise the tabernacle of David , that is , convert the Gentiles to the profession of Christ . But you will say how is this quoted right , for that was James his intention in the Assembly ( and it concerns those who are of such a grave Assembly as that was , to speake what they speake to purpose ) But how doth James here speake to the purpose ? for the point he was to speake to , was that the Gentiles were to be called , and he proveth it by that Scripture where it is said that God would raise the Tabernacle of David , how doth that prove that God would call the Gentiles ? You may see if you looke into the prophesie whence this was quoted , that this text was right to the purpose ▪ The Prophesie is Amos 9. 11. 12. there it goeth thus , after he had said that he would raise the tabernacle of David , it followeth , that they may possesse the remnant of Edom , and of all the heathen which are called by my Name : So that the Tabernacle of David indeed is the Tabernacle of Christ , and it shall be raised to this end that he may possesse the remnant of Edom , and all the Gentiles that were to be called by the name of God. David is Christ because he was his type , and Christ was the seed of David . The second Question , but why is David rather named then any other , rather then Abraham , Isaac , or Jacob ? others were types of Christ as well as he and Christ was , their seed as well as Davids , The reason is , because David typified Christ especially in his Kingly power over his own people , David was the first godly King that ever was over Gods own people ; Melchisedech was a King , King of Salem , but over the people of God David was the first type of Christ . Thirdly , Why doth the holy Ghost adde this to seeking the Lord , that they shall seeke David ? Why was it not as full if the holy Ghost had said , When Israel , these ten Tribes ( for he speakes of them especially ) when they shall return they shall seeke the Lord , and the Messiah , but that they shall seek the Lord and David ? The reason is , the expression is brought to this end , to put these Tribes in minde of that great sinne of theirs , in their defection from the house of David , there was an intimation in this expression of that defection they had from David , when they shall repent this will lye neere their hearts , they will mourne for this their sinne , when they choose Christ to be their King , they shall do it under the name of David ; As if they should say , we indeed have cast off the house of David sinfully , but we now come and choose the Son of David to be our King. Thereby putting us in minde of this note of instruction . True penitents in mourning for their sinne and returning to God , will go to the roote of their sin as much as they can , to their first defection & mourn for that , and labour what lies in them to reforme in that very thing wherein the root and beginning of their sin lay . The fourth is , why seeking the Messiah ( under what name soever ) is here joyned to seeking the Lord , the very marrow of all the Gospel is in these words , they shall seeke Jehovah , and David their King. It is added for this end , to shew us , that none can seek God rightly but through Christ , they must seek God in Christ ; This is eternal life to know thee and thy Son , to know God alone is not eternall life , but to know God and his Son ; so to seek God alone is not eternal life , not will it ever bring to eternal life , except there be a seeking of God in Christ , seeking Jehovah and David , putting them together . Grace from God the Father , and from Jesus Christ , those must goe together , no grace from God the Father , but from him through Christ ; so no seeking of God the Father , Jehovah , but it must be with seeking of David likewise : it is not only dangerous , but it is a horrible thing to think of God without Christ ; the very thought of God not through Christ is a most dreadfull thing to the heart of any who knows God. Indeed there are a company who have bold presumptuous hearts , who will go into Gods presence though reeking in the very guilt of their sin lately committed , and seeke to God for mercy , and never think of Christ the Mediator ; they understand not the necessity of seeking God in Christ , because indeed they know not with what a God it is they have to deale ; but that soul that knows what God is , dares not think of God , much lesse come into his presence & seek him but only through Christ . It was wont to be the way ( as Plutarch in the life of Themystocles reports ) of some of the Heathens , the Molossians , when they would seek the favour of the Prince , they tooke up the Kings Son in their armes , and so went and kneeled before his Altar in his Chappell ; so Themystocles did when he sought the favour of King Admetus . It should be the way of Christians in seeking the face of God the great King , to take up his Sonne in the armes of Faith. A notable speech Luther hath in Psal . 130. Often and willingly , saith he , doe I inculcate this , that you should shut your eies & your eares , and say you know no God out of Christ , none but he that was in the lap of Mary , and sucked her breasts ; he means none out of him . We must not , we should not dare to looke upon ●od but through Christ , and seeke him together with David . This is the Evangel●call way of seeking God ; when we have sinned , if there be any way of help , it must be by seeking this mercifull God ; thus farre nature goes , and most people goe no further , yea most Christians , though they have the name of Christ in their mouths , yet the worke of their hearts is no further then natural principles carry them on . But the seeking God in Christ , is the true supernaturall way , the Evangelicall way , that is the mystery of godlinesse , to tender up a Mediator to God every time wee come into his presence . I feare that many of our prayers are lost for want of this . There is much Fasting and Prayer thorough Gods mercy amongst us , and I would to God there were no abating that way ; but though wee thinke , will God leave his people when there is such a spirit of Prayer ? If it be not a seeking of God in his Son , know it is our own spirits rather then the Spirit of God. VVee may be earnest in prayer , and cry mightily to God , yet if we take not up his Son in the armes of faith , and tender him to the Father , thousands of prayers and fasting days may be all lost for want of this . The truth is , wee must not depend so much upon our prayers , though we are to rejoyce and to blesse God that there is so much prayer ; but Gods wayes towards us seeme as if hee would take us off from means , and make us look up to free grace , not take us off from the practise of any , but from relying upon any , onely to rely upon free grace in Christ . As this is the supernaturall seeking God , so it is the most powerfull way of seeking him . It is not enough to seeke God by vertue of a promise , except vve seek him by vertue of Christ , who is the foundation of all the promises . VVe seek him because he is mercifull , that is one way ; yea we seek him because he hath promised mercy , this is a higher degree ; but we must go higher yet , we must look to his Son , in whom all the promises are Yea & Amen ; otherwise , though we seek him never so earnestly , though we chalenge his promises , and cry to him to remember his promises , yet if we do not act our faith upon his Son , wee may misse in all , And herein we sanctifie that great name of God in that which is the great work of his , his master-piece as we may say , or the great designe hee hath to honour himself in the world here , and everlastingly hereafter . Certainely , though God hath made the creature for his own glory , & expects we should honour him in beholding him in the creature , yet the great design God hath to honour himselfe in and by , is in that glory of his that is manifested in his Son , to have the children of men behold this his glory , and reflect it upon his own face ; except you give God his glory in this , he cares not much for what soever glory you can give him otherwise . You must not therfore expect when you seek God , that you must have good things from him meerly because he is mercifull , you must not thinke that the mercy of God serveth to eike out our righteousnesse . Perhaps some will say , it is true , we are poor sinfull creatures , and what can wee expect from God being fin full ? but we hope that God will pardon our sin , and so will accept of the poor services that we perform ; This is the way that most goe , they do as it were imploy Gods mercy in such a worke that God never intended it for , that is , they would make the mercy of God to eike out their owne righteousnesse , and so both put together , they think they will serve to be a means of atonement : No , you mistake Gods mercy ; the worke of Gods mercy is not this , but it is to shew us our unrighteousnesse , our misery , our unclearnesse , to shew us Jesus Christ , to draw our hearts to him , to emptie us of our selves , that wee may wholly rely upon that righteousnesse that is by faith in him , and tender up that to the Father for sanctification and attonement , that is the work of Gods mercy ; when it hath this work , then it hath the true genuine work indeed . The fifth is , why here added King. True , wee must seeke the Lord and Christ , but why Christ the King ? The reason is , because Christ in the latter dayes shall be fully honoured in his Kingly power : they shall looke upon him not only as Prophet and Priest , but as King. Hitherto Christ hath bin much honoured in his Propheticall and Priestly office , but not so much in his Kingly ; but in the latter dayes when God shall call home his people ( the Jewes ) then Christ shall be fully honoured in his Kingly office . The Tabernacle of Christ was raised in the Primitive times , according to that speech of St. James we had before , Acts 15. 16. God shall raise the tabernacle of David , hee puts it as fulfilled then ; but there is a time when God shall not only raife the tabernacle of David , but the throne of David ; Christ the King shall appeare in glory . Ezek. 37 , 24 , 25. And David my servant shall be King over them . It was spoken upon the union that there should be between Judah and Israel , then David my servant shall be King over them . David was dead a great while before , there is a time that David must again be King , that is , Christ , upon the union of all the Tribes together ; And againe , David shall be Prince for ever , when they are brought againe into their owne land , David shall be Prince over them for ever , saith the Text : surely this prophesie is yet to be fulfilled . And Luke 1. 32. The Lord shall give him the throne of his father David , and he shall reign over the house of Jacob for ever , and of his kingdome there shall be no end . I know we usually think that this is meant only of his spirituall reign , but there is a mistake in it , certainly there is to be a fulfilling of this prophesie in a reign that shall outwardly appeare before the children of men , which will appea more in comparing this with other Scriptures . Revel . 11. 15. The kingdoms of this world are become the kingdoms of the Lord & his Christ , and so he shall reign for ever and ever . VVhy in a spirituall sense the kingdoms of this world are always the kingdomes of the Lord and of Christ , but there is spoken of some famous notable time when the kingdomes of this world shall appeare to be the Lord , and his Christs , and then he shall reigne for ever and ever , after another manner then now he doth . Revel . 3. 21. To him that overcometh will I give to sit with me in my throne , as I also overcame , and am set down with my Father in his throne . Mark this Text , as one of the most notable of any wee have . That kingly rule that Christ hath for the present is upon his Fathers throne ; he is not yet upon his own in comparison of what he shall be , the kingdome that Christ hath now is the joynt reigne of him with the Father , but there is a time for Christ to have a Throne himselfe . Now that Throne of Christ it may be you will thinke it is in heaven at the day of judgement ; but we finde 1 Cor. 15. 24. that at that day he comes to refigne the kingdome , the words do not seeme to import as if hee came to take it , but that then hee doth give up the kingdome unto God the Father , therefore there is a time for Christ himself to have a Throne , with whom the Saints shall reign . Matth. 21. 9. The children cryed out Hosanna to the sonne of David , because they looked upon the sonne of David as one who was to reign . In these latter dayes CHRIST shall breake the Kings of the earth who stand against him , as indeed many , yea most of the Kings of the earth have ever stood out to hinder this kingdome of his . There will be a mighty shaking of the kingdoms of the earth when this shall be , Heb. 12. 26. Whose voyce then shook the earth , but now he hath promised , saying , yet once more I shake not the earth onely but also the heaven ; quoted out of Hag. 2. 6. 7. God in giving the law shooke the earth , but he will shake the earth and the heaven● , which some Interpreters expounds thus , not only the meaner power of people , but the powers of Kings and Emperours the highest powers in the world , whatsoever is lofty in the world shall be shaken when Christ comes to take the kingdom to himself , the Father will set him King upon his holy hill ; Though the Kings of the earth set themselves , and the Rulers take counsell together against the Lord & against his Anoynted , saying , Let us break their bonds asunder , and cast away their cords from us ; he that sitteth in the heavens shall laugh , the Lord shall have them in derision , then shall he speake to them in his wrath , and vex them in his sore displeasure , Yet have I set my King upon my holy hill of Zion , yet have I done it , though the kings of the earth and great ones of the world fret , vex , and rage , and gather power together , though they blaspheme and say he shall not raigne , the Lord sitteth in heaven and laugheth at them , let them do what they can , and gather what strength they can , & oppose to the uttermost they can , Yet will I set my King upon my holy hill . This is acceptable news , it is the joyfull voyce of the Gospel to tell you of Christs comming to raigne in the world , Esay , 52. 7. How beautifull upon the mountaines are the feet of him that bringeth good tidings ? What are those good tidings ? this tidings , that saith unto Zion , Thy Godraigneth , This is the triumph of the Church , Esay 33. 22. The Lord is our judge , the Lord is our law-giver , the Lord is our King , for then shall the Churches be delivered from the oppression of all Tyrants in the world . And this Kingdom of Christs shall indeed be like Davids kingdome , Christ shal be David the King. I might shew you the parallels in many things , but I will only parallel the kingdome of Christ and of David in these two particulars . First , David of all the Princes that ever were was one of the most gentle , he was exceeding loving and sweet unto his subjects ; that you shal finde 1 Chron. 28. 2. Then David the King stood up upon his feet , & said , he are me my brethren , and my people . Marke how a King speaks speaking to his people , he stood upon his feet , and said , heare me my brethren , and my people . Thus the kingdome of Christ is set out to us , Psal . 45. 4. In thy Majesty ride prosperously because of truth and meeknesse . Christ shall be a most meeke King , hee shall not be a bloody King to his people , he shall not be a King ●●●ing in viòlence and harshness , so as not to care for the love of his people , his singer shall not be heavier then the loynes of others , but he shall rule his people with all gentleness . Therefore the government of Christ is set out 〈◊〉 a she●he 〈…〉 leading those that are with young ; & 〈◊〉 ●his , David David and CHRIST are parallel , Psal . 78. 70. 71. He chose David his servant , & tooke him from the sheep-folds , from following the ewes great with young , he brought him to feed Jacob his people , and Israel his inheritance . So the Kingdome of Christ , Esay 40. having spoken ver . 9. of the glad tidings of the Kingdome , it followeth , He shall feed his flocke like a shepheard , he shall gather the lambs with his arme , and carry them in his bosome , and shall gently leade those that are with young . When Christ shal raigne he shal have great respect to the good and comfort of his people over whom heraigneth , he shall not raigne over them without regard to their liberties , and what may be for the comfort of their lives , the good of his people , and his own glory shall be put both in one . Secondly , David their King , in regard of faithfulnesse . David was exceeding faithfull to his people , and therefore the mercies of God in Christ are called the sure mercies of David , because David was found faithfull before the Lord. Psal . 45. 4. is the Prophesie of Christs Kingdom , the Text saith , In thy majesty ride prosperously , because of truth , and meekness , and righteousnesse ; there shall be righteousness in the Kingdome of Christ . This is a blessed thing when we may confide and fully venture our estates , liberties and our lives upon the promises of those who are above us . VVe know how many there are about great personages to take them off from those things that they have promised , though never so seriously , and with never such solemne protestations to performe them . I will give you a story or two remarkable for this , to shew what danger people have been in when they have confided upon the promises of Princes , when there have beene those about them that endeavoured to take of their hearts from performing what they had ingaged themselves to . You shall finde in the life of Edward the sixth this story ; The King sends his Letters to London in the behalfe of the Duke of Somerset the then Protector ; there were divers of the Lords rose up against him , thinking he did oppresse the people , and they sent the same time their Letters to London for their aide and assistance ; hereupon there was a Common Counsell called in the City , and amongst them there was one that the story saith was a wise and an honest man , one George Stadlowe , and he speakes thus to the Counsell , I remember , saith he , a story written in Fabians Chronicle , of the wars between Henry the third and his Barons , at which time the Baronsdemanded aide of the City of London , as our Lords do now , and that in a rightfull cause , for the good of the Common-wealth , for the execution of divers good lawes against the King , who would not suffer those lawes to be put in execution , and the City did aide them , and it came unto an open bartell , and the Lords prevailed against the King and tooke the King and his sonne prisoners , and upon certaine conditions the Lords restored the King & his son again to their liberties , amongst other conditions this was one , that the King should not only grant his pardon to the Lords , but also to the Citizens of London , which was granted , and the condition of their accommodation of peace were ratif●ed by act of Parliament ; but saith the story , what followed of it ? was it forgotten ? no surely , nor forgiven neither , during the Kingslife , the libeties of the Cities were taken away , strangers were appointed to be our head & governours , the Citizens , their bodies and goods were given away , and so from one persecution to another they were most miserably afflicted . Again , in the history of Queen Maries time we find , that Qeene Mary , because there was some dispute about her comming to the Crowne , at that time she went down into Suffolke , to the place where the Duke that then rose up for another was most hated , and she being at Framingham Castle the Suffolke men came to her , and promised their ●ide , upon condition that she would not attemp the alteration of Religion , which her brother King Edward before had established ; she promised them there should be no innovation of Religion , no God forbid , yea she so promised that the story saith , no man would or could misdoubt of the performance : But afterward when she came to get the power in her hand , the Suffolk men came to make supplication to her , that she would be pleased to performe the promise she made them , she answered them thus , Forasmuch as you being but members desire to rule your head , you shall one day well perceive that members must obey their head , and not looke to beare rule over the same ; And not only so , but to cause the more terrour , a Gentleman one Master Dobs that lived about Windsor , who did but in an humble request advertise her of her promise made to the Suffolke men , he was three times set on the Pillory , and others for the same cause were sent to prison . We may see what hold hath been heretofore in the promises of those who had power to breake them , you know what temptations they have to withdraw their hearts from what they have ingaged themselves unto . But when this our Prince comes , David our King we shall finde the sure mercies of David , we shall finde nothing but faithfulnesse in all his dealings . And they shall feare the Lord and his goodnesse in the latter dayes . They shall feare the Lord. The words are , they shall feare to the Lord , pavebunt ad dominum . The feare of God is much upon the heart of a sinner in his returne to God. Such a sinner hath high and honourable thoughts of God , They shall returne and feare the Lord. The slightnesse , the vanity of his spirit , the boldnesse of his heart , it is taken off , and the feare of God ruleth in it . The Majesty , the power , the authority of the great God is strong upon him , when he comes to worship him , the feare of God makes him to worship God as a God , and in all his conversation he walkes in the feare of God , even all the day long , you may see written upon his life the feare of the great God , And this not a servile slavish feare , but a holy , reverenticall , fil●●● feare , Jsaac had such a feare of God that God hath his dominion from Isaac● feare , He is called the feare of Isaac . This is a most precious feare , others feare poverty , feare imprisonment , feare disgrace , feare men , but saith a true repenting heart , I feare the Lord ; this feare is the well-spring of life to him , it is the very treasure of his soul , Esay 33. 6. I shall speake of the feare of God here onely as it concerns this place , the intent of bringing it in here , that is to shew that in the time when this glorious Church shall be , when God shall call home his own people the Jewes , and bring in the fulnesse of the Gentiles , then shall the feare of God mightily prevayle upon the hearts of people more then ever , and the greater Gods goodnesse shall be , the more shall the feare of God be upon their hearts , this we shall finde almost in all the Prophesies of the glorious condition of the Church ( which is very remarkable ) there is ever speaking of the feare of God that should be upon the hearts of people . One would rather thinke there should be speaking of the joy that they should have , that there should be nothing but mirth and triumph in those times ; but the Scripture speakes exceeding much of feare that shall be then , and more then , then at any other time . Thus Revel . 11. 18. a most famous Prophesie of Christs comming , and taking the kingdomes of the earth , and bringing his reward with him , he shall come and give a reward to those that feare him . And Revel . 14. 7. I saw an Angel flee in the middest of heaven having the everlasting Gospel to preach unto them that dwell on the earth , saying with a loud voyee , feare God and give glory to him . Marke , an Angel when he comes to preach the verlasting Gospel , how doth he preach it ? what , now cast away fear and rejoyce in this everlasting Gospel ? No , preaching this everlasting Gospel , saith with a loud voyce , feare God and give glory to him . So Rev. 15. 3. 4. There is the song of the Saints when they are delivered from the power of Antichrist , what is it , be jocund and joviall ? No , Great and marvailous are thy workes , Lord God Almighty , just and true are thy wayes thou King of Saints , who shall not feare thee , O Lord , and glorifie thy name ? for thou onely art holy , for all Nations shall come and worship before thee , for thy judgements are made manifest . And again Rev , 19. 5. And a voyce came out of the Throne , saying , Praise our God all ye his servants , and yee that feare him both small and great . But feare the Lord now in these times , why so ? Upon these foure grounds , First , Feare the Lord now , because of the glory of Christ their King , they shall behold their King in that glory that shal cause fear , Rev , 19. 12. Christ is described with his eyes as flames of fire , and on his head many Crownes , cloathed with a vesture dipt in blood , at wo-edged sword out of his month , and on his vesture and on his thigh written , King of Kings , and Lord of Lords . Thus they shall behold Christ , and therefore they shall feare . Secondly , in those times the feare of God will much prevaile in the hearts of people , because of the great workes of God that shal be then , the heavens shall depart like a scrole , and the elements melt with fervent heate . This is meant of the time when there shal be new heavens & a new earth , which referreth to the Prophesie of Esay , and it is apparantly ) and so generally Interpreters carry it ) meant of the estate of the Church , then the heavens shall depart like a scrole . Heb. 13. 26. quoted out of Hag. 2. 6. The Lord did shake the earth once , but he hath promised , saying , Yet once more , I sha● not the earth onely , but also heaven . There shall be wonderfull workes of God in the earth when those dayes come , therefore there shall be much of the feare of God. Thirdly , Much of the feare of God then , because of the holiness of the worship of God and of his Ordinances , the purity of them shall cause fear : Did we see the Ordinances in the true and native purity and holinesse of them , it would strike much feare in us . Some have but seene the execution of that one Ordinance of Excommunication in a solemn gracious way , and it hath daunted their hearts , it hath struke feare in a most proud , profane , stubborn , wicked heart , the beholding then of all the Ordinances , and all duties of worship in their true native purity , holiness and glory , cannot but cause much feare , Psal . 68. 35. O God thou art terrible out of thy holy places ; God will be terrible out of his holy places and out of all his holy Ordinances . Fourthly , Much feare there will be at that day , because of the holiness of the Saints , there shall be so much holiness that shall appeare bright in the very faces and conversations of the Saints that shal strike great feare . Holy & reverent is thy n●me ; you know it is said of God , and so it shall be said of the Saints in that day , their graces shall be much raised , they shall sparkle with abundance of the graces of Gods Spirit in them ; their wisdome & holiness shall make their faces shine , holy and reverent shall be their names , Psal . 89. 7. God is greatly to be feared in the assembly of the Saints , those Saints of his who walke close with him , have a daunting power in their appearance . I appeale to guilty consciences , to apostates , to professors who have secret haunts of wickedness , sometime when you come but into the presence of one who is a truly gracious godly man or woman , whom your conscience tels you walkes close with God , doth not even the very sight of such a one terrifie you ? the very lustre of that holiness you see in such a one strikes upon your conscience , then you thinke such an one walkes close with God indeed , but I have basely forsaken the Lord , and have had such a haunt of wickednesse , I have brought dreadfull guilt upon my soul since I saw him last . Ecclesiasticall stories tell us of Basil , when the officers came to apprehend him , he being then exercised in holy duties , that there was such a majesty & lustre came from his countenance , that the officers fell down backward ( as they did who came to apprehend Christ ) they were not able to lay hold of him . Surely when the Saints shall be raised in their holiness , when every one of them shall have their hearts filled with holinesse , it will cause abundance of fear even in all the hearts of those that converse with them . But wicked ones shall feare too as well as the Saints . Luke 21. 26. Mens hearts shall faile them for feare , it shal be true in these dayes as it was in the destruction of Jerusalem . The Saints shall feare the Lord and his goodness ; the words in the original are they shall feare , ad Dominum to the Lord , & ad bonum , to his good . It is all one in effect , that good that God shall manifest shall cause this feare to be in their hearts . You will say , what goodnesse ? what shall that goodness of God be that shall move the hearts of this people with so much feare ? I will tell you briefly , I need not spend much time in it , for I have spent a whole Sermon about it when I spake of the last words of the first Chapter of this Prophesi● , great shall be the day of Jezreel ; I shal now adde to what I had then . This shall be the goodness of God in that day that they shall feare . First , The goodnesse of God that ever he should regard such a wretched people as we are , and pardon all our sins ! What Israel , the ten Tribes , who had most wretchedly forsaken God , who had crucified Jesus Christ , crucified David their King , yet that blood they have shed is applyed to them for the pardon of their sin ; Oh the goodness of God! they shall feare this goodness in being mercifull to such a hard-hearted , such a stubborne , such a stiffe-necked people as they have been , this goodnes of God will break their hearts . Secondly , then God shal make the difference between him that feareth God , and him that feareth him not . Then shall God take away all the reproach of his Saints . What bitter reproach hath been upon the Saints since the beginning of the world , especially since the times of the Gospel● Reproach , first because they are meane people , of the lower sort . 2. Reproach , because they suffer much , and God lets his adversaries prevaile over them . 3 Reproach , because they waite upon God , and God seems not to come , the adversaries say , where is your God ? No marvaile you pray and Fast , what is become of all ? Here will be the goodness of God at that day to wipe off all this reproach . They shall have so much mercy , so much honour from God , that it shall appeare before all the world that it was good to waite upon him , so much as shall countervaile abundantly all their sufferings , they shall blesse God that ever it was put into their hearts to suffer for him , to waite upon him . And because God foreseeth this , what goodness he hath laid up for his people , that they shall enjoy ere long , ( and we know a thousand years with him are as one day ) that is the reason why he suffereth his people to be so under for the present , he knows he hath that goodness for them hereafter , yea in this world , that all the world shal say that God hath dealt well with them , that he was not a hard Master to them to make them waite so long , and to let them suffer so much as they do . I will give you for this one excellent Scripture , perhaps you have not considered of the emphasis of the argument that is in it . It is Heb , 11. 16. They desired a better Countrey . that is , an heavenly ; wherefore God is not ashamed to be called their God , for he hath prepared for them a City . The poor persecuted Saints wandred up & down , they were content to leave their own Country , their estates here , and sought another Country , an heavenly , but they had it not , their enemies prevailed over them , as if God had forsaken them ; but God is not ashamed to be called their God , what is the argument ? For he hath prepared for them a City ; Marke the force of the argument , for he hath prepared for them 〈◊〉 City : This City is this text I am now speaking of ; sometimes it is described as a Tabernacle , The Tabernacle of God shall come downe from Heaven ; sometime a City , sometime a Countrey , sometime a Kingdome , sometime an Inheritance . Here God hath prepared for them a City : that is , there is a glorious time for Gods people , when they shall have the new Jerusalem come down from heaven unto them . Now then , saith God , though my people be in a suffering condition , I am not ashamed to be called their God. I am not ashamed to own this people , for I have glory enough for them , as if God should be ashamed that he should ever professe such an interest in his people , and this people professe such an interest in him , if there were nothing to come for them , if there were not a time to recompence all their suffering . As if a Master should own a servant , or a Prince a subject , if this servant or subject suffer extreamely , and hath no help , but still when he expects help , there comes none , and when he thinketh , surely now it will come , still it fayls him ; yet if you know that at such a day you shall recompence all this , you shall advance him and bring him to such honour that he will blesse God that ever he was in your service ; you will not be ashamed to owne this servant : But if this servant shall suffer in your cause , and you have no time , nor no ability to recompence him , but he must suffer and suffer for ever , it would be a shame to you to owne him . So God is pleased to speake here , because I have prepared for them such a City , though they be in present persecution , I am not ashamed to own them for my people , and I doe not account it any dishonour to me , for there is a time coming that will answer all objections whatsoever . This is the goodness of God. They shall feare his goodnesse . Feare it , how ? In these severall regards . First , They shall admire at his goodnesse , and in their admirations even stand amazed at it , the feare of amazement . 2 Thes . 1. 10. When Christ shall come , he shall come to be admired of his Saints ; Luke 5. 26. The text saith they were all amazed , and glorified God , and were filled with feare , saying , We have seene strange things to day . VVhen this goodnesse of God shall come , all the Saints shall stand admiring it with amazement , & say one unto another , we did heretofore heare of Prophesies and promises , and we thought when they were opened to us , our hearts did burn within us , O they were blessed things ! but now here is goodness we never thought of , this is higher and more glorious then ever we imagined . Thus they shall feare the Lord & his goodness . You have such a place Jer. 23. 9. It shal be to me a name of joy , apraise , and an honour before all the Nations of the earth , & When people shal heare of all the good that I do unto them , they shal fear & tremble for all the goodnes , & for all the prosperity that I procure unto it . Secondly , Feare this goodness ; they shall upon this fall down and worship this God with feare : Oh how shall their hearts adore this God ; because of this his goodnesse ! As we reade of Moses , Exod. 34. 8. God had told him that he would make all his goodnesse passe before him ; now when God came and passed by before him , and proclaimed his goodness , The Lord , the Lord God ; mercifull and gracious , long-suffering , and abundant in goodnesse and truth , keeping mercy for thousands , forgiving iniquity , and transgression , and sinne ; The Text saith , When Moses heard this , he made haste , and bowed his head and worshipped before the Lord. There is nothing will cause a gracious heart to make more haste to worship God then the beholding the glory and lustre of Gods grace and goodnesse : then the heart will not stand dallying and triffling any longer , but will make haste to worship before the Lord. Many times God shews his greatness unto you , and that convinceth your consciences a little , and you think you must leave your sinfull wayes , then temptation prevailes over you againe ; but when God comes and makes known his goodnes , then the heart stands out against the Lord no more , but it gives up it selfe to the Lord in an everlasting covenant . Thirdly , They shall feare his goodness , they shall feare to offend this goodness of God. It shal be a mighty ingagement upon their hearts to walke close with God because of his goodness . This is a sweet disposition indeed . Then it is a sweet disposition when the heart hath been likewise humbled before God and his justice , and now feares God and his goodness , Mark a note in this by the way : Whereas many will say , O the goodnes of God will breake our hearts ; if Ministers did preach onely his goodnes● ; but when they preach the Law , when we heare of terrour , that hardneth our hearts . Take heed of this , there is more evil in this then you are aware . A heart that is truly gracious will fall down before the Lord any way , and it is not a good signe to be wrought upon only by the goodness of God , it may come through much stubbornness of heart for one to be of such a disposition , to be onely wrought upon by kindness . Did you never know a stour servant or a stout child , that so long as you are dispeased with him , he would stand out against you still , but perhaps if you yeeld to him a little , he would yeeld to you ? Is this a good disposition ? is not this stoutness and pride in a child , or in a servant , or in a neighbour , that will never yeeld to you till you yeeld to him ? This is just for all the world the disposition of many people , so long as they heare of Gods greatness , and terrours of the Law , and Gods justice , they are hardned ; what is that ? that is , they stand it out stoutly against God , notwithstanding his wrath is revealed from heaven : But say they , when Gods goodnes is preached , then they yeeld , that is as much as to say except God yeeld to them they will not yeeld to God. But when I can yeeld hoth ways , fear his goodnes & his justice , then it is as a signe of a gracious disposion indeed . They shal feare his goodness , so as they shall be no longer wanton upon the goodnes of God , they shal not slight Gods goodness , they shal not do evil because God is good , but they shall fear his goodness . We have a generation of men who doe extreamely abuse the goodness of God at this day , even Gods goodness in the Gospell , in those blessed things revealed to us in JESUS CHRIST . As thus , VVe finde this revealed in the Gospel , that it is God that must worke the will and the deed , the Covenant of grace is such , as that God doth not only require but work all for us ; how is this goodness mis-interpreted and abused ! Therefore say they , what need we do any thing ? Why doe Ministers urge people to duties ? Your principle is good , the truth is good , that it is God that works all in the Covenant of grace , but this distinction is very absurd and vile , and an abuse of Gods goodnesse , and therefore you must not work together with the Lord as rational creatures . Again , The Gospel reveales to us the righteousness of God in Christ , that we must not stand before God in our own righteousnesse , but it must be in the righteousness of Christ ; this principle is good ; O but what abuse of this goodness is there 〈◊〉 false doctrines , and absurd consequences drawn from it ; therefore to make conscience of duties , what is it but legall ? they are but duty whore-mongers ; such kinde of bold and absurd expressions come from them . Oh wanton , wanton spirits who do not feare God and his goodness , but abuse God & his goodness ! Agaiu , The Scripture tells us in the Gospel that all sins unto believers are pardoned in Christ , all sins both great and smal , there is no condemnation to them that are in Christ , no not one moment of an houre after they are once justified ; this is Gods goodnesse , and thou shouldest feare it , here is the principle right , but the deductions & consequences are vile , therefore to preach that we must be humbled for sin , this is legall preaching , neither will these men ever confesse their sins because of this goodness of God. This is to be wanton , not to fear the goodnes of God. The goodnes of God in the gospell telleth us that the grace of God is strong , that the Saints shall persevere , that those that are once in Christ shall never fall away ; therefore let us take liberty to our selves , what need we be carefull of our wayes , seeing the grace of God will carry us through ? Oh to abuse this goodnes of God thus is wicked , the heavens may blush to behold it , and the earth tremble under it . But we have not so learned Christ , the more of the goodnes of God in Christ is made known to us , the more should we fear him . The goodnesse of God in the Gospel is so rich that the truth is because the hearts of men are so vile , and so ready to abuse it , we are almost afraid to preach it . Oh is this the fruit of the preaching of the Gospel ? Never was the Gospel so cleare as in England , and in no Age so as in this Age , and is this the fruit of all , that men should draw such absurd consequences from this goodnesse of God , that men should goe away harder from that which is the softning word ? VVhen we come to preach the Gospell , the goodnesse of it , we come I say with feare ; with what feare ? trembling lest it should cost the damnation of some soule . The preaching the goodnes of God in the Gospel , doth certainly cause , ex accidente , the damnation of many a soul . Therefore in the mean time you who are Gods Saints , know how dearly God tendereth you , God will have the goodnesse of the Gospell preache● to you though it cost the damnation of 〈◊〉 a soul ; you had need it therefore , & make a good use of it . Let this meditation cause you to improve to the uttermost what you hear of all the goodness of the Lord. That which I hear is costly to some , it costs the perishing of many a soule that I may have it , though God sees that many souls will be hardned by it , well , saith God , let them be hardned , these my servants shall not want it , though they perish for ever . When a man hath a thing in his house , and he hears that it cost dear , even the lives of many men , he hath other thoughts of it then before . David had a reverent respect to the water of the well of Bethlem , because it cost the hazard of the mens lives , learne then to feare God and his goodnesse . 4. Fearing God and his goodnesse is this , in all rejoycing in , and praysing God for his goodnesse , there shall be a mixture of feare . They shall be well skilled in this mystery of godlinesse , when they enjoy so much of Gods goodness , and are called upon to sing and rejoyce , they shal sing with a mixture of feare . Their hearts shall be very serious and spirituall in all their joy . It is very hard for us to rejoyce in Gods goodness , and not to have our hearts grow slight and vain , it is a hard thing to keepe a day of thankesgiving with a serious spirit , joy commonly causeth vanity in the hearts of men . But now the goodnesse of God shall be so strong in their hearts , that though they shall seek Gods goodness , and rejoyce abundantly in it , yet with a mixture of abundance of feare , their hearts shall be kept very serious , holy , and spirituall in the service of God. I will give you a text or two for this . Exod. 15. 11. when Moses was blessing God for that goodness in delivering his people out of Egypt ( which was a typicall song as appeareth in the Revelation , that bondage typifying Antichristian bondage ) mark the expression , Who is like unto thee O Lord among the gods , who is like unto thee , glorious in holiness , fearful in praises ? God is to be praysed , but so praysed as his name must be fearfull in prayses . Consider this in all your joyfull celebrating the memoriall of Gods goodness , you must so rejoyce and blesse God , as you must hold forth this before all you converse with , that the name of God is fearfull in these praises you tender to him : this a slight heart cannot doe . So Psal . 52. 6. The righteous also shall see and feare , and shall langh at him . Mark what a mixture here is , the righteous shall see , and feare , and laugh , he shall rejoyce , but with trembling , Psalm 2. 11. God much delights to have the glory of his goodnesse thus . We have much goodnesse of God at this day , and God calleth us to feare him and his goodnesse ; if we give him not his glory in this , God may soone call us to feare him and his greatnesse ; to feare him and his justice , to feare him and his wrath . This is the argument now , there is forgivenesse with thee that thou maist be feared . But how soon may God justly turn this argument , there is wrath with thee , vengeance with thee , there is sword , fire , blood , storm , an horrible tempest with thee , therefore shalt thou be feared ? Our consciences are ready to misgive us when wee have any evill tidings , for wee have much guilt upon our spirits , we 〈◊〉 had much goodnesse indeed from God , ( who ever thought to have lived to see that goodnesse you have seen ) but because you have not feared God and his goodnesse , here is the reason of those misgiving thoughts , when you heare of any ill newes , oh now God is coming against us with his wrath , that he may be feared . Something might be said to open a little the difference betweene fearing God and his goodnesse , and fearing God and his wrath and justice in a legall way . Only thus in a word . The fearing God and his goodnesse is such a feare as enlargeth the heart . Other feare contracts the heart . We have an excellent text for this , Isa . 60. 1. compared with ver . 5. Arise , shine , for thy light is come , the glory of the Lord is risen upon thee , and so he goeth on describing Gods goodnesse , that referreth to these times that we are speaking of ; then ( vers . 5. ) Thou shalt see and flow together , and thy heart shall feare upon that , and be inlarged . When the heart so feareth , as it is inlarged unto God , this is the fearing God and his goodnesse aright . Again , It is such a feare as yet the heart clings to God for ever ; It drives not from God , but makes the heart cleave closer to him , that is the phrase in the Text in the Hebrew , They shall feare to God and to his goodnesse , I will put my fear in their hearts that they shal not depart from me . This keeps the heart to God. Further , This fearing God and his goodnesse workes the heart to a high degree of sanctification . 2 Cor. 7. 1. Seeing we have such precious promises , let us perfect holiness in the feare of God : And Heb. 12. 28. Wherefore we receiving a Kingdome that cannot be moved , let us have grace whereby we may serve God acceptably with reverent and godly feare . Lastly , It is a feare that is joyned with love , whereas the other fear makes the heart to have hard thoughts of God ; take heed for ever of that feare of God that makes you to have hard thoughts of him . In times of danger many begin to feare , then presently they wish they had never ingaged themselves so much in these wayes that have such ill successe , they now cry out of others , you would needs do thus , you see what is become of it . But feare of God and his goodnesse is joyned with blessing God , that ever you knew his wa●es , and were ingaged in them . This shall be in the latter dayes . God is content to stay for his glory untill the latter dayes , that which is indeed his chiefe glory ; for though in these former dayes God hath had glory , yet hee hath had but very little . God is content to stay for that which is his chief glory untill the latter dayes . Let this be an argument for our patience , though we have sufferings now , let us wait as God waiteth . But the latter dayes , when are these ? The times of the Gospell are generally called the latter dayes ; but this , though it referreth indeed to the whole time of the Gospel , yet especially unto the latter times of those latter dayes . If you would know what these latter dayes are , though I will not take upon me to give you the day , or 〈…〉 I will shew you that it is like these latter dayes are at hand . For giving light unto this , that is a good help to us that we have in Daniel , concerning the four Kingdoms , there we have a propheticall Chronologie from the Captivity of the Jews unto the time when the counsell of God shall be fulfilled . You have a description there of four severall Monarchies , the Babylonian , Assyrian , Grecian , and Roman : Now in the last of these Daniel saith , Chap. 2. 44. The God of heaven shall set up a Kingdome which shall never be destroyed , but it shall breake in pieces , and consume all the other Kingdomes , and it shall stand for ever . In this latter ( namely the Roman ) hath the Kingdom of Christ begun to appear already , but God telleth Daniel , chap. 12. 13. Thou shalt stand in thy lot at the end of the dayes . Now observe , the chiefe Prophesies wee have about the time of these latter dayes , when they shall be set out in that expression of time , and times , and halfe a time , 1260. dayes , or 42. months , all comes to the same three years and a halfe , reckoning every day in those yeares for a yeare , compare these prophesies , Dan. 7. 25. And they shall be given into his hand , untill a time and times , and dividing of time . Rev. 11. 2. The holy City shall they tread under foote forty and two moneths . Vers . 3. The witnesses shall prophesie 1260. dayes ; Now 1260. days are the days of three years and a halfe , so the dayes of 42. moneths . Then the woman in the wildernesse , Rev. 12. 6. She shall be fed there 1260. dayes , still the same number ; the witnesses shall prophesie 1260. dayes ; the holy Citie that shall be trodden under foote 42. months ; and the woman in the wildernesse shall be there 1260. dayes And againe , Dan. 12. 11. From the time of the abomination that making desolate , there shall be 1290. days , there are a few days more , not many , but about this time you see the Scripture prophesieth of some great things to be done , at the end of this time are these latter dayes . But all the difficulty is to know the beginning when the three years and a halfe , or 42. moneths , or 1260. dayes begun , then we may know when these latter dayes shall be . Brightman makes the beginning of the 1290. days from Julians time , when he would have set up the abomination , that is , set up the Jewish worship again , by re-edifying the Temple , that is , sayes he , the abomination of desolation , reckoning 1290. dayes , for 1290. years , hi● time by computation will come out about the year 1650. The other wee have in the Revelation ( and that in Daniel likewise refers to the same ) notes the time that the Churches shall be under the persecution of Antichrist , for a thousand two hundred and sixty years , so long the Beast shall prevail , and the witnesses shall so long prophesie in sackcloath , and the woman shall be in the wildernesse for so long a time . But when did Antichrist begin to reign ? For that take this rule , It must be at that time when the Roman Emperour was broken , and when the Dragon giveth up his power to the Beast ; when the power of the Dragon that persecuted the Christians under the Roman Empire is given to Antichrist , so that now they come to be persecuted under him ; here is the beginning of the 1260. dayes . That the Roman Empire must be given up first , appeareth , 2 Thes . 2. 7 For the mystery of iniquity doth already worke , only he who now letteth , will let , untill he be taken out of the way ; that is , as generally Expositors carry it , the power of the Roman Empire , when that is taken out of the way , then shall that wicked one be revealed ; the●e were many Antichrists before , but then that wicked one that shall exalt himselfe above all that is called God , shall have power to persecure the Church . Hence it is observable , that the custome of the Church was to pray for the continuing the Roman Empire upon this ground , because they knew when that was broken Antichrist would come . Now the breaking of the Roman Empire was at the raising up of those ten severall sorts of governmens called in the Revel . tenn Kings , and the raising up of those Kings was 400. yeares and something more after Christ , as Chronologers tell us , between the 400. and 500. years . It is hard to reckon to a year , there is so much difference in Chronologers computations ; after that time there must be 1260. days , that is 1260. years . Make this computation , and compare all these Scriptures one with another , it cannot be long , but in this century that is now currant , these latter dayes are here meant , when the people of God and the Jews shal return to Jehovah , and David● heir King , and fear the Lord & his goodnesse . The nearer the time comes , the more will these things be cleared . Dan. 12. 9. Goe thy way Daniel , for the words are closed up and sealed till the time of the end , and none of the wicked shall understand , but the wise shall understand . Take but one note and we have done , why the Scripture sets ●●is out rather by many dayes , then by so many yeares ? The reason is , because God would have his people think that time untill his goodnes should be revealed , but a short time , if he had said they should be 1260. years under Antichrists persecution , this founds harder ; No , saith he , it shall be but so many dayes , ( though flesh and blood may think this time long ) yet look upon it as dayes , it is but a short time to me , it will be but a short time to you , within 1260. days you shall be delivered from his tyranny , and then you shall have this voyce from heaven , The kingdoms of the earth are become the kingdomes of the Lord and of his Christ , and hee shall reign for ever , and then shall ye together with the Jews seeke the Lord , and David your King , and fear the Lord and his goodnesse . Now through Gods goodnesse wee have gone through these three Chapters . Tertullian hath this expression of the fulness of the Scriptures ; Ador● plenitu d●nem Scripturarum , I adore the fulnesse of the Scriptures ; By searching thus into the Scriptures , we may come to see rich treasures in them , and so adore the fulnesse of them ; how do we read over texts , as if there were nothing in them ? but certainly God hath revealed much more of his mind in Scripture then wee are aware of , let us all be in love with the study of the Scriptures . Notes, typically marginal, from the original text Notes for div A30572-e290 May 8. 1642. a Nesco utrum brevitatem sermonum , an magnie tudiuem sensuum admirari debeas . b Commaticum & qua si persentias loquen tem . c Ge●●s generalissimum omnium benorum . Si hoc auferas , sol●m e mundo sustulisli : quid mundus sublate verbo quam infernus . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 . d 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 , &c. Quid est Scriptura sacra nisi quaedam epistola emnipotentis Dei ad creaturam suam . Greg. 1. Ep. ●0 . ad . Gregorium Theodorum Medicum . Sacrae scripturae expositio est emnium quae ad cul●●m Dei fiunt ●pus maximum , & utilitates humano generi max 〈◊〉 efferens . Lect. 1. Wolfius in loc . Luther in Gen. c. 19. Ego adi lie beos me●s & saepe opto eos interire , quod metuo , nemorentur lectores & abducant lectione ipsias scripturae , quae sola omnis sapientiae fons est , &c. Ioh. 7. 17. ●um debere scire se aliquid profecisse cui Ciceronis lectio eft valde iucunda . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 in Hiphil . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Salvavit . Obs . ● King. ● 2. 19. Ier. 36. 23. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Puteus . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 . Magna semper facerunt , qui Deo vocaute docuerunt . Luther . Euseb . de Prapar . Euan. l. 20. c. ult . Ab hec tempore Graeca de temporibus historia vera creditur . Obs . 1. Obs . 2. Obser . 3. Obser . 4. Obser . 5. Obser . 6. Obser . 7. Obs . 1. Obs . 2. Obser . 3 Obser . 4 Obser . 5 Obser . 6. Obser . Obsec . Ch. 13. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 . Quanto 〈…〉 dius 〈◊〉 em lo●●itur , 〈◊〉 into opeto●ius pene●●ratur . Aug. de Hosea l. 18. deciu. Iam. 1. 20. May 23. 1642. The scope of the Chapter . Segnius irritant animos demissa per aurem , Quamqua sunt oculis subjecta fidelibus : & quae Ipse sibi tradit spectator . Lect. 2. * Such a one as Thais was among the Athenians . Vir sanguinum . Aug. cont . Faust . l. 22 c. 80. Quid adversura clementiae veritatis , quid fidei Christianae si meretrix relicta for●●catiane 〈◊〉 castum conjugium commutetur , &c. Eorum audaciam mirari satis nequeo qui non verentur dicere verba haec esse rebus destituta . Theod. in Hos . ena● . c. 1. Obser . Gods command takes away the offence , not he com●mand of the Magistrate . Ans . 2. Obser . Obser . Reasons why Hoseas marrying a whore was but only in a vision . 1. 2. How the woman is the glory of the man. 3. Apparens & loquens ei per vifiouem interiorem ecstafi . Obs . Adulterium committen● quasi ad alterium se 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 conferens . Wherein is Idolatry like to the sinne of Adultery . 1. 2. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 . 3. 4. Hos . 4. 11. 5. 6. 7. Filii Ecclesiae . Quest . Answ . 1. Fornicando fornicatur . or as Arius Montanus Fornicando fornicabitur . Obser . Obsec . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Obs . 5. Reasons of the name of Hoseas son . Obser . 3. Obser . A twofold scattering of a People . 4. 5. Obser . Obser . God will avenge 〈◊〉 blood . Answ . 1. Three reasons why God avenged the blood of Iezreel upon the house of Iehu . 3. Obser . 1. Obser . 2 Obedience so farre as serves a mans owne turn . Obser . 3. God makes use of mens parts . Obser . 4 God makes 〈◊〉 use of men● sins . Obser . 5 God rewards here those works that must be answered for he easter . Obser . 6 A dangerous thing to subiect publique works to our own ends . Obser . 7. GOD curseth partiall obedience . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 . Obser . 8. Reformers must not be more carefull of Policy then of religion . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 . Arist . Pol. l 7. cap. 8. M●n can see the evill of sin in others rather then in themselves . Obser . 10 Oser . 11. Magistrats must take heed of liv●ng in the same sinnes they punish . Quest . Ans . Obs . Why a threat against posterity in the second Command rather then in any ●ther . Theequ●ty of childrens suffering for their Parents . Observ . Question . Answer . Observ . Question . Answer . 2 King. 10. 36. 13. 1 13. 10. 13 23. Obser . Sin punished a long time after the commission . Gen. 42. 22 Isa . 65. 20. Observ . Quest . Answ . Observ . Many years are but of little while in Gods account . Obser . Present things affect not . Omnis actie fit per contactum . Obser . Obser . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Quiescere faciam . Obser . Observ . Observ . No weapons can prosper against the Church . Observ . Fortified places are nothing where the wrath of God is out against a people . 2. Obser . God punishes men in that they most glory in . Lect. 3. Hoseas 3. children shews the 3 estats of 〈◊〉 Observ . Base effeminatenes of spirit in a people yeelding to what shall be imposed upon them , a signe of ruine . Purity in the Church cannot stand long with slavery in the ●eate . Viri fort●● est aut pul chrevivere aut fartiter mori . After base yeelding to slavery follows ruine . Quae su●●u , abjecturi in altum tolimus ut majori ruina decidant . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Oblitus fuit . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Ab●●ulit . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 . Obser . 1 Encouragement from gracious youth in England . Obser . 2. 〈◊〉 2. 1. The feares of the Saints that heretofore mercy was departed from us iustified . Luk. 14. 14. Rev. 22. 1● Gen. 6. 3 God must not be dallyed withall in the offers of his grace . Obser . 3 Obser . 4. Obser . 5 Obser . 6 Lesse judgments forerunners of greater . Obser . 7 Obser . 8 Amos 3. 2. 1 Kings 13. 4. Exod. 33. 5 A dangerous thing to reiect an offer of mercy after reiection of former offers . 2. Obser . The ground of civill & Churh government different . Answ . How farre mans authoritybindes . Obser . 1 Obser . 2 Obser . 3 Obser . Object . 5. Obser . Poor afflicted ones finde mercy when the rich are rejected . 6. Obser . Ministers must be Impartial . Obser . 7 , Mercy to the saints are aggravation of judgement to the wicked . Dives magis uritur gloria Lazari , quam suo incendio . Chrysologus . After promise of mercy , yet great afflictions may follow , No advantage in yeelding to wicked men . Obser . A great evill to be discouraged at some difficulties , when God is in a way of mercy . The destruction of some , sets forth Gods mercy to others . Exo. 15. 1 Gods people need not seek to save themselves by carnal policie . Obs. Administ . ration of GODS grace is given into the hands of Christ . Obs. Dan 5. 23. Lect. 4. Observ . Obser . Carnall hearts cannot endure that any one should think they have more interest in God then themselves Observ . Ejus fimulacrum catenis constrinxerunt clavisque Basi affixe . iunt . Lect. 3. Iudah saved , not by bow , norby sword , two several wayes . Obser . 1. Mediis utendam , non innitendum . Obser . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 4. Iune 20. 1642. Lect. 4. Vaticiantur hic dura ut desti . uantur verbo Dei prophetiis & gratiis . Vatab. in loc . Memares uberum tuorum supervinum . Obser . The sweetness of the comfort● of a native soile . 2. Mothers must nurse their children . 〈◊〉 Nun e●●dire pa●ris est , ●n●rire matris . ●●●utilifimum euique maternum . Plin , l. 28. c. 9. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 . Quest . Ans . Obs . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Power over passions . Hos . 11. 8. Churches not too suddenly to be rejected . Observ . 1 Sam. 15. 32. Obser . When sins seem to be less then be fore , yet then judgements may come . Vltimus ictus non dejicit queteum . Quest . Ans . Obs . A Church state may be lost , but not the fouls communion with Christ Obser . 2. The great argument to pleade with God by , is our relation to him . Relationes minimae ●n titatis , maximae efficaciae . Observ . Perditio tua●e● te . Observ . Bona mea tibi non pla cent nisi me cum ; nec bona tu● mi hi non placent nisi te●um . Gen. 15. 2. Exo. 33. 15. Cujus faciem timet , ipsius faciem invocat . Aug. 5. Obser . Those who will not 〈◊〉 Gods must not be ours Observ . It is usuall in prospe ●●it ▪ to forget threats , and in adversity to forget promises . God in the middest of his anger knowes those that trust in him , Deus bonus est , etiam 〈◊〉 omnes homines perderet . Luther . It is good ● way●ing on God in the waies of his judgments . Obs . Gen. 48. 21 3. Obser . God is ever mindfull of his Covenant , so we should be . Why God pr●mised to Abraham to multiply his seed Observ . Nothing lost in being willing to lose for God. Observ Observ . Obser . The reproach of the fewness of the godly will in time be taken away . Obser . Prov. 14. 28 , Answer to the argument from the sufferings of the Primitive times against resisting tyranny . We should rejoyce in multitudes joyning to the Church Object . Ans . Malice of Satan envyina multitudes coming to the word . Quando , flanctus maris volant obruere , & submergere 〈◊〉 , vident Isra elem & red●unt & frangantur in seipsis , & non possunt dominari munde Iuly . 4. 1642. Lect. 5. Obser . A comfortable thing to have Religion set up in Townes & families , where once it was not . Obser . The world shall one day be convinced of the excellency of the Saints . Obser . Mat. 5. 9. Son-ship revealed by Christ . 2. ● . ●●m . 1. 7. Rom. 8 153 Sons must not feare . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 . Observ . Why God is call 〈◊〉 the living God in reference to his Church Christians must be living and lively . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 . 2 Pet. 1. 4. Eph. 4. 18. 3 Things wherein Christians must be lively . 1. 2. Active & yet solid . 1 Pet. 2. 5. Obser . Non solum hostes palam impij persequuntur nos , sed etiam hi qui fuirunt dulces amici nostri , qui anobis acceperunt doctrinam Evangelij , fiunt infencissimi hostes nostri persequentes nos acerime . Nihil est scelerum aut crudelitatis , cujus me non reum agat , adeo ut nec papistae me sic lacerunt hostes mei , ut illi amici nostri . Ep. ad Mich. Stifelinum . Infensior mihi est quam ulli hactenus fuerint inimici . Luther . ep . ad Spalatinum . A prison will make men to agree . 2. The 〈◊〉 of the Churches 〈◊〉 . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 1. A hard thing to a agree wh● there are many . 2. Vrging things indifferent the cause of divisions in the Church Mar. 5. 8. 9 The blessednesse of union . Obser . Obser . The Gospell is not the cause of divisions The reason why godly men are not so yeelding as others . Obser . The Saints love to gather together . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 ●micus ●●aro , sed ●agis amica Vetas . Potius quam aliquid regno Christi & gloriae ejus decadat , ruat non solum pax , sed 〈◊〉 & terrae . Luther . July . 1642. Vbi sive saedere pacis , sive observantia legis , sive disciplina & regimine Acephala multitudo congregata fuerit , non est civitas sed confusis , Babylonem exe hibet , de Hierusalem nihil habet . Bern. Ser 5. de ded c. Eccles. 1. 2. Christ the head of the Church . Obser . The honor of the Church is in Christ their Head. How Christ the Head of Angels . 1. 2. 2. How Christ the Head of every man. 3. How Christ the Head of all things . 2 , The strength of the Church in Christ their Head 3. The Church holds all on Christ . 4. Safety in Christ . Lutherus apud illus Satan est , sed Christus regnat & vivat . 5. Christ the Head hath compassion of the members . 6. Christ the Head in regard of Guidance . 7. Christ the Head in regard of his Rule . 4. Things in church Government belonging to the Headship of Christ . 1. All offices hold on christ the Head Three differences between civil Government and church Government . 1. 2. 3. 2. All Ordinances hold to Christ the Head. What the nature of an Institution is . No man can make any new Institution in the Church . VVhat makes an institution so as if man presume to do it , it is unlawfull . 1. 2. 2. VVhat comes from Christ the head , binds conscience in another manner then mans laws can doe . Answer to that place . Rom. 13. brought to prove humane laws to binde conscience . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 . 1. 2 , 3. Every one must judge of his owne act , but yet at a two fold peril . 1. 2. 3. 4. Not a light matter to seek after the right government of Christ . Quae pericula ecclesiam exceptura sunt Christum caput agnos centem tempora nostra satis ostend unt , quia Christum totum praedicauius caput nostrum Ana themati & omnis generis suppliciit subsecicimur , 2. What is to be accounted Antichristianisme , what not . 1. 2. 3. 4 3 That the King hath power in Church affairs , and how . 1. 2. 3. Quest . Ans . Quest . Ans . The excellency of grace in the Saints above what was in Ada● . Lect. 7. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 We must not dishouour Head. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Quest . Ans . Rev. 3. 21. Rev. 19. 6. Igna charitatis combucenrendi , s●at ha●etiti Luther . Cant 5. last . There can not be universall officer in the Church as in the State and why ; Observ . Lect. 6. The greatness of the Churches affliction is no hinderance to the deliverance of it . Iam periculu● pa● animo Alexitiri . Obser . Afflictions should raise our hearts . Obser . Obser . The godly are pretious seed . Filibatur nomen ejus . The wicked are corrupt seed . 1. 2 , 3. That place Dan. 12. 2. opened , not understood of the generall resurrection at the last day and why . 6. 7. 8. Ego autem & qui sunt per omnia orthodoxae sententiae Christiani , &c. Vt jam nostra haec tempora quibus iniquitas & malitia usque ad summum gradi●m crevit , soe licia , & prope aurea possint judicari . Si tum forte su●rint boni , undeque practae sint scel●ratis , ac divexentur , soli autem mali opulenti sint , boni vero in omnibus contumeliis atqùe in egestate , confundetur omne jus & leges peribunt , nihiltunc quispiam habebit , vi omnia possialebunt . Lactant. l. 7. c. 15. 2. Romannm nomen horet animus dict re , sed dicamq●ia futurum est toll●tur de terra . Lactant. l. 7. c. 15 .3 Lect. 7 , Terra aperiet f●cunditat●m suam , & ub●rrimas fruges sua spont● generabit , rupes montium me●●e sudabunt , perrivos vina decurrent , f●umina lacte inundabunt , ominù natura Letabitur ; erepta & liberata a dominio mali , & impietatis , & eroris ; non hestia per hoc tempus sanguine alentur , non aves praeda sed quieta & placid a crunt omnia . Lactant. l. 7. c. 4. Tun● qui erunt in corporibus vivi , non morientur , sed per mille annes infinitam multitudinem generabunt , & evit s●boles eorum sancta , & Deo charre . Lactant. ibid. In the evening time it shal be light . Exhor●at . to come in to embrace godliness , to joy●e with the Saints . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Notes for div A30572-e31870 Obser . A good thing to speak of Gods loving kindne●●●● . 1 , 〈◊〉 ct So discon●se of Gods mercies , as our hearts may be sanctified by that discourse . Chap. 2. Esa . 9. 8 Obser . Obser . Obser . Le●ct . i Obs . 1. Obs . 2. Reliqui mihi septem milliaonon ait relicta sunt vel reliquer●nt se , sed reliqui reliquiae per electionem gratiae . August , de bono perfev . l. 2. c. 18. Obs . 3. Obs , 4. Turpe est doctori cum culpa redarguit ipsum . Obs . 5. Obs . 6. Obs . 7. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Obs . 1. Obs . 2. Idolaters hardly convinced . Obs , 4. Obser . 5 Obser . 6 Obser . 7 Children may plead with parents . Amandus Generator , sed praeponendus Creator . Obs . 9. We must endeavour the good of the publique . Obs . 10. Obs . 11. private members may in some cases plead with the whole Church . One man may prevail against many . Hactonus verba audivi & verba rededi , sed cum divina virt●● accessit , ultra r●spondore non potui . * Conte●● neretur eccl●siae Christi , sivel vnum puellum ejus divino Spiritu lequentem non audiremus , etiamsi totus orbis illi reclamet . Orcolam padius . Object . Ans . Quest . Ans . No pride but selfedenyal to plead against the sinnes of others . Obj. Ans . The truth is not alwayes seen best where there is greatest natural abilities , no nor alwayes where there is most 〈◊〉 . Mit. 11. 25 1 Iohn 5 16. 1. Rules to be observed by private Christians who plead with the Church . 2. 3. No Officer in a Church member be he never so great , but he may be pleaded against by a private member . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Private people must take heed they abuse not their liberty . Obj. Ans . When a Church comes to be unchurched . A Chuch may continue a true Church though with much mixture . A Church may remain a true Church , yet so corrupt as in some cases we cannot have communion with it . 3 Cases . In a cases though I may have communion yet I may no●●oyne as a constant member . Obser . Pleading must not befor contention but for reformation . Quest . This may be known . 1 Cor. 54. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Ioshus , 22. 33. Obser . Lect. 2. Hope for mercy even when God seems most to reject . Peoples perversness against Ministers threatning Gods wrath against sin Obser . While exhortation continues there is hope . Geminatio apud Hebraos auget . Ibive●ae & viae quibus ab utero ad mamillas accessio fit Ille ( cultus scilicet vtl ornatus ) in auro , & argento , & gemmis , & vestibus deputatur , iste , in curae eapilli & cutis , & earum par●ium corporis quae oculos trahunt , alteri ambitioni : crimen intendimus , alteri prostitutionis . Tertul. de hab . mul. c. 4. Iudicabunt vos Arabia soeminae Ethnica , qua non caput sed fac●em quoque ita totam tegunt , ut uno ocu●lo●liberato , contentae sint luce frui dimidia potius quam totam facien● prostituer● . Tertul. de . vel . virgin . cap. 17. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 , &c. Cyril in Hol. c. 2. In what sense Israels father is an Amirite and mother an Hittite . Obser . Obser . Lect. 1. Thy navil was not cut , what is the meaning of that . Strabo , l. 15. AElian variar . Hist . li. 11. Ne cui Thebano lic●at infontem expouere . Nunquam apud eos infans natus exponitur . Lect. 2. Portenta diabolica p●nenumero . Egyptia●● vinc●ntia Lect. 1. Obs . 2. Obs . 3. Obs . 4. Lect. 2. Gifts of hypocrites will vanish Obs . 5. Who they are that bring evill upon the nation . Lect. 1. Obser . 6. It is time for every one to appeare in times of danger . Obs . 7. Lect. 2 GODS works will convince when his word will not . Obs , 8. Obs . 9. A sad condition for one advanced high , to bee brought down low . Obser . Wee must lay to heart our low coudition wee once were in . Asperius nihil est humilicum surgit in altum . Lect. 1. Lect. 2. Lect. 3 ▪ Psal . 133. 3 Anima Idololatriae dedita , nullos profert fructus , est que inutilis prorsus ut desertum in quo nihil noscitur Vatab. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 . Psalm 1. 3. Obser . Sin layes wast Countryes . Cum in fu ga aquam turbidam & cadaveribus inquinatam bibisset , negavit unquam se , bibisse ju cundius , ●unquam scilicet ( ut Cicero lib. 1. Tuso . aiit ) sitiens bibisset . Obser . God brings wicked men into straits , and there leavs them destitute of all succour . Obser . Wrath upon the wi●ed is pure wrath with out mixture of mercie . Iudgments upon the wicked at times most unseasonable for them . God proportions afflictions to his childdren , but not to the wicked . Hos . 7. 14. Ezek. 8. 18 Lect. 3. Gods judgments against people , as well as against Governors , and why . 2 Sam. 24. 1. Much depends now upon the people . Obser . Obser . little hope of children ill educated . Obser . Obser . When judgements are abroad let the children of whoredoms , not the children of the Bride-chamber feare . Revel . 9. 21. Chap. 16 , 9. 11. Obser . succession for si●ne i● dreadfull . Qui peccat coram puero his peccat . pudef aciens . The Saints must take heed they be not a shame to Christ . Wicked parents are a shame to their children . Lect. 4. Obs . Every one should have such an affection towards th● Church and State as children towards the mother Obser . Sin causeth shame . False worship 〈◊〉 shamefull thing . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 The more full of beauty Gods Ordinances are , the more shamefull it is to decline to waves of false worship . Obser . Omnes libros tam veteris tam novi testamenti nec non traditionis ipsas pari pietatis affect● ac reverentio suscipit ac veneratur Idem honor debetur imagini & exemplari . Governers and parents must take heed of putting their servants 〈◊〉 children to too much 〈◊〉 . Obser . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 . Obser . Aelianus variar . histor● ▪ Bodily and spirituall whoredom makes men very wilful in their uncleannesses . Obser . Ego in ea opinio●e sum , Monarchias longe diutius dura●uras , s● Monarchae hoc unum pronomen Ego omisissens . Luther in Psal . 127. Tolle voluntatem & non erit infernus ▪ Bern. It s a fearefull iudgement for a man to hee given up to ones owne will Professed wickedness is shamefull wickedness . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 . Adaras Iovis aut Veneris adorare ac sub A●tichristo fidem occul tare . Zuin. ep . 3. It is not enough to have goodnesse at the heart , but we must professe it . Ans . 1. Association with those of a different Religion is dangerous . Obser . Wee must keepe good thoughts of God. Obser . If we prize Christs love , hee will prize ours . Obser . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 . Obser . The en●es of false worshippers are very low and meane . A true child of Abraham hath a high spirit . Obs . Men love that Religion that brings them most corne and wine , &c. Fac me pontificem et Christi anus ●ro . Novi homin●m non ex vna canoni catu nebilem commonstrantem digito delicatiorem penem & vin . m quod , prestan . i●simum erat oppositum haec in quit sunt quae faciunt ut hoc vitae genus dejerere non libeat . Triobojare Beneficium . Magis soliciti de meroquam de vero 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 magis amantm●n di deliti●s quam Christi divitias . Obser It is a shamefull thing to subiect Religion to corn , wine , and flaxe , and wool . ●erm●ns illa bestia non cura● aurum . Quasi vero deus nolit darelanem ecclesiae suae aut satius sit asathana pe●era . Obsre . Prosper●ty in evill wayes hardens . Obs . God reserveth propriety in all that he giveth , unto us . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Vadam . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 persequa . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 S●udiose qua●rens● Summae conatuam . bulatione & pedibu●● 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 . Obser . Isa . 27. 4 ver . 9. The difference of Gods aims in afflicting his Saints from his aims in afflicting the wicked . Obs . 1. There remains much of slavi●h disposition in the godly . Obser God studies what may do his people good . Obs . A mercy to have stumbling blocks laied in the way of sin . O in●aelices et miseros quando relinquit Deus homiones sibi ipsis nec resisti● eorum fureri et cupiditatibus : sed vae illis ad quorum peccata connive● Deus . Luther . Obser . Much brutishness remains in the h●arts even of the godly . Obser . 2. Obser . 3. Afflictions are ●ods hedges . If our way be Gods wee must breake through all difficulties Obser . Wicked men will suffer much for their lusts . Obs . God keeps many from thit sins in a way of violence whether they wil or no. Obser . Obser . God strikes wicked men with blindnesse . It is a good blindnes not to find the paths of sinne . Obs . Obser Obs . Obs . Obser . When wee cannot enjoy all ordinances , vet our hearts must be working after them . Obs . Obs . Cum ne mi ni ob trvdi po test , itur da me . Obs . God accepts of us when we come to him in our affliction . Obser . Rom. 6. 21. Nothing got by departing from Christ . Obs . Object . Answ . Humiliation must go before reformation . Obs . Lect. 6. In vaine to be humbled except we reform . Obs . The reasonings of heart in a repenting Apostate . Obser . Obser . Pro. 14. 14. Lect. 6. Apostates seeming mercy must observe three things . Examination whether times before were better then they are now . The weakness of the argument taken from the opinions and practises of learned & godly men . Cre●o vera & purfecta fide quod Deus creator , gubernator , & susteu . ator sit omnium creaturarum quod idem ipse operatus si● omnia , operetur adhuc & inaeternam operaturus sit . Buxtorf . synag . Iudaic. c. 1. Benedictus sis Domine Deus noster rex mundi quod fructum vitis condidisti Synag . Iud. c. 7. Benedictus esto Deus qui & dulcia & bene volentia crearis , &c. Buxtsynag . Iud. cap. 7. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 What Baal was . Obs . God provideth for the bodies of his people . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Si opus est corni pa●e , si opus est aqua , si open est vin● , si opus est nummo , si opus est jumento , a Deo petere debet , nan a daemoniis & idolis : qui Deo sitiunt , undi que debent sitire , & anima & carne . Nunquid animam tuam Deus fecit , & carnem damonia fecerunt ? qui fecit ambas res ipse pascet amlias . Aug. in 〈…〉 . longeth for thee , 〈…〉 Obj. The greatest man in the world must beg his bread at Gods gate every day . Obs . The sweetnesse of a comfort is , that it comes from God. Obs . Many and great are Gods unknown mercies . Scire tuum nihil est , nisi te scire hoc sciat alter . Obser . We know no more then we lay to heart . philosophi sumus factis , no● verbis , nec magna loquimur , sed vivimus . Cypr. de patienti● . Mat. 11. 27. Hoc morbo didici quid sit peccatum & quanta majestas Dei. Gasper , Olevianus . Verb● sensus denotant affectus . Obs . Affected ignorance is no excuse . Graviter O homo peccas , si divitias dei longanimitatis contemnis gravissime si ignoras . Ambro● Obser Obs . Obser . Prosperity makes men grow wanton . Obser . Obs . An evill thing to fight against God with his own creatures . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 . Obs . Obs . Lect 7. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Obser . 1 Obs . 2. Abuse of mercies causes God to take them away . Obser . 4 Gratiarum actio ipsa confessio donum est acceptum , quanto magis ipsa dona . Luther . postquam locuplitati sumus bane ●idesam particulam addimus , ego geci . Obs . 5. When God takes away a mercy , then conscience troubles fo● the abuse of that mercy ▪ Obser . 6 Obs . 7. wrath from God when wiked men least think of it . Obs . 8. how far wicked men have right to the creature . Obs . 9. Substanti● caro nostra incorporetur Sanctis nt in ●is ad gloriam resurgat , non peccatoribus , in illis enim resurg●t ad ●ehenam . Obser . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 . Obs . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 . Obser . Prosperity hides much filth . Obser . Lect. 6. Re●taining some good covers much evill . Obser . Obser . Lewdnes of men must be discovered but not their infirmities . Obser . Lect. 7. Obser . God carrieth on his work in the face of his ●●●mies . Obser 2 Sam. 15. 30. It is very grievous to be dishonoured before those we love . Carnall friends grow strangers in time of adversity . Obser . Job . 8. 14. James 5. 13. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 . Lect. 8. W●●kel men though under God● wrath yet w●ll be jocund and merry . Obser . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Obs . Difference between the spirits of the wicked and the godly in their affliction . Obs . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 The wickness of men at feasts . Animula mea vagubla blandula , quo vadis , non amplius joco● dabis . We must not then feast when God calls for mourning . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 We must not presume in way of imitation to God to devise things in his worship like to his former institutions . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Mendat●s ▪ Why a day may not be made holy as well as time set apart for a Lecture . VVhat it is to dedicate a thing . VVhat it is to sanctifi● a thing . How it may be lawfull to set apart fasting dayes and how not . The feast of new moons opened . Benedctus esto conditor t●us O l● na , benedictus aesto Dominus tuus . Ter subsiliunt s●elum ver sus quod quanto sublimius possunt , taute melius est , lunamque alloquentes . Quemadmodum inquiunt not ●e versus sub●ilientes attingere ●e non possumus , sic hostes nostri omnes nos ad malum attingere nobi●que●●eere non poterunt . Buxtorf . Synag . Iudaic. c. 17. Ier. 44. 17. 18. 19. Obser . Lect. 9. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Iovialiter vivere . Why a Sabath was ordained . What speciall things in the seventh day Sabbath above other Sabbaths , 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Quartum pra●eeptum egregium prae septum , & ad omnem virtutem excitandam utile , p●etatem vero praecipue . D●esiderium dierum . Veni spon sa m●a . The meaning of the rest of the seventh yeere . Mercy to the poore in regard of their debts . Iubilee opened . It is an observation of Ierome . when 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 is written without vau , then it signifies the fiftieth yeer , but when it is with van , then it signifies eternity , but this Pagni●● rejects , for it will not hold . The hard condition of servants in former times . God win Iewish antiq lib. 3. c. 10. Reasons why land must return in the yeare of Iubile . The trumpet of Iubile to blow on their fasting days and way . What to be learned from that law , requiring the Iews to go thrice a yeer to the place that God chose . The Feast of Passeoever . Obs . 1. Apoc. 15. 1 Obs . 1. When God offereth deliverance we should not bee sluggish . Obser . Obser . Deliverances looked upon in reference to Christ are sweet . The Iewish additions to their Pass-over . Templum tuum brevi , valde cito , valde cito , in diebus nostris , citissime , nunc aedifica templum tuum brevi . Misericors Daus , Magne Deus , benigne Deus , pulcher Deus , dulcis Deus , virtuose Deus , Iudaica Deus , nunc aedifica templum tuum brevi , valde cito , in diebus nostris , valde cito , valde cito , nunc aedifica , nunc edifica , nunc aedifica , nunc aedifica , nunc aedifica templum tuum cito , robuste Deus , fortis , vineus , potens Deus , &c. Buxtorf . de Synag . Iud. c. 13. The Feast of Pantecost . No blessing ●o be enjoyed from the earth but through Christ . Hereditatom elegantiae . Obs . 1. Timely fruit is pleasing to God. Obser Obs . Obs . Exod. 13. 19. Obser . Obser . Obser . Obs . Obs . The difference of burnt off●●ing , sin-offering , and peace-offering . Lect. 9. Obser . The feast of trumpets . Non licet iniquas observa●iones agere Kalendarum & ●ciis vacare gentilibus , neque lauro aut viriditate arborum cingere do●mus . Omnis enim haec observatio paganismi est . Canon . 74. Cavendae potiusquam Kalendae . S●atuit ●niversalis Ecclesia ieiunium publicum in isto die fieri . Al●huvinus de divinis d 〈◊〉 . c. 4. Lect. 10. The day of Atonement Festum expiationis : eight things especially observable in it . Obser . Obs . Non solum periculosum sed horribile est de deo extra Christum 〈…〉 Ps . 128. Suida● . The Feast of Tabernacles . Necte Hosannam . God suites himselfe to o●r condition , wee must suite our selves to him . Obser Obser . Obser . A second end of the feast of Tabernacles . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 . Obs . Obser . Obser . Lect. 11. Obser 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Obser . Obser . Obser . It is a vile thing to attribute Gods blessings to our ways of ●in . Obser . Obs . What soever is got by sin the curse of God is in it . An example of trouble of conscience for ill gotten goods . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 that is 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Lect. 11 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 . Obser . Sin makes men beasts yea worse then beasts . Si nemo ist quin emari malit quam converti in aliquam figuram bestiae quam , vis hominis sit mentem habiturus quanto est miserius in hominis figura animo esse esserato , Lact. l. 5. c. 1. Obser . God looks upon wicked great men with a contemptible eye . Obser A fearfull judgement to fall into the hands of men . One new sinne may bring upon us wrath for many formerly committed Papists like Heathen . We must worship God in our private houses . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 We must not think that God will accept of our service , because of any thing of our owne 〈◊〉 Cancilium gangrense anathematizat eos qui asiam vestem aliae sanctiorem aut plus facere ad pietatem iudicant . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 . Obser . Lect. 12 It is a dangerous condition when God is gotten on t of a m●ns thoughts . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Obser . The grace of the Covenant makes inferences from our sins to mercy . Tota scriptura hoc agit ne dubitemus , sed sperea mus , confic damus , eredamus deum miscricordam esse benignum ; patiente●● ; Luther . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 . The mercy of God out bids all temptations . 2 Cor. 12. 16. The s●cret waves of God drawing the heart to himselfe . idem cum 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Operabor miracula , & grandia , facinora , qualia edidi in deserto . Thargum Ionathae . Gods former wayes towards his people , great helps to our Faith. When God brings into trouble : there is comfort in that trouble . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Obser Nothing can ease a troubled conscience but Gods speaking to the heart . Multo difficilius est conscientiam afflictam censolari quam martuos excitare . Luther . False applying comfort will not hold . Obs . Remittant aliquid de cura nit●ris culiusque verborum venustatis & numerofit atis sententiarum , & verae humilitati & mortificationi , impendant ut charitatem habeant , sine qua si linquis hominum loquantur , & angelorum , facti sunt sicut as sonans vel symbalum tinniens . Ribera . Obser . Obser . Times of affliction Gods comforting times . Obser . Obser . Obser . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Cuidam philippum laudanti qued Olynthum subver●erat , Lacedaemonius respoudit , ●tal●m civitatem non possit condere . Plut. l. de Trac . Obser . Obser . Together with ptomiks somthing must be done presently . Lect. 13 Obser . Me ●cies are sweet w●en they come as fruits of our peace with G●d . Obser . Obser . Lect. 12 Obser Mercies comming out of great difficulties are very sweet . Lect. 13 Why called the valley of Achro Lib. 5. c. 1. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Turbavit . Ho●● the valley of Achor was a doore of hope . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 . Quest . Answ . 1 2. 3. Obser . Obser . 1. Obser . 2. Obser . 3. Obser . 4. Picrem nisi periissem . Obser . Quest . Ans . Quest . Ans . 2 , 2. 3. Object , Ans . 3. 4. 5. 6. 7. 8. Quest . Answ . Quest . Answ . Psal . 24. 6. 7. Lect. 14 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 in 〈◊〉 , humiliavit , in Nip●a● humiliatus a●pitus 〈…〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Thē excellency of Moses his song . How may we rejoyce at the destruction of the wicked Enormi admiratione dignum miraculum . August . Ans . , 1. The differences betweene a slave and a free subject . Isa . 51. 11. Obser . Obs . Antichristian bondage worse then Egyptian . Obser . Obser . Obser . Obser . The Saints should sing in the midst of their straits● Obser . We must reioyce at the beginnings of mercie though we have not al we desire . Lect. 15 Obs . Obser . Fresh mercies affect much : Gal. 4. 15. Lect. 14. Obser . Obser . Promised mercies are sweet . Mercies got by prayers are sweet . Lect. 15 Obser . Mercies that make way for ordinances are sweet . New mercies should renew the memory of old mercies . Obser . Former mercies must strengthen our faith in future . Obs . Obser . Obser . The danger of superstitious & Idolatrous names . Melior in ore christianc ritus loquend● Eeclesiasticus , Aug. in praef . enar . in Ps . 93. ep . 200 non debemus consuetudinem serntonis humani in epta loquasitate confundare . Obs . The loathsomeness of Idolatry . Principale crimen generis , humani , summusseculi reaatus tota causa judicii , Idolatria . Tertul. lib. de Idololat . Little Obser . things in matters of Religion must not be slighted . We must take heed of coming too neer Idolatry . Obser . Tondendo aeque , aeque atondebunt . Ps . 68. 21. Tredecim mensas lapidias in Airiis exterioribus fuisse , quibus adstantes homines orarent fuere vero illae partem ad meridiem ad occasum , ad septem trionem sitae ad orientem nulla . Montan. de fabrica Templi . l. 96. We must not imitate Idolaters in worship Obser . Things abused to Idolatry must be reiected . Object , Answ . Quest . Ans . Rules to know how far things abused to Idolatry are to be rejected . Quid enim illae c●remonia aliud , fuerint quam totidem lenocinia quae miseras animas ad malumperducerent . Object . Answ . Object . Answ . Object . Answ . Object . Answ . Non lapidem colimus , sed virtutes Deï magni . Tert. de coron . milit . Ignat. ep . 3. ad Philip. Lect. 16 Sanctior caeteris sratribus qui duobus dominis servire se posse prasumun● . Tertul de corone militis . O militem in Deo gloriosum . Vbi scriptum est ne coronemur ; at ubi scriptum est at coronemur ; Tertul. ibid. Melius mori fame quam I do lothytis v sci , August de bono conjug c. 18. Obser . Sin makes us lose the boldnesse of our claim in our interest in God. Obser . God delights to have his people look upon him with love . Obser . Obser . Obs . Pompous superstition will vanish & come to nothing . Obser . Obser . Mens hearts will cleave to superst●tious vanities till God takes them off . God will destroy cities that he may destroy Altars Object . Ans . How a Covenant with beasts Ita ordinabo inviolabiter . Obser . Obser . The stones of the field at league . Object , Answ . Time coming when the beasts do no hurt . Obser . A wicked thing , the more God is reconciled to men the more to hate them . Obser . Mercy that comes in by covenant is sweet . Obser . Gods covenant with his people is the satisfaction of their hearts in their deep●st sorrows Obser . Obser . The excellency of peace . The evil of civill war. Peace rightly prized . War that brings peace is better then peace that brings war. Peace may be bought at too dear a rate . Obser . God is the Prince of peace , he is the disposer of it as he pleaseth . Obser . Thorough Reformation brings peace . Only Gods peace brings safety . Tranquillitas ista tempestas erit : Hieron . Obser . The blessing of a quiet spirit in troublesome times Obser . Lect. 17 Quest. Answ . The strong union in marriage . Conjugall communion the ful . lest The Saints partake of Christs honour , and they are an honor unto Christ . Afflictions are mutual betweene Christ and his Church Intire love in a married condition in three things . Vtinam dominus avertat adversarios ab ecclesia & in me omnia sua tela convertant , meo sanquine sitim suam expleant . Ambr. Mutual delight betweene Christ and the Saints . Christmar rying himselfe to the Church of the Iews . The grounds of the enduring happiness of the Church . Sicut impossibile est fermentom mixum a pasta separari , quia immutabit pastae naturam , it a impossibile Christianus rapi aChristo , quia est in eis Christus fermentum , it a incorporatus , ut unum sit corpus , una massa . Luth. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Two soul-staying and soul-satisfying grounds for perseverance . Obser . Obser . Obser . ●lasphemiam inge it religioni quam colit , qui quod confitetur no● ante omnes impleverit . Cyper . de sing . Cler. Lect. 18 Secunda gemma marital is annuli . Luther . Vt judicium excerceat in hostes verbi jam multes annos hoe agit Sathan ut per impi●s magistratus ecclesia opprimatur & doctrina per prophanos doctores depravetur , sed videt Germania Deum indicentem Luth. in loc . The match betweene Christ and his Spouse is in rash things , it is out of judgement . The Saints chuse Christ out of judgement . Christas est novitas semper renovanda . Sudden flashes of affections soone vanish . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Wherein Gods kindnesse to us in Christ appeares . Iam. 1. 5 Pro. 10. 22. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Kindnesse betweene man and wife . kindnes to 〈◊〉 The loving kindness of the Saints one toward another . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 . Iust . mar . Non fructus tantum , sed radicem , non aquam sed fontem . The reason why the Saints can so easily give up any comfort they have . The bowels of Gods mercies searched into . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 . Purcicum imperium quantum quantum est mica est quam pater families canibus p●eciicit . Luther . 7. Valde protestatus sum me nolle sic satiari ab eo . Luther . Our bowels must yerne towards God. Lect. 19. Argutum sed srivolum . Infide , in constantia , in stabilitate . Christs love is steady , and why . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 . The Saints love to Christ steady . The evil of a fickle unconstant spirit . Providen tiam creaturis non negamus , curam sibi sponsa vendicat . Bern. Christ stands much upon this , that the harts of his Saints should confide in him . God a sure object for our faith . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Our faith must rayse us above difficulties . Renowned acts of faith drawes forth God power to worke foe the Saints Faith will hold God to his word . Evidences that we do not trust in Gods faith fulness . We must be faithfull to god , so as God may confide in us . We must be faithfull one toward another . Obser . Quia ego dominus . Obser . The right knowing God is a fruit of the covenant . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 The light of the Saints is three stories high . Ephes . 4 , 11. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Obser . Obser . Obs . Obser . Obser . Obser . Obser . Obser . Lect. 19 Obser , Obser . Obser . Obser . Obser . Obs . Obser . Obser . Obser . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 . Obser . Obser . Obser . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Obser . Obser . Obser . Obser . Quae omnia Iudei post Antichristum in fine mundi prestolantur . Hieronym . in locum . Notes for div A30572-e100960 Lect. 1. Obs . Obser . Obser . Love must not be abused . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 . Ezek. 23. 27. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Obser . Idolatry and sensuality goe together . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Cognatum cum 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Pagn . Contrabentes dextras invicem datas ut rem ratam ess● significarent percutiendo discinderent , sicut & in faederibus bestiae disse cabantur . Pagn . O Mar●emani , O Quadi , O Sarmatae , tandem alios vobis deteriores inveni . Ammian . lib. 2. Alios Romanos appellari permitterent , non Iudaeos , ne quid labis ad haertscenit nomini ab odioso ac sordido genere . August . in Psal . 58. ad illud ne occidas . Suetonius in Domitian● . c. 12. Obser . Sin puts into a vile condition . Obs . Obser . Those to whom God intends great mercy , may for a long time be in a sad condition . Obser . Obser . Obser . Obs . Obser . Obser . Lect. 1. Obser . Obser . Ier. 31. 21. VVe may know what is done in heaven by by the beatings of our own hearts . Obser . Answ . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Lect. 2. Plutarch in the life of Pyrrhus . Obser . 2. Things in which wee must take heed of mixture . Some coples . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 . The evill condition of those who are out of Christ . God is sought in straits . 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 What the Ephod was . What to be observed from the precious stones upon the Ephod . Obser . Obser . Faetentur Rabbini sum mam esse apud Hebraeos harum rerum ignorantiam . we must know Gods mind by Christ . Obs . Obser . Obser . Quae sit causa tam grandis offensa ut tanto tempore relicti sunt ? maxime cum idolae non colant praeter interfectionem salvatoris , aliam non valent invenire . Hieron . in loc . What Teraphim was . Quem admodum per Ephod Deo consecratum quid agendum esset consule● illbus significabatur , ita per Teraphim Idolorum praedictiones declarabantur . Procop. in Sam. 15. 23. Mactabant hominem , cujus caput terquendo prescin debant , quod postea ●ale & aromatibus condiebant , scribebantque super laminam auream nome●● spirit●● immundi , qua sopposita capiti ejus , ponchant illud in parict● intendentibus coram eo candelas , & adorantes coram eo , supponebant nomen spiritus immundi sub lingua ipsius , & ille alloquebatur eos , Sic. R. Eliez . How the taking away the Image and the Teraphim is a threatning . How violently mens hearts are set upon superstitious wayes . Obser . Obser . Obser . Obser . Obser . Obser . Obser . Obser . Obser . I●daos in Christum nostrum credituros celeberrimum est in sermonibus cordibusque fidelium . August . 1. Nihil ista propheta manifestius quam David Regis nomine significatus intel●igitur Christus . August . de civit . lib. 18. c. 28. Lect. 3. Answ . Obser . Non solum periculosum , sed horrtbile est de Deo extra Christum cogitare . Luther . Ego sape & lib●nter hoc inculco ut extra Christum oculos & aures claudates , & dica●● nullum vos scire Deum nisi qui fuit in graemio Mariae & suxit ●bera ejus . Luther . David and Christ paraleld in their exercise of kingly power . Obser . The feare of God is strong in a repenting 〈◊〉 . The fear of God wil be most strong when the Church shall bee most glorious . Foure grounds of the feare of God in the times of he Churches deliveranc● 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 What is that goodnesse they shall feare . God will take away the reproach of his Saints . How the goodnesse of God is to be feared . Wantons who abuse Gods goodnesse . Differen ces between legall feare & evangelicall .